Skip to main content

Full text of "The Pawnee; mythology (Part I)"

See other formats


UNIVERSITY  OF  CALIFORNIA 
AT   LOS  ANGELES 


GIFT  OF 

CARNEGIE   INSTITUTION 
OF   WASHINGTON 


THE    PAWNEE 


MYTHOLOGY  (Part  I) 


Collected  under  the  Auspices  of  the 
Carnegie  Institution  of  Washington 


BY 

GEORGE  A.  DORSEY 
Curator  of  Anthropology,  Field  Museum  of  Natural  History 


WASHINGTON,  D.  C. 

Published  by  the  Carnegie  Institution  of  Washington 
1906 


CARNEGIE  INSTITUTION  OF  WASHINGTON 
Publication  No.  59. 


PBINTED  AND  BOUND  BT 

WILLIAMS  *  WILKINS   COMPANY 

BALTIMORE,   MD. 


£ 


CONTENTS 

PAGE 

Preface 5 

Introduction , 7 

MYTHS. 
I.  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

x.  Origin  of  the  Chaui C*  13 

2.  The  Four  Gods  in  the  West K  19 

3.  The  Small-Ants  Bundle  and  the  Buffalo C  21 

4.  The  Four  Gods  of  the  North K  28 

5.  Long-Tongue,  the  Rolling  Head C  31 

6.  How  Evening  Star's  Daughter  was  Overcome S  38 

7.  The  Daughter  of  the  Evening  Star  and  her  Sacred  Bundle S  42 

8.  Contest  between  the  Morning  Star  and  the  Moon C  42 

9.  Origin  of  the  Basket  Dice  Game S  44 

i  o.  The  Origin  of  a  New  Band K  45 

11.  How  the  People  got  the  Crow-Lance K  50 

12.  The  Origin  of  the  Pipe-Stick  Ceremony S  52 

13.  The  Girl  who  Married  a  Star K  55 

14.  The  Grain-of-Corn  Bundle S  58 

15.  The  Meteorite  People S  61 

16.  Buffalo-Wife  and  Corn-Wife S  6* 

17.  The  Poor  Boy  who  Married  the  Chief's  Daughter C  58 

1 8.  The  Cannibal  Witch  and  the  Boy  who  Conquered  the  Buffalo K  72 

19.  The  Warrior  and  the  Black  Lightning  Arrow S  82 

20.  Spotted  Horse;  a  Brave  and  a  Chief S  85 

21.  The  Boy  who  was  Given  Power  to  Call  the  Buffalo K  90 

22.  The  Son  of  Wind,  Ready-to-Give C  90 

23.  The  Man  who  Called  the  Buffalo P  95 

24.  The  Wonderful  Boy S  95 

25.  The  Boy  who  Preferred  Woman  to  Power S  102 

26-  The  Buffalo  Gaming  Sticks S  104 

27.  The  Boy  who  Called  the  Buffalo  and  Went  to  North-Wind K  106 

28.  The  Man  who  Married  a  Buffalo P  109 

29.  How  the  Witch-Woman  was  Killed K  114 

30.  Pursuit  by  a  Rattling  Skull;  the  Pleiades K  119 

31.  The  Poor  Boy  and  the  Mud  Ponies P  123 

32.  The  Origin  of  the  Buffalo  Bundle K  124 

33.  The  Last  of  the  White  Buffalo K  126 

34.  The  Wife  who  Returned  from  Spirit  Land P  125 

(^~35>s  How  the  World  is  to  Come  to  an  End P  1 34 

3ft;  The  Talking  Membrum  Virile K  137 

37.  The  Hermaphrodite K  138 

38.  The  Scalped  Men S  139 

*  The  letters  C,  K,  S,  and  P  indicate,  respectively,  the  Chaui  Kitkehahki,  Skidi,  and  Pitahauirat. 


3  CONTENTS 

II.  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVB. 

PACK 

39.  Handsome-Boy  and  After-Birth  Boy S  142 

40.  Long-Tooth  Boy K  J56 

41.  Long-Tooth  Boy K  JS6 

42.  Burnt-Belly  and  his  Dreams *56 

43.  The  Boy  who  Wore  a  Woodpecker  Cap P  *59 

44.  The  Shooting  of  the  Squirrel's  Nose K  164 

45.  Origin  of  the  Clam  Shell S  167 

46.  The  Poor  Boy  who  Turned  into  an  Eagle S  172 

47.  The  Poor  Boy  who  Lost  his  Power K  176 

48.  The  Flint  Man K  178 

49.  The  Turkey  Ritual K  181 

50.  The  Boy  who  Turned  into  a  Prairie  Dog K  183 

51.  The  Gambler  and  the  Gaming  Sticks C  185 

52.  Young  Hawk  Hunts  for  his  Mother S  191 

53.  The  Dog- Boy  who  Married  the  Chief's  Daughter K  192 

54.  Sun- Ray  who  Mistreated  his  Wife K  194 

55.  Hawk  Slays  the  Fire-Keeper K  196 

56.  The  Singing  Hawk K  199 

57.  The  Boy  who  Married  a  Buffalo K  202 

58.  Buffalo  Wife  and  the  Dispersion  of  the  Buffalo K  204 

59.  The  Poor  Boy  who  Wanted  to  get  Married S  206 

go.  The  Buffalo  and  Red-Spider-Woman's  Daughter K  211 

51.  The  Singing  Buffalo  Calf K  213 

62.  The  Buffalo  and  the  Deer K  214 

63.  The  Unfaithful  Bundle  Keeper K  215 

64.  The  Hungry  Coyote K  216 

65.  The  Gathering  of  the  Priests K  217 

66-  The  Man  who  Sang  to  Coyote K  218 

67.  How  the  Cannibal  Spider- Woman  was  Overcome C  219 

68.  The  Witch- Woman  who  Stole  the  Wonderful  Robe K  222 

69.  How  the  Cannibal  Witch- Woman  was  Overcome C  225 

70.  The  Girl  who  Called  the  Buffalo K  228 

71.  Wood- Rat- Woman  who  wished  to  be  Married S  232 

72.  The  Witch- Woman  who  wished  to  be  Married K  232 

73.  The  Basket  Game  or  the  Woman  in  the  Moon S  233 

74.  The  Girl,  Spider- Woman,  and  the  Ball  Game S  236 

75.  The  Boy  who  Killed  the  Cannibal  Witch K  239 

76.  The  Witch-Woman  and  Her  Home S  240 

III.  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

77.  The  Medicine-Child  and  the  Beaver  Medicine K  241 

78.  The  Origin  of  the  Loon  Medicine  Ceremony S  254 

79.  The  Lightning's  Medicine  Ceremony K  261 

80.  The  Stone-Man  Medicine- Lodge K  279 

81.  The  Fossil  Giant  Medicine- Lodge P  294 

82.  The  Squash  Medicine S  296 

83.  Origin  of  the  Geese  Medicine S  300 

84.  The  Wonderful  Boy  who  Killed  his  Father K  304 


CONTENTS  3 

PAGH 

85.  The  Medicine-Man  who  Killed  his  Son P  308 

86.  The  Chief's  Son  who  Received  the  Animal  Power K  312 

87.  The  Thunder-Bird  Ceremony K  314 

88.  Proud  Boy  and  the  Animal  Medicine P  318 

89.  The  Bear  Medicine-Man C  330 

90.  The  Bear  Medicine S  336 

91.  The  Bear  Medicine  and  Ceremony S  346 

92.  The  Buffalo  Power  and  the  Wild  Horse  Dance C  355 

93.  The  Origin  of  the  Buffalo  Ceremony K  362 

94.  The  Buffalo  Medicine  Dance K  369 

95.  The  Woman  and  the  Buffalo  Dance K  370 

96-  The  Buffalo  Medicine  Dance K  372 

97.  The  Buffalo-Game  Medicine C  374 

98.  The  Lost  Warrior  and  the  Singing  Buffalo  Medicine K  377 

99.  The  Buffalo  Medicine  War  Shield S  378 

100.  The  Man  who  Married  a  Deer S  380 

101.  The  Deer  Dance P  382 

102.  The  Wolf-Warrior K  384 

103.  The  Coyote  and  Wolf  Medicine K  389 

104.  The  Scalped-Man  Medicine S  390 

105.  How  the  Pawnee  got  the  Eagle-Dance P  394 

106-  The  Dog  Medicine K  402 

107.  Burnt-Belly  and  the  Dog K  404 

108.  The  Eagle  and  the  Sun-Dance S  407 

109.  The  Skeleton-Man  and  the  Sun-Dance S  408 

no.  The  Woman  who  was  Bewitched  by  a  Fox K  409 

in.  Ghost-Man  who  Became  a  Whirlwind K  410 

112.  The  Man  who  Went  to  Spirit  Land K  411 

113.  The  Spirit  Wife  and  the  Whistle-Dance P  413 

114.  Handsome-Boy P  414 

115.  The  Weeping  Cedar  Tree K  426 

iifi.  Big  Turtle K  426 

IV.  COYOTE  TALES. 

117.  Coyote  and  the  Scalped- Woman K  428 

118.  How  a  Witch-Woman  was  Killed  by  Coyote S  430 

119.  Coyote  Marries  his  Daughter K  430 

120.  Coyote  and  his  Two  Wives  Meet  Wonderful  Being K  432 

121.  Coyote  Tries  to  Fool  the  Rain-Gods K  434 

122.  Coyote  and  the  Priests K  434 

123.  Coyote  who  Called  Himself  "Dragging-the-Stone" P  435 

124.  Coyote-Man  and  his  Tricks S  439 

125.  Coyote  Takes  the  Pipe  Sticks  to  the  Beavers P  445 

126.  Coyote  and  the  Rolling  Stone K  446 

127.  Coyote  and  the  Rolling  Skull K  447 

128.  Coyote  Turns  into  a  Buffalo P  449 

129.  Coyote  Family  Run  After  the  Buffalo K  452 

130.  Coyote  Steals  Turtle's  Buffalo K  453 

131.  Coyote  and  Bear S 


4  CONTENTS 

PAOB 

139.  Coyote  and  Bear S  455 

133.  Coyote  Shows  Turkey  the  Scalp-Offering  Ceremony S  456 

134.  Coyote  and  the  Dancing  Turkeys S  457 

J35-  Coyote  and  the  Turkeys  Roll  Down  Hill S  458 

136-  Coyote  and  Prairie  Chicken K  459 

137.  Coyote  and  Prairie  Chicken S  460 

138.  Coyote  Tries  to  Marry  Rabbit S  451 

139.  Coyote  and  the  Salt S  462 

140.  Coyote  and  the  Rosebuds K  462 

141.  Coyote  and  the  Artichoke K  464 

143.  Coyote,  the  Plum  Trees,  and  the  Grape  Vines K  464 

143.  The  Skunks  and  the  Beavers P  465 

144.  How  Wild-Cat  Killed  the  Bear S  467 

145.  How  Rabbit  Lost  his  Tail S  458 

146.  The  White  and  the  Black  Rats S  468 

147.  Turtle's  War  Party K  469 

148.  The  Animal's  War  Party K  470 

Abstracts 473-546 


PREFACE. 

This  present  memoir  forms  part  of  a  series  of  investigations  begun  by 
the  author  among  the  tribes  of  the  Caddoan  stock  on  behalf  of  the  Field 
Museum  of  Natural  History,  and  continued  since  the  beginning  of  1903 
under  the  auspices  of  the  Carnegie  Institution  of  Washington.  The 
results  of  this  investigation,  which  have  appeared  up  to  the  present 
time,  are  as  follows: 

1.  Wichita  Tales,     i.  Origin.     /.  Am.  Folk-Lore,  vol.  xv,  pp.  215-239. 

2.  One  of  the  sacred  altars  of  the  Pawnee.     Trans.  Int.  Cong,  of  Ameri- 

canists, pp.  67-74,  1902. 

3.  How  the  Pawnee  captured    the    Cheyenne   medicine  arrows.     Ant. 

Anth.  (n.  s.),  vol.  v,  pp.  644-658. 

4.  Wichita  Tales.     2.  The  story  of  Weksalahos  or  the  Shooting  Stars. 

/.  Ant.  Folk-Lore,  vol.  xvi,  pp.  160-179. 

5.  An  Arikara  story-telling  contest.     Am.  Anth.'(n.  s.  ),  vol.  vi,  pp.  240- 

243,  1904. 

6.  Wichita  Tales.     3.  The  two  boys  who  slew  the  monsters  and  became 

stars.     J.  Am.  Folk-Lore,  vol.  xvii,  pp.  153-160,  1904. 

7.  Traditions  of  the  Skidi  Pawnee.     Mem.  Am,  Folk-Lore,  vol.  viii,  1904. 

8.  Traditions  of  the  Arikara.     Pub.    17,    Carnegie  Institution  of  Wash- 

ington, 1904. 

9.  The   mythology    of   the  Wichita.      Pub.  21,  Carnegie  Institution    of 

Washington,  1904. 

10.  A  Pawnee  personal  medicine  shrine.    Am.  Anth.  (n.  s.),  pp.  496-498, 

1905. 

11.  Caddo  customs  of  childhood.     _/.  Am.  Folk-Lore,  vol.  xviii,  pp.  226- 

228,  1905. 

12.  Traditions  of  the  Caddo.     Pub.  41,  Carnegie  Institution  of  Washington, 

1905. 

Part  I  of  the  mythology  here  presented  contains  the  tales  of  the  Kit- 
kehahki,  Pitahauirat,  and  Chaui  bands  of  Pawnee,  as  well  as  a  few  miscel- 
laneous Skidi  tales,  and  completes  the  work  of  recording  the  traditions 
of  the  Caddoan  tribes;  it  will  be  followed  by  Part  II,  in  which  will  be  pre- 
sented the  music  which  belongs  to  certain  tales  of  this  memoir,  and  which 
will  give  the  results  of  a  comparative  study  of  the  tales  of  the  various 
tribes  of  this  stock,  both  among  themselves  and  with  the  tales  of  other 
tribes  of  North  America. 

The  share  of  the  work  performed  by  Mr.  James  R.  Murie  has  been  as 
great  in  this  present  volume  as  in  previous  volumes,  and  without  his  keen 
interest  and  untiring  patience  the  production  of  the  memoir  would  not 
have  been  possible. 

GEORGE  A.  DORSEY. 
May  i,  1906. 

5 


INTRODUCTION. 

The  present  memoir  comprises  one  hundred  and  forty-eight  tales,  of 
which  forty-five  were  obtained  from  nineteen  Skidi  informants,  seven- 
teen from  five  Pitahauirat  informants,  seventy-three  from  ten  Kitke- 
hahki  informants,  and  thirteen  from  five  Chaui  informants.  Concern- 
ing this  representation  it  seems  advisable  to  say  a  word.  First,  it  should 
be  noted  that  the  Skidi  tales  here  presented  are  to  be  regarded  as  sup- 
plementary to  those  already  printed  in  my  "Traditions  of  the  Skidi  Paw- 
nee." In  the  introduction  to  that  volume  a  statement  was  made  that 
tales  which  contained  songs  would  be  reserved  for  publication  in  a  later 
volume.  The  forty-five  Skidi  tales  here  presented  contain  all  those  which 
were  omitted  in  the  memoir  just  referred  to,  and  include  also  several 
others  which  have  been  obtained  during  the  last  two  years.  Next,  it 
should  be  remembered  that  the  Skidi  to-day  exceed  in  population  the 
other  three  bands  combined.  In  the  Chaui  band  there  are  but  two  men 
living  who  may  be  regarded  as  full-blooded  Chaui.  Others,  however, 
have  married  Chaui  women,  have  become  possessors  of  Chaui  traditions 
and  their  bundles  brought  to  them  by  their  wives,  and  are  generally  con- 
sidered as  Chaui  to-day.  The  Pitahauirat  band  is  also  small  in  numbers. 
The  Kitkehahki  is  relatively  more  numerous  than  the  two  bands  just  men- 
tioned, but  the  great  number  of  tales  from  this  band  is  rather  due  to  the 
fact  that  thirty-four  of  the  tales  were  obtained  from  a  single  informant. 

It  appears  that  from  the  four  bands  thirty-nine  informants  are  rep- 
resented. These  collectively  represent  practically  the  entire  story-telling 
population  of  the  Pawnee,  for  the  tribe  to-day  numbers  about  five  hun- 
dred, whereas  at  the  time  of  the  removal  of  the  Pawnee  from  Nebraska 
to  Oklahoma,  in  1874,  they  numbered  over  two  thousand.  This  great 
decimation  of  their  ranks,  together  with  the  almost  total  abandonment 
of  their  religious  observances,  has  undoubtedly  greatly  influenced  the 
volume  of  mythology  in  the  tribe ;  especially  is  this  known  to  be  the  case 
among  the  Skidi,  where  certain  villages  are  no  longer  represented  and 
nothing  is  known  of  the  ritual  accompanying  the  sacred  bundle  which 
belonged  to  that  village  and  consequently  nothing  of  the  tales  of  its  origin. 
Again,  it  may  be  pointed  out  that  in  the  representations  of  the  Pitahau- 
irat and  Chaui  of  to-day  it  is  not  at  all  likely  that  anything  approaching  a 
fair  representation  of  their  mythology  may  be  obtained.  It  seems,  how- 
ever, that  the  inequality  in  the  number  of  tales  representing  the  bands 

7 


g  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

is  not  as  serious  as  might  seem  at  first  consideration;  for,  although  the 
four  bands  have  long  been  recognized  as  distinct,  the  Pawnee  themselves 
are  firm  in  the  belief  that  the  Chaui,  Pitahauirat,  and  Kitkehahki  origi- 
nally formed  a  single  band  or  division  known  as  the  Kawarahkis.  The 
time  of  this  union  is  believed  to  have  been  long  before  the  advent  of  the 
whites ;  the  belief  is  based  on  historic  tradition  and  hence  must  be  accepted 
as  at  least  provisionally  true.  According  to  this  tradition  the  Kawa- 
rahkis at  this  time  made  their  home  near  the  present  site  of  Nemaha,  in 
the  southeastern  corner  of  Nebraska,  near  the  Missouri  River.  From  this 
point  the  Chaui  and  Kitkehahki,  after  their  separation,  went  north,  the 
Kitkehahki  locating  on  the  Republican  River,  where  they  were  found  by 
Pike,  and  the  Chaui  going  to  the  northwest,  where  they  settled  south  of 
the  Platte  River.  After  the  departure  of  these  two  bands,  the  Kawa- 
rahkis remained  in  the  neighborhood  of  Nemaha  for  a  long  period  and  the 
remnant  finally  became  known  as  the  Pitahauirat.  Early  in  this  cen- 
tury they  also  migrated  to  the  northwest  and  occupied  the  area  between 
the  Chaui  and  the  Kitkehahki.  According  to  this  tradition,  therefore, 
the  Chaui,  Pitahauirat,  and  Kitkehahki  form  to-day  remnants  of  what  was 
once  a  single  tribe,  just  as  we  have  reason  to  believe  that  the  Ankara 
and  Skidi  once  formed  a  single  tribe.  The  mythology  of  the  three  bands 
also  leads  to  this  belief,  for  their  origin  myths  are  practically  the  same, 
the  variation  which  exists  being  due  probably  to  the  fact  that  since  the 
bands  became  distinct  each  has  acquired,  generally  from  the  Skidi,  cer- 
tain ceremonies  or  rites  along  with  a  story  of  origin.  Thus  it  appears 
that  the  Pitahauirat,  Kitkehahki,  and  Chaui  would  be  likely  to  have  a 
mythology  which  would  show  many  points  of  difference  from  that  of  the 
Skidi.  Were  it  possible  to  obtain  a  full  account  of  their  mythology,  this 
difference,  which  undoubtedly  exists,  would  probably  be  found  to  be 
much  greater  than  now  appears ;  at  any  rate  it  is  known  that  their  social 
organization  and  even  many  elements  of  their  religion  had  much  in 
common,  but  differed  considerably  from  the  Skidi.  It  may  be  further 
noted,  however,  that  in  general  the  tales  of  the  four  bands  as  they  exist 
to-day  form  a  unit  and  have  many  characteristic  features  in  common. 
This  is  due  to  the  fact  that  for  the  last  forty  years  the  four  bands  have 
been  closely  associated,  and  that  since  their  removal  to  Oklahoma  they 
have  been  treated  by  the  government  as  a  single  tribe  and  have  been 
forced  to  intermingle  in  a  manner  which  formerly  would  not  have  been 
possible.  The  rapidly  diminishing  size  of  the  tribe  has  also  tended  to 
bind  the  four  tribes  closer  and  closer  together,  and  for  several  years 
past  they  have  freely  visited  back  and  forth  during  ceremonies,  at  which 
gatherings  story-telling  has  been  a  regular  feature. 


INTRODUCTION.  9 

In  Part  II  of  this  memoir  will  be  found  the  results  of  a  comparative 
study  of  the  tales  and  incidents  of  the  bands  of  the  Pawnee,  which  in 
turn  will  be  contrasted  with  the  tales  of  other  tribes  of  the  so-called  Cad- 
doan  stock  and  with  the  tales  of  American  Indians  in  general.  It  might 
be  pointed  out  at  this  time  that  in  cosmogonic  beliefs  and  in  tales  explan- 
atory of  rituals  the  Skidi  more  nearly  approach  the  Arikara1  than  they 
do  the  other  three  bands  of  Pawnee.  In  the  character  of  their  so-called 
Coyote  tales,  however,  the  Skidi  bears  a  closer  resemblance  to  the  other 
three  bands  than  to  the  Arikara.  This  is  as  might  be  expected,  for  the 
Coyote  tales  would  be  much  more  likely  to  pass  from  one  tribe  to  another 
through  borrowing  than  would  tales  which  relate  to  religious  observances. 
It  is  interesting  in  this  connection  to  note  that  the  Skidi  have  had  very 
little  intercourse  with  the  Arikara  since  their  separation,  about  1832. 

In  the  introduction  to  the  "Traditions  of  the  Skidi  Pawnee"  will  be 
found  a  general  characterization  of  the  religious  life  of  the  Skidi  and  the 
circumstances  under  which  the  tales  were  told.  These  remarks,  in  gen- 
eral, apply  with  equal  force  to  the  corresponding  cultural  elements  of 
the  other  three  bands.  It  should  be  noted,  however,  that  the  religion 
of  the  Chaui,  Kitkehahki,  and  Pitahauirat  collectively  is  not  nearly  so 
rich  in  ceremonies  and  accompanying  rituals  based  upon  the  sacred 
bundles  or  altars  as  is  that  of  the  Skidi.  Indeed,  as  stated  before,  there 
is  some  reason  for  believing  that  these  three  bands  represent  offshoots  of 
the  original  Skidi  through  the  single  band  of  the  Kawarahkis. 

For  obvious  reasons  the  basis  of  the  arrangement  of  the  tales  in  the 
present  volume  is  not  the  band;  thus,  Skidi  tales  are  not  found  in  one 
group,  Chaui  in  another,  etc.  Such  grouping  would  imply  and  might 
lead  to  the  belief  that  the  tales  presented,  for  example,  in  the  Chaui  group 
belong  to  the  Chaui  rather  than  to  the  other  three  bands,  whereas  the 
fact  that  a  tale  is  ascribed  to  a  Chaui  informant  means  that  and  nothing 
more.  It  is  quite  possible,  and  generally  more  than  likely,  that  the  other 
three  bands  have  a  similar  tale ;  indeed,  in  many  cases  variants  have  been 
obtained  from  other  bands,  some  of  which  are  here  presented,  but  where 
they  present  no  new  incident  they  have  not  been  recorded.  The  basis 
of  the  present  grouping  has  been  determined  by  considering  the  tales  as 
forming  the  available  mythology  of  a  single  tribe,  and  the  basis  of  the 
grouping  is  that  which  is  recognized  by  the  Pawnee  themselves,  namely, 
the  character  of  the  tale.  The  arrangement  has  been  made  only  after 
long  and  extended  inquiry  among  the  leading  informants,  and  especially 
after  carefully  considering  the  subject  with  Mr.  Murie,  who  is  at  the  pres- 
ent time  probably  the  best  informed  man  in  his  tribe.  One  of  the  dif- 
See  "Traditions  of  the  Arikara,"  p.  5. 


io  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

ficulties  early  discovered  in  the  grouping  of  the  tales  is  the  fact  that  one 
version  of  a  tale  may  be  considered  as  having  a  certain  character,  while 
a  slightly  different  version  is  related  by  another  informant  in  another 
band,  or  even  in  the  same  band,  and  is  considered  as  having  an  entirely 
different  character.  Hence  it  is  that  in  one  or  two  instances  one  version 
of  a  tale  is  found  in  one  group,  while  another  version  is  found  in  another 
group.  Further  difficulty  of  arrangement  was  encountered  in  the  fact 
that  a  few  tales  lie  close  to  the  borderland  of  one  or  another  group,  and 
it  often  becomes  a  matter  of  considerable  difficulty  in  deciding  upon  the 
proper  position  of  a  tale.  In  nearly  every  case,  however,  the  estimate  of 
the  character  of  the  tale  as  held  by  the  informant  has  been  observed. 
The  Pawnee  clearly  recognizes  two  great  categories  of  tales — those 
which  are  true  and  which  are  supposed  to  relate  to  things  or  events  which 
actually  happened,  and  those  which  are  false  and  which  are  considered 
to  have  been  invented  by  the  Pawnee,  especially  by  the  old  men,  for  the 
purpose  of  impressing  some  moral  precept,  illustrating  some  phase  of 
ethical  life,  or  of  conveying  a  warning,  etc.  A  division  slightly  more 
extended,  however,  than  the  one  just  noted  has  been  followed,  and  the 
tales  are  divided  into  four  groups,  each  group  being  preceded  by  a  state- 
ment which  presents  with  sufficient  fullness  the  common  ground  and 
common  facts  which  connect  together  the  tales  of  that  group.  Thus 
there  are  distinguished:  (i)  Tales  which  are  true  and  which  especially 
concern  the  supernatural  beings  of  the  heavens.  Many  of  these  tales 
are  cosmogonic  in  nature,  and  nearly  all  possess  some  religious  element. 
(2)  Tales  of  Ready-to-Give,  the  major  part  of  which  are  cultural  hero 
tales  which  may  be  or  may  not  be  true,  but  which  are  associated  with  one 
of  the  supernatural  beings  of  the  north  who  is  the  supreme  guardian  deity 
of  the  people  in  matters  pertaining  to  food  quests.  (3)  Stories  which 
are  supposed  to  be  true  and  which  treat  of  the  wonderful  doings  of  the 
supernatural  beings  of  the  earth.  The  majority  of  these  are  concerned 
with  the  acquisition  of  an  individual  medicine  or  manitou,  which  may 
be  transferred  by  sale  or  gift,  but  which  is  not  necessarily  hereditary. 
(4)  Coyote  tales,  none  of  which  are  supposed  to  be  true,  but  nearly  all 
of  which  point  a  moral.  It  is  interesting  to  note,  concerning  the  Coyote 
tales  as  a  group,  that  throughout  the  Coyote  appears  as  a  mean  trick- 
ster and  that  his  position  as  transformer  is  secondary  to  that  of  certain 
heroes  found  in  the  second  group.  There  is  reason  to  believe  that,  while 
the  Pawnee  were  in  Nebraska,  the  word  Coyote  was  rarely  or  possibly  never 
used  in  connection  with  these  tales,  and  that  they  were  called  instead 
Wolf  tales,  the  Wolf  being  the  mean  trickster  and  not  the  Coyote.  These 
Coyote  or  Wolf  tales,  in  general,  suggest  to  the  Pawnee  the  mischievous 


INTRODUCTION.  II 

performances  of  the  Wolf  sent  by  the  Wolf-Star,  who,  in  attempting  to 
steal  people  from  Lightning,  introduces  mortality  on  earth,  and  through 
Lightning's  failure  to  sacrifice  Wolf  the  earth  becomes  subject  to  war- 
fare and  death.  Thus  the  original  wolf  is  a  transformer  of  far-reaching 
consequences  and  at  the  same  time  a  veritable  trickster.  This  latter 
element  appears  throughout  all  the  Coyote  tales.  The  transformer  ele- 
ment, as  already  noted,  is  as  a  rule  much  less  prominent. 

It  has  not  been  possible  to  obtain,  up  to  the  present  time,  any  lengthy 
connected  story  of  creation  such  as  has  been  recorded  from  the  Navaho. 
It  seems  probable,  however,  that  such  tales  as  the  one  just  referred  to 
represent  a  studied  effort  on  the  part  of  the  narrator  or  observer  to  com- 
bine many  elements  in  a  continuous  story.  The  Pawnee  know  of  no  such 
tale.  It  now  seems  quite  certain  to  me,  however,  that  a  complete  knowl- 
edge of  the  rituals  associated  with  the  sacred  bundles  of  the  Skidi  would 
furnish  us  with  a  fairly  well-connected  tale  of  origin  of  unusual  interest. 
This,  however,  it  will  never  be  possible  to  obtain,  as  many  chapters  or 
sections  of  such  a  tale  disappeared  with  the  village  and  its  bundle. 
Many  sections  of  the  story  are  still  available,  a  few  of  which  have  already 
been  given  in  popular  form  in  the  "Traditions  of  the  Skidi  Pawnee." 
The  comment  there  made  may  be  here  repeated,  namely,  that  as  a  rule 
myths  which  seem  to  be  explanatory  of  rituals  do  not  represent  the  official 
version.  This  is  embodied  in  the  ritual  itself,  which  is  chanted  or  sung 
during  the  ceremony.  The  meaning  of  the  words  of  the  ritual  is  generally 
obscure,  often  unintelligible  even  to  the  priest  himself.  In  this  connec- 
tion it  may  be  interesting  to  note  that  not  for  thirty  years  have  the 
bundle  ceremonies  been  held  or  their  rituals  chanted.  It  is  all  the  more 
surprising  that  the  priests  remember  as  much  about  them  as  they  do. 

Nearly  one-half  of  the  stories  are  accompanied  by  music  and  song, 
but  only  a  free  translation  of  the  songs  is  given  in  the  body  of  the  stories. 
The  music  and  text  of  the  songs  will  be  found  in  Part  II.  It  is  known 
that  formerly  songs  existed  with  many  of  the  other  tales,  but  their  words 
or  music  or  both  have  been  lost.  The  music  and  words  of  many  songs 
have  also  been  obtained  from  the  narrators  of  many  of  the  medicine 
stories.  These  songs,  however,  form  an  intrinsic  part  of  the  medicine- 
man's ceremonies,  and  consideration  of  them  is  reserved  for  a  more 
appropriate  place. 

Accompanying  the  title  of  each  tale  is  a  note  which  bears  the  name 
of  the  informant  and  band.  With  a  large  number  of  tales  there  is  also 
a  brief  explanatory  note,  in  which  is  set  forth  the  reason,  as  given  by  the 
informant,  why  the  tale  is  told,  and  which  supplements  the  general  state- 
ment given  at  the  beginning  of  each  group  of  tales.  This  information, 


12  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

with  the  grouping  of  the  stories  from  the  view  point  of  the  Indian,  will, 
it  is  believed,  assist  materially  in  a  proper  understanding  of  the  tales. 
With  the  note  to  many  of  the  tales  I  have  added  a  few  words  of  explana- 
tion where  such  seemed  advisable. 

In  a  few  instances  the  titles  of  tales  are  given  in  their  proper  places,  but 
the  tales  themselves  are  found  only  in  the  abstracts,  where  they  are  pre- 
sented in  an  abbreviated  form.  This  has  been  done  in  order  the  more 
clearly  to  bring  out  the  rank  given  the  tale  by  the  narrator.  It  would 
have  been  possible  to  have  brought  about  a  further  shortening  of  the 
tales  by  omitting  in  a  few  other  instances  the  full  tale  and  presenting 
it  only  in  abstract  form.  In  such  cases,  however,  where  apparently  this 
might  have  been  done  but  has  not,  the  tales  from  the  point  of  view  of 
the  Pawnee  are  different  not  only  in  character  but  in  their  origin,  and 
either  relate  to  different  ceremonies  or  customs  or  point  an  entirely 
different  moral. 


I.    TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

The  stories  in  the  first  group,  as  the  division  headline  indicates,  are 
all  supposed  to  be  true  and  to  describe  events  which  actually  took  place. 
Furthermore,  these  tales  are  nearly  all  connected  with  the  sacred  bundle 
or  altar  ceremonies,  and  in  general  may  be  considered  as  explanatory 
of  the  ceremony,  or  of  some  episode  of  the  ceremony,  or  even  as  account- 
ing for  the  very  origin  of  the  ceremony.  These  tales,  as  a  rule,  are  told 
only  during  ceremonies,  especially  during  the  intermissions  or  pauses  in 
the  ceremony  which  occur  from  time  to  time  between  rites,  or  during 
resting  periods  in  the  chanting  of  a  long  ritual.  During  such  intermissions 
anyone  of  those  present  may  ask  of  the  priests  for  such  a  tale.  Espe- 
cially is  it  the  privilege  of  the  one  who  has  made  the  ceremony  possible, 
by  providing  the  food  for  the  sacrifice  and  feast,  to  ask  that  such  a  tale 
be  related.  These  tales  may  also,  under  certain  circumstances,  be  told 
outside  the  ceremonial  lodge,  as,  for  example,  a  group  of  young  men,  by 
presenting  on  an  appropriate  occasion  a  ceremonial  pipe  to  one  who 
knows  the  story,  could  ask  him  to  relate  what  he  had  heard  during  his 
presence  in  a  ceremony.  These  stories  are  told,  as  a  rule,  in  the  fall  and 
winter  rather  than  in  the  spring  and  summer,  and  the  chief  object  in 
relating  them  is  to  furnish  instruction.  Collectively  they  form  a  popu- 
lar account  of  the  Pawnee  belief  in  the  doings  and  performances  of  the 
supernatural  beings. 


1.  ORIGIN  OP  THE  CHAUI.1 

After  Tirawa  had  created  the  sun,  moon,  stars,  the  heavens,  the  earth, 
and  all  things  upon  the  earth,  he  spoke,  and  at  the  sound  of  his  voice  a 
woman  appeared  upon  the  earth.  Tirawa  spoke  to  the  gods  in  the  heav- 
ens and  asked  them  what  he  should  do  to  make  the  woman  hagpy  and 

1  Told  by  Roaming-Chief,  hereditary  chief  of  the  Chaui.  The  grandfather  of 
Roaming- Chief  was  a  Kitkehahki  who  married  a  Chaui  woman  and  finally  became 
chief  of  the  Chaui.  The  result  of  this  union  was  two  children,  one  of  whom  was 
the  famous  Pitalesaru  who  was  appointed  by  the  United  States  Government  as 
chief  of  the  confederated  bands  of  the  Pawnee.  His  sisterwas  the  mother  of  Roaming- 
Chief.  The  tale  possibly  contains  Kitkehahki  elements,  although  it  is  claimed  to 
be  representative  of  the  Chaui.  It  has  its  origin  from  a  bundle  on  one  of  the  sacred 
altars,  and  is  handed  down  from  one  generation  to  another.  Anyone  making  an 
offering  of  buffalo  meat  for  the  opening  of  the  altar  is  privileged  to  hear  the  story. 
It  is  supposed  especially  to  instill  the  belief  of  the  great  power  of  Tirawa  and  to 
inspire  confidence  in  his  ability  to  send  the  buffalo. 

13 


I4  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

that  she  might  give  increase.  The  Moon  spoke  and  said,  "All  things  that 
you  have  made,  you  have  made  in  pairs,  as  the  Heavens  and  the  Earth, 
the  Sun  and  the  Moon.  Give  a  mate  to  the  woman  so  that  the  pair  may 
live  together  and  help  one  another  in  life."  Tirawa  made  a  man  and 
sent  him  to  the  woman;  then  he  said:  "Now  I  will  speak  to  both  of  you. 
I  give  you  the  earth.  You  shall  call  the  earth  'mother.'  The  heavens 
you  shall  call  'father.'  You  shall  also  call  the  moon  'mother,'  for  she 
rises  in  the  east;  and  you  shall  call  the  sun  'father,'  for  he  rises  in  the 
east.  In  time  you,  woman,  shall  be  known  as  'mother,'  and  the  man 
shall  be  known  as  'father.'  I  give  you  the  sun  to  give  you  light.  The 
moon  will  also  give  you  light.  The  earth  I  give  you,  and  you  are  to  call 
her  'mother,'  for  she  gives  birth  to  all  things.  The  timber  that  shall 
grow  upon  the  earth  you  shall  make  use  of  in  many  ways.  Some  of  the 
trees  will  have  fruit  upon  them.  Shrubs  will  grow  from  the  ground  and 
they  will  have  berries  upon  them.  All  these  things  I  give  you  and  you 
shall  eat  of  them.  Never  forget  to  call  the  earth  'mother,'  for  you  are 
to  live  upon  her.  You  must  love  her,  for  you  must  walk  upon  her. 
I  will  now  show  you  how  to  build  a  lodge,  so  that  you  will  not  be  cold  or 
get  wet  from  the  rain.  Go  and  get  timber.  Cut  ten  forked  sticks  and 
set  them  in  a  circle.  Cut  some  poles  to  lay  across  the  forks.  Four  of 
the  upright  forks  must  form  a  parallelogram,  with  the  longest  sides 
extending  east  and  west.  The  posts  that  are  set  in  the  ground  to 
uphold  the  lodge  represent  the  four  gods  who  hold  up  the  heavens  in 
the  northeast,  northwest,  southwest,  and  southeast.  There  are  minor 
gods  between  these,  with  powers  that  connect  the  power  of  one  god  to 
another.  There  is  also  an  outer  circle  of  many  gods,  and  you  shall  cut  poles 
to  represent  them;  their  power  also  extends  from  one  god  to  another. 
The  south  side  of  the  lodge  will  be  for  the  men,  for  the  men  will  be  strong, 
and  so  they  must  be  on  the  right.  The  north  side  shall  be  for  the  women, 
for  they  are  not  as  strong  as  the  men  and  so  must  be  on  the  left.  The 
entrance  of  the  lodge  shall  always  face  the  east,  for  the  lodge  that  you 
are  to  build  shall  breathe  as  if  human.  Five  posts  are  on  the  south  side, 
representing  the  five  branches  of  the  man,  two  legs,  two  arms  and  head. 
The  five  forks  at  the  north  also  stand  for  the  five  branches  of  the  woman. 
You  shall  net  willows  together.  These  shall  be  thrown  upon  the  east 
side  of  the  four  posts  that  stand  for  the  gods  in  the  heavens.  These 
netted  willows  represent  the  ribs  of  the  gods  that  the  posts  represent. 
When  the  lodge  is  complete,  dig  in  the  center  for  the  fireplace  and  I  will 
give  you  fire-sticks  so  that  you  can  make  your  fire.  These  fire-sticks 
belong  to  the  sun.  When  you  make  the  fireplace,  dig  up  the  dirt  in  the 
center  of  the  lodge  and  take  it  out  and  place  it  in  front  of  the  lodge  in 


ORIGIN  OF  THE  CHAUI.  15 

the  form  of  a  mound,  so  that  when  the  sun  shall  rise  in  the  east  he  will 
see  that  mound.  Fire  will  do  many  things  for  you.  After  you  have  com- 
pleted the  fireplace,  make  the  ground  even  inside  of  the  lodge,  leaving 
only  one  small  mound  in  the  west  for  an  altar.  Kill  a  buffalo  and  place 
the  skull  on  the  altar.  Though  the  skull  has  no  life  in  it,  I,  Tirawa,  or 
the  spirit  of  the  buffalo  will  be  present  there  when  the  rays  of  the  sun 
shine  upon  it.  For  this  reason  always  keep  the  skull  on  the  altar,  facing 
east,  so  that  the  first  rays  of  the  sun,  as  it  enters  the  lodge,  will  shine  upon 
it.  Whenever  you  kill  an  animal,  take  fat  and  grease  the  parts  so  that 
you  will  remember  that  there  are  gods  in  the  heavens,  located  as  the 
posts  of  your  lodge  are.  Whenever  I,  or  the  buffalo  spirit,  am  away  from 
the  altar  the  minor  gods  will  dwell  there  until  we  return.  I  will  give 
you  a  sacred  bundle  to  hang  upon  the  wall  over  the  altar.  The  woman 
will  have  charge  of  the  bundle,  and  it  is  to  be  opened  at  certain  times,  so 
that  you  may  see  the  things  that  are  in  it.  I  also  give  you  a  pipe  and 
native  tobacco  and  mother-corn,  and  painted  sticks  with  scalps  on  them. 
Keep  these  painted  sticks  stuck  around  outside  of  the  lodge,  one  in  each 
of  the  four  directions.  All  of  the  animals  and  all  of  the  birds  shall  have 
power  from  the  bundle  and  they  shall  go  in  pairs  and  have  increase,  as 
you  shall  have.  Remember  the  skull,  for  I  have  placed  it  in  your  lodge 
to  live  with  you  and  communicate  with  you.  Listen  to  the  thunder,  for 
it  is  your  father's  voice.  You  must  sacrifice  things  to  him  and  to  the 
other  gods  in  the  heavens.  I  now  give  you,  man,  a  bow  and  arrows, 
which  are  to  be  known  as  the  'wonderful  bow  and  arrows.'  You,  too, 
woman,  I  give  a  bow  and  arrows  and  also  a  hoe  made  from  the  shoulder 
blade  of  a  buffalo;  and  seeds  of  four  different  colors,  red,  yellow,  black, 
and  white,  and  you  shall  have  corn  of  these  colors.  Make  a  pot  from 
the  clay  of  the  earth  and  cook  the  corn  on  the  fire  and  eat  it.  I  will  tell 
you  what  herbs  to  eat  and  what  ones  to  give  to  the  sick.  Eat  these 
things  and  the  flesh  of  animals." 

When  they  had  completed  the  lodge  the  woman  was  the  first  to  enter 
it.  She  had  with  her  some  corn  that  she  had  raised  from  the  seeds,  and 
this  she  offered  to  the  four  gods,  the  southeast,  southwest,  northeast,  and 
northwest.  As  she  put  the  corn  upon  each  post  she  pressed  it  upon  the 
posts  and  rubbed  upwards.  The  man  killed  an  animal  with  his  bow  and 
arrows,  from  which  he  took  the  fat,  and  he  greased  the  four  posts  and 
placed  the  skull  upon  the  altar.  After  a  time  Tirawa  spoke  to  them  again 
and  asked  the  man  if  he  knew  what  the  lodge  represented.  The  man 
did  not  know.  Tirawa  then  spoke  and  said:  "I  told  you  to  call  the 
earth  'mother.'  The  lodge  represents  the  mother's  breast.  The  smoke 
that  escapes  from  the  opening  is  like  the  milk  that  flows  from  the  mother's 


l6  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

breast.  You  also  have  a  fireplace  where  your  food  is  cooked.  When 
you  eat  the  things  that  are  cooked,  it  is  like  sucking  a  mother's  breast, 
because  you  eat  and  grow  strong.  I  make  you  to  live  in  the  lodge,  and 
you  shall  increase,  but  you  are  not  to  live  forever.  You  are  to  die,  and 
will  be  placed  under  the  ground  again.  You  and  your  children  must 
always  remember  that  I  gave  you  life,  but  you  are  to  return  to  the  earth 
again.  You,  woman,  take  this  speckled  corn  that  I  give  you  and  put 
it  in  a  clay  pot  with  water  and  place  it  upon  the  fire  to  boil.  After  the 
water  has  boiled  away  and  gone  up  into  the  air,  eat  of  the  dry  mush  that 
is  left  and  feed  it  to  your  husband  and  you  shall  have  increase."  They 
ate  of  the  mush  and  had  increase.  Then  Tirawa  spoke  to  them  again 
and  gave  them  many  wonderful  ceremonies.  Two  of  the  ceremonies  have 
been  handed  down  through  all  generations.  One  of  the  ceremonies  is 
known  as  the  Woman-dance,  and  it  is  to  remind  the  people  that  it  was 
Tirawa  who  gave  them  light.  This  was  the  first  dance  that  Tirawa  ever 
gave  to  the  people.  The  other  ceremony  that  has  been  handed  down 
is  known  as  the  Starisu,  Woman's  dance,  and  it  is  formed  as  follows: 

In  the  winter  time,  when  the  Pawnee  are  hunting  buffalo,  the  chiefs 
will  let  the  people  know  that  they  want  meat  for  this  particular  cere- 
mony. The  young  men  of  high  birth  will  try  to  kill  the  fattest  buffalo 
in  the  bunch,  so  that  they  can  take  this  meat  to  the  chief's  lodge.  Several 
buffalo  will  be  killed  for  this  purpose,  and  these  buffalo  will  be  taken  to 
the  chief's  lodge, where  the  meat  is  jerked  and  dried.  Early  in  the  spring 
the  people  have  planted  their  corn  and  it  is  now  time  for  them  to  go 
buffalo  hunting  again.  Then  the  four  priests  with  one  chief  enter  the 
lodge  of  a  chief  and  they  make  known  to  him  that  they  wish  now  to  have 
the  ceremony.  The  chief  gives  his  consent.  The  women  at  once  clear 
from  the  lodge  their  beds  and  other  things,  then  the  lodge  is  swept  out 
with  eagle-wing  fans.  The  four  priests  take  their  seats  at  the  west,  the 
chief  walks  up,  and  the  four  priests  make  an  opening  in  the  center  for 
him.  The  errand  man  is  sent  out  by  the  chief  to  invite  the  young  men 
and  girls  of  high  birth.  These  young  people  come  in ;  the  girls  take  their 
seats  on  the  north  side  of  the  lodge,  and  the  young  men  take  theirs  on 
the  south  side.  The  chief  speaks  and  says:  "My  friends,  this  is  a  day 
that  we  have  selected  to  have  a  dance,  that  Tirawa  gave  us.  We  were 
told  in  olden  times  that  Tirawa  promised  to  send  buffalo  to  us  if  we  should 
give  this  dance.  We  will  now  give  the  dance."  He  tells  them  to  paint, 
dress, and  prepare  forthe  dance.  The  chief  puts  on  his  leggings,  then  takes 
the  holy  ointment  from  the  bundle,  arises  and  stands  in  front  of  them, 
and  tells  them  that  they  must  put  upon  themselves  the  grease  of  the 
buffalo,  for  they  are  about  to  imitate  them.  He  tears  the  fat  in  two  pieces 


ORIGIN  OF  THE  CHAUI.  17 

and  gives  one  piece  to  the  first  young  man,  the  other  to  the  first  young 
woman.  The  boy  greases  his  body,  then  hands  the  piece  of  fat  to  the 
next  young  man.  After  all  of  the  young  men  have  greased  themselves, 
the  fat  is  given  to  the  two  priests  in  the  west,  who  also  grease  themselves. 
The  fat  that  is  given  to  the  girl  is  also  handed  down  to  all  the  girls,  who 
grease  their  faces,  bodies,  and  hair.  After  they  have  used  it  they  return 
it  to  the  two  priests  in  the  west  and  they  grease  themselves.  The  two 
pieces  of  fat  are  then  placed  in  front  of  the  chief.  The  chief  puts  them 
together,  then  tells  the  people  that  Tirawa  gave  them  this  dance  because 
the  people  were  hungry.  He  tells  them  the  following: 

"The  young  man  who  had  charge  of  the  dance  had  given  it  and  gone 
away,  and  left  the  people  starving.  He  was  guided  by  the  Moon  to  a 
hilly  country,  and  there  on  a  hillside  he  was  taken  into  a  cave,  and  in 
the  cave  was  a  tipi  and  outside  sat  an  old  woman,  who  said:  'I  am  the 
Moon.  I  brought  you  here.  I  know  the  people  are  in  need  of  food. 
Tirawa  promised  them  that  he  would  give  them  buffalo.  Buffalo  are 
scarce  upon  the  earth,  so  we  will  have  to  send  to  them  some  buffalo  that 
live  under  the  ground.  Take  these  pieces  of  fat  and  let  the  people  eat 
or  chew  on  it  and  get  the  grease  out  of  it,  and  then  they  will  feel  better.' 
The  young  man  returned  and  gave  the  people  the  fat,  and  everybody 
chewed  a  little  of  it.  The  young  man  went  back  into  the  cave  and  there 
found  a  young  girl  sitting  outside  of  an  earth-lodge.  In  front  of  her  sat 
a  basket  with  plum  seeds  in  it.  To  her  right  were  the  gambling  sticks. 
When  the  young  woman  saw  him  she  took  up  the  sticks  and  the  ring 
and  gave  them  to  him,  saying:  'Take  this.  Let  the  men  of  your 
people  play  with  these  sticks,  so  that  they  will  not  think  about  eating.' 
Then  she  picked  up  the  basket  with  the  plum  seeds  and  said:  'Take 
this  to  the  women.  Let  them  play  with  the  basket  and  seeds,  so 
they  will  not  think  about  eating.  Take  these  two  pieces  of  dried  meat 
and  gather  the  children  and  let  them  eat  of  it.  The  buffalo  are  far  away. 
It  will  be  some  time  before  they  can  go  out  of  the  earth.'  The  young  man 
returned  to  the  people  and  gave  the  men  the  gambling  sticks  and  the 
women  the  basket  and  seeds,  and  the  children  he  gathered  and  gave  them 
a  piece  of  meat,  so  that  they  were  filled.  Several  days  afterward  he  went 
down  to  the  pond  and  saw  the  same  woman  standing  in  the  pond.  She 
told  him  to  go  and  stand  outside  of  the  entrance  of  the  cave  while  she 
called  the  buffalo.  She  hallooed  as  follows: 

"  Lihoo-oo-oo-oo ! 
Lihoo-oo-oooo! 
Lihoo-oo-oo-oo ! 
Lihoo-oo-oo-oo! 


X8  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

"At  the  last  call  the  buffalo  rushed  out  from  the  cave.  The  young 
man  returned  to  the  people  and  told  them  there  were  buffalo  now  on  the 
prairie.  The  people  went  and  killed  many  buffalo." 

And  so, as  he  concludes  his  story, he  says:  "We  must  perform  the  cere- 
mony correctly;  so  that  when  we  go  out  upon  the  hunt  we  may  find  many 
buffalo." 

Then  he  is  seated.  He  takes  the  four  water  drums  and  gives  each  of 
the  priests  one.  He  selects  three  of  the  older  men  to  stay  with  the  priests, 
to  whom  he  gives  the  gourd  rattles,  keeping  the  largest  rattle  for  himself, 
to  show  that  he  is  the  leader  of  the  ceremony.  He  tells  the  two  soldiers 
to  prepare  their  costume.  Each  puts  on  a  bustle  made  of  crow  feathers 
and  a  coyote  tail,  and  each  wears  a  red  headdress.  Then  they  take  up 
their  long  sticks.  When  the  chief  sees  that  the  soldiers  are  ready  he 
puts  his  mysterious  headdress  upon  his  head,  then  covers  it  with  black. 
He  then  leads  and  the  priests  follow,  carrying  their  drums  and  rattles 
with  them.  A  mat  has  been  spread  outside  the  lodge.  There  they  seat 
themselves,  the  chief  sitting  at  the  west,  facing  the  east,  with  the  men  on 
either  side  of  him.  They  are  now  ready  to  sing.  The  chief  then  orders 
one  of  the  chiefs  to  call  the  people  out,  as  the  young  man  called  the  buffalo, 
making  the  peculiar  noise  four  times.  When  the  chief  has  finished  call- 
ing, the  two  men  with  the  pipes,  who  are  standing  at  the  entrance,  lead 
the  procession  out.  First  after  the  priests  come  four  young  men,  then 
four  young  women,  four  young  men,  and  so  on,  and  finally  the  soldiers, 
who  dance  with  the  sticks  as  they  come  out.  The  song  that  is  sung  at 
this  time  is  about  a  child  growing  from  childhood  to  manhood.  The  pro- 
cession comes  out  and  goes  around  outside  the  singers  four  times,  then 
stops  dancing  and  sings  another  song.  This  song  is  about  young  men 
who  can  hunt  buffalo  and  the  enemy.  When  the  song  is  completed  they 
sing  the  song  about  calling  the  buffalo.  Then  they  go  around  the  sing- 
ers four  times,  then  stop  and  sing  the  last  song,  which  is  about  the  bulls 
and  old  cows  dropping  out  from  the  main  herd  on  account  of  old  age. 
Then  they  enter  the  lodge.  The  chief,  still  wearing  his  mysterious  head- 
dress, takes  one  of  the  pipes,  already  filled  with  native  tobacco,  and 
smokes  toward  the  east,  then  toward  the  south,  then  toward  the  west, 
then  from  the  west  to  the  fireplace,  then  from  the  fireplace  to  the  west, 
then  to  the  northeast.  He  then  goes  around  by  way  of  the  north  and 
lets  one  of  the  drummers  smoke.  He  goes  around  the  fireplace  to  the 
drummers  by  way  of  the  south  again  and  lets  one  of  the  drummers  smoke. 
Then  he  goes  to  the  singers  and  they  all  smoke.  He  takes  the  pipe, 
stands  by  the  fireplace,  facing  the  east,  and  empties  the  ashes  from  the 
pipe,  then  passes  his  hands  over  the  pipe  four  times,  above  four  times, 


ORIGIN  OF  THE  CHAUI.  19 

upon  the  ground  four  times,  then  he  gives  the  pipe  to  one  of  the  priests, 
who  says,  "Nawa."  Then  all  say,  "Nawa."  Two  men  are  selected  and 
they  cut  up  the  meat  and  boil  it.  The  chief  tells  a  certain  young  man 
to  take  some  grease  from  the  soup,  to  rub  it  upon  the  posts  on  the  south- 
east, the  southwest,  the  northwest,  and  the  fireplace;  then  to  the  .north- 
east. Then  he  is  told  to  pour  the  grease  into  the  center  of  the  fireplace. 
He  then  gives  the  buffalo-horn  spoon  to  the  chief,  who  says,  "Nawa,"  and 
sits  down.  The  meat  is  divided  among  the  people  and  the  chief  speaks 
and  says:  "I  am  satisfied.  We  are  about  to  go  hunting.  We  have  gone 
through  this  ceremony  given  to  us  by  our  forefathers.  I  have  tried  to 
go  through  it  as  nearly  as  I  could  the  way  they  were  told  to  do  by  Tirawa. 
We  have  given  the  call  of  the  buffalo.  The  buffalo  under  the  earth  have 
heard.  They  will  help  to  send  the  buffalo  to  us  on  the  buffalo  hunt. 
Arise,  and  go  out  of  the  entrance  that  is  known  as  the  'wonderful  buffalo's 
entrance.'  ' 

2.  THE  FOUR  GODS  IN  THE  WEST.1 

A  long  time  ago,  when  the  people  were  first  put  upon  the  earth,  they 
were  placed  near  what  is  now  Nemaha,  Nebraska.  There  the  people  who 
were  first  created,  two  in  number,  made  their  earth-lodge.  This  earth- 
lodge  faced  west.  As  these  two  people  increased  they  had  many  children 
and  they  married.  The  old  people  gave  the  children  who  were  married 
separate  lodges.  Now,  these  three  lodges  of  the  people  were  living  upon 
artichokes,  ground  beans  ,  and  other  things  which  they  could  dig  up.  The 
two  people  in  the  first  lodge  had  a  sacred  bundle,  and  they  had  many 
children,  as  well  as  the  children  who  had  married.  These  other  two 
people  who  had  married  now  also  had  many  children.  These  people  all 
moved  west.  One  village  was  always  made  behind,  while  the  two  other 
villages  were  made  in  front  of  the  other  one.  On  their  journey  they 
stopped  at  one  place.  They  began  to  play  with  the  gambling  sticks2  on 
the  south  side  of  the  village.  Among  the  people  was  one  who  did  not 
seem  to  care  for  anything.  One  day,  as  they  were  playing  with  the  sticks, 
this  man  came  and  sat  down  close  by  where  the  people  were  playing. 
When  it  became  too  dark  to  play  with  the  sticks  the  people  took  the 


by  Thief,  or  Jackson-Crusoe,  now  one  of  the  oldest  members  of  the 
Kitkehahki  tribe,  and  formerly  of  the  recognized  rank  of  warrior.  This  story 
is  of  special  interest  on  account  of  its  reference  to  Nemaha,  Nebraska,  as  the 
original  home  of  the  ancestors  of  the  Kitkehahki.  The  story  of  the  four  gods  of 
the  west  is  said  to  be  the  especial  property  of  the  altar  originally  in  possession  of 
the  Kawarahkis,  from  which  band,  as  noted  in  the  introduction,  the  Kitkehahki, 
Pitahauirat,  and  Chaui  are  supposed  to  be  descended. 

2  This  refers  to  the  ring  and  javelin  game  of  the  Pawnee,  in  which  the  ring  is  of 
small  size  and  the  javelin  bears  two  cross  bars  and  symbolizes  the  buffalo. 


20  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

sticks  home,  but  the  man  remained  at  the  playground.  Just  as  he  was 
about  to  get  up,  he  heard  a  grunting  sound  like  that  of  a  woman.  He 
looked  and  he  saw  in  the  dusk  a  woman  coming  to  the  gambling  grounds. 
She  passed  through  the  grounds  and  went  around  and  back  over  the  hill 
again.  The  man  went  home  and  told  the  people  that  he  had  seen  a 
strange  woman;  that  the  woman  had  a  covering  over  her  which  was  all 
over  her  hair.  Early  the  next  morning  this  man  went  to  the  ground  and 
he  looked  for  the  footprints  of  the  woman.  Instead  of  footprints  of 
the  woman  he  found  tracks  of  an  animal  whose  hoofs  were  split.  He 
then  cried  toward  the  village  for  the  people  to  come  and  see  the  tracks. 
The  people  came  and  saw  them.  The  people  did  not  like  to  play  again 
upon  the  ground,  but  some  said,  "Play  on,  for  we  have  seen  the  tracks." 
So  the  people  began  to  play  with  the  sticks  again. 

Late  in  the  afternoon  they  saw  a  woman  coming  from  a  hill.  When 
she  reached  the  bottom  of  the  hill  she  ran  across  the  playground  and  passed 
the  man  who  was  seated  nearby.  She  passed  in  front  of  him,  and  circling 
around,  went  over  the  hills  and  turned  into  a  buffalo.  The  man  who  was 
seated  jumped  up  and  ran  after  the  Buffalo.  The  man  ran  after  the  Buf- 
falo for  many,  many  days.  After  a  while  they  came  to  a  place  where  there 
was  nothing  but  water.  The  man  knew  no  more.  Some  time  afterwards 
the  Buffalo  touched  him  and  said,  "Come  with  me."  The  man  followed  the 
Buffalo,  and  it  led  him  into  a  lodge.  In  the  lodge  sat  four  men  in  the  west. 
When  the  man  entered  the  lodge  these  four  old  men  greeted  him  with, 
"Nawa."  Then  the  four  men  said:  "We  are  the  four  gods  in  the  west. 
The  gods  gave  us  power  to  create  everything.  We  sent  for  you,  for  here 
in  our  lodge  we  have  a  buffalo.  We  want  the  people  to  live  on  buffalo,  and 
before  we  turn  these  buffalo  loose  we  wish  to  show  you  how  to  prepare 
your  meat.  You  see  this  lodge  is  half  filled  with  parfleches,  and  inside 
of  the  parfleches  is  dried  meat.  Each  parfleche  has  a  whole  buffalo  in  it. 
We  shall  show  you  how  your  people  must  do."  Then  they  opened  a  par- 
fleche. They  took  therefrom  the  heart  and  tongue  of  a  buffalo.  They 
made  a  fire.  They  put  the  heart  and  tongue  upon  the  fire.  They  said: 
"This  you  shall  do  for  us  when  you  have  killed  the  buffalo.  Take  these 
seeds  and  give  them  to  your  people."  The  seeds  were  tied  up  in  a  little 
piece  of  buffalo  skin.  The  seeds  were  corn,  beans,  squash,  and  native 
tobacco.  They  said:  "We  will  now  turn  the  buffalo  loose.  You  must  not 
go  far  from  them,  for  we  wish  them  to  follow  you  to  your  village."  A 
robe  was  placed  upon  the  man  and  he  was  told  to  go.  When  he  went 
out  of  the  lodge  he  knew  no  more  until  a  little  blue  bird  touched  him  upon 
the  back  of  his  neck  and  he  seemed  to  wake  up.  He  had  the  robe  on  and 
so  he  knew  that  it  was  all  true.  He  went  to  the  people  and  told  them 


THE    FOUR    GODS    IN    THE    WEST.  21 

of  his  journey,  and  that  the  gods  in  the  west  had  sent  him  back  with  the 
buffalo.  The  people  took  their  bows  and  arrows  and  in  a  day  or  so  they 
saw  the  buffalo.  The  people  were  afraid  of  them,  for  this  was  the  first 
time  they  had  seen  any  buffalo.  When  they  had  killed  some  of  them 
and  tasted  of  the  meat  they  thought  it  was  very  good.  They  offered  the 
heart  and  tongue  to  the  four  gods  in  the  west,  as  they  had  been  told  to  do. 
This  is  why  the  three  bands,  Pitahauirat,  Chaui,  and  Kitkehahki, 
instead  of  making  any  offering  to  Tirawa,  make  their  first  offering  to  the 
four  deities  who  stand  in  the  west. 

3.  THE  SMALL-ANTS  BUNDLE  AND  THE  BUFFALO.1 

My  grandfather  told  me  that  our  people  were  put  upon  the  earth  a 
long  time  ago,  when  there  were  no  seeds  to  plant  or  buffalo  to  hunt. 
They  wandered  from  place  to  place  and  fed  upon  roots,  berries,  and  pond 
lilies.  After  they  had  wandered  for  many  years  they  reached  the  north 
country  and  there  they  found  small  game,  which  they  killed  and  ate. 
While  they  were  living  in  that  distant  and  strange  country,  a  young  man 
told  his  father  to  speak  to  the  chief  of  the  people  and  tell  them  that  they 
must  go  even  farther  north.  The  father  listened  to  the  words  of  the 
young  man,  for  he  knew  that  he  was  wise,  and  he  knew  that  he  spent  many 
nights  upon  the  top  of  a  hill  near  the  village  in  prayer.  The  father 
said,  "My  son,  who  told  you  that  we  must  go  farther  north?"  The  boy 
answered  his  father  and  said:  "Mother-Moon  has  told  me  to  tell  the 
people  to  continue  their  journey  toward  the  north.  She  also  told  me 
that  there  were  certain  things  that  we  must  receive  from  Mother- Corn." 
The  father  then  went  and  told  the  chief  what  the  boy  said.  The  chief 
was  glad,  and  he  told  the  people  to  continue  their  journey;  that  some 
young  man  had  received  word  from  above  that  the  people  should  keep 
on  their  journey  toward  the  north.  The  people  were  glad  to  hear  this; 
but  as  they  traveled  on,  roots  and  the  things  that  they  lived  on  became 
very  scarce.  The  people  began  to  complain.  They  called  the  chief 
names,  and  they  wanted  to  know  who  the  young  man  was  who  had  told 
them  to  continue  their  journey. 

One  time  the  young  man  went  ahead  and  there  waited  for  the  people. 
As  they  passed  by  him  he  said  that  he  was  the  one  who  had  told  the  chief 

lTold  by  Red-Sun,  a  Chaui  medicine-man  who  died  in  1903  while  on  a  visit  to 
the  Cheyenne.  He  was  one  of  Captain  Pratt's  scouts.  The  tale  has  its  origin  from 
the  altar  known  as  the  Small-Ant  Altar,  and  was  related  during  the  intermission 
in  the  ceremony,  if  its  telling  was  requested.  The  story  teaches  many  things,  and 
especially  the  origin  of  seeds  and  buffalo,  which  were  obtained  from  Moon-Woman, 
who  lived  in  a  cave  in  the  side  of  a  hill,  and  it  especially  points  out  the  folly  of 
being  careless  in  regard  to  food. 


aa  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

to  continue  the  journey;  that  there  was  a  certain  place  where  they  were 
to  go,  and  there  they  must  make  their  village  and  stay.  This  place  was 
somewhere  near  what  is  now  called  Nemaha,  Nebraska.  They  came  to 
a  place  where  there  were  many  ponds  and  the  entire  country  was  swampy, 
so  that  the  people  did  not  have  to  go  very  far  to  find  lilies,  stems  of  reeds, 
and  other  things  to  eat.  Here  they  stopped  and  began  to  make  grass- 
lodges.  Near  these  grass-lodges  was  a  high  hill.  At  the  foot  of  the  high 
hill  a  spring  gushed  forth,  and  the  water  from  the  spring  made  the  lands 
swampy.  The  children  played  and  swam  in  the  ponds. 

The  people  noticed  that  every  night  the  young  man  went  up  on  the 
high  hill  that  was  near  the  village,  and  there  he  stood  crying,  sometimes 
for  several  days  and  nights  at  a  time.  After  a  while  he  stopped  going 
out  in  the  night,  but  every  day  he  went  up  on  the  high  hill  and  in  the 
evening  he  came  down  to  the  village.  After  a  time  the  young  man  heard 
the  people  complaining  for  want  of  food,  for  they  had  dug  up  nearly  all 
the  roots  and  lilies  there  were  in  the  ponds.  The  children  cried  for  some- 
thing to  eat,  and  the  young  man  felt  sad.  One  day  while  he  was  upon 
the  hill  crying  another  man  came  to  him  and  asked  him  what  he  was  cry- 
ing about.  The  young  man  said  that  he  was  crying  because  the  people 
were  poor  and  were  hungry.  The  man  said:  "I  have  many  children 
and  they  cry  for  something  to  eat.  We  have  eaten  nearly  all  our  pack 
dogs."  The  two  cried  together  and  in  the  evening  they  went  to  the 
village,  and  as  the  young  man  went  into  the  pond  to  swim  he  heard  some 
one  call  him  by  name.  He  looked  and  he  saw  in  the  pond  the  Moon. 
He  swam  to  the  place  where  he  saw  the  Moon  in  the  water,  and  when  he 
came  close  to  the  place  he  saw  an  old  woman  who  looked  at  him.  She 
said:  "I  heard  you  crying.  You  are  sorry  for  your  people.  It  was  I 
who  told  you  to  command  the  people  to  come  to  this  place.  I  promised 
to  give  them  certain  things.  Go  to  the  high  hill  again  to-night  and  cry. 
Leave  the  other  man  alone."  The  old  woman  disappeared;  then  the 
young  man,  instead  of  going  to  the  village,  went  upon  the  high  hill. 
There  he  stood  crying  all  night. 

In  the  morning  he  came  down,  went  to  the  spring  to  drink,  and  as  he 
knelt  down  to  drink  he  looked  up  into  the  cave  from  which  came  the 
stream  of  water,  and  he  saw  the  old  woman  sitting  there.  She  spoke 
to  the  young  man  and  said,  "Go  upon  the  hill  again,  and  before  sunset 
come  down  and  drink  again  of  this  spring."  The  young  man  went  upon 
the  high  hill  and  stood  crying,  and  while  he  was  there  the  other  man  came 
and  stood  by  him  and  cried.  The  young  man  stopped  crying  and  went 
to  the  man  and  said:  "My  brother,  go  down  to  the  village  to  your  people 
and  stay  with  them.  Leave  me  alone  upon  this  high  hill.  Encourage 


THE  SMALL-ANTS  BUNDLE  AND  THE  BUFFALO.  23 

the  children  and  tell  them  that  before  very  long  they  shall  have  some- 
thing to  eat."  The  man  went  down  into  the  village  and  the  young  boy 
was  left  upon  the  hill. 

Before  sunset  he  went  down  the  hill,  and  as  he  knelt  down  to  drink 
from  the  spring  he  looked  into  the  cave,  and  there  sat  a  young  girl.  He 
bowed  his  head  to  the  water  and  drank.  When  he  looked  up  there  sat 
an  older  woman.  He  drank  again  and  when  he  looked  up  there  sat  a 
middle-aged  woman.  He  drank  again  and  when  he  looked  up  there  sat 
the  old  woman.  He  drank  again  and  when  he  looked  up  the  old  woman 
had  disappeared.  Then  he  sat  down  at  the  mouth  of  the  cave  and  waited. 
After  a  while  he  heard  a  voice  from  the  cave  calling  him.  The  young 
man  crawled  up  into  the  cave,  and  after  he  had  crawled  for  some  distance, 
some  one  called  to  him  and  said,  "Stand  up  and  look."  The  young  man 
stood  up  and  looked  and  he  saw  another  country.  The  old  woman  took 
him  to  her  earth-lodge  and  said,  "My  son,  stand  at  the  entrance  and  look 
west."  The  boy  looked  to  the  west  and  there  he  saw  a  young  girl.  She 
told  the  young  man  to  go  farther  into  the  lodge  and  look  to  the  south- 
west. He  did  so,  and  there  stood  an  older  woman.  She  told  him  to  go 
farther  into  the  lodge  and  look  in  the  southwest.  There  in  the  south- 
west stood  a  middle-aged  woman.  She  then  told  him  to  go  farther  into 
the  lodge  and  look  toward  the  east.  The  boy  looked  and  he  saw  the 
old  woman  again.  She  disappeared.  After  a  while  some  one  spoke  to 
him  where  he  stood  at  the  west  of  the  lodge.  He  looked  around  and  there 
the  young  girl  stood  and  said,  "Now  do  you  know  me?"  The  young 
man  said,  "No."  The  young  girl  said,  "I  am  the  new  Moon.  The  old 
woman  that  you  saw  is  a  few  days  older  than  I  am.  The  other  woman 
you  saw  is  older  by  many  days.  Then  you  saw  the  old  woman  in  the 
east.  She  is  the  Moon  become  old.  She  disappears  and  I  come  again 
as  a  girl.  Let  us  now  go  out  and  I  will  speak  to  you  outside."  When 
they  were  outside  they  sat  down,  and  when  the  young  man  saw  the  girl 
it  was  not  the  girl  but  the  old  woman  who  said:  "The  gods  in  the  heav- 
ens are  not  yet  ready  to  send  the  buffalo  to  your  people,  but  the  buffalo 
are  ready  for  the  people,  and  the  buffalo  have  given  me  these  sticks 
(buffalo  game)  with  the  ring.  These  you  shall  take  into  the  village  for 
the  young  men  to  play  with.  This  basket  of  plum  seeds  you  shall  also 
take  and  give  to  the  women  to  play  with.  I  know  that  the  people  are 
very  hungry.  Every  morning  the  men  must  take  these  sticks  and  this 
ring  and  play  with  them  outside  of  the  village.  The  men  will  play  with 
the  sticks  so  that  they  will  not  think  about  being  hungry.  The  women 
will  play  the  basket  and  seeds  game  so  that  they  will  not  think  about 
eating.  Now  go  back  to  your  village,  but  return  to  us  again."  The 


24  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

young  man  went  into  the  village  in  the  night  and  took  with  him  the 
sticks  and  the  ring,  the  basket  and  the  seeds.  In  the  morning  the  young 
man  told  his  father  to  invite  the  chief  and  the  leading  men.  The  chief 
and  the  leading  men  came  into  their  lodge.  The  boy  said:  "Chiefs  and 
head  men,  take  these  sticks  outside  the  village  and  call  all  the  men  and 
let  them  play  with  these  sticks.  Take  also  this  basket  and  these  plum 
seeds  and  give  them  to  the  women,  so  that  they  can  play  with  them  and 
not  think  about  eating."  The  chief  selected  several  men  to  take  the 
sticks  out  and  show  the  men  how  to  play  with  them.  The  chief  also 
selected  two  men  to  take  the  basket  and  plum  seeds  and  to  teach  the 
women  how  to  play  with  them.  The  men  liked  this  game.  There  were 
so  many  men  playing  that  other  sticks  were  made  for  boys  to  play  with. 
There  were  also  so  many  women  playing  the  basket  game  that  some  of 
the  women  made  other  baskets  and  seeds  for  their  daughters,  so  that  the 
girls  could  play  the  game.  The  young  man  was  satisfied  with  the  way 
the  games  were  accepted. 

He  returned  to  the  cave  and  the  old  woman  was  there  to  meet  him. 
She  said:  "I  want  you  to  look  through  this  land.  There  are  many  earth- 
lodges  in  this  country."  The  young  man  looked,  and  he  saw  what 
appeared  to  him  to  be  many  ant-hills.  He  saw  people  coming  out  and 
going  in  again.  The  old  woman  said,  "My  son,  you  will  have  villages 
like  these  that  you  have  seen;  there  will  be  many  people."  The  old 
woman  then  took  the  boy  into  her  own  lodge  and  they  stood  on  the  west 
side,  and  the  old  woman  said:  "Now  look.  I  want  you  to  examine 
closely  the  way  this  lodge  is  built,  for  your  people  must  build  lodges  like 
this.  Where  we  stand  the  altar  shall  be.  When  you  have  killed  the 
buffalo  that  I  have  promised  you,  you  must  place  the  skull  at  the  altar." 
Then  they  went  to  the  entrance  on  the  north  side,  and  she  told  the  young 
man  to  sit  down.  She  then  went  to  the  north  of  the  lodge  and  picked 
up  a  wooden  bowl  filled  with  grains  of  corn.  She  told  the  young  man 
to  take  the  bowl  full  of  corn  with  him  and  some  night  to  give  a  few  kernels 
to  each  individual  in  the  village,  so  that  all  might  eat  of  it.  She  went  to 
the  north  side  of  the  lodge  and  brought  a  small  bowl  of  dried  meat  cut 
up.  "This  bowl  of  meat,"  she  said,  "you  must  put  under  your  robe,  and 
when  the  people  come  to  get  the  corn  you  must  give  each  a  piece  of  this 
meat.  Tell  them  to  chew  it,  and  not  to  swallow  it  for  some  time."  The 
old  woman  then  told  the  young  man  to  go  to  the  village  and  to  feed  the 
people.  The  young  man  went  down,  and  went  into  his  lodge.  He  set 
down  the  bowls  of  corn  and  meat  and  awoke  his  mother  and  told  her  to 
make  a  fire.  When  the  fire  was  made  the  young  man  told  his  mother 
to  tell  all  the  people  in  the  lodge  to  stay  around  by  the  fire.  Then  the 


THE  SMALL-ANTS  BUNDLE  AND  THE  BUFFALO.  25 

young  man  took  the  bowls  and  went  around,  giving  each  a  few  grains 
of  corn  and  a  piece  of  meat.  When  the  people  in  the  lodge  were  satisfied 
the  young  man  told  his  father  to  send  for  the  chief.  The  chief  came  into 
the  lodge  and  sat  down  by  the  young  man.  The  young  man  reached 
and  said,  "I  have  brought  this  for  you  to  eat."  He  gave  him  some  corn. 
He  then  reached  under  his  robe,  took  out  a  piece  of  meat  and  gave  it  to 
the  chief,  and  told  him  to  chew  it  for  some  time  before  swallowing  it. 
The  young  man  then  told  the  chief  to  have  the  crier  go  through  the  vil- 
lage and  tell  the  people  to  come  to  the  young  man's  lodge.  The  people 
began  to  come  in,  and  the  boy  gave  them  corn  and  meat.  The  men, 
women,  and  children  all  came  and  ate.  There  was  still  some  corn  and 
meat  left.  The  young  man  sent  for  the  man  who  had  cried  with  him  and 
told  him  to  stay  in  his  lodge,  and  for  four  nights  to  give  corn  and  meat 
out  to  the  people.  Then  he  went  back  to  the  cave. 

When  he  went  into  the  cave  the  old  woman  was  there  and  she  said: 
"My  son,  the  gods  have  given  you  the  buffalo.  The  buffalo  are  to  run 
out  of  this  cave,  and  the  first  buffalo  that  shall  go  out  shall  be  killed  by 
your  people.  Its  hide  must  be  tanned,  the  head  must  be  cut  off,  and  the 
skull  set  up  on  this  high  hill.  When  the  meat  and  everything  has  been 
cut  off  from  the  skull,  it  must  be  taken  into  the  village  and  put  in  the 
lodge."  The  old  woman  gave  the  young  man  four  bundles  of  corn  of 
different  colors,  braided  together.  The  old  woman  said,  "These  are  the 
seeds  for  the  people."  She  gave  him  a  bunch  of  buffalo  hair,  and  said, 
"This  is  the  part  of  the  buffalo  that  the  gods  have  given  your  people." 
Among  the  buffalo  hair  was  a  downy  feather  with  dark  blue  marks  down 
the  center.  The  old  woman  said:  "When  you  want  the  buffalo  to  come 
out  of  the  cave  get  out  the  feather  and  place  it  upon  a  pole,  set  it  on  the 
north  side  of  the  village.  The  first  buffalo  that  shall  go  out  shall  be  a 
wonderful  buffalo  and  the  people  must  kill  it  and  place  the  skull  upon 
the  hill  and  take  the  hide  and  tan  it.  It  shall  be  known  as  the  holy 
buffalo."  The  old  woman  went  into  the  lodge  and  when  she  came  out 
she  had  a  sacred  bundle  upon  her  back  which  she  took  off  and  placed 
upon  the  young  man's  back,  and  said:  "This  is  your  sacred  bundle. 
You  shall  call  it  the  Small- Ants  bundle." 

The  young  man  took  the  things  and  went  down  to  the  village.  He 
hung  the  sacred  bundle  inside  of  the  lodge  at  the  west  side,  while  the  corn 
he  hung  at  the  north  side  of  the  entrance.  The  buffalo  hair  he  hung  on 
top  of  the  sacred  bundle.  In  the  meantime  the  people  began  to  grumble 
and  wanted  the  chief  to  tell  the  crier  to  move  away  from  this  place.  The 
young  man  walked  out  through  the  village  and  saw  that  the  women  and 
girls  were  enjoying  the  game  of  basket  and  seeds  (the  dice  game),  and 


26  TRUE  STORIES   OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

that  the  men  and  boys  were  enjoying  the  game  of  ring  and  sticks.  The 
young  man  went  back  to  his  lodge,  sat  down  west  of  the  fireplace,  and  told 
his  mother  to  get  the  bundle  that  was  on  top  of  the  sacred  bundle  and 
place  it  in  front  of  him.  The  young  man  then  told  his  father  in  a  whisper 
to  tell  the  people  in  this  lodge  to  leave  it.  The  people  all  left  the  lodge. 
Then  the  young  man  told  his  father  to  go  and  invite  the  chief.  The  chief 
came  in  to  the  lodge  and  sat  by  the  boy.  The  boy  said:  "  Chief ,  through 
my  advice  our  people  came  to  this  place.  Mother-Moon  spoke  to  me  in 
my  dreams,  telling  me  that  our  people  should  come  to  this  place.  She 
promised  me  in  my  dreams  that  she  would  give  certain  things  to  the  peo- 
ple. Some  of  the  things  our  people  are  enjoying,  and  yet  some  of  them 
are  complaining.  Now  it  is  time  that  we  kill  buffalo.  This  is  what  Mother- 
Moon  has  given  us. "  He  opened  the  bunch  of  hair  and  said :  "  The  gods 
have  given  us  many  buffalo.  This  day  our  people  shall  kill  them.  The 
skin  of  the  first  buffalo  that  they  kill  must  be  taken  off.  The  head  must 
be  placed  upon  a  high  hill,  and  the  meat  brought  to  this  lodge."  The 
chief  then  stood  up,  passed  his  hands  over  the  boy,  and  said:  "My  son, 
you  cried  upon  these  hills  for  many  days  and  nights.  The  people  and 
myself  made  fun  of  you,  but  now  I  understand  why  you  did  this.  Let 
the  first  buffalo  come  and  I  will  select  men  to  kill  them.  All  that  you 
have  said  shall  be  done."  The  chief  sat  down,  then  sent  for  his  crier. 

The  crier  came  and  the  chief  told  him  to  tell  the  people  in  the  village 
to  put  away  their  sticks  and  the  basket  game  and  to  keep  still.  When  the 
crier  came,  he  said,  "Chief,  I  have  told  the  people  what  you  told  me  to  tell 
them."  The  chief  then  told  the  crier  to  go  and  tell  four  men  to  come  to 
the  lodge  where  he  was.  The  young  man  then  came  into  the  lodge.  The 
chief  told  the  young  man  to  instruct  the  men  as  to  what  they  should  do, 
for  they  were  ready  to  go  with  him  to  kill  the  buffalo.  The  young  man 
sent  one  of  the  four  men  into  the  timber  for  a  long  willow.  The  willow 
was  brought  and  peeled  and  at  one  end  the  young  man  tied  the  feather. 
The  bunch  of  buffalo  hair  was  placed  upon  the  bundle  again,  and  the 
young  man  led  the  four  men  out  of  the  lodge  and  they  went  to  their  lodges 
to  get  their  bows  and  arrows.  The  whole  village  was  quiet,  for  every- 
body was  now  watching  the  young  man.  The  four  men  came  with  their 
bows  and  arrows  and  the  young  man  started  toward  the  cave.  Half-way 
between  the  cave  and  the  village  he  stopped  and  stuck  the  stick,  that  had 
the  feather  on,  into  the  ground.  He  told  the  men  to  look  toward  the  hill. 

After  a  while  they  saw  a  buffalo  coming.  He  told  them  to  circle  round 
the  buffalo  and  kill  it.  The  men  circled  around  and  crawled  up  to  the 
buffalo  and  shot  it  with  their  bows  and  arrows.  After  a  while  the  buffalo 
fell  and  died.  Then  the  men  skinned  it  and  took  the  head  off  and  placed 


THE  SMALL-ANTS  BUNDLE  AND  THE  BUFFALO.  27 

it  on  a  high  hill.  The  young  man  told  the  four  men  to  put  the  meat  upon 
their  backs  and  follow  him,  one  of  them  carrying  the  hide.  They  went 
into  the  boy's  lodge  and  the  meat  was  placed  southeast  of  the  entrance. 
The  young  man  told  his  father  to  invite  some  of  the  older  men.  The 
father  went  and  brought  in  some  old  men  and  when  they  came  the  young 
man  said,  "People,  we  must  first  make  an  offering  to  Mother-Corn,  for  she 
gave  us  the  buffalo."  Then  the  young  man  took  the  heart  and  tongue 
and  said, "Boil  these  things."  The  men  put  the  tongue  and  heart  in  a 
vessel  and  after  it  had  boiled  for  some  time  he  took  it  out.  The  young 
man  then  sent  the  crier  through  the  village  to  tell  all  the  men  to  be  ready  to 
try  to  get  a  piece  of  this  heart  and  tongue  and  a  little  piece  of  fat  to  grease 
their  families  with.  The  young  man  went  out  of  the  lodge  with  the  heart 
and  tongue,  the  errand  man  following  him  with  native  tobacco  in  his  hand. 
The  young  man  went  to  the  west  of  the  village,  and  standing  there  he 
lifted  the  heart  and  tongue  up  toward  the  sky  and  gradually  lowered  them 
to  the  ground.  He  placed  the  heart  and  tongue  on  the  ground,  then  the 
errand  man  handed  him  the  tobacco.  He  lifted  the  tobacco  toward 
the  sky,  lowered  it  and  placed  it  upon  the  heart  and  tongue.  Then  as 
he  turned  to  go  back  to  the  lodge  he  and  the  men  ran  to  the  place,  and 
they  piled  one  on  top  of  another  in  their  efforts  to  get  a  piece  of  the  heart 
and  tongue.  Whenever  a  man  got  a  piece  of  fat  or  heart  or  tongue  he 
ran  to  his  lodge,  and  after  rubbing  some  of  the  grease  upon  himself  he  gave 
it  to  his  people  and  told  them  to  put  the  grease  upon  themselves,  and 
when  through  with  it  to  put  it  in  the  fire. 

When  the  young  man  entered  his  lodge  he  sat  down  and  spoke:  "Chief, 
men,  and  old  men,  what  I  have  done  is  not  complete.  Mother-Moon  will 
tell  us  more  of  what  to  do.  We  must  do  as  she  says  every  time  we  kill  the 
buffalo. ' '  Then  the  young  man  selected  several  men  to  take  the  meat  and 
boil  it.  After  they  had  taken  the  meat,  the  young  man  told  the  chief  to 
tell  the  crier  to  go  through  the  village  and  tell  all  the  men  to  get  their 
bows  and  arrows  and  follow  the  young  man  with  the  feather-stick.  When 
the  young  man  stuck  the  stick  into  the  ground  at  the  same  place  where 
he  had  it  before,  the  buffalo  rushed  out  of  the  cave  and  went  toward  the 
people.  The  men  began  to  kill  the  buffalo.  Some  of  the  buffalo  ran 
south,  some  west,  some  east,  and  some  north.  The  men  killed  many 
buffalo  and  brought  the  meat  to  the  village. 

The  people  were  satisfied.  They  began  to  cut  timber  to  make  their 
lodges,  for  the  young  man  had  instructed  them  to  build  earth-lodges. 
Every  four  days  the  young  man  went  out,  stuck  his  feathered  stick  into 
the  ground,  and  again  the  buffalo  rushed  out  of  the  cave.  The  fourth 
time  the  young  man  said:  "This  is  all.  The  buffalo  are  out  of  the  cave 


28  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

and  there  will  be  many  upon  the  ground."  The  young  man  went  back 
into  the  cave  and  the  woman  said:  "I  have  given  you  all  the  things  that  I 
promised  you.  Now  you  must  go  and  give  the  seeds  to  the  people,  and 
let  them  put  them  in  the  ground.  I  shall  return  to  the  place  where  I 
came  from  and  shall  stay  there  forever.  When  I  want  to  speak  to  you  I 
will  come  to  your  bedside,  and  talk  to  you  in  your  dreams.  Then  you 
must  tell  the  people  what  I  tell  you." 

The  young  man  returned  to  the  village  and  told  the  people  that  it  was 
now  time  that  they  should  have  seeds ;  that  they  must  put  them  into  the 
ground  and  take  care  of  them  until  the  corn-stalks  were  dry  and  the  corn 
ready  to  be  gathered.  The  people  did  as  the  boy  told  them  and  they 
had  plenty  of  corn  and  plenty  of  meat.  The  young  man  went  to  the  cave 
once  more,  and  he  found  that  the  spring  was  dry  and  that  the  cave  had 
closed  in  and  there  was  no  opening.  When  the  people  found  this  out 
they  became  dissatisfied  and  divided  into  bands,  and  they  went  in  dif- 
ferent directions. 

4.  THE  FOUR  GODS  OF  THE  NORTH.1 

After  Tirawa  created  the  world  he  created  a  man  and  put  him  upon 
the  earth  facing  the  north.  Tirawa  told  this  man  to  put  his  thumbs  to- 
gether and  point  towards  the  north.  The  man  obeyed  and  his  thumb- 
nails received  the  imprint  of  the  faces  of  the  two  gods  in  the  north.  After 
the  man's  thumb-nails  had  grown  out  and  the  faces  had  disappeared,  he 
was  told  by  Tirawa  again  to  point  his  two  thumbs  toward  the  north,  and 
the  imprint  of  the  faces  of  the  other  two  gods  were  placed  upon  them.2 
These  four  gods  gave  the  man  power  to  create  a  mate  for  himself.  The 
gods  in  the  north  sent  Kingfisher  to  the  earth,  who  divided  the  earth  so 

JTold  by  High-Eagle,  a  Kitkehahki  medicine-man,  about  sixty  years  old.  This 
tale  explains  the  origin  of  the  ceremony  of  the  four  gods  of  the  north.  These  are 
the  gods  who  send  buffalo  to  the  people,  and  who  send  rain  that  the  crops  may 
grow.  The  chief  object  in  relating  the  story  is  that  the  children  who  may  be  pres- 
ent, sitting  about  the  entrance  to  the  lodge,  may  always  bear  in  mind  that  these 
four  gods  exist  in  the  north  and  that  there  is  especially  one  of  them,  known  as 
Ready- to-Give,  who  is  the  special  patron  of  the  hunters.  It  is  said  that  often  the 
Pawnee  when  on  the  hunt,  failing  to  find  game,  raise  their  hands  to  the  north  and 
say:  "Nawa,  Kawahar,  you  are  the  leader  of  all  the  gods  of  the  north.  Send  me 
game  that  I  may  kill  it  for  my  people." 

2  In  the  ceremony  referred  to  in  this  tale,  four  sticks  are  erected  on  the  north 
side  of  the  lodge,  each  one  bearing  a  clam  shell.  Collectively  they  represent  the 
four  gods  of  the  north  referred  to  in  this  tale,  which  in  turn  represent  the  imprints 
of  the  faces  placed  on  the  thumb-nails  as  referred  to  in  the  text.  In  this  connec- 
tion it  may  be  noted  that  the  shell  disk  worn  by  the  Kitkehahki  on  their  heads  is 
said  to  have  had  its  origin  from  these  four  gods,  as  is  the  case  among  the  Skidi. 
These  sticks  are  covered  with  raven  feathers,  for  the  raven,  like  the  coyote,  is 
always  successful  in  finding  game.  Ready-to-Give  is  supposed  to  be  similarly 
endowed. 


THE  FOUR  GODS  OF  THE  NORTH.  29 

that  part  of  it  became  water  and  part  of  it  became  land.  When  King- 
fisher had  done  this  it  dropped  by  the  man  and  he  reached  out  his  hand 
and  touched  the  bird  and  it  turned  into  a  woman.1 

The  man  held  a  ceremony  in  honor  of  the  four  gods  in  the  north  and 
he  taught  his  offspring  to  conduct  the  ceremony.  There  were  eight 
priests.  The  bundle  was  opened  and  a  bowl  of  water  was  placed  in  front 
of  the  altar.  This  altar  was  in  the  west  and  the  bundle  rested  there.  In 
the  north  of  the  lodge  was  another  altar.  This  altar  was  for  the  gods. 
The  chief  priest  dressed  himself  to  represent  the  god  who  carried  out  the 
wishes  of  Tirawa.  The  priest  first  put  on  the  top  of  his  head  a  bunch  of 
downy  feathers,  about  twenty-six  in  number,  with  turkey  feathers  around 
it.2  He  had  a  string  of  blue  beads  in  his  right  ear,  with  a  clam  shell  at  the 
end  of  the  string.  From  the  shell  hung  a  scalp.  This  priest  also  repre- 
sented the  first  man.  Now  the  priest  took  four  sticks  from  the  bundle 
and  clothed  them  with  crow  feathers.  At  the  top  were  placed  four  shells. 
The  sticks  were  then  set  up  in  the  north  altar.  Each  of  the  north  gods 
had  a  face  which  was  a  shell.  These  faces  were  faces  of  Tirawa.  This 
is  the  reason  why  we  once  offered  shells  to  the  gods  to  remind  them  of 
their  power.  The  chief  priest  then  put  the  holy  ointment  of  red  over  his 
body.  Then  he  took  from  the  bundle  the  holy  moccasins.  The  mocca- 
sins were  of  buffalo  hide  with  the  hair  outside.  He  also  took  from  the 
bundle  a  buffalo  beard.  This  he  tied  about  his  waist  to  show  people  how 
the  first  man  was  covered.  The  red  ointment  he  passed  to  the  other 
seven  priests.  Then  they  invited  the  men  to  enter  the  lodge.  The 
women  were  not  allowed  to  witness  this  ceremony. 

When  all  the  men  had  entered  the  lodge,  the  chief  priest  arose  with  a 
kingfisher  in  his  right  hand.  He  stood  in  front  of  the  wooden  bowl.  The 
other  priests  arose  with  the  gourd  rattles  in  their  right  hands.  Then  all 
the  others  arose  and  the  seven  priests  began  to  sing.  As  the  priests  sang, 
the  high  priest  shook  the  ground,  then  he  made  a  motion  as  if  to  turn  the 
bird  loose,  and  lifted  it  toward  the  bowl  of  water  several  times  and  finally 
he  dipped  it  into  the  water.  There  was  silence  throughout  the  lodge.  The 
chief  priest  spoke  and  said,  "This  is  the  way  Tirawa  made  the  land  to 
appear  out  of  the  waters."  They  all  sat  down  and  the  priest  arose  with 
the  pipe,  lighted  it,  and  gave  a  whiff  of  smoke  to  each  of  the  four  gods 

JThe  conception  of  the  kingfisher  dividing  the  earth  is  quite  different  from  the 
Skidi  belief  in  this  regard.  This  idea,  as  well  as  that  of  the  kingfisher  becoming 
a  woman,  is  paralleled  in  the  tales  of  the  Arikara. 

2  The  downy  feathers  in  this  connection  are  symbolic  of  eggs  of  the  turkey,  the 
turkey  feathers  representing  the  turkey  itself.  The  turkey  is  conceived  of  as 
the  most  prolific  of  fowl,  and  the  symbol  has  reference  to  the  fact  that  during  the 
ceremony  the  priest  receives  the  power  which  enables  him  to  plan  out  the  various 
future  activities  of  the  camp,  such  as  where  and  when  they  shall  go  on  the  hunt,  etc. 


30  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

in  the  north.  Then  he  went  west  of  the  fireplace  and  gave  one  whiff 
towards  the  sky  to  Tirawa,  then  one  whiff  to  Mother-Earth.  He  then  went 
to  the  altar,  gave  one  whiff  to  the  bird,  and  several  whiffs  to  the  contents 
of  the  bundle.  He  then  took  his  seat  among  the  priests  and  gave  his  pipe 
to  one  of  them.  The  pipe  was  passed  from  one  priest  to  another,  and 
after  they  had  smoked,  the  ashes  were  dumped  out  in  front  of  the  altar  and 
the  pipe  was  returned  to  the  high  priest.  After  the  offering  of  smoke,  all 
the  men  who  did  not  care  to  remain  left  the  lodge.  The  dried  meat  was 
cut  up  and  boiled.  The  first  pile  of  meat  taken  from  the  kettle  was  placed 
upon  a  dried  buffalo  hide.  Fat  was  taken  from  this  piece  of  meat  and 
offered  to  each  god  in  the  north,  to  Tirawa,  to  Mother-Earth,  to  the  King- 
fisher, to  the  Bundle,  and  to  Mother-Corn.  The  fat  was  then  thrown  into 
the  fire  so  that  the  smoke  would  go  to  the  heavens.  The  priest  asked  for 
the  sticks  or  gods  in  the  north  and  they  were  brought  to  him.  He  took 
the  shells  and  the  crow  feathers  off  from  them,  and  laid  the  sticks  by  the 
bundle.  The  priest  called  the  errand  man  and  asked  him  if  he  had  the  grass 
ready.  The  errand  man  said  that  he  had.  He  brought  the  grass  and 
laid  it  before  the  priest.  The  priest  took  up  the  sticks  and  gave  them  to 
the  priests  sitting  nearest  him,  and  he  told  them  to  prepare  them.  These 
sticks  were  plum  sticks,  and  they  represented  the  four  gods  who  assisted 
Tirawa  to  create  people.  The  priests  took  the  plum  sticks  and  covered 
them  with  grass.  When  they  had  finished,  the  priest  selected  four  other 
priests  to  take  sticks  to  the  creek.  The  priests  arose,  received  the  sticks, 
and  went  to  the  creek  and  threw  them  into  the  water.  The  plum 
sticks  were  covered  with  grass,  so  that  the  gods  would  not  see  the  sticks 
that  represented  them,  and  would  not  become  angry.  When  the  priests 
returned  to  the  lodge  there  was  a  universal  exclamation  of  satisfaction 
given  throughout  the  lodge.  The  things  used  in  the  ceremony  were 
waved  through  smoke  of  sweet  grass,  then  placed  in  the  bundle,  and 
the  bundle  was  tied  up  again  and  hung  up  at  the  west  inside  of  the 
lodge.  All  of  the  meat  was  cooked  and  divided  among  the  priests, 
and  the  high  priest  said:  "The  gods  have  received  our  offering.  They 
will  send  good  gifts  to  our  people,  so  that  they  will  not  be  poor.  Now  we 
rise  and  go  to  our  homes." 


LONG-TONGUE,  THE  ROLLING  HEAD.  3! 

5.  LONG-TONGUE,  THE  ROLLING  HEAD.1 

Four  girls  went  from  a  village  in  the  winter  time  to  gather  firewood. 
After  they  had  gathered  the  wood  and  tied  it  up  with  pack  strings,  they 
cut  four  long  sticks  and  carried  them  down  to  the  ice.  They  threw  the 
sticks  upon  the  ice  to  see  which  stick  would  slide  farthest  over  the 
ice.  While  they  were  playing  they  smelt  some  root  which  had  a  very 
good  odor.  They  kept  playing  with  the  sticks  and  the  smell  of  the  root 
seemed  to  come  nearer  to  them.  One  of  the  girls  said,  "Let  us  go  in 
the  direction  from  which  this  odor  comes,  and  try  to  find  what  makes 
it."  The  girls  all  agreed  and  they  went  toward  the  north,  where  the  odor 
came  from.  After  they  had  gone  a  little  way  one  of  the  girls  stopped 
and  said,  "I  do  not  care  to  go  any  farther."  The  remaining  three  went 
on.  After  a  while  one  of  the  girls  stopped  and  said,  "I  am  going  back, 
I  am  not  going."  She  went  back,  but  the  other  two  continued  on  their 
way.  Soon  one  of  the  other  girls  stopped  and  said:  "What  is  the  use 
of  going  any  farther?  The  sun  is  about  to  go  down  and  we  do  not  know 
where  the  smell  comes  from."  The  other  girl  wanted  her  to  go  on,  but 
she  would  not,  saying,  "I  am  going  home."  The  other  girl  said,  "I  am 
going  on  and  find  out  where  this  odor  comes  from."  One  of  the  girls  went 
home  and  so  only  one  was  left  to  find  out  where  the  smell  came  from. 

She  kept  on  her  way  until  she  saw  at  a  distance  a  hillside  covered  with 
cedar  trees.  She  went  to  the  place  and  there  she  found  a  lodge  which 
was  built  of  rock.  She  stood  near  the  rock-lodge  and  after  a  while  a 
stone  moved  and  a  fine-looking  young  man  came  out  from  the  lodge.  He 
saw  the  girl  and  said:  "You  have  been  standing  here  some  time.  Come 
into  my  lodge."  She  said,  "I  am  following  a  sweet  odor,  and  if  it  is  in 
your  house  I  will  come  in."  Then  the  boy  said:  "It  is  here  that  the 
odor  comes  from.  Come  right  into  the  lodge." 

The  girl  went  in  with  the  boy,  and  as  soon  as  she  stepped  into  the 


by  Little-Chief,  the  present  chief  of  the  Chaui  and  great  nephew  of  Pite- 
lesaru,  the  head  chief  of  the  Pawnee.  He  is  the  keeper  of  a  sacred  bundle  and  of 
the  "buffalo  pipe,"  which  when  exposed  causes  windstorms.  This  interesting 
version  of  the  magic  flight  accounts  for  the  origin  among  the  Chaui  of  many  objects, 
the  possession  of  which  was  made  possible  through  the  theft  from  the  stone  house 
of  the  Rolling-Head  of  a  sacred  bundle,  through  the  raven's  assistance.  This 
head  was  conceived  of  as  an  individual,  round  in  shape,  capable  of  traveling  great 
distances  with  great  rapidity,  and  as  making  while  traveling  a  great  noise.  This 
being  was  finally  overcome  by  the  hawk,  who  was  conceived  of  as  striking  it  with 
a  club,  which  is  symbolic  of  the  wing  of  the  hawk  by  which  it  kills  its  prey,  and 
severing  the  two  parts  by  means  of  a  flint  axe,  one  part  of  the  head  becoming  the 
sun  and  the  other  the  moon.  The  daughter  of  the  Evening-Star,  who  is  instru- 
mental in  the  accomplishment  of  the  task  just  noted,  later  has  connection  with  the 
red  bird,  which  represents  the  winter  storm,  and  she  and  her  family  become  the 
Pleiades,  which  ultimately  is  to  be  increased  to  ten  stars  by  the  addition  of  herself, 
sister,  and  brother. 


32  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

lodge  the  stone  moved  up  and  closed  the  opening.  The  girl  looked  around 
and  she  saw  that  there  was  no  opening  anywhere  except  at  the  top  where 
the  smoke  escaped,  and  it  was  a  very  small  hole.  The  young  man  went 
over  to  where  there  were  some  buffalo  robes  spread  upon  the  ground  and 
sat  down.  When  the  girl  looked  where  the  young  man  lay  upon  the 
buffalo  robes,  she  saw  there  an  ugly  old  man  instead  of  the  young  man. 
The  girl  then  began  to  cry.  The  old  man  said:  "It  will  not  do  you  any 
good  to  cry.  You  are  here  and  I  am  going  to  kill  you  in  a  few  days,  but 
while  you  are  living  make  yourself  at  home  and  try  to  be  content,  for 
you  have  but  a  short  time  to  live."  The  girl  looked  around  the  lodge 
and  she  saw  a  sacred  bundle,  with  five  big  gourd  rattles  upon  it,  hanging 
upon  the  side  of  the  wall.  The  old  man  gave  her  a  buffalo  robe  and  she 
placed  it  upon  the  ground  and  then  lay  down. 

The  next  morning  he  told  her  to  cook  some  meat;  that  he  was  going 
out  over  the  country  that  day.  When  the  old  man  was  ready  to  go  out 
from  the  lodge  he  turned  into  a  handsome  young  man  again.  He  stood 
at  the  entrance  and  he  spoke  to  the  stone  door  and  it  moved.  Then  he 
stepped  outside  and  was  gone.  The  girl  began  to  cry,  and  as  she  cried 
she  heard  some  one  speak  to  her,  saying:  "Woman,  this  being,  whose 
name  is  Long-Tongue,  is  a  round,  rattling,  rolling  skull  that  kills  people 
and  other  animals,  but  if  you  do  as  I  tell  you,  you  shall  be  saved.  The 
odor  which  you  smelt  came  from  the  roots  in  the  sacred  bundle  which 
you  see  here.  To-morrow  when  the  being  is  in  this  lodge  you  ask  him  to 
let  you  go  out  for  a  few  minutes.  He  will  let  the  stone  move.  When 
you  come  out  I  will  make  the  hackberry  trees  lower  their  limbs  so  that 
you  can  pick  a  handful  of  the  berries.  These  you  will  place  under  your 
belt,  and  then  you  return  to  the  lodge.  I  will  come  again  and  help  you." 
When  she  looked  up  at  the  hole  she  saw  a  Raven  sitting  at  the  top  of  the 
opening.  The  Raven  flew  away  and  in  the  night  Long-Tongue  came 
back.  As  he  stepped  into  the  lodge  he  turned  into  the  old  man  again. 
The  next  day  when  the  sun  was  high  she  asked  him  to  let  her  go  out 
for  a  few  moments.  The  old  man  spoke,  the  stone  moved,  and  the  girl 
was  outside.  She  quickly  picked  a  handful  of  the  hackberries,  then  she 
returned  to  the  lodge  and  sat  down.  About  noon  Long-Tongue  said: 
"Make  yourself  at  home.  I  am  going  away  into  the  country,  but  will 
be  back  in  the  afternoon."  At  noon  Long-Tongue  went  out  of  the  lodge 
and  disappeared. 

After  a  while  the  Raven  came  and  sat  at  the  opening  of  the  lodge. 
He  said:  "Woman,  when  Long-Tongue  comes  back  he  is  going  to  ask 
you  to  take  lice  off  of  his  head,  and  you  must  do  as  he  tells  you.  When  you 
have  placed  his  head  upon  your  lap  you  will  find  that  his  head  is  covered 


LONG-TONGUE,  THE  ROLLING  HEAD.  33 

with  ticks  instead  of  lice.  He  will  say  that  when  you  take  the  lice  from 
his  head  you  must  bite  them  with  your  teeth.  As  you  take  the  ticks  off 
throw  them  away  and  at  the  same  time  bite  a  hackberry,  so  that  it  will 
make  a  noise.  When  you  have  taken  off  all  the  ticks,  Long-Tongue 
will  lose  his  life  just  for  a  short  time.  You  must  go  to  the  entrance  and 
say,  'Grandfather,  move,'  and  the  entrance  stone  will  move.  Gather 
the  ticks  and  throw  them  outside.  Then  come  in  again  and  say  'Grand- 
father, close  up  the  lodge.'  The  stone  will  move  into  place.  Do  as  I  say, 
for  I  have  something  to  do  with  the  sacred  bundle  upon  the  wall,  for 
my  skin  is  in  the  sacred  bundle. ' '  The  next  day  Long-Tongue  came  back. 
As  soon  as  he  came  into  the  lodge  he  said,  "Woman,  take  some  lice  from 
my  head  and  eat  them."  The  girl  took  Long-Tongue's  head  upon  her 
lap  and  began  to  take  the  ticks  from  his  head.  She  would  take  a  hack- 
berry  in  her  hand,  take  off  a  tick,  throw  it  to  one  side,  then  put  a  hack- 
berry  into  her  mouth  and  crack  it.  She  kept  taking  off  the  ticks  and 
throwing  them  away  and  cracking  the  hackberries.  When  she  had  all 
the  ticks  off  his  head  Long-Tongue  fell  over  and  died.  The  girl  went  to 
where  the  ticks  were  scattered,  gathered  them  up,  and  carried  them  to 
the  entrance  and  said,  "Grandfather,  move."  The  stone  moved  and  she 
went  out  and  threw  the  ticks  away.  She  went  back  into  the  lodge  and 
said,  "Grandfather,  close  up  the  lodge."  The  stone  moved  and  closed 
the  lodge.  After  a  while  Long-Tongue  was  alive  again.  Early  the  next 
morning  Long-Tongue  said:  "Woman,  I  am  going  far  into  the  country. 
I  shall  be  away  for  several  days.  When  I  return  I  shall  kill  you." 

The  day  before  when  the  Raven  was  talking  to  the  girl  he  told  her 
that  when  Long-Tongue  should  speak  of  going  a  long  distance  for  her 
to  tell  Long-Tongue  to  go  first  and  kill  a  buffalo  and  bring  all  of  it  to  the 
lodge  so  that  she  might  make  tallow  from  the  bones.  The  girl  told  Long- 
Tongue  what  the  Raven  had  told  her  to  say,  and  Long-Tongue  said  it 
was  well  and  that  he  would  do  so.  She  told  Long-Tongue  that  she 
wanted  to  have  something  to  do;  that  when  she  had  nothing  to  do  she 
became  lonesome.  Long-Tongue  went  out  and  was  gone  but  a  short 
time  when  he  returned  to  the  lodge,  bringing  with  him  a  whole  buffalo. 
The  girl  began  to  skin  the  buffalo  and  to  take  off  the  meat  piece  by  piece. 
Long-Tongue  then  said:  "Woman,  I  am  going  now.  You  will  be  busy 
with  the  meat.  Do  not  try  to  run  away  while  I  am  gone,  for  I  shall 
follow  you  no  matter  where  you  go,  or  how  you  go."  Long-Tongue  went 
out  and  was  gone.  The  girl  then  made  a  big  fire  and  began  to  make 
tallow.  While  she  was  doing  this  the  Raven  came  and  said:  "Here  is 
now  the  chance  for  you  to  get  away  from  here.  Make  the  tallow  and 
I  will  tell  you  what  to  do."  The  girl  kept  on  making  the  tallow.  The 


34  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

Raven  went  and  took  the  sacred  bundle  down  and  untied  it.  He  took 
from  the  sacred  bundle  the  stones  which  the  people  used  for  smoothing 
their  arrows.  He  also  took  a  piece  of  flint  out  of  the  bundle  and  some 
white  powder  made  from  white  clay,  the  arrow,  and  the  flint  knife.  Then 
he  told  the  girl  to  make  three  round  tallow  balls.  The  girl  dug  a  hole 
in  the  ground  and  whenever  she  had  tallow  she  threw  it  into  the  hole 
until  it  became  full.  Then  the  Raven  told  the  girl  to  cover  the  ground 
in  the  center  of  the  lodge  with  some  tallow,  and  to  put  some  on  the  sides 
of  the  wall,  and  some  on  the  bundle  and  some  on  the  stem  grass  that  was 
lying  about  on  the  ground.  After  everything  was  covered  with  tallow 
inside  of  the  lodge,  then  the  Raven  said:  "Woman,  it  is  time  that  we 
are  going.  Long-Tongue  knows  that  you  are  preparing  to  run  away.  He 
will  be  coming,  but  we  will  try  and  get  away  from  this  place  as  fast  as  we 
can.  You  have  a  four  days'  journey  to  go  to  a  certain  place  where  the 
people  will  help  you  and  save  you.  There  is  not  an  animal  upon  the 
earth  that  can  overcome  Long-Tongue;  but  there  is  one  place  where 
the  people  can  destroy  Long-Tongue.  You  must  go  to  them."  Then  the 
Raven  sat  down  by  the  fireplace  and  said,  "Now  put  your  arms  over  my 
shoulders,  then  wrap  up  the  things  that  I  have  taken  from  the  bundle 
and  tie  them  upon  your  back."  After  she  tied  the  bundle  on  her  back 
she  went  and  put  her  arms  around  the  Raven's  neck.  Then  the  Raven 
began  to  call.  He  called  four  times.  Then  he  flew  out  of  the  small  hole 
with  the  girl  on  his  back,  and  he  flew  a  long  distance. 

At  last  the  Raven  became  tired  and  he  placed  the  girl  upon  the  ground 
and  said,  "I  will  fly  overhead  and  I  will  guide  you  to  the  place  where  you 
are  going."  The  Raven  told  the  girl  to  keep  running  to  the  east;  that 
there  was  a  place  in  the  east  which  looked  blue  in  color  and  that  was 
where  she  was  to  go.  The  Raven  told  the  girl  to  run  as  fast  as  she  could 
and  that  she  must  not  sleep  for  four  days,  because  Long-Tongue  knew 
that  she  was  gone  and  that  he  was  returning  to  his  lodge.  The  girl  kept 
running. 

After  a  while  Long-Tongue  ran  to  the  lodge  and  when  he  reached  the 
lodge  he  spoke  and  said,  "Woman,  open  up  the  lodge."  He  received  no 
answer.  Long-Tongue  knew  all  the  time  that  the  girl  was  not  there,  and 
so  he  entered  the  lodge.  He  looked  around  and  everything  about  the 
lodge  was  covered  with  tallow.  Long-Tongue  said:  "That  is  one  good 
thing  that  woman  did.  She  put  tallow  everywhere.  I  like  this  tallow 
and  I  will  eat  before  I  think  of  going  for  her."  He  began  to  lick  the 
ground.  When  he  had  licked  all  the  tallow  from  the  ground  he  then 
licked  the  tallow  from  the  sides  of  the  walls.  As  he  ate  upwards  the 
opening  at  the  top  of  his  tongue  seemed  to  grow.  When  he  reached  the 


LONG-TONGUE,    THE    ROLLING    HEAD.  35 

top  his  tongue  went  out  and  licked  the  tallow  from  the  walls.  He  licked 
all  the  tallow  off  of  the  walls  and  off  of  the  ground  and  off  of  the  stem 
grass. 

After  he  had  licked  all  the  tallow  off  of  everything  he  thought  of  the 
girl  whom  he  was  to  run  for.  He  started.  He  went  out  of  the  lodge  and 
soon  he  found  her  tracks.  He  followed  her  and  after  a  while  he  came  in 
sight  of  her.  Then  he  began  to  call  her  and  said:  "Woman,  stop,  return 
to  the  lodge  with  me,  for  there  is  no  use  for  you  to  run.  I  am  to  kill  you. 
I  do  not  care  if  you  run  over  this  wide  earth,  I  shall  follow  you  until  I 
kill  you  and  then  you  will  be  no  more.  If  you  try  to  fly  up  into  the  air 
I  shall  follow  you  and  kill  you."  The  girl  kept  on  and  when  Long-Tongue 
was  close  to  her  the  girl  remembered  what  the  Raven  had  told  her.  She 
took  the  smooth  stones  from  the  bundle  and  dropped  them  upon  the 
ground.  As  soon  as  she  dropped  the  stones  upon  the  ground  the  ground 
was  covered  with  smooth  stones.  Long-Tongue  said:  "What  a  fine 
lot  of  stones  there  are  here.  I  will  gather  them  together.  Then  when 
I  have  caught  the  girl  we  shall  come  by  here  and  I  will  make  that  girl 
carry  these  stones  upon  her  back.  I  have  no  stones  and  so,  while  I  have 
a  chance,  I  will  gather  these  together."  Long-Tongue  placed  the  stones 
in  piles. 

After  he  had  gathered  all  the  stones,  he  thought  of  the  girl  whom  he 
was  running  after.  He  started  to  run  again.  The  girl  had  gained  on 
Long-Tongue,  but  again  he  was  about  to  catch  her.  She  turned  around 
as  Long-Tongue  was  about  to  put  his  hands  upon  her  and  took  one  of 
the  balls  of  tallow  and  hit  Long-Tongue  upon  the  top  of  the  head,  so  that 
the  tallow  spattered  all  over  the  ground.  Some  of  the  tallow  got  on  the 
grass  and  weeds  and  when  Long-Tongue  smelled  the  tallow  he  said:  "I 
am  hungry.  I  will  stop  and  eat  of  this  tallow.  I  will  kill  the  girl  later." 
Long-Tongue  stopped  and  began  to  lick  the  weeds  and  grass  and  when 
he  had  cleaned  it  all  up  he  thought  of  the  girl  again.  He  ran  on. 

The  girl  kept  running,  but  Long-Tongue  soon  gained  upon  her  and 
was  very  near  her  again  when  she  dropped  the  flint  arrow-points.  As 
soon  as  Long-Tongue  came  to  the  arrow-points  he  stopped  and  said:  "I 
will  stop  and  gather  these  things.  I  will  put  them  upon  my  arrows. 
That  girl  shall  carry  them  on  her  back  when  we  come  back."  The  girl 
ran  as  fast  as  she  could,  while  the  Raven  flew  overhead.  As  soon  as  Long- 
Tongue  had  gathered  all  the  flint  points  he  remembered  again  about  the 
girl.  It  was  easy  for  the  girl  to  tell  when  Long-Tongue  had  started,  for 
when  Long-Tongue  started  there  was  a  rumbling  sound  upon  the  earth 
so  that  people  could  hear  it  for  many  miles  around.  The  girl  heard  this 
and  so  did  the  Raven.  The  Raven  said:  "Run  as  fast  as  you  can,  for 


36  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

he  is  coming."  When  Long-Tongue  had  almost  overtaken  her  the  girl 
took  the  arrow  and  stuck  it  into  the  ground  and  dogwood  timber  formed 
along  the  ravines.  When  Long-Tongue  came  to  the  timber  he  saw  that 
the  dogwood  was  straight  and  had  no  knots.  He  stopped  and  said,  "I 
shall  cut  this  dogwood  and  place  it  in  piles  so  that  the  girl  can  carry 
them,  for  I  want  arrows."  He  stopped  and  cut  and  cut  and  thus  gave  the 
girl  a  good  chance  to  get  some  distance  away  from  him.  When  the  dogwood 
was  all  cut  and  placed  in  piles,  Long-Tongue  thought  about  the  girl  and  he 
began  to  run  again.  He  gained  upon  the  girl,  and  when  he  was  about 
to  lay  his  hands  upon  her,  the  girl  dropped  some  sinew.  She  threw  the 
sinew  upon  the  ground  and  there  was  scattered  over  the  ground  many 
dead  buffalo.  Long-Tongue  said:  "This  is  good.  I  have  my  arrow- 
points,  my  dogwood  for  my  arrows,  and  now  I  must  have  sinew  with  which 
to  fasten  these  things."  Long-Tongue  began  to  take  the  sinew  from  the 
buffalo.  When  he  had  taken  all  the  sinew  from  the  buffalo  he  placed 
them  in  a  big  pile  and  said,  "I  will  make  that  girl  carry  those  things  to 
my  home."  Then  he  remembered  that  he  was  after  the  girl,  and  he  ran 
again. 

Every  time  that  he  ran  he  turned  into  a  rattling,  rolling  skull,  so  that 
the  skull  rolled  upon  the  ground  and  made  its  teeth  clatter  and  made  a 
great  noise  upon  the  earth.  The  girl  went  on.  Long-Tongue  followed 
her  again.  He  saw  her  and  ran  fast.  Just  as  Long-Tongue  was  about 
to  overtake  the  girl  she  dropped  a  piece  of  a  feather.  When  Long-Tongue 
got  to  the  place  where  the  feather  was  he  found  many  dead  turkeys  all 
around.  He  stopped  and  said,  "I  will  take  the  feathers  off  of  those  tur- 
keys and  pile  the  feathers  here  and  I  shall  make  the  woman  pack  them 
and  I  will  have  feathers  for  all  my  arrows."  After  he  did  this  he  thought 
of  the  girl  and  he  ran  after  her  again.  This  time  the  girl  dropped  upon 
the  ground  the  flint  knife,  which  made  a  gulch  in  the  earth,  so  that  when 
Long-Tongue  fell  into  it  he  could  not  climb  up  on  the  other  side,  but  ran 
back  and  forth. 

The  Raven  flew  over  the  girl  and  said,  "You  are  near  the  place  now." 
The  girl  looked  up  and  she  saw  what  seemed  to  her  to  be  a  mound.  She 
went  around  the  mound  and  she  saw  a  man  sitting  outside  of  the  lodge 
making  a  bow.  The  girl  went  to  this  man  and  said:  "I  come  to  you. 
Save  me.  There  is  a  mysterious  being  coming  who  has  been  following 
me  for  several  days.  I  am  tired  and  weak."  The  man  said,  "Walk  into 
the  lodge."  The  girl  went  into  the  lodge  and  she  saw  another  sacred 
bundle  hanging  up  in  the  lodge.  She  went  to  where  the  bundle  was  hang- 
ing and  sat  down  under  the  bundle.  Long-Tongue  finally  climbed  out 
of  the  gulch  and  began  to  chase  the  girl  again.  When  he  came  to  the 


LONG-TONGUE,  THE  ROLLING  HEAD.  37 

lodge  he  saw  the  man  sitting  outside.  Long-Tongue  began  to  speak  aloud 
and  said:  "Where  is  the  girl  that  came  by  here?  She  is  mine.  I  must 
kill  her."  The  man  paid  no  attention  to  Long-Tongue,  but  Long-Tongue 
kept  on  talking.  All  at  once  the  man  took  hold  of  his  stick,  raised  it  up 
and  said,  "And  why  do  you  talk  so  loud  around  my  place?"  The  man 
struck  Long-Tongue  on  the  top  of  the  head,  and  the  skull  split  in  two. 
As  soon  as  he  removed  the  stick,  however,  the  two  pieces  of  the  skull 
moved  together  again.  The  man  then  took  a  flint  axe  and  hit  one  piece 
of  the  skull  and  knocked  it  to  the  west,  and  it  flew  up  into  the  sky  and 
became  the  moon.  The  man  then  struck  the  other  piece  and  it  flew  up 
in  the  sky  to  the  east  and  it  became  the  sun.  (That  is  why  we  have 
human  pictures  upon  the  sun  and  upon  the  moon.)  The  man  said:  "My 
girl,  come  out.  Long-Tongue  is  gone.  He  will  bother  you  no  more. 
Make  your  home  with  us.  I  have  some  sons  who  are  out  on  the  war-path. 
Only  the  youngest  of  the  brothers  is  here  with  me."  The  woman  made 
her  home  with  the  man  and  the  boy.  A  few  days  afterwards  seven 
brothers  came  and  they  saw  the  girl.  The  father  told  them  what  had 
happened,  then  the  brothers  agreed  that  the  girl  should  stay  with  them. 
The  youngest  brother  was  chosen  to  determine  what  relationship  the 
girl  should  hold  to  them.  He  said,  "This  woman  shall  be  our  sister." 
All  the  brothers  agreed  and  the  woman  remained  with  them  as  their  sister. 
One  day  the  men  went  into  the  lodge  and  opened  the  bundle.  The 
woman  saw  an  ear  of  corn  in  the  bundle.  She  said:  "Father,  let  me  have 
this  ear  of  corn.  Let  me  put  it  into  the  ground,  that  I  may  gather  more 
corn."  The  man  would  not  consent.  He  said,  "This  is  from  Mother- 
Evening-Star  and  we  can  not  let  it  go."  But  the  girl  said:  "My  mother 
is  Evening-Star.  1  understand  how  to  put  this  ear  into  the  ground  so 
that  it  will  grow  and  we  may  have  more  corn."  Finally  the  man  gave 
his  consent  and  she  planted  the  corn.  In  the  fall  they  had  plenty.  Again 
in  the  spring  she  planted  more  and  the  men  knew  that  she  would  gather 
much  corn.  In  the  fall  the  woman  showed  signs  of  being  pregnant.  The 
old  man  was  angry,  but  when  the  child  was  born  a  man  visited  these 
people  who  said,  "I  am  the  father  of  the  child."  He  was  North-Star. 
After  the  people  found  out  that  this  woman  had  been  with  North-Star, 
they  asked  how  it  happened.  The  man  said:  "I  was  sitting  upon  the 
limb  as  a  Red  Bird  singing.  The  woman  came  and  while  I  was  singing 
I  lay  with  her."  The  woman  then  remembered  seeing  a  red  bird  upon 
a  limb  some  time  before.  Then  the  man  said:  "My  daughter,  we  shall 
all  go  away  now.  You  will  go  north  with  the  child  and  your  husband 
will  go  to  the  north  and  stand  there  forever.  We  shall  go  to  the  east 
and  shall  travel  west.  There  the  seven  brothers  will  be,  and  in  time  I 


38  TRUE  STORIES   OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

shall  join  them.  Then  your  sister  and  brother  will  join  us,  so  that  there 
will  be  ten  stars  instead  of  seven  stars."  (These  people  in  the  heavens 
are  what  is  known  as  the  Pleiades.)  "When  the  world  comes  to  an 
end  then  I  shall  join  my  sons.  My  daughter  will  also  join  us,  but  while 
we  live  upon  this  earth  we  shall  be  known  as  great  warriors.  Although 
we  are  birds,  we  are  warriors.  We  are  the  Hawks." 

6.   HOW  EVENING-STAR'S  DAUGHTER  WAS  OVERCOME.1 

A  long  time  ago  the  people  had  their  village  near  a  big  stream  of  water 
somewhere  in  the  east.  The  gods  in  the  heavens  came  down  upon  the 
earth  in  the  west  and  each  god  gathered  his  animals,  and  then  they  began 
to  build  an  earth-lodge  upon  the  earth.  Evening-Star  sent  her  daughter 
to  rule  over  the  lodge.  She  also  sent  her  four  gods  in  the  west  and  these 
gods  were  to  keep  guard  over  the  girl,  for  she  brought  a  rains-wrapped- 
up  bundle.  Evening-Star,  being  the  spouse  of  Morning-Star,  kept  the 
things  of  Morning-Star  in  the  bundle.  Among  the  things  belonging  to 
Morning-Star  was  the  war  club.  The  different  stars  which  stand  in  the 
heavens  as  gods  were  sent  down  to  be  stationed  in  certain  places  in  the 
lodge  according  to  their  stations  in  the  heavens.  The  spaces  between 
them  were  to  be  filled  by  different  animals.  Evening-Star  wanted 
women  to  be  higher  than  men,  and  so  she  sent  her  daughter  to  kill  off  all 
young  men  who  came  to  her,  so  that  all  women  would  do  the  same  and 
so  overcome  men. 

When  the  people  of  the  eastern  village  saw  the  new  earth-lodge  in  the 
west,  they  wondered  who  lived  there.  They  watched  the  people  in  the 
west  and  tried  to  go  to  visit  them,  but  the  people  in  the  west  would  not 
have  anything  to  do  with  the  people  in  the  east.  Several  young  men  had 
gone  to  the  place  and  had  seen  the  girl,  and  had  tried  to  marry  her,  but 
before  they  could  get  to  the  mud-lodge  they  were  always  killed. 

In  the  east  village  was  a  poor  boy.  As  he  grew  up  he  wandered  over 
the  country.  One  night  while  he  was  sitting  upon  the  hill  a  strange  man 
stood  before  him.  This  strange  man  was  painted  red  all  over,  and  upon 
his  leggings  were  hanging  scalps  and  eagle  feathers.  His  moccasins  were 
of  buffalo  hide  with  the  hair  inside.  He  carried  a  club  on  his  arm  and 
spoke  to  the  boy,  thus:  "My  boy,  you  shall  see  me  again.  Take  this 

»Told  by  Big-Crow,  a  Skidi,  the  keeper  of  the  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star  bundle, 
whose  grandfather,  Big-Knife,  a  Skidi  brave,  performed  several  sacrifices  of  human 
maidens  to  the  Morning-Star,  and  who  was  stopped  by  the  whites  in  a  similar  cere- 
mony in  1832.  This  tale,  told  only  during  the  intermission  of  a  ceremony,  teaches 
the  necessity  of  the  Morning-Star  sacrifice  by  pointing  out  the  advantage  which 
the  young  man  gained  by  conquering  a  certain  maiden  with  the  Morning-Star's 
assistance. 


HOW  EVENING-STAR  S   DAUGHTER  WAS   OVERCOME.  39 

and  carry  it  with  you.  Go  into  yonder  village  and  when  you  see  that 
girl  win  her  for  yourself.  I  shall  always  be  near  you  and  will  protect 
you."  He  gave  the  boy  a  moccasin  and  in  the  moccasin  was  the  symbol 
of  Morning-Star.  The  boy  was  told  that  when  he  should  go  to  visit  the 
girl  he  would  meet  obstacles.  At  each  obstacle  he  was  to  throw  the 
moccasin  with  the  symbol  of  Morning-Star,  and  the  obstacle  would 
disappear. 

The  boy  went  home.  He  sent  for  an  old  man  and  told  the  old  man 
to  lead  him  to  the  other  village,  as  he  wanted  to  marry  the  girl  in  that 
other  village.  The  old  man  led  him  and  when  they  came  to  a  certain 
place,  the  girl  came  out  singing.  She  hit  upon  the  ground  with  her  war 
club,  and  there  was  a  deep  canyon  in  front  of  the  boy  and  the  old  man. 
The  old  man  looked  at  the  boy  and  said,  "What?"  The  young  man 
stepped  forward  and  dropped  the  symbol  of  Morning-Star  into  the  deep 
canyon  and  the  sides  moved  together  and  brought  the  symbol  up,  and 
the  canyon  was  gone.  They  went  on  and  again  the  girl  came  out. 
She  struck  upon  the  ground  and  there  was  a  wide  stream  of  water.  The 
boy  dropped  the  symbol  into  the  water  and  the  water  disappeared. 
They  went  on  and  the  girl  came  out  again.  When  she  came  out  she 
sang  her  song,  and  touched  the  ground  with  her  war  club,  and  there  in 
front  of  the  boy  was  formed  a  thick  timber.  The  boy  threw  the  symbol 
into  it  and  the  timber  disappeared.  Then  they  went  up  to  the  tipi.  The 
girl  had  gone  in  and  taken  her  seat  in  front  of  the  men.  The  animals 
began  to  come  out,  but  as  each  animal  came  the  boy  struck  it  with  the 
symbol  and  so  they  all  disappeared.  When  the  old  man  and  the  boy 
entered  the  lodge  the  girl  was  told  that  she  was  to  marry  the  young  man. 
Then  the  girl  said,  "He  must  first  go  and  get  the  baby-board  for  me." 

The  boy  went  north  to  a  strange  country,  and  began  to  cry.  A 
strange  man  came  to  him,  and  he  was  the  same  man  who  had  appeared 
to  him  before.  He  asked  what  he  was  crying  about.  The  boy  said, 
"Father,  I  am  now  married,  but  the  girl  wants  a  baby-board."  The  man 
said:  "My  son,  you  shall  see  me  again.  I  will  get  the  baby-board  for 
you.  I  am  Morning-Star.  The  baby-board  which  I  shall  get  shall  be 
adopted  by  your  people  and  they  shall  always  be  under  my  protection. 
The  child  will  grow  to  be  a  man  or  a  woman."  The  man  went  off.  He 
went  to  a  lodge  of  animals  and  told  the  animals  what  he  wanted.  There 
was  a  certain  lodge  where  the  Beavers  were,  and  these  Beavers  were 
making  baby-boards,  but  fires  were  kept  up  by  the  Turtles,  so  that  no 
one  could  go  near  enough  to  get  a  baby-board.  When  the  animals  heard 
what  the  man  wanted,  they  called  a  council  to  see  who  would  go  and  get 
the  baby-board.  Coyote  stood  up  and  said,  "I  will  go  and  get  the  baby- 


^- 


40  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

board  for  you."  He  went,  and  when  he  entered  the  lodge  of  the  Beavers 
and  reached  for  the  baby-boards  which  were  hanging  in  a  circle,  sparks 
began  to  fly  upon  him.  The  sparks  got  so  thick  that  he  became  scared 
and  ran,  and  the  fire  seemed  to  follow  him.  He  ran  off  to  the  lodge  of 
the  animals  and  told  them.  Then  the  Hawk  went  to  the  lodge  and  as  soon 
as  he  flew  into  the  lodge  the  Turtle  stirred  the  fire  and  the  sparks  went 
up  against  the  Hawk,  the  flames  arose,  and  nearly  burned  the  Hawk  and 
he  flew  away. 

Other  animals  were  sent  there,  but  they  could  not  get  it.  The  Mag- 
pie, the  errand  man  of  all  animals,  arose  and  said,  "I  will  go."  The 
Magpie  flew  to  the  lodge  and  flew  down  the  opening  at  the  top.  He  took 
hold  of  the  baby-board  and  as  he  flew  up  the  baby-board  made  noises  and 
then  the  fire  came  up,  but  it  was  too  late,  for  the  Magpie  was  out.  The 
fire  followed  the  Magpie  for  some  time  until  the  Magpie  became  tired, 
then  he  gave  the  baby-board  to  the  Diving-Duck.  The  fire  still  followed 
the  Diving-Duck.  When  he  came  to  the  stream  of  water  he  dived  and 
the  fire  struck  the  water  and  went  out.  The  Duck  came  up  and  gave 
the  baby-board  to  the  man,  who  carried  it  to  the  boy.  The  boy  took  the 
baby-board  to  the  tipi  and  as  he  entered  one  of  the  priests  took  the  board, 
and  put  it  in  the  west  side  of  the  lodge.  The  girl  then  spoke  and  said: 
"Now,  you  must  get  otter  strings  with  which  to  tie  the  baby."  The  boy 
went.  Another  man  came,  and  he  helped  the  boy  to  get  the  otter  strings. 
The  boy  took  the  otter  strings  to  the  lodge  and  they  were  placed  in  front 
of  the  girl.  Then  the  girl  said,  "You  must  now  get  a  piece  of  a  robe  to 
put  upon  the  board  for  the  baby  to  lie  upon.  Go  south  and  bring  the 
robe."  As  the  boy  went  out  he  began  to  cry.  After  a  while  Morning- 
Star  came  and  said:  "My  son,  I  have  an  arrow  here.  When  we  have 
reached  the  buffalo,  we  are  going  to  kill  one.  I  will  go  right  up  to  the 
buffalo  and  you  get  to  one  side,  shoot  the  buffalo,  and  kill  it."  They  went 
toward  the  buffalo,  and  the  buffalo  came  and  charged.  The  boy  stepped 
to  one  side  and  shot  the  buffalo  in  the  heart.  Then  they  took  the  skin 
off  of  the  back  and  the  boy  took  it  to  the  lodge.  The  boy  then  got  a 
wild-cat  hide  by  the  help  of  the  Hawks.  Then  the  girl  told  the  boy  to 
come  to  her  bedside  in  the  night;  that  he  must  stay  outside  until  night. 

The  first  night  the  boy  started  to  enter  the  tipi  he  heard  a  whizzing 
sound.  He  knew  it  was  a  serpent.  He  touched  it  with  the  moccasin 
in  which  was  the  Morning-Star  symbol,  and  the  snake  died.  Then  the 
girl  said,  "Stop;  you  can  not  come  to  me  to-night.  To-morrow  night  you 
shall  come  in."  The  next  night  he  attempted  to  go  in,  but  the  girl 
touched  the  ground  with  the  war  club  and  two  bears  came  and  tried  to 
kill  the  boy  in  the  lodge.  The  boy  waved  the  Morning-Star  symbol  at 


HOW   EVENING-STAR  S   DAUGHTER   WAS    OVERCOME.  41 

them  and  they  were  stunned.  He  then  touched  them  and  they  were 
killed.  Then  the  girl  said,  "You  can  not  come."  The  next  night  the 
panthers  came  and  the  boy  killed  them  also.  The  next  night  the  wild- 
cats came  and  the  boy  killed  them.  Then  the  coyotes  came,  but  they 
were  willing  to  help  the  man.  Then  the  next  night  the  girl  said,  "You 
must  not  come."  Then  the  boy  went  out  during  the  day  and  cried 
and  cried.  He  did  not  go  that  night,  but  all  night  he  cried,  and  by 
morning  as  the  Morning-Star  came  up  he  cried  and  right  before  him  stood 
the  man  who  had  been  helping  him.  "My  boy,"  he  said,  "you  are  about 
to  approach  the  bed  of  that  girl.  You  have  killed  all  bad  animals.  The 
girl  herself  is  the  only  one  now.  Here,  take  this  stone.  That  girl's 
vagina  is  like  the  mouth  of  a  rattlesnake  and  has  teeth.  Take  this  stone 
when  you  are  about  to  lie  with  her  and  rub  the  stone  upon  the  teeth 
until  you  have  broken  them  all  up.  Then  she  becomes  a  human  being, 
and  you  can  lie  with  her." 

That  night  the  boy  did  as  the  man  had  told  him.  After  that  the  girl 
became  his  wife.  Then  in  the  morning  Morning-Star  came  to  the  boy 
and  said:  "You  have  married  this  girl  and  you  shall  have  two  bundles. 
The  girl's  bundle  shall  be  one  and  you  shall  make  another  bundle  and 
place  the  Morning-Star  symbol  in  it,  and  these  two  bundles  shall  be  known 
as  the  Morning-Star  bundles.  When  you  went  to  get  the  girl  there  were 
two  of  you  who  went.  You  overcame  all  obstacles  by  my  power.  You 
will  now  learn  the  mysteries  of  heaven,  the  gods,  the  songs,  and  through 
that  your  people  shall  prosper  and  have  good  crops  all  the  time.  For 
my  pay  for  helping  you  out  in  this  way,  you  shall,  from  time  to  time, 
capture  a  girl  from  the  enemy  and  offer  her  to  me  and  then  I  will  bless 
your  people.  All  the  obstacles  that  you  met  shall  be  represented  in  the 
ceremony.  You  shall  represent  each  step  that  you  took  in  gaining  the 
girl  until  at  last  you  shall  come  to  represent  the  putting  up  of  the  baby- 
board.  Then  put  the  captured  girl  upon  the  scaffold  and  kindle  a  fire 
under  her.  All  the  children  who  are  born  from  now  on  must  have  a  baby- 
board  with  my  picture  upon  the  top,  and  shall  have  the  covering  of  the 
buffalo  and  the  wild-cat,  and  the  otter-skin  string  shall  be  tied  around 
the  baby-board  to  hold  the  baby  upon  the  board." 

The  boy  and  his  wife  went  to  his  village  and  the  woman  carried  the 
bundle  with  her.  Then  the  gods  who  were  Stars  returned  to  their  places 
in  the  heavens,  and  the  animals  which  were  present  in  the  tipi  went  back 
into  their  dens  in  the  timbers,  rivers,  and  creeks. 


42  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

7.   THE  DAUGHTER  OF  THE  EVENING-STAR  AND  HER  SACRED  BUNDLE. 

(See  Abstracts.) 

[Told  by  Woman-Ready-to-Give,  a  Skidi  woman  whose  grandmother  was  for- 
merly keeper  of  the  second  of  the  two  Morning-Star  bundles  among  the  Skidi.  This 
tale  is  presumably  a  variant  of  tale  No.  6.  It  should  be  noted,  however,  that  there 
are  two  Morning-Star  bundles  among  the  Skidi,  and  that  the  tale  just  referred  to 
was  told  by  one  who  represents  one  of  these  bundles,  whereas  the  teller  of  this  tale 
represents  the  other  bundle.  This  story  not  only  relates  to  the  origin  of  a  sacred 
bundle,  but  also  relates  to  the  construction  of  the  earth-lodge  of  the  Pawnee.  It 
is  especially  interesting  to  note  in  this  connection  that,  according  to  both  tales, 
the  earliest  homes  of  the  Skidi  were  not  earth  but  grass  lodges.] 

8.  CONTEST  BETWEEN  THE  MORNING-STAR  AND  THE  MOON.1 

A  long  time  ago  the  people  had  their  village  in  a  bottom.  There  was 
one  young  man  who  had  his  lodge  in  the  hills.  The  people  from  the  bot- 
tom could  see  him  entering  and  leaving  his  lodge.  Every  day  the  young 
man  left  his  lodge  and  went  over  the  hills  and  in  a  very  short  time  they 
would  see  him  coming  again  with  a  deer,  an  antelope,  or  a  buffalo  upon 
his  back.  He  would  take  the  meat  into  his  lodge  and  then  would  come 
out  with  it  and  scatter  it  all  around. 

One  year  the  crops  of  the  people  failed.  They  became  hungry.  The 
people  said,  "We  are  to  speak  to  that  young  man  in  the  lodge  and  he  may 
help  us."  But  no  one  would  go  to  his  lodge,  for  the  people  had  often 
tried  to  go  to  it  but  always  found  that  there  were  snake  dens  all  around 
it.  In  the  village  was  a  Spider- Woman  who  said  that  she  knew  his 
power;  that  she  was  going  to  challenge  him,  and  if  he  beat  her  the  people 
could  have  buffalo.  Several  of  the  men  in  the  village  went  to  the  chief 
and  told  him  that  he  ought  to  visit  the  young  man  and  invite  him  to  come 
and  live  with  his  daughter  as  his  wife,  so  that  the  people  might  get  some- 
thing to  eat.  The  chief  said  he  could  not  go  into  the  lodge  of  the  young 
man.  The  people  said,  "Watch  and  as  soon  as  he  comes  out  and  goes 
away  from  it  you  must  meet  him."  The  chief  said  that  that  was  good. 
The  chief  walked  out  a  long  distance  and  watched  for  the  young  man. 
When  the  young  man  came  out  with  his  bow  and  arrows,  the  chief  met 
him  and  said,  "My  son,  I  want  you  to  come  to  my  tipi  and  live  with 
me  as  my  son-in-law."  The  young  man  said  that  he  could  not  do  that, 
as  he  was  in  the  lodge  to  feed  the  snakes.  He  said  he  would  go  and 
consult  with  the  snakes  and  if  they  were  willing  he  would  let  him  know 
the  next  day  at  the  same  hour.  The  chief  went  home  feeling  happy. 

The  young  man  disappeared  over  the  hills  and  in  a  few  minutes  came 
up  again  with  a  whole  deer  on  his  shoulder.  He  took  the  deer  into  the 

»Told  by  Little-Chief,  Chaui. 


CONTEST  BETWEEN  THE  MORNING-STAR  AND  THE  MOON.  43 

lodge,  cut  it  up,  and  scattered  it  over  the  ground  to  feed  the  snakes.  That 
night  the  young  man  told  the  Snakes  what  the  chief  had  said.  The 
Snakes  said:  "We  are  held  here  by  the  witch  who  lives  with  the  people. 
If  you  overcome  her  and  return  her  to  where  she  belongs,  then  we  can 
scatter  out  over  the  country  and  get  our  own  food."  The  boy  was  glad, 
for  he  knew  that  he  was  now  going  to  go  back  to  his  people.  The  next 
day  he  went  out  to  hunt  for  meat  for  the  snakes.  He  met  the  chief  and 
he  told  the  chief  to  go  into  the  village  and  tell  the  men  to  come  to  a  cer- 
tain hollow  and  he  would  be  there  to  meet  them.  When  he  reached  the 
hollow  he  remained  there.  When  he  saw  the  people  coming  he  made 
motions  at  the  foot  of  a  hill  and  there  came  out  droves  of  buffalo.  The 
buffalo  ran  along  the  hollow  and  the  people  with  their  bows  and  arrows 
killed  them.  The  people  went  home  with  their  meat  and  were  made 
happy.  The  young  man  took  his  deer,  went  to  the  den  of  Snakes,  and 
fed  them. 

The  next  day  he  turned  the  buffalo  loose  from  the  cave  again.  The 
people  killed  the  buffalo,  and  they  knew  now  that  the  young  man  was 
wonderful.  On  the  third  day  when  the  people  came  to  kill  the  buffalo 
the  Witch- Woman  came  also.  She  said  to  the  people:  "Let  the  young 
man  come.  I  want  to  challenge  him."  The  young  man  came  and  the 
woman  said,  "If  the  buffalo  come  out  again  I  will  make  them  return  to 
the  cave,  for  I  know  who  you  are."  When  the  young  man  tried  to  put 
the  buffalo  out  the  woman  waved  her  robe  and  threw  it  on  the  side  of 
the  hill.  There  was  a  picture  of  the  morning-star  on  the  robe.  The 
woman  said:  "I  know  you.  You  are  the  Morning-Star."  The  young 
man  said:  "It  is  true.  I  know  who  you  are."  The  boy  took  his  arrow 
and  shot  at  the  robe.  When  the  arrow  hit  the  robe  the  star  disappeared 
and  there  on  the  robe  was  the  picture  of  a  new  moon.  The  woman 
laughed  and  said,  "So  you  know  who  I  am?"  The  young  man  shot  an 
arrow  and  when  it  struck  the  robe  the  new  moon  disappeared  and  there 
was  a  quarter  of  a  moon.  The  woman  laughed  again.  The  young  man 
shot  another  arrow  and  as  it  struck  the  robe  there  came  a  three-quarter 
moon.  The  young  man  said,  "Now  for  the  last  time  I  will  shoot  my 
arrow  at  your  robe."  A  full  moon  came  upon  the  robe.  The  young 
man  walked  up  to  it  and  shot  at  the  moon.  The  full  moon  fell  upon  the 
ground  and  turned  into  a  spider.  The  young  man  killed  the  spider  with 
his  bow  and  arrows.  He  put  the  spider  on  the  end  of  his  arrow  and  shot 
up  into  the  heavens.  He  said,  "You  must  stay  up  in  the  heavens  where 
you  belong  and  not  try  to  live  with  the  people."  The  arrow  went  up 
into  the  heavens  with  the  spider  and  the  spider  was  left  in  the  heavens 
as  the  moon.  The  old  woman  fell  down  and  died. 


44  TRUE   STORIES   OF  THE   HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

The  young  man  said:  "My  work  is  now  complete.  I  will  return  with 
you."  He  turned  the  buffalo  loose  from  the  cave  again  and  said,  "All 
the  buffalo  will  now  come  out  from  the  cave  and  they  will  be  scattered 
over  the  land."  The  boy  went  over  the  hills  and  another  cave  was  found 
which  contained  deer,  antelope,  etc.  They  were  turned  loose.  He 
brought  one  to  the  Snake  den  and  then  he  returned  to  the  heavens  as 
the  Morning-Star,  leaving  another  boy  in  his  place,  who  was  given  the 
mountain-lion  quiver,  bow,  and  arrows.  The  boy  spoke  to  the  Snakes 
and  said:  "You  must  now  go  all  over  the  land.  I  must  return  to  my 
people."  The  boy  went  into  the  village  and  there  he  married. 

From  that  time  on  the  people  multiplied  and  had  plenty  to  eat.  They 
were  saved  from  starvation  by  this  young  man,  and  because  the  spider- 
woman  was  killed  the  women  gave  birth.  While  the  woman  was  among 
them  the  women  did  not  give  birth  to  any  children.  By  getting  her  out 
of  the  way  the  people  increased. 

9.  ORIGIN  OF  THE  BASKET  DICE  GAME.1 

When  the  creation  was  going  on  the  gods  made  two  images  of  man- 
kind out  of  mud,  one  a  girl  and  the  other  a  boy.  In  time  they  seemed 
to  wake  up.  The  bow  and  arrows  were  given  to  the  boy,  so  that  they 
could  live  by  killing  animals  for  food.  The  gods  meditated  as  to  their 
length  of  life — whether  they  should  become  old  or  live  always — and 
whether  they  should  have  darkness  to  live  in  or  light.  The  gods  then 
sent  animals  and  the  gods  said,  "Let  him  kill  one  of  these  animals  and 
whatever  kind  he  kills  let  it  be  so."  The  animals  went  past  the  young 
man.  Some  were  white  and  some  were  black,  but  he  never  shot  until 
the  last  one  came  by.  He  shot  this  one  through  the  heart.  This  was 
done  in  darkness.  The  last  animal  which  was  shot  was  spotted  white 
and  black.  As  the  animal  died  it  became  day,  so  that  the  boy  saw  that 
the  animal  was  spotted.  The  young  man  went  on  his  hunting  journeys 
in  the  forest.  One  night  while  they  were  sitting  in  their  grass-lodge  they 
heard  singing  just  as  if  many  people  were  dancing.  It  was  continued 
all  night.  The  next  day  the  young  man  went  into  the  forest,  and  there 
he  found  a  lodge  and  a  small  field  of  corn.  He  did  not  enter  the  lodge, 
but  returned  to  his  wife.  He  brought  her  and  as  they  approached  the 
lodge  a  woman  came  out  and  invited  them  to  enter.  They  entered  the 

1  Told  by  Woman-Cleanse- the-People,  an  old  Skidi  woman,  now  the  keeper  of 
the  Skull  bundle.  This  tale  is  interesting  not  only  for  the  fact  that  it  gives  the 
supposed  origin  of  the  well-known  basket  game  among  the  Pawnee,  but  especially 
on  account  of  the  symbolism  of  the  basket  and  dice  as  representing  the  seven  stars 
and  the  moon,  as  well  as  the  earth  and  its  contents. 


ORIGIN  OF  THE  BASKET  DICE  GAME.  45 

lodge  and  there  at  the  altar  sat  four  old  men,  who  were  daubed  with 
ointment  mixed  with  red  clay.  The  woman  who  invited  them  was  none 
other  than  the  Moon,  who  had  many  children.  All  these  children  seemed 
to  be  girls.  The  dance  began  and  they  told  the  young  man  to  learn  the 
songs  and  to  watch  what  they  did,  for  in  time  he  would  do  the  same. 
He  watched  their  movements  and  learned  their  songs.  After  singing 
then  corn  was  brought  in  and  they  all  ate.  These  two  people  received 
the  seeds  from  the  people  who  were  living  in  the  lodge. 

After  the  dancing  then  different  games  were  taught  these  people,  and 
they  got  the  basket  game  at  this  time.  In  their  dancing  the  four  old 
men  who  were  singing  were  none  other  than  the  Wind,  Clouds,  Lightning, 
and  Thunder.  The  woman  who  danced  in  the  west  was  the  Evening- 
Star  and  was  the  god  of  storms,  whose  permission  they  obtained  in  order 
to  create.  For  this  reason  she  stood  in  front  of  the  four  old  men.  She 
was  dancing  and  had  the  basket  representing  the  moon.  The  four  other 
dancers  were  also  women  who  were  stars.  These  were  supposed  to  be 
the  daughters  of  the  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star  who  stands  northeast  in 
the  heavens,  and  this  star  was  to  give  in  time  the  medicine-men  their 
bundles  and  mysteries.  As  they  danced  these  four  moved  towards  the 
west,  for  they  stood  in  the  east  in  line.  Towards  the  last  the  four  dancers 
on  the  east  moved  up  and  each  dumped  into  the  basket  what  he  carried. 
There  were  two  swan-necks  and  two  fawn-skins.  This  ended  the  dance. 
The  basket  woman  was  the  one  who  gave  permission  to  the  gods  to  make 
the  earth,  and  that  is  why  the  basket  is  made  out  of  willow,  for  the  earth 
is  filled  with  timber.  In  making  this  particular  basket  a  knife  must  not 
be  used,  but  water  and  mud  are  used  to  help  make  it.  Everything  was 
put  in  the  earth,  and  what  was  not  put  in  for  mankind's  power  was  after- 
wards given  by  the  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star.  These  women  put  the 
swan-necks  and  fawn-skins  in  the  basket,  for  they  represented  the  four 
gods  in  the  west. 

In  this  ceremony  these  two  people  learned  many  things,  and  they 
finally  got  the  basket  and  plum  seeds,  for  the  woman  was  afterwards 
told  to  get  plum  seeds  and  to  put  marks  on  them  representing  the  stars. 
The  basket  was  to  represent  the  moon.  This  was  done  to  remind  them 
that  Tirawa  sent  the  stars  in  a  basket  (the  moon),  and  that  they  fell 
to  the  earth  so  that  they  might  teach  these  two  people  all  they  were  to 
do  upon  the  earth.  The  twelve  sticks  represent  the  twelve  stars  in  a 
circle  above  the  heavens  who  sat  as  chiefs  in  council.  By  moving  the 
sticks  they  count  and  when  done  win  the  game. 

Basket- Woman  is  supposed  to  be  the  mother  of  all  stars  and  she  is 
the  moon.  When  these  people,  who  were  really  stars,  saw  that  the  two 


46  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

people  now  knew  what  they  must  do  in  this  life,  they  jumped  into  their 
basket  and  went  up  into  the  heavens  again.  The  Spider-  Woman  said 
that  the  doctor's  dance  is  the  same  and  represents  the  moon,  who  gave 
knowledge  to  these  people.  She  helped  the  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star  to 
give  the  man  power  to  cure  the  sick  and  to  do  mysteries.  She  sat  in 
the  southwest  corner  of  the  lodge  and  the  people  in  the  south  called  her 
sister,  while  the  doctors  in  the  north  called  her  their  wife. 

10.    THE  ORIGIN  OP  A  NEW  BAND.1 

A  long  time  ago  some  people,  Skidi  or  Pitahauirat,  lived  in  a  village 
in  the  north.  They  had  many  ceremonies  and  offered  buffalo  meat  to 
Tirawa.  In  this  village  were  many  boys  whd  played  about  in  the  timber, 
along  the  creeks.  In  their  plays  they  held  medicine-men's  dances  and 
imitated  the  medicine-men  trying  to  do  sleight-of-hand.  Among  these 
young  men  was  one  whose  father  was  a  medicine-man,  and  another 
whose  father  was  a  chief.  The  medicine-man  kept  the  ceremony  of 
the  medicine-men,  while  the  chief  kept  the  sacred  bundles,  and  also 
knew  the  songs  and  rituals  that  went  with  the  bundles. 

In  the  village  was  a  young  man  who  was  poor  and  he  did  not  go  to 
play  with  the  other  boys.  The  medicine-man's  boy  and  the  chief's  boy 
liked  the  poor  boy,  and  they  often  went  to  his  tipi  and  asked  him  to  play 
with  them.  The  poor  boy  always  refused,  but  one  time  the  two  boys 
begged  him  so  hard  that  he  went  to  the  place  where  they  were  playing. 
All  the  boys  in  the  play  took  their  turn  in  doing  wonderful  things.  The 
medicine-man's  boy  took  a  willow  stick  and  ran  it  down  his  throat. 
After  they  had  all  performed  their  tricks,  the  poor  boy  took  the  chief's 
son  and  the  medicine-man's  son  aside,  and  said:  "My  brothers,  you 
have  been  asking  me  to  come  and  play  with  you.  I  can  not,  for  I  am 
poor.  You  boys  are  learning  wonderful  things  from  your  fathers.  My 
father  is  a  poor  man.  He  has  no  ceremony  nor  has  he  any  sacred  bundle. 
I  am  a  poor  boy,  but  since  I  have  come  this  time  I  will  come  again.  I 
want  you  to  promise  me  that  you  will  try  to  learn  all  the  rituals,  songs, 
and  mysteries  of  the  medicine-men.  Will  you  promise  me?"  Both  of 
the  boys  promised  and  they  parted.  After  that  the  poor  boy  always 
played  with  them. 

One  night  the  poor  boy  asked  the  two  boys  if  they  had  learned  all 
that  was  to  be  known  of  the  sacred  bundles  and  the  mysteries  of  the 


by  Mouth-Waving-in-  Water,  a  very  old  Kitkehahki  medicine-man,  one 
of  the  oldest  of  living  Pawnee.  While  the  tale  apparently  recounts  a  historical 
event,  and  is  told  as  history,  it  especially  is  supposed  to  stimulate  young  men  to 
greater  deeds  on  the  war-path,  by  encouraging  them  in  the  belief  that  possibly  they 
also  will  become  the  founder  of  a  new  band. 


THE  ORIGIN  OF  A  NEW  BAND.  47 

medicine-men.  Both  of  the  boys  said,  "Yes,  we  know  them  now."  The 
poor  boy  said,  "Well  then,  my  brothers,  it  is  now  time  that  we  go  upon 
the  war-path."  The  boys  agreed,  and  so  the  three  boys  went  alone  upon 
the  war-path.  For  many  days  they  went,  until  at  last  they  came  to  a 
camp  where  there  were  three  tipis.  In  this  camp  there  was  only  one 
man  and  he  was  married  to  several  women.  The  three  young  men 
attacked  the  camp  and  killed  the  man.  The  women  made  no  resistance, 
for  they  were  glad  to  get  rid  of  their  husband,  who  was  cruel  and  had 
treated  them  badly.  The  three  young  men  now  stayed  with  the  women 
and  they  began  to  teach  them  and  their  people  how  to  speak  their  lan- 
guage. They  took  special  pains  to  teach  the  boys  and  tried  to  make 
warriors  of  them.  They  took  them  on  long  journeys  so  as  to  teach 
them  to  endure  hardships.  As  the  three  young  men  grew  older,  one  of 
them  took  the  boys  with  him  and  captured  many  ponies  from  the  other 
people.  They  grew  in  numbers  and  captured  many  ponies.  They 
kept  moving  their  camp  and  attacking  one  village,  then  another,  kill- 
ing the  men  and  saving  the  women  and  children.  The  three  young  men 
were  careful  to  force  their  captives  to  adopt  their  language,  and  in  this 
way  they  came  to  be  one  tribe. 

After  a  time  the  three  young  men  thought  of  their  old  homes  and 
they  were  anxious  to  return  and  make  offerings  of  scalps  to  the  gods  in 
the  heavens.  They  moved  the  camp  north,  towards  their  country. 
They  came  to  a  valley  with  a  stream  running  through  it  and  a  high  hill 
was  on  the  west  side  of  the  place  where  they  made  their  camp.  There 
the  people  stayed  for  several  days.  The  poor  young  man  went  to  the 
top  of  the  hill  and  there  stood  for  several  days  crying.  At  last  the  chief's 
son  went  up  on  the  hill  and  begged  him  to  come  down  and  eat.  He  said: 
"Why  do  you  stay  upon  the  hill  and  cry?  It  is  time  that  we  return  to 
our  people  and  let  them  know  what  we  have  done.  We  have  many 
scalps  and  our  people  will  be  proud  of  us.  Besides  we  now  have  a  whole 
village  of  captured  people."  The  young  man  did  not  reply,  but  sat  with 
his  head  down.  At  last  the  chief's  son  said,  "Well,  if  you  will  not  say 
anything,  I  will  go  down."  The  chief's  son  went  down  to  the  camp. 

The  next  night  the  medicine-man's  son  went  up  to  see  the  poor  young 
man.  He  said:  "My  brother,  why  do  you  stand  up  here  and  cry  this 
way  ?  Look  in  yonder  valley.  We  have  many  tipis.  On  poles  in  front 
of  my  tipi  hang  many  scalps  that  I  have  taken  from  the  enemy.  In  front 
of  our  brother's  tipi  also  are  many  scalps.  We  have  many  women  and 
children  that  we  have  captured.  We  also  have  many  ponies.  Come, 
let  us  go  down  and  see  our  brother.  Let  us  talk  about  going  north  to 
our  country."  But  the  young  man  said  nothing,  and  so  the  medicine- 


48  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

man's  son  left  him.     The  two  young  men  then  determined  to  go  together 
to  the  poor  young  man  on  the  hill  and  persuade  him  to  come  down. 

In  the  night  the  two  young  men  went  upon  the  hill.  One  of  them 
spoke  and  said:  "Brother,  we  have  come  up  here  several  times,  and 
each  time  you  have  sent  us  away.  Now  we  both  have  come  up  to  ask 
you  to  stop  crying  and  come  with  us  to  take  these  captured  people  to 
our  people.  Whatever  you  may  request  we  both  will  grant.  We  do  not 
like  to  see  you  upon  the  hill  here  crying  and  starving  yourself."  The 
poor  young  man  said:  "I  am  poor.  I  want  to  stay  up  here.  If  you 
want  to  go  home,  go.  I  can  not  go  home."  The  two  young  men  said, 
"No,  we  will  not  go  home  unjess  you  go  with  us."  "No,  "said  the  poor 
boy,  "I  can  only  go  home  if  you  do  what  is  in  my  heart."  "Tell  us," 
said  both  of  the  young  men.  "No,  I  can  not,"  said  the  poor  young 
man.  The  two  young  men  then  begged  the  poor  young  man  to  tell 
them  what  it  was  that  was  troubling  him.  The  poor  young  man  said, 
"Will  you  do  as  I  say?"  The  two  young  men  promised.  The  poor 
young  man  said,  "Do  you  remember  when  we  were  boys  that  I  would 
never  play  with  other  boys,  because  they  wore  good  clothes  and  I  had 
no  good  clothes?  I  saw  chiefs  who  gave  commands  to  our  people.  I 
saw  medicine-men  who  made  people  well,  and  also  did  many  wonderful 
things  in  their  medicine-lodge.  All  of  these  things  I  saw.  I  saw  the 
priest  go  through  ceremonies  making  burnt  offerings  to  the  gods  in  the 
heavens.  Do  you  boys  remember  how  I  asked  you  to  go  and  learn 
these  things,  one  the  sacred-bundle  ceremonies,  the  other  the  medicine- 
men's mysteries?  Do  you  remember  how  I  often  asked  you  if  you  had 
learned  these  ceremonies  perfectly,  and  how  you,  my  brothers,  said, 
'Yes,  I  know  my  ceremonies  and  songs  and  mysteries.'  I  then  asked 
that  we  might  come  out  here  where  we  could  be  alone  and  attack  peo- 
ple who  would  travel  alone  with  their  families.  We  have  captured 
enemies.  We  have  taken  their  scalps  and  their  ponies.  There  is  now 
nothing  that  we  want  except  to  take  all  of  these  captives  to  our  people. 
Will  you  do  what  I  wish  you  to  do  ?  If  you  earnestly  desire  me  to  be 
with  you,  I  will  tell  you  my  wish.  I  will  then  wipe  my  tears  away 
and  my  sorrow  will  go  from  me."  "Speak,"  said  the  two  young  men, 
"and  we  will  do  as  you  wish."  The  poor  boy  said:  "We  have  con- 
quered people.  They  are  our  people  and  their  children  are  our  chil- 
dren. Let  us,  my  brothers,  stay  away  from  our  people.  Let  this,  my 
brother,  the  chief's  son,  be  the  high  priest,  for  he  knows  the  songs  and 
ceremonies.  Let  this,  my  brother,  the  medicine-man's  son,  be  the  medi- 
cine-man, for  he  knows  the  mysteries  of  the  medicine-men.  Now, 
brothers,  let  this  poor  brother  of  yours  be  a  chief,  for  he  has  longed  to 


THE  ORIGIN  OF  A  NEW  BAND.  49 

be  a  chief.  Then  let  us  stay  away  from  our  people  and  we  will  have  a 
tribe  of  our  own.  These  people  will  increase  and  we  will  teach  them 
our  language  and  our  ceremonies.  Will  you,  my  brothers,  do  this?" 
The  chief's  son  arose,  took  both  of  the  poor  boy's  hands  and  said:  "I 
like  you  more  than  a  brother.  I  looked  for  you  when  we  were  boys  and 
played  around  our  village.  What  you  have  said  I  will  do.  We  will  stay 
away  from  our  people  and  I  will  carry  on  the  ceremonies,  and  the  gods 
in  the  heavens  shall  receive  the  smoke  from  the  scalps  that  we  have 
taken."  The  poor  boy  then  arose  and  said,  "I  thank  you,  my  brother, 
for  your  friendly  words.  The  gods  overhead  have  heard  your  words  and 
they  will  be  glad  when  the  scalps  are  placed  upon  the  fire  and  the  smoke 
goes  straight  up  to  heaven.  Now,"  he  continued,  "what  do  you  say, 
my  brother?  Will  you  also  make  my  heart  glad?"  The  medicine-man 
arose  and  said:  "I  am  willing.  We  like  you.  I  shall  teach  these  people 
to  do  wonders  in  the  medicine-man's  mysteries  and  also  shall  teach  them 
the  ceremony  and  songs  of  the  medicine-man.  Then  I  shall  teach  them 
the  different  herbs  and  roots  and  what  they  are  good  for."  The  poor 
boy  clasped  both  of  the  young  men's  hands,  and  said:  "My  brothers, 
my  heart  is  filled  with  gladness.  I  can  not  speak  to  you  of  what  is  in 
my  heart."  He  began  to  cry,  and  the  two  men  could  not  speak,  for  they 
too  were  weeping.  The  night  was  clear  and  the  stars  shone  bright  in 
the  sky.  The  three  young  men  wiped  their  tears  away  and  sat  down, 
and  the  poor  young  man  filled  the  pipe  and  they  smoked  together.  The 
poor  young  man  then  said:  "Look,  my  brothers,  the  stars  are  bright 
and  they  seem  to  speak  to  us  as  if  they  promised  us  success.  Let  us 
always  remember  that  the  gods  in  the  heavens  watch  over  us."  They 
talked  a  long  time  and  at  last  they  arose  and  went  down  to  the  village. 
The  next  morning  the  three  young  men  sat  in  the  tipi  of  the  poor 
young  chief.  They  agreed  that  the  chief  should  take  some  of  the  young 
men  in  the  village  and  go  north  to  their  old  village  and  get  seeds  from 
the  fields  of  their  people.  In  a  few  days  the  poor  boy  chief  selected 
some  of  the  young  men,  and  they  started  north  to  where  their  peo- 
ple had  their  corn-fields.  It  was  in  the  fall  of  the  year.  The  village 
had  been  deserted  by  the  people.  The  men  found  some  corn  in  the 
fields  and  picked  up  beans  and  squash  seeds.  They  then  started  back 
to  their  new  home.  In  the  spring  the  people  planted  corn,  beans,  and 
squash.  The  chief's  son  got  things  together  to  make  a  sacred  bundle. 
In  the  fall  he  went  into  the  corn-field  and  found  a  white  ear  of  corn 
with  a  tassel  on  top  of  it.  He  took  this  ear  of  corn  to  his  tipi.  Early 
in  the  spring  a  ceremony  was  performed  and  the  corn  and  other 
things  that  were  gathered  were  put  in  a  wrapper  and  a  bundle  was 


50  TRUE  STORIES   OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

made.  A  few  years  afterwards  the  other  young  man  started  up  the 
medicine-men's  dance.  He  taught  young  men  whom  he  selected  and 
he  had  many  followers.  The  people  increased  and  became  numerous. 

II.  HOW  THE  PEOPLE  GOT  THE  CROW-LANCE.1 

Many  years  ago  a  number  of  men  went  on  the  war-path.  On  the 
way  the  leader  of  the  war  party  told  them  that  it  would  be  the  duty  of 
every  man  to  look  out  for  a  raccoon;  that  before  they  should  get  far  into 
the  country  of  the  enemy  they  must  make  a  sacrifice  of  the  raccoon.  For 
many  days  they  traveled  south.  One  of  the  men  went  off  by  himself. 
He  came  to  a  ravine.  He  traveled  up  the  ravine.  In  the  night  he  did 
not  return.  Early  in  the  morning  this  man  followed  the  ravine.  By 
sunrise  he  saw  a  raccoon  sleeping  upon  a  tree.  He  took  an  arrow  from 
his  quiver  and  shot  it  through  the  side.  The  raccoon  fell  down  from 
the  tree.  The  man  then  pronounced  it  holy.  He  put  the  raccoon  upon 
his  back  and  traveled  west.  In  the  evening  he  came  to  the  men  in  the 
main  body  of  the  people.  When  he  came  to  the  people  he  told  them 
that  he  had  the  raccoon  which  the  leader  wanted.  The  leader  was  satis- 
fied. He  told  the  people  that  in  order  to  have  a  ceremony  they  must 
find  a  country  with  thick  timber.  Scouts  were  sent  out  and  after  a  while 
they  returned  and  said  that  they  had  found  a  nice  place.  The  people 
went  to  the  timber  and  there  they  made  the  sacrifice  of  the  raccoon.  The 
raccoon  was  burned  up.  Some  of  the  people  in  the  crowd  said  that  the 
burning  of  the  raccoon  was  wrong;  that  they  had  never  seen  a  raccoon 
burned;  that  it  should  have  been  roasted  and  eaten  by  the  people.  Some 
of  these  men  being  afraid  returned  to  their  country.  The  others  went  on. 

Now,  the  man  who  made  the  sacrifice  was  one  day  sent  out  as  a  scout. 
The  main  body  of  the  warriors  had  gone  slowly  and  by  noon  had  reached 
a  high  hill.  They  were  seated  upon  the  hill  when  they  saw  the  man 
coming  as  if  with  good  news.  As  he  came  over  a  hill,  and  went  into  a 
bottom  land,  the  warriors  on  top  of  the  hill  heard  shouting  and  yelling. 
Scouts  were  sent  over  to  another  hill  to  investigate  and  the  scouts  lay 
upon  the  hill  where  they  could  see  the  man  and  the  enemy  attacking 
him.  The  enemy  killed  the  man  and  went  away.  After  they  were  gone 
a  short  distance  the  scouts  saw  that  they  were  not  human  beings,  but 
that  they  were  Crows  and  Coyotes.  The  scouts  went  back  and  told  the 
leader  what  had  happened.  Some  of  the  people  said:  "The  people 

'Told  by  Leading-Sun,  an  old  Kitkehahki  medicine-man.  The  tale  relates  the 
origin  of  the  so-called  crow-lance  which  is  the  standard  of  the  Crow- Lance  Dance, 
the  ance  itself  being  symbolic  of  the  north  wind,  who  is  supposed  to  act  in  behalf 
of  hunting  parties  in  driving  buffalo  to  them. 


HOW  THE   PEOPLE  GOT  THE   CROW-LANCE.  51 

who  went  home  told  the  trouble.  We  should  never  have  sacrificed  the 
raccoon."  The  leader  of  the  war  party  went  to  the  place  and  saw  that 
the  man  was  killed.  He  felt  of  his  body,  but  could  find  no  bullet  hole 
nor  any  wound.  He  was  not  scalped,  but  there  were  scratches  upon  his 
body.  Then  they  took  his  robe  and  placed  it  over  him  and  the  war  party 
returned  to  their  village. 

Now,  when  night  came  this  man  who  was  supposed  to  be  killed  thought 
that  he  heard  some  dancing.  He  listened.  After  a  while  he  sat  up  and 
he  saw  people  dancing  around  him.  When  he  looked  at  the  people  he 
did  not  know  any  of  them.  There  was  one  man  who  carried  a  lance  and 
it  was  covered  with  crow  feathers.  All  of  the  dancers  were  painted  black. 
They  told  the  man  to  get  up,  and  they  went  along  until  they  came  to  the 
mountains.  There  they  took  him  from  one  place  to  another  until  they 
came  to  a  hollow  and  there  in  the  hollow  stood  a  high  tree.  The  man 
was  told  to  lie  down  under  the  tree.  He  lay  down  and  went  to  sleep. 
Early  the  next  morning  he  woke  up.  The  first  thing  he  saw  was  a  num- 
ber of  Deer  running  around  and  jumping.  Then  some  one  spoke  from 
the  tree  where  the  Crows  were  and  said,  "Follow  them  if  you  wish." 
Then  the  man  remembered  the  Crows.  Again  the  boy  found  Antelopes. 
They  came  to  where  he  was,  and  the  boy  liked  them.  He  wanted  to 
follow  them  and  imitate  them,  but  some  one  from  the  tree  said,  "Remem- 
ber we  brought  you  here."  Then  the  boy  let  the  Antelopes  go  and 
remained  at  the  tree. 

The  next  day  the  Crows  scattered  out  over  the  country.  The  boy 
took  his  bow  and  arrows  and  went  out  and  killed  a  young  fawn.  This 
he  brought  back  to  the  place  where  he  was,  built  a  fire,  and  cooked  some 
meat  for  himself.  In  the  evening  the  Crows  began  to  come  back  to  their 
tree.  As  soon  as  it  was  dark  the  boy  lay  down  and  he  heard  strange 
noises  coming  from  the  mountain  side.  He  wanted  to  go  to  the  place, 
for  he  was  sure  that  he  heard  singing,  but  some  one  spoke  to  him  from 
the  tree  saying,  "Go  if  you  wish,  but  remember  we  brought  you  here." 
Four  times  the  young  man  had  a  chance  to  follow  some  kind  of  animals, 
but  the  Crows  held  him  back.  On  the  fifth  night  the  Crows  which  had 
settled  upon  the  trees  disappeared  and  now  there  was  singing  inside  of 
the  mountain.  After  a  while  one  of  the  Crows  came  out  and  spoke  to 
the  man.  The  man  was  taken  into  the  side  of  the  mountain.  There 
he  found  a  big  cave.  These  Crows  were  seated  around  in  a  circle.  The 
lance  was  standing  in  the  west,  and  it  was  covered  with  crow  feathers. 
The  Crow  people  began  to  sing  songs.  At  the  end  of  each  song  all  would 
imitate  the  Crow.  All  night  they  danced  and  as  dawn  came  they  told 
the  boy  to  lie  down  in  the  lodge,  as  they  must  go  out.  The  Crows  flew 


52  TRUE  STORIES   OF  THE   HEAVENLY   BEINGS. 

out  and  were  gone  during  the  day.  In  the  night  they  came  back  and 
the  man  heard  them  and  he  sat  up.  This  time  he  danced  with  them. 
For  three  nights  they  danced  together.  The  fourth  night  they  danced 
and  then  the  leading  Crow  said:  "My  son,  to-day  we  part.  We  give 
you  this  lance  covered  with  our  feathers.  When  you  go  back  to  your 
people,  start  the  Crow-Lance  society.  The  one  who  shall  carry  the  lance 
shall  be  known  as  the  priest.  Any  of  the  young  men  can  take  the  lance 
in  battle  who  belongs  to  the  society.  .The  priest  must  carry  the  lance 
on  the  march  while  hunting  buffalo.  The  lance,  as  you  know,  is  covered 
with  crow  feathers.  The  Crow  can  see  where  the  buffalo  are  in  time,  and 
in  that  way  the  Crow  will  help  you  to  find  buffalo."  The  songs  were 
also  taught  to  the  boy.1  The  lance  was  given  him  and  also  the  paint. 
Then  the  Crow  said  that  he  was  supposed  to  have  been  killed  by  the 
enemy,  but  those  who  killed  him  were  Crows  and  Coyotes. 

The  Coyotes  and  Crows  came  over  the  hills  together  and  by  their 
crowing  and  barking  they  had  scared  the  man  to  death.  The  Coyotes 
wanted  to  eat  him  up,  but  the  Crows  wanted  to  take  him  to  their  lodge 
and  there  teach  him  the  dancing.  If  the  Coyotes  had  had  their  way 
they  would  have  eaten  the  boy,  but  the  Crows  brought  life  to  the  boy 
again  and  gave  him  the  crow-lance  dance.  The  people  were  to  be  taught 
by  the  way  in  which  the  Crows  and  the  Coyotes  scared  this  man,  that 
sometimes  they  came  in  a  body  and  scared  them;  that  if  the  people 
became  scared  they  were  killed;  if  they  did  not  become  afraid  they 
would  not  be  killed. 


12.  THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE  PIPE-STICK  CEREMONY.1 

Many,  many  years  ago  the  Skidi  were  few  in  number  and  lived  some- 
where in  Nebraska.  There  was  one  young  man  among  them  who  had 
wonderful  dreams.  In  one  of  his  dreams  he  saw  a  water-monster  com- 
ing up  a  big  river.  This  monster  which  he  saw  in  his  dreams  was  a  very 
long  one.  The  head  was  of  immense  size.  Upon  the  head  were  hairs 
growing  out.  On  the  top  of  the  head  stood  something  white,  which  he 
believed  was  a  soft  downy  feather.  The  head  of  the  monster  was  of 

'The  music  and  text  of  the  songs  which  form  part  of  this  and  the  succeeding 
tales  of  this  volume  will  be  found  in  Part  II. 

sTold  by  Cheyenne-Chief,  a  young  Skidi  whose  father,  Pipe-Chief,  was  one  of 
the  leading  Skidi  priests  and  chiefs.  This  tale  relates  to  the  origin  of  one  of  the 
most  interesting  Skidi  ceremonies,  the  pipe-stick  or  Calumet.  This  ceremony, 
according  to  Skidi  belief,  as  it  exists  in  the  other  three  bands  of  the  Pawnee,  was 
borrowed  from  the  Wichita.  The  tale  also  accounts  for  the  decoration  of  the  effigy 
of  the  water-monster  which  is  constructed  on  the  inside  of  the  lodge  during  the 
dance  of  the  medicine-men. 


THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE  PIPE-STICK  CEREMONY.  53 

many  colors.  The  young  man  woke  up  from  his  dream  and  for  several 
days  he  sat  in  his  lodge  meditating  whether  to  go  to  the  big  water  he 
had  seen  or  not.  At  last  he  made  up  his  mind,  and  he  went.  For  many 
days  he  journeyed  to  the  northeast.  At  last  he  came  to  the  big  stream 
of  water.  The  day  was  cloudy.  He  did  not  know  where  the  sun  was. 
While  he  was  sitting  upon  the  bank  of  the  stream  he  saw  the  water  spout- 
ing up.  After  a  while  he  noticed  that  this  water-monster  of  which  he 
had  dreamed  was  coming.  The  monster  came  up  just  as  it  did  in  his 
dream,  and  it  dived  back.  Again  it  came  up  and  went  back.  A  third 
time  it  came  up  and  went  back.  The  fourth  time  it  came  up,  remained 
for  some  time,  and  then  went  down  into  the  water.  The  breath  of  the 
monster  seemed  to  draw  this  man  into  the  water.  The  man  was  afraid, 
but  as  he  was  influenced  he  ran  toward  the  steep  bank  of  the  river.  When 
he  was  near  to  the  water  he  closed  his  eyes.  He  knew  no  more.  When 
he  opened  his  eyes  the  monster's  head  was  at  the  south  entrance.  The 
man  noticed  that  there  were  animals  of  all  kinds  in  this  place  where  he 
was.  The  monster  said:  "I  came  from  the  big  waters  to  this  place  in 
order  to  bring  you  a  message.  I  control  all  animal  beings  in  the  big 
waters.  I  have  told  them  to  speak  to  the  people  so  that  they  can  under- 
stand the  powers  which  we  have.  In  this  lodge  are  different  kinds  of 
animals.  This  is  an  animal  medicine-lodge.  Here  they  will  teach  you 
the  mysteries  of  all  the  animals.  When  you  have  gone  home,  make  an 
image  of  myself  and  place  it  in  your  lodge.  There  you  must  stay  by 
yourself,  so  that  I  may  appear  to  you  in  your  dreams  and  teach  you  the 
songs,  and  also  my  powers." 

At  this  time  the  Skidi  did  not  know  that  there  were  birds  and  eagles. 
After  this  man  had  been  in  the  lodge,  and  the  monster  placed  him  on 
dry  land  again,  it  returned  to  its  home.  The  man  went  to  his  home 
also.  When  the  man  was  in  his  lodge  he  began  to  gather  up  a  lot  of 
willows  and  covering  for  the  sea-serpent  which  was  to  be  placed  in  his 
lodge.  He  killed  several  buffalo.  Among  them  was  one  bull.  He  took 
the  scalp  from  it,  and  stripped  it,  so  that  the  sea-serpent  would  have  hair, 
just  as  he  had  seen  the  serpent  in  the  water.  The  hide  was  tanned,  the 
hair  taken  off,  and  was  dyed.  This  was  for  the  covering  of  the  head  of 
the  sea-serpent.  The  rest  of  the  body  was  covered  with  mud.  When  it 
came  to  putting  the  feather  on  top  of  the  head,  the  man  did  not  know 
what  to  get. 

In  the  night  he  had  a  dream.  He  saw  a  man  standing  near  him.  The 
man  had  mud  all  over  him.  On  his  face  were  streaks  of  red,  blue,  and 
yellow.  On  his  head  were  scattered  many  soft  downy  feathers,  and  on 
the  top  of  the  head  stood  a  soft  downy  feather  about  eight  inches  long. 


<J4  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

The  man  said  to  the  sleeper:  "I  am  the  Water-Monster  you  saw. 
I  am  a  medicine-man.  I  am  teaching  you  all  the  things  that  are  to 
happen.  I  am  teaching  you  many  things  which  your  people  will  have 
to  do.  The  thing  which  you  lack  to  place  upon  the  head  of  the  sea-ser- 
pent is  a  feather.  The  bird  flies  up  in  the  sky,  and  I  will  teach  you  how 
to  catch  it.  You  must  go  upon  some  high  mound,  dig  a  hole  on  top  of 
the  mound  just  as  if  you  were  digging  a  grave;  scatter  green  limbs  over 
the  hole;  kill  several  rabbits,  skin  them,  and  place  them  upon  the  limbs. 
You  must  then  crawl  into  the  hole  and  lie  there.  First  the  magpies  will 
come  to  taste  of  the  meat,  then  the  crows,  then  the  bird  that  flies  high 
in  the  sky  will  see  these  birds  eating  and  it  will  swoop  down  and  light, 
close  to  the  place.  It  will  hop  around  until  finally  it  will  get  on  top 
of  the  hole,  when  you  must  reach  and  grasp  it  by  both  legs.  After  this 
pull  it  into  the  hole  and  wring  its  neck  after  you  have  taken  it  in.  That 
is  where  you  will  get  the  feather  to  place  upon  the  water-monster."  The 
next  day  the  man  went  upon  a  high  hill  and  for  several  days  he  worked 
around  until  he  had  the  place  prepared  just  as  he  was  told.  After  he 
had  placed  the  rabbits  on  top  he  got  into  the  hole  and  lay  there.  First 
he  noticed  the  magpies  flying  around,  then  the  crows ,  and  suddenly  he 
thought  he  heard  wind  coming  down  from  the  sky.  When  this  hap- 
pened the  magpies  and  crows  scattered  away.  The  eagle  came  close  to 
the  hole.  When  it  was  on  top  the  man  reached  out,  caught  both  legs 
of  the  bird  and  pulled  it  in. 

For  several  days  he  lay  there  killing  eagles.  At  last  he  took  from 
the  tail  the  one  feather  he  wanted  to  place  upon  the  head  of  the  water- 
monster.  The  monster  appeared  again  to  the  man  in  a  dream  and  gave 
him  a  pipe-stem.  It  told  him  to  string  some  of  the  eagle  feathers  and 
tie  them  upon  a  stick.  He  told  him  that  he  could  use  the  pipe-stem  and 
the  eagle  feathers  in  compelling  other  people  to  give  him  presents.  The 
monster  was  not  satisfied  with  what  he  had  done  for  the  man.  He  then 
told  the  man  that  he  had  killed  some  eagles.  He  told  him  to  go  over  the 
country  and  keep  on  traveling  until  he  should  find  the  nest  of  an  Eagle. 
The  man  went  into  the  timber  and  looked  and  looked.  At  last  he  came 
to  a  big  cottonwood  tree  and  there  he  heard  the  whistlings  of  Eagles. 
He  noticed  that  the  mother  was  a  Brown  Eagle  and  that  the  father  was 
a  White  Eagle.  There  were  several  young  ones  in  the  nest.  The  man 
looked  up  at  the  nest  and  cried.  For  a  long  time  he  cried  and  finally 
the  Brown  Eagle  said  to  the  man,  "Why  do  you  cry  so? "  The  man  said, 
"There  is  something  that  I  want,  and  I  want  you  to  help  me."  The 
Eagle  said:  "Tirawa  gave  you  a  pipe.  Take  it  and  go.  Tirawa  will 
help  you."  The  man  continued  to  cry  and  the  Brown  Eagle  told  the 


THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE  PIPE-STICK  CEREMONY.  55 

boy  that  they  could  do  only  certain  things  for  him;  that  although  they 
represented  the  sky  they  could  not  help  him.  The  man  began  to  cry 
and  cried  for  a  long  time.  At  last  some  one  near  him  said:  "I  will  be 
with  the  other  people  if  they  will  help  you.  You  see  my  skin  has  black 
spots  all  over  it.  My  fur  is  blue.  I  represent  the  sky  and  the  stars. 
I  know  what  you  want.  I  can  cheat  other  people  and  I  will  now  teach 
you  how  to  cheat  others  also."  He  saw  that  the  animal  who  had  been 
speaking  to  him  was  the  Wild-Cat.  The  Evening-Star  then  said:  "It 
is  well  that  we  placed  the  Wild-Cat  upon  the  earth,  for  he  now  helps  to 
get  presents  from  other  people.  I  will  give  you  an  ear  of  corn  and  you 
will  call  this  ear  of  corn  mother.  Although  she  looks  dead,  take  the  corn 
from  the  cob,  place  it  in  the  ground ,  and  it  will  live  and  bear  again.  You 
shall  tie  the  ear  of  corn  on  to  a  stick.  The  stick  must  have  a  downy 
feather  upon  it  to  represent  Tirawa."  Near  where  the  boy  stood  was 
a  plum  bush.  This  bush  said:  "My  son,  I  will  furnish  you  my  timber 
for  your  forked  sticks.  You  see  I  bear  much  fruit.  Our  kind  of  trees 
grow  and  bear."  Above  and  close  to  the  nest  of  Eagles  flew  the  Wood- 
pecker. He  said:  "I  will  assist  this  man  to  make  these  sticks.  When 
these  sticks  are  completed  the  children  who  shall  receive  them  shall 
sometimes  ask  for  rain.  If  it  is  raining  while  the  ceremony  is  going  on, 
the  children  must  ask  of  this  man  and  the  sticks  that  it  stop  raining. 
You  must  place  my  bill  at  the  point  of  the  sticks.  I  make  my  home  in 
dry  limbs.  When  it  is  stormy  the  lightning  never  strikes  the  place  of 
my  home.  I  have  no  trouble  in  raising  my  children."  Then  the  Ducks 
flew  overhead  and  said:  "We  will  help.  We  place  our  eggs  along  the 
streams  of  water  and  they  hatch.  We  have  many  children."  After 
all  these  beings  had  spoken  it  was  almost  dark.  The  Owls  hooted  and 
said:  "Take  our  feathers  and  place  them  upon  the  sticks.  We  will 
help  the  man  to  make  his  sticks."  After  all  the  animals  had  spoken,  the 
four  gods  in  the  heavens  spoke  and  said:  "The  Evening-Star  has  given 
us  power  to  watch.  If  these  people  want  rain  they  must  sing  songs  and 
we  will  send  it.  If  they  want  to  stop  the  rain  they  must  sing  other 
songs."  Then  the  man  went  home. 

In  the  night  he  had  visions  of  these  different  animals.  They  gave 
him  songs.  They  taught  him  songs  and  he  sang  with  them.  While  they 
were  singing,  as  the  sun  came  up  in  the  east,  he  received  a  song  from  the 
Sun.  The  Sun  said:  "This  you  shall  sing  when  you  are  passing  around 
the  circle  of  the  lodge.  'The  rays  of  the  sun  will  enter  the  lodge.  The 
rays  of  the  sun  are  upon  the  lodge.  The  rays  of  the  sun  are  moving  about 
the  lodge.  The  rays  of  the  sun  have  covered  the  lodge.' "  Another  song 
was  given.  "The  sun  walks  around  the  lodge.  The  sun  moves  about 


56  TRUE  STORIES   OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

the  lodge.  The  sun  has  covered  the  lodge."  In  the  night  the  man  gave 
some  night  songs.  "The  night  dreams  have  entered  the  lodge.  The 
night  dreams  are  moving  about  the  lodge.  The  night  dreams  have 
touched  the  people.  The  night  dreams  have  covered  the  lodge."  "Let 
the  night  dreams  be.  The  night  dreams  are  coming.  The  night  dreams 
have  entered  the  lodge."  Then  there  were  songs  about  the  mother-corn, 
the  brown  eagles,  the  ducks,  the  owls ,  and  the  wild-cats.  The  man  was 
also  taught  that  on  the  third  night  they  must  take  a  child  and  decorate 
it  in  such  a  way  that  it  would  represent  Tirawa.  The  painting  of  the 
child  with  the  red  paint  about  his  face  represented  that  the  sun  had 
touched  the  child.  There  was  to  be  a  mark  upon  the  face  of  the  child  which 
was  to  represent  the  picture  of  Tirawa.  At  last  the  child  was  to  be 
placed  on  the  nest  of  an  oriole.  The  two  priests  were  to  hold  the  child 
up  while  the  leader  of  the  pipe-sticks  placed  the  nest  under  its  feet.  Then 
the  priests  stood  the  child  up  on  the  nest.  This  was  to  teach  that  the 
child  should  grow  up  to  be  either  a  man  or  woman  and  that  its  life's  path- 
way would  be  hard,  but  it  would  grow  up ,  for  the  powers  of  Tirawa  were 
now  upon  it.  The  oriole  makes  its  nest  high  up  in  the  trees.  The  storms 
never  blow  it  away.  Snakes  can  not  get  to  its  nest,  and  its  young  ones 
are  always  safe.  Then  they  finally  dance,  and  the  paintings  and  other 
things  are  taken  off  from  the  child,  together  with  the  paw  of  a  wild-cat. 
Then  the  child  is  permitted  to  return  home  and  the  painting  upon  its  face 
must  wear  off.  The  child  must  not  be  washed. 

These  are  the  things  which  were  told  me  by  my  father.  The  pipe- 
stick  ceremony  came  from  heaven,  from  the  animals,  and  from  the  water- 
monster. 

13.  THE  GIRL  WHO  MARRIED  A  STAR.1 

A  long,  long  time  ago  during  the  summer  two  girls  were  sleeping 
on  the  top  of  an  arbor.  As  they  lay  there,  one  of  the  girls  said  ' '  O 
how  I  wish  I  had  that  star  for  my  husband;  I  love  that  star."  That 
night  the  girl  went  to  sleep.  When  she  awoke  she  found  herself  in 
a  strange  country.  She  cried  and  cried  to  get  back  to  her  own  country; 
but  when  she  found  out  that  she  was  living  with  a  man  who  was  really 
the  Star  that  she  loved,  she  was  then  happy.  The  woman's  husband 
told  her  not  to  go  away  from  home  and  not  to  dig  in  the  ground. 
He  told  her  that  she  might  dig  wild  turnips  if  she  would  be  careful  and 

»Told  by  Curly-Hair,  a  young  Kitkehahki,  the  nephew  of  Curly-Chief.  This 
is  a  poor  version  of  the  well-known  and  widely  disseminated  tale  which  the 
Arikara  claim  as  their  own.  It  seems  that  the  present  version  is  somewhat  mixed 
with  the  story  of  Long-Tooth-Boy.  (Cf.  tale  No.  41.) 


THE  GIRL  WHO  MARRIED  A  STAR.  57 

not  dig  too  deep.  After  she  had  been  with  her  husband  for  a  long  time, 
she  gave  birth  to  a  child,  and  it  was  a  boy. 

When  the  child  grew  up  and  had  become  a  good-sized  boy,  the 
woman  went  out  to  dig  turnips,  and  she  dug  until  she  went  too  deep 
and  her  hoe  went  through.  She  then  made  the  hole  larger,  looked 
down  through,  and  there  she  saw  the  earth.  The  people  were  walking 
around  and  they  looked  like  ants.  She  then  covered  up  the  hole  and 
went  home.  A  few  days  afterwards  she  told  her  son  to  tell  his  father  to 
get  many  sinews  for  him.  The  man  went  hunting  and  from  the  backs 
of  all  the  animals  that  he  killed  he  took  the  sinews.  Every  day  the 
woman  would  tell  the  boy  to  tell  his  father  to  get  more  sinew,  until  at 
last  there  was  quite  a  pile.  The  woman  sat  down  by  the  pile  of  sinews 
and  began  to  make  lariat  rope  from  it.  She  kept  on  making  the  sinew 
rope  for  many,  many  days,  until  she  had  a  big  pile  of  it. 

When  she  thought  she  had  enough  rope,  she  went  and  dug  a  big  hole, 
then  she  took  a  long  pole  and  laid  it  across  the  hole  and  tied  the  sinew 
rope  upon  the  pole.  Then  she  pulled  up  a  little  grass  and  covered  the 
place  and  went  home,  for  she  did  not  want  her  husband  to  know  what 
she  was  doing.  As  soon  as  her  husband  went  with  the  other  Star-men 
for  their  night's  journey,  she  put  the  boy  upon  her  back  and  tied 
another  sinew  string  about  the  child  and  across  her  breast  so  that  the 
child  was  tied  fast  to  her  back.  Then  she  went  to  the  hole  and  slipped 
down  the  rope.  All  night  and  the  next  day  she  slipped  down  the  rope. 
On  the  fifth  day,  Star  began  to  hunt  for  his  wife.  He  went  all  over  the 
country,  and  finally  found  the  hole,  and  he  looked  down  through  the 
hole  and  there  he  saw  the  woman  hanging,  for  the  rope  did  not  quite 
reach  the  earth.  Star  went  and  brought  a  round,  smooth  stone.  He 
dropped  the  stone  and  it  fell  upon  the  woman 's  head  and  killed  her,  so 
that  she  fell  upon  the  ground.  The  boy  worked  his  way  out  from  the 
rope  and  stayed  around  his  mother,  nursing  upon  her  breast  until  she 
had  been  dead  for  some  time. 

A  thunderstorm  came  and  the  boy  ran  for  shelter.  He  came 
to  a  place  that  had  a  clean  path,  and  he  followed  the  path  until  he  came 
to  a  tipi,  and  here  was  an  old  woman  and  her  grandson,  who  was  of 
the  same  age  as  the  boy.  They  received  him  into  their  tipi,  for  the 
poor  boy  was  glad  to  have  a  playmate.  They  stayed  together  and  grew 
up  together.  One  day  the  old  woman  told  the  boys  not  to  go  to  a  cer- 
tain place;  that  there  lived  an  animal  that  killed  people.  Little  Star- 
Boy  said,  "Let  us  go  to  that  place  where  grandmother  told  us  not  to 
go."  They  went.  While  they  were  going,  a  bear  tumbled  out  of  his 
den,  bringing  out  much  dust.  The  boys  kept  on  going  and  the  bear 


58  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

was  about  to  kill  them,  when  they  hid  by  a  rock  that  was  close  by  the 
bear.  While  the  bear  was  looking  around  for  them,  it  had  become  cloudy, 
and  as  the  clouds  came  over  the  place  where  they  were,  the  lightning 
struck  the  bear  and  killed  it.  The  boys  arose,  went  to  the  bear  and 
Star-Boy  blew  his  breath  into  the  mouth  of  the  bear,  and  the  bear's 
skin  rolled  off.  The  boy  tied  the  nose  and  blew  up  the  bear  skin  and 
then  they  led  it  to  the  old  woman.  They  ran  towards  their  tipi  yelling 
and  crying.  The  old  woman  came  out,  saw  the  bear  and  commenced  to 
run.  Then  the  boys  laughed  and  said,  "Grandmother,  we  have  brought 
this  bear  to  watch  over  your  pumpkins ;  we  shall  stand  it  in  the  field,  so 
that  the  wild  animals  will  not  come  there. " 

In  a  few  days  the  old  woman  told  the  boys  that  they  must  not  go  to  a 
thickly  timbered  country;  that  there  a  monster  lived.  The  boys  went. 
When  they  came  to  the  place  they  saw  dust  come  out  from  a  hole,  but 
they  kept  on.  The  father  of  Star-Boy  saw  that  he  was  in  danger,  and 
he  sent  the  clouds,  so  that  it  thundered,  and  the  lightning  struck  the  big 
monster,  as  it  came  out  from  its  hole,  and  killed  it.  The  boys  dragged 
the  monster  to  their  tipi.  They  scared  the  old  woman  with  it,  then  left 
the  monster  outside  of  the  tipi. 

Again  the  boys  were  told  by  the  grandmother  not  to  go  to  a  certain 
timbered  country;  that  at  the  place  were  mountain-lions;  but  the  boys 
went  and  killed  the  mountain-lions.  The  boys  killed  all  the  wicked 
animals  in  the  country.  The  old  woman,  after  gathering  in  her  harvests, 
told  the  boys  it  was  time  to  go  back  to  their  country,  to  tell  the  people 
that  all  the  monsters  and  wild  animals  had  been  killed.  They  went 
back  to  their  country,  and  the  relatives  of  the  boy  took  him  to  their  home. 
Star-Boy  told  them  that  his  mother  had  been  taken  up  by  Star,  his 
father,  who  was  one  of  the  Star  people  in  the  sky.  He  was  a  great  man 
among  them.  One  time  he  disappeared.  Nobody  knew  where  he 
went;  but  they  supposed  that  he  went  back  to  heaven. 

14.  THE  GRAIN-OF-CORN  BUNDLE.1 

A  man  was  roaming  over  the  prairie.  He  came  to  a  place  where 
people  had  camped  and  there  he  heard  a  woman  crying.  The  man 
went  to  the  place  where  the  crying  came  from,  but  there  was  no  one 
there,  and  he  did  not  know  what  to  think.  When  he  went  home  he  lay 
down  and  in  the  night  he  had  a  dream.  He  dreamed  that  he  saw  a 
woman.  The  woman  spoke  to  him  and  said:  "I  stay  where  the  crying 

^old  by  Pretty-Crow,  a  young  Skidi  medicine-man,  who  it  is  believed  obtained 
the  story  from  his  present  wife,  the  widow  of  an  old  Skidi  by  the  name  of  Wonder- 
ful-Sun, who  was  both  priest  and  medicine-man.  The  tale  relates  to  the  origin 
of  one  of  the  bundles.  It  was  told  to  emphasize  the  importance  of  economy  in 
corn,  and  also  to  instill  a  reverential  feeling  toward  corn. 


THE  GRAIN-OF-CORN  BUNDLE.  59 

came  from,  and  I  was  glad  that  you  hunted  me  and  tried  to  find  me.  I 
am  going  to  help  you  to  find  me,  and  also  let  you  see  me.  As  soon  as 
the  sun  goes  down  and  it  becomes  a  little  dark,  I  want  you  to  go  to  the 
place  where  you  heard  the  crying.  I  will  be  there,  and  there  you  shall 
see  me  and  I  will  tell  you  some  things  that  you  do  not  know. " 

When  the  man  awoke  he  thought  of  the  woman  he  was  to  see 
that  evening,  and  so  he  watched  and  looked  over  the  country  until 
the  sun  went  down.  He  watched  the  women  passing  through  the  vil- 
lage, and  as  soon  as  the  sun  disappeared  and  it  became  a  little  dark  he 
went  to  the  place  where  he  had  heard  the  cry.  As  soon  as  he  arrived  at 
the  place,  instead  of  hearing  the  crying  he  saw  a  woman.  The  woman 
spoke  to  the  man  and  said,  "Look,  look  at  me,  for  I  am  the  one  who  was 
crying  at  this  place."  The  man  looked  at  the  woman  and  he  saw  that 
she  was  a  fine-looking  woman.  She  said  again:  "Young  man,  when 
the  people  passed  over  this  place  while  hunting  buffalo  they  dropped  me. 
I  have  been  crying  ever  since,  for  you  know  that  the  people  do  not  let  a 
kernel  drop  from  an  ear  of  corn. ' '  Then  the  woman  said, ' '  Look  upon  the 
ground  where  my  feet  rest."  The  man  looked  and  there  he  picked  up 
a  kernel  of  corn.  This  kernel  of  corn  was  speckled.  "Now,"  said  the 
woman,  "pick  me  up  and  always  keep  me  with  you.  My  spirit  is  of 
Mother-Evening-Star,  who  gives  us  the  milk  that  is  in  the  corn.  The 
people  eat  of  us  and  have  life.  The  women  give  the  same  milk  from 
their  breast  when  they  have  children  and  their  children  grow  up  to  be 
men  and  women.  You  must  carry  me  wherever  you  go.  Keep  me  in 
your  quiver  and  my  spirit  will  always  be  with  you. "  The  man  took  the 
kernel  up  and  the  woman  disappeared.  The  man  went  home  and  kept 
the  kernel  close  to  him  all  the  time. 

One  day  he  went  upon  the  war-path  and  tied  the  kernel  to  the 
quiver.  When  he  had  journeyed  for  many  days  the  woman  appeared 
to  him  in  a  dream  and  said:  ' '  The  enemy  is  close  by  you.  You  are  about 
to  reach  their  village. "  The  next  day  the  man  went  out  and  before 
sunset  he  came  in  sight  of  a  village.  He  sat  down  to  rest  and  wait  for 
sunset.  As  night  came  on  he  went  down  towards  the  village.  Before 
he  reached  the  village  he  came  to  a  spotted  pony.  He  got  upon  its 
back  and  rounded  up  several  other  ponies  and  drove  them  to  where  the 
people  were.  When  they  saw  him  coming  alone  with  the  ponies  they 
were  surprised.  That  night  as  he  slept  the  corn-woman  spoke  to  him 
and  said:  "Young  man,  take  me.  Spread  some  buffalo  skins  over  me 
and  cover  me  with  a  calf  hide. "  The  man  did  as  he  was  told  and  the 
kernel  of  corn  was  put  into  a  bundle  and  the  bundle  became  a  sacred  bun- 
dle. The  man  told  his  mother  to  watch  over  the  bundle  and  to  care  for  it. 


6O  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

One  day  he  went  to  the  gambling  grounds,  and  while  there  the  mother 
opened  the  bundle  and  saw  the  kernel  of  corn.  The  woman  picked  it  up 
and  began  to  pray  to  it,  and  promised  it  to  care  for  it,  and  also  asked 
that  she  might  have  many  children.  Then  she  wrapped  the  bundle  up 
and  laid  it  away.  When  the  young  man  came  home  he  did  not  feel  well 
and  so  he  went  to  bed  early.  In  his  dream  he  saw  the  woman  again,  and 
this  woman  said:  "I  am  Corn- Woman.  Your  mother  saw  me  and  asked 
many  things.  All  the  things  that  she  asked  of  me  will  come  true. ' ' 

The  young  man  became  a  good  warrior.  He  brought  home  many 
ponies  and  scalps.  He  said,  ' '  In  the  tribe  is  a  nice-looking  girl  whom 
I  like."  The  Corn- Woman  spoke  to  him  in  a  dream  and  said:  "I 
do  not  want  you  to  marry  for  two  seasons.  When  you  have  received 
my  spirit  and  you  understand  me,  then  you  shall  marry.  You  must 
tell  your  mother  to  place  me  in  a  large  hill  of  earth.  When  a  stalk  grows 
from  the  hill  and  you  find  corn  upon  the  stalk  do  not  eat  it,  but  lay  it 
away.  Then  the  next  spring  tell  your  mother  to  plant  some  more  corn 
and  the  next  fall  there  will  be  a  good  crop  and  you  will  see  how  the  corn 
has  multiplied."  The  young  man  did  as  he  was  told.  As  the  spring 
came  the  mother  placed  the  kernel  in  a  big  hill  of  earth.  In  the  fall  she 
gathered  five  ears  of  corn.  These  she  laid  away  until  the  next  spring; 
then  she  planted  much  more  corn. 

About  that  time  the  young  man  married.  The  young  man  and  his 
wife  had  many  children,  and  their  children  had  children,  and  thus  they 
multiplied  as  did  the  corn.  The  man  said  to  his  mother,  "Mother,  you 
must  never  drop  a  kernel  upon  the  ground  nor  into  the  fireplace,  for  the 
corn  has  life."  The  young  man's  first  child  was  a  girl.  Corn- Woman 
appeared  to  the  man  in  a  dream  and  said:  "I  shall  name  the  girl. 
Call  her  'Woman-Carry-the-Leading-Corn, '  because  her  father  carried 
Mother-Corn  upon  his  back  when  on  the  war-path."  When  Corn- 
Woman  disappeared  she  told  the  man  to  tell  his  people,  when  they  were 
ready  to  plant  corn,  to  pray  first  to  Mother-Corn  and  then  to  Mother- 
Earth.  "When  you  have  placed  the  corn  in  the  earth  then  stand  to 
the  west  and  pray  to  Mother-Evening-Star  to  send  rain  upon  the  earth 
so  that  the  corn  will  grow.  Pray  also  to  Mother-Moon,  who  helps  give 
life  to  people,  and  she  will  listen  to  what  people  say.  Never  drop  a  ker- 
nel upon  the  ground,  for  Mother-Corn  will  curse  you  and  your  life  will 
be  shortened."  Corn- Woman  also  told  the  young  man  that  when  the 
corn-fields  were  high,  all  the  people  were  to  take  their  children  into  the 
fields  and  to  pass  their  hands  over  the  stalks  and  then  over  the  children. 
Thus  the  children  would  grow  and  bad  diseases  would  go  away  from 
them.  Corn- Woman  also  said:  "  When  the  tassels  are  out  then  watch. 


THE  GRAIN-OF-CORN  BUNDLE.  6l 

There  will  be  singing  in  the  fields.  Remember  where  the  singing  comes 
from.  Remember  that  that  is  the  sacred  ear  of  corn.  Take  it  from  the 
stalk  and  take  it  to  the  old  man,  who  will  place  it  in  the  sacred 
bundle  so  that  people  will  know  that  Mother-Corn  did  sing  to  her  peo- 
ple."  The  Pawnee  worship  Mother-Corn,  because  she  represents 
Mother-Evening-Star. 

15.  THE  METEORITE  PEOPLE.1 

Many,  many  years  ago,  before  the  stars  fell  upon  the  earth  (1833) 
there  was  a  wonderful  being  in  the  land  known  as  Pahokatawa 
(Knee-Prints-on-the-Banks-of -the- Water).  This  wonderful  being  had 
been  killed  by  an  enemy.  He  was  cut  up.  The  coyotes  came  and  ate 
of  his  flesh.  The  birds  also  came  and  ate  of  his  flesh.  Some  other 
animals  came  and  ate  of  his  brain.  The  gods  in  the  heavens  agreed 
to  save  this  man  and  send  him  back  to  the  people.  The  gods  let  the 
animals  in  the  earth  know  that  they  wished  this  man  to  live  again.  They 
made  all  the  animals  go  back  to  the  place  where  the  man  lay  and  place 
the  meat  back  where  they  found  it.  The  birds  were  also  told  to  do  the 
same  thing.  When  the  birds  and  animals  and  insects  brought  back 
everything  which  they  had  taken  away,  they  found  that  the  brains  were 
gone.  They  could  not  be  found.  The  gods  placed  a  soft,  downy 
feather  in  the  skull  in  the  place  where  the  brains  had  been. 

After  this  man  had  made  himself  known  to  the  people,  he  came 
to  them  from  the  sky  as  a  meteor  and  would  stay  with  them.  Many 
times  when  the  enemy  were  about  to  attack  their  village  he  came  and 
warned  them  that  the  enemy  were  coming.  The  people  were  put  on 
their  guard,  so  that  they  were  able  to  meet  the  enemy  and  overpower 
them.  While  he  was  with  the  people  at  one  time  he  told  them  that 
something  wonderful  was  going  to  take  place  in  the  heavens;  that  they 
must  not  be  afraid  when  the  meteors  flew  through  the  sky;  that  it  was 
not  time  for  the  world  to  come  to  an  end.  "When  the  meteors  fall," 
said  Pahokatawa,  "among  them  will  be  a  large-sized  one  that  will  fall 
upon  the  plains.  The  thing  will  be  the  shape  of  a  turtle  and  will  have 
many  colors. "  He  said  that  the  meteor  would  fall  upon  the  earth  and 
it  would  cause  other  meteors  to  light  up  and  fly  through  the  sky. 

Many  years  afterward  the  Indian  people  had  their  tipis  in  a  thick- 
timbered  country  near  the  banks  of  the  Platte  River.  The  stars  fell  from 

lTold  by  Buffalo,  an  old  Skidi  medicine-man.  The  meteor  people  referred  to 
in  the  tale  are  those  under  the  special  protection  of  the  Morning-Star.  The  stone 
referred  to  in  the  tale  is  supposed  to  exist  on  a  high,  sandy  hill  in  the  western  part 
of  Nebraska,  Lone-Chief,  a  Skidi,  being  the  only  one  who  knows  of  its  existence; 
while  the  leggings  worn  by  this  Pahokatawa  are  still  in  existence  among  the  Skidi 
and  in  the  possession  of  Lone-Chief. 


62  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

the  heavens.  The  people  became  afraid,  and  began  to  mourn,  thinking 
that  the  world  was  coming  to  an  end.  But  the  leader  of  the  people 
said,  "Remember  the  words  of  Pahokatawa."  The  people  recalled  the 
words,  and  they  knew  then  that  it  was  not  time.  They  went  out  and 
tried  to  catch  the  meteors.  Some  of  the  old  people,  who  are  living 
now,  remember  the  time,  and  say  that  the  stars  flew  around  like  birds. 
Two  or  three  years  after  this  happened,  while  the  Pawnee  were  upon 
a  buffalo  hunt,  two  men  were  walking  over  the  prairie,  when  they 
came  to  a  barren  place.  There  was  no  grass  growing  there  and  the 
men  wondered  why.  It  was  a  smooth,  round  place.  In  the  center 
they  saw  a  stone  sticking  out  and  upon  this  stone  were  many  colors. 
They  began  to  dig  it  out.  It  was  the  shape  of  a  turtle.  The  legs  and 
head  and  even  the  eyes  were  imprinted  upon  it.  They  went  home  and 
told  the  people.  When  Big-Eagle,  the  chief  of  the  Skidi,  heard  of  it,  he 
told  them  that  Pahokatawa  had  promised  them  a  meteor.  They  went 
to  the  place  with  ponies  and  found  the  meteor.  They  placed  it  upon  a 
pony.  It  was  very  heavy  and  the  people  could  not  carry  it.  There 
were  only  a  few  people  who  were  allowed  to  see  it.  When  this  thing 
was  taken  into  the  village  the  people  gathered  around  it  and  offered 
tobacco  and  smoke  to  it.  Priests  were  sent  for  and  they  were  the  ones  to 
offer  the  smoke  from  the  pipe.  This  meteor  was  carried  by  these  peo- 
ple wherever  they  went,  the  old  people  believing  that  it  was  part  of 
the  Morning-Star.  They  kept  it  with  the  Morning-Star  bundle.  When 
the  people  moved  away  from  Nebraska  into  Oklahoma  they  placed  the 
stone  upon  a  high  hill  in  the  western  part  of  the  state.  Lone-Chief,  a 
Skidi,  still  living,  was  one  of  the  party  who  took  the  stone  upon  the  hill 
and  placed  it  there.  He  thinks  the  white  people  have  discovered  it  and 
taken  it  away.  The  people  speak  of  this  meteor  as  having  wonderful 
powers  about  it.  Whenever  the  warriors  were  about  to  go  out  upon  the 
war-path  they  went  to  where  this  meteor  was  kept,  offered  smoke  and 
prayers  to  it,  and  then  they  were  successful  in  overcoming  the  enemy  and 
capturing  their  ponies.  The  people  believed  that  as  long  as  this  stone 
was  present  with  them  bad  disease  could  not  enter  their  camp. 

16.   BUFFALO-WIFE  AND  CORN-WIFE.1 

There  was  a  young  man  who  would  never  go  to  herd  the  ponies,  nor 
join  war  parties,  as  his  companions  did,  but  always  remained  at  home. 
When  he  was  about  twenty  years  of  age,  he  selected  a  hill  and  there 
he  used  to  climb  every  day  and  sit  upon  a  pile  of  stones,  and  look 

1  Told  by  Buffalo,  Skidi.  This  variant  of  a  well-known  tale  teaches  reverence 
and  respect  for  both  the  corn  and  the  buffalo,  and  also  explains  the  part  played  by 
the  buffalo  and  the  corn  in  the  make-up  of  the  sacred  bundles. 


BUFFALO-WIFE  AND   CORN-WIFE.  63 

around  all  day  long.  When  he  came  back  in  the  evening  his  mother 
would  take  a  bowl  of  water  and  wash  his  face,  and  comb  his  hair.  She 
was  very  proud  of  her  son,  for  he  was  a  handsome  youth.  After  a  while 
the  people  noticed  that  the  boy  would  not  associate  with  the  other  boys 
of  the  village,  but  spent  all  of  his  days  alone  on  top  of  the  hill,  and  they 
wondered  why  he  did  this.  Some  said,  "He  is  looking  for  a  girl  to 
marry."  Others  said,  "  He  must  be  a  wonderful  boy. "  Up  to  this  time 
the  people  had  not  suspected  that  he  was  not  of  their  family,  and 
did  not  know  that  he  had  powers  greater  than  theirs.  He  belonged  to 
the  Eagle  family,  and  for  that  reason  his  mother  gave  him  the  name 
Without-Wings. 

One  day  while  he  was  sitting  upon  the  hill,  looking  over  the  country, 
he  heard  singing  from  the  west.  He  listened  again  and  heard  the 
singing  on  the  east  side.  Finally  the  singing  came  closer  to  where  he 
sat.  After  a  while  he  looked  and  saw  that  a  woman  was  coming  from 
the  east  and  singing  as  she  came.  He  heard  someone  singing  behind 
him  and  there  was  another  woman  coming  from  the  west.  The  song 
they  sang  was: 

Without-Wings ,  even  your  mother  looks  at  you  and  her  heart  beats. 
I  look  at  you,  Without-Wings ,  and  my  heart  beats. 

The  woman  from  the  east  was  Buffalo- Woman,  and  the  woman  from 
the  west,  Corn- Woman.  Buffalo- Woman  walked  up  to  the  young  man  and 
sat  down  on  the  right  side  of  him.  The  Corn- Woman  came  up  and  sat 
down  on  the  left  side.  Buffalo- Woman  then  said:  "I  know  you  have 
been  thinking  of  marrying  among  your  people,  but  what  has  been  upper- 
most in  your  mind  is  that  you  want  to  marry  Buffalo- Woman  or  Corn- 
Woman.  I  made  up  my  mind  to  come  to  you.  I  came  and  I  see  this 
other  woman  here.  I  have  brought  you  a  pair  of  moccasins,"  and  she 
placed  the  moccasins  before  him.  Corn- Woman  spoke  and  said: 
"What  Buffalo- Woman  has  said  is  true.  I  also  come  and  bring  you 
moccasins. "  The  young  man  was  puzzled  to  know  which  moccasins  to 
wear.  While  he  pondered  Buffalo- Woman  took  the  right  moccasin  and 
put  it  on  his  right  foot,  and  at  the  same  time  Corn- Woman  took  the  left 
moccasin  and  put  it  on  his  left  foot.  Then  each  of  the  women  took  up 
her  moccasin  which  was  left.  The  young  man  spoke  to  them  and  said: 
' '  I  take  both  of  you.  We  will  now  go  down  to  the  village  and  we  will  go 
into  my  earth-lodge."  The  two  women  followed  the  man  down  into 
the  village.  When  they  approached  the  village  they  saw  a  woman  play- 
ing outside  of  the  lodge  as  if  she  were  a  young  girl.  She  was  the  young 
man 's  mother.  When  she  saw  her  son  coming  with  two  wives  she  ran 


64  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

into  the  lodge  and  put  on  an  old,  ragged  dress.  Then  the  young  man 
took  his  wives  into  the  lodge. 

The  two  women  knew  that  they  both  loved  the  young  man,  and 
they  also  knew  that  his  mother  loved  her  son.  The  mother  was  very 
glad  to  have  the  two  women  to  live  in  the  same  lodge  with  her,  and 
for  a  long  time  they  all  lived  together.  After  a  while  Buffalo- Woman 
began  to  show  signs  of  pregnancy.  When  her  time  was  almost  up  she 
told  the  young  man  that  she  had  to  go  out  upon  the  prairie.  She  went 
out  and  while  upon  the  prairie  she  gave  birth  to  a  male  child.  Soon 
after  Buffalo- Woman  came  back  with  her  child  Corn- Woman  began  to 
show  signs  of  pregnancy.  She  told  her  husband  that  she  had  to  go  into 
the  corn-field,  but  that  she  would  return  in  a  day  or  so.  She  went  into 
the  corn-field  and  there  she  gave  birth  to  a  male  child.  In  a  day  or  so 
she  brought  the  child  to  their  lodge.  They  all  lived  together  happily 
until  the  little  children  grew  up  and  could  walk.  The  children  were 
playing  together  and  the  two  mothers  were  looking  at  them.  Buffalo- 
Woman  gave  her  son  a  little  black  buffalo-horn  spoon.  Corn- Woman 's 
little  boy  wanted  the  black  buffalo-horn  spoon  and  cried  for  it,  but  the 
other  boy  would  not  give  it  up,  and  so  to  quiet  her  son,  Corn- Woman 
gave  him  an  ear  of  black  corn.  When  little  Buffalo-Boy  saw  the  corn 
he  wanted  it,  but  Corn-Boy  refused  to  give  it  to  him,  and  so  they  began 
to  quarrel  and  fight.  Then  the  mothers  became  angry  at  each  other, 
and  before  Without- Wings  knew  anything  about  it,  Buffalo- Woman 
ran  away  with  her  boy.  After  Buffalo- Woman  and  her  child  were  gone, 
Corn- Woman  wanted  to  go  to  her  home.  Without- Wings  wanted  to  go 
with  Corn- Woman,  but  Corn- Woman  told  him  that  it  would  not  do  for 
him  to  go  with  her,  and  that  he  had  better  follow  Buffalo-Woman. 
She  told  him  that  although  he  could  not  see  her  she  would  always  be 
present  with  him  and  would  help  him.  When  she  said  this  she  and  the 
boy  disappeared  and  they  went  back  into  the  under-world. 

Early  in  the  morning  Without-Wings  took  the  shape  of  an 
Eagle  and  flew  up  into  the  air  and  flew  towards  the  east.  He  had  not 
gone  far  when  he  saw  a  Buffalo  cow  and  her  calf.  Without-Wings  flew 
above  them  all  day,  and  in  the  evening  the  Buffalo  cow  turned  into  a 
woman  and  said  that  she  was  going  to  set  up  a  tipi.  The  woman  set 
up  a  tipi  and  began  to  cook  something  to  eat.  The  calf  turned  into  a 
boy  and  played  about  his  mother.  Without-Wings  then  flew  down, 
turned  himself  into  a  man  and  went  up  to  the  tipi.  Buffalo-Woman 
would  not  look  at  him,  but  the  little  boy  ran  up  to  his  father  and  brought 
him  something  to  eat  and  told  him  of  their  travels.  After  they  had 
eaten  they  all  lay  down  and  went  to  sleep.  Early  in  the  following 


BUFFALO-WIFE    AND    CORN-WIFE.  65 

morning  the  woman  turned  herself  and  her  son  into  Buffalo  and  went 
off,  leaving  Without-Wings  asleep.  When  he  awoke  he  looked  around 
and  found  that  there  was  no  one  near.  He  turned  himself  into  an  Eagle 
and  flew  into  the  air  for  a  little  distance,  and  there  he  saw  the  Buffalo  and 
the  little  calf  going  through  a  thickly  timbered  country  where  they 
thought  no  one  would  come.  The  Buffalo  cow  did  not  know  that  With- 
out-Wings was  flying  overhead  and  she  and  the  calf  went  on  until  even- 
ing came  upon  them.  Then  the  Buffalo  cow  turned  into  a  woman  again, 
set  up  a  tipi  and  began  to  cook,  and  the  calf  turned  into  a  boy  again. 
Without-Wings  came  again.  The  woman  would  not  notice  him,  but  the 
little  boy  would  go  up  to  his  father  and  give  him  something  to  eat. 
Early  the  next  morning  the  woman  and  the  child  awoke,  turned  into 
Buffalo,  made  the  tipi  disappear,  and  left  Without-Wings  on  the  ground, 
as  they  had  done  before. 

When  Without-Wings  awoke  he  found  that  the  woman  and  the  child 
had  gone  again.  He  turned  himself  into  an  Eagle  and  flew  away,  and 
as  he  flew  he  saw  the  Buffalo  cow  coming  to  a  wide  stream  of  water. 
The  Buffalo  cow  swam  and  carried  the  calf  on  her  back.  The  cow 
became  tired,  but  she  finally  crossed  the  stream  of  water  and  then  stopped 
to  rest.  After  she  had  rested  she  said:  "My  boy,  your  father  will  never 
be  able  to  cross  that  water.  Now  we  will  go  on. "  She  did  not  know 
that  Without-Wings  was  flying  above  her.  They  went  on,  and  when 
evening  came  again  the  Buffalo  turned  into  a  woman  and  put  up 
her  tipi.  When  she  had  the  tipi  up,  and  was  cooking,  Without-Wings 
came  into  the  tipi.  The  woman  was  surprised,  but  she  would  not 
notice  him.  Early  the  next  morning  the  woman  and  her  son  arose  and 
she  said:  "We  must  hurry,  my  son,  for  we  must  cross  some  high  moun- 
tains. When  we  have  crossed  these  mountains  your  father  can  never 
overtake  us,  because  he  can  not  climb  the  steep  mountains."  They 
started  and  went  across  the  mountains.  When  Without-Wings  woke 
up  he  found  that  they  were  gone,  and  again  he  turned  into  an  Eagle  and 
flew  up  and  saw  the  Buffalo  and  the  calf  crossing  the  mountains.  To- 
wards evening  the  Buffalo  cow  did  not  run  quite  so  fast,  and  she  told  the 
calf  that  the  next  day  they  would  be  back  to  their  home  where  their  peo- 
ple were.  As  they  were  going  over  the  mountains  she  told  him  that  his 
father  could  not  come  that  way ;  but  that  if  he  did  come  she  wanted  him 
to  tell  his  father,  that  he  had  a  grandmother  who  was  very  cruel  and  that 
she  would  kill  him  if  he  came  farther. 

In  the  evening ,  after  they  had  passed  the  mountains,  the  Buffalo  cow 
stopped  and  turned  into  a  woman  again.  She  put  up  her  tipi  and  began 
to  cook.  After  a  while  Without-Wings  came  down  from  the  mountains 


66  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

and  entered  the  tipi.  The  woman  was  surprised,  but  she  would  not 
look  at  him.  The  little  boy  gave  the  father  something  to  eat.  In  the 
night,  when  they  lay  down  to  sleep,  the  boy  left  his  mother  and  went  over 
and  lay  down  with  his  father.  The  father  then  asked  the  boy  questions 
and  the  boy  told  him  all  about  their  travel.  Then  the  boy  said:  "My 
father,  when  you  come  to  our  lodge  in  the  village  of  the  Buffalo  be  care- 
ful that  the  stone  at  the  entrance  does  not  fall  down  upon  you  as  you  come 
in.  My  grandmother  is  a  witch  and  she  kills  all  handsome  men  who  come 
through  that  doorway.  When  you  come  into  the  door  she  will  say, 
'  Now  go  and  find  your  wife. '  There  will  be  many  buffalo  that  look 
just  like  my  mother,  but  I  will  be  playing  with  some  other  calves,  and  I 
will  run  up  to  my  mother  and  I  will  rub  my  tongue  at  the  root  of  my 
mother's  tail,  so  that  you  can  distinguish  her  from  the  others.  Then 
there  will  be  gathered  together  a  lot  of  little  calves  and  I  will  be  among 
them,  and  when  you  come  to  find  me  among  the  calves  I  will  shake  my 
left  ear  a  little,  and  then  you  will  take  hold  of  me  and  say  that  I  am  your 
son.  Then  my  grandmother  will  try  to  make  you  do  some  other  hard 
things,  but  I  will  help  you." 

While  the  boy  was  telling  his  father  all  these  things,  his  mother  woke 
up,  and  then  they  all  arose  and  walked  together  into  the  village. 
When  they  came  to  the  tipi  of  the  Buffalo  cow  she  and  her  son 
went  in.  Before  entering,  Without- Wings  looked  inside  and  saw  a  big 
Bear  ready  to  jump  upon  him.  He  spoke  to  the  Bear  and  said,  "Be 
still."  When  he  said  that,  the  large  rock  used  for  the  entrance  moved 
so  that  the  entrance  was  wide  open.  Without- Wings  started  to  go  in , 
but  the  stone  fell  just  as  he  was  going  through  the  entrance.  As  the 
stone  fell  Without-Wings  turned  into  a  soft  downy  feather,  and  as  the 
large  rock  fell  it  brought  the  wind  down  with  it,  and  the  wind  blew 
the  downy  feather  inside  before  the  rock  could  fall  upon  it.  From  the 
feather  Without-Wings  arose  and  the  old  witch  was  surprised  to  see 
him  standing  there.  She  told  him  that  he  would  have  to  hunt  his  wife. 

There  were  many  other  cows  with  his  wife,  and  the  witch  did  not  think 
that  he  could  tell  his  wife  from  the  others.  He  went  among  the  cows 
and  selected  his  wife,  for  he  saw  the  mark  that  his  boy  had  promised  to 
put  upon  his  mother's  tail.  The  old  Buffalo  cow  then  said:  "Without- 
Wings  must  be  tired.  I  want  him  to  go  into  the  sweat-lodge."  The 
little  calf  asked  Without-Wings  if  he  wanted  to  go  into  the  sweat-lodge, 
and  he  said,  "Yes,  I  would  like  to  go."  The  old  witch  brought  the 
stones  and  put  them  on  the  fire  so  that  they  would  be  red  hot.  Without- 
Wings  went  into  the  sweat-lodge,  and  then  the  old  Buffalo  cow  went 
and  invited  six  bulls  to  come  and  lie  around  the  sweat-lodge,  so  that  the 


BUFFALO-WIFE    AND    CORN-WIFE.  67 

man  could  not  get  out.  Then  she  went  into  the  sweat-lodge.  She  took  a 
large  buffalo-horn  spoon  and  dipped  water  from  a  bucket  and  poured  the 
water  upon  the  hot  stones.  The  steam  began  to  come  down  upon  their 
naked  bodies,  and  when  it  became  too  hot  the  man  turned  himself  into 
a  Badger  and  dug  into  the  ground  so  that  only  his  mouth  and  head  stuck 
out  of  the  ground.  While  the  witch  was  grunting  and  making  her  medi- 
cine upon  the  hot  stones,  Without- Wings  would  call  to  her  and  say, 
"Pour  some  more  water  on  the  stones,  old  woman,  for  this  is  not  warm 
enough  for  me."  The  witch  thought  that  by  pouring  water  upon  the 
red-hot  stones  she  could  scald  the  man  to  death,  but  she  found  that  she 
was  getting  the  place  too  hot  for  herself,  and  so  she  asked  that  they  get 
out  of  the  lodge.  They  left  the  lodge  and  the  man  saw  the  Buffalo  bulls 
around  the  sweat-lodge.  When  the  bulls  saw  the  man  coming  out 
uninjured  they  jumped  up  and  ran  away  from  the  place. 

A  few  days  afterwards  the  old  witch  told  Without-Wings  that  he 
must  go  after  some  wood,  and  she  sent  him  to  a  place  where  there  was  a 
tree  with  an  Eagle's  nest  upon  it.  It  was  a  place  where  no  one  had 
ever  been  before,  but  Without-Wings  went.  When  he  came  near  to 
the  tree  where  the  Eagle's  nest  was,  a  storm  began  to  brew  in  the  sky 
right  overhead,  and  the  lightning  struck  all  around  him.  Without- 
Wings  spoke  to  the  Eagles  and  told  them  who  he  was,  and  then  the  light- 
ning stopped  and  the  storm  passed.  He  gathered  the  wood  and  took  it 
to  the  old  witch ,  who  was  greatly  surprised,  for  she  thought  that  the 
lightning  would  kill  him,  as  it  had  all  others  who  had  tried  to  go  there. 

A  few  days  afterwards  the  old  Buffalo  cow  challenged  Without- 
Wings  to  run  a  race  with  her.  Without-Wings  thought  that  she 
would  run  about  forty  or  fifty  yards,  but  when  she  explained  the  length 
of  the  race,  he  knew  that  she  was  going  to  run  to  the  four  world  quarters. 
She  said:  "If  you  should  beat  me,  then  the  people  will  be  allowed  to 
live  upon  the  buffalo.  If  I  beat  you,  the  buffalo  shall  live  upon  the 
people. "  When  they  got  ready  to  run  the  race,  Without-Wings  turned 
himself  into  a  Magpie.  When  they  started  the  witch  had  a  cane,  and 
this  cane  she  pointed  as  far  as  her  eyes  could  see,  and  then  she  was  there. 
Again  she  pointed  the  cane  as  far  as  her  eye  could  see  and  again  she  was 
there.  In  this  way  she  traveled,  going  at  a  single  step  as  far  as  her  eye 
could  see,  and  so  she  was  far  ahead  of  Without-Wings.  He  commanded 
the  Badgers  to  dig  holes  all  around  so  that  she  would  fall  into  these  holes 
while  he  would  gain  on  her. 

The  Badgers  began  to  dig  and  soon  the  witch  began  to  fall.  She  fell 
so  often  that  Without-Wings  finally  passed  her  and  left  her  away  behind. 
He  continued  running  and  finally  he  went  all  the  way  around  the  world 


68  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

and  came  back.  When  Without- Wings  came  back  the  witch  also  came 
back.  She  went  to  her  lodge  and  spoke  to  the  stone  over  the  entrance, 
so  that  it  would  not  fall  upon  her.  Then  she  called  the  Buffalo  and 
they  came  out  from  the  earth.  She  tried  to  get  the  Buffalo  away,  but 
With  out- Wings  ran  into  the  cave  and  chased  them  out,  and  so  many 
came,  that  they  seemed  to  cover  the  earth. 

Without- Wings  then  came  outside  of  the  cave,  and  whenever  he  saw 
a  Buffalo  that  he  thought  was  no  good  he  drove  it  back  into  the  cave. 
There  was  one  Buffalo  that  had  two  heads.  Without- Wings  drove  it 
back  into  the  cave.  There  came  out  some  spotted  Buffalo,  and  these 
Without- Wings  did  not  like  and  so  drove  them  back.  He  forgot,  how- 
ever, to  drive  back  some  of  the  white  Buffalo  which  came  out  with  the 
other  Buffalo.  When  the  earth  was  covered  with  Buffalo,  the  old  witch 
pushed  back  the  stone  into  the  cave  and  closed  it  up.  After  that  she 
tried  to  make  love  to  Without- Wings.  She  treated  him  very  kindly 
and  she  told  him  that  he  must  not  drink  any  poor,  ragged  woman 's  water. 

One  day  while  Without- Wings  was  walking  around  he  saw  an  old,  rag- 
ged woman  coming  with  water.  He  thought  he  would  get  a  drink,  and 
after  he  had  drunk  from  the  woman 's  water,  the  village  became  excited, 
saying,  " Without- Wings  drank  the  chief's  water."  The  woman  who 
was  bringing  the  water  was  the  chief's  wife.  Then  the  chief  became 
angry,  and  he  began  to  dig  up  the  earth  and  throw  the  dust  up  into  the 
air.  His  body  was  nothing  but  bones,  but  he  ruled  over  the  village  of 
Buffalo.  Without- Wings  fixed  his  arrow  and  went  against  the  chief. 
He  heard  a  mocking-bird  singing,  and  it  said:  "There  is  an  open 
place  upon  the  chest  of  that  bony  Buffalo  chief.  If  you  shoot  into  that 
opening  you  will  kill  him.  If  you  miss  that  hole  then  you  will  be 
killed. "  Without- Wings  took  aim  and  shot  the  skeleton  Buffalo  in  the 
chest  and  killed  him.  Then  the  Buffalo  had  no  chief.  They  told 
Without- Wings  that  they  had  no  leader  any  longer  and  so  they  would 
form  into  herds  and  go  their  way.  After  they  had  divided  into  many 
herds  and  scattered,  Without- Wings  went  back  to  his  own  people. 

17.  THE  POOR  BOY  WHO  MARRIED  THE  CHIEF'S  DAUGHTER.1 

There  was  a  village  of  people.  In  the  village  was  a  boy  who  was 
very  poor.  He  had  no  home.  He  was  very  dirty  and  had  hardly 
anything  with  which  to  cover  himself.  When  the  people  moved  away 
from  their  village  and  went  upon  a  hunt,  this  boy  would  always  be  left 

1  Told  by  Little-Chief,  Chaui.  This  is  a  true  tale  related  during  the  intermission 
of  the  ceremony,  and  presents  all  the  elements  of  a  hero  tale.  It  especially  teaches 
the  poor  boy  the  possibility  of  success  through  great  effort,  and  also  serves  as  a 
warning  to  maidens  of  the  higher  classes  not  to  make  fun  of  the  poor  boys.  f..  ^_  _, 


THE  POOR  BOY   WHO   MARRIED   THE    CHIEF  *S    DAUGHTER.  69 

behind.  The  boy  would  go  through  the  village  picking  up  pieces  of 
sinew  and  pieces  of  meat  which  had  been  dropped  by  the  people.  These 
he  ate  and  then  followed  on.  When  he  would  arrive  at  the  camp  he 
would  enter  some  of  the  lodges  for  something  to  eat.  The  poorer  class 
of  people  were  very  good  to  him,  but  the  people  who  were  well-to-do 
did  not  like  the  boy. 

One  day  the  boy  decided  that  he  would  enter  the  tipi  of  the  chief.  As 
soon  as  he  entered  the  tipi  the  chief's  daughter  spoke  and  said  to  the 
poor  boy:  "You  dirty,  good-for-nothing  boy,  go  on  out.  I  do  not 
like  you.  I  do  not  want  you  in  our  lodge. "  The  father  of  the  girl  said 
to  the  boy:  "You  may  be  seated.  When  the  girl  cooks  something  to 
eat  you  shall  have  some  of  it. "  The  girl  was  angry  and  refused  to  cook. 
She  told  the  poor  boy  that  if  he  wanted  anything  to  eat  he  had  to  go  for 
water  for  her.  The  poor  boy  went  for  the  water.  After  the  boy  had 
eaten  something  from  the  tipi  of  the  chief,  he  went  through  the  village 
and  slept  at  another  place.  After  that,  although  the  girl  did  not  like 
the  boy,  the  boy  went  to  their  tipi.  She  called  him  names  and  made 
him  do  things  for  her,  such  as  carry  wood  and  pack  water.  One  time  the 
poor  boy,  on  entering  the  lodge  of  the  chief,  saw  the  girl  by  herself. 

The  girl  saw  the  poor  boy  come,  and  she  said,  "You  dirty,  good-for- 
nothing  boy,  go  on  out  of  this  tipi  or  I  will  get  a  stick  and  drive  you  out. " 
The  boy  did  not  move.  The  girl  picked  up  the  stick,  went  up  to  the  boy, 
and  hit  him  upon  the  back  several  times.  The  boy  ran  out  and  went 
through  the  village  crying.  He  went  outside  of  the  village  and  there 
he  stood  upon  a  little  hill  and  cried. 

The  next  day  when  the  people  broke  camp  there  was  left  behind 
a  poor,  broken-down,  crippled  horse.  This  horse  was  a  bay  horse. 
It  had  been  a  very  fine  horse,  but  somehow  the  horse  had  its  ankle 
un jointed  and  it  had  grown  large.  The  horse  became  very  poor,  for  the 
people  who  owned  it  never  took  any  more  care  of  it.  This  pony  was 
left  behind  by  the  owners.  The  boy  saw  the  horse,  went  up  to  it,  and 
spoke  to  it.  Then  he  took  his  robe  and  with  his  knife  he  cut  his  robe 
into  strings,  so  that  he  had  a  lariat  rope  for  the  pony.  He  led  the  pony 
on.  The  pony  could  hardly  walk.  When  he  came  near  to  the  village 
he  left  the  pony  in  the  valley  where  there  was  good  grass.  He  went  into 
the  village  and  there  he  remained.  When  it  was  daylight  he  went  to 
where  his  pony  was.  For  several  days  they  traveled  behind  the  people, 
but  soon  the  pony  began  to  gain,  so  that  now  it  had  flesh.  At  this 
time  the  boy  was  quite  large,  so  that  when  he  entered  the  village 
many  people  called  to  him  to  do  work  for  them.  He  never  would  go 
near  the  tipi  of  the  chief  any  more. 


yo  TRUE  STORIES  OP  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

On  one  of  the  journeys,  as  the  boy  was  leading  the  pony  along,  the 
pony  said  to  him:  "My  son,  I  have  taken  pity  on  you.  lunjointed  my 
ankle  so  that  the  owners  would  give  me  up.  There  is  nothing  wrong  with 
my  ankle.  This  evening  when  we  get  to  the  village,  tie  me  close  to  the 
village  and  walk  toward  the  village.  Go  straight  to  the  tipi  of  the  chief 
and  there  you  may  sit  down  at  the  entrance.  If  the  girl  tells  you  to  go 
for  water,  you  must  go.  If  she  tells  you  to  get  wood,  you  get  it.  From 
this  night  on  this  girl  is  to  think  about  you  and  she  shall  not  rest  until 
you  have  married  her.  I  know  she  hates  you,  but  that  hatred  will  now 
turn  into  love. "  When  they  came  to  the  village  the  boy  left  the  pony 
outside  and  walked  into  the  village.  As  soon  as  he  saw  the  chief 's  tipi 
he  walked  fast.  He  entered  the  tipi  and  sat  down.  The  girl  said:  "You 
dirty,  nasty  thing.  What  brought  you  here?  Go  out  of  this  tipi  or  I 
will  hit  you  with  this  stick  again. "  Her  father  said,  "No,  do  not  drive 
the  boy  away  from  this  lodge. "  Then  she  said,  "If  he  wants  anything 
to  eat  let  him  go  and  get  some  water  for  me  and  I  will  then  give  him 
some  meat." 

The  boy  went  down  to  the  creek  and  brought  up  the  water. 
When  he  entered  the  lodge  he  placed  the  bucket  of  water  close  to  the 
fireplace.  Then  he  came  out  and  went  away  without  receiving  any- 
thing to  eat  from  the  girl.  The  girl  began  to  look  for  the  poor  boy,  for 
she  had  some  meat  for  him,  but  she  could  not  find  him.  She  kept  look- 
ing around  for  the  boy  until  at  last  she  went  into  the  tipi  and  picked  up 
her  robe  and  went  out.  Then  she  went  from  one  tipi  to  another  hunt- 
ing for  the  boy.  The  boy  was  not  to  be  found  in  the  village.  Then  she 
went  to  where  his  pony  was  tied.  There  she  found  him  lying  down  near 
to  the  pony.  She  went  up  to  him  and  shook  him.  The  boy  told  the 
girl  to  go  away,  that  he  wanted  to  sleep.  But  the  girl  put  her  arms 
around  the  boy  and  said:  "Poor  boy,  do  you  know  that  I  have  been 
thinking  about  you?  I  have  gone  around  through  the  village  thinking 
of  you  and  I  could  not  sleep.  I  have  been  thinking  of  you  all  this  time. 
Make  haste.  Let  us  get  away  from  this  place,  for  the  people  will  make 
fun  of  me  for  marrying  you,  but  from  this  day  on  you  shall  be  my  hus- 
band." The  boy  said,  "You  must  go  and  get  your  awl,  sinew,  bow  and 
arrows,  and  knife."  The  girl  said,  "I  can  get  them."  She  went  into 
her  tipi  and  brought  out  the  things  which  the  boy  wanted.  They  went 
down  into  a  ravine  where  the  timber  was  thick,  close  to  the  village,  and 
there  they  remained. 

The  next  day  the  people  hunted  for  the  girl,  but  they  could  not  find 
her.  After  four  days  the  people  gave  her  up  and  they  noticed  also 
that  the  poor  boy  was  missing.  Some  people  said,  "That  poor  boy 


THE  POOR  BOY  WHO  MARRIED  THE  CHIEF  S  DAUGHTER.  71 

must  have  stolen  the  chief's  daughter."  Others  made  fun  of  him.  In 
a  few  days,  however,  the  enemy  attacked  the  village.  The  boy  was 
spoken  to  by  the  pony.  It  said  to  the  boy,  "Make  haste;  we  must  go 
and  join  in  the  battle."  The  boy  took  the  quiver  filled  with  arrows, 
put  it  over  his  shoulder,  got  on  the  pony,  and  went  to  the  scene.  The 
people  were  already  fighting.  When  the  people  saw  the  poor  boy  com- 
ing on  his  poor  horse  they  made  fun  of  him.  But  when  the  poor  boy 
saw  an  enemy  in  the  center  he  rode  right  into  the  enemy,  and  as  he  rode 
up  against  the  enemy  the  people  thought  that  his  horse  had  fallen  and 
that  he  had  got  up  and  got  on  a  horse  belonging  to  the  enemy.  But 
this  was  a  trick  of  the  poor  pony  so  that  the  people  would  not  recognize 
it  as  the  poor  crippled  pony.  After  the  boy  had  counted  coup,  and  it 
seemed  as  if  he  had  taken  a  pony  from  the  enemy,  he  returned  to  the 
village  and  then  to  the  hollow.  Some  of  the  men  said,  "I  wonder 
where  that  boy  came  from?"  After  the  battle  the  poor  boy  disap- 
peared. In  a  few  days  the  enemy  attacked  the  village  again.  This  time 
the  boy  went  up  to  the  village.  He  had  red  clay  all  over  his  body. 
The  clay  had  been  given  to  him  by  the  horse.  He  got  upon  the  horse 
and  entered  the  line  of  fighters.  There  he  killed  an  enemy  and  took 
his  horse.  Then  he  rode  back  into  the  timber  where  his  wife  was.  He 
gave  the  pony  which  he  had  taken  from  the  enemy  to  his  wife.  The 
people  wondered  what  had  become  of  the  poor  boy. 

A  few  days  afterwards  the  village  was  again  attacked  by  the  enemy. 
This  time  when  he  went  into  the  fight  the  people  knew  him.  He  killed 
another  enemy,  took  his  scalp,  and  went  to  his  place.  The  fourth  time 
when  the  enemy  attacked  the  village  the  boy  remained  in  the  battle. 
Then  the  people  knew  that  it  was  the  poor  boy  who  had  done  all  the 
killing  in  the  other  fights. 

After  the  fighting  was  over,  and  the  people  had  had  three  or 
four  days'  rejoicing  for  killing  the  enemy,  the  old  man  who  was  the 
crier  for  the  people  went  through  the  village  and  notified  the  people 
that  the  next  day  they  were  to  break  camp  and  leave.  The  next  day  as 
the  people  were  breaking  camp  the  poor  boy  and  the  girl  came  out  from 
their  hiding  place  and  entered  the  village.  The  boy  was  all  dressed  in 
buckskins  and  so  was  his  wife.  When  the  people  saw  the  poor  boy  with 
the  daughter  of  the  chief,  the  young  man  who  tried  to  marry  her  thought 
that  her  mind  was  not  right  because  she  had  married  the  poor  boy. 
When  the  chief  heard  that  his  daughter  was  married  to  the  poor  boy 
he  was  glad  of  it,  for  he  said,  "This  poor  boy  is  a  great  warrior  and  he 
has  shown  it  in  battle."  After  all  the  poor  boy  married  the  girl  who 
hated  him. 


72  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

18.  THE  CANNIBAL  WITCH  AND  THE  BOY  WHO  CONQUERED  THE  BUFFALO.1 

There  was  a  lonely  tipi  upon  a  prairie,  and  in  it  there  lived  an  old 
woman  who  was  known  as  the  Witch-  Woman.  There  lived  with  her  a  poor 
boy  who  had  great  powers.  They  had  four  powerful  dogs.  One  of  the 
dogs,  which  was  large  and  bob-tailed,  was  named  Afraid-of-Nothing. 
The  woman  wore  a  black  skirt  which  was  made  from  black  buffalo-hide, 
and  black  moccasins.  About  her  waist  she  wore  a  piece  of  black  buffalo- 
hide.  The  boy  wore  black  moccasins  and  buckskin  leggings.  The  hair 
of  the  buckskin  was  not  scraped  off,  so  that  the  leggings  had  hair 
on  the  outside.  He  had  no  shirt,  but  always  wore  a  buffalo-robe  that 
was  painted  yellow.  The  boy  had  a  black  bow  with  white  bowstring. 
The  bow  had  only  four  arrows,  and  they  were  all  black.  The  boy  was 
a  great  hunter.  He  killed  many  deer  and  buffalo.  Once  in  a  while  the 
Buffalo  came  close  to  their  tipi,  then  would  run  away.  The  old  woman 
often  said:  "Grandson,  go  and  kill  a  man  for  me;  I  can  not  eat  the  kind 
of  meat  you  eat,  for  it  is  very  tough;  I  am  hungry  and  want  to  eat  some- 
thing tender;  the  human  meat  is  so  much  like  liver  that  I  like  it."  The 
boy  would  go  far  into  another  country,  and  when  he  came  to  a  village  of 
people  he  would  hide  and  wait.  When  a  man  came  his  way  the  boy 
would  kill  the  man,  throw  him  upon  his  back,  and  then  would  run.  The 
people  often  pursued  the  boy,  and  when  they  had  nearly  overtaken  him 
he  would  take  one  of  his  arrows  and  shoot.  As  the  arrow  flew,  the  boy 
and  his  load  would  disappear,  for  he  sat  upon  the  point  of  the  arrow,  so 
that  the  arrow  carried  him  and  his  load.  The  people  would  turn  back 
and  the  boy  would  safely  reach  the  tipi  of  the  old  Witch-  Woman,  and 
she  would  eat  the  human  flesh. 

The  Buffalo  were  aware  that  the  old  woman  was  eating  human  flesh 
and  they  became  angry.  They  held  a  council  and  the  chief  of  the 
bulls,  who  had  a  white  spot  on  his  forehead,  said:  "Let  us  bring  the 
young  man  here  and  kill  him,  so  that  the  old  woman  will  have  to  stop 


^old  by  Curly-Hair,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  recounts  the  deeds  of  a  wonder- 
ful boy  who  lived  with  Witch-Woman  and  overcame  the  buffalo,  whereby  man 
thereafter  lived  upon  buffalo  and  corn  and  the  buffalo  no  longer  ate  human  beings. 
The  story  is  supposed  to  be  true.  It  also  explains  the  origin  of  the  Pawnee, 
an  agricultural  people,  on  the  one  hand,  and  other  tribes,  such  as  the  Cheyenne, 
Arapaho,  etc.,  the  nomadic  buffalo-hunting,  warlike  tribes,  on  the  other.  The 
story  is  frequently  told  by  grandmothers  to  their  grandchildren,  both  boys  and 
girls,  during  the  winter  nights.  It  secures  their  interest  in  wonderful  events,  and 
inspires  the  hope  in  them  that  they  too  may  some  day  roam  over  the  prairie  and  learn 
the  wonderful  powers  of  some  animal,  and  ultimately  become  great  medicine-men. 
The  Chaui  have  a  version  of  this  tale  not  represented  in  this  collection,  in  which  the 
four  dogs  of  this  tale  are  represented  by  the  wild-cat,  bear,  mountain-lion,  and 
wolf,  which  it  may  be  noted  are  the  warriors  of  the  Morning-Star  and  the  representa- 
tives of  the  gods  of  the  four  world  quarters. 


THE  CANNIBAL  WITCH  AND  THE  BOY  WHO  CONQUERED  THE  BUFFALO.  73 

eating  people.  "  The  Buffalo  all  said,  "Nawa. "  It  was  decided  to  send 
two  young  Buffalo  cows  to  the  boy's  tipi  to  tell  him  that  the  Buffalo 
wanted  him.  While  the  Buffalo  were  sitting  in  council,  planning  how 
they  could  kill  the  boy,  the  boy  sat  on  a  high  hill,  and  kept  swaying  his 
head  from  right  to  left,  and  as  he  swayed  his  head  he  listened.  All 
at  once  he  arose  and  said:  "Someone  wants  me."  He  went  down  to 
the  tipi  and  said:  "Grandmother,  I  am  going  on  a  long  journey;  is  there 
anything  you  want?"  The  old  woman  looked  at  the  boy,  and  said: 
"Look,  my  grandson;  here  is  only  a  small  piece  of  human  meat  for  me. 
Go  and  kill  four  men  and  bring  them  to  me,  so  that  I  shall  have  plenty 
tc  sat,  and  in  the  night  I  will  sleep  in  the  midst  of  the  dead  men. "  The 
boy  was  glad.  He  started  at  once  and  went  to  a  village,  where  he  killed 
one  man.  He  carried  the  dead  man  to  old  Witch's  tipi  without  any 
trouble.  He  went  back  to  the  village  and  killed  another  man,  but  some 
of  the  people  saw  him  and  went  after  him;  but  they  were  too  late,  for  the 
boy  had  disappeared  and  had  taken  the  man  to  his  tipi.  His  grand- 
mother was  glad,  for  now  she  had  two  men.  The  boy  went  again  to  the 
village,  and  this  time  he  found  it  hard  to  kill  anyone,  but  finally  he  suc- 
ceeded in  killing  a  young  man.  He  ran,  the  people  following  him. 

When  the  people  came  close  to  the  boy  he  took  his  bow  and  shot. 
Again  the  people  lost  the  boy.  He  went  home  and  told  his  grandmother 
of  his  narrow  escape;  but  his  grandmother  said:  "My  grandson,  you 
have  but  one  more  to  kill;  you  may  be  gone  a  long  time,  and  I  shall  use 
up  my  best  meat  in  the  meantime. "  The  boy  took  courage  and  went 
back  to  the  village.  The  first  man  he  saw  he  killed,  threw  him  upon  his 
back,  and  fled.  The  people  ran  after  him,  but  whenever  the  boy  ran 
over  a  hill  he  disappeared,  and  came  up  on  another  hill.  The  people 
were  so  close  to  the  boy  that  they  could  see  that  he  wore  deerskin  leg- 
gings and  had  a  yellow  robe  over  his  body  and  they  thought  that  he 
must  be  a  deer.  The  young  man  reached  his  tipi  and  threw  down 
the  dead  man.  He  was  angry  and  said:  "Grandmother,  I  do  not  see 
why  you  want  to  eat  people;  I  feel  sorry  for  those  people;"  but  the  old 
woman  said:  "Grandson,  go  and  kill  one  more  for  your  grandmother 
and  she  will  be  happy. "  The  boy  said:  "No;  now  I  can  go  on  my  long 
journey.  Tie  up  the  dogs,  and,  after  I  am  gone,  untie  all  of  them  except 
Afraid-of-Nothing.  Keep  him  tied. "  The  old  woman  tied  up  the  dogs 
and  the  boy  went  off  towards  the  west. 

For  many  days  he  traveled,  but  during  all  of  that  time  he  never  saw 
any  game,  so  that  he  was  very  hungry.  Just  as  he  was  about  to  climb  a 
hill  he  saw  two  Buffalo  coming  up  on  the  top  of  the  hill.  The  boy  hid 
until  the  Buffalo  came  close  to  his  hiding  place,  then  he  rose  up  and  shot 
one  through  the  sides,  so  that  it  fell  and  died.  The  other  ran  away  to  a 


74  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

ravine  close  by.  The  boy  went  to  the  dead  Buffalo  and  cut  into  its  back 
in  such  manner  that  he  cut  out  one  of  the  kidneys  and  was  about  to  eat 
it  raw,  when  some  one  spoke  to  him.  The  voice  came  from  behind  him 
and  said:  "Son,  I  am  sorry  you  cut  her  in  that  way.  Put  back  what 
you  have  in  your  hand,  and  be  sure  to  put  it  in  its  place,  then  walk 
away  and  do  not  look." 

The  boy  turned  around  and  there  stood  a  woman.  The  woman  had 
a  new  buffalo  robe  over  her.  Her  hair  was  not  plaited.  The  woman 
said:  "That  Buffalo  and  myself  came  after  you,  and  now  you  have  killed 
her.  Walkaway."  The  boy  walked  away.  The  woman  turned  to  the 
Buffalo,  fell  down,  and  pushed  the  dead  Buffalo  around  until  the  dead 
Buffalo  moved  and  rose  up.  The  woman  who  had  spoken  to  the  boy 
was  a  Buffalo,  the  mate  of  the  other.  As  the  two  Buffalo  circled,  one 
staggering,  the  other  pushing,  the  boy  looked  around  and  there  were 
two  Buffalo  going  around  in  a  circle.  The  boy  stood  and  watched. 
After  the  Buffalo  that  was  killed  walked  away,  the  other  came  and 
said:  "It  is  all  right  now;  go  to  yonder  hollow  and  wait  and  we  will 
come,  for  we  want  to  talk  with  you. " 

The  boy  went  to  the  hollow  and  waited.  The  two  Buffalo  went  to 
another  hollow;  there  they  rolled  upon  the  ground  and  turned  them- 
selves into  women.  Then  they  went  where  the  young  man  was,  and  the 
two  women  sat  down  beside  him.  When  they  had  seated  themselves 
one  of  the  women  said:  "We  understand  that  you  have  wonderful 
powers.  When  you  go  and  kill  people  and  the  people  pursue  you,  you 
do  something  and  you  get  away  from  the  people.  Is  this  all  true? "  The 
boy  said,  "Yes,  it  is  true."  The  women  said,  "Tell  us  what  you  do." 
The  boy  said:  "I  will  tell  you.  You  see  my  arrows?  When  I  am 
running  from  anybody,  I  shoot  one  of  these  arrows,  and  at  the  same 
time  I  sit  upon  the  flint  point,  so  that  the  arrow  carries  me  far  away, 
and  the  people  lose  me."  "How  many  times  can  you  do  this?"  the 
women  asked.  The  boy  said,  "Four  times,  for  you  see  I  have  four 
arrows."  "What  do  you  do  when  you  have  shot  your  last  arrow  and 
the  people  are  still  after  you."  "Well,"  said  the  boy,  "I  keep  on 
until  they  are  about  to  overtake  me;  then  I  throw  this  bow  upon  the 
ground,  and  I  get  away  from  them  by  traveling  upon  the  bow,  and 
when  the  bow  stops,  I  stop."  "How  would  they  find  you  then?"  "I 
hide  in  a  fine  meadow,  where  there  is  thick  grass,  and  if  they  were  to 
cut  all  the  grass  I  should  be  in  the  center. "  "Now,"  said  the  women, 
"when  they  find  you,  then  what?"  "O,"  saidtheboy,  "Iruntoa  pond 
and  hide  there.  If  the  people  should  throw  the  water  out  of  the  pond 
I  would  be  in  a  mud  hole,  and  there  I  would  be  killed. "  The  women 
were  satisfied.  Then  the  two  women  and  the  boy  arose  and  started 


THE  CANNIBAL  WITCH  AND  THE  BOY  WHO  CONQUERED  THE  BUFFALO.  75 

to  journey  westward.  When  they  were  upon  the  prairie,  the  two  girls 
said:  "Young  man,  we  came  after  you;  will  you  go  with  us;  will  you 
keep  up  with  us?"  The  young  man  said,  "I  will  try."  "Well,"  said 
the  girls,  "suppose  we  walk  fast;  can  you  keep  up  with  us?"  "Yes," 
said  the  boy ," I  can. "  "If  we  trot,  can  you  keep  up  with  us?"  "Yes," 
said  the  boy,  "I  can  keep  up  with  you."  "If  we  run  very  fast  will 
you  keep  up  with  us?"  "Yes,"  said  the  boy,  "I  will  keep  up  with 
you."  The  girls  were  satisfied,  and  said,  "We  will  now  set  out  for  our 
country." 

The  girls  started,  the  boy  following.  When  they  went  out  from  the 
ravine,  the  boy  saw  that  they  were  again  Buffalo.  He  followed  and 
finally  ran  and  caught  up  with  the  Buffalo.  One  of  them  said,  "See 
yonder  hills;  let  us  try  and  get  to  them  by  noon."  The  boy  said,  "All 
right."  The  three  ran,  the  boy  keeping  up  with  the  Buffalo.  The 
Buffalo  then  tried  to  leave  him  behind,  but  he  staid  with  them.  When 
they  came  to  the  hills,  the  Buffalo  again  said,  "Let  us  get  to  yonder 
mountains  that  you  see  far  away."  The  boy  said,  "All  right."  The 
three  ran  again  as  fast  as  they  could  until  they  came  to  the  mountains. 
The  two  Buffalo  were  then  willing  to  rest,  but  the  boy  said,  "Go  on." 
The  boy  touched  the  Buffalo  and  they  all  started  off  again.  They 
ran  through  the  valleys  and  over  the  mountains.  About  midnight  they 
were  on  top  of  a  mountain.  There  they  stopped.  The  boy  lay  down  to 
rest,  then  the  two  Buffalo  turned  into  girls  again,  and  the  two  girls  came 
and  lay  by  the  boy.  The  girls  again  questioned  the  boy  as  to  how,  if 
the  Buffalo  should  run  after  him,  he  could  get  away.  The  boy  told  all 
the  secrets  of  his  traveling  upon  the  arrows  and  the  bow.  He  said: 
"The  black  arrows  that  I  have  are  all  little  blacksnakes,  the  bow  is  a 
large  blacksnake;  the  bowstring  is  the  backbone."  ."Well,"  said  one 
of  the  girls,  "suppose  the  Buffalo  were  to  run  after  you;  what  would 
you  do  when  you  first  shot  the  arrow  and  the  Buffalo  did  not  find  you? " 
"I  would  keep  on."  "Then,"  said  the  girl,  "if  I  were  there,  I  would 
say,  'Keep  on;  you  will  find  him;  he  is  still  going  on.'"  "Yes,"  said  the 
boy,  "you  could  say  that  each  time. "  "When  the  arrows  have  all  been 
shot,"  said  the  girl,  "what  would  you  do?"  "I  would  throw  the  bow 
upon  the  ground  and  get  upon  the  bow,  and  stay  upon  the  bow  until 
the  bow  stopped  traveling,  in  a  broad  meadow  filled  with  thick  grass." 
"What  would  the  Buffalo  then  do?"  said  the  girl.  "Well,  then  tell  all 
the  Buffalo  to  surround  the  grass  and  eat  it.  When  the  Buffalo  have 
eaten  the  grass,  then  choose  one  bull,  who  will  go  to  the  bunch  of  grass 
and  let  it  blow  its  breath;  I  shall  then  jump  out  and  run  to  a  pond." 
"What  shall  I  say  then?"  said  the  girl.  "Tell  the  Buffalo,"  said  the 
boy,  "to  drink  out  of  the  pond  until  they  come  to  a  small  hole  where 


76  TRUE   STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

there  will  be  water.  I  shall  be  there.  Let  one  big  Buffalo  come  and  let 
him  blow  his  breath.  I  shall  then  jump  out  and  the  Buffalo  will  kill  me. 
That  is  all. " 

The  girls  were  then  satisfied.  They  told  of  a  wonderful  bull  with 
a  white  spot  on  his  forehead,  who  was  the  leader  of  all  Buffalo.  Then 
they  all  slept.  As  the  dawn  came  in  the  east,  they  arose  and  began  to 
run.  They  went  over  high  mountains  and  through  valleys  and  again 
over  mountains.  The  Buffalo  then  said:  "  You  will  soon  see  clouds  of 
dust.  It  marks  the  place  where  our  people  are. "  They  came  to  a 
valley,  and  as  they  climbed  up  the  hill  they  began  to  see  clouds  that 
they  knew  were  not  rain  clouds,  but  clouds  of  dust.  When  they  arrived 
at  the  top  of  the  hill,  the  girls  said:  "You  may  stay  here;  we  will  go 
down  to  our  people  and  tell  them  that  you  have  come. "  The  boy  sat 
down  on  the  hill  and  watched  the  two  Buffalo  go  down  the  hill.  He 
saw  at  a  distance  many  tipis,  as  he  thought,  and  at  a  distance  he  thought 
he  saw  many  Buffalo  playing  with  sticks.  While  the  boy  was  watching 
all  these  things,  he  saw  many  Buffalo  gather  together  where  the  two 
girls  were,  and  they  seemed  to  be  talking  with  the  girls. 

While  he  sat  there  someone  spoke  to  him  and  said,  "My  son,  where 
do  you  come  from,  and  who  has  brought  you  here?"  The  boy  looked 
around  and  saw  an  old  Buffalo  standing  by  him.  The  boy  then  said, 
"Two  women  brought  me  here."  "Yes,"  said  the  Buffalo,  "I  know, 
my  son;  the  Buffalo  wish  to  kill  you.  The  Buffalo  are  angry  with  you, 
for  you  have  been  killing  people,  and  your  grandmother  eats  them 
instead  of  eating  the  Buffalo.  I  am  chief  of  the  Buffalo  who  come  from 
where  the  sun  sets.  I  know  you  have  not  eaten  any  people,  so  I  will  help 
you.  Come  to  where  my  people  are.  "  The  boy  followed  the  old  Buffalo 
down  the  side  of  the  hill,  and  he  took  him  to  his  tipi.  The  bull  then  said: 
"My  son,  the  first  thing  you  want  to  do  is  to  rise  early  to-morrow  morn- 
ing, and  go  to  the  pond  in  front  of  the  tipi  of  the  Buffalo  with  the  white 
spot  on  its  forehead.  There  you  must  dive  four  times,  then  come  out. 
If  you  let  White-Spot-on-Forehead  get  into  the  pond  first,  then  you 
must  die;  but  I  am  to  help  you  and  I  shall  fight  with  you. "  Early  the 
next  morning,  before  daylight,  the  boy  was  down  to  the  pond,  and  dived 
four  times,  then  came  out.  As  the  sun  was  coming  up  in  the  east,  White- 
Spot-on- Forehead  came  out  and  went  down  to  the  pond  to  swim.  When 
the  bull  got  to  the  pond  and  smelled,  he  stopped,  snorted,  and  said,  "I 
smell  a  man  in  the  water;  I  shall  not  swim."  White-Spot-on-Forehead 
Bull  did  not  swim.  Between  morning  and  noon  the  Buffalo  began  to 
gather  on  all  the  open  prairie.  The  boy  and  his  followers  were  on  one 
side,  while  on  the  other  side  were  White-Spot-on-Forehead  and  his  fol- 


THE  CANNIBAL  WITCH  AND  THE  BOY  WHO  CONQUERED  THE  BUFFALO.  77 

lowers.  There  they  stood  for  some  time.  The  Buffalo  on  one  side  were 
herded  by  the  boy  and  the  old  bull,  while  the  Buffalo  on  the  other  side 
were  herded  by  White-Spot-on-Forehead.  The  Buffalo  came  together 
on  each  side  as  if  to  try  to  hook  one  another.  The  boy  watched  all 
the  time  so  that  he  could  send  one  of  his  arrows  through  the  side  of 
White-Spot-on-Forehead,  but  they  did  not  come  together,  but  scattered. 
The  boy  and  the  old  bull  went  home.  As  they  entered  the  tipi,  the  old 
bull  said:  "My  son,  White-Spot-on-Forehead  challenges  you  to  smoke 
with  him  to-morrow.  You  and  the  bull  will  each  smoke.  When  you 
take  a  big  puff  of  smoke,  try  to  send  it  up  a  high,  dry  cotton  wood  tree. 
If  the  bull  sends  his  smoke  higher  than  you  do,  then  you  will  be  killed, 
and  my  people  will  also  be  killed.  If  you  beat  White-Spot-on-Forehead, 
you  will  take  your  bow  and  arrows  and  kill  him.''  The  boy  listened 
carefully  and  he  thought  of  what  he  would  do.  He  thought  of  running 
away,  and  again  he  thought  he  would  stay  and  see  how  things  would 
turn  out  with  him  among  the  Buffalo. 

Early  the  next  morning  the  Buffalo  gathered  around  the  dry  cotton- 
wood  tree.  White-Spot-on-Forehead  appeared  as  a  man.  He  brought 
a  large-sized  tobacco  pouch  and  a  large  pipe.  As  the  Buffalo  gathered, 
White-Spot-on-Forehead  said:  "Nawa,  you,  boy,  and  I  are  to  smoke 
and  see  who  can  send  the  smoke  the  highest  up  this  dry  tree.  If  your 
smoke  goes  higher  than  my  smoke,  then  you  are  to  kill  me,  but  if  my 
smoke  goes  higher  than  yours,  then  I  am  to  kill  you."  "Nawa,"  said 
the  boy.  White-Spot-on-Forehead  put  all  of  his  people  on  one  side,  and 
the  old  bull 's  people  went  on  the  boy 's  side.  White-Spot-on-Forehead 
said  with  a  loud  voice,  "I  now  cut  tobacco."  All  on  his  side  said, 
"Nawa."  Again  White-Spot-on-Forehead  spoke  and  said,  "The  bowl 
will  now  receive  a  coal."  "Nawa,"  all  said  on  his  side.  "Now  I  in- 
hale smoke."  All  on  his  side  said,  "Nawa."  "Now  I  send  smoke  up 
the  tree."  All  on  his  side  said,  "Nawa."  The  smoke  was  blown  at 
the  base  of  the  cottonwood  tree,  and  it  began  to  roll  up  the  tree.  All  on 
his  side  kept  crying,  "The  smoke  is  going  to  reach  the  top."  Those 
on  the  boy's  side  kept  saying,  "The  smoke  fails  to  reach  the  top  of 
the  tree."  All  watched  the  smoke  roll  up  the  tree,  and  as  the  smoke 
was  about  to  reach  the  fork  of  the  tree  it  scattered. 

It  was  the  boy 's  turn.  He  took  the  pouch  and  pipe,  cut  the  tobacco 
and  said,  "I  now  cut  and  mix  tobacco  with  sumach  leaves."  All  on 
his  side  said,  "Nawa."  Then  the  boy  filled  the  bowl  of  the  pipe  and 
said,  "I  now  fill  the  pipe."  All  on  his  side  said,  "Nawa."  "I  inhale 
smoke,"  said  the  boy.  All  on  his  side  said,  "Nawa."  "Now  I  start 
the  smoke,"  said  the  boy.  All  on  his  side  said,  "Nawa."  The  boy 
blew  the  smoke  at  the  base  of  the  tree,  and  as  the  smoke  began  to 


78  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

roll  up  the  tree,  the  yelling  and  hallooing  began.  White-Spot-on-Fore- 
head  yelled,  "The  smoke  will  not  reach  the  top. "  The  smoke  rolled  up 
the  tree,  went  over  the  fork,  and  came  down  on  the  other  side  of  the 
tree,  and  as  the  smoke  scattered  at  the  base  of  the  tree,  the  boy 's  people 
made  a  rush  at  the  others.  The  boy  jumped  at  his  bow  and  arrows,  and 
was  about  to  shoot  at  White-Spot-on-Forehead,  when  the  bull  said: 
"Not  yet,  give  me  another  chance ;  to-morrow  we  drink  out  of  the  pond, 
and  whoever  fails  to  drink  all  the  water  out  of  the  pond  shall  be  killed." 
The  boy  said,  "All  right.  "  When  the  boy  went  home  the  old  bull  said: 
"I  will  help  you;  White-Spot-on-Forehead  will  drink  first,  and  he  will 
drink  all  the  water  in  the  pond ;  then  he  will  blow  the  water  all  back  in 
the  pond.  Take  these  horns  I  give  you.  When  your  turn  comes,  you 
must  put  your  arms  into  the  water,  holding  a  horn  in  each  hand.  These 
horns  will  suck  up  most  of  the  water,  so  you  will  not  be  obliged  to  drink 
too  much  water. "  The  next  morning  the  Buffalo  came  together  around 
the  pond.  White-Spot-on-Forehead  was  the  first  to  drink  from  the 
pond.  He  drank  all  the  water,  leaving  only  mud-water.  The  Buffalo 
threw  up  the  water,  and  the  pond  was  filled  again.  There  was  great 
rejoicing  on  his  side.  The  boy  went  to  the  pond  with  the  buffalo  horns, 
one  in  each  hand.  He  knelt  down  on  his  knees  and  put  his  arms  into 
the  water.  His  hands  touched  the  bottom  of  the  pond.  The  boy  seemed 
to  drink  the  water,  but  the  horns  sucked  up  most  of  it.  The  boy 
seemed  to  drink  all  of  the  water,  for  the  pond  was  made  dry.  There  was 
now  great  rejoicing  on  the  boy's  side.  As  soon  as  the  boy  had  thrown 
up  all  the  water,  he  jumped  back,  took  his  bow  and  arrows  and  tried 
to  kill  White-Spot-on-Forehead.  White-Spot-on-Forehead  begged  for 
another  chance,  and  said:  "To-morrow  we  select  runners  from  our  sides, 
and  there  will  be  a  race. "  The  boy  agreed. 

Seven  runners  were  selected  on  each  side;  three  were  short-distance 
runners  and  four  were  long-distance  runners.  The  old  bull  selected  six 
Buffalo  on  his  side,  and  the  boy  made  the  seventh.  These  Buffalo 
went  north  for  a  long  distance  to  the  starting  place.  They  went  over 
several  hills  until  the  Buffalo  could  not  see  the  racers.  For  a  long  time 
the  Buffalo  watched,  and  all  at  once  a  great  shout  was  heard.  All  the 
Buffalo  looked,  and  there  were  the  runners  coming  over  a  hill.  When 
the  runners  came  over  the  second  hill,  White-Spot-on-Forehead 's  side 
gave  a  great  shout,  saying,  "All  our  runners  are  in  the  lead."  This  was 
true,  for  all  of  the  boy's  partners  were  behind,  and  the  boy  was  the  last 
to  come  over  the  hill.  The  boy  had  on  his  yellow  robe  and  also  wore 
his  buckskin  leggings.  As  the  running  Buffalo  came  to  a  long  stretch 
of  valley  the  boy  lifted  his  robe  over  his  shoulders,  and  then  took  the 


THE  CANNIBAL  WITCH  AND  THE  BOY  WHO  CONQUERED  THE  BUFFALO.  79 

bowstring  off  from  his  bow.  With  the  bowstring  he  whipped  his  legs, 
so  that  he  could  run  fast.  As  he  caught  up  with  one  of  his  Buffalo  part- 
ners, he  whipped  the  Buffalo's  legs  and  the  Buffalo  was  made  to  run 
fast.  The  boy  kept  whipping  his  legs  until  he  reached  another  one  of 
the  Buffalo;  then  he  would  whip  his  legs.  The  boy  caught  up  with  all  of 
his  partners,  and  made  them  run  fast  by  whipping  their  legs.  The  boy 
was  now  in  the  lead  of  all  his  partners,  and  they  were  running  well. 
After  a  short  time  they  passed  the  others,  and  were  in  the  lead.  White- 
Spot-on-Forehead 's  people  were  walking  around,  throwing  dirt  upon 
their  backs  with  their  hoofs  and  looking  fierce,  for  they  were  ready  to 
fight.  Some  of  the  bulls  were  locking  horns  as  if  beginning  battle. 
Then  they  would  stop  and  watch  the  hills.  As  the  runners  came  up 
over  the  second  hill  a  boy  appeared,  and  not  a  Buffalo.  This  time 
there  was  great  rejoicing  on  the  boy's  side.  All  of  the  boy 's  partners 
came  over  the  hill  first;  then  the  others  began  to  appear.  As  the  boy 
came  to  the  foot  of  the  next  hill  he  stopped,  pulled  out  his  bow, 
put  his  string  on  it,  and  as  all  of  his  partners  came  up  to  him  he  would 
tell  them  to  stand  by  him.  As  the  other  Buffalo  came  up  and  tried 
to  pass  the  boy,  he  would  shoot  an  arrow  through  their  sides  and  in 
that  way  he  killed  all  of  them.  Then  the  boy  and  the  Buffalo  went 
over  the  last  hill,  and  there  the  Buffalo  were  fighting.  The  boy  ran 
among  them  and  killed  many.  On  his  way  through  the  herd  of  fighting 
Buffalo  he  came  to  where  the  old  bull  was  fighting  a  young  bull.  The 
boy  killed  the  young  bull.  White-Spot-on-Forehead's  people  were  furi- 
ously enraged.  The  bulls  began  to  hook  one  another.  The  boy's  side 
were  few  in  number  and  were  overpowered. 

The  Buffalo  started  out  after  the  boy.  He  ran  fast,  for  his  deer 
leggings  gave  him  great  speed.  The  deer's  power  gave  out.  Then  the 
boy  took  his  bow  and  one  of  the  arrows  and  shot  the  arrow  far 
away.  He  disappeared.  The  Buffalo  stopped  and  hunted  the  boy,  but 
could  not  find  him.  Someone  said:  "Where  are  the  two  female  Buffalo 
who  went  after  him?"  Another  answered,  "They  are  coming  behind." 
The  Buffalo  waited  until  the  two  girls  came  up.  One  of  the  Buffalo 
said:  "What  did  he  say  he  would  do  if  we  got  after  him?"  One  of 
the  girls  said:  "Proceed;  he  is  still  going  on  ahead."  The  Buffalo 
again  started  and  saw  the  boy  far  ahead.  The  Buffalo  ran  after  him 
and  when  they  were  nearly  up  to  him,  the  boy  again  shot  an  arrow  and 
again  disappeared.  The  Buffalo  stopped  and  waited  for  the  two  Buffalo 
girls  and  asked  them,  "What  did  the  boy  say  he  would  do?"  They 
said,  "Proceed;  he  is  going  on  ahead."  The  Buffalo  ran  and  again  saw 
the  boy. 


80  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

They  ran  fast,  but  just  as  they  came  close  to  the  boy,  he  shot  one  of 
his  arrows  and  disappeared  again.  The  Buffalo  said  to  the  Buffalo  girls 
"What  did  the  boy  say?"  Both  girls  said:  "Proceed;  he  must  be  going 
on  ahead. "  The  Buffalo  went  on.  Again  the  Buffalo  saw  the  boy,  and 
as  they  again  came  upon  him  he  shot  his  last  arrow  and  disappeared. 
The  Buffalo  girls  came  up  and  said,  "Proceed;  he  is  on  ahead."  The 
Buffalo  went  on  farther  and  came  close  to  the  boy.  The  boy  took  his 
bow  and  threw  it  upon  the  ground  and  stood  upon  it.  The  bow  turned 
into  a  blacksnake,  which  ran  swiftly. 

Again  the  Buffalo  lost  sight  of  the  boy  and  said:  "Girls,  where  will 
the  boy  be?"  The  girls  said:  "Keep  straight  on  until  you  come  to  a 
fine  meadow,  where  there  is  grass. "  The  Buffalo  ran  until  they  came  to 
a  meadow,  and  the  girls  said,  "Stop  here."  The  Buffalo  stopped.  The 
girls  said:  "Surround  the  meadow,  and  let  every  one  of  us  eat  this  grass, 
so  that  there  will  be  only  a  bunch  of  grass  left  standing. "  The  Buffalo 
all  began  to  eat  of  the  grass  and  came  nearer  the  center  as  they  ate. 
When  they  had  eaten  all  but  a  little  bunch  of  grass  in  the  center,  the  girls 
said:  "Now  choose  one  bull  who  has  a  strong  breath  and  let  him  blow 
his  breath  upon  the  bunch  of  grass,  and  the  boy  will  come  out  from  the 
grass. "  One  bull  was  chosen  and  he  went  to  the  bunch  of  grass  and  blew 
his  breath,  and  the  boy  jumped  out  from  the  grass,  but  disappeared  at 
once.  The  Buffalo  tramped  and  hooked  at  one  another,  until  they  saw 
that  the  boy  was  not  there.  Then  they  said:  "Where  will  the  boy  be  now, 
girls?"  The  girls  said:  "Go  to  the  pond,  and  you  will  find  him  there." 
All  the  Buffalo  went  to  the  pond  and  the  two  girls  said:  "Now  let  all  drink 
until  the  water  is  gone,  for  the  boy  is  in  the  pond.' '  All  the  Buffalo  went 
into  the  pond  and  began  to  drink.  They  drank  so  much  that  nearly  all 
the  water  was  gone.  The  turtles  came  crawling  up  and  fish  lay  upon 
the  mud.  There  in  the  center  was  a  mud-hole.  The  Buffalo  chose  an- 
other bull  with  strong  breath.  As  he  blew  his  breath  the  boy  jumped 
and  came  upon  the  dry  land.  The  Buffalo  closed  in  upon  him  and  again 
the  boy  disappeared.  "What  now?"  said  the  Buffalo.  The  girls  said: 
"We  have  killed  him,  for  he  has  now  used  up  all  of  his  power. " 

The  Buffalo  went  into  the  timber  and  sat  under  the  shade  of  the  trees. 
The  boy  was  up  in  a  tree.  He  was  kept  up  the  tree  so  long  that  he  wanted 
to  urinate.  He  was  afraid  that  if  he  should  get  down  from  the  tree  the 
Buffalo  would  take  after  him,  so  he  gathered  up  his  robe  and  urinated  in 
the  robe.  The  boy  held  the  water  in  the  robe  until  it  began  to  seep 
through,  so  that  drops  fell  upon  the  head  of  a  bull  that  was  sitting  under 
the  boy.  The  drops  kept  falling  and  the  bull  looked  up  towards  the 
heavens  and  said,  "We  killed  a  wonderful  boy,  and  that  is  the  reason 
raindrops  are  falling  on  my  head.  I  do  not  see  any  clouds;  this  boy 


THE  CANNIBAL  WITCH  AND  THE  BOY  WHO  CONQUERED  THE  BUFFALO.  8l 

must  have  been  a  wonderful  boy."  While  the  bull  was  talking  to  him- 
self the  water  had  made  a  hole  through  the  robe,  so  that  it  poured  down  on 
the  head  of  the  bull.  The  bull  looked  up  and  there  was  the  boy  sitting 
up  in  the  tree.  The  bull  rose,  and  grunted,  as  much  as  to  say,  "Here  is 
the  boy. ' '  Every  one  of  the  Buffalo  rose  and  gathered  around  the  tree. 
The  Buffalo  saw  the  boy  and  said:  "We  must  get  him  this  time,  so  that 
he  will  never  kill  any  more  men  for  food;  but  will  kill  our  people.  What 
shall  we  do  to  get  the  boy  down?"  One  of  them  said:  "Let  us  select  five 
great  bulls  to  run  against  the  tree,  and  the  tree  will  fall  down  and  we 
will  get  the  boy."  Five  large  bulls  were  selected,  who  ran  against  the 
tree,  and  two  fell  dead  at  the  bottom  of  the  tree.  Then  the  Buffalo  said: 
"This  will  not  do. "  One  of  the  Buffalo  said:  "Let  us  hook  at  the  ground 
with  our  horns  and  dig  up  the  roots. "  They  tried  this  plan,  but  their 
horns  were  broken  off,  so  they  gave  it  up.  One  of  them  said:  "Let  us 
hook  the  tree  and  take  out  piece  by  piece  until  we  can  get  it  down." 
One  bull  ran  up  and  hooked  the  tree  with  his  horn,  so  that  the  bark  of 
the  tree  fell  off.  The  others  tried,  and  the  bark  came  off  easily.  They 
kept  on  hooking  and  some  of  the  Buffalo  broke  their  horns,  but  they  kept 
on  until  the  tree  became  small  at  the  base  and  began  to  quiver. 

The  boy  became  frightened  and  gave  a  loud  yell.  Again  he  gave  a 
loud  yell ;  then  he  waited.  When  he  gave  the  yell  the  dogs  at  home  be- 
gan to  run  about,  but  they  did  not  seem  to  know  where  the  voice  of  the 
boy  came  from.  The  old  woman,  the  boy's  grandmother,  also  stood  up 
and  ran  around.  She  finally  went  up  to  the  bob-tailed  dog  and  released 
it,  and  said,  " Afraid-of-Nothing,  your  brother  is  in  danger;  lead  us  to 
where  he  is."  The  dog  gave  a  loud  yelp  and  ran  west,  the  other  dogs 
following,  the  old  woman  close  behind  them  with  a  club.  The  dogs 
reached  the  Buffalo  herd  and  the  Buffalo  felt  them  upon  their  heels,  so 
that  they  began  to  run.  Sometimes  the  dogs  would  bite  their  legs, 
so  that  they  fell.  The  old  woman,  when  she  came  up  to  them,  hit  the 
Buffalo  with  her  club,  and  she  killed  many.  As  they  ran  past  the 
tree,  it  fell  down  easily,  so  that  the  boy  was  not  hurt. 

When  the  Buffalo  had  all  gone  away  the  boy  said:  "Grandmother, 
cut  up  some  of  these  Buffalo,  so  that  we  can  get  something  to  eat ;  and 
you,  my  grandmother,  must  eat  this  kind  of  meat  and  do  not  eat 
people  any  more."  The  old  woman  cut  up  some  of  the  Buffalo  and 
roasted  the  livers  for  herself.  She  said:  "Grandson,  this  tastes  like 
man's  flesh.  Hereafter,  old  women  of  my  age  shall  eat  liver,  for  it  is  soft 
and  good.  "  "Now,  grandmother, "  said  the  boy,  "we  must  go  home,  for 
there  we  must  separate.  "  The  boy  took  his  grandmother  home.  When 
they  reached  home  the  boy  said:  "Grandmother,  you  must  go  north; 


83  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

take  this  sack  with  seeds  in  it  and  this  hoe,  made  from  the  shoulder- 
blade  of  a  buffalo.  You  shall  plant  these  seeds,  and  whatever  you  raise 
in  the  fall  always  eat  that.  The  dogs  I  turn  loose;  they  may  go  where 
they  wish.  I  will  put  on  my  leggings,  moccasins,  robe,  and  this  lariat 
rope,  made  from  buffalo  hair,  and  I  will  go  to  the  land  of  the  Sun.  From 
this  time  forth  I  shall  be  known  as  a  great  warrior."  The  old  woman 
put  her  sack  upon  her  back  and  went  north.  The  boy,  after  putting  his 
clothes  on,  put  the  lariat  rope  around  his  shoulders  and  went  south. 

In  the  meantime  the  Buffalo  sat  down  in  a  valley  and  had  a  great 
council.  "The  people  will  live  and  they  will  kill  many  Buffalo  and  eat 
of  our  meat.  White-Star-on-Forehead,  who  is  our  chief,  shall  make  his 
home  in  the  north  and  shall  stay  there.  Henceforth  we  shall  scatter  all 
over  the  country.  In  all  things  we  were  beaten  by  the  boy.  In  smoking 
the  boy  beat  us ;  so  the  people  will  do  the  smoking,  and  they  will  send  us 
only  whiffs  of  smoke.  In  drinking  of  the  water  from  the  pond,  the  boy 
was  given  horns  to  help  him  drink  the  water;  so  from  this  time  the  peo- 
ple shall  make  spoons  from  our  horns,  and  eat  with  them.  In  the  running 
of  the  race  the  boy  beat  us ;  so  that  the  people  will  always  beat  us  in  run- 
ning and  will  kill  us;  and  when  the  people  are  hungry  we  will  seek  fresh 
grass,  so  that  they  can  find  us.  On  hot  days  we  will  seek  ponds  to  drink 
from,  that  the  people  may  find  us  and  kill  us,  so  they  can  eat  meat. 
When  the  people  have  multiplied,  they  will  take  pieces  of  buffalo  robes 
and  cut  them  up  for  the  babies  to  lie  on,  so  that  the  children  will  urinate 
upon  our  robes."  Thus  by  the  boy  overcoming  the  Buffalo  the  people 
were  to  kill  Buffalo.  White-Star-on-Forehead  was  killed;  so  were  the 
Buffalo  girls.  They  were  given  a  place  in  the  north,  where  the  three 
were  to  stand  as  gods  and  to  send  buffalo  to  the  people.  The  old  woman 
went  north.  Her  descendants  all  had  seeds,  while  the  boy's  descend- 
ants became  warriors  and  never  planted  any  seeds  in  the  ground. 

19.  THE  WARRIOR  AND  THE  BLACK  LIGHTNING  ARROW.1 

Many  years  ago  several  young  men  went  on  the  war-path.  They 
went  into  the  western  country,  and  for  many  moons  they  traveled 
until  at  last  they  became  weary  and  discouraged,  for  they  had  gone  to  a 
mountainous  country  and  there  was  no  game  or  fruit  to  eat.  They 
began  to  find  fault  with  the  leader  of  the  war  party,  and  to  blame  him 
for  their  misfortunes.  At  last  he  told  them  that  if  they  would  stay  in 

'  Told  by  Sun-Chief,  a  young  chief  of  the  Pawnee  whose  father  was  a  prominent 
chief  of  the  Skidi  band.  The  story  describes  the  origin  of  a  warrior  bundle,  the 
chief  part  of  which  was  a  wonderful,  so-called,  black  lightning  arrow.  The  story 
especially  teaches  obedience  to  the  heavenly  gods. 


THE  WARRIOR  AND  THE  BLACK  LIGHTNING  ARROW.  83 

the  valley  he  would  go  up  on  a  high  hill,  and  would  pray  to  the  gods  to 
give  him  power  and  to  help  him  to  be  successful  in  finding  the  villages 
of  the  enemy.  The  other  young  men  promised  to  stay  in  the  valley 
while  he  went  up  onto  the  hill,  and  so  he  started.  His  absence  gave  the 
warriors  a  chance  to  hunt  through  the  ravines  and  upon  the  mountains, 
and  they  were  successful.  They  killed  game  and  brought  it  into  their 
camp.  In  the  meantime  the  leader  of  the  war  party  was  upon  the 
high  hill  praying.  He  went  up  on  the  high  hill  in  the  afternoon,  and  he 
stood  there  until  dark,  offering  his  prayers  to  the  different  gods  in  the 
heavens.  When  night  came  he  ceased  praying  and  began  to  cry.  For 
three  days  and  three  nights  he  stood  crying  and  asking  help  from  the 
gods  in  the  heavens.  The  fourth  night  he  noticed  a  dark  cloud  com- 
ing up  from  the  west.  Then  he  cried  louder.  After  a  while  the  cloud 
passed  all  over  the  sky  and  darkness  overspread  the  earth.  The  young 
man  faced  the  west.  He  had  his  robe  over  his  shoulders,  tied  around 
his  waist  with  a  buffalo-hair  lariat  rope.  As  he  stood  thus  the  light- 
ning flashed  and  then  it  thundered,  and  as  it  thundered  the  boy  fell 
over  and  knew  no  more. 

In  the  morning  he  awoke,  as  he  thought,  from  a  deep  sleep.  He 
found  upon  his  breast  a  little  black  arrow  about  six  inches  long,  with 
a  point  of  the  finest  flint  and  shaft  of  black  stone,  and  the  end  of  stone 
so  fine  that  it  looked  like  feathers.  The  young  man  knew  that  Light- 
ning had  given  him  this  arrow,  to  let  him  know  that  he  was  to  be  suc- 
cessful in  all  his  undertakings  while  upon  the  war-path.  The  boy  took 
the  arrow  and  hid  it  under  his  robe  and  went  down  the  hill. 

The  other  warriors  saw  him  coming  and  they  were  glad.  They  seated 
him  by  the  fire,  gave  him  water  that  they  had  brought  up  in  a  buffalo 
bladder,  washed  him,  and  gave  him  some  meat  to  eat.  After  he  had 
eaten  he  told  the  warriors  that  he  had  received  something  from  Light- 
ning, the  wonderful  god.  After  he  had  eaten  he  sat  down  to  the  west  of 
the  fireplace  and  placed  the  arrow  in  front  of  him,  then  asked  for  a  pipe 
and  some  native  tobacco.  When  he  received  the  tobacco  he  arose, 
lighted  the  pipe,  and  began  to  smoke.  He  stood  west  of  the  fireplace,  and 
blew  one  whiff  straight  up  to  the  sky,  then  four  to  the  west,  at  the  same 
time  thanking  the  gods  in  the  west  for  the  arrow  that  they  had  given  him. 
After  thanking  the  gods  he  walked  up  to  the  arrow  and  gave  it  four 
whiffs,  saying:  "My  brother,  you  came  to  me  from  the  gods  and  I  am 
thankful  that  you  are  with  me.  I  shall  always  carry  you  upon  my  body. 
If  I  neglect  to  care  for  you,  then  you  may  return  to  the  gods. "  When 
he  had  finished  he  dumped  the  ashes  out  in  front  of  the  arrow  and  waved 
his  hands  over  the  arrow  four  times.  Then  he  sat  down.  He  took  a 


84  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

piece  of  the  buffalo  lariat  rope  and  tied  it  upon  the  arrow,  and  then  he 
placed  the  arrow  upon  his  breast  and  tied  the  rope  behind  his  neck  so  that 
the  arrow  hung  from  it  upon  his  breast. 

The  young  men  then  started  again  upon  their  journey,  and  trav- 
eled west  until  the  night  overtook  them;  then  they  made  camp.  The 
leader  of  the  war  party,  the  man  with  the  arrow  about  his  neck,  had  a 
dream  during  the  night.  He  saw  a  man.  The  man  had  a  buffalo  robe 
around  him  and  upon  his  face  were  streaks  of  white  clay.  Upon  his  legs 
were  leggings  with  scalps  hanging  from  the  sides  and  also  eagle  feathers. 
This  being  told  the  young  man  that  he  was  the  god  of  all  the  warriors, 
and  that  he  had  given  him  the  arrow  so  that  he  should  always  keep  it 
with  him,  for  it  would  bring  him  success.  He  also  told  the  young  man 
to  go  to  the  south  side  of  the  mountains  and  there  he  would  find  the 
villages  of  the  enemies.  The  next  morning  after  they  had  eaten  he 
told  the  warriors  that  they  were  to  travel  towards  the  south.  They 
traveled  south  but  a  few  days  when  they  came  to  a  village  of  Comanches. 
The  young  man  then  selected  scouts  to  look  over  the  ground  and  see 
where  their  ponies  were  placed.  In  the  night  the  scouts  returned  and 
told  their  leader  where  the  ponies  were.  Other  men  were  then  selected 
to  go  and  capture  the  ponies.  The  men  brought  in  many  ponies,  and 
the  leader  told  all  the  warriors  to  get  on  the  ponies  at  once  and  make 
a  run  for  home. 

It  was  night  and  they  had  only  the  north  star  to  guide  them,  but 
they  got  out  of  the  enemy's  country  safely.  They  traveled  for  many 
days  and  nights,  and  at  last  when  they  came  into  their  own  country  they 
stopped  and  rested.  The  next  day  the  leader  of  the  party  went  up  to 
one  pony,  cut  some  hair  from  the  mane  and  tail,  and  strung  it  on  a  pole. 
This  pole  he  placed  on  a  high  hill,  and  while  he  was  on  the  hill  he  said 
to  the  god  who  gave  him  this  arrow,  ' '  I  am  making  you  this  offering 
of  horse  hair."  He  placed  the  stick  in  the  ground  and  went  down  to 
the  camp.  The  ponies  were  then  divided  among  the  warriors,  and  they 
went  to  their  village  singing  their  war-songs  and  giving  the  war-whoops. 
The  people  in  the  village  arose  and  went  out  to  meet  the  warriors.  They 
told  all  that  they  had  done,  and  of  the  wonderful  arrow  that  the  gods 
had  given  to  the  young  leader. 

The  people  waited  a  long  time  to  see  what  the  young  man  would 
do.  They  were  anxious  to  see  the  wonderful  arrow.  At  last  it  was 
told  through  the  village  that  the  young  man  with  the  wonderful 
arrow  was  about  to  go  out  upon  the  war-path.  Many  people  went,  even 
the  old  people,  for  they  were  anxious  to  see  the  arrow.  When  they  had 
been  gone  three  days  and  three  nights  from  the  village  they  made  their 


THE  WARRIOR  AND  THE  BLACK  LIGHTNING  ARROW.  85 

camp  somewhere  upon  the  Platte  River.  Then  the  leader  was  told  by 
his  scouts  that  there  were  some  buffalo  at  a  short  distance  from  them. 
The  leader,  instead  of  sending  others  to  kill  the  buffalo,  said,  "I  will  go 
and  shoot,  and  if  I  kill  the  buffalo  you  people  must  come  and  skin  and 
cut  the  meat."  He  took  the  arrow  from  his  neck  and  placed  it  in 
another  man 's  hands.  As  he  went  he  thought  of  his  arrow.  The  buffalo 
were  west,  so  that  the  young  man  looked  towards  the  west  always  as  he 
went  to  kill  the  buffalo.  As  he  raised  up  to  aim  at  a  buffalo  he  saw  a 
dark  cloud  coming  from  the  west.  He  shot  at  the  buffalo,  threw  down 
his  bow,  and  ran  to  the  place  where  the  other  warriors  were,  and  when 
the  warriors  saw  him  coming  they  were  frightened.  They  thought  that 
he  had  seen  enemies,  but  when  he  called  for  the  arrow  they  knew  that 
something  was  wrong.  As  soon  as  he  took  the  arrow  he  told  the  people 
to  get  on  top  of  him  and  to  try  to  help  him  to  keep  the  arrow.  The  people 
drew  around  him  and  climbed  on  top  of  him  as  the  dark  cloud  came 
rapidly  from  the  west.  The  lightning  struck  all  around  where  the 
people  were,  and  there  was  a  great  noise  of  wind  coming  through  the  air 
like  the  napping  of  many  large  wings.  The  man  with  the  arrow  at  the 
bottom  of  the  crowd  called  to  the  others:  "Press  down  hard  on  me; 
the  arrow  is  slipping  from  me. "  The  people  began  to  pile  closer  on  top  of 
him,  but  somehow  they  rolled  off,  and  as  they  rolled  they  pulled  the  man 
with  the  arrow  over,  and  the  arrow  slipped  through  his  hands.  It  went 
back  into  the  clouds  and  became  a  part  of  Lightning  again. 

The  young  man  cried  and  mourned  on  account  of  the  loss  of  the  arrow. 
He  stood  for  many  days  and  at  last  he  went  to  sleep.  The  same  man 
whom  he  had  seen  in  his  dream  before,  he  saw  in  his  dream  again.  This 
man  said:  "I  intended  to  make  you  a  great  warrior.  I  did  not  make 
you  promise  me,  but  you  made  the  promise  yourself,  and  said  that  the 
arrow  should  always  be  present  with  you.  You  broke  your  promise. 
The  gods  have  taken  the  arrow  back,  but  they  will  make  you  a  great 
warrior  anyway;  but  you  will  never  become  a  chief.  Go.  Your  party 
shall  be  successful.  You  shall  capture  many  ponies. "  When  the  young 
man  awoke  he  told  the  people  that  they  were  to  continue  on  the  war- 
path. They  went,  and  in  a  few  days  they  found  a  village  of  enemies 
and  there  they  captured  many  ponies.  After  the  young  man  lost  his 
arrow  he  went  upon  the  war-path  only  when  the  strange  being  appeared 
to  him  in  a  dream  and  told  him  that  he  would  be  successful.  If  the 
being  told  him  that  a  party  would  not  be  successful,  he  would  always 
tell  the  men  and  persuade  them  not  to  go.  He  became  a  great  warrior, 
but  not  as  great  as  he  would  have  been  if  he  had  kept  the  arrow.  He 
was  never  made  chief. 


86  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

20.     SPOTTED-HORSE;  A  BRAVE  AND  A  CHIEF.1 

A  long  time  ago,  when  the  Skidi  had  their  village  upon  the  Loupe  River 
in  Nebraska,  a  Skidi  had  a  wonderful  dream.  He  saw  a  man  in  his 
dream.  The  man  had  a  robe  over  his  body  and  the  robe  was  turned  out 
so  that  the  man  could  see  the  drawings  upon  it.  The  robe  had  drawings 
of  spotted  ponies.  The  man  also  had  around  his  shoulders  a  -buffalo 
lariat  rope.  In  his  arms  he  carried  a  small  bundle.  This  man  spoke 
to  the  Skidi  man  and  said:  ' '  Go  and  stand  upon  that  high  hill  four  days 
and  four  nights,  and  these  things  that  I  have  here  will  be  explained  to 
you. "  The  next  day  the  man  went  upon  the  hill  and  mourned  for  four 
days,  and  on  the  fourth  night  the  being  appeared  to  the  man  in  another 
dream  and  said  to  him  that  he  had  done  as  he  told  him  to  do,  and  said: 
"I  give  you  this."  It  was  a  round  thing  which  looked  like  a  sun -glass. 
The  being  said:  "Use  this  when  you  light  your  pipe,  just  before  attack- 
ing the  enemy.  I  will  teach  you  how  to  make  the  pipe.  The  bowl  must 
be  of  blue  stone.  The  stem  must  be  about  seven  inches  long  and  is  to 
have  no  hole  through  it.  You  must  kill  a  certain  animal  that  you  will 
find  in  the  southern  country.  Place  these  things  in  a  bundle  and  call  it 
holy-bundle,  and  carry  this  bundle  whenever  you  go  on  the  war-path." 
This  man  went  home  and  a  few  days  afterwards  he  found  a  blue  stone 
and  made  the  bowl  for  the  pipe.  This  bowl  was  very  small.  He  took  a 
limb  of  ash  and  made  a  stem,  not  putting  any  hole  through  the  stem. 
In  his  wanderings  he  found  the  thing  that  looked  like  a  sun-glass.  The 
man  knew  that  this  must  be  what  the  being  told  him  he  would  find,  and 
that  he  must  light  his  pipe  with  it.  He  went  on  the  war-path,  and  while 
he  was  gone  he  wandered  away  from  the  others  and  he  found  the  animal 
that  the  being  showed  him  in  the  dream.  The  animal  was  sitting  upon  a 
limb  sleeping.  The  man  took  his  bow  and  an  arrow  and  shot  the  animal 
and  killed  it.  He  skinned  it  and  carried  it  around  while  on  the  war-path. 
When  they  stopped  for  rest  the  man  would  pick  up  stones  and  rub  upon 
the  skin,  so  that  it  became  tanned  and  soft. 

When  this  man  returned  home  he  invited  a  few  of  his  friends  and 
told  them  of  what  he  saw  upon  the  hill.  He  told  his  friends  that  now  he 

1  Told  by  Good-Chief,  who  at  the  time  of  his  death  last  year  was  the  oldest  chief 
of  the  Skidi.  His  father,  in  turn,  was  in  his  time  hereditary  head  chief  of  the  Skidi 
and  was  the  keeper  of  the  chief's  bundle.  This  tale  is  traditional  history  and  is 
explanatory  of  the  warrior's  bundle,  the  most  interesting  feature  of  which  was  a 
small  pipe  with  a  holeless  stem.  When  near  the  village  of  the  enemy  the  owner 
held  the  filled  pipe  towards  the  sun,  and  attempted  to  smoke  it.  If  successful  it 
was  an  omen  from  the  gods  that  he  was  to  be  victorious.  If  he  did  not  succeed 
in  smoking  it  the  war  party  returned  to  their  homes.  The  bundle  differs  from  the 
ordinary  warrior's  bundle  and  is  supposed  to  have  had  its  origin  from  the  sun. 


SPOTTED  HORSE;  A  BRAVE  AND  A  CHIEF.  87 

had  the  things  which  were  shown  him  in  the  dream,  and  that  he  wanted 
to  try  what  he  was  told  to  do.  The  skin  was  spread,  and  the  things 
were  spread  upon  the  skin.  The  skin  was  like  that  of  a  wild-cat,  only 
the  tail  was  long,  and  there  were  many  horse-hoof  prints  upon  the  hide. 
The  man  filled  up  the  pipe  and  went  to  where  the  ray  from  the  sun 
was.  He  sat  down  and  rested  the  sun-glass  upon  the  bowl.  He  puffed 
with  his  mouth  and  the  smoke  was  seen  going  up  from  the  bowl,  then 
through  the  stem,  though  there  was  no  hole  in  the  stem.  "Nawa!  Nawa 
iri!  "(thanks!  thanks!)  the  men  said.  After  emptying  the  pipe,  he  wrapped 
up  the  bundle,  putting  some  native  tobacco  in  with  the  other  things.  A 
few  days  after  this  he  invited  some  of  his  friends  to  come  to  his  lodge. 
The  men  came  to  his  lodge  and  they  sat  down  with  him.  The  owner  of 
the  bundle  spoke  and  said:  "My  friends,  some  time  ago,  here  in  my  lodge, 
I  had  a  wonderful  dream,  and  in  the  dream  I  saw  a  mysterious  being. 
This  mysterious  being  commanded  me  to  stand  upon  the  hill  in  the  west ; 
so  the  next  morning  I  went  up  on  the  hill  and  stood  there  for  several  days. 
When  I  became  hungry  I  saw  the  same  being  again,  and  it  commanded 
me  to  do  certain  things  and  to  find  certain  things.  I  also  saw  the  being 
smoke  a  little  pipe,  which  was  lighted  by  the  aid  of  the  sun.  I  have 
found  the  things;  here  they  are.  I  have  tried  the  smoke  after  lighting  it 
from  the  sun  and  am  sure  of  being  successful  if  I  go  out  with  a  war 
party. " 

One  by  one,  each  man  arose  and  stood  before  the  owner  of  the  bundle. 
"Nawa!  Nawa  iri!  Take  pity  on  us  and  allow  us  to  join  you,  that  the 
being  who  has  taken  pity  upon  you  may  also  take  pity  upon  us,  for  we  are 
poor."  The  owner  of  the  things  spoke  as  each  man  passed  his  hands 
over  his  head  and  arms,  and  said:  "My  friends,  I  take  pity  upon  you; 
but  it  is  not  I;  it  is  these  things  before  me,  although  they  are  dead,  and 
the  Sun  who  must  help  you."  It  was  agreed  to  go  on  the  war-path.  The 
owner  was  the  leader  and  carried  the  bundle.  When  they  started  the 
owner  of  the  bundle  went  over  on  the  east  side  of  the  main  body  of  men. 
They  made  camp  and  the  owner  of  the  bundle  came  in  from  the  east. 
In  his  journeys  he  went  on  the  east  side,  so  that  people  would  not  get  in 
his  way. 

The  man  became  a  great  warrior;  he  had  many  fine  ponies,  and  with 
these  ponies  he  killed  many  buffalo  and  took  the  meat  to  the  priests' 
lodge.  The  meat  was  made  holy  and  was  jerked  and  dried.  This  man 
became  a  chief.  He  had  no  children  and  so  he  turned  his  bundle  over  to 
his  wife  when  he  died.  She  kept  the  bundle  until  a  certain  boy  grew  up 
who  was  related  to  the  former  owner  of  the  bundle.  The  boy  was  taught 
how  to  carry  the  bundle  and  when  to  open  it ;  and  he  was  told  to  always 


88  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

walk  all  day  on  the  east  side  of  the  company,  and  if  anyone  passed  in  front 
of  him  to  turn  back  and  go  home.  As  this  boy  became  a  man  he  took 
his  bundle  and  went  on  the  war-path  with  some  other  men,  and  was  suc- 
cessful. He  changed  his  name  from  Yellow-Bird  to  Proud-Fox,  for  he 
was  very  proud  because  he  had  been  successful  in  capturing  ponies  the 
first  time.  He  stayed  at  home  but  a  short  time,  then  went  out  again  with 
another  party.  He  captured  more  ponies  and  changed  his  name  again  to 
Spotted-Horse.  This  name  he  kept  until  one  time  when  he  captured 
many  more  ponies.  Among  these  ponies  was  a  fine  spotted  horse.  This 
spotted  horse  seemed  to  be  the  chief  of  ponies.  He  changed  his  name  to 
Spotted-Horse-Chief.  While  Spotted- Horse-Chief  had  that  name  men 
looked  upon  him  as  a  great  warrior.  Soon  after  he  came  back  with  many 
ponies,  another  party  of  warriors  from  the  Sioux  country  came  and  cap- 
tured many  ponies  from  the  Pawnee.  Spotted-Horse-Chief  sat  in  his  lodge 
and  invited  only  a  few  of  his  friends.  He  told  them  that  he  intended  to 
go  on  the  war-path ;  that  he  was  going  to  try  to  get  the  ponies  back.  The 
other  men  said  that  they  would  go  with  him. 

The  company  started  out  very  early  in  the  morning.  When  they 
had  gone  far  from  the  village,  they  stopped  to  rest.  Scouts  were  on  the 
hills,  and  they  kept  making  signs  to  the  company  that  some  more  men 
were  coming.  The  men  arrived  and  joined  the  others.  They  came  to  the 
Platte  River  and  the  ice  had  broken  so  that  large  cakes  were  floating 
down  the  river.  The  leader  with  the  bundle  stopped  on  the  east  side  of 
the  company,  and  said,  "Come,  follow  me,  men!"  With  all  his  cloth- 
ing on  he  started  to  wade  the  river.  As  he  went  where  the  current  was 
swift  he  had  to  push  away  the  cakes  of  ice  that  were  coming  down  the 
river.  He  crossed  the  river  and  stood  upon  the  bank.  All  of  his  fol- 
lowers were  where  he  had  left  them,  although  he  had  commanded  them 
to  follow  him.  He  thought  to  himself:  "Well,  I  wanted  to  come  on  the 
war-path  alone ;  those  men  followed  me ;  and  there  they  are  afraid  to  cross 
the  river. "  He  then  sang  a  warrior  Coyote  song.  When  the  men  heard 
Spotted-Horse-Chief  sing,  they  said:  "It  is  true.  Spotted-Horse-Chief 
sat  in  his  lodge  planning  to  go  out ;  we  heard  of  it ;  our  sisters  and  aunts 
fixed  our  moccasins,  with  pemmican  and  corn ;  we  crawled  up  to  his  lodge 
and  waited  until  he  started  out ;  then  we  followed  Spotted-Horse-Chief. 
He  did  not  ask  us  to  follow  him;  now  he  asks  us  to  follow  him  through 
this  river.  He  has  crossed  the  river ;  he  is  a  brave  man ;  let  us  cross  and 
follow  him  through  the  enemy's  country."  The  men  all  waded  through 
the  river,  although  the  water  was  cold.  Cakes  of  ice  were  floating  down 
the  stream,  but  the  men  did  not  mind  them.  They  crossed  the  river 
and  stood  on  the  bank  where  Spotted-Horse-Chief  had  kindled  a  fire,  so 


SPOTTED  HORSE;  A  BRAVE  AND  A  CHIEF.  89 

that  the  men  might  warm  themselves.  Spotted-Horse-Chief  and  the 
men  then  started  on  their  journey  south,  all  of  the  men  going  on  the 
west  side  of  Spotted-Horse-Chief.  One  day  scouts  came  back  and  said: 
"Enemy's  camp  in  sight;  squat  down!"  The  men  obeyed.  One  man 
was  sent  to  notify  Spotted-Horse-Chief.  He  overtook  him  and  waved  a 
blanket  at  him.  Spotted-Horse-Chief  came  to  the  company.  He  sat  on 
the  south  side.  He  untied  his  bundle.  He  took  the  pipe,  filled  it  with 
native  tobacco,  and  took  out  the  sun-glass.  The  men  all  looked  at  him. 
It  was  cloudy,  but  the  sun  came  out  as  if  to  say:  "I  will  come  out  and 
light  your  pipe."  The  sun  came  out  and  the  smoke  came  out  through 
the  stem.  The  sun  disappeared.  Spotted-Horse-Chief  then  sang  a  vic- 
tory song;  he  then  stood  up  and  spoke  to  his  warriors:  "My  men,  the 
gods  in  the  heavens  have  looked  upon  us  with  favor;  even  the  sun  has 
blown  his  hot  breath  upon  the  bowl  of  my  pipe ;  the  winds  helped  me  to 
draw  my  breath;  the  smoke  passed  through  the  stem  without  a  hole. 
Think  of  the  many  warriors  who  have  had  success  upon  these  prairies. 
The  gods  helped  them  and  they  will  help  us  and  guide  us  to  success;  we 
will  get  many  ponies.  Our  names  must  be  changed;  you  said  the  enemy 
saw  us,  but  the  gods  will  blind  them;  they  will  not  see  us.  Each  one  of 
you  now  take  your  rawhide  lariat  rope,  stretch  it  out,  so  that  the  gods 
will  know  that  we  have  accepted  what  they  have  put  in  our  way." 
Every  man  stretched  his  lariat  rope  in  front  of  him  on  the  ground.  In  the 
afternoon  Spotted-Horse-Chief  sent  scouts  to  the  village  of  the  enemy. 
The  scouts  came  back  and  reported  that  there  was  no  stir  in  camp  and 
that  the  enemy  were  driving  their  herds  of  ponies  away  from  camp. 
After  night  Spotted-Horse-Chief  selected  men  to  go  and  capture  ponies 
for  him.  These  men  went  to  the  camp,  found  no  ponies;  then  they  went 
east  of  the  village  and  found  many  ponies  along  a  stream  of  water. 
These  men  drove  all  the  ponies  to  where  Spotted-Horse-Chief  was  and 
gave  them  all  to  him.  Spotted-Horse-Chief  commanded  the  warriors 
each  to  lariat  a  pony  and  drive  them  as  fast  as  they  could.  They  trav- 
eled four  days  and  four  nights  without  stopping  to  rest.  When  they  did 
stop  the  men  fainted  and  were  sore,  for  they  rode  without  saddles.  Many 
ponies  were  captured  and  all  the  young  men  received  new  names  and 
ponies. 

After  that  whenever  Spotted-Horse-Chief  sat  down  to  organize  a  war 
party  many  young  men  joined  him.  Spotted-Horse  Chief  in  a  battle 
with  the  Sioux  was  wounded  and,  although  the  men  of  the  Buffalo  Society 
doctored  him,  he  died.  The  bundle,  pipe,  sun-glass,  and  skin  were  left 
with  an  old  woman.  This  woman  died  at  Pawnee  Agency,  Oklahoma,  in 
1879,  and  all  these  things  were  buried  with  her. 


90  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

21.  THE  BOY  WHO  WAS  GIVEN  POWER  TO  CALL  THE  BUFFALO. 

(See  Abstracts.) 

[Told  by  Thief,  a  Kitkehahki.  The  interest  in  this  tale  is  chiefly  in  the  lesson 
which  it  is  supposed  to  convey,  viz,  that  the  gods  of  the  heavens  watch  over  the 
pregnant  woman  and  protect  the  new-born  child  from  harm  and  disease.  The 
relating  in  the  tale  of  the  deeds  of  the  young  man  who  delivers  his  people  from 
hunger,  overcomes  the  enemy,  and  slays  the  monsters,  furnishes  of  course  the 
characteristic  features  of  a  hero  tale.  The  connection  of  this  story  with  the  bundle 
is  through  the  fact  that  the  north  wind,  who  assisted  him  in  his  search  for  food, 
ultimately  gave  him  a  bundle,  and  it  is  believed  that  through  the  rites  enacted 
during  the  performance  of  the  bundle  ceremony  the  gods  are  moved  to  render 
similar  assistance.  Two  additional  versions  of  the  tale  are  presented  in  Nos.  22 
and  23.] 

22.  THE  SON  OF  WIND,  READY-TO-GIVE.1 

The  people  were  preparing  to  leave  their  permanent  village  and  go 
on  a  buffalo  hunt.  While  the  women  were  putting  their  corn  and  squash 
into  the  cache  holes  and  stopping  them  up,  they  saw  that  one  of  the 
most  beautiful  young  girls  of  the  village,  who  was  helping  them,  was  preg- 
nant. She  had  kept  her  secret  to  herself  for  a  long  time,  though  she 
could  not  understand  it,  for  she  knew  that  she  had  not  been  with  any 
man.  When  it  was  known,  her  uncles  scolded  her  and  tried  to  make 
her  tell  what  man  she  had  been  with,  but  the  girl  would  not  say  any- 
thing. Her  father  scolded  her  and  drove  her  and  her  mother  and  the 
grandmother  out  of  the  lodge,  saying  that  he  would  have  nothing  more 
to  do  with  womankind.  It  was  noised  through  the  village  that  these 
people  were  outcasts  and  that  nobody  should  have  anything  to  do  with 
them. 

The  people  started  upon  their  buffalo  hunt,  leaving  these  three  women 
alone  in  the  deserted  village.  They  put  up  a  grass-lodge  to  live  in,  and 
then  went  to  several  cache  holes  and  opened  them  up  and  took  corn  and 
squash.  After  a  few  months  the  girl  gave  birth  to  a  male  child.  The 
day  that  the  child  was  born  there  was  a  great  wind  from  the  north.  When 
the  women  found  out  that  the  child  was  a  boy  they  were  very  thankful. 
The  child  grew  fast  and  it  was  not  long  until  he  could  walk.  Then  his 
grandmother  made  him  a  little  bow  and  some  arrows.  As  he  grew  older 
the  grandmother  made  a  larger  bow  and  arrows.  One  day  the  little  boy 
went  into  the  timber,  and  while  he  was  there  a  voice  spoke  to  him  and 
said:  "My  son,  I  am  glad  to  see  you.  I  am  your  father.  From  this 

1  Told  by  Yellow-Bird,  the  Chaui  leader  of  the  Buffalo  Society,  who  died  in 
1904.  This  is  the  Chaui  version  of  tale  No.  21.  and  this  tale,  it  is  said,  was  told  on 
former  occasions  during  the  performance  of  a  Chaui  bundle  ceremony. 


THE    SON    OF    WIND,    READY-TO-GIVE.  QI 

day  on  you  must  come  to  the  timber  and  I  will  bring  you  something  to 
eat.  Take  this  bird  home  and  roast  it. "  The  boy  took  the  bird  home 
and  gave  it  to  his  grandmother.  She  roasted  it  and  told  him  that  he 
should  eat  only  the  head  of  the  bird,  and  then  he  would  have  luck  to  kill 
many  more  birds.  The  body  of  the  bird  the  grandmother  ate. 

The  next  day  the  boy  went  back  to  the  timber  and  soon  he  heard 
a  voice  speaking  to  him.  He  looked  about,  but  could  see  no  one,  but 
could  hear  these  words:  "My  son,  I  am  glad  that  you  came.  Take 
this  rabbit  home  and  let  your  grandmother  cook  it."  A  rabbit  fell  in 
front  of  him  and  he  picked  it  up  and  took  it  home.  The  women  did  not 
question  the  boy  as  to  how  he  got  the  rabbit,  for  they  supposed  that  he 
was  old  enough  to  kill  it  with  his  arrows.  They  were  thankful  for  the 
rabbit,  for  they  had  lived  only  on  corn  for  so  long  that  they  were  hungry 
for  meat.  They  cooked  the  rabbit  and  ate  it. 

The  next  day  the  boy  went  back  to  the  timber.  He  heard  the  voice 
speak  to  him  again.  It  said,  "My  son,  take  this  home  and  let  your  peo- 
ple cook  it."  A  young  fawn  fell  before  him.  He  took  it  home  and 
the  women  were  glad,  for  they  thought  that  the  boy  had  killed  it.  Every 
day  the  boy  went  to  the  timber  and  each  time  he  carried  home  larger 
game,  until  at  last  a  buffalo  was  placed  before  him  and  he  had  to  go  and 
get  the  women  to  help  him  skin  the  buffalo  and  carry  it  home. 

When  the  boy  went  back  into  the  timber  the  next  day  the  voice 
spoke  to  him  and  said:  "Come  with  me."  As  soon  as  he  said  "Come 
with  me, "  the  boy  looked  and  there  stood  a  man.  The  man  was  painted 
with  red  ointment  and  had  a  buffalo  robe  over  his  shoulders.  His  leg- 
gings were  of  antelope  skin,  but  the  moccasins  were  made  of  buffalo  hide 
with  the  hair  inside.  Over  his  shoulder  was  an  otter-skin  quiver  and  he 
carried  an  ash  bow.  The  man  took  the  boy  far  into  the  timber  to  a  soft 
sandy  place,  and  there  began  to  tramp  upon  the  soft  ground.  Then  he 
said:  "My  son,  remove  some  of  the  dirt  where  I  have  been  stamping." 
The  little  boy  began  to  dig  into  the  earth  with  his  hands,  and  there  he 
found  a  rat's  nest,  and  as  he  dug  deeper  into  the  ground  he  came  to  a  rat 's 
hole  and  there  he  found  a  big  pile  of  ground  beans.  The  boy  gathered 
the  beans  up  in  his  robe  and  took  them  to  the  women,  and  when  they  saw 
the  beans  they  wondered  how  the  boy  could  have  found  them,  for  they 
had  been  to  the  timber  many  times  trying  to  find  these  beans,  but  were 
never  successful. 

The  next  day  the  boy  went  back  to  the  timber.  He  saw  the  man 
again  and  went  with  him.  When  they  came  to  a  soft  place  in  the  ground 
the  man  told  the  boy  to  dig.  The  boy  began  to  dig  and  he  found  many 
artichokes.  He  dug  them  up,  placed  them  in  his  robe,  and  went  home 
and  gave  them  to  the  women.  They  were  surprised,  for  they  had  tried 


92  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

many  times,  but  could  never  find  any  artichokes.  The  next  day  the 
boy  went  back  into  the  timber.  The  man  spoke  and  said:  "My  son,  I 
give  you  these  leggings.  I  also  give  you  these  moccasins,  and  this  robe 
that  I  have  on.  I  also  give  you  this  quiver  filled  with  arrows  and  the 
bow.  From  this  day  on  you  must  kill  your  own  animals  for  meat.  You 
must  go  and  tell  the  women  where  to  dig  these  artichokes  and  beans.  In 
the  spring  I  shall  return  and  shall  teach  the  women  how  to  plant  the  corn, 
squash,  and  beans.  My  son,  I  am  your  father.  I  am  one  of  the  gods 
and  I  stand  in  the  north.  My  name  is  Ready-to-Give.  When  the  peo- 
ple are  hungry  for  buffalo,  I  blow  my  breath  upon  the  land.  My  breath 
drives  the  buffalo  to  the  people,  and  they  slaughter  many.  The  people 
made  me  angry,  for  they  made  you  an  outcast,  my  son,  and  so  I  have 
driven  all  the  buffalo  and  game  out  of  the  country  where  they  are  trav- 
eling. The  game  and  the  buffalo  will  circle  around  and  will  come  into  this 
country.  The  people  will  roam  over  the  plains  for  many  years,  and  then 
they  will  think  of  you.  They  will  think  of  your  mother  and  the  other 
women.  They  will  wonder  if  you  are  still  living.  The  people  will  be  com- 
ing to  open  up  their  caches  to  get  something  to  eat,  for  I  shall  make  them 
hungry.  Go  to  your  mother  and  tell  your  mother  that  you  have  seen 
your  father;  that  your  father  is  the  Wind  which  blows  from  the  north, 
Ready-to-Give.' '  The  boy  gathered  up  his  things  and  went  to  the  grass- 
lodge.  When  he  entered  the  lodge  he  gave  his  things  to  his  mother  and 
said:  "Mother,  put  these  things  away.  I  have  seen  my  father.  My 
father  says  his  name  is  Wind,  Ready-to-Give.  It  was  he  who  was  with 
you.  The  Wind  touched  you  and  you  did  not  know  it.  He  has  gone, 
but  he  has  promised  to  come  back  to  help  me  kill  buffalo  and  game,  and 
in  the  spring  he  is  to  come  back  again  to  teach  us  how  to  put  our  seeds 
into  the  ground.' ' 

The  women  were  astonished  at  the  talk  of  the  boy.  When  they 
wanted  meat  they  told  the  boy  to  take  his  bow  and  arrows  that  he  had 
received  from  his  father  and  go  out  to  the  timber  and  kill  some  game. 
Whenever  the  boy  went  out  a  long  way  from  home  his  father  would  meet 
him,  and  they  would  go  together  until  they  came  to  a  buffalo  herd. 
The  boy  would  walk  right  in  among  the  herd  and  would  kill  a  buffalo,  then 
the  father  and  his  son  would  skin  the  buffalo  and  cut  up  the  meat,  then  they 
would  carry  the  meat  to  the  boy's  home.  After  a  while  Ready-to-Give 
entered  the  lodge.  The  women  knew  him,  and  the  mother  of  the  boy 
gave  him  a  seat  close  by.  When  Ready-to-Give  spoke  to  the  women,  he 
said:  "I  shall  be  gone.  I  know  where  the  people  are.  They  are  starv- 
ing, but  it  is  their  fault.  They  made  you  people  outcasts  because  this 
woman  brought  my  child  into  the  world.  They  will  be  coming  back  soon 


THE  SON  OF  WIND,  READY-TO-GIVE.  93 

and  they  will  bless  my  boy.  They  will  pray  to  him  and  beg  him  for  some- 
thing to  eat.  My  boy  shall  rule  the  people  and  he  shall  call  the  buffalo 
whenever  the  buffalo  are  not  to  be  found,  by  saying:  'Ready-to-Give, 
blow  your  breath  upon  the  land  that  it  may  touch  the  buffalo  and 
make  them  to  come  to  our  village.'  My  son  is  now  old  enough  to 
kill  game.  I  shall  have  to  go,  as  it  is  now  winter  and  I  shall  have  to 
stand  in  my  place  in  the  north,  for  it  is  my  time  to  send  food  to  people. 
You  know  where  to  go  and  dig  artichokes  and  beans.  The  boy  will  not 
have  to  go  very  far  to  kill  buffalo.  I  am  gone. "  There  was  a  noise  of 
wind  in  the  lodge,  and  there  was  a  little  dust  from  the  ground  which 
went  up  to  the  opening  on  the  top  of  the  lodge  and  with  it  the  man 
disappeared. 

After  that  the  boy  went  to  the  timber,  and  sometimes  beyond  the 
timber,  to  hunt.  Every  day  the  boy  killed  three  or  four  buffalo  and 
sometimes  three  or  four  deer,  so  that  the  women  had  all  they  could  do  to 
tan  the  buffalo  and  deer  hides,  and  to  jerk  and  dry  the  meat.  They 
made  parfleches  from  the  buffalo  hides  and  in  them  they  put  the  dried 
meat.  When  the  women  had  many  buffalo  hides  they  agreed  that  they 
should  make  a  tipi,  for  the  grass-house  was  getting  old  and  was  not  fit  to 
live  in.  They  scraped  the  hair  from  the  hides,  and  made  a  fine  large 
tipi.  Then  they  made  beautiful  buckskin  dresses. 

In  the  spring  while  the  boy  was  out  hunting  he  met  Ready-to-Give. 
They  went  home  together.  Ready-to-Give  told  the  women  that  they 
should  go  into  the  bottom  lands  and  clean  them  up ;  that  he  had  brought 
corn  and  squash  seeds  and  beans  for  them ;  that  they  must  put  them  into 
the  ground.  He  gave  the  white  corn  to  his  wife  to  plant,  and  the 
yellow  corn  he  gave  to  her  mother;  the  red  corn  and  squash  seeds  he 
gave  to  his  wife's  sister,  and  the  dark  corn  and  the  beans  to  the  old 
woman.  Then  Ready-to-Give  sat  down  and  talked  to  the  boy.  He  told 
the  boy  that  he  must  make  a  bundle.  He  said:  "You  must  carry  home 
fire  sticks  and  place  them  in  the  bundle.  Then  you  must  take  some 
flint  and  place  it  in  the  bundle.  When  you  have  gathered  the  white 
corn  you  must  place  some  in  the  bundle,  for  the  white  corn  you  shall 
always  call  'Mother. '  Then  you  must  place  a  hawk  skin  in  the  bundle, 
for  the  hawk  represents  a  great  warrior.  Next,  you  must  gather  some 
sweet  grass,  braid  it,  and  put  several  strings  into  the  bundle.  This 
bundle  shall  be  known  as  the  '  Ready-to-Give  bundle. '  When  you  kill  a 
buffalo  bull  in  the  winter  time,  place  tobacco  in  its  nostrils,  and  also  place 
some  at  the  root  of  the  ears  and  upon  the  top  of  the  head.  Place  this 
tobacco  upon  the  head  of  the  buffalo  bull  as  an  offering  to  the  gods  in 
the  heavens.  The  gods  will  notice  that  an  offering  of  tobacco  has  been 


94  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

made  upon  the  skull,  and  they  will  know  that  their  spirit  is  to  dwell  in  the 
buffalo  skull.  Then  you  must  skin  the  head  of  the  buffalo  bull  and  take 
only  the  skull  to  your  home.  Place  the  skull  upon  some  high  hill  until 
the  flesh  is  gone  and  nothing  but  bone  is  left.  Then  take  the  skull  and 
place  it  west  and  outside  of  the  lodge,  but  when  you  are  inside  the  earth- 
lodge  place  the  skull  on  the  west  side  of  the  lodge  under  the  bundle 
When  you  have  ceremonies  place  the  skull  to  the  north  side  of  the  fire- 
place, so  that  when  the  people  are  making  offerings  to  the  gods  they  will 
always  remember  to  make  a  separate  offering  to  the  god  who  stands  in 
the  north,  and  who  is  always  ready  to  send  the  people  something  to  eat. 
I  shall  always  dwell  in  the  skull,  for  you  now  know  that  I  am  the  Wind. " 

For  many  months  Ready-to-Give  remained,  teaching  his  son  the  cere- 
monies of  the  bundle.  In  the  fall  Ready-to-Give  saw  that  the  women 
and  boy  had  plenty  of  meat,  corn,  squash,  and  beans  to  eat;  then  he  said: 
"Winter  is  now  coming  and  I  must  go  away  to  my  place.  The  people 
are  now  thinking  of  returning  to  this  place.  Have  nothing  to  do  with 
your  uncles,  for  they  left  you  behind  to  die. " 

One  of  the  hunters  made  up  his  mind  to  go  to  the  deserted  village, 
for  his  children  were  starving,  and  he  intended  to  open  one  of  the  cache 
holes  to  get  some  corn.  The  boy  had  been  away  from  their  place  hunt- 
ing. When  he  came  back  with  some  meat  he  said:  "Mother,  there  is 
a  man  coming  toward  our  camp.  He  is  from  our  people. "  The  women 
said,  "How  do  you  know?"  and  the  boy  said,  "My  father  told  me." 

Several  days  afterwards  the  boy  told  the  women  to  watch,  that  the 
man  was  coming  to  their  place.  The  women  watched  and  sure  enough 
they  saw  a  man  coming  over  the  hills.  He  hunted  around  through 
the  village  looking  for  the  cache  holes,  but  he  could  not  find  any.  He 
climbed  one  of  the  lodges,  sat  upon  the  top,  and  looked  over  the  country. 
He  saw  the  smoke  coming  up  from  the  timber,  came  down  from  the 
lodge,  and  walked  down  to  the  place  where  the  smoke  was  coming  from. 
When  he  came  the  women  met  him.  He  was  not  one  of  their  relatives, 
so  they  took  him  in,  gave  him  something  to  eat,  and  when  he  was  filled 
he  said:  "Women,  who  are  you?  Where  did  all  these  things  come 
from  which  I  see  around  here?"  The  women  said,  "Our  son  kills 
buffalo  and  that  is  why  we  have  plenty  of  meat."  The  women  then 
told  the  man  that  they  were  the  women  who  were  made  outcasts  on 
account  of  the  girl's  condition.  The  man  remembered.  The  boy  was 
sent  for.  He  came  into  the  tipi  and  sat  down.  The  man  looked  at  him 
and  he  could  see  that  the  young  boy  had  mysterious  powers.  He  had  a 
soft  downy  eagle  feather  stuck  in  his  hair.  His  eyes  looked  strange. 
The  boy  said:  "I  am  very  sorry  that  the  people  left  my  people  behind, 


THE  SON  OP  WIND,  READY-TO-GIVE.  95 

but  as  you  see  now  Tirawa  has  given  me  plenty.  Though  the  people 
through  me  have  plenty,  they  shall  yet  have  more.  Even  though  the 
people  threw  me  away,  yet  they  are  my  people.  Tell  them  to  come. 
Tell  them  I  have  plenty  of  meat  for  them.  They  shall  come  and  they 
shall  be  my  people.  "  He  told  his  mother  to  take  some  dried  meat,  wrap 
it  up,  and  give  it  to  the  man,  so  that  he  could  take  the  meat  to  his  people. 
The  man  did  not  stay  over  night,  but  returned  at  once  to  the  camp. 
When  the  people  heard  of  the  women  and  the  strange  boy  and  the  abun- 
dance of  food  they  traveled  fast.  When  they  arrived  the  man  who  sent 
the  women  away  came  and  cried,  and  the  boy  went  out  and  said:  "I 
am  now  a  man.  Do  not  cry.  You  shall  learn  many  things.  Tell  the 
people  to  come  and  make  their  home  close  by.  Tell  the  women  to  come, 
so  that  these  women  may  give  them  meat.  "  The  chief  of  the  people 
then  told  the  uncle  to  ask  the  boy  to  come  and  make  his  home  with  him  ; 
that  he  had  a  daughter  who  was  old  enough  to  be  married,  but  the  boy 
said,  "No;  I  must  feed  the  people  first.  "  He  had  the  people  make  him  a 
new  tipi,  and  when  they  had  finished  it  he  hung  the  bundle  which  his 
father  had  promised  him  in  the  tipi,  and  placed  the  skull  on  the  other  side 
of  the  fireplace.  Then  he  sat  down  and  told  the  people,  through  the 
chief,  that  he  was  going  to  send  for  buffalo.  On  the  fourth  night  he 
told  the  men  to  get  on  their  ponies,  go  out,  and  surround  the  buffalo. 
They  did  and  returned  with  much  meat.  The  boy  called  the  buffalo  four 
times.  After  that  he  said,  "I  must  go  on  the  war-path.  "  The  boy  went 
and  came  back  with  many  ponies.  Then  the  boy  married  the  chief's 
daughter,  and  he  lived  until  he  was  a  very  old  man  and  then  died. 

23.  THE  MAN  WHO  CALLED  THE  BUFFALO. 

(See  Abstracts.) 

[Told  by  White-Horse,  the  leading  medicine-man  of  the  Pitahauirat  and  the 
owner  of  the  stone-man's  medicine.  This  is  the  Pitahauirat  variant  of  Nos.  21 
and  23.] 

24.  THE  WONDERFUL  BOY.1 

A  long  time  ago  there  were  no  other  people  known  in  the  world  but 
the  Skidi.  The  Skidi  were  living  somewhere  on  the  Loupe  River.  In 
the  village  were  many  people.  Different  games  were  given  to  the  people. 
The  women  also  had  different  games  which  were  given  to  them.  Among 
the  games  was  a  stick  and  ring  game.  There  was  one  young  man  who 
was  well-to-do,  and  who  had  many  things  to  bet  with  the  gaming  sticks. 


by  Good-Eagle,  a  Skidi  medicine-man.     This  tale  is  somewhat  similar 
to  the  preceding  and  may  be  considered  as  the  Skidi  variant. 


06  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

Every  day  he  was  out  where  they  played.  In  the  evening  he  came 
home  and  entered  his  father 's  lodge.  He  gambled  away  everything  he 
had.  The  boy  gambled  away  buffalo  robes,  leggings,  moccasins,  and 
other  things,  so  that  he  now  had  nothing.  Ponies  at  this  time  were 
not  known.  In  the  night  when  he  lay  down  he  had  only  half  a  buffalo 
robe  to  cover  himself  with. 

One  day  he  went  out  to  the  gaming  grounds  and  he  lost  many  things, 
among  them  trinkets  belonging  to  his  sister  and  also  her  robe.  The  sis- 
ter gladly  gave  them  up.  When  night  came  the  sister  and  brother  had 
to  lie  together  and  over  them  was  spread  the  half  buffalo  robe  which  the 
boy  had  not  gambled  away.  When  the  morning  came  the  father  arose, 
and  as  he  walked  by  the  bed,  he  saw  that  the  young  man  was  sleeping 
with  his  sister  and  had  only  a  half  robe  over  them.  He  became  very  sad. 
He  went  out.  When  he  returned  to  the  lodge  he  became  angry.  He 
went  to  the  bed,  took  the  covering  from  the  boy,  woke  him,  and  said: 
"My  son,  it  looks  very  bad  for  you  and  your  sister  to  lie  together,  and  to 
have  only  this  half  of  a  buffalo  robe  over  you.  Get  up,  go  to  the  gaming 
grounds,  lose  everything  we  have.  When  you  have  lost  everything, 
then  go  away  to  some  other  place  and  never  return."  The  young  man 
jumped  up  and  tried  to  cry.  The  sister  caught  him  and  said:  "My 
brother,  do  not  cry.  What  my  father  has  said  is  true.  He  is  angry  with 
you  because  you  have  lost  all  my  things.  Some  day  I  may  get  them 
back.  Now,  do  not  cry  and  do  not  go  away  from  us. " 

The  young  man  did  not  say  anything.  He  did  not  go  to  the  gaming 
grounds,  but  sat  inside  of  the  lodge  all  day.  As  night  came  he  went  to 
his  sister  and  said:  "My  sister,  fold  up  some  dried  meat  and  make  it  into 
a  bundle.  Tie  several  moccasins  upon  it,  for  I  am  about  to  start  on  a 
journey  to  a  place  I  do  not  know.  Take  some  arrows  from  my  father's 
quiver  and  put  them  in  my  quiver.  I  shall  now  go."  The  girl  said: 
' '  My  brother,  you  must  not  go  yet.  Let  me  go  to  our  uncles  and  see  if 
I  can  not  get  several  bear  moccasins  and  a  robe  for  you. "  She  went  and 
after  a  while  returned  with  a  buffalo  robe,  leggings,  and  several  pairs  of 
moccasins.  The  boy  was  glad.  He  put  on  the  leggings  and  moccasins 
and  with  his  bundle  and  quiver  started  west. 

For  several  days  he  traveled  without  seeing  any  human  being.  At 
last  he  came  to  a  village.  When  he  entered  he  asked  where  the  tipi  of 
the  chief  was,  and  they  showed  him.  The  boy  entered,  and  when  he  sat 
down  the  chief  asked  him  where  he  was  going.  He  said:  "I  am  going 
west.  Are  there  any  more  people  in  the  west?"  The  chief  said,  "You 
will  travel  so  many  days  and  you  will  find  more  people. "  The  boy 
started  again  and  in  a  few  days  he  came  to  another  village.  Here  he  was 


THE  WONDERFUL  BOY.  97 

received  by  the  chief,  given  plenty  to  eat,  and  was  told  to  continue  on  his 
journey,  as  there  were  other  people  in  the  west.  He  came  to  the  people; 
he  was  treated  very  kindly  and  meat  and  other  things  were  given  him. 
He  was  told  to  go  on,  as  there  were  other  people  in  the  west.  After  a 
while  this  boy  came  to  a  village  of  people.  The  people  were  naked,  had 
no  bows  and  arrows,  but  had  sticks.  Every  day  the  people  went  rabbit 
hunting  and  killed  some,  and  lived  on  this  kind  of  food  altogether.  The 
people  looked  wonderingly  at  the  boy  and  asked  him  where  he  came  from. 
They  thought  he  was  funny  because  he  wore  the  leggings,  carried  a  bow 
and  arrows,  and  had  a  robe.  They  tried  to  keep  him,  but  the  boy  said, 
"No;  I  must  go,  for  I  am  going  on  a  long  journey." 

After  a  while  the  boy  came  to  some  people  and  when  he  got  into 
their  lodge  he  found  they  had  no  mouths.  They  fed  him  with  meat. 
He  ate.  They  looked  funny  at  him,  for  he  ate  the  meat.  When  these 
people  became  hungry  they  put  dried  meat  upon  the  pole  and  placed 
it  over  the  fire.  When  it  was  smoking  they  would  take  the  meat  and 
place  it  against  their  noses  and  smell  of  it.  When  they  were  filled,  they 
would  throw  the  meat  to  one  side.  They  talked  with  the  sign  language. 

The  young  man  left  the  people  and  went  west.  He  came  to  other 
people  who  were  very  small,  and  these  people  had  stones  to  throw.  The 
stones  were  tied  with  strings  and  with  these  they  killed  their  game. 
When  they  saw  the  boy  with  the  bow  and  arrow  they  challenged  him  to 
shoot  at  a  hide.  The  hide  was  stretched  some  feet  away  and  a  man 
selected  to  throw  the  stones.  The  stones  were  thrown  at  the  hide  and 
they  went  through  the  hide.  The  boy  was  told  to  shoot  at  it  with  his 
bow  and  arrows.  He  did  this  and  shot  through  the  hide.  When  they  saw 
him  shoot  they  thought  it  was  wonderful.  They  began  to  examine  the 
bow  and  the  arrows.  They  kept  the  boy  at  their  village  so  that  he  could 
teach  them  hpw  to  make  the  bow  and  the  arrows.  The  boy  taught  them. 

After  several  days  he  asked  if  there  were  any  more  people  and  they 
said  that  they  did  not  know  of  any  more.  The  boy  said,  "I  shall  now 
go  on."  He  started.  When  night  came  somebody  said  to  him:  "My 
son,  I  will  now  let  you  know  that  you  are  beyond  all  people.  It  was 
I  who  brought  you.  I  am  the  North- Wind.  I  shall  take  you  now  to 
the  place  where  you  are  going.  To-morrow  we  shall  travel  fast ;  towards 
the  evening  you  will  see  a  high  peak.  There  you  must  go  and  you  will 
see  what  the  mound  is." 

The  next  day  the  boy  traveled  swiftly.  Some  time  in  the  afternoon 
he  saw  a  high  peak  in  the  distance.  He  ran  towards  it  and  in  the  even- 
ing when  near  to  it  he  saw  many  eagle  feathers  strewn  over  the  ground. 
When  he  reached  the  hill  he  saw  that  the  point  of  the  hill  was  a  pile  of 


98  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

eagles  high  up  in  the  sky.  The  same  voice  said  to  him,  "Take some  brown 
eagle  feathers,  some  downy  feathers,  and  carry  them  with  you  to  where 
we  are  going. "  They  went  on.  They  came  to  a  steep  bank  and  there 
the  boy  was  told  to  lie  down.  Before  the  sun  came  up  in  the  morning 
he  was  awakened  by  the  Wind,  who  said,  "Let  us  travel  on."  They 
went  on.  They  came  to  a  steep  bank  and  there  they  stood,  for  at  the 
bank  the  boy  saw  water.  At  some  distance  was  a  thick  fog.  Then  the 
North- Wind  said:  "My  son,  although  you  do  not  see  me  I  am  always 
near  you  and  I  am  always  with  you.  I  have  been  with  you  all  this 
journey.  I  made  you  come  to  these  different  people  and  you  have 
been  treated  well  by  them.  I  have  kept  them  from  killing  you.  We 
have  come  to  the  horizon.  Here  under  the  bank  towards  the  south  sits 
the  Buffalo  who  controls  this  big  water.  Go.  Stand  upon  the  bank  and 
throw  the  black  eagle  feathers  to  the  Buffalo  and  say:  'My  grandfather, 
I  have  come  from  a  far-away  country.  I  wish  to  take  a  look  at  you  and 
ask  your  permission  to  let  me  go  beyond  this  horizon. '  The  Buffalo  will 
jump  up  from  the  edge  of  the  water  and  will  start  on  a  trot  some  distance 
to  the  north  and  will  come  up  on  dry  land.  There  you  must  give  it  some 
native  tobacco  and  some  feathers.  The  Buffalo  will  say  to  you,  'You 
must  go  beyond  this  horizon  and  when  you  have  seen  the  people  who 
live  beyond,  tell  them  that  you  have  seen  the  people  who  live  here  and 
have  my  permission  to  pass  on.'  When  they  talk  to  you,  and  you  re- 
turn to  me  where  I  sit  in  the  water,  you  must  let  me  know  and  I 
will  help  you  to  take  the  Buffalo  to  your  people."  The  boy  did  as 
directed,  and  when  the  Buffalo  gave  its  permission  for  him  to  proceed, 
the  boy  thrust  some  feathers  into  the  Buffalo  bull's  hair  on  the  head 
and  placed  native  tobacco  upon  its  head.  Then  the  boy  said,  ' '  Grand- 
father, I  must  be  going.  " 

The  Buffalo  went  along  the  path  to  the  big  water  and  went  to  the 
south  and  sat  down  in  the  water  again.  The  boy  returned  to  the  hank. 
As  soon  as  he  got  to  the  place  the  Wind  said:  "Take  off  your  leggings, 
your  moccasins,  and  the  robe,  and  also  your  quiver;  put  them  all  in  the 
robe,  hold  them  in  your  hands,  and  wade  into  the  water.  From  here 
I  must  now  take  you  upon  your  journey."  The  boy  placed  his  things 
in  the  robe  and  went  into  the  water.  When  the  water  reached  to  his 
arms  the  Wind  blew  down,  took  him  up,  and  carried  him  on  for  some 
time.  At  last  the  Wind  said:  "Here  we  are.  This  is  the  place  where 
you  want  to  go.  Place  your  robe  and  things  on  the  ground.  You  must 
go  on  the  north  side  and  the  far  east  lodge  you  must  enter.  That  is 
where  the  four  gods  in  the  west  sit.  There  they  will  teach  you  many 
things.  I  will  be  in  the  lodge  and  they  shall  know  that  I  brought 
you."  The  boy  left  his  things  and  went  on  west  to  the  lodge.  When 


THE  WONDERFUL  BOY.  99 

he  came  close  he  saw  that  there  were  three  gardens — one  on  the  north 
side  of  the  entrance,  which  was  filled  with  pumpkins;  one  on  the  south 
side  with  many  beans;  and  one  on  the  west  of  the  lodge,  which  was  a 
field  of  corn.  When  the  boy  entered  the  lodge  they  gave  him  a  seat  near 
the  entrance,  and  the  four  gods  in  the  west  said:  "Where  do  you  come 
from,  my  son?"  The  boy  said:  "I  came  from  a  long  distance. "  One  of 
the  four  gods  said:  "We  know.  It  was  through  us  that  the  North- 
Wind  brought  you  here.  We  know  that  you  are  a  great  gambler.  You 
have  lost  everything  you  had.  Look  in  the  south  of  the  lodge  and 
there  sits  the  South- Wind,  who  brings  bad  luck  and  is  always  in  the 
way  of  some  young  man. "  The  boy  looked  in  the  south  and  there  sat 
an  ugly-looking  man.  His  skin  was  rough.  He  looked  rather  white. 
His  hair  was  not  brushed,  but  mixed  up  in  every  way.  The  god  said: 
"That  is  the  man  who  does  harm  to  young  men,  and  he  is  the  one 
who  goes  to  the  earth  and  scares  the  Buffalo  away  from  the  people. 
Yonder  in  the  north  is  the  man  who  brought  you  to  this  place. 
You  see  his  skin  is  like  yours.  The  buffalo  grease  is  on  him.  He  is  the 
good  wind  which  drives  the  buffalo  to  the  people.  He  has  brought  you 
here  so  that  you  may  receive  ceremonies  and  the  seeds  from  us.  We 
are  representatives  of  Tirawa,1  and  you  are  in  the  home  of  Tirawa,  but 
you  can  not  see  him.  What  we  tell  you  will  all  come  true. "  Then  one 
of  the  priests  said:  "Errand  man,  you  must  go  to  the  garden  in  the 
north  and  take  a  squash  and  bring  it  in. ' '  The  squash  was  brought  in, 
placed  on  the  north  side,  cut  open,  the  seeds  taken  out  and  placed  near 
to  the  fireplace.  The  squash  was  cooked  and  given  to  the  man  to  eat. 
When  he  was  full  they  sang  some  songs  which  they  were  teaching  the 
young  man.  After  singing  they  sent  another  errand  man  out  to  bring 
beans  into  the  lodge.  They  were  put  into  a  pot  and  boiled.  These 
were  given  to  the  young  man  and  he  ate  of  them.  Some  of  the  beans 
were  left  over  and  not  boiled.  These  were  placed  with  the  squash  seeds. 
Again  the  priests  sang.  After  singing  they  sent  the  other  errand  man 
and  he  brought  in  a  small  watermelon  from  the  south  side.  It  was  cut 
open  and  the  seeds  were  placed  with  the  other  seeds.  The  old  priests 
sang  again.  Then  they  sent  the  errand  man  out  for  some  corn. 
He  ate  some  of  the  corn  and  some  was  left  and  placed  with  the 
other  seeds.  The  priests  began  to  sing  again,  and  after  the  singing  they 
took  some  dried  buffalo  meat,  placed  it  in  a  pot,  and  boiled  it.  The 
young  man  ate  of  it,  and  he  was  then  told  that  it  was  now  time  for  him 
to  go  to  his  people,  as  his  people  were  starving.  In  the  first  place  he 

1  These  four  gods  are  Clouds,  Lightning,  Thunder,  and  Wind;  they  are  often 
spoken  of  as  the  messengers  of  the  evening  star. 


100  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

must  feed  them  and  then  call  the  buffalo,  for  the  people  were  now  to 
kill  them. 

They  asked  the  boy,  on  entering,  if  he  had  seen  the  Buffalo  sitting 
in  the  water.  They  told  him  to  return  to  the  place  and  see  the  Buffalo 
again  and  it  would  speak  to  him.  The  gods  began  to  sing,  and  after 
singing  they  said:  "My  son,  it  is  now  time  for  you  to  return  to  your 
people.  The  North- Wind  will  take  you  back.  We  now  give  you  a 
buffalo  robe,  and  in  all  that  you  want  to  do  for  the  benefit  of  the  people 
use  the  robe. "  The  young  man  put  the  robe  on  his  back  and  went  out. 
He  was  told  to  put  the  seeds  and  things  in  the  robe  for  the  people.  When 
he  reached  his  clothes  he  took  them  up  and  started  eastward.  After 
he  was  gone  a  little  way  the  North- Wind  came  and  said,  ' '  We  must  go 
to  a  certain  place."  They  went  to  a  certain  place.  The  wind  then 
seemed  to  cover  the  boy  up  and  they  disappeared.  The  wind  had  told 
the  boy  to  hold  his  things  in  his  hands  as  he  had  done  before. 

After  a  while  the  boy  was  dropped  into  the  water  where  the  horizon 
touched  the  ground.  It  was  like  a  fog.  The  water  came  up  to  his  arms ; 
he  waded  through  the  fog  and  finally  reached  the  bank.  Then  the  Wind 
said,  "We  must  go  now  to  the  Buffalo."  The  boy  dressed  and  went  to 
the  Buffalo.  He  threw  down  some  feathers  and  asked  the  Buffalo  to 
come  up.  He  came  up  and  stood  on  the  bank,  and  said,  "Grandchild, 
have  you  been  to  the  place  where  the  gods  dwell?"  The  boy  said,  "I 
have."  He  told  the  Buffalo  that  he  had  the  robe  which  was  given  to 
him  by  the  people  above  and  that  the  seeds  were  also  given  him.  When 
the  Buffalo  saw  the  robe  it  was  satisfied  and  said:  "You  have  now  all 
the  power  from  me  which  I  possess  and  the  Buffalo  people  will  go  to  your 
people.  I  now  must  return  to  my  place."  The  boy  put  a  few  feathers 
again  on  the  head  of  the  buffalo  and  went  on.  The  Wind  then  said  to  the 
boy:  "We  must  go  to  the  mound  of  the  eagles.  You  must  get  all  the 
feathers  that  you  can."  They  got  to  the  mound.  The  boy  gathered 
many  feathers,  made  a  bundle  of  them,  and  then  they  went  on. 

They  did  not  go  to  the  different  villages  which  the  boy  had  visited, 
but  the  Wind  took  the  boy  on  and  at  last  they  were  seated  on  the  side 
of  the  hill  at  night  time.  The  Wind  then  told  the  boy  to  go  into  the 
village  and  to  bring  him  blue  beads,  eagle  feathers,  paint,  sweet  grass, 
and  native  tobacco.  The  boy  started  to  the  village,  but  when  he  came 
near  to  it  he  smelt  the  people  and  could  not  stand  it.  He  ran  back  to 
where  the  Wind  was.  There  he  remained  with  the  Wind  all  night. 
The  next  day  when  the  people  went  outside  of  the  village  they  saw  foot- 
prints of  buffalo.  They  did  not  know  what  to  make  of  it.  The  next 
night  the  boy  attempted  to  enter  the  village  again,  and  when  he  came 


THE  WONDERFUL  BOY.  IOI 

near  he  could  not  go  farther.  He  returned  to  where  the  Wind  sat.  The 
next  morning  the  people  saw  the  footprints  of  the  buffalo  close  to  their 
village.  They  followed  the  track,  but  soon  lost  it.  The  third  night  he 
tried  again,  but  did  not  enter.  The  fourth  night  he  went  into  the  vil- 
lage and  entered  the  lodge  of  his  father.  He  went  to  his  sister  and  said: 
"Sister,  I  am  now  here.  Do  not  make  any  noise.  Before  you  make 
fire  waken  up  my  father  and  tell  him  to  go  through  the  village  and  bring 
me  blue  beads,  feathers,  paint,  sweet  grass,  and  native  tobacco."  The 
father  got  up,  went  through  the  village,  and  brought  all  the  things.  The 
sister  gave  them  to  the  brother  and  the  boy  said:  "Sister,  I  will  return. 
Watch."  He  took  the  things  and  gave  them  to  the  Wind.  The  Wind 
sent  the  boy  back  to  his  people. 

As  he  entered  the  lodge  he  called  for  his  sister,  told  her  to  make  a 
fire,  and  she  did  so.  When  the  father  saw  the  boy  he  jumped  out  of 
bed  and  was  about  to  put  his  arms  around  him.  The  boy  stopped  him 
and  said:  "Do  not  touch  me  yet.  I  know  that  my  people  are  starv- 
ing. They  want  something  to  eat.  Go  through  the  village  and  let  them 
know  that  I  have  come  back."  The  man  went  out  and  told  the  people 
that  his  son  had  come  back.  When  the  people  heard  it  they  went 
out  and  ran  to  the  lodge  of  the  young  man.  He  told  them  that  he 
had  brought  some  things  for  them  from  the  west.  Then  he  told  them 
that  he  knew  that  they  were  hungry  and  that  he  had  hastened  to  come 
and  feed  them.  He  placed  the  robe  in  the  north  and  then  sat  down. 
He  said:  "Now,  my  people,  come  to  me  one  at  a  time  and  I  will  give 
you  meat.  You  must  take  the  meat  home  and  eat  it. "  The  boy  placed 
his  hand  under  the  robe  and  every  time  he  took  out  his  hands  he  had 
meat.  The  next  day  the  people  talked  about  it.  At  night  he  told  the 
people  again  to  come  and  get  meat.  The  third  and  the  fourth  nights 
he  gave  them  meat.  On  the  fifth  night  he  told  the  chiefs  to  send  scouts 
to  the  hills  in  the  northwest  and  there  they  would  see  buffalo.  The 
scouts  were  sent  out  and  as  soon  as  they  got  on  top  of  the  hills  they 
began  to  throw  up  their  robes,  which  is  a  sign  of  good  news.  The  peo- 
ple ran  with  excitement  through  the  village.  They  saw  the  men  com- 
ing down  from  the  hill.  They  came  into  the  village  and  said  that  there 
were  many  buffalo  on  the  other  side  of  the  hills. 

For  several  years  there  had  not  been  a  sign  of  buffalo  in  the  surround- 
ing country  and  now  there  were  plenty  nearby.  The  people  went  out 
and  killed  the  buffalo.  They  took  some  of  the  buffalo  to  the  lodge  of 
the  young  man.  There  he  sang  the  songs  which  he  had  heard  in  the 
lodge  above.  The  people  killed  the  buffalo  four  times.  Then  he  told 
them  that  they  must  hunt  for  the  buffalo  themselves. 


IO2  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY    BEINGS. 

In  the  spring  he  told  his  mother  and  sister  to  plant  the  seeds  which 
he  had.  In  the  fall  when  they  gathered  in  their  crops  they  did  not  have 
many  to  divide  with  other  people.  They  planted  again  next  spring  and 
in  the  fall  they  had  more.  The  boy  divided  the  seeds  among  the  people, 
giving  a  few  grains  to  each  family.  In  the  spring  they  all  planted  and 
they  had  plenty  of  corn  after  that.  They  also  had  plenty  of  buffalo, 
and  the  people  say  that  this  is  the  way  they  got  their  seeds — it  was 
through  the  man  who  was  a  great  gambler. 

25.  THE  BOY  WHO  PREFERRED  WOMAN  TO  POWER.1 

A  long  time  ago,  when  the  Skidi  were  living  upon  the  Loupe  River, 
there  was  a  young  man  in  the  village  by  the  name  of  Coming-Sun.  One 
night  Coming-Sun  had  a  dream.  Some  one  spoke  to  him  and  said: 
"To-morrow  I  want  you  to  stand  upon  that  high  hill.  You  shall  stand 
up  there  for  four  days  and  nights. "  He  then  awoke,  and  early  in  the 
morning  he  took  his  robe  and  told  his  friends  that  he  was  going  up  on  a 
high  hill  and  that  they  should  not  look  for  him.  He  went  up  on  the 
high  hill  and  cried  all  day  and  all  night.  The  second  day  and  night  he 
cried,  and  the  third  day  and  night  he  cried,  but  did  not  see  any  signs  of 
mysterious  beings.  The  fourth  day  and  night  he  staid  there  and  in 
the  night  he  stood  and  cried.  When  he  felt  weak,  he  lay  down  and  some 
one  came  and  said,  "Stand  up;  I  have  now  come."  Coming-Sun  stood 
up  and  there  by  him  was  a  man  who  said:  "I  promised  to  take  pity 
upon  you  if  you  would  come  to  this  hill.  Now  look  in  yonder  valley. " 
Coming-Sun  looked,  and  he  could  see,  as  plainly  as  though  it  were  day,  a 
man  come  up  from  the  ravine  and  go  toward  the  spring.  The  myste- 
rious being  told  Coming-Sun  to  run  down  and  try  to  head  off  the  man. 
Coming-Sun  then  ran  down,  but  before  he  could  catch  up  with  him  the 
man  disappeared  in  the  ravine.  The  man  was  dressed  like  a  warrior; 
he  had  the  otter  on,  with  the  hawk  and  mother-corn  attached  to  it. 
As  soon  as  the  man  disappeared  Coming-Sun  went  back  to  the  hill. 

He  again  cried,  and  after  a  time  he  heard  the  same  voice  that  had 
spoken  to  him,  and  he  looked  and  there  stood  the  man  again.  He  said: 
"You  can  not  run.  You  did  not  head  off  the  man.  Now  look  down 

'Told  by  Roaming-Scout,  the  most  learned  of  the  Skidi  priests  living.  The 
tale  relates  to  a  historical  event  at  the  time  when  a  devout  man  known  as  Coming- 
Sun  communicated  with  Pahohatawa,  who  gave  him  great  power;  so  that  he  taught 
the  people  that  Pahohatawa  still  lived,  was  one  of  the  gods  in  the  heavens, and  that 
he  should  be  worshiped  with  the  other  heavenly  gods.  By  the  fact  that  Coming- 
Sun  lost  his  power  by  preferring  woman,  which  he  had  been  warned  not  to  do,  it 
shows  that  reverence  for  the  gods  and  obedience  to  their  commands  is  to  be  held 
higher  than  the  desire  for  women. 


THE  BOY  WHO  PREFERRED  WOMAN  TO  POWER.  103 

in  the  valley."  When  Coming-Sun  looked  he  saw  some  warriors  driv- 
ing ponies.  The  voice  said:  "Run  as  fast  as  you  can  and  head  them 
off.  "  Coming-Sun  ran  down,  and  just  as  he  was  close  to  them  the  war- 
riors drove  their  ponies  into  the  ravine  and  disappeared.  Then  Coming- 
Sun  went  back  to  the  hill  and  cried.  The  voice  spoke  to  him  again. 
He  looked,  and  there  was  the  mysterious  being,  who  said:  "You  can 
not  run.  This  time  I  want  you  to  do  your  best  to  head  off  some  of  the 
people  who  are  coming.  Look, "  he  said,  "they  are  coming.  "  Coming- 
Sun  looked,  and  there  was  a  great  crowd  of  warriors  coming  with  long 
poles  with  scalps  upon  them.  Coming-Sun  ran,  and  before  he  caught 
up  with  them  they  disappeared  into  the  ravine. 

Coming-Sun  returned  to  the  hill  and  continued  to  cry.  It  was 
nearly  morning  when  the  mysterious  being  came  to  him  and  said:  "I 
will  make  myself  known  to  you.  I  am  Foot-Prints-upon-Bank-of- 
River.  Have  you  no  bag  of  medicine  about  you?"  Coming-Sun  said 
that  he  had  not.  The  man  said:  "Why,  look  at  me;  I  am  a  wonderful 
being;  I  am  North- Wind,  I  am  all  kinds  of  birds,  I  am  also  all  kinds  of 
animals;  even  the  grass  and  the  trees;  and  here  I  carry  a  little  bag  of 
medicine  upon  my  belt.  Now,  I  give  you  this  bag  of  medicine.  I  tried 
to  make  a  warrior  out  of  you,  but  you  can  not  head  off  the  warriors. 
I  then  tried  to  give  you  many  ponies,  but  you  could  not  head  them  off 
I  then  tried  to  help  you  scalp  the  enemy,  but  you  could  not  head  them 
off.  I  will  make  you  a  medicine-man,  and  make  you  brave  so  that  you 
can  count  coup  on  your  enemy.  Whenever  you  join  a  war  party  it 
will  be  successful,  for  you  are  among  them  and  you  have  seen  these 
things  that  I  have  shown  you,  but  you  can  never  be  a  leading  warrior. 
Go  to  your  home,  for  it  is  now  daylight.  Hereafter  I  shall  visit  you  at 
night.  Take  this  downy  feather  and  wear  it  upon  your  head.  When 
you  want  to  call  the  buffalo  put  this  downy  feather  upon  a  pole,  and  set 
the  pole  in  the  direction  where  you  want  the  buffalo  to  come  from." 

Coming-Sun  became  a  great  man.  He  invited  his  brothers  and  told 
them  where  to  go  to  capture  ponies.  They  went,  and  he  went  with 
them,  and  whatever  he  told  them  came  true.  He  prophesied  many 
things  and  they  came  true.  The  mysterious  being  visited  Coming-Sun 
each  night,  and  each  time  brought  him  some  things  that  were  wonder- 
ful. One  night  he  brought  some  buzzard  feathers.  If  the  enemy  found 
the  people,  they  were  to  stick  the  buzzard  feathers  on  their  heads  in  a 
circle,  and  the  company  of  warriors  were  to  stand  in  a  circle  and  great 
clouds  of  dust  were  to  rise,  and  they  were  to  be  covered  up  and  hidden, 
so  that  the  enemy  would  not  find  them.  When  the  people  saw  the 
powers  that  Coming-Sun  had,  they  asked  him  to  call  the  buffalo.  He 


104  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

placed  his  tipi  apart  from  the  others  and  he  put  the  downy  feather  upon 
a  pole  and  set  it  in  the  ground.  He  then  told  a  company  of  men  to  go 
to  a  certain  place  and  call  buffalo.  They  went,  and  they  found  the 
buffalo  as  he  had  told  them  they  would.  Once  a  big  drove  of  buffalo 
was  brought  by  Coming-Sun,  and  the  people  killed  them. 

One  night  after  he  had  been  talking  to  the  mysterious  being  in  his 
tipi,  a  woman  came  into  his  tipi  and  told  him  that  she  was  going  to  stay 
with  him.  While  the  woman  was  in  his  tipi,  another  young  man  came 
and  took  down  the  feather  that  he  had  upon  the  pole  and  carried  it  off. 
When  he  tried  to  call  the  buffalo  he  failed.  The  wonderful  being  came 
and  told  him  that  he  was  sorry  that  he  thought  more  of  women  than 
of  powers  he  was  receiving  from  him,  for  he  had  made  him  a  great 
medicine-man  and  a  brave  man.  The  being  left  Coming-Sun  and  went 
to  other  parts  of  the  country  and  visited  other  people.  Coming-Sun  felt 
very  sad  and  regretted  his  foolishness.  In  a  few  years  he  became  blind 
and  died. 

26.  BUFFALO  GAMING  STICKS.1 

After  Tirawa  had  placed  men  upon  earth  he  gave  them  the  game  of 
ring  and  sticks  and  told  them  how  to  play  it;  he  also  told  them  that 
they  were  to  sing  certain  songs  before  and  after  playing  the  game.  It 
was  evening  when  the  first  game  was  played.  The  next  morning  when 
they  went  to  play  they  saw  marks  on  the  gaming  field,  but  they  did  not 
know  what  the  marks  were.  They  took  out  the  sticks  to  play  and  one 
of  the  young  men  went  to  the  opposite  end  of  the  field  to  play.  There 
he  met  a  young  woman,  with  whom  he  had  intercourse.  After  a  while 
she  went  away,  and  gave  birth  to  a  buffalo  calf. 

After  a  time  a  party  went  out  on  a  hunt.  As  they  traveled  along 
they  saw  a  snow  bird.  They  shot  at  it  with  their  arrows,  but  missed  it. 
The  bird  flew  on  in  front  of  them,  and  they  came  near  to  it  and  shot  at 
it  again,  but  could  not  hit  it.  They  traveled  all  day,  trying  to  kill  the 
snow  bird,  but  did  not  succeed.  It  seemed  to  be  leading  them  on. 

1  Told  by  White-Eagle,  an  old  Skidi  and  the  owner  of  the  Left-Hand  bundle 
and  the  Skull  bundle.  This  is  a  variant  of  the  story  of  the  origin  of  the  buffalo 
game,  other  variants  being  found  in  the  other  bands.  White-Horse,  a  Pitahauirat 
medicine-man,  in  his  version  claims  that  formerly  a  set  of  the  gaming  implements 
formed  part  of  a  sacred  bundle  and  that  the  playing  of  these  implements  was  sup- 
posed to  bring  the  buffalo  near  to  the  village.  This  story  may  be  told  only  in  the 
lodge  where  sacred  bundles  are  suspended,  or  upon  the  buffalo  hunt.  When  told 
under  the  latter  condition  it  is  with  the  hope  that  their  hunt  will  be  successful,  as 
was  the  hunt  an  account  of  which  is  presented  in  the  story.  It  was  believed  that 
the  relating  of  this  tale  would  inform  the  spirits  of  the  buffalo  that  they  were 
talking  about  them,  so  that  they  would  come  and  permit  themselves  to  be  slaugh- 
tered for  the  benefit  of  the  people. 


BUFFALO  GAMING  STICKS.  105 

Night  came  and  they  could  not  see  the  bird,  but  in  the  morning  it 
was  there  as  before.  They  followed  after  it  until  all  were  tired  out  except 
the  young  man  who  had  met  the  girl  at  the  end  of  the  game  field.  He 
continued  to  follow  the  bird  until  it  led  him  to  a  ridge,  where  from  the 
summit  he  could  see  a  herd  of  buffalo  approaching.  He  was  tired  and 
so  he  sat  down  and  watched  the  thousands  of  buffalo  approach.  The 
young  woman  and  her  child,  the  buffalo  calf,  were  among  the  herd  of 
buffalo.  The  little  calf  was  always  crying  for  his  father,  for  he  heard 
the  other  buffalo  calves  cry  for  their  fathers,  and  they  came.  One  time 
he  heard  the  bulls  talking  among  themselves,  saying,  over  and  over, 
that  his  father  must  die,  for  they  would  not  have  him  around.  The  boy 's 
mother  also  told  him  that  the  bulls  would  kill  his  father. 

The  buffalo  gathered  around  the  young  man,  and  the  boy  calf  came 
up  to  him  and  told  him  that  the  buffalo  bulls  intended  to  kill  him,  but 
that  he  would  save  him.  "The  calves,"  he  said,  "will  be  placed  in  a 
row  and  you  will  be  told  to  find  your  son  among  them.  When  you  come 
around  to  look  in  our  faces  I  will  wink;  then  you  say,  'This  is  my  child,' 
and  then  they  will  not  kill  you."  It  happened  as  the  boy  said.  The 
calves  were  arranged  in  a  row  and  the  bulls  asked  the  young  man  to  ex- 
amine them.  He  walked  around  them  three  times  and  looked  up  and 
down  the  line,  until  he  saw  one  of  the  calves  wink.  Then  he  said,  "This 
is  my  son, "  and  they  did  not  kill  him,  but  they  put  him  to  another  test. 
They  placed  all  the  cows  of  the  age  of  the  calf 's  mother  in  a  row.  The 
calf  ran  to  his  father  and  said, "I  will  put  a  cockle  burr  on  mother's  tail, 
and  when  you  see  it,  say,  'This  is  my  wife,'  and  then  they  will  not  kill 
you."  When  the  young  man  went  to  examine  the  cows  up  and  down 
the  line,  he  came  to  one  with  only  one  burr  in  her  tail,  and  he  chose  her 
and  said,  "This  is  my  wife. "  The  bulls  said  to  him,  "You  are  all  right; 
now  you  go  home. "  In  a  few  days  he  arrived  at  their  village.  There  he 
told  his  people:  "In  four  days  the  buffalo  will  come  in  great  numbers; 
we  will  kill  them  and  have  plenty  of  meat,  and  fat  with  which  to  grease 
the  poles  for  our  game. "  Then  they  played  the  game  and  thanked 
Tirawa  for  the  game  and  for  the  buffalo  that  he  had  given  them.  This 
was  in  the  spring. 


106  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

27.  THE  BOY  WHO  CALLED  THE  BUFFALO  AND  WENT  TO  NORTH-WIND.1 

A  long  time  ago,  when  the  Kitkehahki  lived  upon  the  banks  of  the 
Republican  River,  they  suffered  from  hunger  one  season.  The  crops 
failed,  and  they  did  not  know  what  they  were  going  to  do  for  something 
to  eat.  The  chief  gave  orders  that  they  at  once  prepare  to  go  west  to 
hunt  buffalo.  The  people  began  to  hunt  for  their  cache  holes  to  get 
out  their  corn.  They  took  everything  out  from  their  cache  holes,  and 
went  west  to  hunt  buffalo.  They  traveled  for  many  days,  but  found  no 
buffalo.  At  last  they  came  to  thickly  timbered  country,  and  there  the 
chief  told  the  people  to  make  a  permanent  village ;  that  they  must  live 
there.  The  people  made  earth-lodges  for  their  village. 

From  the  village  scouts  were  sent  out  to  see  if  they  could  find  any 
buffalo  in  the  country.  Toward  evening  the  scouts  came  and  reported 
that  there  were  no  buffalo  in  the  country,  not  even  their  tracks  could  be 
seen  upon  the  ground.  The  people  became  hungry;  the  children  cried 
for  something  to  eat.  The  scouts  were  ordered  to  go  forth  into  the 
country,  but  every  time  they  returned  they  reported  that  there  were  no 
buffalo  in  the  country.  The  people  became  scared,  for  it  was  winter, 
and  the  snow  was  on  the  ground  and  they  had  very  little  to  eat.  Some 
of  the  people  had  nothing  to  eat.  The  chief  sent  for  the  crier  and  told 
him  to  tell  the  men  that  he  wanted  several  men  to  go  out  and  hunt  buf- 
falo. The  chief  said,  "Our  people  are  now  starving  and  you  men  must 
go  out  far  into  the  country,  even  if  you  are  gone  several  days." 

Several  men  got  together  and  said,  "Let  us  go  and  be  gone  several 
days;  it  may  be  that  we  may  find  buffalo. "  Each  man  then  asked  his 
relatives  to  make  moccasins  for  him.  In  one  of  the  tipis  there  was  a 
woman  making  moccasins.  By  the  side  of  this  woman  sat  a  young  boy. 
The  boy  was  Coyote,  and  he  played  with  the  other  children.  The 
woman  said:  "These  men  are  going  far  into  the  country  to  find  buffalo. 
We  are  all  getting  very  thin  and  weak,  for  we  have  nothing  to  eat.  "  The 
boy  sat  looking  at  the  woman  as  she  made  the  moccasins.  He  lifted  up 
his  head  and  said:  "Mother,  make  me  moccasins.  I  want  to  go  with 
the  men  and  hunt  buffalo.  "  The  mother  began  to  make  the  moccasins. 
At  the  same  time  she  doubted  if  the  boy  would  go,  for  he  was  not  yet  a 
man;  but  when  the  moccasins  were  finished  and  the  men  ready  to  start 

»Told  by  Mouth-Waving-in- Water,  Kitkehahki.  Told  both  during  bundle 
ceremonies  and  while  upon  buffalo  hunts,  that  the  participants  might  meet  with 
the  same  good  fortune  as  was  encountered  in  the  tale.  The  tale,  like  all  those 
which  have  preceded  it,  is  supposed  to  be  true,  or  to  record  an  event  which  really 
happened,  and  like  many  of  the  preceding  tales  it  is  a  spur  to  young  men  to  hope 
to  achieve  something  great,  and  also  to  hold  the  implements  of  the  buffalo  game 
in  a  spirit  of  reverence. 


THE  BOY  WHO  CALLED  THE  BUFFALO  AND  WENT  TO  NORTH-WIND.       107 

the  boy  joined  them.  The  mother  came  to  the  boy  and  said:  "My  boy, 
come  home  at  once,  for  the  clouds  are  coming,  and  if  it  snows  I  am 
afraid  you  will  get  lost. "  The  boy  said  nothing,  but  followed  the  men. 

The  men  went  straight  west.  The  boy  kept  up  with  them  for  three 
days,  but  as  they  had  nothing  to  eat  he  became  very  tired  and  hungry. 
In  the  night  it  snowed  very  hard,  but  the  men  kept  on.  The  next  day 
was  clear,  the  sun  was  out,  and  the  men  went  on.  In  the  evening  the 
boy  fell  behind,  for  he  could  go  no  farther,  for  he  was  now  very  hungry. 
He  sat  down  to  rest.  The  men  did  not  wait  for  him.  They  went  on. 
The  boy  saw  the  clouds  come  up  from  the  west.  The  clouds  he  saw 
were  snow  clouds,  and  while  he  sat  there  it  began  to  snow.  Something 
dropped  in  front  of  him  and  he  reached  for  it  and  picked  it  up.  The 
thing  was  an  artichoke.  The  boy  ate  the  artichoke  and  felt  better. 
While  he  was  sitting  down,  someone  spoke  to  him.  The  boy  looked 
around,  but  saw  no  one.  He  heard  a  striking  noise.  The  unseen  being 
spoke  again  and  said,  "Do  you  feel  better  now? "  The  boy  said,  "Ye/;,  I 
feel  better. ' '  The  unknown  voice  then  said :  ' '  My  son,  it  was  I  who  gave 
you  life.  I  left  you  alone  until  you  should  become  this  old.  I  made  you 
come  here.  I  am  the  Snow-Storm.  I  came  with  the  snow  and  dropped 
you  the  artichoke  that  you  have  eaten.  Now  I  am  here.  Look,  and  you 
will  see  me."  The  boy  looked  and  there  stood  a  man  with  a  buffalo 
robe  about  his  shoulders.  The  robe  had  snow  upon  it.  He  also  had  a 
fox-skin  cap  with  a  feather  at  the  end  of  the  tail.  The  wind  blew  and 
made  the  feather  whip  the  robe,  thus  producing  the  noise  that  the  boy 
had  first  heard.  The  strange  man  said:  "Now,  my  son,  I  want  you 
to  go  back  to  your  people  and  ask  them  for  certain  presents  that  you 
must  give  me.  These  are  the  red  paint,  blue  beads,  black  eagle  feathers, 
and  native  tobacco.  You  must  again  scratch  upon  the  earth  and  you 
will  find  artichokes.  Take  them  home  to  your  father  and  mother  and 
let  them  boil  and  eat  them.  I  have  blown  my  breath  upon  you,  so  that 
you  can  travel  as  fast  as  I  do. " 

The  boy  gathered  the  artichokes  and  started  home.  He  did  not 
seem  to  be  traveling,  he  glided  along  so  easily.  Soon  he  came  to  the 
village  and  entered  and  went  straight  to  his  tipi.  He  woke  his  father 
and  mother.  He  gave  his  mother  the  artichokes  and  told  her  to  boil 
them.  She  put  them  in  a  vessel  over  the  fire.  The  boy  told  his  father 
to  invite  his  relatives.  When  the  relatives  came  into  the  tipi  they  were 
glad  to  smell  the  boiling  artichokes.  The  boy  spoke  and  said:  "My 
friends,  I  came  from  a  long  journey.  These  things  that  you  are  about 
to  eat  were  given  to  me  by  a  strange  being.  Now,  I  ask  you  to  give  me 
the  things  that  I  shall  name:  Red  paint,  blue  beads,  black  eagle  feath- 


I08  TRUE  STORIES   OF  THE   HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

ers  and  tobacco."  The  people  looked  at  the  boy,  and  some  of  them 
whispered  to  one  another,  and  said:  "The  things  that  he  asks  for  are 
what  the  gods  in  the  heavens  like.  Some  god  has  taken  pity  upon  him. " 
After  the  relatives  had  eaten  the  artichokes  they  went  out  and  brought 
in  the  things  the  boy  wanted.  The  boy  took  the  things  and  carried 
them  outside  of  the  village,  and  there  he  met  the  strange  being.  The 
boy  gave  the  things  to  the  man  and  he  was  glad  to  get  them.  He  then 
gave  the  boy  the  fox-skin  cap  with  the  eagle  feather  on  the  tail.  He 
said:  "You  shall  be  called  'Whipping-Feather.'  In  a  few  days  you 
will  travel  as  I  do,  and  you  will  meet  me  driving  Buffalo.  Then  you 
must  tell  the  people  to  kill. "  They  parted,  the  boy  going  home  and  the 
strange  man  disappearing. 

Next  morning  the  boy  said  to  his  father  and  mother,  "Go  to  the 
timber  and  dig  some  artichokes."  The  old  people  did  not  like  to  go, 
but  as  they  felt  the  boy  had  some  kind  of  power  they  took  a  bag  and 
hoe  and  went  off;  and  as  they  dug  along  the  sunny  side  of  a  bank  they 
found  a  rat's  path-way.  They  followed  it  until  they  came  to  timber, 
and  there  they  found  a  pile  of  ground  beans.  When  the  parents  came 
home  with  the  beans  the  boy  took  them  and  placed  them  in  his  robe  and 
told  his  father  to  go  outside  and  tell  the  people  to  come  and  get  a  hand- 
ful of  ground  beans.  The  man  went  and  the  women  came  with  their 
sacks.  The  beans  were  given  out  by  the  boy  so  that  all  the  families 
received  some  of  them.  The  next  day  the  boy  went  out  by  himself. 
He  was  gone  but  a  short  time  when  he  came  back  carrying  a  deer  upon 
his  back.  He  took  the  deer  and  placed  it  under  his  robe.  The  boy 
then  told  his  father  to  tell  the  people  to  come  and  get  a  piece  of  the 
deer  meat.  The  people  all  came  and  each  took  a  piece  of  meat,  leaving 
only  the  ribs.  These  ribs  were  then  put  into  a  vessel  and  boiled.  Then 
the  chiefs  and  leading  men  were  invited  to  the  boy's  tipi.  After  eating 
the  ribs  they  all  stayed  in  the  tipi  for  several  nights.  The  young  man 
went  off  in  the  night  and  was  gone  for  some  time. 

When  he  came  back  he  told  the  chief  to  call  in  the  crier.  When  the 
crier  came  in  the  boy  told  him  to  go  through  the  camp  and  tell  the  peo- 
ple that  there  were  some  Buffalo  close  to  the  camp.  Some  of  the  young 
men  were  selected  to  go  out  to  see  if  they  could  discover  them.  The 
men  went  out  and  as  they  stood  upon  the  hills  they  saw  some  Buffalo  bulls. 
They  ran  back  to  the  village  and  told  the  young  man  and  he  told  the 
chief  to  tell  the  crier  to  go  through  the  village  and  tell  the  men  to  get 
their  ponies  and  surround  the  Buffalo.  The  men  went  out,  found  the 
Buffalo,  surrounded  them,  and  killed  all  of  them.  After  this  killing 
the  young  man  went  out  again.  While  he  was  gone  on  the  prairie  he 


THE  BOY  WHO  CALLED  THE  BUFFALO  AND  WENT  TO  NORTH-WIND.      IOQ 

met  the  strange  being  driving  Buffalo.  The  boy  and  the  strange  being 
drove  the  Buffalo  towards  the  camp.  The  boy  then  came  to  the  vil- 
lage. He  told  the  people  that  there  were  some  bulls  for  them  to  kill 
again.  The  men  went  out  and  killed  the  Buffalo  bulls.  The  third  time 
the  young  man  went  out,  and  he  again  found  the  strange  being  driving 
the  Buffalo.  The  young  man  went  home  and  told  the  people  that  there 
were  many  Buffalo  cows  upon  the  hills.  The  men  went  out  and  there  in 
a  valley  they  found  the  Buffalo  cows,  which  they  surrounded  and  killed. 
The  fourth  time  the  young  man  went  away  and  found  the  strange  being 
driving  Buffalo.  The  young  man  went  home  and  this  time  he  told  the 
people  to  go  and  find  the  buffalo.  This  time  the  people  found  all  kinds 
of  Buffalo — bulls,  cows,  and  calves.  The  people  killed  many  and  still 
there  were  many  left.  The  Buffalo  then  scattered  over  the  country. 

The  young  man  married.  One  day  he  called  the  people  together 
and  told  them  that  the  wonderful  being  had  given  power  for  him  to  be 
born;  that  when  he  was  born  the  being  watched  over  him;  that  at  a  cer- 
tain age  the  being  had  driven  all  the  Buffalo  away;  that  the  being  had 
made  him  go  a  long  distance  to  the  place  where  he  was;  and  that  the 
being  had  helped  him  get  the  Buffalo.  So  the  boy  said,  "I  shall  now  go 
away  to  the  being  who  is  North- Wind. "  The  boy  went  off  and  never 
returned. 

28.  THE  MAN  WHO  MARRIED  A  BUFFALO.1 

The  people  went  on  a  hunt  at  one  time  and  they  found  many  Buffalo. 
Among  the  people  on  the  hunt  was  a  young  man  who  did  not  like  the 
women.  He  had  several  chances  to  marry  some  of  the  young  girls,  but 
he  rejected  them.  One  day  the  people  went  out  to  surround  the  Buf- 
falo. This  young  man  went  with  them.  When  the  people  ran  after  the 
Buffalo  there  was  a  bunch  of  about  five  Buffalo  cows  which  broke  away 
from  the  people,  and  the  young  man  who  disliked  women  ran  after  this 
bunch  of  cows.  He  ran  these  Buffalo  into  a  mud-hole  and  one  of  the 
young  cows  got  fast  in  the  mud.  The  young  man  saw  the  Buffalo  fast 
in  the  mud,  so  he  jumped  off  from  his  pony,  went  into  the  mud,  and  lay 
with  the  cow.  The  young  man  went  home  and  left  the  cow  in  the  mud. 
After  a  long  time  the  cow  worked  herself  out  from  the  mud  and  went 
away  to  the  other  Buffalo.  It  was  then  some  time  early  in  the  spring. 

Early  the  next  spring  the  cows  in  the  Buffalo  herd  began  to  have 
young  calves.  Among  those  who  were  to  have  calves  was  the  cow 

lTold  by  White-Horse,  Pitahauirat.  This  is  a  variant  of  a  story  in  which  a 
man  marries  a  Buffalo,  has  offspring,  etc.  The  object  of  the  story  is  to  teach 
that  human  beings  are  related  to  the  Buffalo,  and  it  is  believed  that  by  relating 
the  story  it  will  cause  the  buffalo  to  come  and  offer  themselves  to  be  slaughtered. 


HO  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

which  had  had  connection  with  a  man.  She  had  a  little  bull-calf.  When 
the  calf  grew  up  it  noticed  other  cows  went  with  their  husbands  and  the 
calves  followed  their  fathers  around.  The  calf  asked  the  mother  where 
his  father  was.  The  mother  did  not  want  to  tell  the  calf,  but  he  begged 
so  hard  that  finally  the  mother  said:  "Your  father  is  far  away  and  can 
not  see  you. "  The  calf  began  to  cry,  for  he  wanted  to  see  his  father,  so 
the  mother  said:  "We  will  go  and  see  your  father."  They  started  and 
went  towards  the  east.  For  many  days  they  went  east  until  at  last 
they  came  to  the  village  of  the  people.  They  stopped  in  a  ravine. 
There  the  Buffalo  cow  turned  herself  into  a  woman  and  she  turned  the 
calf  into  a  young  boy.  The  woman  had  a  fine  buffalo  robe  over  her  and 
was  a  fine-looking  woman.  The  boy  had  a  calf  robe  with  hoofs  on  it 
over  him.  The  woman  and  the  boy  walked  to  the  lodge  of  the  man  and 
there  they  sat  down  near  the  entrance.  It  was  night.  A  woman  came 
out  and  saw  the  woman  and  the  child.  This  woman  went  to  them  and 
said:  "Woman,  what  do  you  want?  Do  you  want  to  see  my  brother?" 
for  this  woman  was  the  sister  of  the  young  man.  The  Buffalo  woman 
said:  "Yes;  I  want  to  see  the  young  man."  The  woman  went  into  the 
lodge  and  said:  "Brother,  there  is  a  woman  outside  who  wishes  to 
see  you."  The  young  man  went  out  and  there  sat  a  woman.  Her  hair 
was  not  braided  and  he  knew  at  once  that  she  was  not  one  of  the  tribe. 
The  young  man  spoke  to  the  woman  and  said:  "Woman,  do  you  want  to 
see  me?"  The  woman  said:  "Yes;  I  want  to  see  you,  for  this  boy  is  your 
son  and  I  have  brought  him  to  you,  for  he  wants  to  see  you. "  The 
young  man  stood  still  and  studied,  for  he  had  never  been  with  any  woman. 
The  young  man  said:  "Woman,  I  know  no  woman  yet;  you  must  be  mis- 
taken."  But  the  woman  said:  "This  boy  is  your  son.  Think  and 
you  will  find  out  that  you  lay  with  me,  and  this  is  your  son."  The 
young  man  studied,  but  could  not  remember.  The  woman  then  said: 
"Do  you  not  remember  a  long  time  ago,  when  you  ran  after  Buffalo  I 
jumped  into  a  mud- hole?  You  came  and  lay  with  me. "  The  boy  then 
stooped  down  and  took  up  the  boy  in  his  arms  and  said:  "My  son, 
my  wife,  I  remember.  Come,  go  with  me  into  the  lodge  and  see  my 
father  and  mother  and  my  sisters. "  The  young  man  led  the  way  into 
the  lodge  and  said:  "Father,  mother,  and  sisters,  this  is  my  son  and  this 
woman  is  my  wife. " 

When  the  old  people  saw  the  woman  and  child  they  knew  that  the 
woman  and  the  boy  were  not  human  beings,  and  they  would  not  touch 
the  woman,  but  the  boy  they  caught  and  caressed.  The  woman  re- 
mained inside  of  the  inclosed  bed,  for  she  did  not  want  people  to  see  her. 
Four  days  after  this  she  began  to  be  like  other  people.  Then  she  told 


THE  MAN  WHO  MARRIED  A  BUFFALO.  Ill 

the  old  people  to  watch  over  the  boy;  that  he  was  bad  and  might  hurt 
some  of  the  children.  She  meant  that  if  the  little  boy  should  strike 
some  of  the  children  his  hands  would  turn  into  a  calf's  hoofs,  and  they 
would  hurt  the  children  badly.  The  Buffalo  woman  also  said:  "Watch 
the  boy  closely.  Do  not  let  him  fall  upon  the  ground,  for  the  boy  will  then 
get  away  from  us. "  The  woman  meant  that  if  the  boy  should  fall  down 
upon  the  ground  he  would  turn  into  a  Buffalo  calf  and  would  run  away. 
The  woman  and  the  boy  remained  with  the  people  and  were  happy. 

Every  day  the  young  man  went  to  where  the  people  were  playing 
with  the  gambling  sticks.  When  the  sun  became  hot  and  it  was  noon, 
the  boy  would  take  a  bucket  of  water  to  his  father.  One  day  the  young 
man  went  out  to  the  gambling  grounds  and  played  with  the  sticks.  He 
began  to  lose  nearly  everything  that  he  had  and  he  became  angry. 
When  the  boy  came  with  the  water  he  stood  to  one  side  of  the  gambling 
grounds  with  the  water,  but  the  man  would  not  go  to  his  son  to  drink. 
The  mother  was  sitting  in  the  lodge.  Something  seemed  to  touch  her. 
She  arose  and  went  out  of  the  lodge.  She  sat  down  near  the  entrance 
and  she  saw  her  son  with  the  water  standing  near  his  father.  The 
man  never  went  to  drink  and  the  woman  became  angry.  The  boy  came 
home  and  his  mother  took  him  and  went  into  the  lodge.  She  took  up 
her  robe  and  that  of  the  child  and  they  went  out.  The  grandmother 
saw  them  go  out.  She  went  right  out  and  went  to  where  her  son  was 
playing  with  the  sticks.  She  called  to  him  and  said:  "My  son,  stop 
playing.  Come  home.  See,  yonder  go  your  wife  and  your  child."  The 
man  looked,  and  when  he  saw  his  wife  and  child  going  away  he  threw 
down  the  sticks  and  went  home.  The  young  man  entered  the  lodge  and 
sat  down.  He  asked  for  his  leggings  and  moccasins.  He  put  them  on 
and  went  out.  As  he  went  upon  the  hill  he  saw  the  two  going,  not  as 
human  beings,  but  as  Buffalo.  He  followed  for  a  long  distance.  The 
calf  would  come  back  and  jump  around  its  father,  and  then  would  run 
again  to  its  mother.  In  the  night  the  Buffalo  would  sit  down  in  a  hollow 
while  the  calf  would  come  and  lie  beside  the  father. 

One  day  the  calf  came  and  said:  "Father,  are  you  hungry?"  The 
man  said:  "lam."  The  calf  said:  "Father,  strike  me  upon  the  forehead, 
not  so  very  hard. "  The  man  hit  the  calf  upon  the  forehead.  As  soon 
as  he  struck  the  head,  pemmican  fell  from  the  head  and  dropped  upon  the 
grass.  The  man  sat  down  and  ate  of  the  pemmican.  When  he  had  eaten 
enough  he  put  away  what  was  left.  Then  he  went  on  again.  The  calf 
came  to  him  again  and  said:  "Father, are  you  thirsty?"  The  man  said: 
' '  Yes,  I  am  thirsty. ' '  The  calf  then  began  to  paw  into  the  ground.  After 
a  while  the  calf's  hoof  began  to  work  out  from  the  ground.  The  water 


112  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

began  to  come  out  of  the  ground.  The  calf  started  on  and  the  man 
drank  out  of  the  hole.  Thus  the  calf  took  care  of  the  father,  but  the 
Buffalo  cow  never  tried  to  help  the  man,  for  she  was  angry  with  him. 
When  they  had  traveled  for  four  days  the  calf  came  to  his  father  and 
said:  "Father,  on  yonder  hills  live  my  people."  The  calf  went  on. 
When  they  arrived  at  the  hills  the  man  saw  in  the  bottom  many  Buffalo. 
He  saw  his  wife  and  child  run  right  through  the  crowd  and  disappear. 

The  next  day  the  calf  came  to  the  father  and  said:  "Father,  my 
mother  is  angry  with  you  because  you  would  not  come  to  me  when  I 
took  water  to  you.  My  people  are  angry  with  you,  but  I  shall  stay  with 
you.  To-day  you  are  to  look  for  my  grandfather.  There  will  be  put 
in  line  twenty  Buffalo.  They  will  let  you  pass  in  front  of  these  Buffalo 
that  are  to  be  put  into  line  and  then  they  will  let  you  pass  behind. 
When  you  have  come  to  my  grandfather  you  will  see  my  tongue  mark 
upon  his  hips.  As  soon  as  you  see  that  mark  you  must  remember  that 
I  have  made  the  mark.  Then  you  must  lay  your  hands  upon  the  Buf- 
falo and  say  that  he  is  your  father-in-law.  If  you  fail  to  find  my  grand- 
father all  the  Buffalo  will  jump  on  you  and  kill  you. "  The  next  day 
the  young  man  was  taken  from  the  hill  and  placed  where  the  Buffalo 
were.  There  were  placed  in  line  about  twenty  Buffalo  and  all  looked 
alike.  The  young  man  went  in  front  of  the  Buffalo,  but  he  could  not 
tell  where  his  father-in-law  stood.  Then  he  went  behind  and  saw  one 
bull  standing  among  them  with  a  mark  upon  his  hips,  and  he  knew  that 
the  mark  was  made  by  the  tongue  of  the  calf.  The  man  went  up  to  the 
bull  and  said:  "This  is  my  father-in-law."  The  Buffalo  were  surprised 
and  said:  "He  must  be  a  wonderful  man,  but  we  will  kill  him  anyhow. " 

Then  the  calf  said:  "My  father,  to-morrow  you  are  to  hunt  my 
grandmother.  You  are  to  pass  first  in  the  rear  and  then  in  front. 
When  you  have  passed  in  the  rear  and  are  going  along  the  line  on  the 
front  side,  you  will  notice  one  Buffalo  cow  with  two  cockle  burrs  between 
the  horns  on  top  of  the  head.  This  is  your  mother-in-law.  You  must 
touch  her  and  say  that  this  is  your  mother-in-law."  When  this  was 
done  the  Buffalo  said:  "This  must  be  a  wonderful  young  man." 

Then  the  calf  went  to  his  father  and  said:  "Father,  to-morrow  you 
are  to  hunt  my  mother.  There  will  be  several  Buffalo  standing  beside 
one  another.  These  Buffalo  will  all  look  alike,  but  when  I  play  with 
my  mother  I  shall  put  two  cockle  burrs  on  the  end  of  the  tail,  and  also 
two  at  the  root  of  the  tail.  When  you  have  seen  these  burrs  you  may 
know  that  she  is  your  wife."  The  man  passed  along  in  front  of  the 
Buffalo  that  he  could  see  her  and  then  in  the  rear.  He  found  one 
cow  with  the  cockle  burrs.  He  said:  "This  is  my  wife."  The  Buffalo 
said:  "This  must  be  a  wonderful  man.' ' 


THE  MAN  WHO  MARRIED  A  BUFFALO.  113 

After  the  young  man  had  found  his  wife  the  calf  came  to  him  and 
said:  "To-morrow  you  are  to  hunt  me.  There  will  be  many  calves 
placed  in  line  and  I  will  be  among  them.  You  are  to  pass  down  the 
line  in  the  rear  and  then  in  front.  When  you  are  coming  near  where 
I  shall  be  I  shall  wink  at  you.  While  I  am  winking  at  you,  you  will 
notice  a  cockle  burr  right  over  my  eye.  You  must  touch  me  and  say 
that  I  am  your  son.  "  Then  the  calf  went  back  to  the  Buffalo.  The  next 
day  the  Buffalo  were  gathered  together  and  they  selected  about  twelve 
young  bull  calves,  all  of  the  same  size,  height,  and  color  as  the  boy  calf. 
They  were  placed  in  a  line.  The  man  went  in  the  rear  of  the  calves, 
then  he  went  in  front.  The  calf  watched  and  as  soon  as  he  saw  his 
father  coming  he  began  to  wink  at  his  father.  The  father  looked  at  him 
and  right  over  the  eye  was  a  burr.  He  knew  at  once  that  this  was  his 
son.  He  touched  the  calf  and  said,  "This  is  my  son,"  and  the  calf 
began  to  jump  around,  for  the  calf  was  pleased  to  know  that  his  father 
had  found  him. 

The  Buffalo  then  agreed  that  the  man  should  be  with  them  always. 
Several  Buffalo  bulls  got  together  and  they  ran  up  towards  the  young 
man  as  if  to  hook  him,  but  when  they  ran  against  him  they  met  another 
bull,  for  the  young  man  had  turned  into  a  Buffalo  bull.  Then  the 
people  said:  "We  will  send  a  drove  of  Buffalo  to  your  village,  for  the 
people  are  hungry.  We  want  you  to  bring  some  feathers,  some  native 
tobacco,  blue  beads,  and  clam  shells."  Twenty  Buffalo  were  selected, 
and  the  young  man,  his  wife,  and  son  joined  the  drove  and  went  towards 
the  village.  They  traveled  several  nights  and  at  last  they  came  to  the 
village.  The  twenty  Buffalo  squatted  down  in  the  ravine,  while  the 
woman,  her  child,  and  her  husband  turned  into  human  beings  and 
entered  the  village.  The  young  man  awoke  his  father  and  said:  "Father, 
send  for  my  uncles,  and  when  they  come  in  tell  them  that  I  want  eagle 
feathers,  native  tobacco,  blue  beads,  and  clam  shells. "  The  old  man 
went  out  and  gathered  up  his  relatives.  When  they  were  all  together 
the  people  said  that  they  would  go  and  get  the  things.  In  a  short  time 
the  people  began  to  come  in  with  the  things.  They  gave  the  things 
to  the  young  man.  The  young  man  then  told  the  people  that  he 
knew  that  the  Buffalo  knew  that  they  were  starving  for  meat.  He 
told  them  to  go  to  a  certain  place  in  the  morning  and  they  would  find 
the  Buffalo  there.  He  said  that  most  of  the  Buffalo  who  had  come 
with  him  were  sitting  in  a  certain  place,  and  that  the  people  were  to 
kill  those  Buffalo  and  make  them  holy.  He  said  that  those  Buffalo 
came  to  receive  smoke,  but  they  knew  also  that  they  were  to  be  offered 
as  a  sacrifice  to  Tirawa.  The  young  man,  his  wife,  and  child  disappeared. 


114  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

The  next  day  the  people  were  told  that  the  young  man  had  been  there 
and  that  they  were  promised  some  Buffalo  at  a  certain  place.  They  sent 
several  of  the  young  men  to  the  place  to  see.  When  they  went  they 
found  the  Buffalo  sitting  in  a  ravine.  They  went  back  and  reported. 
The  people  got  ready,  went  out,  and  surrounded  the  Buffalo  and  killed 
all  the  Buffalo.  Most  of  them  were  sacrificed  to  Tirawa. 

The  young  man  took  the  things  to  the  Buffalo  people  and  they  were 
thankful.  Then  the  Buffalo  people  said:  "You  will  now  send  more 
Buffalo."  The  young  man  took  another  bunch  of  Buffalo  to  the  people 
and  they  killed  this  bunch,  and  the  young  man  returned  and  received 
another  bunch  of  Buffalo.  Four  times  the  young  man  brought  Buffalo 
to  the  village.  Then  the  Buffalo  scattered  over  the  country.  One  time 
when  the  people  attacked  the  Buffalo  they  unknowingly  killed  the  Buffalo 
who  had  once  been  a  man.  They  consecrated  him,  and  then  they  found 
out  that  he  had  been  a  man,  because  the  hide  that  they  took  off  had 
feathers  all  over  it. 

29.  HOW  THE  WITCH-WOMAN  WAS  KILLED.1 

There  was  a  village  of  people  and  on  the  east  side  lived  alone  a 
Witch-Woman.  She  had  no  children.  Sometimes  she  cured  people 
when  they  were  sick.  At  other  times  she  was  very  mean  to  people  and 
would  let  them  die  of  disease.  Sometimes  she  took  some  of  her  medi- 
cine, sat  in  her  lodge,  and  threw  the  medicine  into  the  air.  The  medicine 
would  fly  through  the  air  and  would  enter  into  the  people  and  kill  them. 
On  account  of  these  tricks  the  people  called  her  Witch-Woman. 

In  the  village  was  a  wonderful  man  known  as  White-Moccasins.  A 
child  was  born  in  his  family  and  it  was  a  boy.  The  women  in  the  village 
were  very  fond  of  this  child.  Each  morning  one  woman  would  come 
into  the  lodge  and  pack  the  little  child  around  on  her  back.  After  she 
became  tired  another  woman  would  be  ready  to  carry  the  child.  Every 
day  the  child  was  taken  out  of  the  lodge,  but  the  parents  knew  that  it 
was  safe.  One  morning  a  young  girl  came  into  the  lodge  and  took  the 
child  out.  After  she  became  tired  she  gave  the  child  to  another  woman. 
A  woman  came  near  where  the  women  were.  This  woman  looked  at 
the  child  and  went  on.  The  women  looked  at  her  and  they  knew  that 
it  was  Witch- Woman.  They  said  nothing  to  the  parents  of  the  child. 

1  Told  by  Leading-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  The  tale  marks  the  end  of  the  life  of  a 
group  of  supernatural  beings  who  had  been  dreaded  and  feared  and  who  were  held 
responsible  for  many  troubles,  including  sickness,  etc.  The  connection  of  the 
story  with  the  sacred  bundle  is  not  at  first  evident,  but  it  is  to  be  noted  that  the 
Witch-Woman  was  killed  by  the  Hawk,  who  was  the  special  guardian  of  the  war- 
riors, a  skin  of  a  hawk  being  always  present  in  the  warrior's  bundle. 


HOW  THE  WITCH-WOMAN  WAS  KILLED.  115 

It  seems  that  the  old  woman  knew  that  the  child  was  born  tinder  the 
protection  of  some  minor  god  in  the  heavens.  She  disliked  the  child, 
and  so  one  beautiful  morning  the  old  woman  went  to  the  creek,  picked 
up  a  clam  and  said:  "I  want  you  to  take  my  place  as  the  Witch- Woman 
and  travel  with  these  people  wherever  they  go.  I  will  remain  behind, 
for  I  want  to  take  the  child  away  from  its  parents."  Witch- Woman 
blew  her  breath  upon  the  clam  shell.  She  turned  into  an  old  woman 
with  a  very  wrinkled  face.  She  was  left  in  the  place  of  Witch- Woman. 

The  next  morning  before  daylight  the  real  Witch  went  into  the  tipi 
of  White-Moccasins.  She  took  the  little  child  upon  her  back  and  went 
out  of  the  lodge.  She  went  to  the  Witch- Woman  and  said:  "You  must 
remain  here  and  if  the  people  move  away  follow  them.  You  are  in  my 
place.  I  shall  go  far  away  with  this  child,  so  that  in  time  I  may  kill  the 
child  and  it  will  never  know  that  it  had  a  father  and  a  mother." 

The  Witch- Woman  carried  the  little  boy  far  away  to  where  the  sun 
rises.  The  people  in  the  village  missed  the  child.  The  parents  went 
throughout  the  village  hunting  their  child.  Everybody  turned  out,  but 
they  could  not  find  the  child.  The  people  all  began  to  mourn.  They 
mourned  so  much  that  some  of  them  would  tear  down  their  tipis  and 
move  away.  The  people  kept  moving  away  from  their  village  until  only 
White-Moccasins  and  his  immediate  family  were  left  behind.  The  peo- 
ple were  now  scattered  all  over  the  land. 

The  real  Witch- Woman  carried  the  boy  far  away.  They  came  to  a 
big  water  and  stopped  there.  Here  the  Witch- Woman  built  a  grass- 
house  and  made  a  garden.  The  boy  and  the  woman  remained  in  that 
place  for  a  number  of  years.  The  boy  grew  to  be  large,  and  the  Witch- 
Woman  made  a  bow  and  some  arrows  for  him.  The  boy  went  out  hunt- 
ing every  day  and  brought  in  game.  He  believed  that  this  old  woman 
was  his  mother,  for  she  called  him  her  son.  The  woman  saw  that  the 
boy  had  grown  up  and  that  he  had  many  wonderful  ways  about  him. 
She  told  the  boy  not  to  go  far  to  the  west;  that  wild  animals  would  find 
him  and  devour  him. 

One  day  while  the  boy  was  out  playing  with  his  bow  and  arrows  he 
saw  a  Crow  sitting  upon  a  tree.  The  Crow  began  to  cry  out  and  the  boy 
heard  what  it  said.  The  boy  thought  that  the  Crow  said:  "Boy,  you 
do  not  belong  here.  Your  people  live  west  from  here.  Their  village 
site  is  beyond  here."  The  boy  did  not  pay  any  attention  to  the  words 
of  the  Crow,  but  the  Crow  said:  "I  saw  that  woman  take  you  away. 
I  know  all  about  it.  You  do  not  belong  here.  There  are  many  people 
out  west  where  you  belong. "  The  boy  paid  no  attention  to  this.  The 
next  day  he  went  out  hunting.  When  he  came  to  a  timbered  country 


Il6  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

he  saw  a  red  Hawk  sitting  upon  a  limb.  The  Hawk  made  a  screeching 
sound  and  the  boy  thought  that  the  Hawk  was  calling  him.  He  followed 
the  Hawk.  Whenever  the  boy  looked  at  the  Hawk,  he  thought  he  saw  a 
scalp  hanging  down  from  its  claw.  The  Hawk  also  seemed  to  carry  a 
war  club.  Around  its  breast  seemed  to  be  a  buffalo-hair  lariat.  The 
boy  liked  the  dress  of  the  Hawk,  and  when  it  made  the  screeching  sound 
the  boy  followed  it.  The  Hawk  would  fly  from  one  limb  to  another,  and 
when  the  Hawk  saw  that  the  boy  was  not  coming  it  would  fly  towards 
him,  circle  around  him,  and  fly  west  again.  The  boy  saw  that  the  Hawk 
wanted  him  to  follow  it,  so  he  followed.  After  a  while  they  came  to 
a  prairie  country.  They  went  over  this  prairie  country,  and  after  a  while 
the  boy  saw  the  Hawk  flying  in  a  circle.  Then  he  saw  the  Hawk  drop 
something.  When  the  boy  went  to  the  place  he  found  the  things  he  had 
seen.  The  Hawk  then  flew  up  into  the  sky  and  the  boy  sat  down  on 
the  village  site.  He  lay  down,  for  he  had  come  a  long  way  and  was  tired. 
As  soon  as  he  went  to  sleep  he  heard  the  insects  under  the  ground.  They 
sang: 

"Here  lies  the  child  of  White-Moccasins. 
Here  lies  the  child  of  White-Moccasins." 

The  young  man  woke  up  and  looked  around,  but  could  see  nothing. 
He  lay  down  again.  Just  as  the  dawn  appeared  the  young  man  arose 
and  stood  on  the  village  site.  While  he  was  standing  there  the  whole 
village  site  seemed  to  say,  "This  is  the  child  of  White-Moccasins." 
He  looked  around  for  the  voices.  He  went  to  the  tipi  poles  and  here 
the  voices  seemed  to  be.  The  fireplaces  also  said:  "This  is  the  son  of 
White-Moccasins. "  The  grass  which  had  grown  over  the  village  site 
was  speaking  and  saying  that  this  was  the  child  of  White-Moccasins. 
Even  the  old  moccasins  which  had  been  left  behind  were  saying  that  this 
was  the  child  of  White-Moccasins.  The  boy  stood  still,  looked  around 
and  said  to  himself:  "I  must  be  the  child  of  someone  else."  He  walked 
around  through  the  village  and  still  the  voices  came  from  every  direc- 
tion. Finally  he  went  to  one  place  and  here  was  a  clam  shell.  It  said: 
"My  boy,  I  was  placed  here  by  a  Witch- Woman  to  follow  your  people 
and  act  as  a  Witch  in  her  place.  When  the  people  broke  camp  I  tried 
to  follow  them.  The  power  which  the  Witch- Woman  had  given  me  was 
gone  and  I  turned  into  a  clam  shell  as  you  now  see  me.  I  called  upon  all 
the  gods  to  send  you  back  to  this  village  site  so  that  I  could  tell  you 
where  your  people  were.  All  the  gods  helped  me.  You  have  come. 
Take  me  up,  follow  this  trail,  and  you  will  find  your  people.  When  you 
reach  the  first  stream  of  water,  drop  me  into  it  and  there  I  shall  remain. " 
For  some  time  the  boy  followed  the  trail  and  at  last  came  to  another 


HOW  THE  WITCH-WOMAN  WAS  KILLED.  II 7 

village  site.  It  was  now  dusk.  When  he  entered  the  village  site  the 
voices  came  up  from  everywhere.  The  grass,  the  weeds,  the  insects, 
tipi  poles,  all  shouted  and  sang: 

"Here  comes  the  son  of  White-Moccasins. 
He  was  carried  away  from  a  village  by  the  Witch- Woman, 
This  is  truly  the  child  of  White-Moccasins.' ' 

The  boy  lay  down  and  he  heard  the  singing  all  around.  It  was  kept 
up  all  through  the  night.  The  next  day  he  followed  the  trail.  If  there 
was  anything  dropped  by  the  people,  a  feather,  a  moccasin,  a  piece  of 
sinew,  a  piece  of  an  arrow,  all  these  things  sang  the  song  he  had  heard 
at  the  village  site.  For  many  days  the  boy  traveled  west  until  at  last 
he  saw  a  village.  When  he  came  to  the  village  everything  seemed  to 
sing  about  the  child  of  White-Moccasins.  As  soon  as  the  boy  went  into 
the  village  the  people  said:  "Here  comes  the  child  of  White-Moccasins." 
The  chief  took  him  into  his  tipi  and  asked  him  where  he  came  from  and 
who  he  was.  When  White-Moccasins  found  out  that  his  son  had  arrived 
at  the  village  he  went  to  the  tipi  of  the  chief  and  demanded  the  boy. 
The  chief  said:  "This  boy  is  now  in  my  tipi.  He  shall  be  my  son,  for 
I  see  that  he  has  great  powers. "  The  boy  said:  "I  can  not  do  that,  for 
I  know  that  my  father  is  living.  The  Crow  was  first  to  tell  me  of  him. 
The  Hawk  led  me  to  the  village  site  from  where  I  was  stolen,  and  there 
everything  sang  of  my  father,  White-Moccasins.  The  insects,  the  grass, 
the  weeds,  the  trees,  all  sang  to  me  of  my  father  who  was  called  White- 
Moccasins,  and  told  me  that  I  was  his  child.  I  shall  go  with  my  father." 
The  chief  said:  "I  do  not  mean  that  you  shall  be  my  son  and  remain 
with  me,  but  I  have  a  daughter  who  is  old  enough  to  be  the  wife  of  some- 
one. I  call  you  my  son  because  I  want  you  to  be  my  son-in-law. "  The 
boy  said:  "I  can  not  do  that,  for  I  am  too  young."  The  boy  told  the 
people  that  on  his  journey  he  had  picked  up  a  clam  shell,  and  that  it 
had  told  him  that  the  Witch- Woman  had  put  it  in  the  village  in  her 
place.  He  told  them  how  he  had  taken  the  clam  shell  and  placed  it  in 
the  stream  of  water.  The  boy  went  back  to  his  father  and  told  him  that 
instead  of  traveling  west  they  would  move  to  the  south. 

The  boy  had  discovered  that  the  people  were  starving,  for  they  had 
not  found  any  buffalo.  Through  the  boy  the  people  found  many  buf- 
falo. When  they  had  plenty  of  buffalo  meat  they  talked  of  return- 
ing to  their  country.  The  people  went  back  to  their  old  home.  When 
they  reached  the  village  the  young  man  sat  down  in  his  lodge  and  invited 
several  other  young  men  to  go  with  him  on  the  war-path.  Several  of  the 
young  men  joined  him.  He  put  the  buffalo-hair  lariat  rope  about  his 


Il8  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

breast.  He  did  not  carry  the  scalp  nor  the  war  club.  He  left  these  in 
another  bundle.  He  led  the  war  party.  They  found  the  camp  of  the 
enemy,  attacked  the  village,  killed  two  enemies,  took  their  scalps,  and 
captured  many  ponies.  When  the  war  party  returned  to  the  village 
the  people  turned  out  to  receive  them.  The  chief  then  invited  the 
young  man  to  his  tipi.  The  young  man  said:  "No;  I  cannot  go  there." 
When  the  young  man  had  gone  on  the  war-path  four  times,  and  was 
successful  each  time,  he  said  to  his  father:  "It  is  not  yet  time  for  me 
to  take  a  woman  for  my  wife.  I  have  to  make  four  buffalo  holy  and 
take  them  to  the  lodge  of  the  priests.  When  I  have  done  that  I  am 
ready  to  marry. "  The  young  man  sat  down  again  and  planned  another 
war  party.  He  said:  "My  friends,  I  go  towards  the  east,  where  the 
sun  rises.  I  have  an  enemy  there.  I  must  kill  her.  If  any  of  you 
wish  to  go  with  me  you  may. "  Some  of  the  young  men  joined  him  and 
they  went  away.  When  they  had  traveled  for  some  time  they  came  to 
a  big  water  and  there  they  saw  a  grass-lodge.  The  young  man  told 
the  others  to  remain  behind,  for  he  wanted  to  visit  the  grass-lodge  him- 
self. The  boy  turned  into  a  Hawk  and  flew  to  the  grass-lodge.  When 
the  old  woman  found  out  that  the  Hawk  had  visited  her  lodge  she  turned 
into  an  Owl.  She  remained  in  the  lodge.  The  Hawk  flew  inside  and 
with  his  right  wing  struck  the  Owl  upon  the  head.  Instead  of  the  Owl 
being  killed  it  turned  into  a  Witch- Woman.  The  Witch- Woman  laughed 
at  the  Hawk,  but  the  Hawk  jumped  down  to  the  ground  and  stood  there 
as  a  young  man.  This  time  he  had  the  club.  He  struck  the  woman  upon 
the  head,  smashed  her  skull,  and  killed  her.  The  young  man  now  invited 
the  other  men  to  come.  They  took  the  old  woman,  placed  her  in  a  cache 
hole  which  she  had  dug,  and  buried  her.  The  owl  feathers,  claws,  and  all 
her  medicine  bags  they  placed  upon  the  fire  and  burned  them.  The 
warriors  returned  to  their  village. 

Every  time  the  young  man  went  down  to  the  creek  he  would  hear 
the  clam  shells  singing  about  him.  At  last  the  clam  shells  said:  "We 
are  ready  to  receive  some  of  your  people,  and  to  teach  them  our  power. 
We  want  some  of  your  people  to  become  medicine-men.  We  live  in  the 
mud.  The  mud  in  which  we  live  has  power  to  cure.  We  want  to  give 
this  mud  to  the  people. "  The  young  man  at  this  time  had  a  friend  who 
went  with  him  everywhere.  He  placed  him  on  the  banks  of  the  water 
and  told  the  clam  shells  to  talk  to  the  boy.  The  young  man  went 
home,  and  remained  there.  After  a  while  the  other  young  man  returned 
and  said:  "I  have  some  magic  power  now,  so  that  I  can  do  some  won- 
derful things.  If  any  of  our  people  get  sick  I  will  doctor  them."  The 
young  man  was  glad  to  hear  this.  He  said:  "It  is  now  time  that  we  go 
and  hunt  buffalo. " 


HOW  THE  WITCH-WOMAN  WAS  KILLED.  1 19 

The  people  went  on  a  hunt  and  while  on  this  hunt  the  young  man 
killed  four  buffalo  and  made  them  holy,  so  that  they  could  be  sacrificed  to 
the  different  gods.  After  he  did  this  he  married  the  daughter  of  the 
chief.  This  young  man  became  a  great  warrior,  while  the  other  young 
man  became  a  great  medicine-man.  The  young  man  then  told  the  peo- 
ple that  he  was  born  under  the  protection  of  the  sun;  that  this  woman 
who  was  now  killed  was  the  last  of  the  witch-women  in  the  country. 
The  young  man  then  told  the  people  that  from  that  time  on  they  must 
call  him  White-Sun ;  so  he  was  afterwards  known  by  this  name.  He  did 
not  become  a  chief.  He  was  a  great  warrior  and  did  not  care  to  become 
a  chief. 

30.  PURSUIT  BY  A  RATTLING  SKULL;  THE  PLEIADES.1 

One  time,  while  the  people  were  on  a  buffalo  hunt,  they  made  their 
camp  near  a  stream  of  water.  A  young  girl  in  the  village  went  off  to 
gather  some  wood.  She  strayed  and  wandered  around  until  she  was 
lost  and  could  not  find  her  way  back  to  camp.  A  Skull  found  and  cap- 
tured her  and  took  her  to  its  earth-lodge.  When  the  girl  was  seated  in 
the  lodge,  the  Skull  rolled  up  to  her  and  told  her  that  it  had  captured 
her  so  that  she  might  wash  it  and  keep  it  clean;  that  she  was  to  eat  the 
scales  that  came  off  from  it,  and  if  she  did  this  her  life  would  be  spared. 
The  girl  was  not  allowed  to  eat  anything  but  the  scales  from  the  Skull. 
The  girl  began  to  cry,  but  the  Skull  spoke  and  said:  "There  is  no  use  for 
you  to  cry, for  you  are  with  me  now,  and  you  must  begin  to  clean  me." 

The  people  missed  the  girl.  They  hunted  and  hunted  for  her,  but 
they  could  not  find  her.  For  many  days  they  hunted.  At  last  the 
chief  told  the  crier  to  cry  through  the  village  that  they  must  break  camp 
and  move  to  another  place.  The  people  then  moved  away  and  gave  up 
all  hope  of  ever  finding  the  girl.  When  they  had  been  gone  for  some 
time  the  Skull  spoke  to  the  girl  and  said:  "You  must  remain  in  this 
lodge.  I  am  going  far  away."  When  the  Skull  was  gone  the  girl 
began  to  cry.  The  Skull  did  not  stay  very  long,  but  came  back  and  rolled 
up  to  the  girl  and  she  had  to  take  the  scales  off  from  it  and  eat  them. 
Several  times  the  Skull  went  off.  Each  time  it  came  back  in  a  short  time. 
When  the  Skull  found  out  that  the  girl  would  not  leave,  it  told  the  girl 
that  it  was  going  to  be  gone  for  several  days.  The  Skull  rolled  out  and 

1  Told  by  White-Sun,  whose  grandfather  was  the  leading  medicine-man  of  the 
Kitkehahki.  He  was  a  famous  story-teller.  The  object  performing  the  magic 
flight  in  this  tale  is  literally  a  rattling  skull,  and  is  not  to  be  confused  with  the  round 
individual  mentioned  in  tale  No.  5.  This  more  nearly  approximates  the  usual 
form  of  this  tale  among  the  plains  tribes. 


120  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

went  off.  After  one  day  the  girl  went  out  of  the  lodge  and  went  away 
out  into  the  country,  and  stood  upon  a  high  hill  and  cried.  A  myste- 
rious looking  man  came  to  the  girl  and  said:  "My  girl,  why  are  you  cry- 
ing?" She  told  him  that  a  human  Skull  had  captured  her,  that  she  was 
keeping  its  lodge  in  order,  and  that  whenever  it  entered  the  lodge  it 
rolled  up  to  her  and  she  had  to  take  the  scales  from  it  and  eat  them, 
and  that  she  wanted  to  get  away  from  it  and  return  to  her  own  people. 
The  man  then  said:  "I  can  help  you,  but  I  can  not  do  everything.  After 
I  have  helped  you  all  that  I  can,  you  must  try  and  get  help  from  some- 
one else.  Here  is  an  arrow,  a  bladder,  and  a  cactus.  Take  them  and 
flee.  The  Skull  will  pursue  you,  but  when  it  is  about  to  overtake  you 
first  drop  the  cactus,  then  sing  this  song: 

My  brother,  the  angry  Skull  is  coming  after  me. 
Yonder  it  is  coming  over  the  hill-tops. 
My  brother,  the  angry  Skull  is  coming  after  me. 
My  brother,  the  angry  Skull  is  coming  after  me. 

The  animals  in  the  country  will  hear  you  singing  and  will  come  to  help 
you,  and  if  they  can  not  help  you,  keep  going  on.  When  the  Skull  is 
about  to  overtake  you  again,  drop  the  bladder,  but  first  you  must  put  a 
little  water  in  it.  If  the  Skull  still  follows  you,  call,  sing  the  song  again, 
and  the  animals  will  come  to  your  assistance.  If  they  can  not  help 
you,  and  the  Skull  is  about  to  catch  you,  then  stick  this  arrow  into  the 
ground. " 

The  girl  took  the  arrow,  the  cactus,  and  the  bladder.  She  then  went 
down  to  the  creek  and  put  some  water  into  the  bladder.  She  began  to 
run  towards  the  northern  country.  In  the  meantime  the  Skull  had  gone 
back  to  its  lodge  and  found  that  the  girl  was  gone.  Then  it  ran  to  the 
open  country,  saw  her  running  and  began  to  pursue  her.  After  a  while 
the  girl  saw  the  Skull  coming  over  the  hills.  Then  she  began  to  sing. 
A  Mountain-Lion  appeared  and  took  pity  upon  her.  The  Mountain- 
Lion  asked  the  girl  who  it  was  that  was  coming  after  her,  and  when  she 
said  that  it  was  a  human  Skull,  he  said:  "I  can  not  do  anything  for  you, 
my  girl.  This  Skull  is  a  wonderful  Skull.  Go  on.  Some  other  animals 
are  beyond  here  and  they  may  perhaps  help  you. "  The  girl  ran  on  and 
soon  the  head  came  in  sight  again.  When  it  was  nearly  up  to  her  the 
girl  dropped  the  cactus.  As  soon  as  she  dropped  the  cactus  the  cactus 
spread  out  until  there  were  many  all  over  the  ground,  and  the  human 
Skull  could  not  go  over  the  cactus.  Then  the  girl  went  on.  After  a 
while  she  turned  around  and  saw  that  the  human  Skull  had  in  some  way 
rolled  over  the  cactus  and  was  rapidly  gaining  on  her. 


PURSUIT  BY  A  RATTLING  SKULL;  THE  PLEIADES.  121 

She  began  to  sing  the  same  song  that  she  sang  before.  The  Bear 
heard  her  singing,  and  came  to  help  her.  The  girl  told  the  Bear  that  a 
person  was  after  her.  "Who?"  said  the  Bear.  "A  human  Skull," 
said  the  girl.  The  Bear  shook  his  head  and  said:  "My  girl,  I  am  not 
afraid  of  anybody  or  anything  but  this  Skull.  It  is  wonderful  and  I 
can  do  nothing.  Go  on.  Other  animals  are  beyond  here  and  they  may 
be  able  to  help  you.  I  can  not  help  you. "  When  the  Skull  came  in 
sight  of  the  Bear,  it  began  to  call  the  Bear  bad  names.  The  girl  ran  on. 
The  Skull  continued  to  follow  and  just  as  it  was  about  to  catch  up  with 
the  girl,  the  girl  dropped  the  bladder  with  the  water  in  it.  When  the 
bladder  struck  the  ground  and  the  ground  gave  way,  there  was  a  wide 
river  with  steep  banks  on  both  sides.  The  Skull  saw  many  logs  float- 
ing down  the  river  and  so  it  jumped  upon  a  log  and  drifted  down  the 
river  for  a  long  way.  The  girl  went  on  and  met  a  Buffalo  bull.  The 
girl  sang  her  song.  The  Buffalo  listened,  and  took  pity  upon  the  girl 
and  determined  to  help  her,  but  when  he  was  told  that  it  was  the 
human  Skull  that  was  after  her,  he  told  the  girl  to  go  on;  that  he  could 
not  help  her.  He  said:  "Go  yonder.  There  are  several  brothers  who  live 
there.  They  may  be  able  to  help  you."  The  girl  looked  around  and 
there  came  the  human  Skull  again.  Just  as  the  Skull  was  about  to  over- 
take her  she  stopped  and  stuck  the  arrow  into  the  ground,  and  many 
thick,  thorny  trees  sprang  up,  so  that  the  Skull  could  not  go  through. 
Then  the  Skull  turned  and  called  the  Buffalo  names  for  helping  the  girl. 
The  Skull  worked  around  through  the  timber,  and  at  last  it  blew  its 
breath  and  a  fire  went  forth  from  its  mouth  and  burned  the  trees  so  that 
a  pathway  was  made. 

In  the  meantime  the  girl  had  found  the  lodge  where  the  brothers  lived, 
and  she  began  to  sing  her  song.  Three  little  boys  came  out  and  listened 
to  her.  The  youngest  seemed  to  be  about  eleven  years  old,  the  other 
thirteen,  and  the  oldest  about  fifteen  years  old.  The  boys  had  their 
quivers  over  their  shoulders,  and  each  boy  carried  a  war  club.  They 
invited  the  girl  into  their  lodge.  The  boys  did  not  listen  to  the  singing 
of  the  girl,  for  they  had  their  eyes  upon  the  human  Skull.  As  the  Skull 
came  close  to  their  lodge  the  eldest  boy  jumped  out  and  with  his  war 
club  struck  the  Skull  so  that  the  Skull  broke  into  pieces.  The  girl  was 
then  told  to  come  out  and  look  at  the  human  Skull.  When  she  came  out 
she  picked  up  large  stones  and  threw  them  upon  the  Skull  and  broke 
the  Skull  into  many  smaller  pieces.  Then  she  made  a  big  fire,  picked  up 
the  pieces  of  the  Skull  and  put  them  upon  the  fire  and  burned  them. 

The  boys  told  the  girl  that  all  their  brothers  were  not  at  home,  and 
that  she  could  live  with  them  until  their  older  brothers  came  home. 


122  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS- 

The  girl  had  some  grains  of  corn  in  her  belt,  and  also  some  squash  seeds 
and  beans.  She  took  the  brothers  to  the  bottom  land  and  made  them 
clean  a  place,  and  there  she  planted  some  corn,  beans,  and  squash.  When 
they  were  planted  the  girl  told  the  boys  not  to  visit  the  field  again 
until  she  told  them  to  do  so.  Every  morning  the  girl  would  go  into  the 
field  and  work.  In  the  fall  there  was  plenty  of  corn,  squash,  and  beans 
in  the  field.  The  girl  gathered  corn  and  took  it  home  and  cooked  it. 
The  boys  ate  of  the  corn  and  they  were  satisfied.  The  girl  then  told 
the  boys  that  she  would  have  to  cure  some  of  the  corn  to  keep  for  the 
winter.  She  took  the  boys  into  the  corn-field  and  they  gathered  the 
corn  while  she  made  a  big  fire  to  cure  it.  After  the  corn  was  dried  she 
gathered  the  squash  and  beans  and  told  the  boys  that  they  must  make 
a  place  for  her  to  store  away  the  corn,  squash,  and  beans. 

The  boys  dug  a  hole  in  the  ground  and  there  they  stored  away  the  corn, 
squash,  and  beans.  In  the  winter  the  little  brothers  told  the  girl  that  their 
brothers  were  coming.  The  youngest  ran  and  told  his  brothers  about 
the  girl.  When  the  older  brothers  came,  they  said:  "We  shall  have 
to  send  this  girl  away.  What  shall  we  do  with  her?"  The  brothers 
wanted  to  send  the  girl  away,  for  it  was  not  the  intention  that  a  girl 
should  be  among  them,  but  the  other  three  brothers  said  that  the  girl 
had  given  them  corn,  squash,  and  beans  to  eat  and  they  could  not  very 
well  send  her  away.  They  asked  that  they  also  eat  of  the  things  that 
she  had.  The  girl  prepared  some  corn,  squash,  and  beans  and  gave  them 
to  the  older  brothers  to  eat.  When  they  had  eaten  of  the  things  they 
were  satisfied.  Then  they  said:  "We  will  now  decide  what  we  shall  do 
with  this  girl."  They  sent  the  girl  out  of  the  lodge,  and  then  they 
began  to  talk  about  her.  All  the  brothers  left  it  with  the  youngest 
brother  to  decide  what  should  be  done  with  the  girl.  The  little  boy  stood 
up  and  said:  "We  saved  this  girl  from  being  killed,  and  in  return  she 
has  given  us  plenty  to  eat.  The  girl  has  a  right  to  be  with  us.  I  de- 
cide that  she  be  our  sister  and  that  she  remain  with  us. "  All  the  other 
boys  said:  "It  is  well.  She  shall  be  our  sister."  There  were  six  of 
them  and  the  girl  made  seven  in  the  family. 

In  the  night  the  girl  found  out  that  the  boys  disappeared.  In  the 
morning  they  came  back.  After  a  while  the  youngest  brother  told  the 
girl  that  he  and  his  brothers  traveled  through  the  sky  in  the  night. 
After  the  girl  had  lived  with  them  for  some  time  the  brothers  decided 
to  take  her  with  them  on  their  nightly  journey  through  the  sky  country. 
At  night  she  may  be  seen  as  the  seventh  star  of  the  Pleiades. 


THE  POOR  BOY  AND  THE  MUD  PONIES.  123 

31.  THE  POOR  BOY  AND  THE  MUD  PONIES.1 

A  long  time  ago  there  were  no  horses.  Dogs  were  the  only  animals 
that  helped  the  people  carry  their  burdens  from  one  place  to  another. 
In  those  times  there  was  a  very  poor  boy  in  the  village.  He  went  from 
one  tipi  to  another  trying  to  get  something  to  eat.  Sometimes  he  was 
chased  out,  but  at  other  times  he  was  taken  in  and  fed. 

Once  in  a  great  while  he  would  go  into  the  lodge  of  the  chief,  and 
when  the  chief  would  see  him  he  would  feel  sorry  for  him  and  sometimes 
he  would  give  him  moccasins ;  at  other  times  he  would  give  him  leggings. 
Some  people  would  speak  against  the  boy  and  try  to  keep  the  chief  from 
giving  him  any  presents,  but  the  chief  would  say:  "Tirawa  knows  that 
this  boy  is  living.  As  he  is  growing  up  he  will  watch  over  him  and  the 
boy  may  some  day  rule  over  us. "  But  the  people  laughed  at  the  chief 
for  saying  this. 

The  boy  had  a  dream  about  ponies.  He  thought  that  two  ponies 
were  dropped  down  from  the  heavens  and  that  they  were  for  him.  He 
so  plainly  saw  the  ponies  in  his  dream  that  he  knew  their  shape,  and  how 
their  tails  and  manes  looked.  Often  when  the  people  broke  camp  and 
traveled  along  he  would  stay  behind  and  would  take  mud  and  make 
ponies.  Then  he  would  place  the  ponies  in  his  robe  and  follow  the  peo- 
ple. Before  he  would  arrive  at  the  village  he  would  place  the  two  mud 
ponies  outside  of  the  village.  He  would  go  into  the  village  and  go  from 
tipi  to  tipi  trying  to  get  something  to  eat.  Wherever  he  got  a  chance  to 
stay  over  night,  he  would  lie  down  in  the  tipi.  Early  in  the  morning  he 
would  go  to  where  his  mud  ponies  were.  Then  he  would  take  the  mud 
ponies  down  to  the  creek  and  pretend  that  they  were  drinking.  He  did 
this  for  many  months,  until  the  people  had  returned  to  their  permanent 
village.  Then  he  took  the  mud  ponies  down  from  where  they  stood, 
carried  them  a  long  way  from  the  village,  and  stood  them  by  a  pond. 
He  would  go  away  and  stay  for  a  while  and  then  return  and  make 
believe  the  ponies  needed  water.  Then  he  would  take  them  to  where 
there  was  good  grass  and  place  them  there. 

One  night  the  boy  entered  the  lodge  of  the  chief.  The  chief  gave 
him  something  to  eat  and  also  a  place  to  sleep.  That  night  the  boy  had 
a  dream.  He  thought  that  Tirawa  had  opened  the  sky  and  dropped 
two  ponies  for  him.  Then  he  thought  in  his  dream  that  he  heard  Tirawa 
singing  and  he  remembered  well  the  song,  for  when  he  awoke  he  went  out 
from  the  lodge  and  went  up  on  a  high  hill,  and  there  he  sang  the  song. 

1  Told  by  Little-Chief,  Pitahauirat.  This  is  a  variant  of  a  well-known  Plains 
tale  and  tells  of  the  origin  of  the  chief's  society. 


124  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

The  people  heard  him  singing  and  they  wondered  what  the  song  meant. 
While  the  boy  was  singing,  a  mysterious  voice  said:  "This  song  was 
given  to  you  by  Tirawa.  Tirawa  has  given  you  a  certain  kind  of  a  dance. 
You  should  become  a  chief.  Go  this  night  to  where  your  mud  ponies 
are  and  there  you  will  find  two  live  ponies. "  The  boy  went  back  into 
the  village,  to  the  lodge  of  the  chief,  and  borrowed  a  lariat  rope.  He 
then  ran  to  the  place  where  his  mud  ponies  were.  When  he  arrived 
there  he  saw  two  ponies.  The  two  ponies  came  to  the  boy  and  he  caught 
both  of  them.  The  boy  took  the  ponies  to  the  village  and  tied  them  just 
outside  of  the  village.  He  went  into  the  lodge  of  the  chief  and  told  him 
that  Tirawa  had  given  him  two  ponies.  Others,  when  they  heard,  said  that 
the  boy  made  the  ponies  out  of  mud,  and  that  the  mud  ponies  had  turned 
into  ponies,  but  the  boy  himself  believed  that  Tirawa  had  given  them  to 
him.  The  people  went  out  to  see  the  ponies  and  almost  worshipped 
them,  for  they  were  the  first  that  they  had  ever  seen. 

The  boy  finally  became  the  chief's  son-in-law.  He  then  went  on 
the  war-path  alone  upon  one  of  his  ponies.  In  a  few  days  he  brought 
back  many  other  ponies.  Then  he  sat  down  and  sang  the  song  that  they 
had  heard  him  singing  on  the  first  night.1  The  young  men  came  from 
every  where  in  the  village  to  listen  and  be  near  him,  for  they  knew  that  he 
was  making  up  his  mind  to  go  again  on  the  war-path.  The  young  man 
led  out  a  big  war  party  and  brought  back  many  ponies.  It  was  not  long 
until  he  became  a  chief.  He  then  started  a  society  known  as  the  Chief's 
Society  and  he  was  at  the  head  of  it.  The  songs  which  he  introduced 
were  the  songs  which  he  heard  while  on  the  hill.  The  songs  and  the 
dance  were  kept  up  by  the  Chaui  and  Pitahauirat.  This  dance  became 
extinct  in  1887  when  Chief-Sun  died.  He  was  the  keeper  of  the  songs  and 
the  dance. 

32.  ORIGIN  OF  THE  BUFFALO  BUNDLE.2 

A  long  time  ago  the  Buffalo  agreed  to  go  to  the  home  of  the  people. 
The  leader  of  the  herd  was  a  bull  who  had  white  spots  on  him.  The  cow 
to  whom  he  was  married  was  also  spotted  white.  On  their  journey  the 
cow  gave  birth  to  a  female  calf,  and  the  calf  was  the  color  of  snow.  The 
little  white  calf  carried  the  sacred  bundle.  Each  morning  when  they 
were  about  to  start  on  the  day's  journey,  the  calf  decided  how  far  they 
should  go.  They  came  to  a  place  where  the  people  were,  and  they  gave 

1  The  words  of  this  song  have  no  meaning;  the  music  will  be  found  in  Part  II. 

2  Told  by  Mouth-Waving- in-Water,   Kitkehahki.     This  story,  as  its  title  in- 
dicates, relates  to  the  origin  of  the  so-called  Buffalo  bundle.      The  story  especially 
teaches  that  respect  should  be  shown  to  the  sacred  bundle. 


ORIGIN  OF  THE  BUFFALO  BUNDLE.  125 

a  certain  number  of  buffalo  to  the  people  to  kill.  The  people  killed  the 
buffalo  and  made  many  buffalo  holy.  They  also  captured  the  sacred  bundle 
that  the  girl  carried.  When  the  bundle  was  captured  by  the  people  the 
buffalo  were  satisfied  and  agreed  to  go  back  to  their  country  in  the  west. 
During  this  time  a  young  buffalo  bull  had  taken  away  the  white  buf- 
falo calf  and  had  lain  with  it.  When  the  Buffalo  were  about  to  return  to 
their  country  the  white  Buffalo  girl  was  missing.  The  Buffalo  waited 
for  the  girl  to  come  and  decide  how  far  they  should  go  the  first  day. 
They  called  for  her  and  she  came  up  from  a  ravine  where  she  had  left  her 
calf.  She  took  her  place  and  gave  a  command  that  the  people  should 
journey  a  certain  distance.  The  Buffalo  began  to  march  and  they  jour- 
neyed for  several  days  as  the  girl  directed.  Early  one  morning,  just  as 
the  girl  was  about  to  tell  the  Buffalo  how  far  they  were  to  journey,  there 
was  a  great  noise  from  behind.  The  Buffalo  turned  and  saw  three  buffalo 
bulls.  In  their  midst  was  a  poor  little  calf  singing: 

"I  am  hunting  my  mother. 
My  mother's  name  is  White-Frost. " 

Then  it  sang  again: 

'  'I  am  hunting  for  my  father. 
My  father  is  White-Bull. " 

The  three  bulls  made  fun  of  the  calf  and  said:  "You  think  White- 
Frost  is  your  mother,  and  that  White-Bull  is  your  father!"  but  the  calf 
went  on  through  the  herd  singing  until  it  reached  its  mother.  The 
mother  would  not  claim  the  calf,  and  would  not  let  it  suck,  although  it  was 
apparent  that  she  had  a  calf.  The  calf  cried  and  said:  "If  you  will  not 
let  me  suck,  I  will  turn  your  milk  black  and  from  this  time  on  there  shall 
be  no  more  white  Buffalo." 

The  calf  returned  to  the  village  and  turned  into  a  boy.  The  little 
boy  was  given  a  home  and  lived  with  the  people.  He  grew  up  to  be  a 
wonderful  man.  He  then  took  charge  of  the  bundle  that  was  captured 
from  the  Buffalo.  He  told  the  people  that  when  they  killed  Buffalo  they 
must  put  fat  upon  the  bundle,  for  the  bundle  belonged  to  Tirawa  and  the 
fat  also  belonged  to  him.  The  pipe  and  the  raccoon  penis  went  together 
in  the  bundle,  for  the  pipe  was  used  to  give  smoke  to  the  gods,  while 
the  raccoon  penis  was  used  in  offering  the  fat  to  the  gods.  He  also  told 
the  people  that  when  they  should  capture  arrows  from  the  enemy  they 
should  put  these  arrows  upon  the  bundles,  and  when  they  made  sacred 
pipe  offerings  they  should  use  the  enemy's  arrows  to  tamp  the  pipe  with, 
so  that  the  smoke  going  to  Tirawa  would  be  offerings  of  the  enemy; 
that  they  must  never  press  the  tobacco  with  their  fingers,  for  if  they  did 
they  would  be  offering  themselves  to  the  gods  and  would  soon  die. 


126  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

33.  THE  LAST  OP  THE  WHITE  BUFFALO. 

(See  Abstracts.) 

[Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  apparently  is  only  a  fragment  of  the  more 
extended  story  which  the  informant  learned  from  his  Chaui  wife.  Among  the 
Chaui  it  is  known  that  there  formerly  existed  a  ceremony,  the  altar  of  which  con- 
sisted of  four  white  buffalo  skins.] 

34.  THE  WIFE  WHO  RETURNED  FROM  SPIRIT  LAND.1 

Many  years  ago,  when  the  people  were  in  Nebraska,  there  was  a  young 
man  who  was  well  off  and  who  had  become  a  warrior  when  a  mere  boy. 
This  young  man  was  always  away  from  his  village  on  the  war-path  and 
he  never  cared  to  be  with  women.  Every  time  he  came  to  the  village  he 
would  climb  up  on  the  mud-lodges  and  would  look  over  the  village  and 
watch  the  girls  who  went  to  the  spring  for  water.  One  time  he  saw  a 
girl  that  he  liked,  and  after  that  time  he  went  down  to  the  spring  every 
day  and  tried  to  get  a  chance  to  talk  to  her.  He  met  the  girl  near  the 
spring  several  times,  and  he  found  out  that  she  was  the  girl  he  wanted 
to  marry,  but  he  knew  that  he  could  not  marry  her  until  he  had  captured 
a  certain  number  of  ponies,  and  so  he  made  up  his  mind  that  he  would  go 
on  the  war-path  again  and  would  try  to  capture  some  ponies. 

He  heard  of  a  great  warrior  who  was  going  on  the  war-path.  The 
warrior  invited  several  young  men  to  come  to  his  lodge,  and  he  told  them 
to  get  a  dry  buffalo  hide  for  a  drum  and  some  drumsticks,  for  they  were 
to  sing  coyote  warrior  songs.  While  these  men  were  singing  the  young 
man  in  the  village  heard  the  singing  and  he  knew  at  once  that  the  war- 
rior was  going  to  lead  a  war  party.  The  young  man  went  to  the  lodge 
with  his  bow  and  arrows  and  moccasins,  and  joined  the  party.  This 
war  party  went  out  and  started  towards  the  southern  country  to  hunt 
the  Comanche,  for  these  people  had  many  ponies. 

The  girl  missed  the  young  man,  but  she  did  not  know  that  he  had 
gone  upon  the  war-path.  She  looked  for  him  every  day,  and  when  she 
did  not  see  him  she  was  sad.  She  kept  thinking  of  this  young  man  until 
finally  she  became  sick.  Just  as  the  people  were  getting  ready  to  go  on 
a  buffalo  hunt  the  girl  died.  The  people  took  her  up  on  a  high  mound 
close  to  the  graveyard  and  there  they  dug  a  hole  about  two  feet  deep 
and  then  they  set  up  two  forks,  one  on  the  east  side  and  one  on  the  west 
side.  They  placed  a  pole  across  it  and  then  put  poles  against  this  pole. 
Then  they  took  the  girl  up  there  and  placed  her  upon  the  platform,  with 

'Told  by  White-Horse,  Pitahauirat.  The  tale  not  only  illustrates,  in  a  fairly 
complete  manner,  the  belief  of  the  Pitahauirat  in  the  future  land,  but  shows,  like 
other  tales  already  noted,  the  dire  results  of  disobedience  to  the  supernatural  powers. 


THE  WIFE  WHO  RETURNED  FROM  SPIRIT  LAND.  127 

many  presents  of  buffalo  robes  and  all  her  dresses.  They  covered  the 
place  with  grass  and  then  with  sod,  so  that  the  grave  formed  a  little  mound. 

The  people  went  on  a  buffalo  hunt  and  killed  many  buffalo.  While 
they  were  camped  at  one  place  they  heard  that  certain  warriors  who 
had  gone  out  were  returning  with  many  ponies.  Among  them  was  the 
young  man.  It  was  noised  through  the  village  that  the  young  man  had 
captured  most  of  the  ponies  and  had  more  than  any  other  man.  When 
he  arrived  at  his  father 's  lodge  he  sat  down,  and  his  mother  began  to  tell 
him  the  news  of  the  village.  The  mother,  however,  forgot  to  tell  the 
young  man  that  a  certain  girl  had  died.  The  next  day  she  began  to 
talk  again  and  to  tell  the  boy  the  news  of  the  people,  and  she  said:  "My 
son,  I  forgot  to  tell  you  that  a  certain  girl  died  in  the  village  and  was 
buried. "  The  young  man  put  his  head  down  and  the  mother  saw  that 
he  was  sad. 

The  day  before,  the  young  man  had  mounted  one  of  his  best  horses 
and  rode  around  the  place  where  the  people  dipped  up  their  water  from 
the  creek.  He  did  not  see  the  girl,  and  so  when  he  was  told  that  a  girl 
had  died  he  knew  that  it  was  the  one  he  liked.  The  young  man  lifted 
up  his  head  and  said:  "Mother,  fold  up  some  dried  meat  for  me  and  give 
me  a  new  pair  of  moccasins."  When  he  put  on  his  moccasins  he  told 
his  mother  that  he  was  going  off  again  and  that  she  must  not  worry  about 
him,  as  he  would  return.  The  young  man  started  towards  the  village. 
As  soon  as  he  started  he  began  to  cry  and  he  cried  all  the  way.  When 
night  overtook  him  he  stood  upon  a  high  hill  and  cried.  When  he  was 
tired  he  lay  down  and  slept.  He  came  into  the  country  where  the  girl 's 
grave  was  and  there  he  cried  again.  He  walked  up  the  high  hill  on 
which  was  the  grave  and  stood  there  several  days  and  cried. 

When  night  came  he  made  up  his  mind  that  it  would  be  better  for 
him  to  go  into  the  village  and  stay  there  over  night.  He  thought  that 
some  of  the  people  might  be  in  the  village  and  that  they  would  give  him 
something  to  eat.  When  he  came  near  the  village  he  noticed  that  there 
was  one  lodge  where  smoke  was  coming  out  from  the  opening  at  the  top. 
He  went  to  the  lodge.  He  peeped  in  and  saw  a  young  woman  sitting 
upon  the  ground  facing  west,  so  that  he  could  not  see  her  face.  He  kept 
looking  in  and  he  saw  many  buffalo  robes  and  other  things  that  the 
people  had  placed  in  the  grave  for  the  girl.  After  a  while  the  young 
woman  said:  "You  have  been  standing  there  a  long  time.  Come 
into  the  lodge,  but  do  not  come  near  me.  Sit  down  near  the  en- 
trance."  The  young  man  seated  himself  near  the  entrance  and  she  let 
him  stay.  The  boy  was  thin  and  hungry,  for  he  had  had  nothing  to  eat 
for  many  days.  He  sat  there  all  night  and  the  next  day  and  all  of  the 


128  TRUE  STORIES  OP  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

next  night.  The  next  night  the  young  woman  told  the  young  man  to 
come  to  the  first  post  in  the  lodge.  There  he  remained  over  night. 
The  next  night  she  told  him  to  approach  the  fireplace,  as  there  was  a 
kettle  on  the  fire.  She  told  him  to  dip  up  some  meat  and  eat,  and  when 
he  had  had  enough  to  put  the  meat  back  on  the  fireplace.  Every  night 
the  girl  would  invite  the  boy  to  move  nearer  to  her.  At  last  the  boy 
went  up  to  where  she  was  sitting,  but  she  told  him  not  to  touch  her. 
She  said  that  her  dead  relatives  would  not  consent  to  have  him  touch 
her  yet.  She  made  him  get  into  the  bed  and  lie  there.  She  told  him 
that  there  were  some  things  which  were  to  happen  and  if  he  was  brave 
and  did  not  run  away  he  might  he  able  to  keep  her  as  his  wife.  She  told 
him  that  she  was  not  a  real  thing ;  that  she  might  disappear  at  any  time ; 
but  if  he  would  do  everything  as  she  said,  she  thought  that  perhaps  he 
would  be  able  to  keep  her. 

One  night  the  girl  told  the  boy  to  watch,  as  something  was  going  to 
happen,  and  not  to  be  afraid.  In  the  night  the  boy  heard  drumming 
in  the  village.  He  also  heard  shouting,  yelling,  and  singing.  In  the 
lodge  there  was  fire  in  the  fireplace  and  the  fire  never  went  out.  The 
fire  was  kept  up  by  the  dead  people.  The  fire  burned  low.  When  the 
drumming  came  near  he  heard  a  lot  of  little  children  running  ahead  of 
the  drummers  and  they  all  rushed  into  the  lodge.  He  heard  the  chil- 
dren talking  and  playing  and  they  seemed  to  seat  themselves  around  in 
the  lodge.  The  drummers  came  into  the  lodge  and  the  girl  said:  "When 
these  people  cease  dancing  here  they  will  say  that  they  have  smoked 
and  you  must  say  '  Nawa. ' '  The  invisible  people  came  in  and  danced 
and  after  a  while  the  leader  of  the  dance  said,  "Now  we  have  smoked." 
The  young  man  said  "Nawa. "  Then  the  children  seemed  to  rush  out  of 
the  lodge,  though  he  could  not  see  them;  then  the  dancers  went  out. 
The  next  night  the  drumming  sound  was  again  heard,  only  a  little  earlier. 
The  sound  came  into  the  lodge  and  the  boy  could  see  the  feet  of  the 
children  as  they  rushed  into  the  lodge.  Next  came  the  dancing  and 
drumming  and  as  the  dancers  circled  around  the  fireplace  he  could  see  their 
feet.  They  danced  for  some  time  and  then  the  leader  of  the  dance  said, 
"We  have  now  smoked,"  and  the  young  man  said  "Nawa."  Then  he 
saw  the  feet  of  the  children  rushing  out  of  the  lodge  and  then  the  dan- 
cers left.  Early  the  next  night  the  drumming  was  heard  again.  This 
time  when  the  people  entered  the  young  man  could  see  their  bodies. 
They  kept  on  dancing  and  when  the  leader  said,  "We  have  smoked, "  the 
young  man  said  "Nawa,"  and  they  went  out.  The  next  night  the 
drumming  came  again  and  the  dancers  came  in  and  he  could  see  them 
plainly.  They  danced  around  the  fireplace,  and  when  the  dancing  was 
over  the  leader  of  the  dance  said:  "Young  man,  when  you  first  started 


THE  WIFE  WHO  RETURNED  FROM  SPIRIT  LAND.  I2Q 

from  the  village  where  your  people  are  you  began  to  cry.  We  knew 
what  you  were  crying  about.  You  were  poor  in  spirit  because  this  girl 
had  died.  All  of  us  agreed  that  we  would  send  the  girl  back.  You 
can  see  her  now,  but  she  is  not  real.  You  must  be  careful  and  not 
make  her  angry  or  you  will  lose  her.  You  have  been  a  brave  man  to 
stay  with  the  girl  when  we  came  in,  but  this  is  the  way  we  are.  You 
can  not  see  us,  but  some  time  we  can  turn  into  people  and  you  can  see 
us,  though  we  are  not  real.  We  are  spirits.  There  is  one  thing  you 
must  do  before  this  girl  can  stay  with  you.  We  have  now  smoked." 
They  then  went  out.  Then  the  girl  said:  "These  people  who  were  in 
here  are  all  my  relatives.  They  are  anxious  to  help  you  to  take  me  back, 
for  they  feel  sorry  for  you.  They  have  given  you  permission  to  talk 
with  me  and  to  be  close  to  me,  but  we  can  not  be  together  yet." 

There  was  no  more  dancing,  and  no  more  affrights  for  the  young  man. 
Every  day  the  young  man  went  into  the  corn-fields  of  the  people  and 
found  corn.  He  brought  the  corn  up  and  they  ate  of  the  corn.  The 
woman  dished  out  meat  to  the  young  man.  The  young  man  began  to 
gain  flesh.  One  day  while  they  were  sitting  in  the  lodge  the  girl  said: 
"The  people  have  decided  to  return  to  the  village.  They  have  started 
back.  My  uncles  have  started  on  ahead.  Each  of  my  uncles,  four  in 
number,  has  a  little  piece  of  buffalo  meat  and  a  piece  of  fat  to  place  on 
my  grave.  They  are  now  on  the  way." 

Every  day  after  that  the  girl  would  tell  the  young  man  where  her 
uncles  were  and  at  what  place  they  were  now  camped.  One  day  she 
told  the  young  man  that  her  uncles  were  close  to  the  village;  that  the 
next  day  they  would  arrive;  that  in  the  afternoon  they  would  walk  up 
to  the  grave  to  place  the  buffalo  meat  in  the  grave.  "My  uncles  are 
now  crying  every  day,  for  they  are  near  my  grave. "  The  next  day  the 
woman  said:  "You  remember  what  the  leader  of  the  dancers  said  about 
one  more  hard  thing  for  you  to  do.  To-morrow  is  the  time  when  you 
shall  have  to  do  that  thing."  The  next  day  the  woman  told  the  young 
man  that  he  must  use  all  his  strength ;  that  when  the  uncles  should  walk 
up  the  hill  to  the  grave,  they  would  go  outside  of  the  village  and  there 
they  were  to  stand.  When  she  gave  command  for  him  to  take  hold  of 
her  he  must  use  all  his  strength  to  hold  her,  for  when  she  saw  her  uncles 
she  was  going  to  try  to  disappear  and  to  go  from  him.  "Four  times  this 
shall  happen  and  if  I  get  away  from  you  every  time  then  you  shall  lose 
me.  When  we  are  out  there  and  you  get  hold  of  me,  you  must  call  as 
loud  as  you  can  so  that  my  uncles  will  hear  you  and  they  will  come  down 
and  help  you."  The  next  day  the  girl  told  the  boy  to  rise,  that  her 
uncles  were  now  coming  to  the  grave.  They  went  outside  of  the  village 


130  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

and  when  they  stopped  they  saw  the  uncles  of  the  girl  going  up  to  the 
grave.  (The  reason  why  the  girl  was  trying  to  get  away  was  because 
people  were  going  to  her  grave  and  it  was  best  that  her  spirit  should  not 
be  troubled  by  human  beings.)  As  soon  as  she  saw  her  uncles  place  the 
meat  on  the  grave  she  said:  "Pick  me  up  quick. "  The  young  man  took 
hold  of  the  girl  and  held  her  with  all  his  strength,  but  the  girl  jumped  up 
and  down  and  the  young  man  was  thrown  upon  the  ground  and  she  got 
away.  While  the  young  man  held  the  girl  he  called  at  the  top  of  his 
voice,  but  as  the  uncles  were  crying  they  could  not  hear  his  voice.  After 
the  young  man  got  up  he  went  into  the  village  and  went  into  the  lodge 
and  there  the  girl  was  standing  laughing.  She  said:  "Why,  young 
man,  you  have  no  strength  at  all.  I  am  sorry  to  tell  you  that  if  I  get 
away  four  times  you  shall  never  see  me  again,  for,  as  I  have  said,  I  am  not 
real.  Let  us  now  go  out  again  and  you  must  use  all  your  strength  to 
hold  me. " 

The  girl  and  the  boy  went  out  of  the  village  again  and  as  soon  as  they 
were  out  she  told  him  to  take  hold  of  her.  The  young  man  then  held 
her  about  the  arms,  put  his  legs  around  her  body,  and  then  began  to 
call  to  the  men  to  come  and  help  him,  but  the  men  did  not  come.  The 
girl  tried  to  get  away  and  she  did  get  away  the  second  time.  The  boy 
ran  back  into  the  village  and  when  he  entered  the  lodge  she  stood  there 
laughing  at  him  and  said:  "You  are  not  strong.  Now  we  will  go  for  the 
third  time.  You  must  hold  me  just  as  tight  as  you  can.  If  my  uncles 
hear  you  calling  they  will  come  and  if  they  touch  me  then  I  must  stay 
with  you. "  They  went  outside  of  the  village  again  and  stood  there. 
The  girl  said:  "Now  catch  hold  of  me."  The  young  man  took  her  as 
before  and  he  began  to  call  to  the  men  at  the  grave,  but  they  would  not 
come.  The  girl  began  to  jump  up  and  down  and  she  got  loose  again. 
Then  the  young  man  felt  sorry  and  returned  to  the  lodge.  There  he 
found  the  girl  standing  laughing  at  him.  She  said:  "Young  man,  if 
you  care  for  me  and  want  me  to  stay  with  you,  you  must  use  more  strength 
than  you  have  shown.  This  is  the  last  time,  and  if  I  get  away  from  you 
then  I  am  gone  and  you  shall  never  see  me  any  more." 

They  went  out,  and  before  he  could  catch  hold  of  her  he  began  to 
shout.  About  this  time  the  men  at  the  grave  had  stopped  crying.  As 
soon  as  the  girl  gave  command  for  him  the  young  man  caught  her  and 
jumped.  He  put  his  legs  around  her  and  he  reached  out  his  hands  and 
caught  her  hair  so  that  her  hair  was  twisted  in  his  hands.  Then  he 
shouted  for  the  men  to  come.  She  began  to  jump  up  and  down.  Some- 
times she  remained  up  in  the  air  for  several  minutes.  The  boy  hung  on 
to  her  hair  and  down  they  would  come  upon  the  ground.  The  men 


THE  WIFE  WHO  RETURNED  FROM  SPIRIT  LAND.  13! 

upon  the  grave  saw  them  and  they  ran.  The  girl  was  up  in  the  air  as  if 
swinging  with  the  boy  and  the  men  ran  as  hard  as  they  could.  Among 
the  men  was  one  good  runner.  The  girl  came  down  with  the  boy  and  as 
they  struck  the  ground  this  man  reached  them.  He  jumped  upon  her 
and  the  girl  flew  up  again.  When  they  came  down  again  another  man 
was  there  and  he  also  hung  to  her  and  the  girl  went  up  and  in  a  short 
time  she  came  back  to  the  ground  and  the  other  two  were  there.  All 
took  hold  of  her.  When  they  had  hold  of  her  the  girl  took  a  long  breath 
and  said:  "Uncles,  you  have  held  me.  I  will  stay  with  you.  I  will  not 
go  away  from  you. "  Then  she  told  them  to  let  her  loose,  but  the  uncles 
would  not  let  her  go. 

They  went  along,  still  holding  her,  towards  their  lodge.  When  they 
entered  the  lodge  they  saw  her  bed.  The  bed  was  covered  with  the  robes 
which  were  placed  in  the  grave.  She  told  her  uncles  to  go  into  the  field 
and  to  bring  her  corn,  beans,  and  squash,  for  she  was  going  to  eat,  and 
that  she  should  always  be  with  them.  The  uncles  would  not  leave  her, 
so  she  had  to  go  down  into  the  fields  with  them.  They  came  back  with 
the  corn  and  other  things.  She  sat  down  and  her  uncles  boiled  some  of 
the  corn,  beans,  and  squash  for  her.  When  she  had  eaten,  she  said: 
"I  have  eaten  with  you;  I  shall  now  stay  with  this  young  man. "  After 
that  the  girl  told  her  uncles  that  they  could  stay  four  days  and  four 
nights  with  them,  and  that  they  must  then  return  to  their  people. 

After  four  days  had  passed,  the  men  went  into  the  field  and  gathered 
some  corn,  beans,  and  squash  to  take  to  their  people.  These  men  then 
started  back  to  where  the  people  were  coming  with  the  buffalo  meat. 
They  traveled  for  several  days,  and  one  day  while  they  were  journeying 
they  met  the  procession  coming.  As  soon  as  they  met  the  people  one 
of  the  uncles  shouted  and  said:  "My  niece  lives  in  the  village  with  the 
young  man  who  disappeared  from  our  village."  As  soon  as  the  people 
in  the  lead  heard  this  they  shouted  back  to  others  who  were  behind  and 
so  on  until  everyone  knew.  The  girl  in  the  lodge  with  the  young  man 
told  all  that  the  uncles  had  told  the  people,  and  she  said:  "They  are 
nearing  our  village. " 

In  a  few  days  the  people  came  to  the  village  and  instead  of  cleaning 
out  their  lodges  and  entering  them  the  people  went  into  the  lodge 
where  the  girl  and  the  boy  were.  The  lodge  was  filled  with  people  and 
when  they  saw  her  they  knew  that  what  the  uncles  had  said  was  true. 
Then  the  people  began  to  move  into  their  lodges. 

One  night  the  girl  noticed  her  mother  looking  closely  at  her.  The 
old  woman  got  up  and  took  her  hoe  and  went  out.  She  went  up  on  the 
top  of  the  hill  where  the  grave  was  and  she  began  to  dig  into  the  grave. 


132  THE  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE   HEAVENLY   BEINGS. 

When  she  had  dug  down  she  found  the  bones  and  all  the  things  which 
were  placed  in  the  grave  were  still  there,  and  she  thought  to  herself,  "Well, 
this  can  not  be  my  daughter,  for  here  she  lies  and  all  the  things  are  here 
with  her  bones. "  When  she  went  down  and  entered  her  lodge,  the  girl 
said:  "Mother,  I  know  what  you  have  done.  You  do  not  believe  that 
I  am  your  daughter;  but,  mother,  I  am  your  daughter.  My  body  lies  up 
there,  but  I  am  here  with  you.  I  am  not  real,  and  if  you  people  do  not 
always  treat  me  properly  I  will  suddenly  disappear.  "  The  woman  knew 
that  although  her  body  lay  in  the  grave,  she  was  living  with  them  as  a 
spirit. 

The  young  man  was  happy  with  his  wife  and  for  many  years  they 
lived  happily  together.  Once  in  a  while  the  young  man  would  go  on  the 
war-path  and  would  bring  back  many  ponies.  The  woman  gave  birth 
and  the  child  was  a  boy.  The  woman  was  not  allowed  to  cook  or  to 
make  moccasins  for  her  husband,  so  that  her  relatives  had  to  do  the 
cooking  and  the  making  of  moccasins  for  the  young  man  when  he  wanted 
to  go  on  the  war-path.  His  son  grew  to  be  large,  but  the  relatives  of  the 
woman  never  allowed  him  to  touch  the  earth.  They  packed  him  upon 
their  backs  every  day,  and  only  when  night  came  was  the  child  allowed 
to  lie  upon  the  bed  with  his  mother.  As  soon  as  it  was  daylight  some 
of  the  relatives  were  there  to  put  the  child  upon  their  backs.  When  one 
became  tired  packing  the  child,  then  another  woman  was  ready  to  take 
him.  The  mother  had  told  her  relatives  that  they  must  not  allow  the 
child  to  play  with  other  children,  for  in  running  around  he  might  fall 
down,  and  if  he  did,  it  would  be  a  signal  for  his  disappearance. 

One  night  the  young  man  came  into  the  lodge  where  his  wife  was, 
and  he  said:  "My  wife,  I  think  it  is  time  that  I  take  another  woman  for 
a  wife."  The  woman  said:  "No;  do  you  not  know  that  I  told  you  a 
long  time  ago  that  I  took  pity  upon  you  because  you  were  poor  in  spirit 
and  came  back  from  Spirit  Land  to  be  with  you  ?  My  relatives  helped 
me  to  come  back  to  you,  and  you  promised  never  to  take  another 
woman  for  a  wife."  The  man  insisted  upon  taking  another  woman  for 
a  wife  and  he  begged  the  woman  so  hard  that  she  finally  consented, 
although  she  had  told  her  husband  that  if  he  should  marry  another 
woman,  some  day  the  new  wife  might  get  angry  and  call  her  a  ghost -wife, 
and  then  she  would  know  what  was  said  about  her.  But  she  finally 
gave  her  consent  for  him  to  marry  this  other  woman;  so  the  man  mar- 
ried another  woman. 

For  several  years  they  lived  happily.  One  day  the  man  went  to  the 
human  wife  and  she  gave  him  a  pair  of  moccasins.  The  man  put  on  the 
moccasins ,  but  somehow  they  did  not  fit  him,  and  he  took  the  moccasins 


THE  WIFE  WHO  RETURNED  FROM  SPIRIT  LAND.  133 

off  and  threw  them  away.  Then  the  man  went  up  to  his  ghost-wife  and 
she  had  a  pair  of  moccasins  for  him  which  her  relatives  had  made  for 
him.  She  gave  the  moccasins  to  him  and  he  put  them  on  and  found  that 
they  were  just  right. 

The  next  day  he  went  into  the  lodge  of  his  other  wife  and  she  saw 
that  he  had  a  pair  of  moccasins  on  that  his  ghost-wife  had  given  him. 
She  went  up  to  him,  took  the  moccasins  off  of  his  feet  and  threw  them 
away.  She  said:  "You  threw  my  moccasins  away  and  I  will  throw  away 
the  moccasins  of  your  ghost-wife. "  The  man  became  angry,  took  the 
moccasins,  put  them  on,  and  returned  to  his  ghost-wife 's  lodge.  When  he 
entered  and  was  seated  she  said:  "I  know  all  that  happened  in  the  other 
lodge  where  your  wife  is.  She  threw  away  my  moccasins  and  called  me 
a  ghost-wife.  Now  you  see  what  I  told  you  has  all  come  true. "  The 
man  became  angry,  spoke  harsh  words  to  his  wife,  and  pushed  her  to  one 
side.  She  said:  "You  must  not  do  this;  you  must  not  strike  at  me. 
You  know  what  I  told  you. "  But  the  man  was  angry  and  he  struck  at 
her.  She  said:  ' '  Do  not  strike  at  me  any  more,  for  you  know  what  I  told 
you.  For  one  thing  I  am  glad,  and  that  is  I  have  a  child.  If  I  had  remained 
in  the  Spirit  Land  I  should  never  have  been  allowed  to  have  a  child.  The 
child  is  mine.  You  do  not  love  my  child.  You  let  that  woman  throw 
away  the  moccasins  which  I  put  upon  your  feet."  The  man  became 
angry  again  and  struck  the  woman  on  the  face.  The  woman  said:  "Do 
not  strike  at  me  any  more."  The  man  was  angry  and  struck  at  her. 
She  said:  "I  love  my  child.  When  I  am  gone  I  shall  take  my  child  with 
me. "  As  the  man  lifted  his  hand  to  strike  her  again  she  disappeared 
and  where  she  was  sitting  a  whirlwind  formed,  and  the  whirlwind  arose 
and  went  straight  up  in  the  lodge  and  whirled  around  and  went  out  of 
the  opening  at  the  top  of  the  lodge. 

The  man  felt  sorry  for  what  he  had  done.  The  people  scolded  the 
man  and  he  said  nothing.  He  sat  down  near  the  fireplace  and  bowed 
his  head.  Towards  evening  he  arose  and  went  up  on  the  high  hill  and 
there  he  stood  near  the  grave  crying,  begging  his  wife  to  return  to  him. 
He  cried  and  cried,  and  he  stayed  there  upon  the  hill  that  night.  The 
people  took  the  child  and  put  it  to  bed.  In  the  morning  they  found 
the  child  dead.  The  people  took  the  child  up  on  the  hill,  opened  its 
mother's  grave,  and  placed  the  child  there.  Then  the  man  cried  all  the 
more.  For  four  days  and  four  nights  he  stood  there.  The  woman 
appeared  to  him  again  and  said:  "Always  remember  that  when  we  die 
we  live  again.  My  people  took  pity  upon  you  and  I  came  to  you. 
You  struck  at  me  several  times.  I  am  gone  away  from  you.  From  this 
time  on  no  more  dead  people  shall  come  to  our  people,  for  you  did 
wrong  in  striking  me.  Arise,  walk  down  into  the  village  and  stay  there. 


IJ4  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

Do  not  stay  around  the  grave  here,  for  you  shall  never  see  me,  and  I  am 
not  coming  back  to  you."  Then  the  woman  turned  into  a  whirlwind 
again  and  disappeared. 

The  man  was  broken-hearted.  He  stayed  around  the  grave,  and 
although  the  other  wife  came  up  he  waved  her  to  one  side  and  would  not 
listen  to  her.  The  man  remained  around  the  grave  and  would  not  eat 
anything,  and  so  he  starved  to  death.  The  people  did  not  bury  him 
beside  the  woman.  They  took  him  and  buried  him  in  another  place. 
The  woman  went  back  to  the  Spirit  Land  with  the  child  after  the  man 
died. 

35.  HOW  THE  WORLD  IS  TO  COME  TO  AN  END.' 

Many  years  ago,  when  I  was  a  little  boy,  I  used  to  watch  the  old  men 
sitting  in  the  tipis,  and  sometimes  in  the  lodges,  rattling  the  gourds  and 
singing.  Several  times  I  asked  my  father  what  the  old  men  were  singing 
about.  My  father  would  say:  "Those  old  men  are  singing  about  Tirawa. 
When  you  grow  up  you  will  learn  more  about  the  songs  of  these  old  men. " 
I  was  anxious  to  know  more  about  the  sacred  bundle  and  the  singing  of 
the  old  men.  When  night  came  and  I  lay  down  with  my  grandmother, 
I  said:  "Grandmother,  why  do  the  old  men  sit  in  the  lodges,  rattle  the 
gourds,  and  sing?"  My  grandmother  then  told  me  the  following  story: 

My  grandchild,  many  years  ago,  before  we  lived  upon  this  earth, 
Tirawa  placed  wonderful  human  beings  upon  the  earth.  We  knew  of 
them  as  the  wonderful  beings  or  the  large  people.  These  people  lived 
where  the  Swimming_]\lound  js__in  JKansas.  The  bones  of  these  large 
people  were"T:ound  upon  the  sides  of  the  hill  of  the  Swimming  Mound. 
The  old  people  told  us  that  at  this  place  the  rain  poured  down  from  the 
heavens,  and  the  water  came  from  the  northwest  upon  the  earth  so  that 
it  became  deep  and  killed  these  wonderful  beings.  When  these  people 
were  killed  by  the  flood,  Tirawa  placed  an_old  buffalojbull_  in  the  north- 
westi-Where  the  water ^adj:gin^^fronTthg big watersn that  **  Qverflowgfl 
the  land.  The  buffalo  bull  was  put  at  this  place  to  hold  the  water  back, 
so  that^it  would  not  overflow  the  land  any  jnore^  This  biiffalo  wa,sJ:Q_ 
rejnain_at_this  place  for  many_years^ Eachlyear  this  buffalo  was  to  drop 
one  hair.  When_all  the  hairs  of  the  buffalo  had  come  off  Jhen  the  people 
would  not  live  upon  the  ea.rt.ji  ar?v  more. 

"TEere  were  four  things  which  Tirawa  said  he  would  do  to  kill  the 
people,  but  he  had  promised  that  Tie  would  never_send  the  flood  upon 

» Told  by  Young-Bull,  at  present  the  leading  medicine-man  among  the  Pita- 
hauirat  and  the  owner  of  the  Buffalo  ceremony.  The  tale  is  interesting  because 
it  explains  the  Pawnee  belief  regarding  the  manner  of  the  end  of  the  world,  at  which 
time  the  south  star,  or  god  of  death,  reigns  supreme. 


HOW  THE  WORLD  IS  TO  COMB  TO  AN  END.  135 

the  land  any  more.  Tirawa  said  there  were  other  ways  of  destroying 
tKeTpeople  on  the  earth.  There  were  several  ways  of  sending  storms  so 
that  they  would  kill  the  people.  There  was  one  thing  that  Tirawa  was 
not  sure  of  doing,  and  that  was  sending  fire  from  the  sky  to  burn  up  the 
people.  The  gods  in  the  heavens  who  were  placedby  Tirawa  would 
have  to  sit  in  council  and  select  a  ^ay^yEea_a31  thiiffi  "would  end, 
an5~deetde_in  what  way  aH  flliflg*  sh^d  cease  to  be.  We*ttt5nE51d 
by  the  old  people  that  the  M^nrbg-Star  mlH  over  all  the  minor  gods 
in  the  heavens;  that  the  Morning-Star  and  the  Evening-Star  gave  life 
to  people  on  this  earth..  The  Sun  and  the  Moon  also  Mped"~ttT]*hre 
life  Ib^tETpebpie.  The  old  people  told  us  that  the  Morning-Star  said 

^that    when  JJTP.    t.JTpP.    pamp   fnr   fViA  wr>rM..Ar>    Pffld^ffc  Mnnfl  WTMllH  fattff. 

red;  that  if  the  Moon  should  turn  black  it  would  be  a  sign  that  some 
great  chief  was  to  die;  that  when  the  Mr^  ^tinni/i. t»m  jgjjkV'g  people 
would  then  know  that  the  world  was  coming  to  an  end.     The  Sun  was 
also  to  shine  bright  and  all  at  once  that  brightness  would  die  out  and  the_J 
end  would  come. 

The  Morning-Star  also  said  that  the  signs  would  be  made ;  that  as  they 
gave  life  to  the  people  they  could  also  hold  life  back,  for  they  had  not  the 
say  as  to  when  the  world  should  end.  The  Morning-Star  said  further  that 
in  the  beginning  oTliirthings  they  placed  the  North  Star  in  the  north, 
so  that  it  should  not  move ;  it  was  to  watch  over  the  other  stars  and  over 
the  people.  The  North  Star  is  the  one  which  is  to  end  all  things.  The 
Morning-Star  told  the  people  that  the  North  Star  stood  in  the  north  and 
to  its  left  was  a  pathway  which  led  from  north  to  south;  that  when  a 
person  died  they  were  taken  by  the  North  Star  and  they  were  placed  upon 
the  pathway  which  led  to  the  Star  of  Death— the  land  of  the  spirits— the 
South  Star. 

The  Morning-Star  also  said  that  in  the  beginning  of  all  things  they 
gave  power  to  the  South  Star  for  it  to  move  up  close,  once  in  a  while,  to 
look  at  the  North  Star  to  see  if  it  were  still  standing  in  the  north.  If 
it  were  still  standing  there  it  was  to  move  back  to  its  place.  The 
Morning-Star  spoke  to  the  people  and  said  that  in  the  first  great  coun- 
cils when  it  was  decided  where  each  god  should  stand  in  the  heavens,  two 
of  the  people  became  sick.  One  was  an  old  person  and  one  a  young  per- 
son. They  were  placed  upon  stretchers,  were  carried  by  certain  stars, 
and  these  two  stretchers  are  tied  on  to  the  North  Star.  These  two  stretch- 
ers go  around  the  North  Star  all  the  time.1  The  North  Star  continued 
to  tell  the  people  that  whenever  the  South  Star  came  up  from  the  south 
it  would  come  up  higher;  that  when  the  time  approached  for  the  world  to 

1Ursa  Major  and  Ursa  Minor. 


136  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

end  the  South  Star  would  come  higher,  until  at  last  it  would  capture  the 
people  who  were  carrying  the  two  people  upon  the  stretchers;  as  soon 
as  the  South  Star  captured  these  two  people  upon  the  stretchers  they 
were  to  die.  The  North  Star  would  then  disappear  and  move  away  and 
the  South  Star  would  take  possession  of  the  earth  and  of  the  people.  The 
old  people  knew  also  that  when  the  world  was  to  come  to  an  end 
there  were  to  be  many  signs.  Among  the  stars  would  be  many  signs. 
Meteors  would  fly  through  the  sky.  The  Moon  would  change  its  color 
once  in  a  while.  The  Sun  would  also  show  different  colors,  but  the 
sign  which  was  to  be  nearest  to  the  people  was  that  thejdyers  and_  the 
creejkj5_wej£_to-«se.  The  animals,  such  as  otter,  beaver,  and  others,  were 
to  drift  down  the  streams.  While  they  were  drifting  down  these  animals 
were  to  cry  out  and  their  cry  was  to  be  like  that  of  people.  When  the 
people  would  go  swimming  in  these  streams  of  water,  clam  shells  were  to 
cry  out  to  them,  and  when  the  people  should  try  to  get  away  from  the 
clam  shells  some  of  them  would  get  on  their  clothing,  and  when  they 
would  see  the  clam  shells  they  would  be  in  the  shape  of  birds.  They 
would  be,  however,  clam  shells  and  would  cry  out  like  babies. 

My  grandchild,  some  of  the  signs  have  come  to  pass.  ThestarsJtiaye 
fallen  among  the  people,  but  the  Morning-Staf-4s>-still  good  to  us,  for  we 
continue-  -ttr4Hie^  The  Moon  lias  turned  black  several  times,  but  we 
know  that  the  Morning-Star  said  that  whenever  the  Moon  turned  black 
it  would  be  a  sign  that  some  great  chief  or  warrior  was  to  die.  My 
grandchild,  we  are  told  by  the  old  people  that  the  Morning-Star  and  the 
Evening-Star  placed  people  upon  this  earth.  The  North  Star  and  the 
South  Star  will  end  all  things.  All  commands  were  given  in  the  west 
and  these  commands  were  carried  out  in  the  east.  The  command  for  the 
ending  of  all  things  will  be  given  by  the  North  Star,  and  the  South  Star 
will  carry  out  the  commands.  Our  people  were  made  by  the  stars. 
When  the  time  comes  for  all  things  to  end  our  people  will  turn  into  small 
stars  and  will  fly  to  the  South  Star,  where  they  belong.  When  the  time 
comes  for  the  ending  of  the  world  the  stars  will  again  fall  to  the  earth. 
They  will  mix  among  the  people,  for  it  will  be  a  message  to  the  people  to 
get  ready  to  be  turned  into  stars. 

My  grandchild,  I  remember  one  time  when  a  man  sat  down  and 
invited  other  warriors  to  go  upon  the  war-path.  As  he  took  the  things 
from  the  sacred  bundle  which  he  was  to  wear,  he  first  filled  the  sacred  pipe 
and  offered  the  smoke  to  the  different  gods  in  the  heavens  and  to  Tirawa. 
Then  he  blew  a  few  whiffs  to  the  things  which  he  was  to  wear.  Then  he 
was  told  by  one  of  the  priests  that  he  must  put  on  the  things  and  go  out  of 
the  lodge,  so  that  the  stars  in  the  heavens  would  look  down  on  him  and 


r 


HOW  THE  WORLD  IS  TO  COME  TO  AN  END.  137 

that  Mother-  Corn  would  look  down  on  him  and  give  him  power.  The  man 
was  helped  up  by  two  other  warriors.  They  walked  out  of  the  lodge 
with  the  man  and  there  he  stood  with  the  pipe  in  his  left  hand.  The 
otter-skin  collar  was  upon  his  breast  and  the  ear  of  corn  was  upon  his 
left  shoulder  ;  the  hawk  skin  on  his  right  shoulder.  The  downy  feathers 
were  placed  upon  his  head.  As  he  stood  outside  of  the  lodge  he  looked 
around  through  the  heavens  and  said,  "  Brothers,  where  is  Mother-  Corn?" 
The  other  two  said:  "The  Moon  has  turned  black.  It  was  bright 
moonlight  a  little  while  ago  and  now  it  is  dark.  '  '  Then  the  three  men 
went  back  into  the  lodge.  When  they  entered,  the  two  other  warriors 
said  to  the  priest,  "The  Moon  has  turned  black.  "  Other  warriors  went 
out  to  see  the  Moon  and  sure  enough  the  Moon  had  turned  black.  The 
priest  then  said:  "Leader,  take  the  things  off  which  you  have  upon  you. 
Mother-Moon  has  disappeared  in  the  heavens  and  it  is  a  warning  to  you 
to  stay  at  home.  We  know  that  the  old  people  used  to  say  that  when- 
ever the  Moon  disappeared  and  it  was  dark  some  big  chief  or  some  great 
warrior  was  going  to  die.  "  But  the  warrior  said:  "No;  I  am  dressed  in  a 
warrior's  costume.  Mother-Corn's  path  into  the  country  of  the  enemy 
is  plain.  I  will  follow  that  path.  The  gods  will  look  down  and  see  me 
carrying  the  Mother-Corn  and  the  hawk.  They  will  help  me  to  overcome 
the  enemy.  '  '  Some  of  the  young  warriors  backed  out  and  remained  at 
home.  Several  of  the  great  warriors  and  chiefs  joined  the  war  party. 
They  went  out  and  in  a  few  days  they  met  the  enemy,  who  were  on  their 
way  to  attack  the  village.  They  were  surrounded  and  only  one  man 
got  away.  He  came  home  and  told  us  that  all  of  the  rest  of  the  warriors 
and  chiefs  were  killed.  This  was  one  of  the  signs  that  the  old  people 
spoke  of,  and  although  they  saw  the  sign  plainly  the  men  went  out  any- 
way and  nearly  all  were  killed.  Now,  my  grandchild,  go  to  sleep  and 
think  no  more  of  what  I  have  told  you,  for  you  are  young  yet  and  must 
not  think  about  these  things. 

36.  THE  TALKING  MEMBRUM  VIRILE.1 

When  the  Indians  were  upon  the  plains  hunting  buffalo,  one  young 
man  was  selected  as  a  scout  to  look  for  buffalo.  He  went  away  off 
from  the  others,  and  as  he  climbed  up  a  high  hill  he  saw  many  buffalo 
in  the  valley.  Then  the  man  began  to  talk  to  himself  about  seeing  the 
buffalo.  He  wanted  to  urinate.  When  he  was  through  he  held  up  his 
membrum  and  said,  "Do  you  see  them?"  The  man  would  hit  his  mem- 


by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  interest  in  the  tale  is  due  to  its  moral 
teaching,  which  has  added  emphasis  in  the  fact  that  the  man  who  thus  suffered 
misfortune  was  sent  out  from  the  priests'  lodge  to  look  for  buffalo  which  were  to 
be  offered  during  the  ceremony. 


138  TRUE  STORIES  OP  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

brum  on  the  side  and  would  again  say,  "Do  you  see  them? "  He  kept  on 
hitting  it  on  one  side  and  then  on  the  other.  After  a  while  his  membrum 
began  to  speak  and  it  said:  "I  see  them.  I  see  them.  I  see  them." 
The  man  said:  "Well,  that  is  enough.  Do  not  say  that  any  more." 
But  it  kept  on  saying:  "I  see  them.  I  see  them."  The  man  saw 
that  it  would  not  stop  speaking  and  he  became  scared.  He  went  along 
to  where  he  saw  the  people  making  their  village.  As  he  went  down  it 
kept  saying:  "I  see  them.  I  see  them."  He  went  into  his  lodge  and 
sat  down  and  it  kept  saying:  "I  see  them.  I  see  them."  The  people 
wondered  what  it  was.  After  a  while  the  man  told  them  that  when  he 
was  upon  the  hill  looking  for  the  buffalo  he  had  asked  his  membrum  to 
say  that  it  saw  the  buffalo;  that  it  had  spoken  and  that  it  was  speaking 
all  the  time.  They  tried  in  every  way  to  make  it  stop  speaking.  After 
a  while  it  said:  "My  mother-in-law  must  come  and  touch  me  and  then  I 
will  stop. "  His  mother-in-law  went  up  to  it, touched  it,  and  said :  "Please 
stop  speaking,"  and  it  stopped.  The  next  day  the  man  was  mad  and 
ashamed  and  he  left  the  village  and  went  off  and  was  never  heard  of  again. 

37.  THE  HERMAPHRODITE.1 

There  was  a  village  and  in  this  village  lived  a  fine-looking  young  man. 
The  young  man  never  cared  anything  for  women ;  but  one  night  a  young 
girl  came  to  his  bed  and  they  lay  together.  After  they  had  lain  together 
for  a  while,  the  young  man  sent  the  girl  away.  He  then  went  to  a  fine 
spring  that  was  gushing  forth  from  the  side  of  a  hill,  and  took  a  bath. 
Then  he  went  home  and  lay  down.  That  night  in  a  dream  he  saw  Spider- 
Woman  sitting  with  her  legs  spread  out,  and  a  spring  of  water  was  com- 
ing out  from  between  her  legs.  Spider- Woman  told  the  boy  in  his  dream 
that  as  he  had  come  and  washed  after  having  connection  with  the  woman, 
from  that  time  on  he  should  be  like  a  woman.  The  boy  woke  up; 
he  could  not  sleep  any  more.  The  next  day  the  dream  worried  him,  and 
for  several  days  he  felt  as  though  he  were  sick,  and  he  had  a  medicine- 
man come  and  wait  on  him.  The  medicine-man  could  not  tell  what  was 
the  matter.  One  time  they  sent  for  one  of  the  medicine-men  who,  on 
examining  him,  told  him  that  he  was  turning  into  a  woman.  The  med- 
icine-man told  the  relatives  of  the  young  man  that  he  was  turning  into 
a  woman,  and  that  Spider- Woman  was  the  cause  of  it;  that  the  only  way 

_' White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  The  common  belief  in  the  fact  that  springs  take 
their  origin  from  spider-women  is  emphasized  in  this  tale.  The  teaching  of  the 
story  is  the  warning  given  to  young  men  not  to  bathe  in  springs  after  sexual  inter- 
course— that  is,  while  unclean.  Not  only  must  this  be  done  for  the  good  of  the 
tribe,  but  also  because  the  spider- woman,  representing  one  of  the  supernatural 
earthly  beings,  must  be  treated  with  a  certain  amount  of  respect. 


THE   HERMAPHRODITE.  139 

he  could  cure  the  young  man  was  by  having  the  relatives  of  the  boy  go  to 
the  creeks,  springs,  or  any  streams  of  water,  and  get  the  green  moss  from 
the  bottom  of  the  streams  and  bring  it  to  him.  The  people  went  to  the 
streams  of  water,  but  there  was  not  any  moss  to  be  found.  The  medicine- 
man said:  " Spider- Worpan  knows  that  I  can  cure  the  young  man  if  I 
can  get  this  moss ;  she  has  caused  all  this  moss  to  disappear,  so  1  can  not 
cure  him."  When  the  boy  heard  that  the  medicine-men  could  not  do 
anything  for  him,  he  was  so  ashamed  that  he  committed  suicide,  rather 
than  be  half  woman  and  half  man. 

38.  THE  SCALPED  MEN.1 

A  long  time  ago  some  men  went  from  their  village  on  the  war-path. 
The  leader  of  the  war  party  carried  the  sacred  bundle  upon  his.  back. 
He  carried  the  sacred  bundle  upon  his  back  all  the  time  and  never 
offered  any  smoke  to  the  gods  in  the  heavens.  Some  of  the  warriors 
complained;  they  thought  that  they  should  offer  some  smoke  to  the  gods 
on  the  way.  When  they  came  near  to  a  village  the  leader  took  the  bun- 
dle and  placed  it  before  him.  He  called  the  warriors  and  told  them  to 
be  seated  close  to  him.  Instead  of  opening  the  bundle  and  offering  smoke 
to  the  gods,  he  told  the  warriors  that  he  had  come  to  attack  the  village 
and  to  kill  some  of  the  enemy.  When  he  said  this  all  the  other  men 
agreed  to  attack  the  village.  The  leader  got  up,  put  the  bundle  upon 
his  back,  and  led  the  warriors  to  the  village.  The  scouts  who  had  been 
out  returned  and  reported  that  the  village  was  a  small  one,  but  when 
the  warriors  attacked  the  village  they  found  that  instead  of  a  few  tipis 
there  were  many  others  in  the  valley.  They  were  soon  surrounded  and 
all  scalped  but  not  killed.  When  the  enemy  left  them  upon  the  battle- 
field they  all  jumped  up  and  gathered  together.  The  leader  was  there 
with  his  bundle  and  they  found  that  all  of  the  warriors  instead  of  being 
killed  were  only  scalped.  The  leader  then  spoke  to  them  and  said: 
"There  is  not  one  of  you  who  would  want  to  go  back  to  your  people. 
Let  us  now  go  into  a  strange  country  and  live  there  always. "  They  all 
agreed  to  live  away  among  the  hills  and  there  make  their  homes. 

For  many  years  the  people  looked  for  them  to  come  home,  but  they 
never  came.  One  day  a  man  went  hunting  and  as  he  climbed  a  high 
hill  he  heard  people  singing.  He  looked  down  in  the  valley  where  there 

>Told  by  Bright-Eyes,  a  Ski di woman,  who,  at  the  time  of  her  death  recently, 
was  the  keeper  of  the  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star  bundle.  The  story  is  interesting 
on  account  of  its  expression  of  the  belief,  widespread  among  the  Pawnee,  that  men 
scalped  in  warfare  were  not  killed,  but  wandered  off  through  the  country,  leading  an 
independent  existence,  and  as  such  were  reckoned  among  the  supernatural  beings . 
Their  home  was  supposed  to  be  in  the  south,  and  occasionally,  as  noted  in  this  and 
other  tales,  they  conferred  their  magic  power  on  some  favored  individual. 


140  TRUE  STORIES  OF  THE  HEAVENLY  BEINGS. 

was  a  grove  of  trees,  and  there  the  warriors  were  dancing  around  in  a 
circle.  They  were  singing  this  song:  "Scabs  from  the  sore  head  drop." 
Whenever  one  scab  fell  off  they  all  yelled,  "There  is  the  scab  upon  the 
ground."  They  sang  this  again  and  again.  The  man  went  down  and 
saw  that  the  warriors  who  were  dancing  were  the  same  ones  who  had 
gone  away  upon  the  war-path  and  had  not  returned;  that  now  they  were 
scalped  men.  The  man  shot  over  them,  so  that  they  ran  through  the  tim- 
ber. He  lost  sight  of  them,  but  he  knew  they  were  living.  He  followed 
them  up  and  at  last  he  came  to  a  big  cave  where  their  home  was.  The 
man  was  now  afraid  and  did  not  go  into  the  cave,  but  returned  to  his 
home  and  told  the  people  that  he  had  seen  the  men  who  had  gone  upon 
the  war-path.  He  said  that  they  were  now  scalped  men  and  would  never 
return. 


II.  TALES  OF  READY=TO-GIVE. 

The  tales  presented  in  this  group  are  known  by  the  Pawnee  as  Ready- 
to-Give  tales.  They  correspond  to  the  group  of  tales  in  "The  Tradi- 
tions of  the  Skidi"  known  as  hero  tales.  These  stories,  like  those  in  the 
preceding  group,  are,  as  a  rule,  told  during  intermissions  in  ceremonies, 
and  while  some  of  them  are  considered  as  true  and  relating  to  events 
which  actually  happened,  others  are  clearly  recognized  as  of  a  fictitious 
nature.  But  in  all  the  tales  the  hero,  usually  a  poor  boy,  overcomes 
the  enemy  or  dangers  and  thus  benefits  the  tribe,  or  he  brings  the  buffalo 
to  the  famishing  village,  or  performs  some  act  which  is  of  general  tribal 
benefit.  Thus  the  hope  is  expressed  that  by  the  relating  of  the  tales  the 
corresponding  amount  of  bravery  and  fortitude  will  be  shown,  but  espe- 
cially that  some  similar  element  of  good  fortune  may  result.  The  tales 
are  known  as  Ready-to-Give,  because  Kawaharu,  the  god  of  the  north, 
as  explained  in  another  place,  is  the  especial  patron  of  the  hunter,  and  to 
him  for  success  the  hunters  always  appeal.  Often  these  stories  are  told 
under  certain  circumstances  while  on  the  march  toward  the  hunting 
grounds,  at  which  time  a  grass-lodge  is  erected  for  the  priests,  and  the 
girls  of  the  village  are  encouraged  to  prepare  a  feast,  when  the  priests 
sing  and  open  one  of  the  bundles.  At  such  a  time  it  is  appropriate  that 
tales  such  as  these  should  be  told.  Thus  in  general  it  may  be  said  that 
these  tales  as  a  group  encourage  heroic  thoughts  on  the  part  of  young 
men,  because  good  fortune  is  desired  to  befall  the  tribe,  and  that  through 
the  relating  of  the  tales  respect  is  shown  to  the  gods  of  the  heavens  and 
of  the  earth. 

These  tales  fall  into  three  natural  divisions:  Those  numbered  from 
thirty-nine  to  fifty  are  boy  hero  tales  proper,  and  especially  are  explana- 
tory of  rites  or  ceremonies,  and  they  are  supposed  to  foretell  or  relate  to 
things  which  are  to  happen.  Those  in  the  second  group,  numbered  fifty- 
one  to  sixty-six,  have  to  do  with  the  calling  of  the  buffalo.  They  are 
especially  related  during  ceremonies  by  the  priests,  with  the  direct  idea 
of  bringing  the  buffalo  nearer  to  the  camp,  because  it  was  believed  that 
the  buffalo  liked  to  be  shown  respect  and  often  would  voluntarily  offer 
themselves  to  be  killed  in  order  that  they  might  be  offered  to  the  gods. 
The  tales  of  the  third  group,  numbered  sixty-seven  to  seventy-six,  relate  to 
the  minor  gods  or  wonderful  beings,  especially  the  witch-women  and  the 
spider- women.  These  had  power  over  certain  games.  The  upshot  of 
the  stories  of  this  division  as  a  whole  is,  that  the  witch -woman  is  trans- 
ported to  the  moon,  and  the  spider- women  take  up  their  abode  in  the 
sides  of  hills  and  become  springs. 

141 


148  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 


39.  HANDSOME-BOY  AND  AFTER-BIRTH   BOY.1 

A  long  time  ago  the  Indians  had  their  village  upon  the  Wide  River. 
There  was  one  poor  boy  among  the  people,  but  somehow  this  poor  boy 
was  liked  by  the  chief 's  daughter.  One  day  the  girl  was  out  with  her 
ponies.  On  her  way  to  the  village  she  saw  the  poor  boy  going  to  the 
creek.  She  rode  fast,  caught  up  with  him,  and  called  to  him.  The  boy 
did  not  want  to  talk  to  the  girl,  for  he  knew  that  if  he  were  caught  with 
her  he  would  be  either  whipped  or  killed  by  the  relatives  of  the  girl. 
But  the  girl  spoke  to  the  boy  and  said:  "I  want  you  to  come  to  my 
lodge  to-night  and  sit  in  the  entrance.  I  will  be  there  to  meet  you." 
The  boy  said:  "  No ;  I  will  not  go  there.  Your  father  might  kill  me  if 
I  were  caught  in  his  lodge."  They  separated. 

That  night  the  girl  left  her  bed  and  went  to  the  lodge  where  the  poor 
boy  stayed.  The  poor  boy  always  had  his  bed  upon  the  ground.  The 
girl  went  to  the  boy's  bed  and  they  lay  together.  The  girl  begged  the 
boy  to  sit  up,  for  she  wanted  to  talk  to  him,  but  the  boy  would  not  do  it. 
After  a  while  the  girl  said:  "I  know  you  think  that  you  can  not  marry 
me,  but  there  is  a  way  for  us  to  be  married.  I  can  take  my  meat  bag  and 
fill  it  with  dried  meat  and  fat.  We  can  then  go  away  to  some  far-away 
country  and  there  we  can  live  together."  The  boy  became  interested 
in  the  girl's  talk.  Then  the  boy  said:  "I  have  no  bow  and  arrows  with 
which  to  kill  game."  The  girl  said:  "I  will  get  my  brother's  quiver  and 
bow  and  arrows. "  The  girl  then  told  the  boy  that  she  would  see  him  out 
on  the  prairie  the  next  day;  that  she  would  go  for  her  father's  ponies 
again,  and  there  they  would  make  arrangements  to  run  away.  The  girl 
then  left  the  boy's  bed  and  went  to  her  home. 

The  next  day  the  girl  watched  over  the  village  for  the  poor  boy,  but 
she  could  not  see  him.  But  while  the  girl  was  looking  for  the  boy  he 
was  sitting  on  top  of  the  lodge  watching  for  the  girl  to  go  for  her  ponies. 
Some  time  in  the  afternoon  the  boy  saw  the  girl  go  out  from  the  village. 
The  boy  saw  the  girl  catch  one  pony  and  ride  it  with  the  others  to  the 
water.  After  she  had  taken  the  ponies  back  to  where  she  got  them,  in- 
stead of  leaving  them  there  she  drove  them  over  several  hills.  Then  the 
boy  went  down  from  his  lodge  and  went  over  the  hills.  He  met  her  and 
they  agreed  to  run  away  that  night.  The  girl  promised  to  be  at  a  certain 
place  in  the  village  and  the  boy  was  to  meet  her  ther^.  They  went  home. 

>Told  by  Woman-Newly-Made-Chief,  Skidi,  daughter  of  Scabby-Bull,  a  famous 
medicine-man.  This  is  an  interesting  variant  of  the  widespread  tale  generally 
known  as  After-Birth-Boy,  the  after-birth  in  this  case  not  being  thrown  into  the 
river  but  placed  at  the  foot  of  an  elm  tree.  Cf.  Nos.  40  and  41. 


HANDSOME-BOY  AND   AFTER-BIRTH    BOY.  143 

As  soon  as  it  was  dark  the  girl  went  to  the  place  where  she  had  prom- 
ised to  be  and  after  a  while  the  boy  met  her  there.  Then  they  traveled 
towards  the  south  until  they  came  to  a  big,  wide  stream  of  water  heavily 
timbered  on  both  sides.  There  they  built  a  little  grass-house.  The  boy 
would  go  out  every  day  and  kill  game,  so  that  they  had  plenty  of  meat. 
They  were  all  alone,  for  the  people  were  now  far  away. 

The  young  boy  had  wonderful  ways  about  him.  When  he  came  upon 
some  wild  animals  or  strange  beings  he  got  away  from  them  and  went 
back  to  where  his  wife  was.  For  some  time  they  lived  together  in  the 
grass-lodge.  At  last  the  man  told  his  wife  that  he  thought  it  was  time  for 
them  to  build  a  small  earth-lodge,  so  that  he  could  make  a  strong 
entrance  and  fix  it  so  as  to  cover  the  doorway  at  night  and  to  prevent 
wild  animals  coming  in.  They  began  to  build  a  small  earth-lodge.  At 
last  the  lodge  was  completed. 

The  man  went  hunting  one  day.  He  found  a  big  buffalo  bull  and 
killed  it.  He  took  off  the  hide  and  took  it  home  with  him.  The  hide 
was  stretched  upon  the  ground  and  when  it  was  dry  it  was  very  hard. 
This  was  then  used  to  close  up  the  entrance  at  night.  For  many  years 
these  people  lived  together  here,  and  after  a  while  the  woman  began  to 
show  signs  of  pregnancy.  The  man  stayed  close  to  the  lodge  and  hunted. 
He  did  not  go  very  far,  for  he  wanted  to  be  near  to  his  wife. 

One  day  the  woman  told  the  man  that  she  would  like  to  have  some 
milk  bags  to  roast  on  hot  coals.  She  told  him  to  try  to  kill  a  buffalo 
with  a  fresh  bag.  The  boy  went  out  and  he  could  not  find  any  buffalo 
near.  He  went  far  away  over  the  hills  and  at  last  he  found  a  herd  of  buf- 
falo. He  killed  one  of  the  cows,  took  the  bag  and  some  of  the  meat,  and 
carried  it  to  his  home.  When  he  entered  the  lodge  he  found  that  his  wife 
was  confined  and  was  about  to  give  birth.  He  threw  the  meat  down 
upon  the  ground  and  ran  into  the  lodge.  He  waited  on  his  wife  and 
after  a  while  she  gave  birth  to  the  child  and  it  was  a  boy.  Then  the  man 
took  the  after-birth,  carried  it  out  from  the  lodge,  went  into  the  timber, 
and  came  to  a  big  elm  tree.  He  dug  in  the  dirt  under  the  side  of  the 
tree  and  placed  the  after-birth  there,  and  then  went  home. 

Every  morning  after  the  man  and  the  woman  had  eaten  they  would 
place  some  meat  upon  sticks  which  were  placed  near  the  fireplace  so  that 
the  meat  would  be  roasting.  The  child  grew  up.  The  man  was  very  proud 
of  it.  The  child  began  to  crawl  around.  After  a  while  it  began  to  stand 
up  and  to  walk.  The  child  now  had  teeth  and  could  eat  meat.  After 
a  while  the  child  got  so  that  it  played  around  inside  of  the  lodge,  and 
after  a  while  it  went  out  of  the  lodge  and  played.  One  day  the  man 
placed  some  meat  around  the  fireplace  upon  the  sticks.  Then  he  went 


144  TALES  OP  READY-TO-GIVE. 

away  on  a  hunt.  He  told  his  wife  that  he  would  be  away  for  some  time. 
The  woman  and  the  child  were  left  in  the  lodge  by  themselves. 

About  noon  the  child  came  into  the  lodge  and  went  to  sleep  on  his 
mother's  lap.  She  took  the  child,  went  to  the  bed,  and  placed  it  there. 
She  covered  the  child  with  a  robe.  The  child  could  not  be  seen  if  any- 
one entered  the  lodge.  While  the  woman  was  sitting  by  the  fireplace  she 
heard  strange  voices  outside  of  the  lodge.  She  did  not  say  anything, 
neither  did  she  run,  for  she  knew  if  they  were  enemies  they  would  find 
her  anyway  and  would  kill  her.  If  they  were  friends  they  would  not 
kill  her.  When  she  heard  the  voices  near  by,  talking  in  her  language, 
she  turned  around  and  looked  at  the  entrance. 

After  a  while  she  saw  a  person  come  inside,  then  another  and  another, 
and  after  a  while  they  all  stood  at  the  entrance.  These  strange  people 
were  very  queer-looking.  They  had  sharp  elbows.  On  all  their  joints 
were  long  spines  sticking  out.  At  their  heels  also  there  were  long  spines. 
They  had  big  eyes,  and  when  they  turned  around  the  woman  noticed 
that  they  also  had  another  eye  in  the  back  part  of  their  heads,  so  that 
these  people  really  had  three  eyes — two  eyes  in  front  and  one  behind. 
Then  they  said:  "The  husband  is  gone.  We  can  go  in  here  and  find 
something  to  eat.  If  she  keeps  quiet  and  does  not  call  us  bad  names  we 
will  spare  her.  If  she  makes  any  fuss,  or  calls  us  names,  we  will  kill  her 
and  take  her  to  our  home  and  cook  her. "  They  came  in,  found  the  meat 
around  the  fireplace,  and  they  began  to  eat  of  it.  While  they  were 
eating  they  would  say,  "Watch  the  woman,  and  if  she  calls  us  bad  names 
we  will  kill  her.  "  They  ate  all  the  meat  and  then  went  away.  The  woman 
was  watching  them  as  they  went  away  and  she  thought  that  all  had  gone 
out,  but  there  was  one  that  had  not  yet  left,  when  she  lifted  up  her  hand 
and  pointed  at  them  and  said:  "The  dirty,  ugly-looking  things,  they  have 
eaten  up  all  my  meat. "  As  soon  as  she  spoke  the  one  behind  saw  her  with 
his  rear  eye.  He  called  the  others  and  said:  "The  woman  is  calling  us  bad 
names  and  shaking  her  hand  at  us. "  Then  they  all  rushed  in,  pierced 
her  with  their  sharp  elbows  and  heels,  and  carried  her  away  to  their 
place.  These  strange  beings  did  not  see  the  little  fellow  upon  the  bed 
or  they  would  have  killed  him,  too. 

After  the  boy's  mother  was  killed  and  carried  away,  the  boy  woke 
up,  got  down  from  the  bed,  and  went  to  the  fireplace.  He  began  to  eat 
of  the  bones  which  the  people  had  left.  About  this  time  the  father  came 
in  for  some  meat.  He  saw  that  the  mother  was  missing;  that  there  was 
blood  upon  the  ground  where  she  had  been  sitting,  and  he  knew  then 
that  some  bad  people  had  come  and  killed  her. 


HANDSOME-BOY  AND  AFTBR-BIRTH  BOY.  145 

He  followed  the  trail  of  the  people  and  for  many  miles  he  followed 
their  tracks  until  at  last  the  tracks  led  into  a  thick  timber.  In  the  tim- 
ber was  a  grass-lodge,  and  near  it  the  leaves  were  all  red.  When  the 
man  was  near  to  the  grass-lodge  he  heard  some  one  say:  "Look  into 
the  pot,  and  see  if  the  meat  is  done.  It  is  nearly  time  for  us  to  eat." 
The  man  then  knew  that  his  wife  had  been  killed  by  these  people  and 
they  were  going  to  eat  her.  He  had  to  slip  away  from  the  place  or  the 
strange  beings  would  get  him  also  and  kill  him.  He  went  to  his  lodge, 
cooked  some  meat  for  the  child,  and  then  he  placed  the  child  upon  his 
back  and  carried  it  around  through  the  woods.  For  several  days  he 
stayed  with  the  child.  When  their  meat  was  about  all  used  up  the  man 
thought  to  himself:  "If  I  do  not  get  some  meat  we  shall  starve.  I  must 
go  and  get  some  more  meat. "  The  man  cooked  some  meat  for  the  boy 
and  told  him  that  he  was  going  on  a  hunt. 

That  afternoon  the  man  brought  in  some  meat.  After  he  had  placed 
the  meat  in  the  lodge  he  went  into  the  timber.  There  he  found  a  hollow 
log.  This  he  took  into  the  lodge  and  split  it  open.  He  began  to  clean 
out  part  of  the  log.  He  placed  at  each  end  of  it  a  lot  of  tallow.  He 
brought  water  in  skins  and  placed  the  water  in  the  hollow  log.  Then 
the  man  told  the  child  that  whenever  he  became  thirsty  he  must  drink 
out  of  the  trough.  The  next  morning  the  man  filled  the  trough  with 
water  again.  He  placed  some  meat  around  the  fire  and  told  the  child 
that  when  he  got  hungry  to  go  to  the  meat  and  eat  it  and  also  to  drink 
of  the  water. 

One  day  when  the  father  had  fixed  the  meat  and  placed  the  water 
in  the  trough  for  the  boy  he  went  away  upon  the  hunt.  The  child  was 
alone  in  the  lodge.  Suddenly  the  child  heard  somebody  singing  outside 
of  the  lodge.  After  the  song  someone  would  begin  to  cry.  The  boy  in 
the  lodge  was  afraid.  After  a  while  a  child  appeared  in  the  entrance. 
The  song  which  the  child  sang  was  something  like  this: 

"Handsome-Boy,  your  father  loves  you.  He  kills  game  for  you  and 
takes  it  to  your  lodge  and  you  have  plenty.  Your  father  threw  me  away. 
My  grandmother  came  and  took  me  into  their  lodge.  You  eat  meat  all 
the  time.  I  do  not  eat  meat,  but  I  eat  things  such  as  the  ground  beans, 
artichokes,  grapes,  and  plums. " 

When  the  boy  came  inside  he  said:  "Handsome-Boy,  let  us  play." 
Then  Handsome-Boy  tried  to  get  the  other  boy  to  enter  the  lodge  with 
him,  but  the  boy  would  not  go  in.  The  strange  boy  also  remained  some 
distance  from  Handsome-Boy.  They  played  together  outside  of  the 
lodge  and  all  at  once  the  boy  jumped  up  and  said:  "Your  father  is  com- 
ing," and  he  ran  away  and  disappeared  in  the  timber.  As  the  boy 


146  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

jumped  to  run  into  the  timber  he  said  to  Handsome-Boy,  "Forget." 
Handsome-Boy  would  forget  all  about  the  strange  boy  and  how  he  had 
played  with  him.  He  never  spoke  to  his  father  about  the  strange  boy. 
For  several  days  the  boy  came  and  played  with  Handsome-Boy.  Every 
day  he  would  come  closer  to  Handsome-Boy.  One  day  they  were  play- 
ing in  the  lodge  when  the  boy  jumped  up  and  said:  "Your  father  is  com- 
ing and  I  must  go. "  The  boy  ran  out  of  the  lodge  and  the  man  saw  him. 
This  time  the  boy  forgot  to  say  to  Handsome-Boy,  "Forget. "  The  man 
went  into  the  lodge  and  when  he  saw  that  the  meat  and  water  were  all 
gone,  the  father  asked  the  boy  how  it  was  that  every  day  the  meat  and 
water  were  all  used  up.  Handsome-Boy  told  his  father  that  a  strange 
boy  came  to  the  lodge  every  day  and  before  he  appeared  he  sang  and 
then  cried.  He  said  that  in  the  singing  the  strange  boy  would  say: 

Your  father  loves  you,  but  he  threw  me  away. 

He  brings  you  much  meat  to  eat. 

Grandmother  gives  me  artichokes,  grapes,  and  plums. 

Then  the  man  said:  "What  does  the  boy  say?"  Handsome-Boy 
said:  "When  we  play  he  says  to  me,  'Your  father  loves  you.  He  took 
me  and  placed  me  at  the  roots  of  a  big  elm  tree.'  "  The  man  knew  that 
that  was  where  he  placed  the  after-birth ;  that  there  must  have  been  a 
child  in  the  after-birth.  He  said:  "My  son,  we  must  try  to  catch  this 
boy,  so  that  the  boy  can  play  with  you  all  the  time.  I  must  go  far  away 
to  hunt. " 

One  day  the  man  hid  in  the  lodge,  thinking  that  the  boy  would  enter 
and  he  would  be  able  to  catch  him.  When  the  boy  came,  as  soon  as  he 
reached  the  entrance  he  sniffed  and  said:  "I  smell  your  father.  Your 
father  is  in  the  lodge. "  He  then  ran  away  into  the  timber.  The  man  tried 
many  ways  to  catch  the  boy,  but  he  could  not  get  him.  The  man  took  a 
strip  of  buckskin  from  the  nose  of  the  deer  down  to  the  tail.  This  he 
cut  into  small  strings.  The  man  gave  the  boy  these  buckskin  strings 
and  told  him  to  tie  them  upon  the  boy's  hair  on  top  of  his  head.  Each 
day  the  boy  came  in  to  play  with  Handsome-Boy.  After  they  had 
played  with  the  bow  and  arrows,  eaten  and  drunk,  then  the  strange  boy 
would  say,  "Let  me  look  into  your  hair  and  pick  out  the  lice."  Then 
Handsome-Boy  would  lie  down  and  let  the  strange  boy  hunt  the  lice  in 
his  head.  When  the  strange  boy  became  tired,  he  told  Handsome-Boy 
to  look  at  his  head. 

One  day  while  Handsome-Boy  was  looking  for  lice  in  the  boy's  head, 
he  took  the  buckskin  strings  which  he  had  and  tied  a  bunch  of  hair  on 
top  of  his  head.  He  tied  it  very  tight.  While  he  was  doing  this  the  boy 
tried  to  jump  up  several  times  to  run  away,  but  as  soon  as  the  hair  was 


HANDSOME-BOY  AND  AFTER-BIRTH  BOY.  147 

tied  fast  Handsome-Boy  said,  "Come,  father,  come."  Then  the  boy 
got  hold  of  the  mysterious  boy  and  just  as  his  father  came  the  boy  slipped 
away  from  him.  He  caught  the  buckskin  strings,  pulled  them  tight,  and 
pulled  out  some  hair  from  his  head.  The  boy  fell  into  the  arms  of  the 
father.  Handsome-Boy  took  the  buckskin  strings  and  the  hair  and 
placed  them  in  the  sacred  bundle.  After  a  while  the  strange  boy  was 
conquered.  He  said:  "Father,  I  will  stay  with  you.  I  am  your  son  and 
Handsome-Boy  is  my  brother. "  The  boy  stayed. 

For  many  years  these  three  lived  at  this  earth-lodge.  Every  day 
the  man  went  hunting.  The  two  boys  were  now  big  and  made  their  bows 
and  arrows  themselves.  They  made  a  sinew  ring  and  tied  it  at  each  end. 
This  sinew  they  placed  in  the  dirt  and  shot  at  it.  They  were  now  big. 
They  wandered  over  the  timber.  The  father  knew  it.  He  was  afraid 
they  might  come  upon  some  wild  beasts  or  strange  people  who  inhabited 
the  country. 

One  day  when  the  father  was  ready  to  go  out  hunting,  he  said:  "Now, 
my  sons,  you  must  not  go  to  the  river  at  a  certain  place,  for  at  that  place 
is  a  bull-boat.  The  bull-boat  is  stationed  there.  When  a  person  enters 
it  the  boat  starts  across  the  river.  When  it  gets  into  the  middle  of  the 
stream  where  it  is  deep  then  the  waves  roll  up  and  the  bull-boat  is  upset 
and  the  person  is  thrown  out  into  the  water.  As  soon  as  the  person 
gets  into  the  water  the  bull-boat  moves  back  to  where  it  was  upon  the 
bank."  The  man  went  off  on  a  hunt. 

After  a  while  the  strange  boy  said:  "Handsome-Boy,  you  know  what 
your  father  said  about  going  to  that  boat.  Let  us  now  go.  He  said  we 
could  go."  Handsome-Boy  said:  "No;  we  must  not  go,  for  there  is 
danger  there."  The  two  boys  began  to  quarrel.  One  wanted  to  go 
and  the  other  did  not.  At  last  the  strange  boy  said:  "Handsome-Boy, 
you  are  a  coward.  Give  me  my  hair  so  that  I  may  return  to  my  grand- 
mother."  Handsome-Boy  said:  "No,  brother  I  will  not  give  you  the 
hair  and  I  will  not  let  you  return  to  your  grandmother.  I  would  rather 
die  than  to  have  you  leave  me.  I  will  go  with  you."  The  strange  boy 
was  happy.  They  ran  to  the  river  and  when  they  reached  the  bank 
they  saw  the  boat.  As  soon  as  he  saw  the  boat  he  ran  down  and  jumped 
into  it.  Then  he  yelled  to  his  brother  and  said:  "Come,  Handsome-Boy, 
quick;  this  is  fine."  Handsome-Boy  ran  down  and  jumped  into  the 
boat.  The  boat  then  started  across.  When  it  reached  the  middle  of 
the  river  it  began  to  roll  up  and  down,  for  the  waves  became  very  high. 
Then  Handsome-Boy  became  scared  and  cried.  The  strange  boy  said: 
"Watch  me,  watch  me.  You  must  do  whatever  I  do. "  When  the  boat 
was  about  to  upset  the  strange  boy  stretched  out  his  arms  and  began  to 


148  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

move  as  if  he  were  flying.  After  a  while  the  strange  boy  flew  up,  for 
he  had  turned  into  a  goose.  The  other  boy  began  to  cry.  The  goose 
which  was  flying  overhead  said:  "Do  as  I  did,  you  coward.  Move 
your  arms.  Fly  up  as  I  did."  After  a  while  Handsome-Boy  also  flew 
up  and  the  bull-boat  went  down  into  the  river,  came  up  again,  and  went 
back  to  the  bank.  The  boys  flew  over  the  dry  land  and  turned  into  human 
beings  again.  Then  the  strange  boy  said:  "Handsome-Boy  you  are  a 
coward.  When  I  tell  you  to  do  anything  you  must  do  it.  If  you  do  not 
do  what  I  tell  you,  you  will  get  lost  and  you  will  be  killed. " 

They  went  home  and  told  their  father  that  they  had  ridden  in  the 
boat.  The  father  said:  "Children,  I  am  glad  that  you  did  not  get  killed. 
I  am  glad  that  you  came  back.  You  must  be  careful  in  your  wanderings 
over  this  country.  There  is  one  place  where  I  do  not  want  you  to  go. 
It  is  near  the  river.  There  is  a  steep  bank  there  and  at  the  bottom  of 
the  bank  is  the  place  where  people  do  not  dare  to  go." 

The  next  morning  after  the  man  had  gone  away  to  hunt  the  strange 
boy  said:  "Handsome-Boy,  you  remember  what  our  father  said  about 
going  to  that  place.  Letusnowgo. "  But  Handsome-Boy  said:  "Father 
said  not  to  go  there."  Then  the  strange  boy  said:  "We  must  go." 
Handsome-Boy  did  not  care  to  go.  The  strange  boy  said:  "Give  me 
back  my  hair.  I  must  go  back  to  my  grandmother's."  Then  Hand- 
some-Boy had  to  give  up  and  go  with  the  strange  boy.  They  came  to 
the  steep  bank  and  they  looked  down  and  there  in  the  bottom  were 
many  snakes. 

Handsome-Boy  began  to  cry,  but  the  strange  boy  said:  "Oh,  stop 
crying.  Those  things  are  nothing  and  we  shall  kill  some  of  them  and 
take  them  home  to  our  father. "  The  strange  boy  then  told  Handsome- 
Boy  to  sit  down.  He  put  his  hands  upon  his  legs  and  upon  his  feet. 
Then  he  said:  "Now  stand  up."  When  the  boy  stood  up  he  felt  that 
his  legs  and  feet  were  very  heavy,  for  the  strange  boy  had  covered  his 
legs  with  flint  stone.  Then  the  strange  boy  began  to  stamp  upon  the 
ground.  When  he  started  to  do  this  the  soles  of  his  feet  were  like  the 
skin  of  a  horned  toad.  His  legs  were  covered  with  the  shells  of  a  turtle. 
They  walked  down  to  where  the  snakes  were  and  they  stepped  upon  the 
heads  of  the  snakes.  When  the  snakes  tried  to  bite  them  their  teeth 
could  not  go  through  them.  They  killed  four  of  the  largest  snakes  with 
rattles  on.  These  they  took  up  on  the  hill  and  skinned  them,  leaving 
the  rattles  upon  the  skins.  Then  the  strange  boy  said:  "Handsome- 
Boy,  we  will  place  two  of  these  snakes  at  the  bottom  of  the  doorway,  one 
in  the  middle  and  one  on  the  top.  When  we  play  we  will  run  against  the 
doorway.  Then  these  rattles  will  rattle  and  it  will  sound  nice.  Our 


HANDSOME-BOY  AND  AFTER-BIRTH  BOY.  149 

father,  when  he  returns,  will  run  against  the  door  and  the  door  will 
shake  so  that  the  rattles  will  make  a  noise  and  he  will  like  it. "  They 
arrived  at  their  lodge  and  placed  the  snakes  upon  the  doorway.  When 
the  father  came  with  meat  he  ran  into  the  doorway  and  he  heard  the 
rattles  sounding.  He  was  scared.  After  he  placed  the  meat  upon  the 
ground  in  the  lodge  he  went  and  examined  the  entrance  way  and  saw 
the  snakes  there.  He  was  afraid.  He  said:  "Boys,  take  these  snakes 
away  from  the  entrance.  If  you  leave  them  on  the  doorway  they  will 
smell  and  rot."  Handsome-Boy  was  willing  to  do  this,  but  the  other 
boy  did  not  like  to  throw  away  what  he  had  brought  home  for  his  father. 
After  the  snakes  were  thrown  away  they  all  went  into  the  lodge  and  had 
something  to  eat.  The  man  said  to  them:  "My  sons,  I  must  say  it, 
and  I  mean  what  I  say,  I  do  not  want  you  to  go  to  that  high  hill.  The 
people  who  go  there  get  killed  by  lightning.  The  animals  who  go  there 
are  struck  by  lightning.  Now  I  ask  you  boys  not  to  go  there,  because 
it  is  not  an  animal  who  kills  the  people,  but  it  is  the  lightning  in  the 
heavens  that  does  the  killing." 

The  next  day  after  the  father  had  gone  away  the  children  began  to 
play  with  their  bows  and  arrows.  All  at  once  the  strange  boy  threw  down 
his  bow  and  arrows  and  said:  "Handsome-Boy,  let  us  go  to  where  father 
told  us  to  go. "  Handsome-Boy  said:  "No;  he  did  not  say  for  us  to  go;  he 
told  us  not  to  go  there. "  The  strange  boy  kept  on.  After  a  while  the 
boy  consented  and  they  went.  The  hill  was  not  a  large  one,  but  it  was 
very  high.  When  they  reached  the  foot  of  the  hill  the  clouds  began  to 
fly  over  the  hill  and  they  could  see  the  clouds  fall  upon  the  hill.  All  at 
once  the  boys  heard  thunder,  and  then  they  saw  lightning.  Handsome- 
Boy  was  crying  and  telling  the  strange  boy  that  they  were  lost.  The 
strange  boy  said:  "Stop  crying.  We  must  go  there  to  the  side  of  the  hill 
where  you  see  that  high  tree.  That  tree  is  hollow.  There  on  the  top 
of  the  tree  is  where  the  four  wonderful  beings  live  who  send  the  lightning 
and  who  make  the  thunder."  When  they  got  to  the  tree  the  thunder 
began  to  sound  and  then  lightning  seemed  to  strike  the  tree,  and  the 
smoke  caused  by  the  lightning  would  come  out  at  the  bottom  of  the 
tree.  The  strange  boy  climbed  the  tree  and  got  on  the  top.  Then  he 
reached  down  and  he  pulled  out  a  human  being.  The  human  being 
was  painted  red.  It  was  covered  with  a  buffalo  robe  and  a  black  lariat 
rope  was  tied  around  its  waist.  The  boy  held  the  human  being  by  the 
arm  and  said:  "So  you  are  the  wonderful  being,  are  you,  and  what  is 
your  name?"  The  wonderful  being  said:  "My  name  is  Thunder."  Then 
he  said:  "Now,  Handsome-Boy,  be  ready  to  catch  him."  He  then  threw 
him  down.  Then  the  strange  boy  reached  down  again  into  the  hollow  log 


150  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

and  he  pulled  out  another.  He  held  him  up  and  said:  "And  what  is  your 
name  ?"  This  man  was  also  a  human  being.  He  wore  the  robe  and  the  red 
paint,  but  upon  his  forehead  was  painted  the  picture  of  lightning.  He  said : 
"My  name  is  Lightning."  Then  he  pulled  out  another.  He  also  was 
painted.  "What  is  your  name?"  the  boy  said.  He  said:  "My  name 
is  Loud-Thunder. "  Then  he  dropped  him  in  front  of  his  brother.  Then 
he  reached  in  again.  This  time  he  pulled  out  another  human  being. 
He  held  him  up  and  said:  "What  is  your  name?"  This  being  said: 
"My  name  is  Wonderful-Lightning."  "So  your  name  is  Wonderful- 
Lightning?  I  have  taken  your  lightning  from  you.  You  shall  go  to  my 
home  with  me  and  you  shall  work  there  for  my  father.  "  He  dropped  him 
down  in  front  of  Handsome-Boy  and  then  the  strange  boy  came  down. 
When  he  got  down  he  spoke  roughly  to  the  four  beings.  He  took  two 
of  them  by  the  arm  and  said:  "Here,  Handsome-Boy,  you  take  these 
two  and  I  will  take  the  other  two."  Then  they  went  to  their  earth  - 
lodge  and  placed  the  four  beings  near  the  lodge.  After  a  while  the 
father  came.  The  boys  ran  to  him  and  said:  "Father,  we  have  brought 
Lightnings  and  Thunders,  four  in  number,  and  they  shall  work  for  you. " 
The  father  said:  "Children,  you  have  done  wrong.  They  are  from  the 
heavens.  They  are  not  to  be  molested.  You  must  take  them  back  to 
the  place  where  you  got  them."  Then  the  strange  boy  said:  "No; 
Tirawa  did  not  intend  that  these  things  should  be  upon  a  tree  always,  where 
they  could  kill  whoever  came  near  them."  Then  the  boy  took  one  of 
the  beings  and  said:  "Now  you  must  fly  in  the  west.  You  must  be  in 
the  west  always  and  you  shall  be  the  one  who  shall  thunder  first  early  in 
the  spring. "  Then  he  took  one  of  the  Lightnings  and  he  said:  "Go  with 
the  Thunder,  and  when  the  thunders  first  sound  you  must  also  lighten 
around  the  circle  of  the  heavens.  "  Then  he  took  the  other  Thunder  and 
said:  "You  must  stand  in  the  south,  and  you,  Wonderful-Lightning, 
must  go  with  this  one.  There  will  be  times  when  you  travel  over  the 
earth.  The  thunders  will  sound  loud  and  the  lightnings  will  be  thick. 
Sometimes  you  will  kill  people."  These  beings  were  glad  and  they 
promised  to  do  as  the  boy  had  said.  They  disappeared  and  were  never 
to  remain  upon  the  earth  any  more.  Now  these  boys  had  scattered  the 
thunders  and  lightnings.  The  father  of  the  two  boys  was  now  becoming 
afraid  of  them. 

One  day  the  father  sat  down  with  the  two  boys  and  he  began  to  talk 
to  them.  He  told  them  of  the  many  wonderful  places  where  he  had 
told  them  not  to  go,  but  they  had  gone  anyway  and  had  destroyed  those 
places.  At  last  they  had  destroyed  the  gods  and  he  thought  that  was 
too  much.  The  man  said:  "There  is  but  one  more  place  where  I  do 


HANDSOME-BOY  AND  AFTER-BIRTH  BOY.  1 5 1 

not  want  you  to  go.  When  I  tell  you  not  to  go  to  a  place,  you  go  any- 
way. I  will  ask  you  to  go  to  that  place  to-morrow. "  The  next  day  the 
man  cooked  much  meat  and  he  told  the  boys  that  he  would  be  away  for 
some  time  and  for  them  not  to  worry  about  him.  Before  he  started  he 
said,  "Now,  boys,  go  to  that  place,  for  there  the  people  dwell  who  killed 
your  mother."  The  boys  heard  what  their  father  said.  Then  they 
went  away  to  play.  The  father  went  off,  but  he  intended  to  run  away. 
He  watched  the  boys.  The  boys  never  went  to  the  place.  Then  he 
said  to  himself:  "I  told  the  boys  to  go,  but  they  are  not  going.  I  do  not 
understand  them. "  Then  the  man  tried  to  run  away,  but  he  found  that 
the  strange  boy  knew  that  he  was  trying  to  run  away,  so  he  gave  it  up. 
In  the  evening  he  returned  to  the  lodge  and  here  he  found  the  boys.  The 
next  morning  the  man  said:  "Boys,  I  am  going  hunting.  You  must  not 
go  to  that  place. "  Then  he  went  away  on  a  hunt. 

The  boys  took  their  bow  and  arrows  and  went  away  and  played  upon 
the  ground.  After  a  while  the  strange  boy  threw  the  bow  and  arrows 
upon  the  ground  and  said:  "Handsome-Boy,  you  remember  what  our 
father  said  about  going  to  that  place.  Let  us  now  go  and  see  what  kind 
of  people  they  are.  Our  father  said  they  were  the  people  who  had  killed 
our  mother."  Handsome-Boy  would  not  go.  He  said  that  his  father 
had  said  that  they  should  not  go  there,  for  the  people  who  were  there  were 
ugly  and  dangerous.  But  the  strange  boy  said:  "Let  us  go."  Finally 
the  boy  gave  in  and  they  went.  They  started  out  on  the  run  to  the 
place.  They  kept  running  toward  the  timber.  Once  in  a  while  Hand- 
some-Boy tried  to  stop,  but  the  strange  boy  was  so  glad  to  go  to  the 
place  that  he  kept  coaxing  the  boy  on. 

After  a  while  they  got  into  the  timber.  They  walked  through  the 
timber  for  some  time.  Soon  they  came  to  a  place  where  the  trees  seemed 
dead.  The  leaves  were  yellow.  They  walked  on  until  they  came  to  an 
opening  and  there  they  saw  a  grass-lodge.  They  stood  still,  and  one 
of  the  sharp-elbow  people  said:  "Our  grandchildren  are  here.  They 
have  come  to  visit  us.  Place  the  kettle  upon  the  fire  and  put  some  water 
in  it,  so  that  we  may  boil  some  meat  for  them  to  eat. "  Handsome-Boy 
began  to  cry.  The  strange  boy  whispered  to  him  and  said:  "Stop 
crying.  If  you  cry  these  people  will  kill  us.  If  you  keep  still  they  will 
not  kill  us."  Then  the  people  in  the  grass-house  began  to  get  ready  to 
bring  the  boys  in.  The  strange  boy  then  told  Handsome-Boy  that  when 
they  were  taken  into  the  grass-lodge  they  were  to  be  given  seats  on  the 
north  side  of  the  fireplace.  The  sharp-elbow  people  were  all  to  be  sit- 
ting around  watching  them.  The  strange  boy  said:  "When  they  get 
ready  to  kill  us,  then  I  will  touch  you.  As  soon  as  I  touch  you,  you 


152  TALES  OP  READY-TO-GIVE. 

must  reach  for  the  kettle,  place  your  right  foot  upon  the  rim,  and  do  not 
be  afraid  of  getting  burnt.  Then  jump  up.  I  will  do  the  same.  Then 
we  will  disappear  and  the  sharp-elbow  people  will  do  the  rest  of  the  work 
necessary  for  killing  themselves." 

One  of  the  sharp-elbow  men  came  out  and  invited  the  boys  in.  The 
kettle  was  swung  over  the  fire.  The  boys  were  given  seats  on  the  north 
side  of  the  lodge.  The  sharp-elbow  people  began  to  question  the  boys 
as  to  where  they  lived  and  where  their  people  were.  The  strange  boy 
answered  them.  One  of  the  sharp-elbow  people  said:  "The  water  is 
boiling  over  the  kettle.  Be  ready  now  to  get  the  meat  to  put  into  the 
kettle."  All  the  while  the  sharp-elbow  people  were  touching  one  another 
to  indicate  that  they  were  to  jump  upon  the  boys,  kill  them,  cut  them  up, 
and  put  them  into  the  kettle.  When  they  were  ready  to  jump  on  to  the 
boys  the  strange  boy  knew  it.  He  touched  his  brother  and  they  both 
arose  and  said:  "Grandfathers,  we  will  now  go  home."  The  two  boys 
stood  up  and  placed  their  feet  upon  the  rim  of  the  kettle,  and  the  sharp- 
elbow  people  ran  to  them,  but  the  boys  disappeared.  The  sharp-elbow 
people  began  to  stick  the  sharp  points  of  themselves  into  one  another. 
The  kettle  overflowed  with  the  hot  water,  so  that  when  the  sharp-elbow 
people  fell  down  they  were  scalded.  While  they  were  striking  the  sharp 
points  into  one  another,  the  two  boys  were  standing  outside  laughing  at 
them,  for  the  sharp-elbow  people  became  angry  with  one  another  and 
they  fought  and  scattered  the  hot  coals  so  that  the  grass-house  was 
burned  up.  The  boys  could  see  them  from  where  they  stood.  The 
strange  boy  then  went  to  where  the  sharp-elbow  people  lay  and  he  took 
the  leader  by  the  arm  and  told  him  to  stand  up.  The  sharp-elbow  leader 
stood  up.  He  touched  him  again  and  said:  "You  are  now  dead  as  a 
human  being.  You  shall  again  take  life  and  become  a  locust  tree." 
Then  he  took  the  other  people  and  placed  them  in  different  places  in  the 
timber  as  locust  trees.  Then  he  told  them  that  people,  when  they  saw 
the  trees,  would  remember- that  they  were  once  people  with  sharp  elbows 
and  had  sharp  spines  all  over  their  bodies.  The  boy  also  cut  off  four 
thorns  before  he  turned  them  into  trees,  and  he  took  them  home  and 
told  his  father  that  he  had  brought  four  awls  for  him.  The  man  thanked 
the  boys  and  gave  them  something  to  eat. 

In  the  night  the  man  could  not  go  to  sleep,  for  he  was  thinking  of  the 
wonderful  powers  which  the  strange  boy  possessed.  He  would  say: 
"I  am  wonderful  myself,  but  this  boy  beats  anything  I  have  ever  seen. 
He  has  killed  all  bad  animals  throughout  the  country.  Even  the  light- 
nings and  thunders  he  has  killed.  These  strange  sharp-elbow  people  he 
has  killed  and  they  were  the  last  to  be  killed.  There  are  no  other  bad 


HANDSOME-BOY  AND  AFTER-BIRTH  BOY.  153 

people.  The  next  thing  the  boys  will  do  will  be  to  try  to  kill  me.  I  had 
better  run  away. "  He  had  tried  to  run  away  when  the  boys  started  to 
go  to  the  grass-lodge  of  the  sharp-elbow  people,  but  somehow  the  man 
found  out  that  the  power  of  the  boy  was  watching  him.  He  knew  also 
that  the  boy  knew  that  he  was  about  to  run  away.  Then  the  man  came 
back  to  the  lodge. 

One  day  the  father  went  hunting.  He  stayed  for  several  days. 
When  he  returned  he  had  a  deer  upon  his  back.  He  went  back  into  the 
timber  and  brought  another  deer.  He  brought  several  deer  and  buffalo. 
Then  the  man  began  to  jerk  the  meat  and  cook  it.  After  all  the  meat 
was  cooked  he  took  some  skin  bags,  brought  up  water  and  placed  it  in 
the  trough.  At  this  time  the  boys  were  away  in  the  timber,  so  that  for 
several  days  they  did  not  come  to  the  lodge.  The  man  thought  to  him- 
self, "This  is  a  good  time  for  me  to  go,"  so  he  went  away.  The  strange 
boy  said:  "Handsome-Boy,  our  father  has  run  away.  He  is  afraid  of 
us."  Handsome-Boy,  however,  would  not  believe  this.  They  went 
back  to  their  lodge.  When  they  entered  the  lodge  the  strange  boy  said: 
"Handsome-Boy,  do  you  know  how  we  got  away  from  those  sharp-elbow 
people?"  Handsome-Boy  said  "No."  Then  the  strange  boy  said: 
"When  both  of  us  stepped  upon  the  rim  of  the  kettle  I  said  that  we 
should  turn  into  charred  leaves,  and  as  such  we  flew  up  and  out  of  the 
opening.  When  the  leaves  were  outside  they  came  down  upon  the 
ground.  When  they  struck  the  ground  we  were  boys  again.  That  is 
the  manner  in  which  we  got  away  from  the  sharp-elbow  people.  Now 
let  us  find  our  father."  Handsome-Boy  said:  "No;  our  father  will 
come  back."  The  strange  boy  said:  "No;  he  is  gone."  Then  the 
strange  boy  said:  "Handsome-Boy,  let  us  go  to  my  home." 

They  went  home  and  when  they  arrived  at  the  elm  tree  the  two  boys 
disappeared  and  there  they  were  in  a  lodge  under  the  ground.  The 
lodge  was  really  a  wood  rat's  nest.  There  Handsome-Boy  found  the 
bow  and  arrows  and  other  things  which  the  strange  boy  had  taken  away 
from  h  m.  The  strange  boy  said:  "Handsome  Boy,  this  is  where  I 
received  my  powers.  The  wood  rats  are  my  grandmothers.  They  fed 
me  with  pecans,  grapes,  plums,  and  ground  beans.  I  was  never  hungry. 
Here  where  we  sit  dwelt  all  the  animal  gods.  Among  them  was  one 
strange  being  who  seemed  to  have  lightnings  in  his  hands,  lightnings  in 
his  eyes,  and  lightnings  in  his  mouth."  He  said:  "This  Lightning  man 
spoke  to  me  and  said  that  there  were  some  human  beings  who  pretended 
to  be  lightnings  from  the  sky;  that  they  had  killed  many  people;  that  it 
was  time  that  they  were  taken  away  from  this  earth  and  power  would  be 
given  them  to  stand  in  the  heavens  as  thunder  and  lightning." 


154  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

The  strange  boy  again  said:  "Handsome-Boy,  this  is  why  I  was  not 
afraid  of  the  thunder  and  the  lightning  which  I  captured  in  the  hollow 
log  on  the  side  of  that  high  mound. "  After  they  had  been  there  for  some 
time  a  woman  came  to  the  lodge  with  a  black  robe  upon  her  shoulders 
and  a  black  skirt.  She  gave  the  boys  some  ground  beans  and  then  she 
went  away.  The  boys  ate  of  the  beans  and  then  they  left  the  place. 
The  boys  went  through  the  timber  hunting  for  their  father.  Every 
animal  they  met  the  boy  asked  if  it  had  seen  their  father.  The  ani- 
mal would  say  "No."  The  boy  would  look  at  it  and  would  tell  the 
animal  that  if  it  was  lying  to  him  he  would  kill  it.  The  animal  would  say: 
"I  have  not  seen  your  father.  He  did  not  go  this  way."  The  insects 
which  the  boys  met  were  also  asked  if  they  had  seen  their  father.  The 
insects  would  say  "No."  When  they  met  the  bugs  the  boy  would  ask 
them  if  they  had  seen  their  father  and  the  bugs  would  say  "No." 

They  went  all  over  the  country,  but  they  could  not  find  their  father. 
They  finally  went  back  into  the  lodge.  A  little  Mouse  came  out  from 
the  side  of  the  lodge.  The  boy  asked  the  Mouse  if  it  had  seen  their 
father  and  where  he  was.  The  Mouse  said:  "Yes;  I  know."  The  Mouse 
went  from  the  fireplace  to  the  wood  mortar  standing  near  the  entrance. 
The  boy  went  to  the  mortar.  He  picked  it  up  from  the  ground  and  said : 
' '  Did  you  help  my  father  to  get  away  from  us  ? "  The  mortar  said :  "  Yes ; 
I  did."  The  boy  threw  the  mortar  away  and  said:  "I  shall  not  place 
you  upon  the  fire  so  that  you  will  burn  up.  The  people  will  have  use 
for  you  in  the  future. "  The  two  boys  went  to  the  hole  where  the  mor- 
tar stood.  They  went  into  it  and  there  they  found  their  father 's  trail. 
They  came  to  the  under-ground  world.  They  could  see  plainly.  They 
traveled  on.  After  a  while  they  came  to  a  big  village  of  people.  They 
went  through  the  village  asking  people  if  they  had  seen  their  father. 
The  people  said:  "Yes;  he  passed  through  here."  They  traveled  on  and 
on  until  they  came  to  another  village  of  people.  They  went  through 
the  village  asking  for  their  father.  Everyone  they  asked  said  that  the 
father  had  passed  on  through  the  village. 

The  two  boys  traveled  on  and  after  a  while  they  came  to  another 
village.  The  strange  boy  said:  "These  people  are  very  bad.  We 
must  kill  them  in  the  under-world.  If  our  father  is  in  this  village  they 
will  not  tell  us.  Now,  Handsome-Boy,  I  want  you  to  twist  your  head 
around."  The  two  boys  twisted  their  heads  around  and  their  heads 
rattled  as  if  they  were  two  gourds.  Then  the  strange  boy  said:  "Hand- 
some-Boy, when  we  enter  the  village  you  must  go  through  one  way  and 
I  will  go  another.  You  must  speak  on  the  way  and  tell  the  people  that 
if  they  look  at  you  they  will  die ;  that  if  they  do  not  look  at  you  they  will 
die  anyway.  If  the  people  look  at  you  they  will  die  and  if  they  do  not 


HANDSOME-BOY  AND  AFTER-BIRTH  BOY.  155 

look  at  you  they  will  die  just  the  same."  The  two  boys  started  to  go 
through  the  village.  The  strange  boy  started  from  the  west  side  and 
Handsome-Boy  from  the  east  side.  As  each  one  went  along  he  saw  the 
people  dying.  Each  said  as  he  passed  through  the  village:  "Look  at 
me  or  you  will  die.  If  you  look  at  me  you  will  die. "  When  they 
reached  the  center  of  the  village  all  the  people  had  been  destroyed.  Then 
they  went  on.  They  came  to  a  stream  of  water  and  there  they  found 
the  tracks  of  their  father  where  he  had  tried  to  cover  them  up. 

The  two  boys  crossed  the  stream  of  water  and  just  as  they  were  about 
to  climb  up  the  bank  a  strange  being  came  out  from  under  a  rock  and 
said:  "Wonderful  boy,  I  know  you.  You  have  great  powers,  but  I  am 
like  you.  I  also  have  great  powers.  I  will  not  let  you  pass  here  and 
kill  these  people  as  you  have  been  doing.  Your  father  passed  through 
here,  but  you  shall  not  pass. "  Then  the  boy  looked  at  the  strange  being 
and  said:  "Very  well;  if  you  have  power  to  kill  me,  go  ahead."  The 
strange  being  jumped  at  the  boy  and  the  strange  being  dropped 
away  and  began  to  beg  of  the  strange  boy  not  to  kill  him,  and 
that  it  would  let  them  pass  through  the  under-world.  This  strange 
being  was  a  Lizard.  Then  the  strange  being  told  the  boys  that  their 
father  had  passed  that  way;  that  he  tried  to  help  the  man,  but  as  the 
boy  had  more  power  than  he  had  he  could  not  do  anything.  When 
the  strange  being  jumped  at  the  strange  boy  the  strange  boy  had  turned 
his  legs  into  flint  stone  so  that  the  strange  being  could  not  bite  him. 

The  boys  traveled  on  and  came  to  a  village.  When  they  entered 
the  village  they  were  more  cautious,  for  they  knew  that  their  father  was 
in  the  village.  They  went  through  the  village,  twisting  their  heads  as 
they  went  and  their  heads  rattled  like  gourds.  They  killed  the  people. 
After  a  while  they  came  to  their  father.  They  had  already  killed  him 
and  so  they  stopped  killing  the  other  people.  Then  the  two  boys  took 
their  father  and  carried  him  away  up  on  a  high  hill,  then  went  into  the 
timber.  They  secured  four  dry  willows,  four  cottonwood,  four  box- 
elder,  and  four  elm  poles.  They  took  these  poles  up  on  the  high  hill. 
First  they  placed  the  willows  at  the  bottom;  then  they  placed  the  cot- 
tonwood crosswise  over  the  willows;  then  they  placed  over  these  the 
box-elder;  then  they  placed  over  these  the  elm.  Then  they  set  fire  to  it, 
and  when  it  began  to  burn  well  they  took  their  father  and  placed  him 
on  top  of  the  burning  timber,  and  as  the  smoke  went  up  into  the  heavens 
the  boys  lifted  themselves  up  in  different  directions  towards  the  heavens. 

What  they  burned  this  man  for  no  one  knows,  and  where  the  two  boys 
went  no  one  knows. 


156  TALES  OP  READY-TO-GIVE. 

40.  LONG-TOOTH  BOY. 

(See  Abstracts.) 

[Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  is  one  of  the  many  versions  of  the  well- 
known  Pawnee  hero  tale.  It  is  not  supposed  to  be  a  true  story,  but  is  told  to  the 
children  that  they  may  know  that  the  animals  have  power  to  teach  the  people  to 
do  wonderful  things.  In  the  story  is  supposed  to  be  an  explanation  of  the  Pawnee 
custom  of  erecting  upon  the  pole  the  scalp  of  an  enemy  taken  in  war.] 

41.  LONG-TOOTH  BOY. 

(See  Abstracts.) 

[Told  by  Leading-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  This  is  another  and  much  more  complete 
version  of  the  preceding  story,  though  by  the  Kitkehahki  it  is  regarded  as  a  dif- 
ferent tale.] 

42.  BURNT-BELLY  AND  HIS  DREAMS.1 

A  long  time  ago  there  was  a  village  of  Indians.  In  the  village  was  a 
wonderful  man  and  his  sister.  They  lived  away  from  the  village,  always 
making  their  camp  on  the  east  side.  In  the  village  was  an  orphan  boy 
who  was  very  poor  and  nearly  naked.  Having  no  robe,  he  would  sit 
close  to  the  fire  in  order  to  warm  himself  and  his  belly  became  scorched, 
and  so  he  was  called  Burnt-Belly.  Some  man  took  pity  on  him  and  gave 
him  half  of  a  buffalo  robe  with  which  to  cover  himself.  He  never  washed 
his  face  nor  brushed  his  hair.  The  little  boy  would  go  through  the  vil- 
lage, entering  one  lodge  after  another,  carrying  water  and  wood  for  the 
people.  In  this  way  he  got  something  to  eat. 

Every  evening  he  went  into  the  lodge  of  the  wonderful  man.  As 
soon  as  the  boy  entered  the  lodge  and  sat  down  near  the  fireplace, 
the  young  man  would  say:  "Here  comes  my  brother-in-law.  My  sis- 
ter, you  must  feed  your  husband."  The  girl  would  laugh  and  would 
feed  the  boy.  After  the  boy  had  eaten  the  wonderful  man  would  say: 
"Boy,  I  hear  people  say  that  you  are  a  great  warrior,  that  you  wear 
a  war  bonnet,  and  that  you  are  now  a  handsome  man.  The  people 
tell  that  you  are  my  brother-in-law."  The  wonderful  man  would  talk 
in  this  way  to  the  boy  so  much  that  he  would  leave.  The  wonderful 
man  said  these  things  to  the  poor  boy,  for  he  was  making  fun  of  him. 

One  evening  when  the  wonderful  man  was  talking  in  this  way  to  the 
boy,  the  boy  went  out  from  the  lodge  and  went  to  the  stream  of  water. 
He  lay  down  upon  the  bank,  went  to  sleep,  and  had  a  dream.  He  saw 
a  fine-looking  young  man  standing  on  the  water.  The  young  man  wore 
fine  buckskin  leggings,  fine  moccasins,  a  fine  shirt,  a  fine  robe,  and  a 
quiver  of  otter  skin  with  arrows  and  a  bow.  He  had  on  his  head  a  fine 

1  Told  by  Little-Chief,  Chaui.  Teaches  the  wisdom  of  refraining  from  making 
fun  of  the  poor  boys,  for  they  may  become  great  warriors  or  even  chiefs. 


BURNT-BELLY   AND   HIS   DREAMS.  157 

war  bonnet.  This  man  said  to  the  boy:  "My  boy,  I  feel  sorry  for 
you.  You  are  poor;  the  people  make  fun  of  you  and  call  you  all  kinds 
of  names.  They  even  make  fun  of  you  and  say  that  you  are  to  become 
a  warrior  and  a  chief.  You  see  how  I  am  dressed  and  that  I  stand  here 
on  the  water.  Before  very  long  you  are  to  dress  just  as  I  am  dressed. 
You  shall  become  a  great  warrior  and  shall  marry  the  sister  of  that  won- 
derful man.  The  wonderful  man  has  dreams  about  the  sun.  In  the 
dreams  the  sun  told  him  to  make  a  shield.  Through  this  shield  the 
young  man  thinks  he  is  wonderful.  In  a  few  days  a  war  party  will  start 
out  and  you  must  go  to  the  lodge  of  this  wonderful  man  and  ask  him 
for  his  shield.  He  will  let  you  have  the  shield.  You  must  follow  the  war 
party,  and,  although  they  shall  try  to  send  you  home  again,  keep  right  on 
with  them.  I  will  protect  you  and  will  help  you  to  overcome  the  enemy. 
When  you  have  returned  from  this  war  party  you  must  come  down  to 
this  stream  of  water  and  I  will  speak  to  you  again. "  The  poor  boy  woke 
up,  stood  upon  the  bank,  and  prayed  to  the  being  he  had  seen  in  his 
dream  that  all  might  come  true.  He  went  back  to  the  village  and  there 
he  went  from  one  lodge  to  the  other  trying  to  obtain  something  to  eat. 

A  few  days  after  the  dream  he  heard  that  a  party  of  warriors  were 
going  on  the  war-path.  He  went  into  the  lodge  of  the  wonderful  man, 
and  as  he  sat  down  the  wonderful  man  began  to  tell  him  that  he  was  to 
become  a  great  man  and  that  he  was  to  marry  his  sister;  that  he  was  to 
become  his  brother-in-law.  The  boy  did  not  pay  any  attention  to  it,  but 
said:  "My  brother,  I  wish  you  would  lend  me  your  shield.  I  want  to 
join  the  war  party  which  is  going  out."  The  wonderful  man  sat  for  a 
while  and  at  last  said:  "I  will  lend  you  the  shield.  You  shall  go  and 
join  the  war  party. "  He  took  the  shield  and  gave  it  to  the  poor  boy. 
The  poor  boy  followed  the  warriors,  who  had  already  started  on  the  war- 
path. When  he  caught  up  with  them  they  scolded  him  and  told  him  to 
return  to  the  village,  as  he  was  too  young  to  go  with  them.  But  some 
of  the  warriors  who  saw  that  he  carried  the  shield  of  the  wonderful 
man  said:  "Let  him  stay  with  us.  If  he  gives  out  we  will  leave  him. 
See,  he  has  the  shield  of  the  wonderful  man  upon  his  back.  It  may  be 
that  he  has  wonderful  power  from  the  owner  of  the  shield.  It  may  be 
that  the  wonderful  man  has  given  him  power  to  travel. "  They  let  the 
boy  go  with  them. 

A  few  days  afterwards  they  reached  the  camp  of  the  enemy.  The 
warriors  attacked  the  village.  The  young  man  went  into  the  village, 
killed  a  man,  and  took  the  scalp.  He  returned  to  where  the  other  war- 
riors were.  The  scalp  he  gave  to  the  leader  of  the  warriors.  When  the 
fighting  was  done,  the  warriors  found  out  that  the  only  man  who  had 


158  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

killed  an  enemy  was  the  boy  and  that  he  had  also  taken  a  scalp.  They 
sat  in  council  and  said:  "Let  us  not  tell  that  the  boy  killed  the  enemy 
and  took  the  scalp.  Let  us  make  the  people  think  that  some  one  else 
did  this. "  When  they  reached  their  village  the  poor  boy  was  not  spoken 
of.  He  returned  the  shield  to  the  owner.  The  women  began  to  dance 
scalp  dances  and  somehow  it  was  learned  that  the  poor  boy  alone  had 
killed  an  enemy  and  taken  the  scalp.  When  the  wonderful  man  heard 
the  news  in  his  lodge,  he  said:  "They  are  making  fun  of  my  brother-in- 
law.  The  warriors  did  not  say  that  the  young  man  had  taken  a  scalp." 
The  boy  continued  to  be  a  poor  boy  and  went  from  one  lodge  to  another. 

A  few  days  after  his  return  from  the  war  party  he  went  down  to  the 
bank  of  the  stream  and  there  lay  down.  He  went  to  sleep  and  had  a 
dream.  He  saw  this  man  again  on  the  stream.  He  spoke  and  said  to 
the  boy,  "My  son,  stay  here  on  the  bank  of  the  stream  for  three  days. " 
The  boy  remained  three  days  and  when  night  came  he  had  another 
dream.  The  fourth  night  the  man  on  the  water  told  him  that  he  must 
wade  into  the  water  and  dive  four  times ;  that  he  must  walk  out  from  the 
water  and  stand  upon  the  bank  for  a  short  time ;  that  he  was  to  go  to  the 
lodge  of  the  wonderful  man;  there  he  would  meet  the  sister  of  the  won- 
derful man  with  a  bucket  going  to  the  stream;  when  the  girl  should 
return  with  the  water,  he  was  to  ask  her  for  a  drink;  then  he  was  to  go  a 
short  distance  from  the  lodge  and  the  girl  herself  was  to  follow  him.  The 
stream  would  say  to  him  that  he  was  the  stream  of  water  and  the  girl 
would  be  thinking  of  him.  The  next  day  he  sat  on  the  bank. 

In  the  night  he  did  as  he  had  been  told.  He  went  into  the  water  and 
dived  four  times.  When  he  came  out  he  felt  strong.  When  he  felt  him- 
self he  found  that  he  wore  leggings,  moccasins,  buffalo  robe,  shirt,  and 
quiver.  He  also  had  the  war  bonnet  upon  his  head.  He  stood  for  a 
while  and  then  turned  around  and  went  to  the  lodge  of  the  wonderful 
man.  Before  he  reached  the  lodge  he  met  the  sister  and  she  stopped  to 
see  who  the  young  man  was.  On  her  return  with  the  water  the  boy  met 
her  again  and  talked  a  while  and  took  a  drink.  She  entered  the  lodge 
with  the  water.  She  could  not  rest.  She  went  out  and  followed  the 
young  man.  When  she  reached  his  side  she  told  him  that  she  wanted 
him  to  go  to  her  lodge.  The  young  man  went  with  her  and  they  sat  down 
together  in  the  lodge.  Her  brother  was  away  at  this  time.  In  the 
morning  when  they  got  up  from  the  bed  her  brother  saw  them.  He  was 
well  pleased  to  have  a  brother-in-law.  The  young  man  was  fine-looking 
had  fine  clothing,  and  a  fine  quiver  of  otter  skin,  with  bow  and  arrows. 

Soon  after  this  the  enemy  attacked  the  village.  The  boy  fought  with 
them  and  drove  away  the  enemy  after  killing  several  of  them.  After  a 


BURNT-BELLY  AND    HIS    DREAMS.  159 

while  the  young  man  himself  led  out  a  war  party.  They  attacked  the 
village  of  the  enemy,  killed  many,  taking  many  scalps  and  bringing 
home  many  ponies.  When  he  brought  the  ponies  home  he  began  to 
give  them  away.  The  people  wondered  who  this  man  was.  The  people 
would  say,  "What  has  become  of  Burnt-Belly."  The  boy  stood  up  and 
said  to  the  people:  "We  went  on  the  war-path,  we  attacked  the  village, 
we  killed  many  people,  took  many  scalps  and  many  ponies.  The  people 
are  well  off  through  it.  You  are  anxious  to  find  out  who  was  the  leader 
of  this  war  party.  It  is  the  boy  whom  you  all  despised;  the  boy  whom 
you  called  Burnt-Belly.  It  was  this  boy  who  led  the  party."  Then 
the  people  knew  at  once  that  it  was  the  poor  boy,  and  when  the  wonder- 
ful man  heard  of  the  boy  he  said  to  himself:  "All  things  that  I  have 
said  to  the  boy  have  come  true.  It  is  wonderful.  When  he  became  my 
brother-in-law  I  would  ask  for  Burnt-Belly. "  The  people  chose  him  for 
a  chief  and  they  knew  him  as  a  great  warrior. 

43.  THE  BOY  WHO  WORE  A  WOODPECKER  CAP.1 

There  was  a  village  upon  the  prairie  with  a  stream  of  water  running 
on  the  south  side.  On  the  west  side  were  many  little  ponds  and  lakes. 
Upon  one  of  the  islands  the  people  saw  a  strange  being.  This  strange 
being  was  a  little  boy.  He  wore  a  woodpecker  cap.  Around  the  rim 
circle  were  many  woodpeckers '  heads.  This  little  boy  also  had  a  quiver 
made  of  otter  skin.  The  bow  was  of  osage  orange  and  it  was  black 
with  age.  The  arrows  were  black  and  were  feathered  with  the  yellow 
feathers  of  a  woodpecker.  The  leggings  were  made  of  antelope  skin. 
Eagle  feathers  were  tied  upon  the  leggings,  and  here  and  there  hung 
owls'  heads.  Every  time  he  was  seen  upon  the  island  in  the  night  the 
people  would  hear  the  owls  hoot  about  him. 

One  day  the  boy  saw  a  strange  woman  swim  across  to  the  island 
where  he  was.  The  people  in  the  village  had  never  attempted  to  swim 
across  the  lake  to  the  island,  for  there  were  many  strange  animals  in 
the  water,  and  people  were  afraid  to  swim  across  the  lake.  The  woman 
came  to  the  island  where  the  boy  was.  The  woman  said:  "My  grand- 
child, it  is  now  time  for  you  to  go  among  your  people.  I  left  you  here 
upon  the  island  so  that  the  animals  might  take  care  of  you  and  teach  you 
their  mysteries,  and  that  some  day  you  might  be  able  to  help  your  peo- 
ple. I  have  brought  you  an  arrow.  Whenever  you  want  to  cross  the 
lake  take  this  arrow,  shoot  it  over  the  lake,  and  when  the  arrow  falls 

'Told  by  White-Horse,  Pitahauirat.  The  practice  of  certain  Pawnee  medicine- 
men of  wearing  a  cap  or  head  dress  bearing  a  circular  band  of  woodpecker  scalps 
is  explained  by  this  story.  The  moral  of  the  story  for  children  is  that  they  should 
take  care  of  their  fine  clothing. 


l6o  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

upon  the  ground  there  you  will  stand.  When  you  want  to  come  back 
take  the  same  arrow  and  shoot  it  over  the  lake  and  you  will  return  to  this 
island."  The  boy  wore  a  buffalo  robe  which  was  not  very  large.  Around 
the  edge  of  the  robe  were  many  holes.  The  animals  had  given  the  boy 
many  sweet-smelling  weeds.  These  he  tied  upon  the  robe.  The  woman 
said  again:  "I  came  across  this  lake,  for  I  am  not  a  human  being.  I 
came  over  as  a  swan.  I  am  not  a  woman.  I  am  the  Moon.  I  watch 
over  the  people  and  help  them  in  getting  food  for  themselves."  As  the 
night  came  the  woman  said:  "Now  do  as  I  have  told  you  about  the 
arrow.  Go  across  and  come  back.  I  am  gone."  The  boy  took  the 
arrow  in  the  night,  shot  it  over  the  lake,  and  he  was  then  across.  He 
went  into  the  village.  The  people  ran  out  of  their  lodges  and  said: 
"Here  goes  the  boy  with  the  woodpecker  cap.  The  owls  are  hooting 
about  his  legs."  He  entered  one  of  the  lodges.  One  man  reached  for 
his  quiver,  but  as  he  reached  for  it  he  noticed  that  the  black  bow  was 
not  a  bow  at  all,  but  was  a  black  snake.  Then  he  moved  away  and  sat 
down.  The  Woodpecker-Boy  motioned  to  a  young  woman  to  place 
his  things  upon  a  hook.  She  came  and  took  the  things  and  the  snake 
permitted  her.  After  he  had  taken  off  his  things  he  sat  down  by  the 
fire.  One  of  the  men  then  spoke  and  said:  "Woodpecker-Boy,  we 
are  sorry,  for  we  can  not  give  you  anything  to  eat.  The  people  in  the 
village  are  starving.  We  go  out  into  the  timber.  We  hunt  for  arti- 
chokes, ground  beans,  and  pecans  which  the  animals  have  buried,  but 
we  find  nothing.  We  go  out  to  hunt  game,  but  we  find  none. "  The  boy 
said  nothing.  He  got  up,  went  to  his  things,  took  his  cap,  and  put  it 
upon  his  head.  He  put  on  his  leggings  and  moccasins.  Then  he  took 
the  quiver  and  put  it  over  his  shoulder.  As  he  went  out  the  people 
could  hear  the  owls  hooting  upon  his  legs.  Woodpecker-Boy  went  off 
into  the  timber  and  was  gone  nearly  all  night.  He  came  back  in  the 
morning.  Now,  while  he  was  gone  he  went  into  the  timber  and  there  he 
scratched  around  where  the  animals  had  hidden  their  ground  beans, 
their  pecans,  and  their  artichokes.  He  also  made  images  of  raccoons, 
deer,  and  turkey.  After  he  had  done  this  he  went  around  the  timber 
and  gave  four  yells.  After  this  he  entered  the  village. 

Early  in  the  morning  the  boy  sat  down  and  he  told  the  man  in  whose 
lodge  he  was  to  send  for  the  chief.  The  chief  was  sent  for  and  he  came. 
He  sat  down  near  the  boy,  and  the  boy  said:  "Chief,  I  am  sorry  for  the 
people,  but  I  can  not  do  anything.  I  have  been  out  to  a  place  in  the 
timber,  and  I  have  worked  all  night.  Now,  you  go  through  the  village 
and  tell  the  people  to  go  and  surround  the  timber.  Tell  the  women  to 
take  their  hoes  and  bags  and  when  they  surround  the  timber  and  the 
chief  gives  the  command  they  must  run  into  the  timber.  Everybody 


THE  BOY   WHO  WORE   A   WOODPECKER  CAP.  l6l 

must  kill  whatever  comes  in  their  way."  The  people  went  out  to  the 
place  and  they  surrounded  it.  When  the  command  was  given  them 
they  rushed  into  the  timber.  Some  women  found  nests  of  ground  beans. 
While  they  were  digging  out  these  things  their  sisters  came  across  rac- 
coons. The  men  found  plenty  of  deer  jumping  around  through  the  timber. 
The  people  killed  much  game  and  dug  many  ground  beans  and  artichokes. 
They  brought  the  meat  and  everything  home  with  them,  and  the  people 
talked  about  Woodpecker-Boy.  In  the  night  the  boy  disappeared.  The 
people  asked  about  him.  They  wondered  where  he  was.  The  chief  wanted 
him,  but  the  next  day  the  boy  was  again  seen  upon  the  island. 

Several  days  afterwards  the  boy  returned.  Again  he  entered  the 
lodge  where  he  was  before  and  he  told  the  people  that  he  was  going  out 
to  the  timber,  and  that  he  wanted  them  to  be  ready  in  order  that 
they  might  surround  more  game.  The  boy  went  over  into  the  timber 
at  night  and  returned  early  the  next  morning.  The  people  surrounded 
the  timber  and  this  time  they  found  larger  game.  When  the  people 
brought  their  meat  home  they  talked  about  Woodpecker-Boy  and  said 
that  he  was  wonderful.  While  they  were  talking  about  him  the  chief 
thought  that  it  would  be  best  to  invite  the  boy  to  his  lodge.  The  chief 
sent  his  servant  to  invite  Woodpecker-Boy  to  his  lodge.  When  the 
servant  asked  for  Woodpecker-Boy  the  people  said  that  he  had  disap- 
peared. The  next  day  he  was  seen  upon  the  island  again. 

A  few  days  afterwards  the  boy  thought  that  the  people  were  hungry 
and  he  crossed  the  lake  again.  For  the  third  time  he  told  the  people  to 
go  into  the  timber.  When  they  went  they  found  buffalo.  The  men 
surrounded  the  buffalo  and  killed  many  of  them.  They  carried  the  meat 
home  and  Woodpecker-Boy  was  again  missing.  The  chief  sent  a  crier 
through  the  village  and  asked  the  people  if  they  had  seen  Woodpecker- 
Boy;  the  chief  wanted  him  at  his  lodge,  as  he  had  decided  that  he  should 
become  his  son-in-law.  There  were  many  men  in  the  village  who  would 
have  liked  to  be  in  the  place  of  the  boy. 

In  the  village  was  a  strange-looking  man.  He  was  always  painted 
red,  with  a  small  robe  upon  his  shoulders.  He  had  bears'  claws  about 
his  neck.  This  person  had  been  watching  Woodpecker-Boy.  He  went 
down  late  in  the  evening  to  where  the  boy  always  came  across  from  the 
island.  There  he  began  to  dig  a  hole.  This  man  was  a  Bear-Man. 

When  the  boy  shot  his  arrow  over  the  lake  the  arrow  fell  into  the  hole 
which  the  Bear-Man  had  dug.  There  the  boy  found  himself  in  the  hole. 
The  Bear-Man  came  and  said:  "My  son,  hand  up  your  clothes  first. 
I  will  take  you  out  of  this  hole.  The  chief  is  looking  for  you  and  I  know 
by  taking  you  out  he  will  reward  me. "  The  boy  took  off  his  things  and 


1 6*  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

handed  them  to  the  Bear-Man.  The  Bear-Man  put  the  things  on.  The 
leggings  he  put  on  and  the  owls  upon  it  would  not  hoot.  Then  he  put 
the  robe  on,  but  when  he  put  on  the  cap  the  woodpeckers  commenced  to 
peck  his  head.  He  did  not  mind  their  pecking  at  his  head  for  some  time. 
When  he  put  the  quiver  on  his  back  he  noticed  that  the  arrows  and  the 
bow  were  snakes,  and  the  snakes  did  not  like  it  because  the  Bear-Man  had 
them.  Bear-Man  went  through  the  village  with  the  boy's  clothing  on. 
Every  time  he  took  a  step  he  would  hoot  like  an  owl,  for  the  owls  had 
stopped  hooting  for  him.  He  was  seen  through  the  village  and  the  peo- 
ple took  word  to  the  chief  that  Woodpecker-Boy  was  now  in  the  village. 
The  chief  sent  for  him  and  when  Woodpecker- Boy  came  he  placed  him 
in  the  lodge  upon  a  cushion.  He  told  his  girls  to  sit  with  him.  The 
youngest  of  the  girls  would  not  go.  The  two  older  ones  went  and  sat  by 
the  supposed  Woodpecker-Boy. 

Several  days  afterwards  this  supposed  Woodpecker-Boy  tried  to  make 
it  appear  that  he  could  do  the  same  things  as  the  other  boy  had  done. 
He  would  disappear  in  the  night  and  return  in  the  morning.  He  would 
tell  the  chief  to  surround  the  place,  and  when  the  people  would  surround 
it  there  would  be  no  game  and  nothing  could  be  found. 

About  the  fifth  day  the  boy  in  the  hole  had  begun  to  get  hoarse  from 
crying  and  yelling.  He  was  also  very  thin  and  very  weak,  for  he  had  had 
nothing  to  eat  during  all  this  time. 

On  the  west  side  of  the  village  lived  an  old  woman  with  her  grand- 
child. The  grandchild  went  towards  the  lake  shooting  birds.  He  heard 
some  one  crying.  He  went  to  the  hole  and  there  the  boy  was  standing. 
Woodpecker-Boy  told  the  other  boy  to  take  him  out.  The  boy  ran  to 
the  lodge  and  said:  "Grandmother,  there  is  a  poor  boy  in  a  hole.  He 
is  nearly  starved  to  death.  Let  us  go  and  take  him  out.  He  shall  be 
my  nephew.  He  shall  call  me  uncle."  The  boy  and  the  old  woman 
went  to  the  hole  and  there  they  found  the  boy.  The  woman  pulled  the 
boy  out  from  the  hole  and  took  him  home.  She  went  through  the  vil- 
lage begging  here  and  there  for  corn.  Some  people  gave  her  a  handful 
and  others  did  not  give  her  any.  She  went  home  and  made  mush  for 
the  boy. 

Every  day  the  woman  and  the  boy  would  go  through  the  village  beg- 
;^ing  for  some  corn.  After  a  while  the  boy  became  strong.  Then  he  said: 
"Uncle,  tell  your  grandmother  to  go  and  cut  an  ash  tree  and  four  dog- 
wood sticks  and  bring  them  to  me. "  The  old  woman  went  into  the 
timber  and  brought  back  the  ash  stick  and  the  four  dogwood  sticks.  The 
boy  then  began  to  make  a  bow  and  four  arrows.  When  he  made  the 
four  arrows  he  said:  "I  am  strong  now,  uncle,  so  let  us  go  into  the  timber." 
They  went  into  the  timber,  but  they  did  not  see  any  game.  When  they 


THE  BOY  WHO  WORE  A  WOODPECKER  CAP.  163 

saw  a  rat's  nest,  the  boy  shot  at  the  nest  and  said:  "Uncle,  get  the 
arrow  and  you  will  find  a  rat  which  I  have  killed."  The  boys  took  the 
rat  home  and  the  old  woman  cooked  it  for  their  supper.  The  next  day 
they  went  out.  In  the  timber  they  found  a  porcupine  sitting  on  a  limb. 
The  boy  shot  it  and  they  brought  it  home.  The  grandmother  cooked  it 
for  their  supper.  The  next  day  they  went  and  they  found  a  raccoon. 
The  boy  killed  it  and  they  took  it  home.  The  old  woman  cooked  it  for 
their  supper.  The  next  day  they  went  out  and  the  boy  killed  several 
quail.  The  following  day  they  went  out  and  the  boy  killed  some  prairie 
chickens.  Another  day  they  went  out  and  the  boy  killed  some  turkeys. 
Then  the  boy  told  his  uncle  to  save  the  turkey  feathers,  for  he  must  make 
arrows.  The  next  day  they  went  out  and  they  saw  a  young  fawn.  The 
boy  killed  it  and  they  brought  it  home.  The  next  day  they  went  out 
and  killed  a  deer.  The  next  time  they  went  out  the  boy  killed  an  elk. 
The  last  time  they  went  out  the  boy  killed  a  buffalo.  They  came  back 
and  told  the  grandmother  to  go  and  bring  the  meat  home.  The  grand- 
mother brought  the  meat  home. 

Every  day  these  boys  went  out  and  they  killed  game.  Now  they  had 
plenty  to  eat.  The  old  woman  also  had  many  skins  and  she  built  a  fine 
tipi.  The  people  saw  the  change  in  the  old  woman's  place.  Some  of 
them  went  there  and  peeped  in.  They  saw  that  the  inmates  were  eating 
much  meat,  while  the  other  people  in  the  village  were  starving.  Some 
people  went  to  the  chief  and  said:  'Woodpecker-Boy  is  in  the  tipi  of 
the  old  woman.  This  man  that  you  have  here  must  be  an  impostor." 
The  little  girl,  the  youngest  daughter  of  the  chief,  heard  this.  She  went 
to  the  tipi  and  got  some  meat.  She  made  her  home  there.  Then  Wood- 
pecker-Boy told  the  girl  that  the  man  who  was  in  her  lodge  was  Bear- 
Man;  that  he  had  robbed  him  of  his  clothing  and  had  thrown  him  into 
a  hole ;  that  he  would  not  go  to  the  chief 's  lodge  until  the  man  was  killed. 
The  girl  got  up  and  went  to  her  lodge.  She  went  up  to  the  things  which 
were  hung  there,  reached  for  them,  and  the  people  inside  did  not  say 
anything.  Whenever  anybody  reached  for  the  things  the  snakes  would 
try  to  bite  them.  But  this  time  when  the  girl  reached  for  them  the  owls 
began  to  hoot  and  the  snakes  were  glad,  for  they  knew  they  were  going 
back  to  their  owner.  She  took  the  things  to  the  boy,  and  the  birds  and 
the  animals  were  glad  to  see  the  boy  again. 

The  people  rushed  into  the  lodge  of  the  chief  to  catch  the  man,  but 
he  had  turned  into  a  Bear  and  chased  the  people  out.  The  people  ran 
the  Bear  out  of  the  village  with  fire  sticks,  so  that  the  Bear  became  scared 
and  turned  into  a  bear  again  and  went  from  the  people  fcr  all  time 
never  to  return  to  live  with  them  any  more. 


1 64  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

After  the  boy  had  settled  down  and  was  strong  again,  he  told  the 
chief  to  send  the  people  out  into  the  timber.  They  went  out  and  began 
to  kill  game  and  they  found  plenty  of  artichokes,  ground  beans,  and 
game.  When  they  brought  in  their  meat  the  boy  said:  "This  is  the 
last  time  I  shall  do  this  for  your  people.  It  is  the  fourth  time  I  have 
done  it  for  you.  Now  you  must  move  away  from  here  and  go  far  into 
the  country,  where  you  can  find  game  for  yourselves. " 

In  a  few  days  the  people  moved  away  from  the  village  and  went  west, 
hunting  for  buffalo.  They  found  the  buffalo  and  killed  many.  After 
they  came  back  from  the  buffalo  hunt  the  boy  gave  them  seeds  to  plant. 
The  boy  taught  them  to  put  the  seeds  in  the  ground,  and  after  the  seeds 
were  put  in  the  ground  they  were  to  hunt  buffalo.  The  people  learned 
how  to  plant  corn  in  the  spring,  hunt  in  the  summer,  and  gather  their 
crops  in  the  fall  and  then  hunt  again.  The  boy  who  visited  the  lodge 
said:  "People,  in  your  dancing  you  must  wear  my  cap  made  of  heads  of 
woodpeckers.  Then  other  people  will  know  that  there  was  a  time  when 
the  Bear-Man  wore  my  cap."  The  people  had  plenty  to  eat  and  were 
taught  many  things  by  the  boy.  Afterwards  the  boy  disappeared,  first 
singing  to  the  poor  boy  who  was  now  to  take  his  place: 

Pa-oo!  My  uncle  yonder  came. 

You  are  now  sitting  high  up  in  the  top  of  a  tall  tree. 

44.  THE  SHOOTING  OF  THE  SQUIRREL'S  NOSE.1 

There  was  a  village  near  a  small  stream  of  water.  The  chief's  tipi 
was  placed  on  the  north  side  by  itself.  Close  to  the  tipi  was  a  ravine,  and 
at  the  head  of  the  ravine  was  a  tall  cottonwood  tree  which  was  forked 
near  its  top.  On  the  east  side  of  the  timber  was  a  little  grass-house 
where  there  lived  a  poor  woman  with  her  grandchild.  When  the  peo- 
ple went  out  to  urinate  they  went  to  the  grass-house  and  urinated  on  it. 
The  old  woman  was  not  old  from  age,  but  she  was  poor  and  therefore 
was  called  an  old  woman.  She  took  this  little  boy  into  her  grass-lodge, 
for  he  had  no  home.  She  called  him  her  grandchild.  The  boy  wore 
half  of  a  buffalo  robe.  This  was  the  only  bedding  he  had  and  it  had  a 
bad  odor,  for  he  often  urinated  on  it.  His  hair  was  never  brushed  and 
he  was  always  dirty. 

When  the  children  of  the  chief  went  out  to  play  they  went  to  the  cot- 
tonwood tree  and  there  they  would  scare  a  squirrel.  The  squirrel  would 

*  *  Told  by  Leading-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  teaches  that  the  daughters  of 
chiefs  should  not  despise  the  poor  boys  of  the  village,  because  ultimately  they 
might  become  worthy  to  be  their  husbands. 


SHOOTING  OF  THE  SQUIRREL'S  NOSE.  165 

run  up  the  tree  and  when  the  children  began  throwing  at  it  with  sticks, 
other  children  came  and  joined  them  in  throwing  at  the  squirrel.  The 
squirrel  would  run  up  the  tree  and  would  lie  at  the  fork.  When  the 
children  looked  for  it  all  they  could  see  was  the  nose  of  the  squirrel. 
This  happened  many  times.  Then  the  oldest  of  the  girls  said  one  day: 
"Father,  let  the  crier  go  through  the  village  and  let  him  tell  all  the  boys 
to  get  their  bows  and  arrows  ready,  so  that  when  we  scare  the  squirrel  up 
the  tree  they  can  shoot  at  it.  Whoever  shall  hit  the  squirrel's  nose  and 
kill  it  shall  become  our  husband.  The  skin  we  will  use  as  a  receptacle 
for  our  seeds.' '  The  chief  sent  for  the  crier  and  told  him  to  cry  through 
the  village.  He  said  that  when  his  daughters  chased  the  squirrel  up 
the  tree  everyone  must  come  with  their  bows  and  arrows,  and  whoever 
should  shoot  the  squirrel  upon  the  nose  should  marry  the  daughters  of 
the  chief.  As  soon  as  the  young  men  heard  of  this  they  began  to  make 
bows  and  arrows.  Every  young  man  in  the  camp  soon  had  bows  and 
arrows.  Everybody  waited  each  day  until  the  daughters  of  the  chief 
went  out  to  play,  and  as  soon  as  they  ran  the  squirrel  up  the  tree  the 
boys  of  the  village  began  to  gather  around  the  tree  and  shot  at  the 
squirrel  until  sundown,  and  then  they  would  give  it  up.  This  was  car- 
ried on  for  many  days. 

Little  Burnt-Belly-Boy,  who  lived  with  his  grandmother,  made  a 
little  ring.  This  ring  was  made  of  buffalo  hide.  He  also  had  a  bow 
and  arrows,  made  for  him  by  his  grandmother.  Every  morning  the  boy 
would  sit  outside  of  the  grass-lodge  and  would  say  to  his  grandmother, 
"Roll  the  ring  out  of  the  lodge."  This  the  woman  did,  and  when  the 
ring  came  rolling  out  of  the  lodge  the  little  boy  shot  at  it.  Then  he 
would  yell  and  run  into  the  lodge.  He  would  say,  "Grandmother,  go 
and  see  what  I  have  killed. "  The  grandmother  would  go  out  and  there 
would  find  a  young  buffalo.  The  woman  would  jerk  the  meat  and  dry 
it  in  their  lodge.  After  she  would  fill  a  parfleche  with  dried  meat  she 
would  bury  the  parfleche  under  the  ground.  The  bones  were  placed 
around  the  fireplace  and  were  cooked  in  that  way. 

One  day  the  boy  told  the  grandmother  that  he  was  going  over  to 
shoot  at  the  squirrel 's  nose.  The  grandmother  laughed  at  the  boy,  but  he 
went  anyway.  As  soon  as  the  young  people  saw  that  the  boy  was  coming 
they  laughed,  pointed  at  him,  and  said:  "Here  is  the  boy  who  is  going 
to  shoot  the  squirrel  on  the  nose."  Everybody  shot  at  the  squirrel. 
The  boy  then  stood  up,  shot,  and  hit  the  squirrel  right  on  the  nose.  The 
boy  ran  to  get  the  squirrel,  but  a  man  with  bear  claws  around  his  neck 
picked  up  the  squirrel  and  shouted:  "I  killed  the  squirrel."  The  boy 
picked  up  his  arrow  and  with  it  several  hairs  of  the  squirrel,  and  when 


166  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

he  went  into  his  grass-lodge  he  said:  "Grandmother,  I  killed  the  squirrel. 
Here  it  is."     The  boy  handed  the  squirrel  to  the  woman. 

Now,  when  the  man  with  the  bear  claws  picked  up  the  squirrel  he 
took  it  straight  to  the  chief's  lodge.  The  squirrel  which  the  man  took 
was  of  brownish  color  and  made  no  colors  about  the  lodge.  The  squir- 
rel which  the  boy  had  killed  was  of  a  bluish  tint  and  it  made  the  lodge 
bluish  in  color.  The  impostor  married  the  two  oldest  daughters,  while 
the  youngest  one  would  not  consent  to  lie  with  the  man,  for  she  said  that 
some  one  else  had  killed  the  squirrel. 

One  day  the  man  with  the  bear  claws  promised  the  people  buffalo. 
He  told  them  to  go  out  on  a  certain  hill  and  that  they  would  find  buffalo 
there.  When  the  people  went  they  could  not  find  any  buffalo.  Then 
he  said:  "It  is  because  you  do  not  give  me  the  girl. "  The  chief  scolded 
the  little  girl  and  she  ran  away  to  the  home  of  Burnt-Belly-Boy.  She 
sat  outside.  She  smelled  the  burning  meat.  After  a  while  she  slipped 
into  the  grass-lodge  and  sat  down  beside  the  woman.  The  woman 
knew  her.  She  took  pity  on  her  and  said:  "Why  did  you  not  stay  at 
home  and  become  one  of  the  wives  of  that  man?"  The  little  girl  said: 
"No;  I  am  the  youngest,  but  I  have  more  sense  than  my  older  sisters. 
I  do  not  believe  that  the  man  killed  the  squirrel.  I  came  here  for  I 
believe  that  this  boy  killed  the  squirrel.  Now  I  know  that  it  is  true,  for 
I  see  the  squirrel  skin  here.  I  also  know  that  this  boy  who  stops  here 
with  you  is  a  wonderful  boy.  I  came  and  smelt  this  burning  meat. 
I  came  into  your  lodge.  Now  I  find  that  you  have  meat,  and  bones  are 
roasting."  The  girl  ate  some  of  the  meat  which  was  being  roasted. 
She  was  sent  home. 

The  next  day  the  boy  sent  his  grandmother  to  ask  the  chief  for  the 
young  girl.  The  woman  went  into  the  lodge  and  asked  the  chief  if  her 
grandchild  might  marry  the  little  girl.  The  chief  was  angry  and  said: 
"She  refuses  to  marry  this  man.  I  do  not  believe  that  she  would  marry 
your  boy.  I  shall  leave  it  with  her.  Daughter,  will  you  have  that 
dirty  little  boy  in  that  grass-lodge?"  She  said:  "Yes,  my  father;  I  will 
take  him."  The  chief  was  angry, but  when  he  saw  that  the  girl  was  in 
earnest  he  gave  his  consent.  The  boy  was  brought  to  the  lodge  of  the 
chief  and  he  was  given  a  seat  near  the  entrance.  The  two  older  daugh- 
ters made  fun  of  him  and  their  younger  sister. 

After  the  fourth  day  Burnt-Belly-Boy  went  away  and  when  he 
returned  he  came  as  an  eagle.  When  he  turned  into  a  human  form  his 
robe  was  covered  with  eagle  feathers  and  his  leggings  were  fringed  with 
eagle  feathers.  He  also  wore  an  eagle  cap.  Upon  the  back  of  his  buf- 
falo robe  was  painted  the  sun.  When  the  boy  came  to  the  lodge  of  the 
chief  the  two  oldest  sisters  tried  to  leave  their  husband,  but  the  young 


SHOOTING   OF  THE   SQUIRREL'S   NOSE.  167 

boy  said:  "No,  you  are  married.  Stay  with  your  husband."  Then 
Burnt-Belly-Boy  told  his  wife  to  tell  her  father  that  in  a  day  or  so  he 
would  have  the  buffalo  near,  so  that  the  people  might  kill  them. 

The  next  day  Burnt-Belly-Boy  asked  the  chief  to  have  the  crier  tell 
the  people  to  come  with  him.  They  went  into  a  thick  timber.  There 
the  people  found  skunks,  badgers,  raccoons,  deer,  rats'  nests,  ground  beans, 
and  pecans.  The  people  returned  to  their  homes  with  a  great  many 
things  to  eat.  The  two  oldest  girls  were  mad  because  their  husband 
could  not  do  these  things.  After  the  boy  had  helped  the  people  to  kill 
deer  and  other  small  game,  he  told  them  to  go  west  and  there  they 
would  find  buffalo.  The  people  went  out,  found  buffalo,  surrounded 
them  and  killed  many.  When  the  people  returned  they  brought  meat 
to  the  lodge  of  the  boy  to  feast  upon.  After  this  the  boy  was  given  a 
new  tipi.  He  brought  his  grandmother,  placed  her  in  there  and  he  took 
his  wife  and  lived  with  her  in  their  new  tipi.  Always  after  that  he  lived 
away  from  his  father-in-law. 

45.  THE  ORIGIN  OP  THE  CLAM  SHELL.1 

There  was  a  village,  and  in  this  village  was  a  man  who  was  all  the  time 
hunting  along  the  streams  of  water.  One  day,  while  around  some 
ponds,  he  saw  a  young  duck  diving  in  one  place  and  coming  up  in  an- 
other. He  watched  it,  and  once  in  a  while  he  would  see  the  young  duck 
take  the  weeds  from  the  dry  land  and  dive  with  them  in  its  mouth.  The 
man  caught  the  young  duck  and  took  it  home.  He  kept  it  for  a  while, 
but  his  wife  told  him  to  turn  it  loose.  The  man  took  the  duck  back  to 
the  pond  and  turned  it  loose. 

The  woman  gave  birth  to  a  child,  and  the  child  was  called  Young- 
Duck.  The  girl  grew  up  and  as  she  grew  her  parents  noticed  that  she 
had  mysterious  ways  and  liked  to  be  around  ponds  and  in  the  water. 
She  was  very  proud.  Her  parents  talked  together,  and  the  mother 
said:  "Now,  you  see  our  child  is  like  the  duck,  because  you  watched  it 
and  brought  it  here  before  our  child  was  born.  Let  her  have  her  way 
and  be  satisfied." 

One  day  the  girl  came  into  the  tipi  and  commenced  to  dig  in  the  west 
part  of  the  tipi.  She  made  a  hole  about  the  size  of  a  small  bowl.  She 
went  out  towards  the  ponds  and  stayed  there  for  some  time,  and  when 

1  Told  by  Bright-Eyes,  Skidi.  Apart  from  the  story  of  the  origin  of  the  clam 
shell,  as  related  in  the  tale,  its  interest  is  of  a  wider  nature,  because  the  clam  shell  was 
used  largely  by  the  Pawnee  medicine-men,  especially  as  a  mortar  in  which  to  mix 
medicines  as  well  as  paints.  The  clam  itself  is  regarded  as  a  wonderful  being, 
cleanly  in  its  nature,  although  it  lives  in  the  mud.  The  moral  of  the  tale  is  that 
widowers  should  not  remain  single. 


1 68  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

she  came  back  she  brought  some  flag  roots  with  tops  on  them,  and  some 
peppermints  with  their  roots  and  tops.  These  she  took  to  the  hole  and 
planted  at  the  bottom  of  it.  The  next  day  she  went  to  the  hole  and  it 
had  water  in  it.  She  told  her  mother  to  take  a  little  wooden  bowl,  and 
to  dip  water  from  the  hole  and  wash  her  face  and  head  every  day  with 
that  water.  "I  am  to  sit  upon  that  pool,"  she  said,  "when  I  am  not 
doing  anything."  The  mother  took  the  wooden  bowl  and  dipped  some 
water.  She  smelled  of  the  water  and  it  smelled  sweet.  She  washed 
the  girl's  face  and  wet  her  hair  with  it.  As  she  grew  the  girl  became 
very  pretty.  Her  hair  was  long,  extending  down  to  her  knees.  Every 
day  her  head  and  face  were  washed  from  the  pool,  and  she  sat  upon  it 
every  day.  She  had  dreams,  and  in  her  dreams  a  voice  spoke  to  her  and 
told  her  what  to  do.  One  day  she  went  to  the  ponds,  and  when  she  came 
back  she  had  a  stick,  about  three  feet  long,  with  a  hook  at  the  end.  She 
also  had  some  long,  dried,  rawhide  carrying- strings,  with  a  head-band 
which  was  decorated  very  prettily. 

One  day  the  girls  in  the  village  went  after  wood  and  this  girl  went 
with  them.  The  girls  thought  she  was  very  pretty.  They  asked  what 
her  name  was  and  she  told  them  her  name  was  Young-Duck.  When 
they  went  far  into  the  woods,  she  stopped  at  a  dry  cottonwood  tree  and 
told  the  girls  to  go  and  get  their  wood.  There  were  about  six  or  seven 
girls.  They  went  and  picked  their  wood,  and  while  they  were  gone  the 
girl  lifted  her  stick  and  said:  "Now  grow  long;  stretch  up  to  that  dry 
limb  and  pull  it  down  for  me."  The  stick  reached  the  limb.  When 
she  had  pulled  down  enough  to  make  a  load,  she  trimmed  the  limbs  and 
tied  them  up  with  her  strings.  She  would  then  sit  down  and  wait  for 
the  girls. 

When  the  girls  came  they  were  surprised  to  see  her  wood  all  tied  up. 
They  went  home  together  and  the  girl  threw  her  wood  all  down  near  the 
entrance  of  their  tipi  and  untied  it.  She  then  tied  up  her  strings,  then 
hung  the  stick  and  strings  in  the  lodge.  Her  mother  then  went  to  get 
the  bowl,  dipped  some  water  from  the  pool,  and  washed  the  girl 's  face 
and  head.  The  girl  then  went  to  her  pool  and  sat  on  it.  The  mother 
filled  the  little  bowl  with  pemmican,  which  she  had  prepared  for  her 
daughter.  This  she  ate  very  slowly.  She  did  not  talk  very  much. 

After  the  girls  had  parted  with  Young-Duck,  they  talked  about  her 
and  all  agreed  that  she  should  lead  them.  Every  day  the  girls  came  to 
her  tipi  and  said:  "Young-Duck,  let  us  go  after  wood."  "Nawa," 
she  would  say;  then  she  would  reach  for  her  stick  and  strings.  As  she 
came  out  the  girls  would  fall  in  line  and  she  would  lead  them  into  the 
timber.  Every  time  she  came  to  a  cottonwood  tree  she  would  stop  and 
tell  the  girls  to  go  on  and  gather  their  wood  and  take  no  notice  of  her. 


THE  ORIGIN  OP  THE  CLAM  SHELL.  169 

She  would  then  lift  her  stick  and  say,  "Stretch  and  break  that  limb  for 
me. "  This  she  did  until  she  had  plenty  of  them.  Then  she  would  sit 
down  and  wait  for  the  other  girls.  When  the  girls  came  she  would  lift 
her  wood  on  her  back  and  lead  the  girls  into  camp.  She  was  very  neat, 
and  her  wood  was  always  piled  up  in  an  even  pile. 

The  boys  of  the  village  noticed  her  and  tried  to  court  her.  A  young 
man  with  game  sticks  brought  his  game  near  her  tipi,  so  that  she  would 
notice  him.  Other  young  men  passed  by  her  tipi  and  shot  their  arrows, 
so  that  she  would  see  how  well  they  could  shoot ;  but  she  would  not  look 
at  them.  In  the  night  young  men  turned  out  with  their  flutes,  but  she 
did  not  listen.  A  dance  was  to  be  given  in  the  village.  On  the  morn- 
ing of  the  dance  she  saw  a  Hawk  sitting  on  a  limb,  and  she  knew  him. 
"Yes;  you  may  come  and  see  me,  but  you  must  become  a  man."  The 
Hawk  went  where  the  animals  dwelt  and  begged  them  to  transform  him 
to  a  man.  This  was  done ;  then  he  visited  the  girl  and  she  knew  him. 
She  told  her  mother  to  tell  her  father  that  she  would  marry  this  young 
man.  This  was  agreed  upon  and  Hawk  married  the  girl.  The  girl  con- 
tinued to  sit  on  the  pool  of  water,  and  when  the  girls  came  she  went 
with  them  and  gathered  wood  with  them,  and  when  she  went  home  she 
piled  her  wood  up  in  an  even  pile.  Then  the  water  was  dipped,  her  face 
was  washed,  her  hair  was  wet  with  it  and  combed.  Then  she  would  dip 
some  water  and  wash  her  husband's  face  and  head.  After  washing, 
she  would  sit  on  her  pool,  her  husband  by  her.  Pemmican  was  handed 
them  in  a  bowl  and  they  ate  very  slowly.  Every  day  the  girls  came  and 
Young-Duck  went  with  them  after  wood.  Her  husband  would  go  up 
on  a  high  hill  and  watch  them. 

One  day,  as  the  girl  returned  home,  she  noticed  a  strange  woman  in 
their  tipi,  but  she  went  on  with  her  work.  Her  mother  dipped  water 
for  her  and  she  washed  her  face.  When  she  had  finished,  she  sat  down 
on  her  pool  of  water,  and  pemmican  was  brought  and  handed  to  her  and 
to  her  husband  by  her  mother.  The  strange  old  woman  saw  all  that 
was  going  on  and  she  wished  that  she  might  marry  the  young  man.  She 
said:  "I  wish  that  I  were  in  that  girl's  place,  instead  of  having  so  many 
children  to  look  after,"  and  when  she  went  outside  she  made  up  her 
mind  to  watch  the  girl;  for  she  was  a  Witch.  She  went  into  the  timber 
and  cut  a  dogwood  stick,  about  two  feet  long,  whittled  it  down  to  a 
sharp  point,  and  burned  the  point  so  that  it  was  hard;  then  dried  it. 

One  day  she  went  into  the  timber  where  the  girl  generally  gathered 
her  wood.  She  hid  in  the  brush,  and  after  a  while  Young-Duck  came. 
The  other  girls  went  on  by,  but  Young-Duck  stopped  under  the  cotton- 
wood  trees.  When  she  had  her  wood  all  tied  up  and  ready  to  return 
home,  she  sat  down  on  her  wood  to  wait  for  the  girls.  She  looked  up 


1 70  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

and  saw  the  strange  woman  coming  towards  her.  Said  the  old  woman: 
"My  dear!  My  dear!  You  are  my  daughter.  I  have  been  looking  for 
you.  You  are  so  good  and  beautiful.  Come  and  sit  down  by  me. " 
The  girl  sat  down  and  all  at  once  the  old  woman  took  her  sharp  stick 
and  jammed  it  into  the  girl 's  ear,  and  thought  she  killed  her.  She  blew 
her  breath  into  the  girl 's  mouth,  so  that  her  skin,  from  her  waist  up, 
came  off.  The  old  woman  crawled  into  the  skin,  and  put  her  own 
dried-up  skin  on  the  girl.  She  then  dragged  the  girl  and  threw  her  into 
a  stream.  She  hurried  back  to  the  wood  and  commenced  to  yell  for  the 
girls,  for  she  was  hungry.  This  was  something  unusual.  Young-Duck 
would  never  call  for  the  girls,  and  never  yelled.  The  girls  hurried  back 
and  came  to  her,  and  they  noticed  that  she  looked  very  wild  and  did  not 
act  like  Young-Duck.  They  went  home,  and  as  the  old  woman  got  to 
the  tipi,  she  threw  her  wood  down  and  went  in  and  said:  "Mother,  I  am 
tired  and  hungry. "  This  was  also  strange;  for  Young-Duck  would  never 
throw  her  wood  down,  nor  say  that  she  was  hungry.  Instead  of  washing 
her  face  and  combing  her  hair,  she  went  and  sat  upon  the  pool  and  said: 
"I  am  hungry,  mother;  bring  me  something  to  eat!"  The  mother  took 
the  meat  to  her  and  her  husband,  and  she  ate  all  the  meat  before  the 
man  knew  it. 

At  night  the  man  suspected  that  something  was  wrong,  for  from  the 
waist  down  the  old  woman  was  her  own  self,  and  her  legs  were  not  round 
like  those  of  a  girl.  The  next  day  the  girls  came  as  usual,  and  they  went 
after  wood.  As  they  went  along,  the  old  woman  kept  hallooing  and 
talking.  The  girls  did  not  like  it.  They  came  to  the  tall  trees,  and  the 
old  woman  stopped.  The  others  went  on.  The  old  woman  took  the 
stick  and  raised  it  and  said,  "Hook  that  limb,"  but  the  stick  would 
not  stretch.  "Stretch,"  she  said;  "come,  now,  stretch,"  but  the  stick 
would  not  stretch.  She  tried  it  on  the  north  side,  on  the  south  and  on 
the  west,  but  the  stick  would  not  stretch.  She  was  afraid  that  the  girls 
would  be  coming,  so  she  cut  a  lot  of  green  willows  and  tied  them,  and 
swung  them  on  her  back;  then  yelled  for  the  girls  to  come.  The  girls 
came  with  their  wood  and  when  they  saw  the  girl  with  green  willow 
they  said  one  to  another:  "Why,  Young-Duck  has  never  done  this. 
Listen,  she  talks  all  the  time. "  They  went  home  and  the  old  woman 
threw  her  wood  down  and  ran  into  the  tipi  and  said:  "Mother,  I  am 
tired,  and  my  head  aches. "  She  then  went  to  the  pool  of  water,  but  the 
water  had  dried  up.  That  night  she  could  not  eat  anything,  but  was 
always  jabbering  and  talking. 

The  next  day  she  was  worse,  for  the  girl 's  skin  was  rotting  and  was 
making  her  feel  sick.  It  was  noised  around  that  Young-Duck  was  sick; 


THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE  CLAM  SHELL.  171 

so  medicine-men  were  sent  for,  but  they  could  not  help  her.  She  would 
not  let  them  touch  her  for  fear  they  might  find  the  false  skin  over  her. 
All  the  medicine-men,  one  by  one,  were  sent  for,  and  none  could  help 
her.  The  young  man,  who  all  this  time  thought  the  woman  to  be  his 
wife,  felt  badly.  He  said  there  was  nothing  now  to  be  done;  all  the  medi- 
cine-men had  been  sent  for  and  they  could  not  help  her.  ' '  There  is  one 
more  medicine-man  that  we  have  not  sent  for,"  said  he,  "and  that  is 
the  man  who  lives  in  the  west."  He  was  sent  for  and  he  came.  He 
entered  the  tipi  and,  although  the  people  gave  him  a  place  by  the  woman, 
he  squatted  by  the  entrance.  The  woman  had  a  bad  color,  for  the  skin 
over  her  was  rotting.  As  the  man  came  in,  the  woman  saw  that  his 
face  was  painted  black,  and  in  his  hand  he  held  a  black  gourd.  The  old 
woman  said:  "You  black-eyed  Crow,  I  know  you;  you  are  going  to  find 
me  out;  I  know  you  are  going  to  find  me  out. "  The  medicine-man  sent 
the  man  after  a  bucket  of  water,  saying,  "Dip  the  water  with  a  motion 
towards  the  west."  This  the  man  did  and  he  heard  some  one  saying: 

Now,  Hawk  Chief,  here  I  stand  in  the  water. 
I,  Young-Duck,  stand  here  in  the  water. 

He  heard  the  voice  and  knew  it  and  looked  all  around,  but  could  not 
see  his  wife.  He  went  back  to  the  lodge  and  told  Crow.  "Good,"  said 
Crow;  "now  you  shall  hear  what  I  have  to  say."  The  old  woman  was 
now  very  sick,  for  she  knew  that  she  was  found  out.  Crow  sang  this  song: 

Now,  crazy  old  woman, 
Your  outer  skin  is  rotten. 
Crow  flew  and  knows. 
Crow  flew  and  knows. 

Crow  kept  on  singing,  for  he  was  telling  what  the  witch  had  done. 
Hawk  went  to  the  creek  and  stood  around  there  in  the  night,  and  he 
heard  a  woman  sing  this  song: 

Here  now  stands  Young-Duck. 
Here  now  stands  Young-Duck. 
Yonder  is  Hawk  Chief. 

She  sang  several  times  and  then  disappeared  in  the  water. 

The  boy  went  home,  and  Crow  made  the  announcement  that  the 
woman  was  a  witch  and  that  she  had  killed  the  girl  and  had  thrown  her 
in  the  water.  The  people  took  the  old  woman  out,  and  although  she 
cried  for  mercy,  they  killed  all  her  children.  The  boy  went  off  to  the 
water  and  listened  and  listened  and  listened  for  his  wife's  song  again. 
He  turned  into  a  Hawk  and  flew  up  and  down  the  creek,  crossing 
over  from  one  side  to  the  other,  hunting  the  girl.  For  four  days  he 
flew  around,  until  he  was  tired  and  hungry.  On  the  evening  of  the 
fourth  day  he  lighted  on  a  high  hill  to  rest.  He  saw  smoke  coming  up  in 


IJ2  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

the  valley.  He  went  to  it  and  there  he  saw  a  tipi.  He  went  in  and  there 
was  a  man,  woman,  and  four  girls,  and  his  wife,  Young-Duck,  who  had 
covered  herself  up  so  that  Hawk  could  not  see  her.  She  had  told  the 
people  not  to  tell  him  that  she  was  there;  so  that  when  he  asked  about 
her  they  said  they  had  not  seen  her. 

The  man  kept  asking  and  the  youngest  girl  pointed  to  the  place  where 
she  was  lying.  The  man  looked,  and  he  saw  his  wife 's  feet.  He  reached 
for  her,  but  she  would  not  let  him  see  her.  He  was  glad  to  find  her.  She 
said:  "You  can  not  see  me,  for  I  am  changed. "  The  man  insisted  upon 
seeing  her  and  she  finally  gave  up.  He  saw  that  from  her  waist  up  she 
was  an  old  woman.  Her  ears  hung  down.  She  told  him  that  the  old 
woman  had  bewitched  her  and  that  she  was  now  changed,  and  would 
always  live  that  way;  and  that  he  must  tell  her  father  and  mother  not 
to  weep  for  her;  and  she  also  told  her  husband  not  to  weep  for  her. 
She  said:  "You  see  what  I  am  now.  You  will  marry  again  some  girl 
who  will  be  good  to  you,  but  first  you  are  to  lift  me  up  in  the  sky.  Put 
me  upon  your  back  and  fly  high,  then  drop  me.  Then  watch,  and  where 
I  drop,  fly  there  and  find  me  and  you  will  see  what  sort  of  creature  I  am. " 
The  man  stayed  near  her  all  night.  Although  she  was  changed  he  did 
not  care,  for  he  had  hunted  for  her  and  had  found  her.  She  was  also 
very  thin,  for  all  this  time  she  had  eaten  only  ground  beans.  The  next 
day  they  went  out  together  and  climbed  the  same  hill  that  Hawk  had 
rested  on  the  day  before.  He  turned  into  a  Hawk  again  and  the  girl 
climbed  on  his  back,  and  said:  "Fly.  You  are  strong;  I  am  not  heavy. " 
The  Hawk  flew  up  in  the  heavens  and  gave  a  little  turn,  and  the  girl  fell. 
The  Hawk  watched  and  flew  where  the  girl  fell;  and  there  he  found  her, 
and  she  was  a  clam  shell  already  open.  The  outside  of  the  shell  was 
rough,  like  the  old  witch 's  skin  that  had  been  on  the  girl.  The  inside 
was  smooth  and  delicate  like  the  skin  of  the  girl. 

46.  THE  POOR  BOY  WHO  TURNED  INTO  AN  EAGLE.1 

In  the  beginning  there  were  no  people  upon  the  earth.  The  stars 
in  the  heavens  wanted  to  put  people  upon  the  earth  and  show  them  how 
to  live.  Morning-Star  spoke  and  said:  "Put  two  people  down  there  on 
the  earth  among  the  animals,  and  see  what  they  will  do."  The  stars 
in  the  heavens  agreed  to  put  two  people  upon  the  earth.  Moon  agreed 
to  send  her  woman  down,  and  Morning-Star  agreed  to  send  his  younger 
brother.  The  boy,  although  younger,  called  the  woman  his  niece.  The 

'Told  by  Cheyenne-Chief,  Skidi.  The  story  points  the  moral  that  children, 
especially  brothers  and  sisters,  should  not  quarrel  among  themselves.  The  tale 
also  foretells  the  sacrificing  by  the  Skidi  of  a  maiden. 


THE  POOR  BOY  WHO  TURNED  INTO  AN  EAGLE.          173 

stars  carried  the  woman  and  the  boy  to  the  ground,  and  placed  them 
near  a  stream  of  water.  The  stars  gave  corn,  squash,  and  beans  to 
them,  and  during  the  winter  brought  meat  to  them.  The  woman  saved 
some  of  the  meat  and  tried  to  save  as  much  corn  as  possible. 

When  spring  came  she  arose  each  morning  and  went  to  the  bottom 
land  and  cleared  a  place  to  plant  corn.  One  morning  she  put  a  few 
grains  of  corn  into  a  dry  bladder  of  a  buffalo  and  tied  the  grains  up  and 
hung  them  on  the  wall  and  said,  "My  uncle,  do  not  touch  these,  for  they 
are  seeds. "  The  woman  then  went  down  into  the  bottom  land  and  began 
to  work,  softening  the  ground  and  making  hills  for  the  corn.  While  she 
was  working  the  little  boy  walked  up  and  began  to  look  for  something 
to  eat.  He  could  not  find  anything,  and  so  he  climbed  up  and  took  the 
bladder  with  the  seeds  in  it,  untied  it,  and  said  to  himself,  ' '  I  will  eat  one 
of  these  grains  of  corn  and  put  the  rest  back. "  He  took  one  kernel  and 
parched  it  on  a  hot  coal  and  then  ate  it.  He  ate  another  and  another 
until  he  had  eaten  all  the  seeds,  then  he  hung  the  bladder  up  again  where 
it  had  been. 

The  boy  was  young  and  lazy;  his  head  was  bushy,  and  his  face  and 
hands  always  dirty.  When  the  woman  came  in  and  saw  that  her  seeds 
were  gone  she  kicked  the  boy  and  said:  "Uncle,  arise.  What  have  you 
done  with  the  seeds  ?  I  have  worked  hard,  and  here  you  have  eaten  up 
the  seeds. "  She  gave  him  a  whipping,  and  he  cried.  Then  the  woman 
took  some  other  corn  which  she  had  and  began  to  pound  it,  for  she  was 
going  to  make  some  mush.  The  boy  stopped  crying,  and  began  to  sing: 

My  sister,  something  is  about  to  happen, 
My  sister,  something  is  about  to  happen. 
They  will  talk  to  you. 

Your  seed  corn;  your  seed  corn  is  very  fine. 
Something  is  :  bout  to  happen; 
My  toes  are  turning  into  eagle's  claws. 
***** 

My  feet  are  turning  into  eagle's  feet.1 
***** 

My  legs  are  turning  into  eagle's  legs. 
***** 

My  body  is  turning  into  an  eagle's  body. 
***** 

My  nose  is  turning  into  an  eagle's  beak. 
***** 

My  arms  are  turning  into  eagle's  wings, 

Then  the  boy  gave  one  scream,  threw  his  robe  to  one  side,  and  the  woman 

saw  that  her  uncle  had  turned  into  an  Eagle.     She  ran  and  tried  to 

catch  him,  but  the  Eagle  flew  around  the  lodge  and  out  of  the  hole  at  the 

>The  first  five  lines  of  the  remaining  five  verses  are  the  same  as  the  first  verse. 


174  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

top  of  the  lodge.  She  ran  out  following,  crying  as  she  went,  "My  uncle, 
my  uncle,  return  to  me,  for  I  am  all  alone.  Stay  with  me,  and  I  shall 
not  scold  you  any  more. "  But  the  Eagle  flew  on  and  on.  The  woman 
began  to  cry,  but  still  followed  the  Eagle.  It  flew  on  until  it  came  to 
the  lodge  of  the  Badgers.  The  woman  followed  until  she,  too,  came  to 
the  lodge  of  the  Badgers.  They  took  her  in  and  said:  "Why  do  you 
cry  so?"  and  she  said:  "My  uncle  and  I  are  alone.  There  are  no  other 
people  in  the  world,  and  now  he  has  turned  into  an  Eagle.  I  want  to 
catch  him  and  take  him  back  to  our  home."  The  Badgers  said:  "Let 
us  help  this  woman,  and  get  the  Eagle  for  her."  The  Badgers  dug  a 
hole  and  placed  this  woman  in  it,  and  spread  some  limbs  over  the  hole. 
They  killed  a  Badger,  cut  the  bowels  open,  and  spread  them  out  upon  the 
limbs  over  the  hole;  then  the  Badgers  all  disappeared  into  their  holes. 
After  a  while  the  crows,  magpies,  coyotes,  and  other  animals  came  to  the 
hole  to  eat  of  the  dead  badger.  Soon  a  big  flock  of  all  kinds  of  birds 
came  and  flew  around  where  the  badger  was  lying,  and  then  lighted  upon 
the  ground,  and  they  said:  "He  is  coming;  he  is  coming.  We  shall  have 
to  wait  until  he  tastes  of  the  badger."  After  a  while  a  great  wind  was 
heard  above,  and  then  a  scream.  It  was  the  cry  of  the  golden  Eagle, 
which  came  and  lighted  near  all  of  the  birds.  The  Eagle  looked  around 
at  all  the  birds,  the  magpie,  and  coyote  and  then  sang:  "I  am  not  will- 
ing; I  am  not  willing  to  taste  of  this  animal  which  is  cut  open.  Some- 
thing is  wrong;  something  is  under  that."  Then  the  Eagle  flew  up,  and 
as  the  Eagle  flew  up  all  the  other  birds  flew  away.  Even  the  coyotes 
walked  away.  Once  in  a  while  they  turned  to  look  at  the  badger  which 
was  lying  upon  the  limbs.  After  a  while  the  Badgers  came  and  said: 
"Woman,  come  out.  We  are  powerless.  We  can  not  help  you.  You 
see  what  we  have  done,  and  your  uncle  knew  that  you  were  there. " 

Then  the  woman  began  to  cry  and  she  went  on.  All  kinds  of  animals 
tried  to  catch  the  Eagle  for  the  woman  in  the  same  way,  but  the  Eagle 
would  not  eat  of  the  dead  animal  and  would  sing;  "lam  not  willing;  lam 
not  willing  to  eat  of  the  animal."  Then  all  the  other  birds  would  fly 
away.  At  last  the  woman  came  to  a  lodge  of  Elks.  The  Elks  took  her 
in  and  said:  "Woman,  it  is  easy.  We  can  call  any  animal  that  we  want. 
The  Eagle  is  easy  to  catch. "  They  killed  one  elk.  They  cut  out  its 
bowels  and  spread  it  out  upon  the  hole.  The  fat  looked  very  fine.  The 
woman  was  placed  in  the  hole,  under  the  Elk.  The  birds  came,  and  the 
Eagle  came  and  it  said:  "I  am  not  willing  to  eat  of  this  meat.  I  am  not 
willing. "  It  flew  away.  The  Elks  were  surprised.  They  were  sure  that 
the  Eagle  would  eat  of  the  meat.  The  woman  began  to  cry.  She  went  a 
long  distance. 


THE  POOR  BOY  WHO  TURNED  INTO  AN  EAGLE.          175 

After  a  while  she  came  to  the  home  of  the  Buffalo.  There  were  arbors 
and  other  places  as  if  people  had  camped  there.  There  was  a  creek 
on  one  side,  and  upon  the  side  of  a  hill  were  many  Buffalo.  When  the 
girl  went  to  them  they  said:  "We  can  help  you.  We  know  who  this 
bird  is.  Although  he  is  your  uncle,  he  is  not  a  human  being.  His  only 
desire  and  wish  is  that  he  have  human  flesh.  He  is  Morning-Star. 
Morning-Star  is  the  chief  of  all  the  gods  in  the  heavens.  The  other  gods 
are  willing  that  animals  and  buffalo  meat  should  be  offered  to  them, 
but  Morning-Star  wants  human  flesh  offered  to  him.  We  might  kill 
ourselves  and  place  ourselves  on  these  high  hills  near  the  streams  of 
water,  but  he  would  know  that  we  are  trying  to  catch  him.  He  wants 
human  flesh.  We  will  help  you  to  catch  your  uncle,  and  you  yourself 
shall  catch  him.  Now  watch.  We  will  send  big  droves  of  buffalo  into 
this  stream  of  water.  Many  of  them  will  get  stuck  in  the  mud  and  die. 
Others  will  drown.  There  will  be  many  dead  people.  It  will  seem  so, 
but  they  will  not  be  dead.  The  animals  and  the  birds  in  the  air  will  all 
come  together  and  they  will  want  to  eat  of  the  buffalo,  but  they  must 
wait  for  the  golden  Eagle.  We  will  now  take  you.  We  will  cut  you 
open,  and  put  your  bowels  on  one  side.  Your  breast  shall  be  torn  open. 
The  golden  Eagle  will  come  and  will  want  to  eat  the  fat  from  your  heart. 
When  he  lights  upon  your  breast,  and  reaches  for  your  heart,  then  his 
time  has  come.  Then  is  the  time  for  you  to  take  hold  of  his  legs.  Then 
you  shall  have  your  uncle  back."  The  Buffalo  gave  commands  for  the 
droves  to  run  into  the  streams  of  water.  Some  went  into  the  mire  and 
into  the  mud  and  others  were  drowned.  There  were  apparently  many 
dead  buffalo  along  the  stream  of  water.  Near  the  village  was  a  little 
arbor  and  in  this  they  placed  the  girl.  They  cut  her  open  and  put  her 
bowels  to  one  side.  Her  breast  was  torn  open  and  she  lay  like  one  dead. 
The  old  buffalo  went  upon  the  hill  and  sat  down  as  if  they  were  sleeping. 
After  a  while  the  magpies  came,  then  the  crows  came,  and  then  the  coy- 
otes. Other  animals  came  creeping.  All  kinds  of  birds  came,  and  a 
large  flock  of  eagles  came  and  lighted  upon  the  dead  buffalo,  but  they 
dared  not  touch  or  eat  any  of  the  meat.  After  a  while  the  birds  screamed. 
Then  a  big  noise  of  wind  came,  and  the  golden  Eagle  lighted  upon  the 
ground.  It  sat  upon  the  arbor.  It  looked  down  and  saw  the  dead  person 
in  the  arbor.  All  the  animals  listened  to  the  golden  Eagle.  He  sang: 

I  am  now  willing 

To  eat  this  person  lying  there. 

I  am  now  willing 

To  eat  this  person  lying  there. 

As  soon  as  he  had  sung  that,  all  the  animals  and  the  birds  began  to 
eat  of  the  buffalo.  The  golden  Eagle  flew  into  the  arbor,  sat  upon  the 


176  TALES  OP  READY-TO-GIVE. 

breast  of  the  girl,  and  looked  under  the  breast  for  her  heart.  When  it  was 
about  to  reach  for  the  heart  the  girl  took  hold  of  the  legs  of  the  eagle 
and  she  said:  "Where  is  the  heart  that  you  shall  eat?  It  is  I,  your  poor 
niece,  who  has  cried  many  days  over  the  prairies  and  tried  to  catch  you. 
I  shall  take  you  back  and  you  must  remain  with  me  forever. " 

The  instant  the  woman  touched  the  legs  of  the  Eagle,  the  Eagle  turned 
into  the  boy  again.  He  screamed  and  yelled  and  said:  "My  niece,  I  will 
return  with  you  to  your  place.  My  niece,  it  shall  be  so.  When  the  people 
are  living  upon  the  earth  there  will  be  a  time  when  they  shall  capture 
an  enemy  and  the  captured  woman  shall  be  offered  to  the  Morning-Star. 
But  this  offering  shall  not  be  made  unless  several  buffalo  shall  be  killed 
and  made  holy  and  offered  to  the  gods  as  a  sacrifice  to  the  Morning-Star.' ' 
When  the  woman  and  the  boy  went  to  their  field,  dark  clouds  came  and 
covered  them  up  and  they  disappeared  from  the  earth,  and  they  were  no 
more  upon  the  earth.  The  woman  had  returned  to  the  Moon,  and  the 
boy  had  returned  to  the  east  to  stand  behind  his  brother. 


47.  THE  POOR  BOY  WHO  LOST  HIS  POWER.1 

There  lived  in  a  village,  that  the  people  had  deserted,  a  woman  who 
was  very  poor.  There  lived  with  her  a  little  boy  who  was  known  as 
Burnt-Belly.  She  loved  the  little  boy.  She  went  out  into  the  fields 
and  gathered  corn,  squashes,  and  beans  for  him.  One  day  the  little  boy 
got  his  robe  all  white.  The  woman,  though  she  loved  the  little  boy, 
became  angry  and  took  a  stick  and  hit  him  on  the  head.  The  boy  cried; 
then  she  scolded  him  for  crying.  All  at  once  the  boy  took  the  little 
white  robe  and  wrapped  himself  in  it,  leaving  only  his  head  out.  He 
then  began  to  sing: 

Something  fly  towards  me,  my  niece. 
Now  my  toes  are  turning  to  something, 
Are  turning  to  handsome  eagle's  claws, 
Are  turning  to  handsome  eagle's  claws. 

Then  he  sang  again:  "My  aunt,  my  legs  shall  turn  into  eagle's  legs." 
Then  he  sang  again:  "My  aunt,  my  body  shall  turn  into  an  eagle's 
body."  Then  the  woman  turned  around  and  hit  the  boy  on  the  head, 
and  said:  "You  will  turn  into  an  eagle!"  The  boy  kept  on  singing  and 
said:  "My  aunt,  my  arms  shall  turn  into  an  eagle's  wings."  Then  he 
sang  again,  and  said:  "My  aunt,  my  neck  shall  turn  into  eagle's  neck." 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  story  is  similar  to  the  preceding  and  points 
the  same  moral,  viz,  the  value  of  obedience  to  the  gods.  It  may  also  be  regarded 
as  a  Kitkehahki  variant  of  tale  No.  46. 


THE  POOR  BOY  WHO  LOST  HIS  POWER.  177 

Then  the  woman  turned  around  and  said :  "Turn  to  an  eagle! "  Then 
the  boy  sang  again  and  said:  "My  aunt,  my  head  shall  turn  into  an  eagle's 
head."  Then  he  sang  again  and  said:  "My  aunt,  my  nose  shall  turn  into 
an  eagle's  nose."  Then  he  sang  again  and  said:  "My  mouth  shall  turn 
into  an  eagle 's  mouth. "  Then,  as  he  sang,  "My  aunt,  I  shall  fly  up  as  an 
eagle,"  the  woman  turned  around  with  her  stick,  ready  to  strike  the  boy; 
but  he  turned  into  an  Eagle,  threw  off  the  robe,  and  flew  up  into  the  sky. 

The  woman  cried  and  begged  the  boy  to  come  back.  The  Eagle 
would  not  come  back,  but  did  not  go  far  away.  It  stayed  around  where 
the  woman  was.  The  woman  cried  and  cried,  but  the  Eagle  would  say: 
' '  I  will  not  come  down,  for  you  were  mean  to  me. ' '  Then  the  Eagle  would 
fly  away,  and  when  it  came  back  it  would  tell  the  old  woman  that  the 
people  were  coming.  At  last  the  old  woman  begged  the  Eagle  so  hard 
that  it  came  back  to  her  and  turned  into  a  boy  again.  The  boy  was 
older  and  was  stronger  than  he  was  before  he  turned  into  an  eagle.  The 
woman  had  made  a  bow  and  arrows  for  him  and  was  always  careful  not 
to  scold  him  again.  The  boy  took  the  bow  and  arrows  and  went  into 
the  timber  to  hunt.  He  killed  rabbits  and  brought  them  to  his  aunt. 
After  a  while  he  learned  to  kill  deer.  Then  he  said:  "My  aunt,  you  must 
make  me  a  strong  bow  and  better  arrows. "  The  woman  made  them  and 
the  boy  killed  many  deer,  so  that  after  a  while  the  woman  made  a  tipi  out 
of  the  deer  hides.  She  dried  the  meat  and  they  had  plenty  to  eat.  When 
the  people  came  with  very  little  buffalo  meat  they  found  these  people 
with  plenty  of  meat  and  corn. 

When  the  people  came  to  the  village  the  young  man  told  his  aunt 
that  they  must  move  into  the  timber  and  stay.  They  moved  into  the 
timber  and  the  young  man  kept  killing  game.  After  a  while  the  people 
visited  this  tipi  and  they  found  meat  and  dry  hides  around  it.  The  chief 
was  told  about  it.  The  chief  invited  the  young  boy  and  said:  "Can 
you  help  us  to  get  buffalo,  so  that  we  may  also  have  meat?"  The  boy 
said  that  he  could;  then  he  went  back  to  his  tipi.  He  told  his  aunt  that 
he  was  going  to  see  the  chief 's  daughter.  She  said  nothing,  for  fear  she 
might  hurt  his  feelings.  The  young  man  disappeared  as  an  Eagle  and 
was  gone  several  days.  When  he  came  back  he  said  to  his  aunt:  "I  am 
going  to  take  the  people  over  the  hills,  for  I  have  brought  the  buffalo  for 
them.  They  will  bring  some  meat  back  with  them."  The  young  .man 
went  and  told  the  chief  that  he  wanted  the  people  to  follow  him  over  the 
hills.  The  chief  told  the  people  to  go  and  so  they  followed  him,  and 
when  they  went  on  top  of  the  hills  they  saw  many  buffalo.  The  people 
killed  many  buffalo  and  took  the  meat  home.  The  boy  was  then  told 
to  tell  his  aunt  to  move  his  tipi  up  into  the  village.  The  young  man  told 
the  chief  that  he  could  not  do  this,  but  that  if  they  wanted  to  they  could 


Ij8  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

move  to  the  place  where  he  lived.  The  people  moved  into  the  timber 
and  the  chief  then  invited  the  boy  and  said:  "My  son,  I  give  you  my 
daughter  to  marry. "  The  young  boy  said:  "The  chief  is  good,  but  I  can 
not  take  her  just  now."  The  chief  insisted  and  said:  "The  girl  shall 
go  to  your  home. "  The  girl  went  to  the  boy's  home  and  stayed  all  night. 
The  next  time  the  boy  tried  to  get  the  buffalo  he  found  that  his  power 
was  gone  from  him,  for  he  had  lain  with  a  girl  and  had  no  more  power. 
If  he  had  killed  buffalo  four  times  for  the  people  he  might  have  mar- 
ried and  still  kept  his  power;  but  before  killing  buffalo  four  times  he 
married  and  so  he  lost  his  power. 

48.  THE  FLINT  MAN.1 

A  man  went  alone  to  a  far-away  country.  For  many,  many  days  he 
traveled  and  at  last  he  came  to  a  prairie  country.  As  he  was  going 
through  the  prairie  country  he  saw  something  at  a  distance  that  spar- 
kled. He  went  up  to  the  object  that  sparkled,  and  found  that  it  was  a 
man  made  of  flint.  The  flint  man  spoke  to  the  man  and  said,  "Nawa, " 
and  then  spoke  again  and  said:  "Sit  down  and  smoke  with  me."  The 
flint  man  reached  and  took  a  pipe  which  was  made  from  a  stick,  for  there 
was  no  stone  bowl  at  the  end.  The  stone  man  filled  the  stick  with 
native  tobacco,  gave  it  to  the  man,  and  told  him  to  light  it.  The  man 
began  to  smoke,  and  as  the  smoke  got  into  his  eyes,  the  stone  man  spoke 
and  said:  "You  shall  not  see  me  for  a  while."  The  man  looked  to  the 
place  where  the  flint  man  sat,  but  could  not  see  him.  He  again  heard 
the  voice  of  the  flint  man  saying:  "I  can  see  people  far  away.  I  am 
made  of  flint,  but  I  have  powers  from  the  gods  to  transform  myself  into 
anything  that  I  want  to  be.  Now  I  want  to  turn  into  a  man. " 

The  man  looked  and  saw  a  man  sitting  in  the  place  where  the  flint 
man  had  been.  The  man  then  said:  "I  shall  give  you  power  to  turn  into 
stone,  and  I  shall  also  give  you  power  to  call  the  rain.  When  there  is 
no  rain,  and  the  people  need  the  rain  very  badly,  then  take  this  flint 
that  I  shall  give  you  and  lift  it  to  heaven  and  then  place  it  on  the  ground, 
sprinkle  water  on  it,  and  clouds  will  form  in  the  west,  and  the  clouds  will 
come  and  it  will  rain.  You  are  poor,  but  I  shall  make  you  a  powerful 
man.  I  shall  now  become  a  piece  of  flint,  and  shall  go  with  you  wherever 
you  go.  When  you  have  returned  to  your  people,  heal  the  sick  by  placing 
me  upon  the  pains.  I  will  remove  the  pains  and  the  sick  will  become 

'Told  by  White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  The  tale  illustrates  the  respect  paid  by  the 
Pawnee  to  the  flint  which  they  used  in  arrow  heads,  knives,  etc.  It  especially  teaches, 
on  the  part  of  boys,  respect  for  flint  and  the  belief  in  general  that  flint  had  its  origin 
from  the  powers  in  the  west,  especially  in  lightning. 


THE  FLINT  MAN.  179 

well.  Now  I  shall  turn  into  a  small  stone.  Take  me  and  carry  me  to 
your  people.  Smoke  with  me  and  talk  to  me  and  I  will  listen  to  your 
prayers. "  The  man  who  was  sitting  down  turned  into  flint  and  the  stone 
grew  smaller  and  smaller  until  it  became  a  very  little  stone.  The  man 
picked  it  up  and  he  saw  that  on  one  side  of  the  stone  was  the  picture  of 
the  sun ;  on  the  other  side,  the  picture  of  the  moon  and  several  stars. 

He  took  the  stone  home  and  placed  it  on  the  altar  in  the  west  of  the 
lodge.  He  invited  several  of  his  friends,  and  as  his  friends  came  in  they 
brought  presents  of  black  handkerchiefs  and  buckskin  to  make  a  cover- 
ing for  the  stone.  The  man  who  found  the  stone  filled  his  pipe  and 
gave  four  whiffs  to  the  stone,  four  whiffs  to  the  ground,  and  then  dumped 
the  ashes  in  front  of  the  stone.  Then  he  wrapped  a  black  handkerchief 
about  the  stone,  and  then  wrapped  buckskin  about  it  for  an  outer  cover- 
ing. The  bundle  was  tied  and  placed  to  the  side  of  the  lodge. 

The  possessor  of  the  stone  heard  of  a  wonderful  being  that  lived  close 
to  a  big  lake.  He  was  told  that  the  monster  lay  upon  the  banks  of  the 
great  lake,  and  killed  all  who  came  near.  This  man  made  up  his  mind 
that  he  would  go  and  visit  this  monster.  He  started,  and  when  he  got 
close  to  the  lake  he  saw  the  monster  lying  upon  the  banks  of  the  lake. 
He  saw  many  human  bones  and  skulls  scattered  around  the  monster. 
As  the  man  came  nearer,  the  monster  began  to  groan  as  if  in  pain.  The 
man  went  close  to  the  monster  and  asked  what  the  trouble  was.  The 
monster  said:  "I  have  a  pain  in  my  back.  If  you  will  be  kind  enough 
to  step  upon  my  back  I  will  be  thankful. "  The  man  said  that  he  would 
do  so,  but  before  he  did  he  spoke  to  his  stone  and  said:  "My  brother, 
turn  me  into  flint  so  that  I  may  kill  this  monster."  The  man  jumped 
on  the  monster  and  as  he  jumped  he  saw  several  sharp  bones  sticking 
up  from  the  monster's  back.  Instead  of  sticking  into  the  flesh  of  the 
man,  the  bones  broke  as  they  struck  him,  for  he  had  turned  into  flint. 
After  all  of  the  bones  were  broken  by  striking  against  the  man  of  flint, 
the  man  walked  to  the  monster 's  head  and  jumped  until  he  had  pounded 
the  monster's  brains  out  with  his  flint  feet. 

The  man  went  home  and  told  the  people  that  he  had  killed  the  mon- 
ster which  was  upon  the  banks  of  the  lake.  The  people  went  there  and 
found  the  monster  dead.  They  cut  the  monster  up,  took  fat  and  flesh 
from  different  parts  of  its  body,  and  mixed  their  medicines  with  it. 

The  man  heard  that  in  a  certain  part  of  the  country  there  were  seven 
spotted  calves  that  tried  to  kill  people  and  were  very  dangerous.  He 
went  to  the  place  and  saw  the  spotted  calves  sliding  down  a  hill  on  sleds 
strung  together  with  buffalo  ribs.  When  the  spotted  buffalo  calves 
saw  the  man  coming  they  asked  him  if  he  would  like  to  slide  down  the 
hill  with  them,  and  he  said  that  he  would.  They  gave  him  a  sled  and 


l8o  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

told  him  to  take  the  lead  and  that  they  would  follow.  The  man  was  sus- 
picious of  the  spotted  calves,  and  so  he  spoke  to  his  brother,  the  flint, 
and  asked  him  to  help  turn  him  into  stone,  as  he  thought  the  spotted 
calves  were  going  to  try  to  kick  him  to  death.  The  man  got  into  his  sled, 
and  the  spotted  calves  followed  him  down  the  hill.  They  kicked  him  in 
every  way,  but  they  could  not  hurt  him  or  even  make  a  mark  on  his  flesh. 
When  they  reached  the  foot  of  the  hill,  the  man  said:  "Now  it  is  my 
turn.  You  take  the  lead  and  I  will  follow. "  Then  the  man  asked  of  the 
spotted  calves  why  there  were  so  many  human  skeletons  at  the  bottom 
of  the  hill.  They  did  not  answer,  but  he  knew  that  they  were  the  bones 
of  the  people  whom  they  had  killed.  They  went  up  the  hill  again,  and 
the  calves  got  into  their  sleds  and  started  down  first.  The  man  followed, 
and  whenever  he  was  close  enough  he  would  reach  out  and  kick  one  of  the 
calves.  Whenever  he  kicked  one  it  fell  from  the  sled  and  was  killed. 
By  the  time  the  man  reached  the  foot  of  the  hill  he  had  killed  all.  He 
went  to  the  village  and  told  the  people  that  he  had  killed  the  seven  spot- 
ted calves.  Some  of  the  men  went  and  skinned  the  spotted  calves, 
and  brought  them  to  the  village,  so  that  the  people  knew  that  the  spotted 
calves  were  no  longer  living,  but  that  the  man  had  killed  them. 

Several  days  afterwards  the  man  was  told  that  there  was  a  certain 
being  in  the  west  who  ate  so  much  that  nothing  was  left  for  the  people, 
but  if  that  being  were  killed  or  removed  the  people  would  then  have 
plenty  to  eat.  This  man  went  to  the  place  and  when  he  arrived  there  he 
found  a  Buffalo  bull  standing  upon  a  hill.  When  the  Buffalo  bull  saw 
the  man  it  grunted,  rolled,  and  groaned.  Then  it  hooked  the  earth; 
dug  up  pieces  of  earth  with  its  horns.  It  ran  towards  the  man,  but  the 
man  had  turned  into  stone.  When  the  poor  bull  tried  to  hook  him  it 
only  broke  its  horns  on  the  hard  stone.  The  man  killed  the  Buffalo  with 
his  arrows.  No  sooner  had  he  killed  it  than  he  found  out  that  the  bull 
was  chief  of  all  the  Buffalo.  He  was  frightened  and  went  home.  He  told 
the  people  that  he  had  killed  the  buffalo,  and  for  them  to  make  haste  and 
prepare  arrows,  for  they  must  try  to  kill  some  of  the  Buffalo.  The  man's 
father  became  frightened  and  said:  "My  son,  what  shall  our  people  do  to 
be  saved?  You  have  killed  the  chief  of  all  the  Buffalo.  They  will  now 
come  and  try  to  kill  us.  "  The  man  went  to  work  and  took  stones  from 
the  hillsides  and  placed  them  around  the  village,  about  three  feet  apart; 
then  he  told  the  people  to  stay  inside.  The  stones  grew  and  made  a 
high  wall  around  the  village,  with  many  openings,  through  which  the  peo- 
ple could  shoot  their  arrows. 

All  at  once  the  people  saw  a  cloud  of  dust  in  the  west  reaching  up  to 
the  sky.  They  then  knew  that  the  buffalo  were  coming.  The  buffalo 


THE  FLINT  MAN.  l8l 

came  and  in  their  fury  they  did  not  see  the  stones  which  encircled  the 
village,  and  they  ran  into  them  and  broke  their  horns  and  skulls  against 
the  hard  wall.  They  became  wild  with  excitement  and  began  to  kill  one 
another.  After  that  they  ran  in  every  direction  and  scattered  all  over 
the  land.  The  next  day  the  stones  which  were  around  the  village  had 
become  small  again  and  were  their  natural  size.  The  people  left  these 
stones  in  a  circle  and  went  off  to  another  country  to  kill  buffalo.  The 
stones  were  left  in  a  circle,  to  remind  the  people  that  at  one  time  one  of 
their  number  had  placed  them  in  a  circle  to  save  his  people  from  being 
destroyed  by  the  buffalo. 

Years  afterwards  the  man  lost  the  stone  which  he  had  in  his  posses- 
sion. He  tried  to  find  it,  but  he  could  not,  for  some  one  had  stolen  it  from 
him.  The  gods  in  the  heavens  were  angry  at  him  because  he  had  lost 
the  stone.  They  sent  a  rain  storm  from  the  west.  He  saw  the  storm 
coming  and  told  the  people  that  Lightning  was  going  to  take  him  and 
that  he  was  to  be  placed  in  the  heavens  as  one  of  the  gods.  The  storm 
came  and  lightning  struck  the  man  and  killed  him  instantly.  The  people 
were  afraid  to  touch  him,  and  so  they  let  him  alone,  and  moved  away  to 
another  country. 

49.  THE   TURKEY   RITUAL.1 

One  day  the  crier  ran  out  and  shouted,  so  that  all  of  the  people  in  the 
village  could  hear,  that  there  were  a  great  many  warriors  coming  to  the 
village.  When  the  people  who  were  left  inside  the  lodges  heard  that 
warriors  were  coming  they  all  turned  out.  Even  Spider- Woman,  who 
had  her  lodge  farther  away  from  the  village,  went  with  them.  The  peo- 
ple went  outside  of  the  village  to  meet  the  great  company  of  warriors. 
As  they  came  near  they  saw  that  they  were  Turkeys.  The  old  man 
shouted  and  said :  ' '  Everybody  keep  quiet  and  we  will  hear  from  these 
warriors  where  they  have  been."  Old  Gobbler  began  to  sing: 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Far  away  by  walking  we  will  arrive. 

There  where  the  blue  clay  lies  under  the  earth. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

And  that  is  why 

Our  coats  are  shiny  and  oily. 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  tale  is  similar  to  many  others  in  which  the 
buffalo  voluntarily  offer  themselves  to  people  for  food.  Besides  the  interesting 
references  in  the  tale  which  afford  explanations  of  certain  rites,  the  story  is  in- 
teresting because  it  teaches  the  young  men  that  a  prophet  is  without  honor  in  his 
own  country.  In  other  words,  to  obtain  the  favor  of  the  young  women  they  must 
go  off  into  the  enemy's  country  and  perform  deeds  of  valor.  The  paints  referred 
to  in  the  tale  are  supposed  to  be  those  found  in  the  color  of  the  turkey's  coat. 


l8a  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

Then  the  old  man  cried  out  and  told  the  people  what  the  Turkeys  said: 
' '  These  people  have  been  where  the  blue  clay  lies  under  the  earth,  and  that 
is  why  their  coats  are  shiny  and  oily. "  Again  the  Gobbler  sang: 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Far  away  by  walking  we  will  arrive. 

There  where  the  red  paint  is  buried  under  the  earth. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

And  that  is  why 

Our  legs  are  painted  red. 

Then  the  old  man  cried  out  and  told  the  people  what  the  Turkeys  said : 
"These  people  have  been  where  the  red  paint  is  buried  under  the  earth, 
and  that  is  why  their  legs  are  painted  red."  Again  the  Gobbler  sang: 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Far  away  by  walking  we  will  arrive. 

There  where  the  white  clay  lies  under  the  earth. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

And  that  is  why 

Our  coats  are  spotted  with  white. 

Then  the  old  man  cried  out  and  told  the  people  what  the  Turkeys  said : 
"These  people  have  been  where  the  white  clay  lies  under  the  earth,  and 
that  is  why  their  coats  are  spotted  with  white. "  Again  the  Gobbler  sang: 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Far  away  by  walking  we  will  arrive. 

There  where  the  yellow  clay  lies  under  the  earth. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

And  that  is  why 

Our  mouths  are  painted   yellow. 

Then  the  old  man  cried  out  and  told  the  people  what  the  Turkeys  said: 
"These  people  have  been  where  the  yellow  clay  lies  under  the  earth,  and 
that  is  why  their  mouths  are  painted  yellow. "  Again  the  Gobbler  sang: 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Far  away  by  walking  we  will  arrive. 

There  where  under  the  ground  we  found  salt. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

And  that  is  why 

We  have  dandruff  on  our  heads. 

Then  the  old  man  cried  out  and  told  the  people  what  the  Turkeys  said: 
"These  people  have  been  where  the  salt  lies  under  the  earth,  and  that  is 
why  they  have  dandruff  on  their  heads. " 


THE  TURKEY  RITUAL.  183 

Again  the  Gobbler  sang: 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Far  away  by  walking  we  will  arrive. 

There  where  rocks  abound. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

Yonder  are  acorns  hanging  upon  the  trees. 

And  that  is  why 

Our  feet  are  flat  and  rough. 

Then  the  old  man  cried  out  and  told  the  people  what  the  Turkeys  said: 
"These  people  have  been  where  the  rocks  abound,  and  that  is  why  their 
feet  are  flat  and  rough." 

Then  the  old  man  told  the  people  that  the  Turkeys  were  going  to  the 
land  in  the  south  where  the  rocks  abound  and  where  there  were  many 
acorns ;  that  they  wanted  the  people  to  know  that  there  they  would  always 
live,  so  that  the  people  could  come  there  and  hunt  and  kill  them. 

50.  THE  BOY  WHO  TURNED  INTO  A  PRAIRIE  DOG.1 

There  was  a  village  upon  the  side  of  a  hill.  Near  this  village,  towards 
the  east,  was  a  creek.  Across  the  creek  was  a  Prairie  Dog  town. 

In  the  village  was  a  little  boy  whose  name  was  Black-Eyes.  The  boy 
was  good-looking  and  everyone  liked  him.  He  grew  up  and  was  now 
a  young  man.  He  saw  a  nice-looking  young  girl  in  the  village.  Every 
day  the  boy  stayed  around  the  place  where  the  people  dipped  their  water 
from  the  creek.  He  waited  there  for  the  girl.  One  day  the  girl  came. 
The  boy  talked  to  her,  and  she  scolded  him.  The  boy  did  not  mind  the 
scolding  and  followed  her  toward  the  village.  Just  before  they  entered 
the  village  she  stopped  the  boy  and  said:  "Boy,  I  want  you  to  know 
that  I  do  not  care  for  you.  I  can  never  marry  you  and,  I  do  not  want 
you  to  talk  to  me  any  more. " 

The  boy  was  sorry,  and  told  his  mother  about  it.  While  he  was  tell- 
ing his  mother  about  the  matter  he  nearly  cried.  The  mother  told  him 
not  to  cry,  as  there  were  many  other  girls  in  the  tribe.  The  boy  took  his 
bow  and  arrows  and  said :"  Mother,  I  am  going. "  The  boy  went  out  from 
the  lodge  and  traveled  east.  He  crossed  the  stream  of  water  and  as  soon 
as  he  got  over  to  the  other  side  he  began  to  cry.  His  tears  dropped  on 
the  ground.  He  entered  the  Prairie  Dog  town.  In  the  center  of  the 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  tale  illustrates  the  breadth  of  the  feeling  of 
relationship  on  the  part  of  the  Pawnee  to  the  animal  supernatural  beings,  the  re- 
lationship to  the  prairie  dogs  being  brought  out  in  this  special  tale,  and  for  this 
reason  the  Pawnee  told  their  children  they  live  in  earth-lodges,  which  they  compare 
to  the  so-called  prairie-dogs'  lodge. 


184  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

Prairie  Dog  town  stood  a  young  girl.    The  boy  went  there ;  she  took  him 
in  and  there  they  lived  together  in  her  lodge  under  the  ground. 

The  woman  hunted  for  her  son.  She  traveled  east.  She  saw  his  foot- 
prints just  before  he  entered  the  stream  of  water.  Then  she  began  to  sing: 

Yonder,  truly,  is  my  poor  boy, 

His  eyes  like  grains  of  black  corn. 

Here  and  there  are  his  tear-drops. 

Yonder,  weeping,  I  go. 

She  crossed  the  stream  of  water,  and  as  she  did  so  she  looked  upon 
the  bank  and  there  she  saw  his  tear-drops  upon  the  sand.  She  began  to 

sing  again: 

Truly,  he  went  along  here,  my  poor  boy, 

His  eyes  like  grains  of  black  corn, 

Here  are  his  footprints. 

Yonder,  weeping,  I  go. 
She  went  on  and  she  saw  his  footprints  plainly.      Then  again  she  sang: 

Truly,  he  went  along  here,  my  poor  boy, 

His  eyes  like  grains  of  black  corn. 

Here,  across  the  stream,  I  see  many  marks  of  his  tears. 

Yonder,  weeping,  I  go. 

The  woman  went  into  the  village  of  the  Prairie  Dogs,  and  there  in 
the  center  was  a  big  hole  and  the  footprints  ended  there.  The  woman 
began  to  cry.  She  cried  for  several  days.  In  the  day  time  she  saw  two 
Prairie  Dogs  come  out  from  the  hole  where  the  footprints  ended.  After 
she  had  been  there  for  several  days  she  lay  down  and  had  a  dream.  She 
thought  she  saw  a  woman  who  was  very  young  and  beautiful.  She  was 
not  tall.  She  was  small  and  was  very  handsome.  In  the  dream  this 
girl  said:  "Woman,  you  must  not  cry  any  more  for  your  son,  for  he  is 
married  to  me.  The  girls  of  your  people  refused  to  marry  him.  He 
came  to  our  village;  I  took  him  in  and  married  him.  We  are  living 
together  and  are  happy.  There  is  but  one  way  by  which  you  can  get 
your  son.  Your  son  has  forgotten  all  about  your  people.  Go  to  your 
home.  In  his  quiver  there  is  one  black  arrow  which  the  boy  made  him- 
self and  of  which  he  thought  a  great  deal.  Bring  that  arrow,  and  lay  it 
near  the  hole.  You  must  then  lie  down. " 

When  the  woman  awoke  she  went  to  her  home  and  found  the  arrow 
of  which  the  girl  had  spoken.  She  took  the  arrow,  went  back  to  the 
Prairie  Dog  town,  and  placed  the  arrow  near  the  hole.  In  the  morning 
the  woman  lay  down  near  the  arrow.  Two  Prairie  Dogs  came  out.  As 
the  boy  Prairie  Dog  came  to  where  the  arrow  was  he  saw  it,  and  jumped 
at  it,  and  as  soon  as  he  caught  the  arrow  the  Prairie  Dog  turned  into  a  boy 
again.  The  woman  got  up,  took  him,  and  said:  "My  son,  I  have  been 
crying  for  many  days,  for  I  had  lost  you. "  Then  the  boy  said,  "Mother, 
we  shall  go  home,  but  I  must  take  my  wife  with  me,  for  she  is  soon  to  bear 


THE  BOY  WHO  TURNED  INTO  A  PRAIRIE  DOG.  185 

a  child.  "  The  boy  then  spoke  to  the  female  Prairie  Dog,  and  she  came  to 
him.  As  the  mother  and  son  walked  along,  the  Prairie  Dog  wife  followed 
them,  her  belly  nearly  touching  the  ground,  for  she  was  pregnant.  When 
they  reached  the  village  the  little  Prairie  Dog  wife  rolled  around  in  the  dust, 
turned  herself  into  a  woman,  and  the  three  then  entered  the  village. 

The  boy  and  the  girl  lived  in  the  village  for  many  years,  and  had  many 
children.  The  boy  became  a  great  man.  The  Prairie  Dog  woman  told 
the  young  man  that  he  should  never  lie  with  a  certain  woman,  because 
it  was  through  her  that  he  had  gone  away. 

One  time  the  boy  was  going  from  the  creek  to  the  village,  when  he  met 
this  girl.  She  spoke  to  him  and  he  did  not  pay  any  attention  to  her.  She 
continued  talking  and  at  last  he  stopped.  She  asked  him  why  he  never 
spoke  to  her.  The  boy  told  her  why,  and  the  woman  said  that  she  had 
been  sorry  that  she  spoke  as  she  did  when  she  really  did  not  mean  it. 
They  went  into  the  brush  and  were  together. 

On  the  way  to  his  home  the  boy  met  his  wife  and  all  his  children. 
She  scolded  him  and  said  that  she  had  told  him  not  to  associate  with 
this  woman  ;  that  he  had  not  minded  her.  The  boy  begged  with  her,  but 
it  did  no  good.  She  kept  traveling  on  until  they  crossed  the  stream. 
As  soon  as  they  crossed  the  stream  the  girl  said:  "Now  go  to  your  people 
and  stay  there.  I  am  going  to  my  people  with  my  children.  "  Then  the 
girl  and  the  children  turned  into  Prairie  Dogs.  The  boy  returned  to  the 
village  and  he  began  to  have  bad  luck.  At  last  he  died  a  broken-hearted 
man. 

'51.  THE  GAMBLER  AND  THE  GAMING  STICKS.1 

Two  young  brothers  lived  in  a  village.  The  older  wore  yellow  paint 
all  the  time,  and  always  carried  a  cougar  quiver  with  black  arrows  in  it 
and  a  dark  red  bow.  The  younger  boy  was  more  quiet  but  more  won- 
derful than  the  older  brother.  Not  far  from  their  village  was  another 
village,  and  many  young  men  went  there  and  never  returned.  It  had 


by  Beaver,  a  Chaui  medicine-man.  This  tale  may  be  regarded  as  a 
variant  of  No.  27,  but  it  is  not  believed  to  be  true,  as  is  that  tale,  and  hence  is  placed 
here.  Still  other  versions  were  obtained  from  the  other  bands,  especially  two  from 
the  Kitkehahki,  one  told  by  Thief,  the  other  by  White-Sun.  According  to  the 
first  version  the  Gambler  obtained  his  sticks  from  the  Witch-  Woman,  and  lost  his 
power  by  the  theft  of  his  favorite  ring  by  a  buffalo,  which  had  been  informed  by  a 
traitor  in  his  village.  In  the  other  Kitkehahki  version,  the  brothers  always  dressed 
exactly  alike.  The  Gambler's  assistant  is  a  little  boy,  who,  however,  warns  the 
second  brother  of  the  futility  of  playing  with  the  Gambler.  This  second  brother 
obtains  his  magic  gaming  implements  from  buffalo  skulls,  to  whom  he  prays  on 
the  prairie  and  which  become  live  animals  —  a  strong  young  bull  and  a  cow  rolling 
in  the  dust  and  offering  themselves  as  javelin  and  ring;  thus  the  chance  of  success 
would  be  greater  on  account  of  the  tendency  of  the  two  sexes  to  come  together. 


1 86  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

been  rumored  that  a  gambler  lived  in  that  village  and  that  all  the  men 
who  had  disappeared  had  played  with  him  and  had  lost  their  lives  by 
gambling  them  away  after  they  had  lost  everything  else;  that  this  man's 
wife  was  Spider- Woman,  and  that  she  liked  to  eat  people. 

One  day  the  older  brother  went  off;  he  traveled  east  for  many  days. 
At  last  he  came  to  a  hill,  and  on  one  side  of  the  hill  there  was  a  steep 
bank.  Here  the  young  man  sat,  looking  at  the  strange  village.  A 
young  man,  errand  man  for  the  gambler,  saw  him.  This  errand  man 
made  it  his  business  to  watch  and  if  any  strangers  came  to  the  village 
reported  to  the  gambler,  who  invited  the  stranger  to  eat  with  him.  The 
errand  man  went  and  told  the  gambler  that  he  had  seen  a  strange  young 
man  and  that  he  was  fine-looking.  The  gambler  sent  the  boy  out  to  see 
where  the  stranger  would  stop.  The  young  man  on  the  hill  arose  and 
went  to  the  village,  and  was  invited  to  one  of  the  lodges.  The  people 
told  this  young  man  that  the  gambler  would  be  good  to  him  and  would 
invite  him  to  eat  with  him,  but  they  told  him  not  to  go. 

While  he  was  eating  the  errand  man  came  and  said:  "I  invite  you 
to  go  to  the  tipi  of  the  gambler,  who  wants  to  talk  with  you. "  The 
boy  arose  and  went,  thinking  he  had  power  to  destroy  the  gambler  and 
win  from  him.  The  gambler  was  glad  to  see  the  boy  and  gave  him  a 
seat  near  him,  saying:  "You  must  have  traveled  far.  I  shall  give  you 
the  best  I  have  for  your  dinner. "  The  old  woman  whispered  to  the  sky 
and  said:  "I  shall  have  his  head  in  the  center,  and  I  shall  move  other 
heads  down. "  A  wooden  bowl  was  placed  in  front  of  the  boy,  filled 
with  what  looked  like  black  corn.  The  boy  ate,  and  as  he  ate,  his  power 
went  from  him,  for  he  was  eating  human  eyes.  After  eating,  the  man 
said:  "Well,  my  son,  may  we  play  a  little  with  the  sticks?"  The  boy 
said:  "I  am  tired;  I  will  play  with  you  to-morrow." 

The  next  day  preparations  were  made  for  the  game.  They  went  to 
the  place  and  there  they  played.  The  gambler  had  many  people  on  his 
side  and  the  boy  had  many  on  his  side.  The  boy  lost  everything  he  had. 
Then  the  gambler  said;  "I  want  you  to  put  up  yourself,  and  if  I  beat 
you  I  shall  kill  you;  if  you  beat  me  you  will  kill  me. "  The  boy  consented 
and  they  played.  The  boy  lost.  The  old  witch  kept  dancing  around, 
while  the  game  was  going  on,  and  yelling:  "What  a  fine  head  he  has! 
He  shall  be  mine!"  As  the  boy  lost,  the  people  ran  away.  The  young 
man  was  taken  to  a  place  where  the  people  were  killed,  and  his  head 
was  chopped  off.  The  head  was  taken  into  the  lodge  and  the  body  left 
outside. 

After  a  long  while  the  people  began  to  wonder  why  the  boy  did  not 
appear  at  his  home,  and  they  asked  for  him  through  the  village,  but 


THE  GAMBLER  AND  THE  GAMING  STICKS.  187 

could  no  get  trace  of  him.  The  younger  brother  sent  birds  out  to  see 
where  the  boy  had  gone.  The  Raven  came  back  to  him  and  said:  "Your 
brother  is  dead.  His  head  is  at  the  gambler's  lodge."  The  boy  said: 
"I  will  at  once  start  out  to  hunt  my  brother. "  The  boy  started,  and  as 
he  went  he  brought  all  of  his  powers  into  play  so  that  he  could  see  well. 
He  followed  the  steps  of  his  brother,  and  where  his  brother  had  slept  there 
he  slept. 

After  a  while  he  came  to  the  bank  where  his  brother  had  sat,  and  as 
he  sat  down  he  saw  the  errand  man  watching  him.  The  boy  said  to  him- 
self:  "I  know  you;  I  will  fix  you. "  He  arose  and  went  to  the  tipi  where 
his  brother  had  stayed.  He  was  welcomed,  for  he  looked  so  much  like 
the  other  boy.  The  people  told  him  that  he  would  surely  be  invited  to 
the  gambler's,  and  they  said:  "He  will  offer  you  something  to  eat,  and 
it  will  be  human  eyes.  Do  not  eat  them;  tell  him  that  you  ate  plenti- 
fully and  do  not  care  to  eat  any  more,  but  if  he  does  not  object  you  would 
like  to  take  the  food  to  your  stopping-place.  If  you  bring  the  food,  we 
will  take  it  out  and  throw  it  away. "  The  errand  man  came  around  and 
said:  "The  gambler  wishes  you  to  eat  with  him. "  The  boy  said,  "Very 
well;  I  will  go. "  The  boy  went,  and  as  he  entered  the  lodge  the  gambler 
told  him  to  take  a  seat  by  him.  They  offered  him  the  bowl  of  eyes,  but 
he  would  not  eat  them.  He  said  that  he  had  eaten  plenty.  The  young 
man  was  asked  if  he  could  play  the  game  of  sticks.  He  said:  "Yes;  I  will 
play  with  you,  but  as  I  am  tired  I  will  put  it  off  until  the  fifth  day. " 
"Very  well,"  said  the  gambler.  The  boy  told  them  that  he  wanted  to 
take  the  bowl  to  his  stopping-place,  so  that  when  he  should  become 
hungry  he  could  eat  it. 

The  next  two  days  the  boy  spent  around  the  tipi,  for  he  was  thinking 
of  his  brother  who  had  been  killed.  On  the  third  day  he  was  invited 
again.  The  people  with  whom  he  stopped  said:  "This  time  he  will 
try  to  feed  you  dried  human  ears.  He  will  try  to  make  you  believe  that 
they  are  pieces  of  squash."  The  boy  went  to  the  gambler's  lodge. 
They  were  very  kind  to  him  and  offered  him  the  bowl  of  squash.  The 
boy  said  that  he  was  sorry,  but  he  had  eaten  so  much  that  he  could  not 
eat  any  more ;  but  he  was  very  fond  of  squash  and  wished  that  he  could 
take  it  to  his  stopping-place.  He  arose  and  took  the  bowl  of  human  ears 
with  him.  The  people  received  the  bowl  and  threw  the  contents  away. 
The  bowl  was  taken  back  to  the  gambler's  lodge. 

The  fourth  day  came  and  the  boy  asked  the  man  who  was  in  the 
lodge  if  he  could  tell  him  of  a  place  where  there  were  buffalo  wallows  and 
bones.  "Yes,"  said  the  man;  "I  can  show  you.  You  see  yonder  hill- 
side ?  There  is  where  the  bones  are.  There  the  buffalo  have  been  slaugh- 


l88  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

tered  by  people  who  did  not  take  the  bones  home.  They  took  only 
the  meat  and  left  most  of  the  buffalo  on  the  prairie."  On  the  fourth 
night  the  boy  went  to  the  place,  and  there  were  many  skeletons  of  buffalo. 
He  began  to  cry.  He  went  from  one  to  another  set  of  bones  and  con- 
tinued to  cry.  After  a  while  he  came  to  a  set  of  bones  where  there  was  a 
bull  skull.  Its  horns  were  not  smooth  and  were  loose,  and  it  seemed 
very  old.  The  boy  stood  at  the  head  and  cried.  Then  he  sang  a  song: 

My  father,  my  father, 
The  reason  I  am  crying, 
The  gambler  has  requested 
That  I  play  sticks  with  him, 
And  I  have  no  sticks. 
Give  me  sticks,  father, 
Give  me  a  ring,  mother. 

The  old  bull  said:  "My  grandchild,  I  am  very  sorry  for  you  and 
we  will  try  to  help  you.  These  are  my  children  lying  around  here.  We 
have  made  up  our  minds  to  help  you.  I  myself  can  not  do  it,  for  I  am  old 
and  can  not  stand  the  game,  but  there  are  some  young  bulls  who  will  help 
you,  for  we  want  to  get  rid  of  the  gambler.  Now  go.  The  spirits  of  the 
buffalo  have  all  returned."  The  boy  continued  to  go  around  from  one 
set  of  bones  to  another,  crying  as  he  went.  At  last  he  came  to  the  skull 
of  a  bull  whose  horns  were  sharp  and  turned  in  at  the  tops.  Here  he 
stopped  and  cried  and  cried.  At  last  the  skull  spoke  and  said:  "My 
son,  what  are  you  crying  for?"  The  boy  then  sang,  saying  in  his  song: 
"I  am  crying,  for  I  am  about  to  play  sticks  with  the  gambler,  and  I  have 
no  sticks.  Pity  me!  Help  me!  Give  me  sticks  and  a  ring,  so  that  I 
can  beat  this  gambler.  We  are  to  put  up  our  lives."  The  young  bull 
said:  "Very  well,  my  son.  We  shall  help  you.  I  am  the  strongest  bull. 
I  can  fight  a  long  time  and  never  get  tired.  Now  watch. "  The  boy 
watched,  and  buffalo  came  from  different  directions.  They  made  a 
bellowing  noise  and  all  ran  and  stopped  where  these  bones  were;  then 
they  stamped  and  fought.  At  last  these  buffalo  dispersed  and  he  heard 
one  say:  "There  he  goes!"  The  boy  looked  and  the  buffalo  disappeared, 
and  there  where  the  buffalo  were  he  saw  a  stick.  A  voice  came  from 
the  stick  and  said:  "I  will  be  one  to  beat  the  gambler.  Take  me  and 
see  that  the  point  is  burnt  black." 

Now  the  boy  went  farther,  and  he  came  to  a  skull  of  a  young  bu\l, 
whose  horns  were  yet  straight.  The  boy  then  stood  and  cried.  The  head 
moved  and  said:  "My  son,  I  will  help  you.  I  am  young  and  easily 
give  out.  I  will  be  the  white  stick,  and  the  man  shall  choose  me  and  use 
me.  I  will  be  the  fine-looking  stick;  also  very  light.  I  will  not  try  to 
go  after  the  ring,  for  I  never  had  intercourse  with  any  female.  Now 


THE  GAMBLER  AND  THE  GAMING  STICKS.  l8g 

watch  and  I  shall  move."  Something  moved.  The  buffalo  had  turned 
into  a  playing  stick,  without  ceremony,  for  it  was  to  be  the  gambler's 
stick.  The  boy  picked  up  the  stick  and  went  to  another  set  of  bones. 
Again  he  cried,  and  some  one  spoke  to  him  and  said:  "Go  over 
yonder,  for  there  are  bones  of  a  young  woman  buffalo  who  had  just 
learned  to  be  after  buffalo  bulls.  She  can  run  and  beat  all  the  other 
buffalo  women. "  The  boy  went  to  the  skeleton  of  a  young  female  calf, 
and  cried  and  cried.  He  did  not  hear  anything,  so  he  threw  the  sticks 
in  front  of  the  skeleton  and  then  a  female  voice  said:  "I  will  help  you,  but 
the  bulls  must  come  and  turn  me  into  a  ring. "  The  boy  cried  the  harder 
and  sang:  "Help  me,  my  grandfathers.  Give  me  a  ring  to  go  with 
these  sticks,  so  that  I  can  beat  the  bad  man  who  is  killing  people  and 
eating  them."  All  at  once  there  was  a  rush  of  buffalo  bulls  where  the 
boy  stood.  The  buffalo  stamped  and  bellowed,  some  saying:  "I  have 
her;  I  ran  my  stick  into  her;  I  caught  her  with  my  legs."  Others  said 
something  else.  The  female  buffalo  spoke  and  said:  "This  is  the  way  I 
shall  run  to  your  stick,  my  boy. "  Now  the  female  buffalo  ran  and  turned 
into  a  ring.  The  ring  rolled  and  fell  on  the  black  stick  and  was  on  the 
top  piece  of  the  stick.  "Nawa, "  said  the  boy.  (I  thank  you,  my  grand- 
fathers.) Then  the  old  bull  said:  "My  boy,  you  can  not  see  us,  but  our 
spirits  will  be  with  you.  You  see  many  strings  on  the  sticks.  They 
are  many  buffalo.  Now  take  the  sticks,  put  the  ring  on  the  black  stick, 
and  hang  them  up  in  the  lodge  on  the  north  side.  Play  first  with  the 
gambler's  sticks.  He  shall  just  about  beat  you,  but  just  as  he  throws 
his  last  stick  you  shall  shoot  his  stick  with  your  stick,  and  his  stick  shall 
break.  Then  you  shall  use  these  sticks  that  we  give  you.  Now  go!" 
The  boy  went  home  and  put  the  sticks  upon  the  side  of  the  lodge 
where  he  was  told  to  hang  them  up.  The  next  morning  was  the  time  to 
play.  The  boy  told  the  people  to  stay  outside  and  sweep  out  the  lodge 
clean,  and  that  no  one  should  remain  inside.  The  people  went  out  and 
the  lodge  was  swept  and  the  mats  placed  in  order.  Then  the  people 
started  out  to  the  place  where  the  man  and  boy  were  to  play  the  sticks. 
The  gambler  was  already  out  with  his  sticks.  The  people  divided  and 
some  were  on  one  side  and  some  on  the  other.  The  witch  woman  was 
at  one  end  and  already  had  a  quirt  made  of  bone,  for  she  intended  to  hit 
the  boy  on  the  head  with  it  and  kill  him.  Then  the  boy  arose  and  sang: 

Yonder,  from  yonder  I  came, 

You  challenged  me-  to  play. 

From  yonder  I   came, 

Now  rise,   stand,  play, 

For  you  are  the  gambler. 

From   yonder  I   came. 


igo  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

They  played  first  for  the  things  they  wore.  They  picked  up  the  sticks 
and  ran.  The  gambler  threw  the  ring.  The  boy  at  once  commenced 
to  lose.  The  old  woman  danced,  made  fun  of  the  boy,  and  said  that  his 
head  was  what  she  was  after.  The  boy  lost  all  his  clothing.  Then  the 
man  said,  "Suppose  we  bet  our  lives  now?"  The  boy  said,  "All  right. " 
They  played  and  played,  the  gambler  catching  the  ring  every  time,  and 
the  boy  losing.  The  man  had  to  hook  the  ring  once  more,  and  the  boy's 
life  would  be  won.  As  they  started,  the  man  threw  the  ring,  then  the 
stick,  and  the  boy  took  good  aim  at  the  man's  stick  and  he  hit  it  and 
broke  it.  The  gambler  wanted  to  put  off  the  game,  but  the  boy  said: 
"No;  I  am  not  tired.  I  will  either  lose  or  win.  Bring  another  set  of 
your  sticks."  The  man  said  he  had  none.  The  boy  said:  "I have  a  set. 
You  make  one  ring  and  I  am  beaten.  I  do  not  want  to  go  home.  If 
my  life  is  to  go  I  am  willing  that  I  lose  it  at  once. ' '  The  man  then 
sent  his  errand  man,  who  was  no  other  than  Coyote.  He  went  to  the 
lodge,  and  as  he  entered  he  heard  many  buffalo,  so  that  he  got  scared 
and  came  out.  He  came  to  the  ground  and  said:  "There  are  no  sticks 
in  the  lodge."  He  was  sent  again,  and  again  the  buffalo  scared  him. 
He  ran  away  again  and  said:  "There  are  no  sticks  there."  Again  he 
was  sent.  He  walked  right  in,  and  as  he  went  towards  the  sticks,  the 
buffalo  made  a  big  noise,  and  Coyote  ran  and  defecated  in  the  lodge. 
He  went  to  the  grounds  and  said:  "I  do  not  find  any  sticks  there." 
The  boy  then  sent  his  errand  boy,  who  was  no  other  than  Black-Bird. 
He  went  out,  and  although  the  buffalo  made  a  noise,  he  flew  upon  their 
backs  and  got  the  sticks.  As  soon  as  he  got  the  sticks  the  noise  ceased. 
He  saw  much  of  Coyote 's  dirt  on  the  ground  of  the  lodge.  He  took  the 
sticks  to  the  ground. 

The  boy  gave  the  gambler  his  choice  of  sticks.  The  gambler  chose 
the  white  stick.  The  boy  knew  that  he  would.  Before  commencing  the 
game  anew,  the  boy  said:  "Now  let  us  bet  all  our  friends,  too.  If  I 
win,  I  have  a  right  to  kill  all  your  people;  if  you  beat  me  then  you  may 
kill  all  my  people. "  "All  right,"  said  the  gambler.  Away  they  went 
with  the  sticks,  the  gambler  throwing  the  ring.  They  both  threw  the 
sticks  and  the  gambler  hooked  the  ring,  but  the  ring  came  off  and  went 
to  the  burnt  stick  and  sat  on  top.  The  boy  then  took  charge  of  the  ring. 
The  boy  threw  the  ring  gently,  then  threw  his  stick.  The  ring  and  stick 
did  the  work.  The  gambler  had  no  chance.  At  last  the  boy  won  all  of 
his  property  and  everything  that  he  had,  so  that  he  put  his  wife  and  all  of 
his  children  up.  The  boy  won  them,  and  then  the  gambler  put  up  his 
own  life.  When  he  saw  that  he  was  going  to  be  beaten,  he  fell  down  on 
the  ground  and  said:  "My  leg  is  broken,  and  I  can  not  go. " 


THE  GAMBLER  AND  THE  GAMING  STICKS.  IQI 

Then  the  boy  stopped  and  sang: 

Come  now,  stand  up, 
You  are  the  gambler, 
Come  now,  stand  up. 
Why  do  you  sit  down? 
You  are  the  gambler, 
Come  now,  stand  up. 
Now  arise,  stand  up, 
Now  arise,  stand  up. 
You  are  the  gambler, 
You  are  the  gambler, 
Now  arise,  stand  up. 

When  the  boy  sang  about  the  man  being  a  gambler,  he  arose  and  said  : 
"It  is  true;  I  am  a  gambler."  Then  he  arose  and  again  they  threw  the 
sticks.  When  they  threw  their  sticks  for  the  last  time,  the  sticks  and 
the  ring  turned  into  buffalo  and  ran  away.  As  soon  as  the  gambler  was 
beaten  the  people  who  were  on  the  boy's  side  took  up  their  .sticks  and 
beat  the  gambler  and  his  wife  and  children  and  the  witch  and  Coyote 
until  they  were  all  dead.  They  all  rejoiced  because  the  wicked  people 
were  killed  and  could  no  longer  put  fine  young  men  to  death. 

52.  YOUNG  HAWK  HUNTS  FOR  HIS  MOTHER.1 

There  lived  in  the  country  a  Hawk,  his  wife,  and  child.  The  man 
was  a  great  warrior.  He  never  was  at  home.  One  time  while  he  was 
away,  and  the  child  was  gone,  the  woman  disappeared.  The  boy  began 
to  cry  and  look  for  his  mother.  After  a  while  the  boy  found  a  passage  in 
the  ground.  He  went  into  the  ground  and  traveled  in  the  under-  world. 
He  came  to  a  village  and  stood  near  it.  He  began  to  sing. 

I  am  hunting  my  mother. 

Her  name   is 

Woman-  Knows-Everything. 

Yonder  village  there. 

I  am  hunting  my  father. 
His   name    is 
Handsome  Hawk. 
Yonder  village  there. 

My  name  is, 
My  name  is 

Young  Hawk,  who  lives  among  the  people. 
Yonder  village  there. 

The  people  in  the  village  turned  out  and  said:  "Listen  to  the  boy 
singing."  When  they  heard  what  the  boy  said  in  the  song,  they  sent 


by  White-Eagle.  Skidi.     This  story  explains  the  source  of  the  power  of 
certain  hawks  over  snakes,  and  why  they  take  their  name,  snake  hawks. 


IQ2  TALES   OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

a  man  out  to  tell  the  boy  that  his  mother  was  not  in  the  village.  The 
boy  traveled  on  and  at  each  village  he  sang  about  his  mother.  At  last 
the  boy  came  to  a  village  and  he  began  to  sing  about  his  mother.  The 
people  said:  "She  is  here." 

Just  about  that  time  the  father  had  returned  to  their  lodge  and  he 
saw  that  the  family  was  missing.  He  hunted  them,  and  after  a  while  he 
came  to  the  same  passage  which  the  boy  had  entered.  He  followed  up 
the  boy  in  the  under-world.  Just  as  the  boy  started  to  go  into  the  village 
the  father  came  over  another  place.  The  mother  was  glad  to  see  her  boy. 
While  the  boy  was  sitting  studying  what  to  say,  the  father  came  in. 
Hawk  went  to  his  wife,  touched  her,  and  turned  her  into  a  Hawk.  Then 
he  touched  his  son  and  he  turned  into  a  Hawk.  The  father  himself  then 
turned  into  a  Hawk.  Hawk  then  caught  the  little  snake  which  had 
taken  his  wife,  flew  off  with  it,  and  ate  it.  After  this  they  became  snake 
hawks. 

53.  THE  DOG-BOY  WHO  MARRIED  THE  CHIEF'S  DAUGHTER.1 

The  people  were  packing  up,  preparing  to  go  hunting,  when  the  wife 
of  a  man  by  the  name  of  White-Moccasins  gave  birth.  They  found  out 
that  the  child  was  not  a  baby,  but  a  dog.  White-Moccasins  carried  the 
dog  through  the  camp  and  threw  it  into  the  creek.  The  little  dog  tried 
to  swim  in  the  water,  but  could  not.  A  Clam  Shell  got  hold  of  the  dog 
and  took  it  out  of  the  water.  The  Clam  Shell  then  sat  near  the  edge 
of  the  water  and  listened  to  a  song  which  the  dog  sang.  After  the  dog 
was  through  singing,  the  Clam  Shell  began  to  sing.  The  dog  looked  to 
see  where  the  song  came  from,  but  could  not  see  anything.  After  a  while 
the  Clam  Shell  said:  "I  am  singing."  The  dog  looked  around  and  saw 
the  Clam  Shell  for  the  first  time.  The  Clam  Shell  spoke  again  and  said: 
"The  people  did  you  a  wrong  by  leaving  you  behind.  Your  father, 
White-Moccasins,  did  not  throw  you  away,  but  a  witch  woman  threw  you 
away.  You  were  thrown  into  the  water.  I  saved  your  life.  You  had 
better  follow  the  trail  of  the  people.  As  soon  as  you  overtake  them,  tell 
them  that  you  are  the  son  of  White-Moccasins.  The  people  will  be  glad 
to  see  you,  and  will  try  to  make  you  a  chief.  When  you  have  caught  up 
with  them  sing  the  song  that  you  heard  me  singing."  The  Clam  Shell 
then  told  the  dog  to  look  around.  The  dog  looked  around  and  he  turned 
into  a  boy.  Then  the  Clam  Shell  told  him  to  look  around  again.  He 
looked  and  there  was  a  quiver.  He  told  him  to  take  the  quiver  and  when 
he  had  the  quiver,  he  told  him  to  follow  the  trail  to  the  village. 

1  Told  by  White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  An  interesting  and  abbreviated  version  of 
a  widespread  tale;  teaches  parents  not  to  abandon  their  children. 


THE  DOG-BOY  WHO  MARRIED  THE  CHIEF  S  DAUGHTER.  193 

The  boy  arrived  at  the  village  and  began  to  sing: 

Yonder,  behind,  at  the  old  village  site, 
Is  where  White-Moccasins'  child  was  left. 
Yonder  the  child  was  left,  yonder. 

When  the  people  heard  of  White-Moccasins '  son  they  were  glad,  and 
when  the  chief  heard  that  it  was  White-Moccasins '  son  who  was  singing 
he  invited  the  boy  to  his  tipi.  When  the  boy  entered  the  chief 's  tipi  the 
people  gathered  around  the  tipi  to  look  at  the  boy.  White-Moccasins 
came  into  the  tipi.  The  chief  spoke  and  said  to  him:  "White-Moccasins, 
you  did  wrong  to  throw  your  child  away.  You  told  the  people  that 
your  child  was  a  dog,  but  we  now  find  that  he  is  a  handsome  boy.  When 
you  threw  him  away  you  threw  away  your  own  heart.  He  shall  not 
go  to  your  tipi  any  more,  but  shall  stay  with  me. "  White-Moccasins 
said:  "It  shall  be  as  the  chief  says,"  and  the  boy  stood  up  and  said: 
"I  was  thrown  away.  White-Moccasins  did  not  treat  me  right.  I  will 
stay  with  the  chief.  I  will  herd  his  ponies  and  when  he  thinks  the 
proper  time  has  come,  I  shall  marry  his  daughter."  The  chief  was 
very  proud  of  the  boy. 

Soon  he  called  the  people  to  come  together  to  go  on  a  hunt.  The  boy 
went  with  them.  In  the  hunt  the  boy  planned  everything.  They  killed 
many  buffalo,  and  when  the  people  returned  from  the  hunt  they  told 
the  chief  how  the  boy  had  been  their  leader,  and  how  successful  their 
party  had  been.  After  that  the  chief  said:  "My  boy,  you  shall  marry 
my  daughter."  The  boy  married  the  chief's  daughter  and  they  had  many 
children. 

One  day  the  boy  went  off  to  the  south.  He  walked  up  on  a  high  hill 
and  he  saw  standing  there  a  black-tailed  deer.  When  he  looked  again 
the  deer  was  not  there,  but  a  young  girl.  The  deer  had  turned  into  a 
girl.  The  girl  said:  "Boy,  I  want  to  warn  you.  White-Moccasins,  your 
father,  is  trying  to  kill  you,  but  it  shall  not  be.  Go  to  your  home, 
gather  the  people,  send  for  White-Moccasins,  tell  him  that  if  he  wants 
to  kill  you  he  will  have  to  do  it  in  open  fight.  When  he  tries  to  kill  you, 
I  will  protect  you.  If  he  tries  to  poison  you  with  medicines,  I  will  be 
there  to  protect  you."  The  boy  listened  to  the  girl,  then  he  went  home, 
and  told  the  chief  how  he  had  seen  a  deer  and  how  the  deer  had  turned 
into  a  girl,  and  what  the  girl  had  told  him.  The  boy  invited  many 
people,  and  among  them  he  invited  his  father,  White-Moccasins. 

When  the  people  had  come,  the  boy  stood  up  and  said:  "White- 
Moccasins,  show  your  power.  You  may  kill  me  if  you  can.  I  know 
that  you  are  trying  to  kill  me,  and  I  will  now  give  you  the  chance." 
White-Moccasins  then  stood  up  and  went  out.  He  gathered  several 


194  TALES  OP  READY-TO-GIVE. 

other  men  and  then  returned  to  the  lodge.  The  boy  said:  "White- 
Moccasins,  you  may  kill  me  now  if  you  can."  White-Moccasins  tried 
to  kill  the  boy,  but  could  not.  Then  the  boy  said:  "I  will  show  you  my 
power."  The  boy  waved  his  hand  at  White-Moccasins  and  White- 
Moccasins  began  to  pound  his  head  upon  the  trees  and  everything  that 
came  in  his  way.  Then  the  people  who  were  with  White-Moccasins 
jumped  on  the  boy  and  began  to  strike  him  with  clubs.  The  boy  then 
took  his  whistle  and  whistled.  As  the  boy  whistled,  all  of  the  people 
about  him  fell  dead.  After  a  while  he  whistled  again,  and  White-Mocca- 
sins fell  dead. 

54.  SUN-RAY,  WHO  MISTREATED  HIS  WIFE.1 

A  man  and  his  wife  lived  together  some  distance  from  the  main 
village.  The  man  traveled  over  the  country  very  swiftly  and  brought 
home  deer,  buffalo,  and  all  kinds  of  game.  He  would  order  his  wife  to 
cook  certain  parts  of  the  meat  for  him,  then  would  give  her  only  a  small 
piece  of  meat  to  eat.  He  abused  her  by  throwing  hot  coals  at  her  and 
punching  her  with  the  fire  sticks.  The  woman  tried  to  get  away  from 
him,  but  every  time  that  she  was  about  to  go  to  her  people  her  husband 
would  come,  and  before  she  knew  it  she  would  be  hanging  on  his  belt, 
inside  of  a  round  rattle  bound  with  hide  and  having  a  handle. 

One  time  the  woman  ran  to  one  of  the  villages,  and  there  she  told  the 
people  that  she  was  starving;  that  her  husband  was  very  cruel,  and  ate  all 
the  meat  that  he  brought  to  their  lodge.  She  thought  that  she  was  safe 
in  the  village,  for  she  kept  herself  hid  all  the  time.  The  people  gave  her 
plenty  to  eat,  and  watched  to  see  that  her  husband  did  not  come. 

Finally  her  husband  returned  from  the  hunt  to  the  lodge,  and  when  he 
found  that  his  wife  was  gone  he  traveled  from  one  village  to  another,  and 
when  he  came  to  the  edge  of  a  village  he  took  his  rattle  and  pointed  it 
toward  the  village,  moving  around  as  he  did  so,  and  if  the  woman  did  not 
appear  in  his  rattle  he  knew  that  she  was  not  in  the  village.  Then  he 
would  go  to  another  village  and  move  the  rattle  around,  and  if  the  woman 
was  in  the  village  he  would  at  once  see  her  come  out  of  his  rattle ;  for  the 
rattle  was  made  from  a  magic  gourd,  and  whenever  it  was  pointed  towards 
the  woman  she  immediately  appeared  inside  the  rattle.  Thus  he  found 
the  woman  hiding  in  the  village.  When  he  returned  with  her  to  his  home 
he  treated  her  very  badly. 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  Formerly  among  the  Pawnee  there  was  a  certain 
society  the  members  of  which  carried  a  peculiar  rattle,  open  in  the  center,  which 
was  supposed  to  have  had  power  similar  to  the  rattle  described  in  the  tale.  These 
rattles  were  painted  yellow  and  were  supposed  to  represent  a  sun  ray  twisted  into 
this  shape.  This  society  had  its  origin  in  the  sun  ray  described  in  the  tale. 


SUN-RAY,   WHO  MISTREATED  HIS  WIFE.  195 

One  day  the  man  went  off  on  a  hunt.  The  woman  left  the  lodge  and 
went  to  a  creek.  She  cried  around  the  creek.  The  Beaver  came  up  and 
asked  what  she  was  crying  about.  She  told  them  that  her  husband  was 
very  mean  to  her,  and  did  not  give  her  much  to  eat ;  that  she  wanted  to 
get  away  from  him.  The  Beaver  then  told  her  to  stop  crying  and  they 
would  take  her  into  their  lodge.  The  woman  was  taken  into  the  lodge  of 
the  Beaver  and  kept  there  for  some  time. 

When  her  husband  came  to  his  lodge  he  found  that  the  woman  was 
gone.  While  he  was  hunting  for  her  he  happened  to  go  down  to  the 
stream  of  water,  and  there  he  saw  her  footprints  upon  the  sand.  He 
took  his  rattle,  moved  it  around  the  waters,  and  the  woman,  who  was  walk- 
ing around  in  the  Beaver  dam,  immediately  appeared  in  his  rattle,  and  he 
pulled  her  out  with  his  string.  He  took  her  to  his  home,  and  when  he 
woke  her  up  he  told  her  that  there  was  nothing  to  be  gained  by  trying  to 
get  away  from  him,  for  he  could  find  her,  no  difference  where  she  might 
go.  The  woman  cried  day  after  day  and  the  man  threw  hot  coals  at  her 
and  told  her  to  stop  crying. 

Again  the  man  went  out  hunting  and  the  woman  determined  to  go  off 
to  another  country.  She  went  to  a  mortar,  pulled  it  up,  and  turned  her- 
self into  a  Mole.  She  set  the  mortar  pounder  in  its  place  again,  then  began 
to  dig.  She  dug  until  she  had  gone  very  far,  then  came  out  of  the 
ground.  She  took  a  little  grass  and  covered  her  feet  with  it.  She  went 
to  a  far-away  village.  She  went  into  a  tipi  in  the  night  and  lay  down. 

The  next  morning  the  people  found  her  and  they  asked  her  where  she 
had  come  from,  and  she  told  them  that  her  husband  had  been  very- 
mean  to  her  and  did  not  give  her  anything  to  eat,  and  she  was  hiding  from 
him.  They  felt  very  sorry  for  her  and  told  her  to  stay  with  them. 

Her  husband  returned  to  his  lodge,  and  not  finding  his  wife,  went  all 
over  the  country  hunting  for  her.  At  last  he  found  her  in  the  strange 
village.  He  saw  her  in  a  tipi  and  he  went  into  the  tipi  and  stood  by  her. 
The  people  did  not  know  he  was  there,  for  he  had  come  in  as  a  Sun- 
Ray.  Before  she  knew  it  she  was  put  to  sleep  and  placed  in  the  rattle. 
When  Sun-Ray  had  done  this  he  turned  into  a  man.  Then  the  people 
said :  ' '  You  belong  up  in  the  heavens.  You  came  an  d  took  a  woman  from 
this  earth  for  your  wife.  You  mistreated  her  and  you  do  not  give  her  any- 
thing to  eat.  It  was  very  wrong.' '  Sun-Ray  was  angry,  and  he  took  off 
his  rattle  and  threw  it  down  upon  the  ground  and  the  woman  woke  up. 
He  said  to  her:  "Woman,  you  know  that  I  find  you  wherever  you  go. 
These  people  are  trying  to  take  your  part.  I  shall  take  you  home  and 
treat  you  as  badly  and  even  worse  than  I  did  before.' '  Then  he  pulled  the 
string  of  his  rattle  and  the  woman  came  out. 


196  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

When  he  got  to  his  home,  he  released  the  woman.  For  the  first  time 
Sun-Ray  was  sorry  for  her.  He  said:  "Woman,  I  will  let  you  go.  I 
will  take  you  to  that  village  where  you  were  and  you  may  stay  with  the 
people.  I  shall  return  where  I  belong,  and  all  the  sun-rays  will  be 
together  hereafter.  "  Then  Sun-Ray  took  the  woman  in  his  rattle,  placed 
her  on  his  belt,  and  traveled  to  the  village  and  took  her  into  the  lodge 
where  she  had  been.  He  told  the  people  to  take  care  of  her,  saying  that 
he  was  going  back  to  the  sun,  where  he  belonged ;  then  he  stood  where  he 
had  entered  the  lodge  as  a  sun-ray  and  disappeared. 


55.  HAWK  SLAYS  THE  FIRE-KEEPER.1 

A  long  time  ago,  when  Tirawa  created  the  world,  he  made  one  man  to 
guard  all  the  fire.  His  name  was  Fire-Keeper  and  his  home  was  some- 
where in  the  west.  After  a  time  Tirawa  put  people  upon  the  earth. 
These  people  were  descended  from  certain  gods  in  the  heavens,  but  the 
man  in  charge  of  fire  did  not  like  them.  They  were  many,  and  had  a 
village.  On  the  west  of  the  village  was  a  stream  of  water  which  was  so  deep 
that  no  one  could  cross  it.  There  were  two  young  men  who  lived  across 
the  stream  who  were  Hawk  people.  They  were  brothers  and  were  won- 
derful beings.  They  wore  coyote  robes  and  carried  war  clubs  all  the  time. 
They  had  a  log  across  the  stream,  but  they  were  the  only  ones  who 
could  cross  the  stream  upon  the  log. 

One  day  the  older  brother  told  the  younger  that  he  was  going  across 
the  stream  to  get  a  wife,  and  so  he  left  his  younger  brother  and  went 
across  the  stream.  He  went  into  the  village  and  entered  the  lodge  of  the 
priest  and  asked  for  his  daughter.  The  priest  gave  his  daughter  to  the 
young  man.  Then  he  sent  for  all  of  the  girl's  relatives,  except  the  Fire- 
Keeper,  who  was  the  brother  of  the  priest's  wife,  to  come  to  his  lodge. 
Fire-Keeper  was  angry  because  they  did  not  send  for  him,  and  he  made 
up  his  mind  to  kill  the  young  man. 

The  young  man  lived  with  his  wife  for  many  moons,  until  she  gave 
birth  to  a  boy.  One  morning  he  told  his  wife  that  he  was  going  across 
the  stream  to  see  his  brother.  When  he  had  crossed  the  stream  and  had 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  is  a  bundle  story,  and  is  related  to  show  the 
people  that  the  gods  of  the  heavens  have  superior  powers  to  those  of  the  gods  of  the 
earth.  It  also  teaches  the  children  to  respect  the  bundles  which  come  from  the 
stars  or  the  heavenly  gods.  The  individual  who  had  his  tipi  of  living  fire  and 
tortured  the  Hawk  is  overcome,  and  the  fire  is  carried  back  to  heaven  by  the  Hawk, 
who  marries  Mother-Corn.  The  pair  represent  respectively  the  Morning  and  Even- 
ing Stars.  The  bundle  of  the  stars  among  the  Kitkehahki  has  on  it  an  owl  which 
represents  the  power  of  the  priest.  It  is  said  that  when  Mother-Corn  married  the 
Hawk  she  transferred  to  him  all  her  power  except  her  ability  to  make  things 
grow  again. 


HAWK  SLAYS  THE  FIRE-KEEPER.  197 

just  stepped  off  of  the  log  he  was  taken  by  some  mysterious  being.  It  was 
so  foggy  that  he  could  not  see  the  being.  The  being  stripped  the  young 
man  of  his  leggings,  that  were  decorated  with  scalps,  and  his  coyote  robe, 
and  took  them  and  burned  them.  The  young  man  tried  to  see,  but  he 
could  not,  for  the  being  had  burned  out  his  eyes.  He  was  carried  off  by 
the  mysterious  being  and  for  several  days  was  led  along,  until  at  last  he 
was  taken  into  a  lodge  and  was  told  that  he  was  a  slave. 

He  was  missed  at  his  wife's  place  and  the  people  wondered  where 
he  could  have  gone.  One  night  the  baby  began  to  cry.  The  mother 
tried  to  quiet  him,  but  he  kept  on  crying.  The  mother  thought  that  her 
husband  must  be  across  the  stream  with  his  brother.  Said  she:  "I  will 
take  the  child  to  his  father,  and  when  he  takes  him  he  will  stop  crying.' ' 
She  went  to  the  stream  and  when  she  came  to  the  log  she  was  not  afraid 
to  cross  it.  She  crossed  and  went  to  the  lodge  of  the  young  men.  She 
went  into  the  lodge  and  saw  only  the  younger  brother.  She  asked  where 
her  husband  was  and  the  boy  said  that  he  had  not  been  there.  The  girl 
said:  "Take  this  baby.  It  may  be  that  he  will  stop  crying,  for  he  is  crying 
for  his  father."  The  boy  took  the  child,  but  it  cried  the  louder.  The 
boy  said:  "Take  the  child,  for  I  must  go  and  hunt  for  my  brother.  I  am 
afraid  that  some  one  has  killed  him." 

The  woman  went  out  of  the  lodge  to  the  crossing.  Just  as  she  was 
about  to  step  upon  the  log  she  saw  pieces  of  her  husband's  leggings. 
Then  she  looked  around  and  found  also  bits  of  his  coyote  robe.  She 
looked  carefully  and  saw  his  footprints.  She  followed  his  tracks,  which 
led  toward  the  setting  sun.  She  went  on  for  many  days,  until  at  last  she 
saw  a  big  fire.  She  went  to  the  fire,  which  was  very  bright,  for  it  was 
night.  She  came  to  the  fire  and  found  a  large  tipi  with  a  big  fire  in  it. 
She  peeped  in  and  there  sat  a  man  at  the  west  on  the  inside  of  the  lodge, 
painted  red  all  over.  She  knew  him.  He  was  her  uncle.  Again  she 
looked,  and  close  to  the  entrance  sat  her  husband.  He  was  burnt  on 
different  parts  of  his  body  and  he  was  blind.  The  man  in  the  west  said: 
"Blind  man,  stir  the  fire.  The  fire  is  nearly  out.' '  The  blind  man  went 
to  the  fire  and  took  hold  of  his  own  war  club  and  stirred  the  fire.  The 
baby  then  began  to  cry  and  the  woman  began  to  sing: 

Uncle,  you  sitting  there, 

Let  him  come  out. 

Yonder  the  child  was  left,  yonder. 

My  husband  sitting  there, 

His  child  is  crying; 

Ha-o-o,  you  sitting  there. 

The  man  spoke  and  said:  "My  niece,  I  want  to  kill  your  husband,  for 
he  married  you  without  my  knowledge.  Stir  the  fire,  you  blind  man." 


198  TALES   OP  READY-TO-GIVE. 

The  blind  man  again  stirred  the  fire.  The  woman  kept  on  singing  till 
at  last  the  man  told  the  blind  man  to  leave  the  lodge.  The  woman 
could  not  enter  the  lodge,  for  it  was  hot  inside.  The  blind  man  came  out 
and  took  his  child,  and  the  child  stopped  crying.  Then  the  blind  man 
said:  "Go  in  and  pick  up  my  war  club."  The  woman  went  in  and 
brought  the  club,  though  it  was  half  burned  away. 

She  led  her  husband  toward  the  east.  For  many  days  they  went 
toward  the  east,  until  one  day  the  blind  man  told  his  wife  to  lead  him  to  a 
rocky  place.  She  led  him  up  a  high  hill.  One  side  of  the  hill  was  very 
steep  and  rocky;  the  other  side  was  covered  with  cedar  trees.  She  said, 
"Here  is  the  place.  There  are  many  rocks  on  the  bank  and  at  the 
bottom."  "Put  me  on  the  edge  of  the  bank,"  said  the  man,  "and  let 
my  legs  hang  down."  The  woman  obeyed.  "Now,"  said  he,  "push  me 
over,  so  that  I  shall  fall  over  this  steep  bank.' '  The  woman  would  not  do 
it,  for  she  thought  that  he  wanted  to  die  because  he  was  blind.  The  man 
kept  on  begging  her  to  push  him  over  the  bank  before  the  sun  should  rise. 
The  woman  would  not  do  it.  Finally  the  man  said,  "Throw  me  over; 
then  you  go  around  the  bank  and  you  will  see  me  again  and  I  will  meet 
you  there." 

The  man  did  not  want  to  tell  her  what  he  intended  to  do,  but  he  had 
to  tell  her  that  much  or  she  would  not  push  him  over.  After  he  had  told 
her  she  pushed  him  over.  Then  she  took  up  her  baby  and  went  around 
the  bank.  Before  she  came  to  the  end  of  the  hill  she  saw  her  husband 
coming  up  from  a  thick  cedar  tree.  He  had  his  coyote  robe  and  also  the 
scalp  leggings.  "I  am  here,"  he  said.  "Go  to  my  brother's  house  and 
wait  there  for  me.  I  am  now  going  west  to  that  being  who  burned  my 
eyes  out,  and  I  am  going  to  kill  him.  When  some  night  you  see  meteors 
flying  through  the  sky  you  may  know  that  I  have  killed  him." 

They  parted  and  the  woman  went  to  her  brother-in-law's  tipi  and 
told  him  all.  Her  brother-in-law  was  glad,  and  said:  "Let  us  now  go  to 
your  people  and  let  them  know  that  you  have  come  back.' '  They  went 
to  her  home.  The  woman  then  told  her  brother-in-law  to  go  back  to  his 
home  and  wait  for  his  brother.  The  boy  went  back  to  his  tipi.  One 
night  the  people  saw  fire  flying  through  the  sky,  and  the  woman  told 
them  that  her  husband  had  killed  her  uncle,  the  Fire-Keeper. 

When  the  young  man  approached  the  tipi  of  the  Fire-Keeper,  he 
was  sitting  at  the  entrance  watching,  for  he  knew  that  the  young  man 
had  powers  and  he  feared  him.  Instead  of  going  to  the  entrance  to 
attack  him  the  young  man  turned  himself  into  a  hawk,  and  he  flew  into 
the  top  of  the  tipi,  and  flying  swiftly  downward  struck  the  Fire-Keeper 
upon  the  head  and  killed  him.  Then  the  Hawk  turned  into  a  human 


HAWK  SLAYS  THE  FIRE-KEEPER.  199 

being,  and  took  the  fire  and  threw  it  through  the  sky  in  different  places, 
saying:  "You  shall  do  my  bidding.  Warriors  shall  carry  you  and  you 
shall  help  to  kill  the  enemy.' '  All  the  stars  then  received  light. 

Then  the  young  man  went  to  the  east.  When  he  had  journeyed  all 
over  the  country  the  animals  cried  to  him  and  said:  "You  have  done  good 
work.  The  Fire-Keeper  is  gone.  He  can  not  burn  us  any  more." 
When  he  lay  down  in  the  night  the  owls  hooted  round  him  to  let  him 
know  they  were  guarding  him.  On  the  way  to  his  brother's,  birds  of  all 
kinds  gathered  together  upon  a  certain  hill  and  waited  for  him.  When  he 
came  there  the  birds  one  at  a  time  spoke  to  him,  and  said:  "You  shall  be 
always  present  with  the  people,  for  you  married  among  them.  You  shall 
also  be  known  as  the  Warrior-Bird.  Your  right  wing  you  shall  use  as  a 
club  to  kill  small  birds  for  yourself  to  eat.' '  Hawk  was  satisfied  with  the 
sayings  of  the  birds. 

He  returned  to  his  brother's  tipi.  He  went  with  his  brother  to  the 
village.  They  told  the  father-in-law  that  when  they  died  the  people 
would  place  their  skins  in  a  bundle,  so  that  young  men  might  remember 
to  carry  the  hawk  and  corn  with  them  when  they  went  out  upon  the  war- 
path. The  priests  (owls)  were  always  to  remain  at  home  to  watch  over 
the  people. 

56.  THE  SINGING  HAWK.1 

In  olden  times,  when  the  Pawnee  first  went  on  a  buffalo  hunt,  it  was 
customary  for  most  of  the  young  women  of  the  tribe  to  go  to  the  priest's 
tipi  and  build  a  grass-lodge  for  him,  for  in  the  grass-lodge  were  to  be 
held  meetings  by  the  old  men  of  the  tribe.  A  grass-lodge  was  given  to 
the  first  people  who  were  put  upon  the  earth.  Whenever  a  grass-lodge 
was  completed  it  was  customary  for  the  young  women  of  the  tribe  to 
take  mush  in  wooden  bowls  to  the  priest's  lodge,  so  that  the  old  men 
would  have  something  to  eat  while  they  sat  in  their  lodge  to  sing  the 
bundle  songs  and  pray  that  the  buffalo  might  be  near. 

It  was  in  these  meetings  in  the  grass-lodge  that  the  old  people  told 
wonderful  stories  about  how  the  people  called  the  buffalo,  or  how  a  coy- 
ote scared  the  buffalo  toward  a  village.  In  their  story-telling  they  also 
told  of  the  being  who  stands  in  the  north  and  with  its  breath  sends  the 
buffalo  to  the  people.  They  told  many  coyote  stories,  for  these  stories, 
although  not  real,  would  have  the  effect  of  bringing  them  good  luck  and 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  tale  is  of  special  interest  on  account  of  the 
song,  which  really  represents  a  ritual  formerly  chanted  after  opening  the  bundle 
when  on  a  buffalo  hunt.  The  ritual,  however,  does  not  form  an  intrinsic  part  of 
any  bundle  ceremony.  The  tale  was  simply  told  along  with  the  chanting  of  the  ritual 
in  the  hope  that  it  might  draw  the  buffalo  nearer  the  camp. 


200  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

something  to  eat.  It  was  in  this  meeting  that  this  ritual  was  recited. 
The  old  man  said  that  once  upon  a  time  the  Coyote  people — that  is,  the 
coyotes,  crows,  rabbits,  foxes,  magpies,  hawks,  eagles,  and  other  animals — 
went  on  a  buffalo  hunt;  that  these  birds  and  animals  selected  a  Hawk 
to  look  for  the  buffalo.  The  Hawk  flew  towards  the  west  and  went 
around  to  different  places  where  it  was  known  that  the  buffalo  generally 
stayed.  Every  time  the  Hawk  would  climb  a  high  hill  he  would  see  only 
the  prairies  and  no  buffalo.  He  finally  circled  around  towards  the  south, 
and  then  east,  coming  to  where  the  people  were,  and  there  the  Hawk 
found  many  buffalo.  There  he  stood  surprised,  for  he  had  gone  a  long  dis- 
tance in  the  country  and  could  not  find  buffalo  and  here  they  were  close 
to  the  people. 

Then  the  Hawk  went  into  the  lodge  where  the  birds  and  animals  were 
and  sang  this  song: 

Now  I  climbed  the  hill  and  arrived  at  the  top, 
There  where  the  streams  of  water  shorten  people's  legs, 
Where  once  great  herds  of  buffalo  started  from, 
Jfet  I  saw  nothing  yonder  but  an  expanse  of  land. 
Only  the  expanse  of  land,  only  the  expanse  of  land. 

There  where  the  elm  trees  are  surrounded  by  hills.1 
***** 

There  where  the  hill  stands  in  front  of  other  hills. 
***** 

There  on  the  island  hill  where  stand  the  cedar  trees, 

***** 

There  at  the  point  of  a  grove  of  timber, 
***** 

There  at  the  other  end  of  the  point  of  timber, 
***** 

There  at  the  place  where  one  tree  stands  behind  the  timber, 
***** 

There  at  the  foot  of  the  hills  by  the  group  of  box  elders, 
***** 

There  at  the  top  of  the  hills  where  the  skulls  lie, 
***** 

There  where  the  mud  covers  the  trails, 
***** 

1  The  next  twenty  verses  of  this  song  are  like  the  first  verse,  except  the  second 
line,  which  only  is  here  given. 


THE    SINGING    HAWK.  2OI 

There  where  a  group  of  trees  stands  by  the  water, 
***** 

There  where  the  ponies  slip  down  hill, 
***** 

There  at  yonder  hill,  the  girls'  hill, 
***** 

There  where  the  top  of  the  hill  is  barren, 
***** 

There  by  the  earth-lodge  at  the  foot  of  the  hill, 
***** 

There  at  the  river  banks  by  the  swallows'  homes, 
***** 

There  by  the  thicket  of  cottonwood, 
***** 

There  where  the  white  clay  is  found, 
***** 

There  where  the  sand  reaches  the  foot  of  the  hills, 
***** 

There  on  the  hills  where  human  bones  lie  buried, 
***** 

Now  I  climbed  the  hill  and  arrived  at  the  top, 
***** 

There  where  the  stream  of  water  separates, 
There  on  the  island's  point,  where  stands  a  tree  clump, 
Where  once  great  herds  of  buffalo  started  from, 
There  I   stood. 

I  stood  surprised  and  rejoiced, 

I  stood  surprised  and  rejoiced, 

For  there  were  the  buffalo,  like  threads  covering  the  earth. 

There  they  were,  there  they  were. 

Thus  in  his  song  he  told  of  the  different  places  he  had  visited,  how  on 
climbing  the  hills  he  had  found  nothing  but  prairie.  In  the  singing  he 
mentions  all  the  different  places  he  visited  and  at  last  he  comes  to  a  place 
near  the  village  and  there  he  found  the  buffalo.  This  is  why  the  people 
sing  this  song  upon  their  hunt,  that  they  may  find  the  buffalo  near  and 
not  far  away. 


302  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 


57.  THE  BOY  WHO  MARRIED  A  BUFFALO.1 

A  boy  and  his  sister  lived  by  themselves.  The  boy  traveled  toward 
the  south  to  get  feathers ;  then  he  made  arrows.  He  made  one  arrow  red 
and  another  one  black  and  the  others  plain.  There  was  another  village 
in  the  west,  where  the  Buffalo  lived.  The  daughter  of  the  Buffalo  chief 
came  to  visit  the  boy  and  his  sister.  The  boy's  sister  saw  some  one  coming 
to  their  tipi.  Then  the  girl  began  to  sing: 

Stand  there,  my  brother, 

Some  one  is  coming  on  the  hill, 

There  on  the  hilltops  from  where  you  brought  your  feathers. 

Pa-o-o,  pa-o-o.      (Cry  of  coyote.) 

The  boy  stopped  his  work  and  said:  "Whoever  is  coming,  let  him  come. ' ' 
All  at  once  a  young  Buffalo  cow  came  into  the  tipi.  The  boy  took  his 
bow  and  arrows  and  shot  at  the  Buffalo.  The  arrow  did  not  go  through 
the  body,  but  the  point  curled  under  the  hair  and  hung  on  the  side  of  the 
cow.  She  ran  outside  of  the  tipi,  and  the  boy  followed,  expecting  every 
minute  that  the  arrow  would  drop  off.  The  boy  kept  on  following  the 
Buffalo  until  they  came  to  box-elder  timber.  It  was  twilight.  The 
Buffalo  went  into  the  timber.  The  boy  followed  and  there  he  found  a 
tipi.  The  boy  lay  down  near  the  tipi  and  went  to  sleep. 

Next  morning,  when  the  boy  woke  up,  the  Buffalo  stood  where  the 
tipi  had  been.  The  Buffalo  went  east  a  little  and  circled  around  and  then 
went  west  again.  The  boy  became  angry  and  called  the  Buffalo  names. 
In  the  evening  the  cow  went  into  a  cottonwood  grove.  The  boy  went  into 
the  timber  and  there  again  was  the  tipi.  The  boy  went  into  the  tipi  and 
there  sat  a  woman  all  covered  up  with  her  robe.  The  boy  sat  down  on 
the  south  side.  When  it  was  dark  the  woman  gave  the  boy  a  calf  robe 
and  told  him  to  lie  down  upon  it.  In  the  morning  when  the  boy  awoke 
the  Buffalo  stood  by  him  with  the  arrow  still  in  her  hair.  The  boy 
crawled  up  to  get  the  arrow,  but  the  cow  ran  again.  The  boy  followed. 
She  went  slowly  and  the  boy  kept  following,  expecting  the  arrow  to  drop. 
Towards  evening  the  cow  went  into  the  weeping-willow  timber.  The 
boy  went  into  the  timber  and  again  saw  the  same  tipi.  He  went  into 
the  tipi  and  sat  down  on  the  south  side.  When  it  was  dark  the  cow 

*Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  story  is  related  during  ceremonies  by  the 
old  men  to  the  children  who  may  have  entered  the  lodge;  it  especially  teaches 
the  boys  to  take  good  care  of  their  bows  and  arrows  and  instills  in  them  a  desire  to 
kill  buffalo,  that  they  may  consecrate  some  of  its  meat  to  the  gods  of  the  heavens 
through  the  bundle.  It  also  teaches  young  married  people  to  be  hospitable  to 
strangers,  especially  those  from  distant  countries,  because  they  may  thus  be  enter- 
taining unawares  supernatural  beings  of  great  power. 


THE  BOY  WHO  MARRIED  A  BUFFALO.  203 

gave  him  a  calf  robe  to  lie  upon.  In  the  morning,  when  the  boy  woke 
up,  the  Buffalo  was  standing  close  to  him.  He  followed  her  all  of  the 
next  day  until  evening;  then  saw  the  tipi.  He  went  into  the  tipi  and 
saw  the  woman  again.  The  woman  called  to  him  this  time.  The  boy 
went  and  sat  by  her.  The  woman  asked  why  he  had  no  robe.  He  said: 
"I  shot  at  a  Buffalo  and  my  arrow  stuck  upon  the  hair  and  carried  the 
arrow  away.  I  love  my  arrows  and  can  not  lose  one  of  them. "  Then 
she  reached  and  gave  him  the  arrow.  She  said:  "I  am  the  Buffalo.  You 
called  me  names.  I  will  now  take  you  to  my  people,  for  I  love  you  and 
I  want  you  to  marry  me. "  She  reached  behind  her  and  produced  some 
dried  meat,  which  she  gave  to  the  boy  to  eat.  After  they  had  eaten  he 
lay  down  with  the  woman  and  they  slept  together. 

Next  morning,  when  the  boy  awoke,  he  saw  the  Buffalo  standing  by 
him.  Then  they  went  together  until  they  came  to  a  place  where  sat  an 
old,  scabby  bull.  The  boy  had  a  bag  of  tobacco  and  he  gave  some  of  it 
to  the  bull.  The  bull  was  thankful.  Finally  they  entered  the  village  of 
Buffalo.  Some  of  the  Buffalo  were  glad  to  see  the  girl  and  the  boy,  and 
some  were  mad.  The  father  of  the  girl,  who  was  a  chief,  had  a  white  spot 
upon  the  forehead.  Her  uncle  had  long  horns.  The  long-horned  Buf- 
falo was  mad  and  wanted  to  kill  the  young  man.  He  made  a  dash  at  him 
and  the  boy  shot  him  in  the  side  and  killed  him.  Then  the  father,  with 
the  white  spot  upon  the  forehead,  attacked  the  boy,  and  the  boy  shot 
him  also  and  killed  him.  All  the  Buffalo  then  became  mad. 

The  young  man  then  sang:  "I  want  the  ceremony  of  the  Buffalo." 
The  Buffalo  ran  about  the  boy  and  rattled  their  hoofs,  but  did  not  kill  him, 
but  the  boy  shot  the  Buffalo.  Every  time  the  Buffalo  tried  to  kill  him,  he 
turned  into  a  downy  feather.  Then  the  Buffalo  said:  "My  son,  we  want 
some  good  smoke. "  The  boy  told  them  that  he  would  give  them  tobacco, 
and  to  some  of  them  he  would  blow  whiffs  of  smoke.  The  Buffalo  then 
told  the  boy  to  take  a  few  Buffalo  to  the  village  and  to  have  them  killed. 
The  boy  took  the  Buffalo  to  the  village  to  the  people,  and  they  killed 
them  and  sacrificed  them  to  the  gods.  When  the  Buffalo  were  killed 
they  returned  to  the  herd  and  told  that  their  meat  had  been  put  to 
good  use  and  that  they  received  smoke.  When  the  Buffalo  traveled 
toward  the  east  the  boy  turned  into  a  downy  feather  and  rode  upon  the 
Buffalo.  Finally  the  boy  was  turned  into  a  Buffalo  and  lived  with  them 
and  never  returned  to  his  sister.  When  the  young  man  was  turned  into 
a  Buffalo,  soft  downy  feathers  were  stuck  into  the  hair  of  his  body.  In 
one  of  their  hunts  the  people  killed  the  young  man,  took  the  hide  off, 
and  found  the  feathers  stuck  through  the  robe;  and  the  people  made  the 
robe  holy. 


204  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 


58.  THE  BUFFALO  WIFE  AND  THE  DISPERSION  OF  THE  BUFFALO.1 

In  a  certain  village  there  was  a  young  man  who  disliked  girls  and 
women.  This  young  man  was  really  not  a  man,  but  a  blackbird.  The 
women  tried  to  catch  him  in  the  night,  but  he  was  always  on  the  lookout, 
and  escaped  them.  The  girls  tried  to  catch  him,  but  he  would  not  have 
anything  to  do  with  them.  There  was  another  village  to  the  west  of  the 
first  village,  but  this  was  not  a  village  of  people,  but  of  Buffalo.  Every 
day  the  young  man  painted  his  face  with  black  streaks  and  made  black 
streaks  upon  his  leggings.  He  took  a  spear  and  shield  and  a  quiver  of 
mountain-lion,  and  mounted  his  fine  white  horse  and  rode  around  the 
village.  Some  of  the  people  from  the  west  villages  came  and  said  that 
in  that  village  there  was  a  girl  who  disliked  men.  The  young  man 
heard  of  her  and  wanted  to  go  and  see  her.  The  girl  also  heard  that 
there  was  a  young  man  in  the  lower  village  who  disliked  women  and  she 
wanted  to  see  him.  The  girl  told  her  parents  that  she  would  like  to  go 
to  the  village  to  see  the  young  man.  Her  parents  told  her  to  go.  She 
walked  toward  the  lower  village  and  at  the  same  time  the  young  man 
left  his  village  and  went  to  the  west  to  see  the  girl.  There  was  a  high 
hill  between  the  villages  and  the  boy  climbed  up  the  east  side.  As  he 
came  to  the  top  of  the  hill  he  saw  the  girl  walking  up  the  other  side  of 
the  hill. 

When  the  young  girl  came  up  she  spoke  and  said :  ' '  Where  are  you 
going?"  The  young  man  said:  "I  am  going  to  the  west  to  the  other 
villages."  The  girl  spoke  again  and  said:  " I  am  going  to  the  lower  village 
to  visit  the  young  man  who  dislikes  women. "  She  asked  the  young  man 
where  he  was  going.  He  said:  "I  am  going  to  the  other  village  to  see  the 
young  girl  who  dislikes  men.  "  The  girl  dropped  her  head  and  answered, 
"I  am  that  girl."  Then  she  asked,  "What  is  your  name?"  and  he  said, 
"My  name  is  Streaks-of-Black-Paint-across-Face-and-Legs."  The  girl 
said:  "I  dislike  men,  but  I  like  you."  The  boy  said  nothing  and  they 
separated,  each  going  home.  The  girl  told  her  people  about  the  fine 
young  man  whom  she  had  seen.  The  old  Buffalo  told  her  to  go  to  the 
other  village  and  bring  the  young  man.  The  girl  went  back  to  the  lower 
village  and  at  dawn  she  stood  on  the  little  knoll  at  the  north  side  and 
sang: 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  tale  teaches  that  the  performance  of  deeds 
such  as  those  which  it  recounts  may  prove  efficacious  in  drawing  the  buffalo  near 
the  village  so  that  the  people  might  kill  them.  It  also  explains  how  the  blackbird, 
because  it  married  a  buffalo  cow,  is  allowed  to  perch  on  the  backs  of  the  buffalo 
without  attracting  any  notice  from  them. 


THE  BUFFALO  WIFE  AND  THE  DISPERSION  OF  THE  BUFFALO.  205 

All  you  people  in  camp  there. 

Get  wide  awake  all  of  you. 

We  shall  see  which  one  of  you 

Brought  me  down  stream  as  his  wife, 

Brought  me  down  stream  as  his  wife. 

Yonder  we  came,  brought  me  down  stream  as  his  wife. 

You  spoke  and  said, 

I  have  standing  at  my  place  a  gray  horse. 

You  brought  me  down  stream  as  your  wife, 

You  brought  me  down  stream  as  your  wife. 

Yonder  we  came,  when  you  brought  me  down  stream  as  your  wife. 

Old  Claw-Shield  Coyote  awoke  and  heard  the  girl  singing,  and  said: 
"Old  woman,  that  girl  means  me.  You  must  not  get  jealous.  Now 
listen.  The  girl  sings  and  says  that  I  ride  a  white  horse.  I  must  go  and 
get  my  white  horse,  and  I  shall  go  out  and  get  the  girl  and  bring  her  to 
our  tipi."  The  old  man  jumped  upon  his  gray  horse  and  went  out.  He 
asked  the  girl  to  come  to  his  tipi,  but  the  girl  did  not  notice  him.  The  boy 
was  not  in  the  village,  so  the  girl  went  on  to  another  village  and  there  she 
stood  on  the  north  side  again  and  sang.  The  young  men  came  out.  She 
sang  as  before. 

Coyote  had  tried  to  fool  the  girl  at  the  other  village  and  failed.  He 
got  a  number  of  cockle  burrs  and  placed  them  upon  the  gray  horse,  and 
jumped  on  it  so  that  the  horse  would  prance  because  of  the  cockle  burrs 
pricking  it,  and  followed  the  girl  to  the  next  village.  When  Coyote  rode 
up  to  where  the  girl  was  the  handsome  young  boy  was  already  there  upon 
his  white  horse.  Coyote  went  away  angry  and  embarrassed.  The 
handsome  young  man  took  the  girl  and  placed  her  behind  him  on  the 
horse 's  back.  He  took  her  to  his  tipi  and  they  went  into  the  tipi  and  sat 
down.  The  young  man  told  his  people  to  place  corn  before  the  girl  for 
her  to  eat.  The  girl  ate  the  corn.  The  people  noticed  that  she  had  an 
elk  dress  on.  After  they  had  eaten,  the  young  man  took  the  girl  upon 
his  pony  again  and  they  went  west  to  the  Buffalo  camp.  They  reached 
the  Buffalo  camp  in  the  night.  The  girl  jumped  off  from  the  pony  and 
went  to  her  father  and  said,  "Father,  I  am  married." 

The  father  was  glad.  He  then  sent  for  the  old  Buffalo  and  the  young 
man  rilled  his  pipe  with  native  tobacco,  and  gave  each  Buffalo  a  whiff 
of  smoke.  The  old  Buffalo  decided  that  eight  of  the  Buffalo  should  be 
sent  to  the  people.  The  eight  Buffalo  were  sent  to  the  people  and  they 
were  all  killed.  When  the  Buffalo  were  killed,  they  were  made  holy  and 
smoke  offerings  were  made  over  their  meat.  The  Buffalo  were  glad  of 
this,  and  that  night  many  more  Buffalo  went  to  the  people.  These  Buf- 


206  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

falo  were  also  killed.  The  Buffalo  knew  that  some  of  them  were  made 
holy  and  that  the  smoke  offering  had  been  made. 

Again  they  sent  many  Buffalo,  and  they  were  all  killed  and  many  were 
made  holy.  Again  a  big  drove  of  Buffalo  was  sent  and  among  them  was 
the  girl  with  her  husband.  After  she  saw  how  the  smoke  offering  was 
made  over  the  dead  Buffalo,  they  went  back  to  the  Buffalo  village  and  the 
girl  told  her  father  what  she  had  seen.  The  Buffalo  were  glad,  and  they 
sent  a  big  drove  of  Buffalo.  The  people  killed  many.  The  Buffalo  were 
glad  of  the  smoke  offering,  so  the  bulls  all  agreed  to  lead  their  people 
toward  the  people,  and  this  is  the  way  the  Buffalo  scattered  over  the 
country. 

This  is  why  a  woman  must  wear  the  elk  dress  during  the  ceremony,  as 
did  the  Buffalo  woman  who  came  to  the  boy,  when  her  husband  makes  a 
Buffalo  holy.  The  people  killed  buffalo  bulls  twice,  and  twice  did  they 
kill  buffalo  cows.  This  is  why  we  have  four  leading  bundles  and  four 
particular  posts  in  the  medicine-lodge.  This  also  is  why,  when  the  peo- 
ple made  the  eagle  feather  holy,  they  placed  the  feather  upon  the  knoll, 
in  imitation  of  the  girl  who  stood  on  the  knoll  when  she  asked  for  her 
husband.  All  these  things  were  taught  the  people  that  they  might  do 
them,  so  that  the  Buffalo  would  come. 

The  young  man  went  back  with  his  wife,  and  they  stayed  among  the 
Buffalo  people.  For  some  cause  or  other,  the  girl  Buffalo  made  the 
young  man  mad,  for  she  scolded  him  and  she  said  that  he  should  always 
be  with  the  Buffalo,  but  would  never  marry  among  them,  and  he  jumped 
up  and  flew  away.  He  was  a  Blackbird,  and  for  this  reason  the  Blackbirds 
like  to  be  in  the  Buffalo  herd. 

59.  THE  POOR  BOY  WHO  WANTED  TO  GET  MARRIED.1 

There  was  a  village.  On  the  east  side  of  the  village  lived  an  old  woman 
with  her  grandchild.  They  were  very  poor.  The  other  people  lived  in 
fine  earth-lodges,  while  these  two  lived  in  a  grass-lodge  away  off  from  the 
village.  When  the  people  went  out  in  the  morning,  they  surrounded 
the  grass-lodge  and  urinated  there,  and  hence  it  had  a  bad  odor.  Every 
day  the  old  woman  went  through  the  village  begging.  In  this  way  they 
kept  alive. 

The  boy  was  now  very  tall.  One  day  he  told  his  grandmother  to 
make  him  a  bow  and  some  arrows.  The  woman  made  them.  The  boy 
played  with  the  bow  and  arrows  every  day.  One  day  he  wandered 
from  his  lodge  and  went  a  .short  distance  to  the  east  where  there  was  a 

1  Told  by  Cheyenne-Chief.  Skidi.  This  story  teaches  that  no  matter  how  poor  a 
boy  may  be,  he  may,  by  his  own  effort  and  by  assistance,  become  a  tribal  benefactor. 


THE  POOR  BOY  WHO  WANTED  TO  GET  MARRIED.  207 

high  hill.  Instead  of  climbing  the  hill  he  stopped  and  began  to  play 
with  his  bow  and  arrows  at  the  bottom.  The  boy  went  to  sleep.  In 
his  sleep  he  found  himself  tinder  the  ground  with  a  fine-looking  young 
man.  This  young  man  said:  "I  know  that  you  are  very  poor.  I 
have  come  to  you  to  tell  you  that  hereafter,  every  day,  we,  the  Buffalo 
people,  are  to  send  you  a  Buffalo  calf.  When  we  think  it  is  time  to  send 
you  larger  ones  we  will  send  them."  Then  this  man  spoke  again  and 
said:  "I  am  the  son  of  the  Buffalo  chief.  His  home  is  beyond  the  vil- 
lage where  you  see  those  red  mountains.  There  is  another  opening  there, 
and  when  the  time  comes  we  will  make  the  Buffalo  come  out  from  the 
side  of  those  mountains  so  that  the  people  can  kill  them.  Return  now 
to  your  grandmother  and  to-morrow  come  back  to  this  place,  so  that  I 
can  show  you  the  opening  about  which  I  told  you." 

The  boy  went  to  his  grandmother's  lodge  and  did  not  eat  anything 
for  some  time.  He  was  thinking  of  what  the  strange  man  had  told  him. 
The  next  morning  the  boy  arose  and  without  eating  anything  he  took 
his  bow  and  arrows  and  went  out  to  the  place  where  he  had  been  the  day 
before.  There  he  met  the  strange  man  he  had  seen.  This  man  took 
him  farther  on  until  they  came  to  the  foot  of  the  hill.  On  the  side  of 
the  hill  was  a  steep  bank.  The  strange  man  said:  "You  must  get  behind 
this  little  knoll  and  you  must  watch  closely,  for  there  is  to  be  a  little 
calf  come  out  from  this  bank.  Where  you  see  this  steep  bank,  although 
it  is  covered,  there  is  really  an  opening  where  the  Buffalo  can  come  out. " 
The  strange  man  told  the  boy  that  he  must  not  look  at  the  bank,  but 
that  he  must  be  behind  it  so  that  he  would  not  know  just  how  the  Buffalo 
came  out. 

They  hid  behind  the  knoll  and  after  a  while  the  boy  heard  some  one 
coming.  Then  he  heard  the  noise  of  hoofs  rattling.  After  a  while  the 
strange  man  touched  the  boy.  The  boy  looked  up  and  there  he  saw  a 
little  calf  standing  looking  at  him.  The  strange  man  touched  him  and  said: 
"Shoot  it;  shoot  it,  and  be  quick  about  it. "  The  boy  shot  the  calf  with 
the  arrow  in  the  side  and  the  arrow  passed  through  the  calf  and  came  out 
on  the  other  side.  The  calf  gave  one  jump,  staggered,  bled  in  the  mouth, 
fell  over,  and  died.  The  boy  was  so  glad  that  he  jumped  over  where  he 
had  killed  the  calf,  and  when  he  was  sure  that  he  had  killed  it  he  turned 
around  to  see  where  the  strange  man  was,  but  he  had  disappeared.  The 
boy  took  the  little  calf  home  and  placed  it  in  the  lodge. 

Some  time  after  that  the  old  woman  came,  and  the  boy  said:  "Grand- 
mother, I  killed  a  little  calf.  I  have  it  in  the  lodge. "  The  old  woman 
cried  out  and  went  to  her  grandson,  passed  her  hands  over  his  head,  and 
said:  "My  poor  grandson  tells  me  that  he  has  killed  a  calf.  My  poor 


2o8  TALES   OF   READY-TO-GIVE. 

boy,  when  you  get  strong  so  that  you  can  go  and  hunt,  then  you  can  kill 
calves,  deer,  and  other  game  for  your  grandmother."  The  boy  took  his 
grandmother  into  the  lodge  and  showed  her  the  calf.  The  boy  took  the 
arrow  which  the  grandmother  had  made  for  him  and  said:  "I  shot  it  with 
this  arrow.  The  arrow  was  sharpened  and  the  sharp  point  burned  so  that 
it  was  hard. "  The  grandmother  was  glad,  and  she  at  once  skinned  the 
calf,  cut  some  of  the  meat  up,  and  boiled  it.  While  they  were  eating,  the 
boy  said,  "Grandmother,  you  must  not  go  begging  any  more.  From 
this  time  on  we  shall  have  meat.  The  people  will  be  coming  to  beg  meat 
from  you.  Give  the  meat  to  those  people  who  were  kind  to  you  and 
those  who  did  not  urinate  on  our  lodge."  Every  day  after  that  the  boy 
brought  a  calf  home,  each  time  a  little  larger  than  the  one  he  had  brought 
home  before. 

Some  time  after  this  he  began  to  get  lots  of  buffalo,  so  that  he  had  to 
get  his  grandmother  to  help  him  skin  them  and  cut  up  the  meat  so  that 
they  could  carry  it  home.  Every  day  the  old  woman  sat  in  the  lodge 
and  jerked  meat.  She  also  made  some  lariat  ropes  from  the  buffalo  hide. 
The  ropes  she  stretched  across  the  grass-lodge  on  the  inside,  and  she  hung 
up  the  meat  she  had  jerked  to  dry.  When  a  lot  of  this  meat  was  dry,  she 
folded  it  up  and  placed  it  in  parfleches  which  she  had  made  from  the 
skins. 

One  day  when  they  were  eating  fresh  meat,  a  young  girl  came  into 
their  lodge.  The  boy  told  his  grandmother  to  give  her  something  to  eat ; 
that  her  people  had  scolded  her  and  she  had  come  there  to  sleep.  The 
girl  ate  some  of  the  meat  and  she  saw  that  the  two  had  plenty  to  eat. 
She  told  the  old  woman  that  the  people  in  the  village  were  starving  for 
meat;  that  the  people  in  the  village  had  hardly  anything  to  eat.  The 
old  woman  then  took  some  buffalo  meat  from  one  of  the  parfleches  and 
gave  it  to  the  girl,  and  told  her  to  take  the  meat  home  and  for  her  to  eat 
the  meat  in  the  night  by  herself.  The  girl  did  not  want  to  go  to  her 
home,  but  the  woman  begged  her  to  go,  and  so  she  went. 

A  few  days  afterwards  the  boy  went  out  and  killed  a  big  buffalo  cow. 
The  old  woman  and  the  boy  skinned  the  buffalo,  cut  up  the  meat,  and 
carried  it  home.  After  they  had  eaten,  the  boy  went  out  to  the  opening 
on  the  side  of  the  hill  and  there  he  met  the  strange  man.  The  strange  man 
gave  the  boy  moccasins,  leggings,  a  buffalo  robe,  an  eagle  cap,  and  an  otter- 
skin  quiver  filled  with  arrows,  and  a  bow.  The  strange  being  told  the  boy 
that  he  must  go  to  his  grandmother  and  tell  her  to  go  and  ask  some  of 
the  village  girls  to  come  and  live  with  them.  The  boy  went  to  the  tipi 
and  stood  outside.  He  took  his  new  bow  and  one  arrow,  and  began  to 
hit  the  bowstring  with  his  arrow,  and  sang: 


THE   POOR  BOY   WHO   WANTED  TO  GET  MARRIED.  209 

Yonder,  yonder,  yonder. 
Yonder,  yonder,  yonder. 
Grandmother,  to  speak  for  me,  go 
To  the  lodge  of  many  maidens. 
Yonder,  yonder,  yonder. 
Yonder,  yonder,  yonder. 

When  he  stopped  singing,  the  old  woman  cried  inside  of  the  lodge  and 
said:  "My  grandson,  you  know  the  people  do  not  like  us.  You  want 
me  to  go  and  ask  many  girls  to  marry  you.  I  do  not  believe  that  they 
will  have  you."  The  boy  began  to  sing  the  same  song.  While  he  was 
singing  the  old  woman  went  out.  Instead  of  her  poor  boy  standing  there, 
there  stood  a  fine-looking  young  man  with  an  eagle  cap  upon  his  head. 
He  had  on  fine  leggings,  moccasins,  a  new  robe,  and  a  new  quiver  filled  with 
arrows,  and  a  new  bow.  She  could  not  believe  that  it  was  her  grandson. 
Then  she  asked  if  it  were  he,  and  he  said  that  it  was  and  he  wanted  her  to 
go  and  ask  the  chief  for  his  many  daughters. 

The  old  woman  went  to  the  lodge  of  the  chief.  She  said,  "I  have 
come  to  ask  for  your  girls  for  my  grandson. "  The  chief  was  lying  down 
upon  his  bed.  He  got  up  and  sat  near  the  fireplace  with  his  head  down. 
He  sat  there  for  a  long  time.  At  last  he  lifted  his  head  and  said: 
"Woman,  who  is  this  grandson  of  yours  that  I  should  give  him  my 
daughters?  Go  to  him  and  tell  him  that  I  will  send  my  answer  to  him 
to-morrow  when  the  sun  is  up  high. "  The  woman  arose  and  went  to  her 
lodge.  She  told  her  grandson  that  he  was  to  receive  the  chief's  answer 
the  next  day.  The  boy  then  stood  outside  and  began  to  sing  again, 
saying: 

My  grandson  sitting  here, 

Did  climb  and  reach  the  hill  tops, 

Yonder  red  hill  tops. 

"Listen,  grandmother,"  the  people  say, 

' '  Could  your  grandson  find  the  buffalo 

By  climbing  yonder  red  hills?" 

After  singing  he  went  into  the  lodge,  sat  down,  and  ate  some  meat. 
Just  then  the  same  girl  who  had  been  in  before  entered  the  lodge.  She 
saw  the  boy's  cap  hanging  on  the  side  of  the  wall;  also  the  leggings  and 
moccasins.  The  boy  wore  the  robe,  and  the  quiver  was  hanging  on  the 
wall.  The  boy  was  sitting  down  eating.  The  girl  spoke  to  the  old  woman 
and  said,  "Is  that  your  grandson?"  The  old  woman  said,  "That  is  my 
grandson."  The  girl  then  said:  "Grandmother,  I  want  you  to  know 
that  I  am  the  youngest  of  the  chief 's  daughters.  I  have  been  here  once 
before.  I  love  your  grandson  and  I  want  to  marry  him. "  The  woman 
gave  the  girl  meat  and  sent  her  to  her  home. 


210  TALES   OF   READY-TO-GIVE. 

In  the  night  the  girl  left  her  bed  and  went  to  where  her  father  and 
mother  were  lying.  She  woke  her  mother  and  said:  "Mother,  take  this 
meat  and  fat  and  eat  it.  Here  also  is  a  piece  of  meat  and  a  piece  of  fat 
for  my  father.  Give  it  to  him  and  tell  him  that  this  meat  and  fat  came 
from  the  poor  boy  who  lives  on  the  outskirts  of  the  village.  Tell  my 
father  that  to-morrow  he  must  send  word  to  the  poor  boy  and  tell  him 
that  one  of  his  daughters  will  marry  him."  The  mother  tried  to  scold  her 
daughter,  but  the  daughter  said:  "Mother,  through  this  poor  boy  the  people 
will  be  fed."  The  girl  then  went  to  bed.  Her  mother  took  the  meat 
and  fat  and  gave  it  to  her  husband.  Now,  these  people  had  had  nothing 
to  eat  for  some  time,  and  they  were  hungry.  When  the  man  ate  of  the 
meat  and  the  fat  he  asked  where  it  came  from.  The  woman  said,  "Our 
daughter  brought  this  meat  from  the  poor  boy's  grandmother."  The 
mother  said  further,  "You  must  give  your  consent  to  let  our  youngest 
daughter  marry  the  poor  boy."  The  chief  said,  "It  is  well." 

The  next  day  the  woman  went  back  to  the  chief's  lodge  and  there 
she  sat  down.  The  chief  said,  "Woman,  go  to  your  grandson  and  tell 
him  to  come  to  my  lodge;  that  he  shall  now  marry  my  youngest 
daughter."  The  old  woman  went  to  her  grandson  and  told  him  that  the 
chief  wanted  him  at  his  lodge.  The  boy  put  on  his  eagle  cap,  his  robe, 
his  leggings,  and  his  moccasins  and  went  through  the  village.  When  the 
people  saw  him  they  wondered  who  the  young  man  could  be.  He  entered 
the  lodge  of  the  chief  and  he  was  given  a  seat  near  the  entrance  near  the 
youngest  daughter.  The  other  girls  who  had  been  telling  their  father 
not  to  let  them  marry  him,  saw  the  poor  boy  and  they  were  surprised. 
They  also  wanted  to  sit  near  the  poor  boy,  but  his  wife  would  not  let 
them  come  near.  The  chief  told  the  boy  that  he  was  now  married  to  his 
daughter.  Then  the  boy  told  his  wife  to  get  up  and  go  with  him  to  his 
lodge.  When  they  entered  their  lodge  the  boy  told  his  grandmother  to 
untie  one  parfleche  of  meat  and  boil  it.  The  boy  then  sent  word  to  the 
chief  to  come  to  his  lodge  to  eat  with  him.  The  chief  invited  several 
other  leading  men.  They  entered  the  lodge,  sat  down,  and  were  filled 
with  meat.  The  chief  then  said,  "My  son,  our  people  are  very  hungry. " 
The  boy  said:  "I  know  that.  I  shall  try  to  see  if  I  can  get  any  buffalo 
in  the  country." 

The  next  day  the  boy  disappeared.  He  stayed  away  all  day  and  re- 
turned at  night.  He  said,  "Chief,  to-morrow  go  over  these  hills  and  you 
will  see  buffalo.  Surround  the  buffalo  and  kill  them."  Early  the  next 
morning  the  chief  sent  criers  through  the  village,  telling  the  men  to  get 
on  their  ponies  and  to  go  out  over  the  hills.  The  men  went  out  and  found 
the  buffalo.  They  surrounded  them  and  killed  them. 


THE  POOR  BOY  WHO  WANTED  TO  GET  MARRIED.  211 

Three  times  the  boy  brought  the  buffalo  himself  and  the  fourth  time 
he  led  them  out  to  the  red  hills.  He  stood  upon  the  hill,  waved  his  robe, 
and  the  buffalo  came  out  from  the  sides  of  the  hills.  The  people  made 
a  big  killing  and  were  satisfied.  The  people  now  had  plenty  of  meat. 
After  this  the  buffalo  became  numerous  throughout  the  land,  and  the  peo- 
ple did  not  need  anybody  to  call  the  buffalo.  The  boy  and  the  old  woman 
went  to  live  in  the  chief's  lodge.  The  boy  never  married  any  of  the 
other  sisters,  but  remained  with  the  youngest.  They  had  many  children. 

60.  THE  BUFFALO  AND  RED-SPIDER-WOMAN'S  DAUGHTER.1 

Many  years  ago  Red-Spider-Woman  was  at  the  center  of  the  earth. 
She  had  many  children,  nearly  all  girls.  She  and  her  daughters  raised 
corn,  squash,  beans,  and  tobacco.  At  this  time  the  Buffalo  were  all  in 
the  north.  The  chief  of  the  Buffalo  people  had  a  son  whose  name  was 
Curly-Eyes.  One  day  the  chief  held  a  council  with  his  Buffalo,  and  it 
was  decided  in  the  council  that  there  should  be  four  Buffalo  selected 
to  go  south  to  look  over  the  country,  for  the  Buffalo  selected  wanted  to 
go  to  some  other  place.  Among  the  four  selected  was  Curly-Eyes. 

The  four  Buffalo  started  south.  When  they  came  to  the  center  of 
the  land  they  found  Red-Spider-Woman  and  her  daughters.  Curly-Eyes 
saw  one  of  the  girls  and  he  fell  in  love  with  her.  Red-Spider-Woman 
went  into  her  fields  and  cut  some  tobacco  and  gave  it  to  the  Buffalo.  The 
Buffalo  went  back  to  their  country  in  the  north. 

When  they  arrived  there  Curly-Eyes  spoke  to  his  father  and  said: 
"We  saw  a  woman  with  tobacco.  She  gave  some  of  it  to  us.  She  has 
several  girls.  I  love  one  of  them  and  I  want  to  marry  her.  "  The  father 
said:  "There  is  but  one  way  for  you  to  do,  and  that  is  for  you  to  pay 
for  her,  so  that  we  can  bring  her  here.  Then  you  can  be  married  to  her.  " 
So  the  Buffalo  chief  selected  four  more  Buffalo  to  send  to  Red-Spider- 
Woman.  When  these  four  Buffalo  came  near  the  grass-lodge  of  Red- 
Spider-Woman  they  began  to  sing: 

Old  red  painted  woman, 

We  came  here  to  ask  for  your  daughter. 

We  will  give  one  valley  full  of  buffalo. 

The  old  woman  came  out  and  said,  "You  can  not  have  the  girl  for  one 
bottom-land  full  of  Buffalo."  Then  the  Buffalo  returned  home.  The 
chief  of  the  Buffalo,  when  he  heard  about  this,  said:  "We  will  offer  her 
more."  Then  the  chief  sent  four  other  Buffalo  and  they  went  down  to 
where  the  woman  lived.  When  they  came  near  to  the  lodge  of  Red- 
Spider-Woman  they  began  to  sing: 

by  White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.     The  tale  explains  the  dispersion  of  the 


buffalo. 


212  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

Old  red  painted  woman, 

We  came  here  to  ask  for  your  daughter. 

We  will  give  you  two  valleys  full  of  buffalo. 

The  woman  came  out  and  said:  "No,  you  can  not  have  my  girl." 
These  Buffalo  returned  home  and  told  the  chief  of  the  tribe  what  Red- 
Spider-Woman  had  said.  The  chief  said:  "I  will  select  four  more  to  go 
down  there  and  they  will  also  ask  for  tobacco  for  our  people."  So  four 
more  Buffalo  were  selected.  They  went  down  and  when  they  were  close 
to  the  lodge  of  Red-Spider-Woman  they  began  to  sing: 

Old  red  painted  woman, 

We  came  to  ask  for  your  daughter  and  tobacco. 

We  will  give  you  half  a  land  full  of  buffalo. 

Red-Spider-Woman  came  out  and  said:  "The  tobacco  you  can  not 
have ;  neither  can  you  have  my  daughter  for  the  amount  of  Buffalo  you 
have  promised  me. "  These  Buffalo  returned  home  and  told  the  chief 
of  the  tribe  what  Red-Spider-Woman  had  said.  The  chief  said:  "I  will 
select  four  more  to  go  down  there  and  they  will  also  ask  for  tobacco  for 
our  people. "  So  four  more  Buffalo  were  selected.  They  went  down, 
and  when  they  were  close  to  the  lodge  of  Red-Spider-Woman  they  began 
to  sing: 

Old  red  painted  woman, 

We  came  to  ask  for  your  daughter  and  tobacco. 

We  will  give  you  a  land  full  of  buffalo. 

The  Buffalo  went  back  and  reported  to  the  chief  that  Red-Spider- 
Woman  had  refused  to  give  them  either  tobacco  or  the  girl.  The  chief 
became  angry  and  said:  "Buffalo,  we  will  now  move  down  to  where  this 
Red-Spider-Woman  is."  All  of  the  Buffalo  moved  forward  and  they 
began  to  travel  south.  For  many  years  they  traveled,  and  at  last  they 
came  to  the  place  where  Red-Spider-Woman  had  her  lodge.  Curly-Eyes 
ran  to  the  lodge,  took  out  his  girl,  and  the  other  Buffalo  went  and  took 
away  the  other  girls.  They  trampled  her  fields  and  her  lodge.  The 
woman  ran  and  stood  upon  the  prairie.  She  began  to  disappear  and  go 
into  the  ground.  The  Buffalo  tried  to  kill  her,  but  they  could  not.  As 
she  was  about  to  disappear  in  the  ground  the  Buffalo  began  to  trample 
her  and  they  killed  her.  She  had  just  disappeared  as  she  was  killed. 
The  chief  of  the  Buffalo  then  said:  "Red-Spider-Woman,  you  shall 
always  remain  under  the  ground.  You  had  many  powers.  The  root 
into  which  you  have  now  turned  will  always  have  the  shape  of  a  human 
person.  You  will  have  curative  powers  and  the  people  will  dig  you  up 
for  medicine." 


THE   BUFFALO  AND  RED-SPIDER-  WOMAN'S   DAUGHTER.  213 

From  the  root  grows  a  vine  with  a  little  squash  on  it,  and  the  Indians 
call  this  squash  medicine. 

After  they  had  killed  Red-Spider-Woman,  the  Buffalo  scattered  all 
over  the  land.  That  is  why  the  Buffalo  were  found  all  over  this  country. 

61.  THE  SINGING  BUFFALO  CALF.1 

There  was  a  big  drove  of  buffalo  traveling  among  the  hills  when  night 
overtook  them.  They  lay  down  upon  the  grass  and  slept.  In  the  night 
a  buffalo  calf  had  a  dream.  When  the  calf  awoke  she  let  the  buffalo  know 
by  singing.  She  sang: 

Grandfather,  I  had  a  dream. 

The  people  are  gathering  to  surround  us. 

Truly  they  will  surprise  us. 

Truly  they  will  surprise  us. 

Grandfather,  I  had  a  dream, 

One  spoke  up  and  said, 

"They  have  dropped  and  are  sitting  down." 

Truly  they  will  surprise  us. 

Truly  they  will  surprise  us. 

Grandfather,  I  had  a  dream. 

Some  one  among  us  spoke  and  said,  . 

"The  people  are  gathering  to  surround  us." 

Truly  they  will  surprise  us. 

Truly  they  will  surprise  us. 

Grandfather,  I  had  a  dream. 
They  drove  you  near  the  village, 
And  then  the  playful  boys  killed  you. 
Truly  they  will  surprise  us. 
Truly  they  will  surprise  us. 

Grandfather,  I  had  a  dream. 
Some  one  spoke  and  pronounced, 
"Mother  holy,"  consecrating  her. 
Truly  they  will  surprise  us. 
Truly  they  will  surprise  us. 

When  the  buffalo  heard  the  calf  singing,  they  told  her  not  to  sing  that 
way,  but  to  go  to  sleep;  that  there  were  no  people  in  the  country.  But 
the  calf  kept  on  singing.  By  daylight  the  people  had  already  sur- 
rounded the  buffalo.  They  gave  a  yell  and  the  buffalo  all  jumped  up. 
The  little  calf  that  was  singing  ran  away.  The  calf's  mother  was  the 


by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  calf  giving  warning  to  the  buffalo  taught 
the  people  that  even  children  may  know  of  the  approach  of  the  enemy  or  be  aware 
of  impending  danger,  and  so  they  give  heed  and  pay  respect  to  the  warning  of 
children,  just  as  they  do  to  the  warning  of  the  old  men  of  the  tribe. 


214  TALES   OF   READY-TO-GIVE. 

first  to  be  killed  and  consecrated.  The  people  killed  many  buffalo,  and 
they  ran  many,  together  with  the  old  bull,  into  the  village,  so  that  the 
boys  shot  at  it.  All  came  true  as  the  calf  had  dreamed,  and  so  from  that 
time  the  buffalo  always  knew  through  dreams  when  the  people  were 
going  to  surround  them.  As  long  as  there  was  one  of  their  number  to 
be  consecrated  to  the  gods,  the  buffalo  were  satisfied ;  but  if  none  were  con- 
secrated, the  buffalo  did  not  like  it  and  rose  up  at  once  and  ran  away,  so 
that  the  people  could  not  kill  them. 

62.  THE  BUFFALO  AND  THE  DEER.1 

Many  years  ago  when  the  people  were  upon  a  Buffalo  hunt  a  big  drove 
of  Buffalo  would  come  down  to  be  slaughtered  by  the  people.  On  their 
way  they  would  find  a  drove  of  Deer  who  also  wanted  to  be  slaughtered 
by  the  people.  The  leader  of  the  Buffalo  people  became  jealous  and 
began  to  call  the  Deer  names.  He  said:  "Why  do  you  come  in  our 
way?  The  people  do  not  care  for  your  flesh.  They  do  not  hunt  you  as 
they  do  us. "  Then  the  Deer  replied  and  began  to  sing  this  song: 

Well,  now,  there  you  stand,  yonder, 
With  your  large,  dark  eyes. 
Well,  now,  what  then? 
Well,  now,  there  you  stand, 
With  your  large,  dark  eyes. 
Well,  now,  what  then? 

Well,  now,  there  you  stand; 

They  overtake  you;  they  run  you  to  earth. 

Well,  now,  what  then? 

Well,  now,  what  then? 

They  leave  your  flesh  on  village  sites  for  coyotes  to  eat. 

Well,  now,  there  I  stand. 

They  overtake  me;  they  run  me  to  earth. 

Well,  now,  what  then  ? 

Then  they  speak  out, 

"Yonder  deer  I  make  holy." 

Well,  now,  what  then  ? 

Then  the  two  contestants  would  return  to  their  party  and  they  would 
go  on  their  way.  The  Deer  became  angry,  and  the  next  day  while  the  peo- 
ple were  on  the  march  the  Deer  jumped  up  and  ran  among  the  people. 
The  men  ran  after  the  Deer,  and  as  they  ran  after  it  several  said,  "I  con- 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  illustrates  the  reason  for  the  Pawnee 
custom  of  invariably  attempting  to  kill  a  deer  in  starting  upon  a  buffalo  hunt 
before  they  have  reached  the  buffalo. 


THE  BUFFALO  AND  THE  DEER.  215 

secrate  that  Deer  to  Tirawa. "  They  killed  the  Deer  and  the  people  let 
the  man  have  it  who  had  consecrated  it.  The  man  took  it  to  the  lodge 
of  the  priest  and  there  they  consecrated  the  Deer  to  Tirawa  by  singing 
sacred  songs.  Several  days  after  this  the  people  found  many  Buffalo. 
They  surrounded  the  Buffalo  and  killed  many.  Several  of  the  Buffalo 
they  consecrated  to  Tirawa,  and  so  ever  after  that,  whenever  the  Indians 
were  upon  the  hunt,  the  Deer  was  first  consecrated  and  then  the  Buffalo. 


63.  THE  UNFAITHFUL  BUNDLE  KEEPER.1 

There  was  a  famine,  and  the  people  had  hardly  any  corn  or  buffalo 
meat.  The  Buffalo  were  far  away  in  the  west  at  that  time,  but  when 
they  found  out  that  the  people  were  hungry  for  meat,  the  bulls  sat  in 
council  and  decided  that  the  chief's  daughter  should  lead  the  Buffalo  to 
the  village  of  the  people.  The  Buffalo  chief's  daughter  put  the  bundle 
upon  her  back  and  led  the  Buffalo  to  the  village.  She  was  called 
' '  Woman- Who-Carries-the-Corn-Ear. ' '  When  they  came  near  the  village 
of  the  people,  the  girl  divided  the  Buffalo  into  four  herds.  The  first 
herd  she  sent  to  the  south  side  and  the  people  killed  them.  The  next 
herd  she  sent  on  the  north  side  and  the  people  killed  them.  Again  she 
sent  another  herd  on  the  north  side.  The  fourth  herd  she  told  to  move 
towards  the  village,  which  was  directly  west.  She  remained  behind  with 
the  bundle.  Many  of  the  last  herd  were  killed  and  only  a  few  escaped. 
During  the  chase  the  girl  went  into  a  ravine  and  gave  birth  to  a  calf. 
She  left  it  in  the  ravine  and  went  on  to  join  her  people,  who  were  then 
returning  to  their  home. 

When  the  calf  was  left  alone,  the  Wind  came  to  it  and  sang  a  song  to 
it,  telling  it  that  its  mother's  name  was  Snow- White,  and  that  she  carried 
the  bundle  with  the  corn  in  it;  that  her  father's  name  was  Young-Bull- 
with-Spot-on-Forehead.  The  calf  learned  the  song  and  then  started  to 
follow  the  herd  and  find  its  parents.  When  it  caught  up  with  the  herd 
it  began  to  sing: 

Something  whispered  and  told  me. 
It  was  the  wind  blowing,  saying, 
"Your  mother,  she  is 
White-Frost-Woman. ' ' 
Thanks,  thanks, 
Thanks,  thanks. 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  illustrates  the  importance  of  faithfulness 
and  fidelity  on  the  part  of  the  woman  who  has  in  her  keeping  the  sacred  bundle.  It 
also  explains  why  some  give  birth  to  illegitimate  children. 


2l6  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

Something  whispered  and  told  me. 
It  was  the  Wind  blowing,  saying, 
"Your  grandmother,  she  is 
B  lack-  Frost- Woman. ' ' 
Thanks,  thanks, 
Thanks,  thanks. 

Something  whispered  and  told  me. 
It  was  the  Wind  blowing,  saying, 
"Your  grandfather,  he  is 
White-  Forehead-  Bull. ' ' 
Thanks,  thanks, 
Thanks,  thanks. 

The  people  were  astonished  to  hear  what  the  calf  sang,  for  they  thought 
that  the  girl  was  still  a  virtuous  girl.  The  calf  kept  on  singing  about  its 
mother  until  the  chief  gave  command  for  the  herd  to  rest.  The  calf 
ran  up  to  its  mother  and  began  to  nurse;  then  the  people  knew  that 
she  was  truly  its  mother,  and  so  they  made  her  throw  down  the  bundle, 
for  she  was  now  a  mother  and  not  a  virtuous  woman,  and  so  unfit  to 
carry  the  sacred  bundle.  Then  the  chief  of  the  Buffalo  said:  "The  peo- 
ple who  kill  and  live  on  us  shall  do  the  same.  It  shall  not  always  be 
that  a  girl  will  give  birth  when  she  is  married, but  there  will  be  times  when 
unmarried  girls  of  high  birth  will  have  children."  Ever  since  that  time 
some  of  our  people  have  illegitimate  children. 

64.  THE  HUNGRY  COYOTE.1 

Coyote  was  out  hunting  something  to  eat  when  he  saw  many  buffalo 
tracks.  He  was  very  thin,  for  he  had  had  nothing  to  eat  for  several  days. 
He  sang  this  song: 

Here,  here  it  is  (buffalo  path). 

Once  it  was  that  he  watched  me,  did 

Ready-to-Give,  when  I  sat  watching, 

Waiting  for  them  (buffalo)  to  come  this  way. 

Here,  here  it  is. 

While  he  was  singing  he  heard  the  beat  of  buffalo  hoofs.  He  looked 
up  and  there  he  saw  a  young  calf.  Coyote  said:  "There  comes  my 
meat.  I  will  kill  the  calf  and  eat  him."  As  soon  as  the  calf  came  up, 
Coyote  said:  "Why,  here  comes  Round-Eyes,  my  grandson.  And  who 
told  you  to  come  this  way?"  The  calf  said,  "My  grandfather  told  me 
to  follow  this  trail."  Coyote  said:  "That  is  right.  They  know  that  I 

»Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  is  told  to  children  who  ask  to  dance 
when  the  songs  are  being  sung.  It  explains  the  presence  of  many  dead  coyotes  on 
the  plains,  and  especially  teaches  children  that  when  they  kill  game  they  should  not 
look  around  to  see  what  others  are  doing. 


THE   HUNGRY   COYOTE.  217 

am  sitting  here,  and  they  sent  you.     What  did  your  grandfather  say  my 
name  was? "  asked  Coyote.     The  calf  began  to  sing: 

Now  your  name  is 

"He-who-Lets-them-Pass-Unharmed." 
Now  your  name  is 
"He-who-Lets-them-Pass-Unharmed." 

Said  Coyote:  "That  is  my  name.  He  told  you  right.  And  what  is 
your  name,  little  calf?"  The  calf  began  to  sing: 

Now  my  name  is 
"Poor-Pitiful-Calf." 
Now  my  name  is 
"Poor-Pitiful-Calf." 

"Oh,  yes,"  said  Coyote,  "then  you  are  poor.  I  feel  sorry  for  you. 
And  what  else  did  your  grandfather  call  me?"  The  calf  began  to  sing 
again,  and  said: 

Now  your  name  is 

"  Takes- Pity-upon- the- Weak." 

Now  your  name  is 

"  Takes- Pity-upon- the- Weak.' " 

The  calf  went  by  and  began  to  run  fast.  All  the  time  Coyote  was 
talking  the  calf  had  to  think  what  to  do  and  what  to  say.  He  had  gone 
some  distance  when  Coyote  began  to  think,  "Why,  I  am  hungry.  Why 
did  I  not  kill  him  and  eat  him?  I  am  very  foolish."  Then  he  arose  and 
began  to  halloo  at  Poor-Calf,  but  Poor-Calf  was  far  away  from  Coyote. 
He  kept  on  running.  Poor-Calf  disappeared  and  Coyote  began  to  cry. 
He  went  to  a  hillside  and  lay  down  where  the  sun  shone,  and  went  to 
sleep  and  died.  This  is  why  we  find  coyotes  lying  on  the  side  of  hills. 
They  die  of  hunger. 

65.  THE  GATHERING  OF  THE  PRIESTS.1 

There  was  a  Coyote  village.  These  people  made  up  their  minds  to 
open  their  sacred  bundle.  When  they  were  about  to  open  the  bundle 
the  young  men  jumped  upon  their  ponies  and  went  out  to  kill  buffalo. 
As  the  old  men  sat  down  in  the  lodge  with  the  bundle,  the  crier  was  sent 
through  the  village  to  let  the  women  know  that  the  old  men  were  about 
to  open  the  bundle  and  sing  songs.  When  the  bundle  was  opened  a  crier 
was  told  to  go  through  the  village  and  tell  the  women  to  bring  dry  wood 
to  the  lodge  of  the  priests;  also  to  bring  some  green  willows  upon  which 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  illustrates  the  importance  of  women 
gathering  wood  for  the  priests'  lodge  and  of  girls  preparing  the  mush  for  the  priests' 
feast. 


2Ig  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

to  place  the  meat.     All  of  the  women  in  the  village  went  for  dry  wood 
and  green  willow  branches. 

There  was  but  one  girl  left  in  the  camp,  and  she  was  the  youngest 
one.  She  took  the  pestle  and  began  to  pound  some  corn.  She  pounded 
the  corn  into  a  fine  meal,  and  then  boiled  it  into  mush.  After  the  mush 
was  done  she  took  it  into  the  lodge  where  the  old  men  were  holding  their 
ceremony.  She  placed  the  kettle  inside  of  the  lodge.  The  errand  man 
received  the  mush  and  notified  the  priests  that  the  youngest  girl  in  the 
village  had  brought  a  pot  full  of  mush  for  them  to  eat.  All  the  old  men 
thanked  the  girl  by  saying,  "Nawa,  nawa  eri. "  The  high  priest  then 
said:  "The  youngest  girl  in  the  village  has  placed  a  pot  full  of  mush  in 
our  lodge.  Before  we  eat  of  this  mush  we  will  sing  a  song. "  They  took 
up  their  gourds  and  began  to  sing: 

Stir  the  mush. 
Well  done,  stir  the  mush. 
Youngest  of  our  sisters, 
Well  done,  stir  the  mush. 

The  priests  ate  the  mush  and  were  grateful  to  the  maiden  who  had 
prepared  it  for  them.  Other  women  brought  the  wood  and  the  willows 
to  the  lodge.  When  the  young  men  came  back  they  did  not  bring  any 
buffalo  meat,  and  the  old  priests  thought  it  very  good  for  the  young  girl 
to  prepare  the  mush  for  them.  The  bundle  was  kept  open  over  night, 
and  the  next  day  the  young  men  went  out  into  the  country  again,  and 
this  time  they  killed  some  buffalo.  Some  of  the  meat  was  brought  to 
the  lodge  of  the  priests,  and  when  the  priests  ate  of  the  meat  they 
folded  up  the  bundle,  hung  it  up  at  the  altar,  and  the  priests  then 
went  to  their  homes. 

66.  THE  MAN  WHO  SANG  TO  COYOTE.1 

Many  years  ago,  in  the  winter,  when  the  Pawnee  were  living  in  their 
villages,  a  person  going  through  the  village  in  the  night  would  hear 
laughing  and  singing  in  nearly  all  of  the  lodges.  Being  winter  the 
women  had  plenty  of  wood  piled  up  in  the  lodge,  and  the  people  felt  that 
it  was  time  to  tell  Coyote  stories  and  to  make  the  children  dance  while 
they  were  singing. 

'One  winter,  while  the  people  were  in  their  village,  one  young  man 
went  through  the  village  entering  one  lodge  and  then  another.  He  found 
that  nearly  all  of  the  people  in  the  village  were  telling  stories  about  Coy- 
ote. The  next  day  he  went  away  from  the  village  on  a  hunt.  While 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  tale  illustrates  the  belief  of  the  harm  which 
may  come  from  the  promiscuous  slaying  of  coyotes. 


THE  MAN  WHO  SANG  TO  COYOTE.  2Ip 

he  was  up  in  the  hills  he  saw  a  Coyote  coming  out  from  a  hollow. 
He  pulled  his  bow  to  shoot  the  Coyote.  He  remembered  that  it  was  bad 
luck  to  shoot  a  Coyote,  and  he  lowered  his  bow.  He  remembered  also 
that  the  people  were  telling  about  Coyotes  the  night  before.  He  stopped 
and  yelled  at  the  Coyote.  He  said:  "Coyote,  people  talk  about  you 
nearly  every  night  during  the  winter.  Suppose  you  tell  me  a  story.  We 
are  alone  in  the  hills."  Coyote  stopped  and  sat  down  upon  the  snow. 
The  man  picked  up  a  stick  and  ran  to  where  the  Coyote  was  sitting,  threw 
the  stick  at  him,  and  the  Coyote  began  to  run,  never  returning  a  bark. 
Then  the  man  stood  watching  the  Coyote  as  he  ran  and  sang: 

That  Coyote  going  along  yonder, 
What  is  it  he  is  carrying  on  his  back  ? 
Truly  I  have  tallow,  thick  tallow. 
It  was  killed 
On  top  box  elder  hill. 

That  Coyote  going  along  yonder, 

He  has  no  stories. 

I  have  a  story  of  the 

Whistling  (scalp-man's)  home  in  the  Kiowa's  country. 

The  man  sang  the  song  several  times.  As  he  did  so  the  Coyote  disap- 
peared, and  the  man  went  home.  After  that  the  man  was  always  lucky 
in  killing  game,  and  he  always  thought  it  was  because  he  did  not  shoot 
at  the  Coyote. 

67.  HOW  THE  CANNIBAL  SPIDER- WOMAN  WAS  OVERCOME.1 

In  a  village  there  lived  a  boy  who  always  wore  his  buffalo  robe  in  a 
peculiar  manner.  The  hair  of  the  robe  would  be  inside,  only  part  of  it 
showing  where  he  lapped  it  over  his  shoulders.  He  was  known  to  be  a 
wonderful  boy.  Every  once  in  a  while  it  was  reported  through  the  village 
that  a  young  man  had  gone  into  a  country  where  there  was  another 
village  and  had  never  returned.  In  that  village  lived  a  Spider- Woman, 
who  was  all  the  time  contesting  with  strangers  in  climbing  an  old  cotton- 
wood  tree.  The  young  man  who  wore  the  wonderful  robe  heard  of 
Spider- Woman  so  often  that  he  finally  made  up  his  mind  that  he  would 
visit  her  village.  ;  * 

The  young  man  started  out  to  find  it.  He  went  through  thick  wil- 
lows, and  when  he  came  to  the  edge  of  the  village  he  saw  a  grass-lodge. 
He  stood  outside  of  the  lodge.  The  youngest  child  in  the  lodge  came  out 

'Told  by  Little-Chief,  Chaui.  The  tale  represents  one  of  many  forms  of  the 
contest  between  the  young  poor  boys  who  became  heroes  and  the  Spider- 
Woman.  It  also  explains  why  the  woodpeckers  make  their  homes  in  the  tops  of 
elm  trees  and  the  woodrats  among  the  roots. 


220  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

and  saw  the  stranger.  He  entered  the  lodge  and  told  his  mother  that 
there  was  a  handsome  young  man  standing  outside.  She  said,  "You 
must  tell  the  young  man  to  come  into  the  lodge. "  The  young  man 
entered  the  lodge,  and  the  woman  gave  him  a  seat.  He  placed  his  quiver 
in  the  west  of  the  lodge  on  some  bundles,  and  sat  down  on  the  seat.  The 
old  woman  then  said:  "My  boy,  I  am  sorry  that  you  came  here,  as 
Spider- Woman  lives  in  the  village  and  she  takes  the  lives  of  young  men. 
She  has  a  person  known  as  Eyes- Wide-Open  who  goes  around  and 
makes  it  his  business  to  peep  into  all  the  lodges  to  see  if  there  are  any 
strangers  in  the  village.  He  will  come  and  see  you  and  he  will  invite  you 
to  Spider- Woman 's  lodge.  When  she  offers  you  mush  to  eat  you  must 
tell  her  that  you  have  eaten  plenty  and  that  you  are  full  and  can  not  eat 
any  more.  The  mush  that  she  will  offer  you  is  nothing  but  human 
brains.  If  she  offers  you  a  bowl  of  black  corn  you  must  not  eat  it,  for  it 
is  human  eyes.  If  she  offers  you  chopped  squash  you  must  not  eat  it, 
for  it  is  human  ears."  While  the  woman  talked  to  the  boy  she  dished 
out  some  ground  beans  and  placed  them  before  him.  While  he  was  eat- 
ing them,  the  entrance  flap  was  lifted  up  and  Eyes- Wide-Open  looked 
in  and  said,  "  I  came  to  invite  the  young  man  to  eat  with  Spider- Woman. " 
The  woman  whispered  quietly,  "You  long-faced  man,  you  ugly  man, 
you  are  going  to  take  this  boy  and  try  to  kill  him."  The  young  man 
said:  "Go;  I  am  eating  my  supper.  As  soon  as  I  am  through  I  shall 
come  over  to  the  lodge  of  Spider- Woman. " 

The  boy  went  to  the  lodge  of  Spider- Woman  and  she  offered  him 
mush  to  eat,  but  he  refused,  saying  that  he  had  just  eaten  and  could  not 
eat  more.  Then  she  said:  "My  grandchild,  I  should  like  you  to  come 
to-morrow  and  we  will  play  a  little.  I  want  you  to  climb  this  tree  with 
me. "  The  young  man  said  that  he  would  come  in  the  morning.  He 
returned  to  the  lodge  of  his  friends  and  told  the  woman  that  he  had  agreed 
to  climb  the  tree  with  Spider- Woman.  He  said  that  he  wanted  to  get 
up  early  and  to  get  something  ready  to  eat  in  the  morning,  and  he  wanted 
all  of  them  to  go  out  of  the  lodge  and  leave  him  alone.  The  woman 
said,  "Very  well. "  In  the  morning  the  woman  got  up  and  cooked  some 
more  beans  for  the  boy.  The  boy  ate  the  beans  and  then  told  the  people 
to  go  out,  as  he  wanted  to  be  alone.  Then  the  boy  took  some  white 
and  black  clay.  He  put  the  white  clay  all  over  his  body  and  spotted  it 
with  black.  He  took  from  his  quiver  a  bunch  of  red  feathers  and  stuck 
them  into  his  scalp-lock.  Then  he  went  out  and  told  the  woman  that 
when  Eyes-Wide-Open  came,  to  tell  him  that  he  was  ready  to  climb  the 
tree.  When  the  woman  saw  the  young  man  she  knew  that  he  must  be 
wonderful.  She  made  up  her  mind  that  she  would  stake  herself  and  her 


HOW  THE  CANNIBAL  SPIDER-WOMAN  WAS  OVERCOME.  221 

children  upon  the  boy's  winning,  so  that  if  the  boy  was  beaten  she  and 
her  children  would  all  be  killed.  Eyes- Wide-Open  came  and  said  that 
Spider- Woman  was  ready. 

The  boy  came  out  and  the  woman  said:  "My  son,  you  wager  me 
and  my  children.  If  you  get  beaten  then  we  will  be  killed. "  The  young 
man  said  that  he  would.  He  went  to  where  Spider- Woman  was  and 
Spider- Woman  said:  "I  am  now  ready  to  climb  this  tree.  You  climb 
the  tree  first."  The  boy  said:  "No,  it  is  your  game.  You  climb  first 
and  I  will  climb  afterwards."  The  old  woman  said:  "If  you  do  just 
as  I  do  you  beat  me.  If  you  can  not  do  as  I  do,  then  I  will  kill  you  and 
your  people ;  but  if  you  can  do  just  as  I  do  then  you  may  kill  me  and  my 
people.  If  you  show  that  you  can  climb  the  tree  better  than  I  can  you 
may  kill  me."  Spider- Woman  began  to  climb  the  tree.  As  soon  as  she 
reached  a  certain  place  the  tree  fell  to  the  ground,  and  the  old  woman 
was  thrown  to  one  side  and  she  stood  there  .laughing.  Then  she  told  the 
boy  to  climb,  and  the  boy  said,  "  It  is  my  time  to  climb."  The  boy  went 
to  the  base  of  the  tree  with  his  robe  over  his  shoulders.  He  began  to 
sing:  "I  like  to  climb  trees,  for  I  belong  in  trees.  I  can  climb  up  and 
down  and  the  tree  will  not  fall."  Eyes-Wide-Open,  who  was  standing 
at  one  side,  heard  the  song,  and  he  ran  up  with  his  club  to  the  young 
man  and  said:  "I  belong  on  your  side.  I  do  not  care  to  be  with  this 
old  woman."  Spider- Woman  said:  "Very  well.  You  belong  on  that 
side  and  I  shall  kill  you  and  place  your  skull  among  my  other  skulls." 
The  boy  continued  to  sing,  and  suddenly  he  threw  the  robe  from  him 
and  the  people  saw  that  he  was  painted.  The  boy  climbed  the  tree. 
When  he  reached  the  place  where  the  tree  was  to  fall,  he  began  to  climb 
down  again.  The  boy  reached  the  base  and  climbed  up  again,  and 
when  he  got  to  the  forks  the  tree  fell  down  and  the  boy  was  thrown 
to  one  side  and  there  he  stood  unhurt.  The  people  ran  to  Spider- Woman 
and  killed  her  and  her  people.  They  took  them  all  over  the  country  and 
placed  them  in  ravines.  Eyes-Wide-Open  was  also  killed. 

Then  the  boy  said:  "People,  my  work  is  done.  I  have  killed 
Spider- Woman,  who  was  always  killing  people  and  eating  them.  Let 
there  be  no  more  eating  of  human  beings.  This  tree  shall  fall  over  and 
be  no  more. ' '  He  went  to  the  woman  in  whose  lodge  he  had  been  and  said : 
"Mother,  if  I  had  lost  you  would  have  been  killed,  together  with  your 
children.  I  overcame  Spider-Woman.  You  and  your  children  shall 
always  live  under  an  old  tree,  for  you  are  mice.  My  people  from  now  on 
shall  make  their  houses  at  the  top  of  a  hollow  tree  and  you  shall  have 
your  house  at  the  bottom  of  the  tree. "  After  he  said  this  the  people  he 
had  been  with  turned  into  mice,  crawled  under  a  tree,  and  made  their 


222  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

home  there.     Then  the  boy  said:   "I  am  done.     My  work  is  finished." 
He  flew  up  into  the  tree  as  a  speckled  woodpecker. 

And  so  it  is  that  we  find  the  woodpecker's  nests  at  the  top  of  hollow 
trees  and  the  nests  of  the  mice  at  the  foot  of  the  hollow  trees. 

68.  THE  WITCH-WOMAN  WHO  STOLE  THE  WONDERFUL  ROBE.1 

In  a  village  a  Witch- Woman  lived  with  the  people.  She  killed  many 
handsome  young  men.  She  also  stole  many  things  from  the  people,  hid- 
ing the  things  which  she  took  under  her  dress.  Sometimes  she  would  cap- 
ture a  young  boy  and  would  turn  the  boy  into  some  animal.  Sometimes 
she  would  place  them  under  the  earth  in  the  form  of  woodrats,  moles, 
or  gophers.  She  did  so  many  bad  things  among  the  people  that  they 
turned  out  and  tried  to  kill  her.  When  they  pounded  her  with  sticks  she 
cared  nothing  about  it.  When  the  people  tried  to  cut  her  with  knives, 
the  knives  would  not  go  through  her  flesh.  She  laughed  at  them  and 
mocked  them.  The  people  could  not  do  anything  with  her. 

They  got  together  and  decided  to  go  to  the  old  priests  for  advice.  A 
man  was  sent  to  the  priest.  He  said  to  the  priest,  "I  was  sent  to  you  by 
the  people  for  advice  as  to  what  we  should  do  with  this  Witch- Woman. " 
The  priest  reached  up,  took  down  his  sacred  bundle,  opened  it,  took  out 
a  rattle,  and  began  to  recite  rituals  and  songs  which  were  given  to  the  peo- 
ple by  Tirawa.  At  last  he  came  to  a  ritual  which  told  about  the  Witch- 
Women  through  the  country ;  that  they  were  to  be  done  away  with  by 
young  men  from  different  parts  of  the  country.  Then  the  priest  stopped 
singing,  wrapped  up  the  bundle,  and  hung  it  up.  He  told  the  man  to  go 
and  tell  the  people  that  the  Witch- Woman  was  not  to  be  present  with  the 
people  always;  that  Witch- Women  belonged  to  the  earth  and  in  time 
they  would  be  placed  upon  the  earth.  He  told  the  man  also  to  tell  the 
people  that  certain  young  men  would  come  into  their  village  who  would 
be  the  ones  to  do  away  with  the  Witch- Woman. 

Early  the  next  spring  a  young  man  came  to  their  village.  This 
young  man  was  not  known  to  the  people.  The  buffalo  robe  which  he 
had  over  his  body  had  stars  and  dark  clouds  painted  on  it.  Paintings  of 
lightning  in  the  clouds,  the  sun  and  moon  were  also  upon  the  robe. 
Flocks  of  swallows  and  also  gadflies  were  painted  on  the  robe.  The  boy 

1  Told  by  Leading-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  This  story  is  told  to  children  to  teach 
them  to  be  careful  not  to  meddle  with  objects  of  a  ceremonial  or  religious  nature 
or  with  objects  which  did  not  belong  to  them.  Closely  corresponding  variants  of 
this  tale  were  found  in  all  four  bands  of  Pawnee,  the  one  given  here  being  the  most 
complete.  Th?  songs  which  accompany  this  version  were  obtained  from  Thief, 
also  a  Kitkehahki.  In  another  version  of  this  tale,  obtained  from  the  Chaui  Old- 
Woman,  Coyote  was  substituted  for  Witch-Woman. 


THE  WITCH-WOMAN  WHO   STOLE  THE  WONDERFUL  ROBE.  223 

lived  with  the  people  for  some  time.  One  day  he  was  challenged  by  the 
Deer  family  to  run  a  race.  These  Deer,  it  seems,  represented  the  old 
woman.  She  was  trying  to  do  away  with  the  young  man.  It  seems  that 
the  old  woman  was  suspicious  that  the  boy  was  from  some  god  in  the 
heavens.  The  boy  went  to  the  races  and  ran  with  the  Deer  and  over- 
came them.  The  boy  went  to  his  tipi,  picked  up  the  robe,  covered  him- 
self with  it,  and  went  on.  The  old  woman  saw  the  robe  and  said:  "What 
a  beautiful  robe.  It  must  be  a  fine  robe.  It  will  make  a  pretty  skirt  for 
me.  I  must  have  it  even  if  I  have  to  steal  it." 

One  day  the  boy  went  to  where  the  men  were  playing  with  the  gam- 
bling sticks.  As  he  sat  down  one  of  the  men  challenged  him  to  play  with 
the  sticks.  While  they  were  playing  a  false  alarm  of  an  attack  by  the 
enemy  was  given.  When  the  men  ran  to  where  the  alarm  was  given, 
the  old  woman  went  to  the  robe,  picked  it  up,  took  her  dress  off,  and  put 
the  robe  under  her  dress.  She  went  away.  When  the  men  discovered 
that  there  was  no  enemy  in  sight  they  returned  to  the  playground.  The 
boy  missed  his  robe.  The  old  woman  was  standing  at  one  side  of  the 
village  watching  him.  As  soon  as  she  saw  that  the  boy  was  looking  for  his 
robe  she  made  faces  at  him  and  said:  "Young  man,  you  will  never  find 
the  robe.  The  robe  is  now  my  skirt  and  it  shall  keep  me  warm.  You 
shall  never  know  where  it  is. "  The  young  man  went  through  the  village 
from  one  tipi  to  the  other  asking  for  his  robe.  The  people  had  not  seen  it. 
At  last  he  went  up  to  the  Witch- Woman  and  asked  her  if  she  had  seen 
anything  of  his  robe.  She  said:  "No,  I  have  not  seen  your  robe."  At 
the  same  time  she  made  faces  at  the  young  man,  saying  to  herself:  "You 
will  never  find  the  robe.  I  now  have  it  for  a  skirt."  The  young  man 
went  through  the  village  again .  He  stood  in  the  west ,  then  walked  through 
the  village,  singing: 

I  am  hunting  a  robe. 

My  painted  robe  I  am  hunting. 

The  heavens  are  painted  upon  it. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

When  the  old  woman  heard  this  she  began  to  clap  her  hands  and  said: 
"The  robe  must  be  a  wonderful  one,  but  you  shall  never  again  have  it 
in  your  hands,  for  the  robe  is  my  skirt. "  The  boy  sang  again: 

I  am  hunting  a  robe. 

Who  picked  it  up  ? 

Flocks  of  swallows  are  painted  upon  it. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 


224  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

When  the  woman  heard  it  she  said:  "It  must  be  a  wonderful  robe, 
but  you  shall  never  have  it  again,  for  I  now  have  it  for  my  skirt. "  The 
boy  continued  to  sing: 

I  am  hunting  a  robe. 
Who  has  picked  it  up? 
Dragon-flies  are  painted  upon  it. 
Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 
Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 
Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

At  last  the  boy  began  to  sing: 

I  am  hunting  a  robe. 

Who  has  picked  it  up? 

The  lightning  is  painted  upon  it. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

I  am  hunting  a  robe. 

Who  has  picked  it  up? 

The  thunders  are  painted  upon  it. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

I  am  hunting  a  robe. 

Who  has  picked  it  up  ? 

The  winds  are  paintad  upon  it. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

Attention!     It  is  among  the  people. 

The  Witch- Woman  heard  this  song  and  she  said:  "Do  you  think  I  am 
going  to  be  blown  away  when  I  have  more  power  than  you  have? "  The 
boy  cried  again.  As  he  finished  he  blew  with  his  breath  from  the  west 
to  where  the  woman  stood.  Then  he  cried  again  and  this  time  clouds 
were  seen  coming  from  the  west.  Clouds  blew  over  the  land.  When 
the  boy  cried  the  fourth  time  the  old  woman  took  the  robe  off  and  threw 
it  down  and  said:  "My  grandchild,  there  is  your  robe.  You  must  not 
let  the  storm  blow  me  away."  Just  about  that  time  the  wind  caught 
the  old  woman  and  whirled  her  up  into  the  heavens  as  if  a  whirlwind 
had  struck  her.  It  began  to  rain  all  over  the  land.  On  the  side  of  a  hill 
was  a  ravine  and  the  rain  seemed  to  stop  there.  Suddenly  the  wind, 
where  the  woman  was,  seemed  to  go  on,  and  the  woman  was  brought 
down  again,  and  she  was  blown  up  on  the  side  of  the  hill  at  the  head  of 
the  ravine  where  it  was  now  muddy.  There  she  was  sunk  into  the  mud. 


THE  WITCH-WOMAN  WHO  STOLE  THE  WONDERFUL  ROBE.  225 

She  opened  her  legs  so  that  when  she  struck  the  ground  the  mud  flowed 
about  her  and  she  began  to  urinate.  The  boy  saw  this.  Then  he  said 
to  the  people:  "The  Witch-  Woman  shall  be  no  more.  She  shall  stay 
in  the  side  of  the  hill  and  there  will  flow  from  that  place  a  spring.  In 
time  she  shall  either  turn  into  a  spider  or  a  black-tail  deer.  She  will  fool 
the  people  by  her  wonderful  ways.  '  '  The  young  man  then  went  to  his  robe, 
picked  it  up,  shook  the  water  from  it,  and  placed  it  upon  his  shoulders. 
He  said:  "My  work  is  done.  I  go  now  to  where  I  came  from.  I  repre- 
sent the  north  wind.  From  this  time  on  whenever  you  see  a  flock  of  snow- 
birds you  will  see  some  white  speckled  ones  among  them.  Remember 
that  I  was  one  of  them  —  the  one  who  killed  the  old  Witch-  Woman.  " 
The  boy  pulled  the  robe  over  his  head,  covered  himself,  sat  down,  sud- 
denly turned  into  a  speckled  snowbird,  and  flew  away  to  the  north.  The 
people  then  knew  why  the  buffalo  robe  had  paintings  on  it,  for  the  snow- 
bird is  speckled  with  black. 

69.  HOW  THE  CANNIBAL  WITCH-WOMAN  WAS  OVERCOME.1 

A  young  man  wandered  away  from  his  village.  He  came  to  another 
village  and  when  he  entered  it  he  was  taken  in  by  the  chief  of  the  tribe, 
and  Eyes-  Wide-Open  ,  a  Coyote,  came  and  invited  the  boy  to  eat  with  a 
witch-woman.  The  boy  was  told  to  eat  nothing  that  the  witch  might 
give  him,  as  it  was  all  human  flesh.  The  boy  went,  and  the  witch  offered 
him  something  to  eat,  but  the  boy  would  not  eat.  The  witch  said,  "My 
grandchild,  I  want  to  play  a  game  with  you,"  and  the  boy  said:  "Tell 
me  what  it  is.  Perhaps  I  shall  play  with  you.  "  The  old  woman  said: 
"To-morrow  I  should  like  you  to  go  down  to  the  creek  with  me.  We 
will  both  dive  and  whoever  shall  come  up  first  from  the  water  shall  be 
beaten."  The  boy  said  that  he  would  dive  with  her.  She  said:  "If 
you  come  up  before  I  do,  then  I  take  your  life."  The  boy  went  home 
and  told  the  people.  The  next  day,  early  in  the  morning,  Eyes-Wide- 
Open  came  and  told  him  that  the  old  woman  was  ready.  The  people  all 
went  down  to  the  stream.  The  boy  and  the  old  woman  went  into  the 
water  and  waited  until  they  were  in  the  middle  of  the  stream  and  then 
dived.  In  a  few  minutes  the  boy  came  up.  When  the  old  woman 
heard  the  shouting  and  calling  by  the  people  she  knew  that  he  must  be 
up,  and  she  came  out  of  the  water  and  took  the  boy  to  her  home  and  cut 
off  his  head,  and  placed  his  head  among  the  skulls  that  she  had.  She  told 
Eyes-  Wide-Open  to  watch  through  the  village  for  some  other  young  men. 


by  Little-Chief,  Chaui.      This  tale  is  a  variant  of  No.  68,  in  which  the 
Beaver  assists  in  conquering  the  Witch-  Woman. 


226  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

The  boy  had  a  brother  at  home  who  was  the  very  image  of  the  one  who 
was  killed.  He  went  to  the  village  hunting  for  his  brother.  When  he 
arrived,  Eyes-Wide-Open  invited  him  to  the  lodge  of  the  old  woman. 
When  the  boy  entered  he  saw  his  brother 's  head  among  the  skulls.  The 
woman  said:  "My  grandson,  I  want  you  to  dive  with  me  to-morrow. 
If  you  come  out  first,  I  will  take  your  life.  If  I  come  out  first,  you  shall 
take  my  life  and  the  lives  of  all  my  people. "  The  boy  then  said:  "I  am 
willing  to  do  this  if  the  chief  and  his  people  will  be  on  my  side. "  The 
old  woman  sent  Eyes-Wide-Open  to  the  chief  and  asked  him  if  he  and  his 
people  would  be  on  the  boy's  side.  The  chief  said  that  he  would. 

That  night  the  boy  asked  the  chief  where  the  old  woman  had  her  place 
for  the  diving.  The  chief  told  the  boy  where  the  place  was.  The  chief 
went  home  and  left  the  boy  at  the  place.  The  boy  then  stood  upon  the 
banks  of  the  water  and  cried.  A  little  Beaver  came  up  from  the  water 
and  asked  the  boy  what  he  was  crying  about.  The  boy  said:  "I  am 
crying  because  I  have  to  dive  with  the  old  woman.  This  woman  has 
killed  many  young  men  who  visited  the  village."  The  little  Beaver  then 
told  the  boy  to  stay  there,  as  he  was  going  to  see  his  father  and  mother. 
The  little  Beaver  dived  and  went  into  his  lodge  and  told  his  father  and 
mother  that  there  was  a  fine-looking  young  man  upon  the  bank  crying 
because  he  was  going  to  dive  with  the  old  woman.  The  father  said  to 
the  young  Beaver,  "My  son,  what  can  we  do  for  this  boy?"  The  young 
Beaver  said:  "Let  us  take  pity  upon  him  and  help  him,  so  that  this  old 
witch  shall  be  killed  and  there  shall  be  no  more  of  her  kind  in  the  land. " 
The  Beaver  said  that  he  would.  Then  the  young  Beaver  was  told  to  go 
and  invite  the  boy. 

The  little  Beaver  came  out  of  the  water  and  said,  "My  brother,  fol- 
low me,  and  then  whatever  I  do,  you  do  also. "  The  Beaver  dived  into  the 
water.  The  boy  followed,  and  he  soon  found  himself  in  the  lodge  of 
the  Beavers.  Then  the  Beavers  told  the  boy  that  they  had  decided  to 
take  pity  upon  him  and  were  going  to  help  him  loll  this  old  woman.  The 
Beaver  then  told  the  boy  that  when  he  should  dive,  he  should  select  the 
place  on  the  west  side,  and  as  soon  as  he  dived  he  should  swim  up  to  the 
lodge  and  enter  it.  There  they  would  keep  him  as  long  as  the  woman 
remained  under  the  water.  The  boy  was  thankful.  The  old  Beaver 
said  to  the  young  Beaver,  "Lie  down  while  I  cut  your  leg  off."  The 
young  Beaver  lay  down  and  his  leg  was  cut  off.  It  was  placed  in  a  pot 
and  boiled,  and  after  the  meat  was  cooked  they  took  it  out  and  fed  the  boy 
with  the  meat  of  the  leg  of  the  Beaver.  When  the  boy  ate  of  the  leg  the 
old  Beaver  took  the  bone  of  the  leg  and  threw  it  outside  of  the  lodge  into 
the  water;  then  the  old  Beaver  said  to  the  young  Beaver,  "Go  and  bring 


HOW  THE  CANNIBAL  WITCH-WOMAN  WAS  OVERCOME.  227 

your  leg  back  again."  The  young  Beaver  went  out,  dived  into  the 
water,  and  when  it  came  back  it  had  its  leg  on  again.  The  boy  was  told  to 
go  home  and  to  be  ready  to  dive  with  the  witch  the  next  day.  The  old 
Beaver  then  gave  the  young  man  blue  mud  with  which  he  was  to  daub 
himself  all  over.  The  boy  went  home  and  went  to  bed. 

1  .Early  in  the  morning  Eyes- Wide-Open  came  and  said,  "Young  man, 
the  old  woman  is  ready  to  dive  with  you."  Then  Eyes-Wide-Open 
cried  through  the  village  and  told  the  people  to  go  down  to  the  stream 
of  water;  that  the  young  man  and  the  old  woman  were  going  to  dive. 
When  they  arrived  at  the  water  the  boy  selected  the  west  side  and  the  old 
witch  stood  on  the  east  side.  They  walked  down  to  the  water,  waded 
in,  and  when  they  reached  the  middle  of  the  stream  they  dived.  As 
they  dived  the  boy  swam  under  and  reached  the  lodge  of  the  Beavers 
and  entered  it.  As  soon  as  he  entered  the  lodge  of  the  Beavers  the  old 
Beaver  said:  "My  son,  lie  down  and  I  will  cut  off  your  leg  and  boil  it  for 
your  brother  to  eat. "  The  young  Beaver  lay  down,  his  leg  was  cut  off, 
put  in  a  pot,  and  boiled.  Then  the  old  Beaver  told  the  boy  that  while 
the  pot  was  boiling  he  must  lie  down  and  sleep.  The  boy  lay  down  and 
slept.  The  man  told  one  of  the  Beavers  to  swim  towards  the  bank  and 
to  watch  and  see  when  the  old  woman  should  come  out  from  the  water. 
The  Beaver  swam  to  the  bank  and  sat  under  the  grass  which  hung  over 
the  bank.  The  Beaver  watched  and  watched. 

The  old  woman  and  the  boy  had  dived  in  the  morning.  It  was  then 
in  the  afternoon  and  neither  of  them  had  come  up.  Towards  evening 
the  old  woman  thought  to  herself:  "The  boy  must  be  drowned.  I  must 
come  out  of  the  water."  The  old  woman  jumped  out  from  the  water. 
She  began  to  straighten  out  her  hair,  and  as  she  reached  the  bank  she 
said:  "The  boy  died  under  the  water  a  long  time  ago  and  we  must  hunt 
for  his  body."  The  people  on  the  boy's  side  said,  "No,  we  must  wait 
until  the  boy  comes  up  from  the  water."  The  Beaver  came  into  the 
lodge  and  said,  "The  old  woman  is  now  standing  on  the  bank."  The 
Beavers  awoke  the  boy,  gave  him  meat  and  he  ate,  and  then  the  old 
Beaver  threw  the  bone  out  of  the  lodge  into  the  water  and  told  the 
young  Beaver  to  go  and  bring  back  the  leg.  The  young  Beaver  went 
out,  dived  into  the  water,  and  when  it  returned  it  had  its  legs  again. 
Then  the  boy  was  told  to  go  out  of  the  Beavers'  lodge,  to  swim  to  the 
middle  of  the  stream  and  then  jump  out.  He  did  so.  When  the  boy  came 
up  from  the  water  there  was  a  yell  from  the  side  of  the  boy,  and  the  peo- 
ple began  to  kill  the  people  who  were  on  the  side  of  the  old  woman.  The 
people  on  the  old  witch 's  side  were  all  killed.  The  old  witch  was  killed 
on  the  side  of  the  bank  and  tramped  in  under  the  ground,  and  as  the 


228  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

people  stepped  upon  her  belly  they  made  the  water  run  from  her  genital. 
She  was  left  there,  and  that  is  why  we  have  springs  near  the  banks  of  the 
streams  of  water.  If  the  young  man  had  not  beaten  the  old  woman 
in  diving  there  would  still  be  witches  in  the  country,  and  they  would  be 
killing  people. 

70.  THE  GIRL  WHO  CALLED  THE  BUFFALO.1 

In  a  certain  village,  where  Coyote  and  his  wife  were  living,  the  people 
became  hungry.  Coyote 's  name  was  "  Shield-with-Buffalo-Hoofs. "  His 
wife,  who  was  Spider- Woman,  had  around  her  waist  a  tanned  buffalo 
skin.  Hoof-Shield  went  hunting  every  day,  and  when  he  returned,  being 
hungry,  he  would  call  his  wife,  and  say,  "Old  woman,  let  me  cut  a 
piece  from  your  dress  that  I  may  eat  it,  for  I  am  very  hungry."  The 
old  woman  would  let  Hoof-Shield  cut  a  piece  off  from  her  dress  every  day. 
Finally  the  woman  objected,  for  she  had  but  a  small  piece  left  to  cover 
herself  with.  She  scolded  Hoof-Shield  and  told  him  that  he  ought  to 
hunt  like  other  men. 

One  morning  Hoof-Shield  told  his  wife  that  he  was  going  hunting,  and 
as  she  arose  he  cut  a  piece  from  her  dress  and  ate  it.  He  then  started 
on  a  hunt.  He  went  far  into  the  country,  but  found  no  game.  He  kept 
on  until  one  evening  he  smelled  burnt  beef.  He  followed  the  smell  for 
four  days  and  at  last  he  came  to  a  high  hill.  He  went  upon  the  hill  to 
look  about,  and  from  a  thick  timber  in  a  valley  to  the  south  he  saw  smoke 
rising.  He  could  also  see  the  tips  of  the  tipi  poles.  As  he  was  very  hun- 
gry he  went  to  the  place.  When  he  reached  the  tipi  he  heard  no  stir- 
ring around,  and  so  he  stopped.  A  woman  inside  spoke  and  said:  "Why 
do  you  stand  outside?  Come  in."  He  raised  the  entrance  flap  and 
entered.  Matted  sweet  grass  was  spread  all  around  the  tipi.  At  the 
west  of  the  fireplace  sat  a  pretty  young  girl.  Hoof-Shield  said  to  her: 
"My  granddaughter,  I  came  from  a  far  distant  country  where  the  people 
are  starving,  and  I  am  starving.  I  want  something  to  eat."  The  girl 
said  her  brothers  were  not  yet  there,  but  that  he  should  have  something 
to  eat  as  soon  as  they  came.  He  looked  around  in  the  tipi,  but  could  see 
nothing  to  eat.  The  girl  said:  "My  brothers  are  now  coming." 

There  was  a  peculiar  noise  in  the  sky  and  presently  a  Bald  Eagle 
came  through  the  tipi  and  sat  down  by  the  girl.  The  Eagle  looked 
around  and  said:  "Why,  grandfather  is  here.  I  know  he  is  hungry. 

'Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  tale  teaches  children  that  they  should  always 
be  on  the  lookout  for  something  to  eat,  and  that  they  must  have  higher  aims  in  life 
than  pushing  girls  in  a  swing.  The  fact  that  the  coyote,  magpie,  and  buffalo  are 
associated  together  teaches  that  whenever  one  or  other  of  these  animals  is  seen  the 
other  can  not  be  far  off. 


THE   GIRL   WHO    CALLED   THE    BUFFALO.  229 

He  shall  have  something  to  eat."  Coyote  could  see  nothing.  Pres- 
ently another  Eagle  came.  This  time  it  was  the  White  Eagle,  who  said: 
' '  Ah,  grandfather  is  here.  I  know  that  he  is  hungry.  He  shall  have  some- 
thing to  eat."  Coyote  looked  around,  but  he  could  see  nothing  to  eat. 
Another  Eagle  came  through  and  it  was  the  Black  Eagle.  "Ah,"  said 
he,  "grandfather  is  here.  He  shall  have  something  to  eat."  Coyote 
could  see  nothing  to  eat.  Another  eagle  came  through,  and  said:  "Ah, 
grandfather  is  here.  He  shall  have  something  to  eat. "  Coyote  could  see 
nothing  to  eat.  Another  bird  came  swiftly  through,  but  said  nothing. 
This  bird  was  a  Hawk.  Another  bird  came,  which  was  a  Crow.  The 
Crow  looked  at  Coyote  and  scolded  him.  Next  came  a  Magpie;  then  all 
kinds  of  birds  came  in  and  flew  around  the  tipi  in  flocks.  The  Bald 
Eagle  said:  "Sister,  we  must  send  you  off  to  get  the  Buffalo,  so  that  our 
grandfather  can  have  something  to  eat. "  The  Eagles  took  the  girl  out- 
side of  the  tipi.  Coyote  was  told  to  go  along  and  look  on.  The  Eagles 
took  the  girl  to  the  south  side  of  the  tipi  and  there  two  rawhide  lariat 
ropes  hung  down  from  the  sky.  The  Eagles  placed  her  upon  the  lariat 
ropes.  She  was  then  swung  and  flew  away  toward  the  west.  She 
disappeared  while  the  Eagles  were  all  saying,  "There  she  goes.  She  is 
now  coming  back."  After  she  was  gone,  they  said,  "Crow,  kill  two 
Buffalo  for  our  grandfather,  while  we  take  the  girl  into  the  tipi."  The 
girl  came  back  upon  the  ropes  and  the  Buffalo  were  running  behind  her 
raising  a  great  dust.  The  Eagles  took  the  girl  and  carried  her  into  the 
tipi.  The  Crow  flew  among  the  Buffalo,  and  as  it  said  "Caw"  over  a 
Buffalo,  it  fell  dead.  The  Crow  killed  two  Buffalo  and  then  the  Buffalo 
went  back  west.  The  birds  all  scattered  out,  flying  away  to  the  differ- 
ent trees.  The  Eagles  stayed  with  the  girl  and  they  told  the  Coyote  to 
skin  and  cut  meat  up  for  himself.  Coyote  skinned  the  Buffalo  and  cut 
up  the  meat,  eating  as  he  cut.  He  stayed  several  days  until  he  was  stout 
and  fat.  Then  he  thanked  the  girl  and  told  the  Eagles  that  he  had  chil- 
dren who  were  starving.  They  gave  him  the  meat  that  was  left.  He 
packed  the  dried  meat  and  started  for  home. 

When  Hoof-Shield  reached  home  he  fed  his  family,  and  then  told  the 
old  woman  to  cut  up  a  lot  of  dried  meat  and  boil  it.  He  then  went  to 
the  chief 's  tipi  and  invited  him  and  some  of  the  leading  men  to  come  and 
eat  with  him.  They  came  in,  and  they  were  surprised  to  find  so  much 
dried  meat.  In  a  few  days  the  meat  was  all  gone.  Hoof-Shield  went 
again  to  the  girl's  home.  Again  the  birds  helped  him  to  get  meat,  but 
the  Crow  scolded  him  for  coming.  After  the  girl  had  been  swung  and 
Buffalo  were  killed  for  Hoof-Shield,  the  Eagles  spoke  to  him  and  told  him 
not  to  bring  anybody.  "For,"  said  the  Eagles,  "we  know  you,  and  you 


230  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

may  lose  our  sister  by  bringing  someone  else."  Hoof-Shield  again  went 
home  and  fed  the  people. 

One  day  as  he  was  getting  ready  to  go  to  the  place  again,  a  friend 
came  up  to  him  and  said,  "My  brother,  where  do  you  go?  Let  me  go 
with  you.  My  children  are  starving."  Hoof-Shield  told  the  other  Coy- 
ote to  stay  at  home;  but  he  begged  so  hard  that  Hoof-Shield  finally 
gave  in  and  took  him  with  him.  They  went  a  certain  distance,  and  then 
Hoof -Shield  said:  "Do  you  now  smell  anything?"  The  other  Coyote 
snuffed  and  said:  "Yes,  I  smell  burnt  meat."  Hoof-Shield  then  said 
that  the  smell  came  from  afar  off,  but  that  it  was  from  the  place  where 
they  were  going 

They  went  on  until  at  last  they  came  to  the  tipi.  The  girl  told  them 
that  her  brothers  were  scattered  out  and  that  they  would  not  be  home 
for  some  time.  "But,"  said  Hoof-Shield,  "we  are  hungry  and  we  want 
something  to  eat.  Take  pity  on  us.  Let  us  swing  you.  My  brother 
will  kill  the  Buffalo  while  I  take  you  into  the  tipi. "  The  girl  consented. 
She  climbed  into  the  lariat  swing  and  they  swung  her.  She  traveled 
far  into  the  sky  towards  the  west  and  disappeared.  Hoof-Shield  would 
say,  "Do  you  see  her?"  The  other  Coyote  would  look  and  say,  "No, 
I  can  not  see  her."  Then  Hoof-Shield  would  say,  "I  see  her.  She  looks 
very  small."  When  Hoof-Shield  saw  clouds  of  dust  he  said,  "I  see  the 
girl  coming  with  the  Buffalo."  The  two  stood  watching  until  they  saw 
Buffalo  coming.  They  were  so  many  and  so  thick  that  the  two  Coyotes 
became  scared  and  ran  into  the  tipi.  The  Buffalo  ran  past  the  tipi,  then 
circled  and  ran  back  toward  the  west  with  the  girl.  Hoof-Shield  then 
said,  "We  have  done  wrong;  let  us  runaway,  for  she  has  brothers  who  are 
wonderful  and  they  may  kill  us. "  They  ran  away  and  returned  to  the 
village. 

In  a  day  or  so  Hoof-Shield  went  again  to  the  girl 's  tipi.  He  stayed  at 
a  distance,  for  he  did  not  want  the  brothers  to  know  that  he  had  lost  the 
girl.  He  saw  the  birds  flying  in  different  directions,  and  so  he  knew  that 
they  were  hunting  for  her.  When  the  brothers  came  into  the  tipi,  they 
found  their  sister  gone.  Then  the  Eagles  sent  the  Magpie  to  tell  all  the 
birds  to  come  to  the  tipi.  The  birds  came.  Some  were  in  the  tipi  and 
others  flew  around  the  tipi,  so  that  they  looked  like  a  big  black  thing  in 
the  sky.  The  birds  were  told  that  they  must  find  the  girl,  whether  she 
was  in  the  sky  or  upon  the  earth  or  under  the  ground.  The  birds  all 
flew  in  different  directions,  and  towards  evening  they  came  back.  Hoof- 
Shield  went  down  and  entered  the  tipi.  When  he  entered,  all  the  birds 
turned  upon  him  and  said,  "Have  you  seen  our  sister?"  and  "Where  is 


THE    GIRL   WHO  CALLED   THE    BUFFALO.  231 

she?"  Hoof-Shield  told  the  birds  that  some  one  else  might  have  been 
there  and  lost  her.  The  Crow  looked  sharply  at  Hoof-Shield  and  said, 
"You  are  the  one  who  lost  our  sister  and  you  must  help  to  return  her." 
Hoof-Shield  said  he  would  do  the  best  he  could;  that  he  would  get  some 
of  his  friends  to  hunt. 

The  next  day  the  birds  were  again  sent  out.  They  were  told  not  to 
return  that  day  unless  they  should  find  the  girl.  They  flew  away  and 
in  the  evening  they  began  to  come  in,  but  they  had  not  found  the  girl. 
There  was  one  bird  that  did  not  return  that  day.  It  was  a  Blackbird. 
The  next  day  the  Blackbird  came  in  and  said,  "The  Buffalo  are  playing 
with  the  girl. "  There  was  then  a  noise,  for  the  birds  were  glad  to  know 
that  their  sister  was  alive.  The  next  day  they  selected  an  Eagle,  a  Hawk, 
a  Crow,  and  the  Blackbird  to  go  where  the  Buffalo  were  playing  with  the 
girl.  They  flew  away  to  the  west  until  they  came  to  the  place  where  the 
Buffalo  were  playing  with  the  sticks.  The  birds  looked  down  and  saw 
the  Buffalo  throwing  the  ring  and  throwing  sticks  at  it.  They  knocked 
the  ring  around  until  the  birds  were  mad,  for  they  knew  that  the  ring 
was  the  girl.  They  called  it  names,  but  when  they  hooked  it  they  would 
say,  "I  have  had  connection  with  her." 

The  birds  went  back  to  the  tipi  and  reported  to  the  other  birds  the 
treatment  the  girl  was  receiving.  The  animals  also  came  into  the  tipi. 
Coyote  then  said, ' '  Bring  some  pine  juice  and  spread  the  stuff  all  over  me. " 
The  animals  went  and  got  some  pine  juice.  This  they  spread  all  over 
Coyote,  except  his  feet.  Coyote  told  them  to  put  plenty  of  the  juice  on 
each  side  of  his  neck,  so  that  his  neck  would  look  as  though  matter  were 
running  from  it. 

Then  animals  and  birds  were  chosen  to  go  with  Coyote  to  rescue  the 
maiden.  Coyote  was  to  be  leader;  the  Badger  came  next,  for  he  was 
to  dig  holes  for  Coyote  to  run  through;  then  came  the  Rabbit  and  the 
Fox.  Among  the  birds  selected  were  the  Prairie- Chicken,  Crow,  Black- 
bird, Magpie,  Hawk,  and  Eagle.  They  went  on  together.  The  Black- 
bird told  them  where  to  go.  When  they  had  gone  a  certain  distance  the 
Badger  was  told  to  dig  for  the  Fox.  The  Badger  made  the  hole.  Then 
they  went  on,  and  again  at  another  place  the  Badger  dug  another  hole 
for  the  Rabbit.  They  went  on  until  they  were  near  the  place  where  the 
Buffalo  were,  and  then  the  Badger  dug  again  for  Coyote.  The  birds  and 
animals  then  stopped,  but  Coyote  went  to  where  the  Buffalo  were  play- 
ing with  the  sticks  and  the  ring.  Coyote  went  up  and  sat  around  where 
they  were  playing.  Some  of  the  bulls  made  fun  of  Coyote  and  he  pre- 
tended that  he  was  sick.  Coyote  went  close,  and  one  young  bull  came  up 


332  TALES    OF    READY-TO-GIVE. 

and  scolded  him  and  was  about  to  hook  him,  when  others  said:  "Let 
the  poor  Coyote  alone.  He  is  nearly  dead.  Can  you  not  see  the  matter 
on  each  side  of  his  neck? "  So  the  bull  let  Coyote  alone.  The  ring  rolled 
close  to  Coyote  and  Coyote  opened  his  mouth  as  though  he  were  gaping, 
but  he  spoke  to  the  girl  and  said:  "I  am  here,  granddaughter.  Roll  up 
close  to  me  the  next  time. ' '  The  next  time  the  Buffalo  rolled  the  ring  it 
went  straight  to  Coyote.  There  was  an  uproar.  The  Buffalo  all  grunted 
and  ran  after  Coyote.  Coyote  gave  the  ring  to  the  Rabbit,  who  ran  with 
it,  while  Coyote  went  into  a  hole.  The  Rabbit  ran  on  until  it  came  to 
its  hole,  then  gave  the  ring  to  Fox,  who  was  there.  The  Fox  ran  on  with 
the  ring,  and  when  he  came  to  his  hole  he  gave  the  ring  to  the  Prairie- 
Chicken,  who  flew  on.  When  the  Prairie-Chicken  became  tired,  it  flew 
to  a  muddy  pond  and  lit  on  a  tree.  Many  Buffalo  ran  into  the  muddy 
pond  and  could  not  get  out  on  account  of  the  mud.  The  Crow  took  the 
ring,  the  Buffalo  still  following.  The  Crow  became  tired  and  gave  the 
ring  to  the  Blackbird,  who  flew  right  over  the  Buffalo.  The  Blackbird 
became  tired,  then  gave  the  ring  to  the  Magpie,  who  flew  on.  The  Mag- 
pie became  tired  and  gave  the  ring  to  the  Hawk,  who  flew  on.  The 
Buffalo  still  followed.  The  Hawk  became  tired,  then  gave  the  ring  to 
the  Eagle,  who  took  the  ring  and  flew  up  into  the  heavens.  The  Buffalo 
saw  this,  and  said:  "Let  us  now  scatter  all  over  the  land,  so  that  we 
will  be  killed  by  the  people. "  So  the  Buffalo  scattered  out  over  the  land. 
The  Coyote  never  went  back  to  the  village.  The  girl  was  taken  back  to 
the  tipi  and  she  was  told  to  go  to  her  people.  She  went  to  her  people 
and  here  she  told  them  that  they  must  select  a  girl  every  year  to  be  holy 
and  then  the  Buffalo  would  come  to  the  people. 

71.  WOOD-RAT-WOMAN  WHO  WISHED  TO  BE  MARRIED. 

(See  Abstracts.) 

[Told  by  Coyote-Standing-in-Water,  the  wife  of  a  Skidi  priest.  This  is  the 
Skidi  variant  of  No.  45.  This  tale  is  told  to  children  to  teach  them  that  when  they 
grow  up  they  should  marry  the  girls  of  their  choice;  especially  that  they  should  not 
marry  old  women  and  thus  not  be  able  to  rear  a  family.] 

72.  THE  W1TCH-WOMAN  WHO  WISHED  TO  BE  MARRIED. 

(See  Abstracts.) 
[Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.     This  is  a  variant  of  No.  71.] 


THE    BASKET    GAME,    OR   THE    WOMAN    IN   THE    MOON.  233 

73.  THE  BASKET  GAME,  OR  THE  WOMAN  IN  THE  MOON.1 

In  olden  times  there  was  a  Spider- Woman  upon  the  earth.  She  had 
several  daughters  and  they  lived  by  themselves.  They  had  a  garden  and 
raised  corn,  squash,  and  beans.  People  went  there  to  get  seeds  from  the 
old  woman,  but  instead  of  getting  seeds  from  her  they  were  challenged 
to  play  the  dice  game.  This  dice  game  was  not  the  one  in  which  they 
used  a  basket  and  seeds.  They  sat  down  upon  their  feet  and  jumped  up 
and  down.  While  they  were  jumping,  storms  were  called  by  old  Spider- 
Woman,  so  that  the  people  froze  and  were  beaten.  Spider- Woman  killed 
many  people  this  way  and  she  had  many  skulls  around  her  grass-lodge. 

There  was  a  village  where  lived  two  young  men  who  seemed  to  have 
wonderful  powers.  The  people  in  this  village  told  these  two  young  men 
that  there  was  a  Spider- Woman  in  their  country;  that  she  was  killing 
the  people;  that  they  would  like  to  have  them  go  and  visit  her.  One 
day  the  older  of  these  two  boys  said,  "Brother,  let  us  go  where  that 
woman  is."  The  younger  brother  said,  "We  will  go."  They  started  for 
the  place.  For  several  days  they  went,  and  at  last  they  came  to  acorn- 
field.  Here  they  stopped.  They  saw  a  grass-lodge.  They  also  saw  the 
skulls  around  the  lodge.  They  saw  one  girl  standing  outside  of  the  lodge. 
They  went  up  to  her,  and  as  soon  as  she  saw  them  she  said:  "Boys, 
you  must  not  come  into  this  lodge.  My  mother  will  see  you  and  she  will 
kill  you.  You  must  return  to  your  own  home."  The  boys  said,  "We 
want  to  go  in. "  The  girl  said,  "If  you  go  into  the  lodge  you  must  not  eat 
what  the  woman  offers  you,  for  the  food  will  be  human  flesh."  The  boys 
then  said,  "We  will  go  away  for  a  short  distance  and  we  will  come  back 
and  go  into  the  lodge. "  The  boys  went  away  behind  the  corn-field. 

When  they  saw  that  the  girl  had  gone  into  the  lodge  they  went  away 
from  their  hiding  place  and  approached  the  lodge.  The  other  girls  came 
out  and  the  boys  saw  that  they  were  very  ugly.  The  girls  ran  back  into 
the  lodge  and  said,  "Mother,  here  come  two  fine-looking  boys."  As 
they  approached  the  lodge  Spider- Woman  came  out  and  said,  "My 
grandchildren,  I  have  been  looking  for  you  for  a  long  time."  Then  she 
said  to  herself,  "These  boys  have  come  to  see  my  daughters,  but  they 
can  not  have  my  daughters,  for  I  shall  kill  them."  She  called  them  to 
her  and  said,  "My  grandchildren,  you  must  come  in  and  have  something 
to  eat,  for  you  look  hungry."  The  older  boy  said,  "Yes,  we  are,  for  we 
have  been  on  the  road  for  some  time. "  They  entered  the  lodge.  Before 

1  Told  by  Fox,  a  Skidi  warrior.  During  the  telling  of  this  story  the  children 
squat  down,  placing  their  hands  upon  their  knees  and  jump  about,  imitating  the 
moving  of  the  dice  in  the  basket  game.  Next  the  boys  sing  and  the  women  dance. 
The  belief  among  the  children  is  that  their  dancing,  which  now  imitates  grasshoppers, 
may  carry  the  evil  spirits  up  to  the  moon. 


234  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

going  into  the  lodge  the  older  boy  untied  a  sack  of  medicine  and  gave 
some  of  it  to  his  younger  brother,  telling  him  to  eat  it.  Then  he  took 
some  of  it  and  ate  it  himself. 

They  went  into  the  lodge  and  sat  down.  Spider- Woman  kept  mum- 
bling to  herself  as  she  dished  out  some  mush  for  the  boys.  As  the  bowl 
of  mush  was  placed  in  front  of  the  two  boys,  the  girl  they  had  seen  before 
watched  them  and  shook  her  head  to  let  them  know  that  they  must  not 
eat.  But  the  boys  ate  of  the  food  anyway.  They  ate  everything  which 
was  in  the  bowl.  The  older  boy  knew  that  they  were  eating  human  brains. 
After  they  had  eaten  up  the  brains,  the  older  boy  said:  "Grandmother, 
we  must  go  out  for  a  little  while.  We  will  be  back  again. "  The  old 
woman  was  afraid  that  the  boys  would  run  away  and  she  begged  them 
not  to  go. 

The  boys  went  out,  and  after  they  were  out  of  sight  of  the  lodge  they 
sat  down  and  began  to  vomit  what  they  had  eaten.  After  they  had  vom- 
ited what  they  had  eaten  they  returned  to  the  lodge,  and  when  Spider- 
Woman  saw  them  she  said:  "Why,  this  is  strange,  I  gave  human 
brains  to  these  boys  with  poison  in  it  and  here  they  come  walking  into 
my  lodge  again.  I  must  feed  them  again  and  give  them  stronger  medi- 
cine." She  began  to  dish  out  something  again  that  seemed  to  be  black 
corn,  but  which  in  reality  was  human  eyes.  The  older  boy  took  the 
little  sack  of  medicine  again  and  put  some  of  the  root  into  his  mouth. 
Then  he  passed  it  to  his  brother,  and  he  also  took  some  of  the  root. 
The  wooden  bowl  of  human  eyes  was  placed  before  them  and  the  boys 
began  to  eat.  After  they  had  eaten  all  there  was  in  the  bowl  the  older 
boy  said,  "Grandmother,  we  must  go  out  for  a  little  while."  The  two 
boys  got  up  and  went  out.  After  they  were  out  of  sight  of  the  lodge  they 
began  to  vomit  everything  they  had  eaten. 

When  the  boys  returned  to  the  lodge  and  Spider- Woman  saw  them 
she  knew  that  she  could  not  poison  the  boys  with  her  medicine.  She  said, 
however,  "I  will  kill  them."  She  told  the  boys  that  they  could  remain 
with  her  all  night,  as  the  next  day  she  wanted  to  play  the  basket  game 
with  them.  The  older  boy  said,  "Grandmother,  I  like  that  game  and 
we  will  play. "  The  boys  lay  down  upon  a  bed  on  the  ground,  while  the 
old  woman  placed  her  girls  near  the  entrance,  and  she  made  her  own 
bed  near  the  entrance,  so  that  she  would  know  if  the  boys  left  the  lodge. 

The  next  morning  the  old  woman  fed  the  boys  with  some  squash,  but 
the  boys  found  out  while  they  were  eating  it  that  it  was  not  squash, 
but  human  ears.  After  they  had  eaten  they  went  out  and  vomited 
everything.  When  the  sun  was  up  high  the  woman  said,  "The  sun  is 
high;  let  us  now  play  the  game."  The  older  boy  said,  "Very  well." 


THE  BASKET  GAME,  OR  THE  WOMAN  IN  THE  MOON.  235 

The  boys  went  out  of  sight  of  the  lodge  and  when  they  returned  they 
had  white  clay  over  their  bodies  and  also  over  their  faces.  They  had  little 
black  streaks  extending  downward  from  their  eyes.  They  got  down  on 
their  feet  and  the  old  woman  began  to  sing.  Now,  close  to  the  place 
where  they  were  jumping  up  and  down  there  was  a  steep  bank  where 
the  old  woman  would  jump  up  and  down  with  people  and  there  she 
would  push  them  over.  They  would  fall  over  this  steep  bank  and 
be  killed.  Now,  it  was  at  this  place  that  they  were  jumping.  The  old 
woman  began  to  sing  about  the  storms,  the  snow,  the  blizzard,  and  the 
black  clouds.  Then  she  saw  that  she  could  not  kill  the  boys  by  the  wind- 
storms. She  then  changed  her  song,  and  the  storms  disappeared  and  the 
sun  came  out.  When  the  snowstorm  was  there  where  they  were  danc- 
ing the  two  boys  turned  into  snowbirds.  When  the  storm  was  gone  and 
the  sun  came  out  the  boys  turned  into  larks.  The  old  woman  saw 
that  she  could  not  do  anything  with  the  boys.  Then  she  gave  up  and 
said:  "Let  us  go  into  the  lodge  and  I  will  give  you  my  daughters.  I  will 
also  give  you  something  to  eat."  The  older  boy,  however,  said:  "No, 
we  must  keep  up  this  game.  Let  me  do  the  singing  now  and  you 
dance."  Then  the  boy  began  to  sing: 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

The  blizzard  and  snow  drifts,  yonder  coming, 

Yonder  coming,  far  away. 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

The  stormy  clouds,  yonder  coming, 

Yonder  coming,  far  away. 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

The  stormy  black  clouds,  yonder  coming, 

Yonder  coming,  far  away. 

As  he  sang  these  songs  it  all  happened.  The  blizzard  came  and  the 
woman  nearly  froze  to  death,  while  the  boys  jumped  up  and  down  like 
snowbirds.  But  as  she  had  power  to  bring  the  snowstorm  she  did  not 
freeze.  Then  the  boy  changed  the  song  and  said,  "I  like  it  when  comes 
out  and  it  gets  hot. " 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

The  boiling  heat,  yonder  coming, 

Yonder  coming,  far  away. 

The  sun  did  come  out,  and  it  was  boiling  hot.  The  old  woman  began 
to  cry  out  and  say:  "Let  us  stop.  It  is  getting  too  hot."  The  old 


236  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

woman  tried  to  stop,  but  she  could  not,  for  some  unknown  power  was 
making  her  jump  up  and  down  and  she  was  being  lifted  from  the  ground. 
Then  the  boy  sang: 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

The  swarm  of  grasshoppers,  yonder  coming, 

Yonder  coming,  far  away. 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

The  swarm  of  grasshoppers  now  arriving, 

Yonder  coming,  far  away. 

As  he  sang  the  song  a  swarm  of  grasshoppers  flew  down  and  began  to 
circle  around  the  old  woman.  They  flew  all  around  her  and  under  her 
feet,  and  they  began  to  lift  the  old  woman  up.  The  boys  kept  on 
singing: 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

I  like  yonder  coming, 

The  swarm  of  grasshoppers  upwards  flying, 

Yonder  coming,  far  away. 

Spider- Woman  begged  the  boys  to  stop  singing,  but  they  did  not 
listen  to  her.  Spider- Woman  tried  to  fight  the  grasshoppers  with  her 
hands,  but  she  could  not  keep  them  off.  Finally  she  took  her  dress  off 
and  she  began  to  whip  at  the  grasshoppers.  At  last  she  gave  out  and  the 
grasshoppers  carried  her  up  into  the  sky.  When  they  arrived  at  the  moon, 
they  placed  the  old  woman  in  it,  and  there  she  was  left  to  stay  for  all 
time.  That  is  why  we  see  something  hanging  from  the  moon.  It  is  the 
old  woman 's  dress.  The  grasshoppers  then  flew  from  the  moon  to  the 
sun  and  there  they  swarm  around  the  sun.  This  is  why  we  see  a  swarm 
of  grasshoppers  flying  around  the  sun  in  the  summer  time. 

74.  THE  GIRL,  SPIDER-WOMAN,  AND  THE  BALL  GAME.1 

A  man  and  his  niece  lived  alone  far  away  from  other  people.  The 
man  was  lame  and  could  not  move  around  very  much  because  his  feet 
and  his  knees  were  swollen.  Notwithstanding  his  lameness  he  would 
disappear  every  day.  The  girl  did  not  know  where  he  went  or  how. 
Sometimes  he  never  came  back  until  late  at  night,  and  she  grew  pro- 
voked at  him.  She  told  him  that  he  should  stay  at  home,  and  that  he 
should  not  go  so  far  away ;  that  if  she  got  into  trouble  he  could  not  run  to 

lTold  by  Sun-Chief,  Skidi.  The  story  especially  serves  as  a  warning  to  the 
children  not  to  wander  far  away  from  home  lest  they  be  captured  by  some  super- 
natural being  of  vile  influence. 


THE  GIRL,  SPIDER-WOMAN,  AND  THE  BALL  GAME.  237 

help  her.  The  uncle  told  the  girl  that  he  would  be  near  to  help  her  if 
she  needed  him. 

One  time  while  her  uncle  was  gone  a  strange  being  came  to  the  girl. 
Before  she  could  cry  for  assistance,  she  was  taken  up  by  the  wind  and 
was  carried  to  a  far-away  country.  There  she  saw  Spider- Woman,  who 
told  her  that  she  had  been  brought  there  to  play  a  game  of  twin  balls 
with  the  people.  The  girl  began  to  cry  and  the  Spider- Woman  went 
away.  A  little  girl  came  to  her  and  asked  her  why  she  was  cry- 
ing. The  girl  said,  "I  was  taken  away  from  my  home  and  I  am  here 
all  alone."  The  little  girl  told  her  to  stop,  crying  saying  that  she  would 
take  her  to  her  home.  The  girl  went  with  the  child  and  when  they  entered 
the  lodge  the  girl  found  that  there  an  old  woman  with  many  children 
lived.  This  woman  was  Wood-Rat  and  the  children  were  young  Rats. 
They  told  the  girl  about  Spider- Woman  who  was  challenging  everyone 
who  came  that  way  to  play  twin  balls.  The  girl  told  Rat- Woman  that 
she  did  not  understand  the  game ;  that  she  had  never  played  it.  Just 
before  sunset  the  errand  boy  for  Spider- Woman  came  and  invited  the 
girl  to  eat  with  Spider- Woman. 

When  the  errand  boy  was  gone,  Rat- Woman  told  the  girl  that  Spider- 
Woman  was  going  to  place  something  before  her  to  eat.  That  the  things 
which  would  be  placed  before  her  would  look  like  black  corn,  but  in  reality 
were  human  eyes.  She  was  told  to  say,  when  Spider- Woman  told  her  to 
eat  it,  that  she  could  not  eat  anything  because  she  had  already  eaten  enough 
and  was  not  hungry.  Rat- Woman  also  told  the  girl  that  she  would 
challenge  her  to  play  the  game  of  twin  balls.  The  girl  went  to  Spider- 
Woman  's  home  and  found  many  human  bones  scattered  around  near  her 
place.  When  she  entered  the  lodge  she  heard  Spider- Woman  whisper- 
ing to  herself:  "She  is  fine  looking.  Her  head  shall  be  placed  before 
all  of  the  other  skulls  which  I  have  in  my  lodge. "  Spider- Woman  placed 
a  wooden  bowl  filled  with  human  eyes  for  the  girl  to  eat,  but  the  girl 
would  not  eat.  She  gave  as  an  excuse  that  she  had  eaten  at  the  other 
place ;  that  she  could  not  eat  any  more.  She  asked  Spider- Woman  to  let 
her  take  the  wooden  bowl  home,  as  the  people  at  home  would  be  glad  to 
eat  of  it.  Spider- Woman  let  her  take  the  wooden  bowl  with  her,  hoping 
that  she  would  eat  some  of  its  contents  later. 

The  girl  took  the  wooden  bowl  to  the  home  of  Mother-Rat,  and  when 
she  received  the  wooden  bowl  she  threw  the  stuff  out  and  then  gave  the 
bowl  to  one  of  her  children  to  take  back  to  Spider- Woman.  Mother- 
Rat  then  told  the  girl  that  many  a  young  man  had  lost  his  life  by  play- 
ing twin  balls  with  Spider- Woman.  She  said,  "She  will  surely  challenge 
you  to  play  with  her  before  daylight. "  The  girl  went  out  in  the  night 


238  TALES  OF  READY-TO-GIVE. 

and  cried  upon  the  high  hills  and  through  the  timber.  She  asked  every 
bird  that  she  saw  to  tell  her  uncle  that  she  was  taken  far  away,  and  that 
she  was  about  to  play  a  game  known  as  the  twin-ball  game  and  that 
she  needed  his  help.  The  birds  did  not  seem  to  listen  to  her.  Then 
she  went  back  to  Mother-Rat 's  home,  and  there  remained  for  the  night. 
Before  daylight  the  errand  boy  came  and  invited  the  girl  to  Spider- 
Woman  's  lodge.  The  girl  went,  and  when  she  entered  the  lodge  Spider- 
Woman  gave  her  a  seat  near  her,  and  told  her  that  she  had  a  game  known 
as  twin  balls  and  that  she  wanted  her  to  play  with  her.  The  girl 
accepted  the  challenge,  but  told  Spider- Woman  that  she  would  have  to 
wait  four  days,  as  she  was  looking  for  her  uncle.  When  the  girl  went 
back  to  Mother-Rat 's  home,  she  told  her  what  Spider- Woman  had  said. 
Mother-Rat  cried  and  said,  "She  will  surely  kill  you."  That  made  the 
girl  sad,  so  she  went  out  upon  the  hills  and  cried. 

In  the  meantime  the  uncle  of  the  girl  had  come  back  to  his  lodge. 
He  found  the  girl  missing.  He  took  a  bundle  down  that  was  hanging 
in  the  lodge,  opened  it,  and  from  there  he  took  out  twin  balls.  He  placed 
the  twin  balls  upon  the  ground,  and  put  his  feet  upon  them.  Then 
he  hit  his  ankles  with  the  stick  that  he  carried.  As  he  hit  his  ankles  with 
the  stick  he  would  make  a  motion  as  if  throwing  the  twin  balls  into  the 
air,  and  when  he  lifted  the  stick  he  flew  through  the  air,  and  when  he  let 
the  stick  fall  to  the  ground  he  would  drop.  In  this  way  he  went  into  the 
southern  country  looking  for  his  niece,  but  he  could  not  find  her.  Then 
he  traveled  in  the  same  way  in  the  western  country,  but  could  not  find 
her.  Then  he  traveled  the  same  way  in  the  northern  country,  but  could 
not  find  her. 

When  he  went  back  to  the  place  where  they  had  their  lodge,  a  little 
bird  was  sitting  upon  a  limb  and  was  singing.  The  man  could  hear  the 
bird  singing,  and  listened.  The  bird  sang:  "I  know  where  your  niece 
is.  She  is  about  to  play  the  twin-ball  game  with  Spider- Woman,  who 
will  kill  her  if  she  defeats  her. "  The  man  said  to  the  bird,  "Lead  me  to 
the  place  where  my  niece  is."  The  bird  flew  towards  the  east.  The 
man  stood  upon  the  balls  and  began  to  strike  his  ankles  with  the  stick. 
Then  he  lifted  the  stick  up  into  the  sky  and  the  balls  flew  up  with  the 
man.  The  bird  came  to  the  timber.  When  the  man  arrived  at  the 
timber  the  bird  began  to  sing,  "Now  you  can  hear  the  voice  of  your  niece 
crying."  The  man  stopped  and  listened,  and  he  heard  her  cry.  This 
was  in  the  evening.  The  man  then  ran  to  where  she  was  crying  and  he 
found  her.  He  told  her  that  he  had  come  to  protect  her;  that  she  would 
kill  Spider- Woman,  for  she  should  use  her  own  twin  balls.  The  man  said 
to  the  girl:  "On  the  day  when  you  shall  play  with  Spider- Woman,  I 


THE   GIRL,   SPIDER-WOMAN,  AND   THE   BALL   GAME.  239 

shall  be  close  by.  I  shall  blow  my  breath  upon  the  strings  that  hold 
the  twin  balls  together  and  shall  wear  the  string  out  so  that  it  will  break. 
You  shall  then  say,  'I  will  go  and  get  my  twin  balls  and  we  will  play.7  " 

When  the  day  that  was  set  for  the  game  came,  her  uncle  told  her  to 
take  his  stick  and  to  hit  him  several  times  upon  his  ankles  where  they 
were  swollen.  The  girl  did  as  she  was  told  by  her  uncle;  then  she  went 
to  play  the  game  of  twin  balls  with  Spider- Woman.  Spider- Woman  threw 
the  twin  balls  up  and  the  girl  tried  to  catch  them,  but  she  could  not. 
When  the  girl  touched  the  string  she  noticed  that  it  seemed  to  be  giving 
out,  and  so  she  made  up  her  mind  to  catch  the  balls  with  her  stick.  She 
did  not  get  the  best  of  the  old  woman,  but  she  knew  that  the  stick  was 
cutting  the  string,  for  she  remembered  what  her  uncle  had  told  her.  When 
the  old  woman  was  about  to  win,  the  girl  caught  the  balls  and  threw 
them,  but  the  string  parted  and  the  balls  separated.  Old  Spider- 
Woman  then  wanted  to  stop  playing,  so  that  she  could  fix  her  twin  balls, 
but  the  girl  insisted  that  they  finish  the  game,  as  she,  too,  had  twin  balls. 
She  told  her  uncle,  and  her  uncle  put  out  his  feet  and  she  began  to  beat 
his  feet.  After  a  while  she  noticed  the  twin  balls  coming  out  from  under 
his  feet.  She  took  the  balls  and  went  out  and  began  to  play  with  the 
old  woman  again. 

The  girl  won  all  the  games  they  played  and  won  all  of  Spider- Woman 's 
people,  and  at  last  she  won  Spider- Woman  herself.  The  people  who 
were  with  the  girl  rushed  on  to  the  old  Spider- Woman,  killed  her,  and 
burned  her.  When  the  old  woman  was  burned  she  was  seen  to  jump 
from  the  fire  into  the  grass  in  the  form  of  a  spider.  The  girl  went  home 
and  told  her  uncle  all  that  had  happened.  Her  uncle  told  her  to  whip 
his  ankles  and  to  place  the  balls  at  his  feet.  By  so  doing  the  man  took 
possession  of  the  twin  balls  again.  The  man  then  said:  "This  is  the 
way  we  get  rid  of  Spider- Women.  We  shall  not  have  such  persons 
among  the  people,  but  the  people  will  have  sickness  such  as  I  have,  so 
that  they  will  have  to  walk  with  a  crooked  stick  for  support. "  And  so 
that  is  why  the  people  have  rheumatism. 

75.  THE  BOY  WHO  KILLED  THE  CANNIBAL  WITCH. 

(See  Abstracts.) 

[Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  story  is  told  to  children  to  teach  them  that 
when  roaming  over  the  prairie  they  should  not  marry  strange  women,  because  the 
strange  women  are  spider-women  and  have  a  bad  influence.  It  also  teaches  the 
children  that  birds  are  good  friends,  that  they  help  to  destroy  evil  spirits  and  exist 
on  earth  for  this  purpose.  The  story  also  encourages  the  children  in  their  desire 
to  help  slay  the  evil  spirits.  The  lark  especially  was  to  be  respected  and  esteemed, 
because  the  lark  it  was  who  led  the  boy  to  the  lodge  of  the  gods  in  the  west,  where 
he  received  a  sacred  bundle  and  instructions,  at  which  time  also  the  people  were 
promised  the  buffalo.  The  larks,  in  their  song,  speak  in  the  Pawnee  tongue,  "I 
am  not  afraid."] 


240  TALES    OF    READY-TO-GIVE. 

76.  THE  WITCH-WOMAN  AND  HER  HOME.1 

In  a  village  was  a  hunter.  One  time  he  went  east  hunting.  After 
a  while  he  came  to  a  grass-lodge.  The  Witch-  Woman  came  out  and  met 
him.  She  invited  him  into  her  lodge.  When  he  was  seated  she  placed 
something  in  a  wooden  bowl  for  him  to  eat.  The  man  was  hungry  and 
he  ate  what  was  in  the  bowl.  In  a  little  while  he  became  very  sick  and 
died.  The  woman  cut  his  flesh  up  and  hung  it  up  on  poles.  She  took 
his  head  into  her  lodge  and  placed  it  there. 

About  four  days  afterwards  the  dead  man's  wife  thought  it  strange 
that  her  husband  did  not  come  home.  She  sent  her  son  to  look  for  his 
father.  The  boy  was  about  thirteen  years  old.  He  traveled  east  in 
about  the  same  direction  which  his  father  had  taken.  After  a  while  he 
came  to  the  grass-lodge.  There  he  saw  human  limbs  hanging  on  poles. 
The  Witch-  Woman  came  out  and  said:  "My  grandson,  I  am  glad  you 
came.  Before  I  give  you  anything  to  eat  you  must  first  dance.  If  you 
dance  longer  than  I  do,  then  you  conquer  me.  If  I  dance  longer  than 
you  do,  then  I  conquer  you."  The  Witch-  Woman  went  in.  She  took 
a  piece  of  string  and  made  a  hole  through  the  man's  left  ear,  ran  the 
string  into  it,  and  tied  it  there.  At  the  other  end  of  the  string  she  made 
another  opening  in  the  right  ear  and  tied  it  with  the  string.  She  then 
placed  the  head  upon  the  boy's  breast.  She  put  the  loop  around  his 
neck.  Then  she  began  to  sing  for  the  boy: 

Dancing  with  his  father's  head, 
Dancing  with  his  father's  head, 
Walking  he  came,  walking  he  came. 

She  continued  singing.  The  boy  was  dancing  all  this  time.  The 
Witch-Woman  was  also  dancing.  The  Witch-Woman  finally  gave  in  and 
was  about  to  kill  the  boy  when  several  men  came  to  the  place.  They 
took  the  old  woman,  killed  her,  and  saved  the  boy.  The  Witch-Woman 
was  put  into  a  fire  and  burned.  She  burst  while  in  the  fire  and  some- 
thing flew  up  and  rested  upon  a  tree.  When  the  people  examined  the 
thing  it  was  found  to  be  a  croaking  tree  frog.  The  boy  took  it  home  and 
told  the  people  that  it  was  the  Witch-  Woman  who  had  killed  the  man 
and  that  she  was  now  dead;  that  when  she  was  placed  on  the  fire  she 
burst  open  and  a  frog  flew  up  on  the  tree.  They  discovered  in  this  way 
that  the  woman  had  turned  into  a  tree  frog. 


by  Bright-Eyes,  Skidi.      The  story  conveys  a  warning  to  hunters  when 
away  from  home  not  to  stop  at  strange  habitations. 


III.  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

The  stories  in  this  group  correspond  to  the  group  in  the  Skidi  vol- 
ume under  the  heading  "Medicine,"  and  are  supposed  to  be  true.  They 
explain  rites  or  ceremonies  of  the  medicine-men,  or  the  origin  of  the 
medicine  powers  of  the  individual  medicine-men.  With  these  tales  are 
many  songs,  the  publication  of  which,  however,  is  reserved  for  another 
place.  These  tales  are  not  told  on  ordinary  occasions,  and  never  except 
on  payment  of  objects  of  value  or  of  money.  The  tales,  therefore,  are 
considered  as  private  property  and  belong  either  to  a  group  of  medicine- 
men controlling  a  medicine  ceremony,  or  to  individuals,  who  naturally 
possess  the  story  of  the  origin  of  the  medicine  power  which  they  use  in 
their  practices. 


77.  THE  MEDICINE-CHILD  AND  THE  BEAVER  MEDICINE.1 

When  the  Skidi  band  of  Pawnee  were  living  upon  the  Loup  River, 
the  other  three  bands  lived  near  the  mouth  of  the  Platte  River.  A 
child  was  born  in  the  Skidi  village.  As  the  child  grew,  he  developed  many 
mysterious  ways  and  acted  peculiarly.  He  would  not  play  with  the 
children,  but  stayed  at  home  and  played  "medicine-man"  by  himself. 
He  would  wander  off  to  creeks  and  to  the  timber  and  stay  for  some  time. 

One  day  as  he  entered  his  mother's  lodge  he  heard  some  one  groan- 
ing. He  sat  down  by  the  fireplace  and  watched.  A  woman  was  sick. 
The  boy  arose  and  asked  that  he  be  allowed  to  put  his  hands  upon  the 
woman  and  see  what  the  trouble  was.  He  slapped  his  hands  upon 
Mother-Earth,  then  rubbed  the  palms  together,  then  laid  them  upon  the 
woman,  where  the  pain  was,  and  the  pain  left  her.  The  woman  told  the 
older  people  what  the  child  had  done.  The  people  were  astonished,  for 
the  child  did  not  know  anything  about  medicine.  After  that  the  boy 
was  looked  upon  as  a  medicine-man,  but  he  did  not  make  a  practice  of 
curing  people.  It  was  only  at  times  when  mysterious  influences  came 
upon  him  that  he  went  to  sick  people  and  treated  them.  Every  time  he 
treated  a  patient,  the  patient  recovered,  and  so  all  were  seeking  to  have 
the  boy  heal  their  sick. 

»Told  by  Beaver,  Kitkehahki.  Beaver  inherited  this  story  from  his  father, 
who  was  the  keeper  of  the  Beaver  medicine,  the  origin  of  which  this  story  explains. 
The  skin  of  the  Beaver,  which  is  supposed  to  have  given  the  power,  is  that  of  an 
albino  and  is  still  in  possession  of  one  of  the  Kitkehahki  medicine-men. 

241 


242  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

The  people,  on  their  hunts,  met  the  other  band  of  Skidi,  who  were 
living  upon  the  Loup  River,  and  they  told  them  of  the  wonderful  boy, 
who  was  yet  a  mere  child,  but  was  healing  people  and  curing  them  of  their 
diseases.  The  Skidi  men  who  were  told  about  the  boy  went  home  and 
told  their  band  that  the  lower  band  had  a  medicine-child  who  was  won- 
derful and  who  had  power  to  cure.  The  most  powerful  medicine-man 
decided  to  visit  the  boy  and  see  what  powers  he  possessed,  and  to  find  out 
whether  his  power  came  from  the  animals  or  from  the  gods  in  the  heavens. 
He  told  his  wife  that  he  wanted  her  to  go  with  him  to  the  lower  vil- 
lages, and  they  went.  At  last  they  came  to  the  three  lower  villages  and 
the  man  asked  where  the  medicine-boy  lived.  The  people  told  him, 
and  he  and  his  wife  went  to  the  boy's  lodge  and  entered  it.  The  boy 
was  there.  He  arose,  took  a  buffalo  robe,  opened  it,  and  spread  it  out 
on  the  west  side  of  the  lodge.  He  then  placed  two  pillows  and  asked 
the  man  and  his  wife  to  take  their  seats  upon  them.  They  took  the  seats 
offered  them.  Then  the  young  man  called  upon  his  women  relatives  to 
boil  some  meat  for  the  visiting  medicine-man  and  his  wife.  The  women 
prepared  a  meal  and  offered  the  food  to  the  man  and  his  wife  and  they 
ate,  and  when  they  had  had  plenty,  they  passed  the  wooden  bowls  to  the 
women  who  had  offered  the  meat  to  them.  The  man  then  reached  for  his 
tobacco  pouch,  which  was  a  skunk  skin,  and  from  this  bag  he  took  out  a 
little  pipe,  filled  it  up  with  sumach  leaves  and  tobacco.  He  lit  the  pipe, 
passed  it  to  the  young  man,  and  the  young  man  took  the  pipe  from  the 
old  man  and  smoked.  The  boy  passed  the  pipe  back  to  the  old  man, 
who  smoked  and  emptied  the  ashes  out  of  the  pipe  upon  the  rim  of  the 
fireplace.  Then  the  old  man  spoke  to  the  young  man,  saying:  "My 
friend,  I  came  here  to  make  friends  with  you.  I  came  to  stop  here  with 
you  for  several  days,  and  to  talk  with  you  about  the  mysteries  of  a  medi- 
cine-man. I  am  a  Skidi,  and  I  have  heard  of  your  success  in  curing 
people,  and  I  thought  I  would  come  and  sit  up  at  nights  to  talk  with  you." 
The  young  man  felt  honored  by  this  visit,  for  it  seemed  that  his  own  peo- 
ple were  jealous  of  his  success  in  curing  people.  The  old  Skidi  medi- 
cine-man spent  one  whole  night  and  part  of  the  next  day  in  telling  where 
and  how  he  received  his  powers.  When  he  had  finished,  he  ate,  and  then 
said:  "My  friend,  we  will  now  leave  you.  We  will  go  to  our  village. 
I  shall  think  about  you  and  I  shall  make  you  another  visit.  If  you  can 
make  me  a  visit  some  time,  come.  I  shall  be  very  glad  to  have  you 
visit  me. "  The  old  man  and  the  old  woman  arose  and  went  out  of  the 
lodge  and  returned  to  their  village. 

After  a  time  word  was  again  sent  to  the  young  man  that  his  Skidi 
medicine-man  friend  was  coming,  and  his  wife  with  him.  The  young  man 


THE  MEDICINE-CHILD  AND  THE  BEAVER  MEDICINE.  243 

spread  the  robe  again  in  the  west  side  of  the  lodge  and  put  two  pillows 
upon  it.  When  his  visitors  came  in  he  motioned  them  to  take  their 
seats.  They  sat  down.  The  women  prepared  the  meal  for  them  and 
they  ate.  The  old  Skidi  began  to  continue  his  story  about  the  mysteries 
of  the  medicine-men,  and  the  young  man  listened.  For  two  nights  they 
sat  up,  and  the  third  day.  Towards  the  close  of  the  third  day  the  Skidi 
man  stopped  telling  about  his  mysteries,  and  he  and  his  wife  arose  and 
left  the  lodge  and  went  to  their  village.  The  Skidi  medicine-man  made 
several  visits  to  the  young  man  and  he  continued  to  tell  his  story. 

Once  he  visited  the  young  man  and  took  him  presents  of  a  buffalo 
robe,  a  pipe,  eagle  feathers,  and  some  other  little  things.  Word  was 
sent  to  the  boy  that  the  old  man  and  his  wife  were  again  coming.  The 
old  man  and  his  wife,  upon  entering,  placed  the  gifts  that  they  had 
brought  to  the  young  man  in  front  of  him  and  said:  "My  friend,  I  have 
come  to  you  this  time,  and  bring  these  gifts  to  you.  I  now  wish  to  hear 
your  story,  why  you,  though  you  are  yet  young,  should  know  the  mys- 
teries of  a  medicine-man."  The  young  man  accepted  the  gifts  and  laid 
them  to  one  side.  He  told  the  old  man  to  continue  his  story,  as  he 
was  very  much  interested.  They  sat  for  three  days  and  three  nights, 
and  upon  the  fourth  day  the  old  man  stopped  and  told  the  young  man 
that  he  now  thought  it  was  time  for  him  to  tell  him  something.  The 
young  man  told  the  old  man  that  he  had  no  powers  whatever;  that  he  had 
not  seen  any  mysteries  in  the  heavens,  nor  had  he  been  taken  into  the 
animals'  lodges;  that  if  he  had  cured  people,  it  must  have  been  through  a 
power  that  he  did  not  know  was  present  with  him,  for  he  had  no  roots 
or  herbs  to  give  patients,  and  that  in  reality  he  was  not  a  medicine-man, 
and  that  he  would  like  very  much  to  have  the  old  man  continue.  The 
old  man  was  enraged  by  this  turn  of  things,  for  he  had  expected  a  long 
story  that  he  might  learn  how  the  boy  had  been  taken  into  the  animals ' 
lodge,  and  what  powers  he  possessed. 

On  the  fourth  night,  as  they  were  sitting,  the  old  man  reached  for 
his  skunk  bag,  pulled  his  pipe  out,  filled  it  up,  and  handed  it  to  the  young 
man.  The  young  man  lighted  the  pipe,  smoked  it,  and  passed  it  to  the 
old  man,  who  smoked  a  little  and  passed  it  back  to  the  young  man  to  smoke. 
As  the  young  man  was  emptying  the  ashes  from  the  bowl  of  the  pipe,  he 
fell  over  for  want  of  sleep.  The  old  man  woke  the  boy.  The  boy  sat  up 
and  the  old  man  said:  ' '  You  are  now  very  sleepy  and  tired  out.  We  shall 
leave  you  and  go  home.  I  am  glad  we  have  talked,  and  some  time  we 
shall  come  again  to  see  you." 

The  boy  lay  down  by  the  side  of  the  fireplace  with  his  robe  wrapped 
around  him.  From  that  time  on  he  felt  a  peculiar  sensation  in  his 


244       •  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

stomach.  As  the  days  went  by  and  several  months  passed,  the  young  man 
felt  larger,  as  if  his  stomach  was  growing.  He  knew  then  that  the  old 
Skidi  man  had  done  something  to  him.  He  told  his  relatives  of  his  condi- 
tion. The  time  came  for  all  the  tribes  to  go  hunting.  The  young  man 
told  his  people  that  he  was  going  off,  that  he  was  pregnant,  and  that  he 
was  no  longer  fit  to  be  in  the  village;  that  he  was  going  to  leave  the 
village  entirely  and  go  off  and  die  in  some  unknown  country,  so  that  the 
people  would  never  know  that  he  was  in  this  condition. 

He  took  some  meat  and  went  off  and  left  the  village,  traveling  south. 
The  people  left  their  village  and  went  west  on  a  buffalo  hunt.  The 
young  man  went  south  toward  the  Platte  River.  He  then  traveled 
toward  the  west,  following  the  Platte  River.  He  did  not  eat  anything  all 
this  time,  for  he  felt  very  much  ashamed  and  he  did  not  care  to  live. 
When  he  came  to  the  hills,  he  went  into  places  where  he  thought  wild 
animals  would  find  him  and  kill  him,  but  none  came.  He  finally  went 
across  the  Platte  River  to  some  rocky  hills.  He  was  very  weak,  his 
stomach  was  prominent,  and  his  limbs  were  thin  and  his  face  also.  While 
he  was  upon  this  hill  he  heard  peculiar  noises  in  the  distance.  He  fol- 
lowed the  noises,  and,  as  he  reached  the  ridge  of  a  high  hill,  he  looked 
down  on  the  other  side  and  saw  a  tipi.  The  tipi  was  very  large  and 
looked  new.  He  went  down  the  hill  to  the  tipi.  As  he  approached  the 
west  side,  somebody  within  said,  "Do  not  come  near  our  tipi."  But 
the  boy  went  on.  When  he  came  close  to  the  south  side,  somebody  com- 
manded him  to  stop  where  he  was  or  he  would  be  killed;  but  he  went  on 
and  was  not  killed.  When  he  came  to  the  entrance,  he  was  again  com- 
manded not  to  enter;  but  he  lifted  the  door  flap  and  the  voice  said,  "Do 
not  come  in,  for  we  shall  eat  you  up  if  you  do. "  But  the  boy  went  in. 

Everything  in  the  tipi  was  quiet.  The  boy  threw  aside  the  robe  that 
he  had  upon  him  and  told  the  people  in  there  that  he  was  ready  to  be  killed ; 
that  he  was  in  great  trouble  and  that  he  did  not  care  to  live.  "Look 
upon  me  and  you  can  see  what  my  trouble  is,"  he  said.  On  the  west 
side  sat  little  men,  and  other  men  were  sitting  in  a  circle  around  the  tipi, 
and  on  the  south  side  a  peculiar-looking  man  sat  who  was  dressed  differ- 
ently from  the  others.  He  had  white  clay  streaks  upon  his  face,  and 
over  him  were  hanging  black  lariat  ropes,  decked  with  downy  feathers, 
and  a  war  club  was  tied  to  the  ropes.  These  people  said  that  they  were 
sorry  not  to  be  able  to  do  anything  for  him,  for  they  did  not  have  the 
power  to  grant  what  he  wanted.  "But,"  they  said,  "we  will  leave  it  to 
the  two  errand  men  who  are  sitting  by  the  entrance  to  decide  whether 
the  animals  shall  help  you  or  not." 

There  was  a  Raccoon  on   the  north,  and  a  Muskrat  on  the  south  of 


THE  MEDICINE-CHILD  AND  THE  BEAVER  MEDICINE.  245 

the  entrance,  and  they  were  the  errand  men.  The  Muskrat  arose  and  said 
that  he  was  going  to  leave  it  all  to  the  Raccoon.  The  Raccoon  arose 
and  called  on  the  head  medicine-men,  but  reminded  them  of  his  errands, 
his  willingness  to  do  their  commands,  and  said:  "This  is  a  poor  man. 
I  feel  sorry  for  him.  He  stands  there  with  a  large  belly  like  a  woman. 
I  ask  you  to  cure  him  and  make  him  well  and  to  give  him  power  to 
become  a  medicine-man."  All  the  animals  said,  "Nawa. "  But  they 
could  not  do  anything  for  him  until  the  other  lodges  had  been  notified. 
The  four  little  men  in  the  west  commanded  the  man  in  the  south  to  take 
this  man  to  the  animal  lodge  under  Spring-Hill.  The  man  in  the  south 
rose  up,  sat  down  in  front  of  the  unfortunate  boy,  and  told  him  to  get  on 
his  back  and  close  his  eyes.  The  boy  closed  his  eyes  and  the  animal  flew 
up  and  out  of  the  lodge  towards  the  southwest.  He  flew  for  some  time 
and  then  lighted  on  a  high  hill.  He  told  the  unfortunate  boy  to  look, 
and  when  he  looked  he  saw  the  same  man  who  brought  him  there.  After 
the  man  had  rested,  he  sat  down  again  and  told  the  boy  to  get  on  his 
back.  The  boy  obeyed  and  the  animal  flew  again,  and  when  he  lighted 
he  told  the  boy  to  open  his  eyes,  and  he  did  so.  He  was  in  the  lodge  of 
the  animals  and  there  the  man  sat  among  them  as  a  Hawk. 

The  Hawk  spoke  up  and  said  that  the  animals  from  the  other  lodge 
had  sent  him  there  with  the  boy  to  ask  the  animals  of  this  lodge  to 
help  him;  that  the  two  errand  people  had  given  their  consent.  "Very 
well,"  they  said,  "we  are  willing  to  help  this  man,  but  we  can  not  do 
it  here."  At  the  entrance  of  the  lodge  was  a  Buzzard  on  the  south 
side,  and  a  Magpie  on  the  north  side.  They  were  the  errand  men  of 
this  lodge.  The  animals  left  it  with  these  two  to  decide  whether  they 
should  help  the  boy.  The  Buzzard  stepped  up  and  said  that  he  would 
leave  it  all  with  the  Magpie.  The  Magpie  felt  sorry  for  the  unfortunate 
boy,  for  he  was  very  thin  and  had  had  nothing  to  eat  all  this  time,  and 
he  was  big  in  the  belly.  The  medicine-men  all  said,  "Very  well. " 

They  sent  the  Magpie  to  all  the  other  animal  lodges.  The  Magpie  went 
to  all  the  lodges  and  went  to  the  lodge  at  Pahuk  last,  for  there  was  the  lodge 
that  was  really  at  the  head  of  all  the  other  lodges.  The  animals  of  that 
lodge  told  the  Magpie  that  he  must  fly  to  the  different  lodges  and  invite 
some  of  the  other  animals  to  come  to  the  lodge  at  Pahuk,  for  there  the 
boy  must  be  made  well.  They  also  instructed  the  Buzzard  at  the 
Spring-Hill  lodge  to  carry  the  boy  upon  his  back  to  the  lodge  at  Pahuk. 
The  Magpie  flew  up  the  stream  and  stopped  at  the  different  lodges,  and 
at  each  lodge  he  said  that  the  lodge  at  Pahuk  had  sent  him  to  say 
that  this  lodge  should  send  some  of  their  animals  to  Pahuk,  where  they 
were  to  cure  the  boy.  Each  lodge  that  the  Magpie  visited  selected  its 


246  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

own  animals  and  sent  them  to  Pahuk.  At  the  lodge  of  Spring-Hill  he 
told  them  that  the  lodge  at  Pahuk  had  decided  to  do  as  the  errand  peo- 
ple had  requested  them,  and  were  going  to  take  pity  upon  the  boy;  that 
they  must  send  their  representatives  down  to  the  lodge,  and  that  the 
Buzzard,  who  was  errand  man,  was  ordered  to  carry  the  boy  to  the 
lodge  at  Pahuk.  The  Magipe  told  them  to  send  the  Buzzard  at  once 
down  to  Pahuk  while  he  went  to  visit  the  other  lodges.  The  prepara- 
tions were  made  for  the  Buzzards  to  cany  the  boy  down  to  Pahuk, 
which  was  very,  very  far  away.  One  of  the  Buzzards  stepped  out  in 
front  of  the  boy  and  told  him  to  get  on  his  back  and  to  close  his  eyes. 
The  boy  climbed  on  his  back  and  the  Buzzard  flew  up.  The  three  flew 
close  together,  two  flying  right  under  the  one  with  the  boy  on  his  back. 
They  flew  for  a  long  distance  and  then  lighted  upon  a  hill.  The  next  one 
carried  the  boy,  and  they  flew  on,  just  the  same  as  before,  and  they  came 
to  another  high  hill,  and  they  lighted.  Then  the  third  one  carried  him, 
and  they  flew  just  the  same  as  before,  and  they  lighted  upon  the  steep 
bank  of  Pahuk  and  left  the  boy  upon  the  bank. 

The  Buzzards  went  into  the  lodge,  and  when  the  boy  became  conscious, 
he  was  sitting  in  the  lodge  of  the  animals.  He  saw  the  four  little  men 
whom  he  had  seen  in  the  first  lodge  sitting  in  the  west.  He  also  saw  the 
man  who  first  carried  him  to  the  Spring-Hill  lodge  sitting  among  them. 
He  saw  many  other  kinds  of  animals,  and  also  the  errand  men  who  had 
come  from  the  different  lodges.  The  errand  men  stood  up  and  spoke  to  the 
different  animals,  asking  them  to  help  the  unfortunate  boy,  saying  that 
it  was  their  wish  to  do  so.  While  they  were  talking  the  young  man  had 
gone  to  sleep.  When  he  woke  up  he  looked  around  him  and  there  were 
all  the  animals ;  the  four  little  men  he  had  seen  before  sat  there  as  Ground- 
Hogs.  The  leading  medicine-men,  who  were  Beavers,  requested  the 
Otters  to  take  the  boy  and  cure  him ;  but  the  Otters  said  that  they  could 
not  help  the  boy.  The  leading  medicine-men  asked  the  Bears  to  wait  on 
the  boy,  but  the  Bears  did  not  give  their  consent.  They  asked  every 
animal  in  the  lodge,  but  all  failed  to  help  the  boy.  The  leaders  then 
asked  the  Ground-Hog  people  if  they  would  help  the  boy.  They  said, 
"Yes,  we  will  help  him."  The  boy  was  put  to  sleep  and  placed  on  the 
south  side  of  the  center  of  the  lodge.  The  leader  of  the  Ground-Hogs 
walked  over  to  the  fireplace,  around  the  boy,  then  asked  the  errand  man 
to  bring  a  bowl  of  water  and  set  it  at  the  feet  of  the  boy.  The  animal 
went  around  the  bowl  of  water  and  then  dipped  his  nose  into  the  water, 
and  worked  his  jaws;  and  when  he  swallowed  he  gave  a  leap,  then  a 
somersault,  and  then  vomited  up  a  bone.  All  the  other  Ground-Hogs  did 
the  same  thing.  Each  went  around  the  bowl  of  water,  dipped  his  nose 


THE  MEDICINE-CHILD  AND  THE  BEAVER  MEDICINE.  247 

into  the  water,  and  when  he  lifted  up  his  mouth  commenced  to  work  his 
jaws;  then  he  leaped,  turned  a  somersault,  and  vomited  up  a  different  bone 
from  any  that  the  others  had  vomited.  These  four  kept  going  around 
the  bowl  of  water,  each  dipping  his  nose  and  working  his  jaws,  turning 
somersaults,  and  throwing  up  different  bones  of  the  baby  that  was  in  the 
boy.  At  last  they  worked  and  worked,  but  in  vain.  They  could  not  do 
any  more.  Finally  they  went  over  to  the  Bears  and  asked  them  for  help. 

The  Bears  were  willing  to  help.  They  went  up  to  the  young  man, 
and  the  youngest  of  the  Bears  took  his  smallest  claw,  stuck  it  into  the 
boy's  belly,  and  cut  it  open,  taking  the  meat  out  and  throwing  it  to  the 
little  animals.  The  Bears  and  all  the  medicine-men  rose  up  and  all  the 
other  animals  rose  and  made  a  great  rush  to  the  boy  and  each  animal 
worked  his  power.  The  Bears  picked  him  up  and  carried  him  around. 
Finally  they  healed  the  wound.  Then  they  stood  the  boy  up  and 
pushed  him  around  until  he  finally  walked;  then  they  seated  him  on  the 
south  side.  The  boy  looked  at  himself  and  wondered  if  he  was  himself. 
The  animals  then  told  the  boy  that  they  were  through  with  him;  that  he 
should  go  above  their  lodge  and  subsist  on  whatever  he  could  in  the 
daytime,  but  at  night  he  must  always  return  and  they  would  have  their 
mysterious  performances,  which  they  intended  to  teach  him. 

The  boy  was  taken  out  of  the  lodge  and  placed  on  dry  land.  He 
went  through  the  timber,  found  artichokes,  dug  them  up,  and  ate  them. 
He  went  on,  found  plums,  and  ate  them.  He  went  to  the  place  where  the 
people  had  their  village  and  earth-lodges,  and  there  he  found  a  knife  and 
some  other  material,  such  as  sinew.  Then  he  went  to  the  timber  and  cut 
an  ash  tree  and  made  a  bow ;  then  he  cut  some  dogwood  and  made  blunt 
arrows,  so  that  he  had  a  bow  and  arrows.  He  went  through  the  timber, 
killed  game,  such  as  rabbits  and  birds,  and  ate  them.  In  the  night 
time  he  would  return  to  the  lodge  of  the  animals:  The  animals  would 
take  him,  and  each  animal  would  play  sleight-of-hand  upon  his  body, 
at  the  same  time  teaching  him.  They  kept  him  there  for  a  long 
time.  When  fall  came  they  told  him  that  the  tribes  had  returned,  and 
that  they  were  living  in  their  own  village.  They  called  him  one  night 
and  told  him  to  go  to  his  village  and  enter  it  in  the  night,  and  then  to  go 
to  his  lodge ;  and  that  there  he  would  find  his  father  and  mother,  who 
believed  that  he  was  dead;  that  he  should  wake  them  and  tell  them 
that  he  wanted  two  parfleches  filled  with  dried  meat,  and  a  number  of 
robes  and  much  tobacco. 

The  boy  went  out  of  the  animals '  lodge  and  went  towards  the  village, 
and  he  found  that  the  people  had  returned  to  their  village.  He  went 
through  the  village  to  his  own  lodge  and  entered.  He  went  to  the  bed  of 


248  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

his  mother  and  woke  her  up.  When  she  awoke  she  acted  as  though  she 
were  dreaming,  but  the  boy  told  her  that  she  was  not  dreaming;  that 
he  was  really  there.  She  arose,  made  a  fire,  woke  the  old  man,  and  told 
him  that  the  boy  had  come  back.  The  old  man  arose  and  sat  by  the 
young  boy  near  the  fireplace.  The  boy  told  his  father  to  go  and  call  his 
relatives,  saying  that  he  wanted  to  get  several  presents  from  them,  and 
that  he  wanted  to  take  these  presents  to  a  certain  place.  The  father 
did  not  ask  any  questions,  for  he  knew  that  the  boy  was  going  to  take 
the  presents  to  some  animals'  lodge.  The  man  went  out  and  called  his 
friends  in.  When  he  told  them  what  was  needed,  they  all  rose,  went  out, 
and  brought  the  things  that  the  boy  had  instructed  them  to  get,  and  the 
gifts  made  a  great  pile.  The  people  were  glad  to  see  him.  His  uncle 
offered  to  help  carry  all  the  things  to  the  place  for  him.  The  young 
man  told  his  uncle  to  bring  a  pony,  put  a  saddle,  and  parfleches,  one  on 
each  side,  and  then  the  other  gifts,  on  its  back.  Then  they  traveled. 

When  they  came  close  to  Pahuk,  the  young  man  told  his  uncle  to 
take  the  things  off  from  the  pony's  back,  and  then  he  sent  his  uncle  back 
home.  The  boy  went  to  the  edge  of  the  bank  and  saw  what  looked  like 
feathers  on  the  waters,  and  he  heard  peculiar  noises  in  the  water.  He 
rolled  both  the  parfleches  down  into  the  water,  one  at  a  time;  then  he 
threw  the  gifts  down ;  and  after  the  gifts  were  all  thrown  down,  he  jumped 
over  the  steep  bank  into  the  water,  and  found  himself  in  the  animals' 
lodge;  and  there  he  saw  the  two  parfleches  of  meat  inside,  and  the  gifts. 

The  animals  were  thankful  for  the  presents  that  had  been  thrown  into 
the  water  by  the  boy.  There  were  so  many  animals  in  the  lodge  that 
they  did  not  all  receive  presents,  so  they  sent  the  boy  out  again  and  he 
went  to  the  village  and  asked  for  more  presents  and  took  them  to  the 
animals '  lodge.  Then  he  received  more  instructions  as  to  how  he  should 
kill  his  enemies.  The  four  little  men  told  him  that  they  were  the  animals 
who  killed  people  or  animals  by  simply  making  movements  of  the  jaws; 
that  they  were  going  to  ask  him  to  kill  the  smallest  one  and  skin  it,  but 
to  leave  the  skull  in  the  skin.  The  boy  killed  the  smallest  one,  skinned 
it,  leaving  only  the  head  part  in  the  skin,  and  set  it  out  to  dry.  When 
it  was  dry  he  picked  up  stones  and  rubbed  the  hide,  so  that  it  became 
soft.  They  told  him  that  since  he  had  this  in  his  possession,  he  would 
have  the  same  power  that  they  had ;  if  any  of  his  enemies  tried  to  poison 
him,  all  he  had  to  do  was  to  go  down  to  the  creek  and  think  of  the  man 
who  was  trying  to  kill  him;  that  he  should  take  his  hide,  dip  its  nose  in  the 
water  and  pull  it  up,  and  when  he  should  see  a  piece  of  liver  in  its  mouth 
he  might  know  that  it  had  killed  the  man.  All  the  different  animals 
talked  to  him  and  told  him  of  their  mysteries,  their  roots  and  herbs, 


THE  MEDICINE-CHILD  AND  THE  BEAVER  MEDICINE.  249 

their  way  of  curing,  and  their  sleight-of-hand.  At  last  they  said,  ' '  Go 
now  to  your  people,  take  these  things  with  you,  and  teach  other  people 
about  our  mysteries. " 

The  boy  went  to  his  lodge,  and  the  next  day  it  was  announced  through 
the  village  that  the  lost  young  man,  who  had  been  known  as  the  medi- 
cine-child, had  returned.  At  last  the  other  Skidi  band  heard  that  the 
young  man  who  had  been  lost  had  returned.  The  old  man  who  had 
bewitched  him  heard  of  it.  For  several  days  he  thought  of  what  he 
should  do,  for  he  knew  that  he  had  poisoned  the  young  man,  and  knew  the 
young  man  had  come  back.  He  was  sure  that  the  young  man  must 
be  wonderful.  So  one  day  he  told  his  wife  that  he  wanted  her  to 
gather  up  her  medicine-bags,  her  robe,  and  several  other  presents; 
that  he  wanted  again  to  visit  his  friend  who  had  returned.  They 
started  and  they  went  to  the  lower  village,  and  as  they  walked 
through  the  village  they  met  a  man,  and  they  asked  where  the  boy 's 
lodge  was.  He  pointed  out  the  lodge  to  them,  and  they  went  in  and 
placed  the  presents  down  in  front  of  the  boy,  and  the  medicine-man  told 
him  that  he  was  very  glad  that  he  had  come  back;  that  he  had  returned  to 
have  some  more  story-telling.  The  young  man  said  that  he  was  willing. 
The  old  man  sat  down  and  talked  and  talked,  and  then  he  said,  "I  must 
be  going  home. "  The  old  man  and  the  old  woman  went  home. 

In  a  few  days  the  young  man  made  up  his  mind  to  visit  the  old  man. 
He  went  to  the  Skidi  village  and  asked  for  the  old  man 's  lodge.  The  lodge 
was  pointed  out  and  he  went  to  it.  The  old  man  was  glad  to  see  him, 
and  the  old  man  sat  up  all  night  with  him,  talking  about  the  different 
mysteries.  The  old  man  filled  up  his  pipe  and  put  in  the  same  medicine 
as  when  he  poisoned  the  boy  before.  The  young  man  knew  what  the  old 
man  was  doing.  He  smoked  the  pipe,  but  would  not  swallow  the  smoke, 
but  would  blow  it  away.  The  old  man  became  tired,  but  really  was 
not  tired,  for  the  young  man  had  had  the  pipe.  The  young  man  mixed 
up  tobacco  and  some  of  the  other  roots  and  sumach  leaves,  so  that  on 
smoking  from  the  young  man's  pipe  the  old  man  became  very  sleepy. 
The  old  man  was  anxious  to  get  rid  of  the  boy,  but  the  boy  stayed  all 
night.  The  next  day  in  the  afternoon  the  young  man  was  invited  by 
the  chief  to  eat  with  him,  and  as  the  boy  entered  the  lodge  the  chief 
came  to  meet  him  and  passed  his  hands  over  him  and  said:  "My  son,  I 
am  glad  you  have  come  back.  We  all  understand  that  you  were  in  a 
bad  condition.  I  give  you  these  presents — a  buffalo  robe,  feathers,  and 
other  things.  I  want  you  to  return  the  poison  that  the  old  man  gave 
you  and  kill  the  old  man,  for  we  are  all  afraid  of  him. "  The  young  man 
said  that  he  knew  nothing  of  the  different  bad  medicines.  After  the  boy 


250  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

had  feasted  with  the  chief,  he  went  to  the  old  man's  lodge  again,  and 
there  sat  and  talked  about  the  mysteries  of  the  medicine-men.  The  old 
man  became  very  sleepy.  The  young  man  told  him  to  go  to  bed,  for  he 
was  going  home. 

The  young  man  left  the  old  man's  lodge  and  went  directly  to  the 
creek.  It  was  winter  and  the  creek  was  frozen.  The  young  man  took  a 
long  pole  down  to  the  creek  and  he  broke  the  ice  that  had  frozen  that  night. 
The  young  man  took  out  the  little  animal  he  had,  dipped  it  in  the  water, 
and  saw  the  water  stir.  After  a  while  he  went  up  to  the  round  place 
where  the  ice  was  broken,  and  in  the  edge  of  it  lay  this  little  animal,  with 
a  piece  of  liver  in  its  mouth.  It  was  towards  morning.  He  saw  blood  on 
the  ice  everywhere,  and  on  the  water  where  the  ice  was  broken  he  saw 
pieces  of  entrails  from  the  old  man.  The  boy  took  up  the  animal  and 
went  home.  The  wife  of  the  old  man  arose  and  made  a  fire,  cooked  break- 
fast, and  went  to  the  bedside  of  the  old  man  to  tell  him  that  his  friend 
was  missing.  The  old  man  did  not  move  nor  talk,  and  his  head  was 
covered  with  his  buffalo  robe.  The  old  woman  went  and  uncovered  him 
and  found  that  he  was  dead.  His  stomach  was  drawn  in.  The  old 
woman  gave  a  loud  scream,  and  told  the  other  people  in  the  lodge 
that  the  old  man  was  dead.  Some  of  the  people  did  not  know  how  he 
came  by  his  death,  but  the  chief  suspected  the  young  man.  The  Skidi 
took  the  old  man  and  buried  him,  burying  with  him  all  his  medicine-bags 
and  other  things,  and  everybody  was  glad  to  get  rid  of  him.  The  young 
man  went  home  and  slept,  and  when  he  waked  up  there  were  several  peo- 
ple in  his  lodge  who  told  him  that  his  friend  had  been  killed ;  that  some- 
body had  bewitched  him;  but  the  young  man  said  nothing. 

The  medicine-men  met  in  their  lodge.  The  young  man  went  in, 
took  a  seat  among  them,  and  danced  with  them.  The  people  liked  his 
dance.  They  met  in  their  lodge  again  to  do  sleight-of-hand.  The 
young  man  went  in,  was  given  a  seat,  did  some  sleight-of-hand  that  was 
better  than  any  that  the  other  old  medicine-men  were  doing,  and  so  at 
last  he  was  acknowledged  the  leading  medicine-man.  This  particular 
dance  was  known  as  Kurapira,  Medicine-Child  dance. 

About  this  time  the  Potawatami  Indians  were  visiting  the  Pawnee. 
They  looked  on  at  their  sleight-of-hand  performances.  They  were 
awed  by  the  mysterious  doings  of  this  young  man.  The  sleight-of- 
hand  performances  were  over,  the  Potawatami  had  been  entertained, 
presents  of  robes  and  other  things  were  given  them,  and  they  were  ready 
to  go  home.  Before  they  started,  one  of  the  Potawatami  turned  and 
said,  "Make  us  a  visit,  and  bring  that  young  man  with  you;  we  want 
very  much  to  see  him  and  get  acquainted  with  him."  A  year  went  by  and 


THE  MEDICINE-CHILD  AND  THE  BEAVER  MEDICINE.  251 

the  Pawnee  did  not  go.  Finally  the  Potawatami  sent  another  invita- 
tion to  the  Pawnee  village,  inviting  the  Pawnee  to  their  village  and  ask- 
ing that  they  be  sure  to  bring  the  young  medicine-man. 

The  Pawnee  started  on  the  journey  to  the  Potawatami  country. 
When  they  arrived,  the  Potawatami  received  them  and  were  very  good 
to  them.  The  young  medicine-man  noticed  one  man  who  was  particu- 
larly attentive  to  him.  In  the  ceremonies  that  they  had,  the  man  wore 
an  otter  hide,  which  the  young  medicine-man  knew  was  a  witch.  At 
other  times  the  man  wore  a  bear  robe  over  his  body. 

One  night  the  Potawatami  attacked  this  young  medicine-man  by 
throwing  his  medicines  at  him.  The  boy  put  on  his  medicine  and  then 
made  motions  with  his  hands,  as  if  to  catch  something  in  the  air.  When 
he  caught  something  he  would  place  it  on  the  fireplace ,  and  the  people 
would  gather  around  and  examine  it,  and  there  would  be  the  sharp  bones 
of  the  skeleton  of  a  sunfish.  When  the  war  chief  asked  for  the  final 
ceremony,  the  Potawatami  gave  this  medicine-man  one  pony  and  several 
gifts — such  as  pipes,  robes,  otter  and  beaver  skins.  In  the  night  the 
young  medicine-man  told  his  friends  to  lie  in  a  circle  around  him,  for 
he  was  sure  that  some  one  was  trying  to  bewitch  him,  and  to  have  their 
ponies  close  by  the  tipi.  All  lay  down,  and  late  in  the  night  the  young 
man  heard  some  one  groaning  outside,  and  all  at  once  he  saw  some  one  in 
the  entrance  who  kept  crawling,  crawling,  crawling,  until  he  came  to  him, 
then  with  a  movement  of  the  body  and  the  flourish  of  an  eagle  wing,  he 
turned  as  if  satisfied  and  went  out  of  the  lodge.  The  young  medicine- 
man arose,  took  up  his  medicine,  followed  this  strange  person  up  to  his 
lodge,  went  into  the  lodge,  and  found  the  Potawatami  just  taking  off 
his  robe  and  talking  to  his  wife.  The  young  man  took  the  skin  of  a 
mole,  swung  it,  and  threw  it  out  at  the  Potawatami.  Then  he  gave  four 
groaning  sounds,  stamped  his  feet,  and  went  out.  The  young  medicine- 
man went  back  to  the  lodge  where  the  others  were,  woke  them  up,  and 
said,  "Now,  let  us  go."  The  other  men  arose,  mounted  their  ponies, 
and  started. 

When  they  were  outside  of  the  village,  the  young  medicine-man  told 
the  other  men  that  somebody  had  bewitched  him ;  that  he  was  already 
bewitched ;  that  he  wanted  them  to  ride  just  as  fast  as  they  could,  so  that 
they  might  reach  the  stream,  and  when  they  reached  the  stream  they 
were  to  go  right  into  the  water;  and  that  as  they  went  through  the  water, 
the  thing  that  was  in  him  would  try  to  climb  out ;  and  that  as  the  thing 
stuck  its  head  out  of  his  mouth,  they  must,  by  a  quick  motion  of  the 
hand,  catch  the  head  and  throw  it  away;  if  they  were  afraid  to  pull  it 
out,  then  he  must  die.  They  whipped  up  their  ponies  and  traveled 


352  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

fast.  They  finally  came  to  the  stream  and  the  man  was  beginning  to 
get  sick.  They  went  into  the  stream,  and  as  the  boy  went  through  the 
water,  he  kept  repeating:  "  It  is  coming  up.  It  is  coming  up.  Be  ready 
as  soon  as  the  thing  sticks  its  head  out  of  my  mouth  to  pull  it  out." 
When  the  water  came  up  to  his  neck  he  told  the  others  to  watch;  that  it  was 
coming.  As  soon  as  they  saw  the  thing  stick  its  head  out  of  his  mouth 
one  of  the  men  grabbed  it  quickly  and  threw  it  on  the  bank  of  the  river. 
The  young  medicine-man  fell  down  and  disappeared  in  the  water  as  the 
thing  was  taken  out  of  him.  In  a  little  while  the  young  medicine-man 
stood  up  and  said,  "He  is  dead." 

It  was  then  early  morning.  They  unsaddled  their  ponies  and  let 
them  graze  around  while  they  cooked  a  little  breakfast  for  themselves 
and  ate.  Then  they  took  the  animal  that  was  lying  on  the  bank  and 
burned  it  up.  The  young  medicine-man  told  the  others  that  they  must 
not  tell  the  other  party  about  his  vomiting  up  this  animal ;  but  that  they 
should  tell  about  the  death  of  the  Potawatami.  While  they  were  on 
the  bank  of  the  creek,  their  friends  came  from  the  other  side  of  the  creek 
and  said  that  when  they  left  the  Potawatami  village  there  was  a  great 
commotion,  for  one  of  the  Potawatami  had  died  early  that  morning. 
The  other  people  knew  that  the  young  medicine-man  had  thrown  up 
the  animal  about  the  same  time,  but  they  said  nothing.  Then  they 
all  marched  back  to  their  homes  together. 

The  people  had  gathered  their  corn  and  were  about  to  go  on  their 
winter  hunt.  On  that  hunt  they  killed  many  buffalo.  Then,  in  the 
spring,  they  went  to  the  other  villages,  planted  their  corn,  and  again  went 
hunting.  That  time  the  young  medicine-man  told  his  relatives  to  have 
the  men  kill  buffalo  and  dry  the  meat;  that  he  wanted  to  give  them  a 
medicine-men's  sleight-of-hand  ceremony.  The  meat  was  brought  into 
the  medicine-men's  lodge  where  the  young  medicine-man  was  with  the 
many  young  men,  to  whom  he  was  teaching  the  mysteries  of  medicine. 
At  that  time  many  wonderful  sleight-of-hand  performances  took  place. 
On  the  last  day  of  the  final  ceremony,  before  daylight,  the  young  medi- 
cine-man went  to  the  timber  with  some  other  young  men,  cut  down  a 
cotton  wood  tree,  and  dragged  it  up  to  the  lodge;  and  there  they  set 
the  cotton  wood  tree  in  front  of  the  lodge,  so  that  it  would  always  stand 
there  and  would  grow.  The  sleight-of-hand  performances  continued  and 
the  young  medicine-man  did  many  wonderful  things.  When  he  put 
the  tree  outside  of  the  lodge,  it  was  the  most  wonderful  thing  that  had 
ever  been  done;  so  that  the  other  medicine-men  had  to  keep  quiet  and 
had  to  acknowledge  this  young  medicine-man  as  the  leading  medicine- 
man. 


THE  MEDICINE-CHILD  AND  THE  BEAVER  MEDICINE.  253 

When  the  ceremonies  were  over,  the  people  began  to  get  ready  to  go 
hunting  again,  for  it  was  in  the  winter  time.  They  went  hunting  that 
winter  and  killed  many  buffalo,  and  in  the  spring  they  returned  to  their 
village  to  put  in  their  corn;  then  they  went  hunting  again.  While  they 
were  hunting,  it  was  rumored  that  the  young  medicine-man  would  have 
his  medicine-man's  dance  again.  They  killed  many  buffalo  and  dried 
meat  for  that  purpose.  Upon  their  return  the  young  medicine-man 
called  the  men  to  his  medicine-lodge  again.  For  three  days  they  had 
sleight-of-hand  performances  in  the  earth-lodge.  On  the  third  night  the 
medicine-men  were  told  that  the  next  day  they  were  to  make  preparation 
to  go  down  to  a  certain  pond  that  was  close  to  the  village ;  that  the  young 
medicine-man  had  given  instructions  that  all  the  medicine-men  should 
make  their  lodges  around  the  pond;  that  they  were  to  make  a  kind  of 
beaver  lodge  in  the  center  of  the  pond;  that  the  medicine-men  would  go 
down  there  on  the  fifth  day  and  do  their  sleight-of-hand  at  the  pond,  so 
that  the  people  would  see  them  openly.  The  medicine-men  went  to  the 
pond  on  the  fourth  night,  and  there  they  cut  the  willows,  cottonwood,  box 
elder,  and  elm,  and  made  lodges  around  the  pond,  in  the  water.  After 
that  was  done,  the  people  made  a  great  beaver  lodge  in  the  center  of  the 
pond.  Just  about  daylight  the  young  medicine-man  took  a  cottonwood 
tree  that  they  had  brought  from  the  timber  and  swam  to  the  beaver 
lodge,  and  there  he  placed  the  tree  in  the  center  of  the  lodge.  In  the 
early  morning  the  people  heard  yelling  and  shouting  at  the  pond.  They 
went  down  there,  and  they  found  the  medicine-men  hard  at  work.  Then 
they  commenced  to  exercise  their  magic  powers  and  to  perform  sleight- 
of-hand  tricks.  Some  of  them  took  sharpened  willow  sticks,  with  the 
leaves  at  one  end,  and  stuck  the  willows  through  the  cheek  of  another 
man.  Others  took  pieces  from  the  cottonwood  tree  and  swallowed  them, 
and  then  they  would  pull  them  up  again.  At  last,  in  the  afternoon,  the 
young  medicine-man  stood  in  the  west  with  a  dead  loon,  and  he  set  the 
loon  free  in  the  west,  and  the  loon  flew  around  the  pond  and  back  to 
the  man.  The  young  medicine-man  said:  "Now  the  loon  has  gone 
around  the  pond,  and  all  the  medicine-men  will  now  leave  the  pond. 
First  bury  your  limbs  and  the  things  that  we  have  been  playing  with  in 
the  water.  We  will  now  go  to  our  lodge  and  eat;  then  we  have  done 
with  our  ceremony."  The  medicine-men  all  went  back  to  the  lodge,  ate, 
and  were  dismissed  by  the  young  medicine-man. 

Years  afterward  this  pond  was  visited  by  some  men  who  gave  pres- 
ents of  robes,  tobacco,  beads,  and  feathers.  They  all  saw  that  in  the  cen- 
ter of  the  pond  where  the  young  man  had  planted  a  tree  there  was  an 
island.  The  young  medicine-man  lived  to  be  an  old  man,  and  in  his  old 


254  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

age  he  gave  his  son  his  beaver  that  he  used  in  his  medicine  ceremonies 
and  told  him  to  keep  up  the  ceremony,  for  he  himself  was  getting  old. 
His  son  learned  his  ceremonies  and  the  old  man  died. 

78.  THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE  LOON  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.1 

A  long  time  ago  when  the  Skidi  were  living  on  the  Loup  River,  in 
Nebraska,  there  lived  a  poor  boy.  The  boy  had  no  relations  and  had  to 
go  from  one  lodge  to  the  other  for  food.  When  he  had  grown  to  be  a 
good-sized  boy,  the  chief's  son,  who  had  become  very  fond  of  him,  asked 
him  to  come  into  his  lodge  and  live  with  him.  The  chief 's  boy  gave  the  boy 
moccasins,  leggings,  and  a  robe,  and  a  lariat  rope  made  out  of  buffalo  hide. 
He  told  the  poor  boy  that  he  could  look  after  their  ponies,  and  that  it 
would  be  his  work  to  water  them.  The  poor  boy  took  care  of  the  ponies 
so  well  that  the  chief's  boy's  relations  were  glad  to  have  him  stay 
with  them,  and  they  gave  him  many  gifts  and  were  always  kind  to  him. 
In  a  few  years  the  two  boys  grew  to  manhood.  The  chief's  son  was  so 
devoted  to  his  companion,  who  had  grown  into  a  handsome  man,  that  he 
made  up  his  mind  that  he  would  keep  him  in  his  lodge,  and  that  he  should 
sleep  with  him  in  his  own  bed. 

In  the  tribe  there  was  another  chief  who  had  a  beautiful  daughter, 
and  the  chief's  son  courted  the  maiden.  It  was  understood  through  the 
village  that  he  would  marry  the  girl,  for  she  showed  him  every  favor. 
If  she  happened  to  be  in  the  fields  working,  and  the  young  man  came  to 
the  field,  she  threw  down  her  hoe  and  went  to  meet  him,  and  her  mother 
or  aunts  who  were  with  her  would  take  up  the  hoe  and  carry  on  the 
work,  so  that  she  could  talk  with  the  chief 's  son.  If  the  chief 's  son  came 
to  their  lodge  in  the  night,  her  relations  did  not  object  to  her  going  out 
to  meet  him,  for  it  was  understood  that  he  would  in  time  marry  her.  The 
chief 's  son,  knowing  that  the  girl  came  to  him  whenever  he  wanted  her, 
decided  that  he  would  not  marry  her,  for  he  had  never  asked  her  to  marry 
him,  neither  had  he  ever  asked  her  parents  to  let  him  marry  her.  He 
tried  to  think  of  some  excuse  that  he  could  give  for  not  marrying  her, 
but  he  could  not  think  of  any.  Finally  he  made  up  his  mind  to  have  his 
poor  friend  lie  with  the  girl  and  then  he  could  accuse  her  of  faithlessness 
and  refuse  to  marry  her  on  that  account. 

One  night  the  chief's  son  went  to  the  lodge  of  the  girl  and  asked  her 
to  meet  him  at  a  certain  place  a  short  distance  from  the  village,  for  he 
wished  to  talk  to  her.  She  promised  to  meet  him  in  a  little  while  at  the 

'Told  by  Buffalo,  Skidi.  The  story,  besides  reciting  the  origin  of  one  of  the 
medicine  ceremonies  of  the  Skidi,  conveys  the  moral  that  women  should  be  true 
to  their  husbands. 


THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE  LOON  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.  255 

place.  The  girl  went  back  into  her  lodge,  and  the  chief 's  son  went  to  his 
lodge  and  called  his  friend  out,  and  the  two  boys  went  outside  of  the  vil- 
lage. The  chief's  boy  told  the  poor  boy  to  lie  down  in  the  brush  and 
hide,  and  he  obeyed.  As  he  lay  down  he  heard  some  one  coming,  and  so 
he  kept  quiet.  The  girl  came.  The  chief's  boy  met  her.  They  sat 
down  close  to  the  poor  boy  in  the  brush ;  then  the  chief 's  son  began  to 
talk  to  the  girl  about  whom  she  should  marry.  The  girl  told  him  that 
he  was  the  only  one  who  was  going  with  her,  and  that  it  was  understood 
in  the  village  that  he  was  to  marry  her  and  that  she  would  never  marry 
anyone  but  him.  The  boy  told  her  that  he  would  marry  her  only  on 
the  condition  that  she  would  do  as  he  was  going  to  tell  her  to  do ;  that  he 
wanted  her  to  lie  with  his  friend,  the  poor  boy,  and  that  if  she  would  do 
that  he  would  take  her  as  his  wife.  The  girl  objected  and  said  that  she 
did  not  care  for  the  poor  boy,  and  that,  even  though  he  wanted  her  to 
lie  with  him  now,  the  time  would  come  when  he  would  not  like  it  and 
would  always  be  reminding  her  of  it.  The  chief 's  boy  begged  and  begged 
for  her  to  do  what  he  wanted,  but  she  would  not  do  so.  At  last  he  jumped 
up  and  went  away  and  left  her.  She  went  home.  Then  the  chief's  boy 
came  back  to  his  friend  and  said,  "You  see  I  have  been  begging  for  you 
to  lie  with  that  girl,  but  I  could  not  get  her  to  do  it  and  so  we  will  go 
home. " 

Several  days  passed  and  the  chief 's  boy  formed  another  plan.  He  went 
to  the  girl 's  lodge  and  asked  her  to  meet  him  outside  of  the  village  again 
that  night.  She  promised  to  come.  As  soon  as  the  girl  promised  to 
come,  the  young  man  went  back  to  his  lodge  and  called  the  poor  boy  out. 
They  went  outside  the  village  and  the  chief 's  boy  gave  his  leggings  to  the 
poor  boy,  and  also  gave  his  robe  and  the  wampum  beads  that  he  wore 
about  his  neck.  The  chief's  son  said,  "Now,  when  the  girl  comes  out  to 
meet  you,  do  not  speak  loud,  but  whisper.  Go  to  the  brush  yonder  and 
lie  down  with  her.  After  you  have  lain  with  her  and  she  finds  out  that 
it  is  you,  then  tell  her  that  you  want  to  take  her  to  a  far-away  country. 
Go  south  and  travel  for  about  four  days,  and  I  will  come  on  horseback 
and  hunt  you  up.  Then  I  will  bring  you  back  to  the  village." 

The  poor  boy  dressed  himself  in  the  clothes  of  the  chief 's  son.  The 
real  chief's  boy  remained  behind,  while  the  poor  boy  went  to  the  place 
the  girl  was  to  come.  After  a  while  the  girl  came  and  the  boy  met  her. 
They  walked  on  until  they  came  to  some  brush.  They  sat  down  and 
whispered  a  long  time,  and  the  poor  boy  whispered  to  the  girl  and  told 
her  that  he  had  made  up  his  mind  to  marry  her.  The  girl,  thinking  that 
he  was  the  chief's  son,  gave  in  and  finally  lay  with  the  poor  boy.  After 
the  poor  boy  had  lain  with  the  girl  he  sat  up  and  told  the  girl  to  sit  up 


256  THB  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

and  listen  to  what  he  had  to  tell  her.  He  pulled  the  robe  away  from  his 
face  and  said:  "Girl,  I  am  the  poor  boy.  My  brother,  the  chief's  boy, 
has  deceived  you.  I  know  the  way  he  talked  here  to  you  and  I  know 
just  what  he  wanted  you  to  do.  I  care  for  you  and  I  want  you  to  be  my 
wife,  and  that  is  why  I  did  not  come  right  out  and  tell  you  who  I  was. 
You  are  disgraced  because  a  poor  boy  has  lain  with  you.  You  do  not 
care  to  go  back  into  the  village.  I  am  willing  that  we  go  south,  and 
there  I  will  try  to  make  you  happy. " 

The  girl  said  that  she  would  go;  that  she  did  not  want  to  go  back  to 
the  village,  as  the  people  would  make  fun  of  her,  especially  the  chief 's  son. 
The  poor  boy,  instead  of  going  to  the  place  where  the  chief's  son  was 
sitting,  went  direct  to  the  lodge  of  the  chief  and  took  a  quiver  filled  with 
arrows  and  a  bow  and  a  knife.  Upon  his  belt  he  put  a  horn  and  flint 
stones  with  which  to  kindle  a  fire.  After  he  had  gathered  these  things 
he  went  to  meet  the  girl.  He  told  her  to  go  to  her  tipi  and  to  bring  her 
sinew  and  awl,  and  her  robe.  He  waited  outside  while  the  girl  went  in 
and  brought  the  things;  then  they  started  upon  their  journey  to  the 
south.  During  the  day  they  rested,  and  in  the  night  they  traveled 
again.  The  boy  went  out  and  killed  game,  so  that  they  had  something 
to  eat. 

After  the  fourth  day  the  girl's  relations  became  uneasy  about  her. 
They  hunted  her  through  the  village,  but  they  could  not  find  her.  At 
last  they  sent  a  woman  over  to  the  chief's  lodge  to  see  if  the  chief's  boy 
was  there.  She  saw  him  and  went  back  and  told  that  he  was  there.  In 
the  night  the  woman  was  sent  back  to  see  if  the  chief 's  boy  would  go  out 
of  the  lodge,  thinking  that  he  might  have  left  the  girl  outside  of  the  village 
and  would  go  to  her.  The  woman  went  and  watched  all  night  and  saw 
that  the  boy  never  left  the  lodge  that  night.  The  next  day  the  girl's 
uncle  was  told  of  her  disappearance,  and  he  was  also  told  the  chief's 
boy  was  the  only  one  who  was  courting  her.  The  uncle  of  the  girl  went 
to  the  chief 's  lodge  and  he  found  the  chief 's  boy  lying  upon  the  bed.  He 
told  the  chief  that  the  girl  was  missing,  and  that  they  thought  that  his 
boy  had  taken  her.  The  boy  sat  up  and  said  that  he  had  not  seen  her 
for  several  days,  and  that  she  was  not  with  him.  Several  men  were 
sent  through  the  village  to  see  if  any  young  man  was  missing.  These 
men  went  into  every  lodge  and  counted  all  the  young  men.  At  last  they 
came  into  the  lodge  of  the  chief.  There  they  counted  the  people  and 
found  one  person  missing.  They  knew  that  the  missing  one  was  the 
poor  boy,  and  so  they  asked  if  the  boy  had  been  there  for  the  last  few 
days,  and  the  chief  said  that  he  had  not.  The  people  then  knew  that 
the  poor  boy  had  taken  the  girl  away,  and  some  of  them  threatened  to 


THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE  LOON  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.  257 

kill  the  boy  if  he  should  ever  return,  for  a  poor  boy  had  no  right  to  marry 
the  daughter  of  a  chief. 

The  poor  boy  and  the  girl  traveled  far  to  the  south  and  never  thought 
of  returning  to  their  home.  Some  mysterious  change  seemed  to  have 
come  over  them,  and  they  forgot  all  about  their  home,  and  were  happy 
alone  with  each  other.  At  last  they  came  to  the  Platte  River.  Instead 
of  crossing  the  Platte  River  they  went  down  the  stream  to  the  east.  For 
many  days  they  traveled  until  they  came  to  a  swampy  country.  Then 
the  boy  knew  that  they  had  come  to  the  place  that  was  known  as  Pahuk. 
He  went  into  the  thick  timbers  and  he  saw  many  lakes  and  ponds.  Then 
he  returned  to  get  his  wife,  for  he  had  decided  to  make  their  home  in  the 
forest  near  one  of  the  lakes.  He  cut  timber  and  made  a  grass-lodge  for 
himself  and  his  wife.  When  the  lodge  was  completed  the  young  man 
went  off  into  the  timber  and  found  many  birds  and  animals. 

Every  day  he  went  hunting  and  brought  back  some  game,  so  that  they 
always  had  plenty  to  eat.  One  day  while  the  young  man  was  gone  his 
wife  went  down  to  the  pond  to  get  some  water.  Just  before  she  came 
to  the  pond  a  Loon  flew  up  from  the  bank  and  lighted  not  very  far  away. 
She  knew  that  there  must  be  a  nest  close  by.  She  went  to  the  edge  of 
the  water  and  looked  for  the  nest,  but  she  could  not  find  it.  She  gave 
no  thought  to  the  Loon  for  many  days.  One  morning  before  daylight 
she  got  up  and  went  down  to  the  pond  for  some  water.  When  she  arrived 
at  the  edge  of  the  pond  she  heard  the  noise  of  young  birds.  She  hunted 
and  she  found  them.  There  were  two  little  Loons.  She  tried  to  catch 
them,  but  they  swam  into  the  water.  After  that,  every  morning  she 
arose  early  and  went  down  to  the  pond  to  try  to  catch  the  little  Loons. 
One  morning  she  slept  longer  than  usual  and  after  a  while  she  heard 
sounds  like  the  voices  of  children.  She  touched  her  husband,  woke  him 
up,  and  said,  "Do  you  hear  people  talking  outside?"  He  listened  and 
then  said,  "Yes."  The  voice  said,  "I  wonder  why  our  mother  does  not 
come  for  water."  The  woman  remembered  the  Loons.  She  arose  and 
went  out  and  saw  the  little  Loons  walking  down  toward  the  pond.  She 
went  down  to  the  pond  and  there  she  saw  the  Loons  playing  in  the 
water.  They  swam  to  her  and  she  picked  them  up  and  carried  them  to 
her  lodge.  There  the  little  Loons  played  about.  After  that  the  Loons 
would  come  every  night  and  the  woman  would  lie  with  one  and  the  man 
would  lie  with  the  other.  Early  in  the  morning  the  Loons  would  wake  up 
and  make  a  noise,  so  that  the  man  and  the  woman  would  wake  up;  then 
they  would  say,  "  It  is  morning;  it  is  time  for  us  to  get  up,  for  we  must  go 
down  and  take  a  swim  in  the  water. "  Then  the  woman  would  get  out 
from  her  bed  and  go  down  to  the  pond  with  them.  The  Loons  would 


258  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

swim;  then  the  woman  would  go  back  to  the  lodge  and  the  Loons  would 
follow. 

One  night  while  they  were  lying  together  the  Loons  spoke  and  said: 
"Father,  you  are  now  our  father.  This  woman  is  our  mother.  She 
can  not  have  any  children  during  her  lifetime,  but  we  will  give  you  and  her 
power  so  that  you  can  doctor  the  sick  and  make  them  well.  They  will 
give  you  many  presents  for  doctoring  them.  We  want  you  to  follow  us 
down  into  the  pond.  Let  our  mother  stay  here  and  you  go  with  us. " 
The  woman  remained  in  bed,  while  the  man  followed  the  Loons  to  the 
pond.  The  Loons  struck  the  pond  and  made  a  great  noise.  The  man, 
standing  upon  the  bank,  saw  in  the  center  of  the  pond  something  like 
sparks  of  fire  coming  up  from  the  water.  Then  he  heard  a  great  noise. 
After  a  while  he  saw  two  kinds  of  water  fowl  swimming  around  in  a  circle 
and  the  two  young  Loons  were  in  the  lead.  As  they  swam  around  the 
pond  there  were  two  big  swans  on  each  side  of  them,  and  they  were  flap- 
ping their  wings  on  the  top  of  the  water,  making  a  drumming  sound.  As 
the  birds  circled  around,  two  little  Ducks  swam  to  the  center  of  the  pond 
and  there  they  began  to  form  a  downy  feather.  First  one  of  the  Ducks 
placed  a  little  downy  feather  in  the  center,  and  then  the  other  one  placed 
a  downy  feather  upon  it,  and  then  they  swam  around  the  downy  feather 
in  the  center  and  all  at  once  it  seemed  to  grow,  and  it  began  to  change 
in  appearance  until  it  looked  like  an  earth-lodge  upon  the  pond.  All 
at  once  the  other  fowls  went  to  it  and  each  took  a  piece  of  the  downy 
feather.  When  everyone  had  taken  a  piece  the  downy  feather  was  gone. 
Then  all  at  once  the  noise  of  the  fowls  ceased  and  the  fire  died  down. 
After  a  little  while  the  young  Loons  came  up  and  they  said,  "Father,  let 
us  now  go  home."  They  went  to  their  grass-lodge  and  lay  down.  In 
the  early  morning  the  little  Loons  went  down  to  the  pond  and  swam 
around  the  pond  until  the  woman  went  down,  and  then  they  followed 
her  home. 

For  several  years  they  lived  at  this  place.  The  young  man  killed  all 
kinds  of  game,  so  that  they  had  plenty  to  eat.  One  day  the  Loons  asked 
the  woman,  "Where  are  our  people;  where  do  they  live;  where  do  we 
come  from?"  The  woman  told  the  Loons  that  their  home  was  far  away. 
The  Loons  then  said,  "We  wish  to  go  to  our  people,  for  we  want  to  be 
with  them  always.  My  father  has  been  taught  the  mysteries  of  the 
water  fowls,  and  so  he  shall  start  a  medicine  dance  among  his  people. " 
One  of  the  Loons  then  told  the  man  that  he  should  go  and  try  to  capture 
ponies  from  the  enemy.  The  man  said  that  he  would  go.  His  wife  made 
several  pairs  of  moccasins  for  him,  and  then  he  started.  Every  day 
while  he  was  gone  the  Loons  would  fly  up  in  the  sky  to  spy  around,  and 


THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE  LOON  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.  259 

then  they  would  return  and  tell  the  woman  that  no  enemies  were  in  sight. 
One  day  the  Boy-Loon  told  the  woman  that  he  was  going  to  go  and  hunt 
for  his  father.  The  Loon  flew  up  and  was  gone  for  several  days.  When 
it  came  it  told  the  woman  that  her  husband  was  coming  with  many  ponies. 
In  a  few  days  the  man  came  back  with  many  ponies. 

The  Loons  were  anxious  to  go  back  to  the  people,  and  so  they  told 
the  man  and  woman  that  they  wanted  to  go  back  to  their  people.  They 
started  back  to  their  village.  The  woman  carried  the  Loons  in  her  lap 
as  she  rode  one  of  the  ponies.  For  many,  many  days  they  traveled,  and 
at  last  they  came  in  sight  of  their  village.  The  man  looked  down  into  the 
village  from  a  high  hill  and  he  saw  some  one  sitting  upon  the  lodge  of  the 
chief.  He  called  his  wife  to  drive  up  the  ponies  and  they  went  down  into 
the  village.  The  people  were  frightened,  for  they  thought  that  they  were 
enemies.  It  was  four  years  since  the  man  and  the  girl  had  run  away 
from  the  village.  When  one  man  rode  up  and  saw  the  woman  coming 
with  the  Loons  sitting  in  her  lap,  she  told  him  that  she  was  the  girl 
who  had  disappeared  many  years  ago.  She  said  that  she  and  the  poor  boy 
were  coming.  The  man  went  back  and  told  the  people  that  the  poor  boy 
and  the  girl  were  coming;  that  they  had  with  them  two  Loons  and  that 
he  believed  that  they  were  wonderful.  The  poor  man  sent  the  woman  to 
her  father's  lodge,  while  he  went  into  the  lodge  of  the  chief's  son.  He 
gave  several  ponies  to  the  chief's  son,  and  told  him  that  he  had  been  to 
the  wonderful  land  of  Pahuk,  and  that  the  water  fowls  had  given  him  and 
his  wife  two  Loons.  He  said  that  he  wanted  to  make  a  present  of  this 
Loon  to  the  chief's  son.  The  chief's  son  was  glad,  and  he  invited  the 
man  and  the  Loon  to  eat  with  him.  The  Loon  walked  through  the  vil- 
lage and  the  people  laughed  at  it,  for  it  was  a  strange  sight  to  see  a  water 
fowl  walking  through  a  village.  When  they  went  into  the  lodge,  the  Loon 
was  rather  shy,  but  the  chief's  son  was  so  good  to  it  that  the  Loon  sat  by 
the  chief's  son.  The  poor  boy  went  back  to  his  wife's  lodge  and  there  he 
remained. 

After  a  while  the  poor  boy  gathered  a  number  of  warriors  and  said , 
"We  will  go  upon  the  war-path."  A  few  young  men  joined,  and  they 
went.  They  found  the  camp  of  the  enemy,  captured  many  ponies  and 
brought  them  home.  The  chief's  boy  seeing  this,  made  up  his  mind  that 
he  would  lead  a  war  party,  and  he  sent  for  the  poor  boy  to  assist,  and 
so  the  poor  boy  and  the  chief's  son  led  a  war  party  together  and  they 
carried  one  of  the  Loons  with  them.  The  Loon  guided  them  and  pro- 
tected them.  They  found  an  enemy's  camp,  attacked  the  village,  killed 
several  people,  took  some  scalps,  and  captured  many  ponies  and  returned 
home  victorious. 


260  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

In  a  few  days  the  chief 's  boy  wanted  to  go  again,  and  so  another  war 
party  was  formed.  One  night  when  they  had  been  gone  for  several  days 
the  Loon  was  sitting  at  the  foot  of  the  bed  of  the  wife  of  the  poor  boy. 
A  young  man  from  another  lodge  thought  of  the  young  man 's  wife.  He 
thought  to  himself:  "Her  husband  is  gone  far  away.  I  shall  go  and 
lie  with  his  wife  and  he  will  know  nothing  about  it. "  He  went  into 
her  lodge  and  crawled  into  her  bed.  She  tried  to  make  him  leave,  but 
he  remained,  and  after  she  had  consented  he  felt  something  at  the  foot 
of  the  bed  and  he  kicked  it  and  said,  "What  is  this  thing  sitting  here?" 
He  kicked  it  and  the  Loon  jumped  from  the  bed  and  began  to  make  a 
loud  noise.  The  woman  then  scolded  the  young  man  and  told  him  that  he 
had  done  wrong,  for  he  had  hurt  the  Loon 's  feelings  and  that  it  might 
tell  her  husband.  The  young  man  jumped  up  and  ran  out  of  the  lodge. 

In  a  few  days  the  war  party  returned  without  ponies.  The  warriors 
told  how  on  a  certain  night  the  young  man  had  jumped  up  and  said, 
"Something  has  gone  wrong;  we  must  return  to  our  village."  When 
the  young  man  returned  he  found  that  the  Loon  was  sick.  The  young 
man  remained  near  the  Loon  and  cared  for  it,  but  it  grew  worse.  The 
woman  was  scolded  and  was  told  to  leave  the  lodge  and  never  to  return 
again.  The  young  man  every  night  when  he  lay  down  placed  the 
Loon  by  the  head  of  his  bed.  The  Loon  spoke  to  him  and  said:  "Your 
wife  allowed  a  man  to  come  to  her  bed  and  let  him  stay  with  her.  When 
the  man  was  here  he  kicked  me  from  the  bed.  I  am  very  sorry.  I  am 
going  to  die.  My  spirit  is  broken,  but  when  I  am  dead,  take  off  my 
skin  and  throw  the  flesh  into  the  waters.  Keep  the  skin.  My  spirit 
shall  remain  with  the  skin  and  I  shall  be  with  your  people  and  shall 
speak  to  you  in  dreams.  My  father,  the  poor  boy,  knows  how  they  are 
to  use  me  in  the  medicine-lodge.  Do  not  destroy  my  skin.  "  In  a  day 
or  so  afterwards  the  Loon  died.  The  young  man  skinned  the  Loon 
and  threw  the  flesh  into  the  water,  and  hung  the  skin  on  a  high  pole. 
In  a  few  days  the  other  Loon  died  and  it  was  also  skinned. 

In  the  summer  time  when  the  medicine-men  had  their  ceremony  the 
poor  boy  started  the  Loon  Dance.  The  two  Loons  were  carried  by  two 
errand  men  and  all  other  animals  followed — that  is,  each  medicine-man 
who  represented  an  animal  followed.  After  the  dance  was  over,  the 
Loons  were  placed  in  a  sacred  bundle,  and  these  were  carried  by  warriors 
when  upon  the  war-path.  When  the  medicine-men  had  their  cere- 
monies they  took  the  Loons  out  and  stood  them  in  front  of  the  medicine- 
men, remembering  that  those  two  Loons  taught  mysteries  and  the 
wonderful  ways  of  the  animals  to  the  people.  They  also  taught  the 
people  the  use  of  the  different  roots  and  herbs  for  sickness.  Thus  the 


THE   ORIGIN  OF   THE  LOON   MEDICINE   CEREMONY.  261 

poor  boy,  through  these  Loons,  became  not  only  a  warrior  but  a  great 
medicine-man.  A  few  years  after  the  Loons  had  died  the  poor  boy 
taught  all  that  he  knew  to  the  son  of  the  chief,  for  he  was  also  broken  in 
spirit.  He  finally  died  and  all  the  mysteries  of  the  medicine-man  were 
left  with  the  chief's  son. 


79.  THE  LIGHTNING'S  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.1 

A  long  time  ago  the  Kitkehahki  had  many  ceremonies,  but  they  did 
not  have  any  medicine-men's  ceremonies.  In  one  of  their  villages  on 
the  Republican  River  was  born  a  girl  baby.  She  had  a  birthmark  upon 
her  forehead.  Some  said,  "It  is  the  picture  of  the  Moon."  Others 
said,  "It  is  the  picture  of  some  Meteor  or  Star."  As  the  child  grew 
people  noticed  that  her  actions  were  peculiar.  In  the  daytime  she 
stayed  in  the  lodge  most  of  the  time.  At  night  she  went  outside  and 
either  stood  near  the  entrance  or  went  upon  the  top  of  the  lodge.  She 
always  looked  at  something  in  the  heavens  and  sometimes  seemed  to  be 
counting  the  stars.  Her  mysterious  ways  surprised  the  people.  Her 
aged  father  said,  "Let  the  friends  and  relatives  of  this  girl  let  her  alone. " 
She  was  given  full  freedom  to  run  around  through  the  timber  or  any- 
where she  wanted  to  go.  When  she  became  older  her  parents  kept  her 
inside  the  lodge. 

In  olden  times  it  was  customary  for  the  old  people  to  make  for  their 
daughters  mats  from  rushes,  and  a  pillow  from  the  hide  of  a  calf  that 
was  only  a  year  old.  The  hair  was  left  on  the  hide,  and  the  pillow  was 
sewed  up  with  sinew  and  the  hair  of  buffalo  was  put  inside.  Whenever 
there  was  a  rainstorm  the  mats  and  pillows  were  rolled  up  and  placed 
upon  the  beds.  During  the  day  they  were  used  around  the  fireplace  in 
the  lodge.  The  old  people  made  the  mats  and  a  pillow  for  the  girl,  who 
was  growing  into  a  beautiful  young  woman.  The  girl  understood  how  to 
take  care  of  her  pillow  and  mats;  also  her  buffalo  robe. 

One  day  when  the  people  were  sitting  around  the  fireplace,  all  at  once 
the  girl  jumped  up  and  said,  as  she  started  to  go  outside,  "Mother,  I  be- 
lieve there  is  going  to  be  a  rainstorm. "  The  men  looked  at  one  another. 
The  women  all  said,  "It  will  not  rain,  for  it  is  clear;  there  are  no  clouds. " 
As  the  girl  was  returning  to  the  lodge  it  thundered.  The  girl  then  said: 

1  Told  by  Good- Food-in- Kettle,  a  Kitkehahki  woman,  who  claims  to  be  de- 
scended from  the  family  mentioned  in  the  story.  This  is  considered  one  of  the 
best  of  the  Kitkehahki  stories,  and  recounts  the  origin  of  a  certain  medicine  cere- 
mony. It  especially  taught  the  people  that  the  stars  in  the  heavens  can  send  one 
of  their  number  to  the  earth  to  teach  their  ways.  The  supposed  meteor  which 
struck  the  girl,  as  related  in  the  tale,  was  found  and  was  in  the  possession  of  the 
family  for  many  years,  but  was  lost. 


262  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

"I  knew  it  was  going  to  rain.  Do  you  all  hear  that?"  The  people 
arose  and  went  out  and  stood  facing  the  west,  where  great  dark  clouds 
were  rolling.  The  girl  did  not  go  out,  but  sat  down  upon  her  pillow  by 
the  fireplace  with  bowed  head.  The  people  came  in  and  began  to  roll  up 
their  mats.  They  spread  them  upon  their  willow  beds  and  lay  down 
under  them,  for  they  knew  that  the  lodge  was  not  well  covered  with  grass 
and  dirt,  and  that  it  would  leak.  The  girl  still  sat  by  the  fire.  Once  in 
a  while  her  father  would  throw  the  mat  back  from  his  face  and  look 
at  the  girl.  She  sat  with  bowed  head,  now  and  then  looking  up  at  the 
hole  in  the  top  of  the  lodge  where  the  lightning  flashed  repeatedly.  After 
a  while  she  arose  and  went  out  of  the  lodge,  but  soon  she  returned  to  her 
place  by  the  fire.  At  last  she  pulled  her  mat  over  by  the  northwest 
post;  then  she  placed  her  pillow  by  the  post  and  lay  down.  The  rain  was 
now  pouring  down.  The  old  man  watched  his  daughter  and  saw  that  now 
and  then  she  would  stick  her  head  out  from  the  robe.  As  she  stuck  her 
head  out  the  lightning  flashed,  and  it  thundered  very  sharply.  Smoke 
filled  the  lodge.  All  the  people  were  stunned. 

When  the  father  of  the  girl  came  to,  he  looked  about  and  saw  fire  on 
the  side  of  the  lodge  where  the  lightning  had  struck.  He  went  to  where 
his  daughter  lay,  and  saw  smoke  coming  from  her  head  through  a  round 
hole.  He  raised  her  head  and  saw  that  the  pillow  also  had  a  round 
hole  through  it.  He  removed  the  pillow  and  there  in  the  ground  was 
another  hole,  and  smoke  was  coming  from  it.  The  man  then  cried  and 
said,  "People,  arise;  my  daughter  has  been  killed  by  lightning."  The 
people  arose  and  gathered  around  the  place,  although  they  were  afraid 
to  go  near  a  place  where  lightning  had  struck.  The  father  began  to  dig 
into  the  ground  where  the  lightning  had  struck,  and  kept  on  digging  into 
the  ground  until  he  touched  something  with  his  fingers.  He  kept  on 
digging  until  he  dug  the  thing  up.  It  was  in  the  shape  of  a  woman.  It  had 
a  head,  shoulders,  and  body,  and  was  of  many  colors.  The  man  showed 
the  thing  to  the  other  people  and  he  told  his  wife  to  get  a  piece  of  tanned 
buffalo  hide.  This  was  brought,  and  then  the  downy  feathers  were  taken 
from  the  body  of  an  eagle  and  they  were  placed  at  the  altar.  The  father 
brought  in  some  cedar  limbs  and  placed  them  upon  some  live  coals.  He 
made  tea  from  cedar  nuts  and  poured  the  tea  into  a  wooden  bowl.  A 
flint  was  placed  in  the  wooden  bowl,  and  the  scent  of  the  skunk  was 
placed  in  the  tea.  The  father  then  took  some  live  coals  and  placed  them 
by  the  wooden  bowl ;  then  he  placed  some  cedar  limbs  upon  the  live  coals. 
The  people  were  then  told  to  wash  with  the  tea;  then  to  place  themselves 
over  the  burning  cedar  limbs,  so  that  the  smoke  would  pass  over  their 
bodies.  Each  person 's  face  was  smeared  with  the  mud  where  the  light- 


THE  LIGHTNING'S  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.  263 

ning  struck  the  ground;  then  each  went  where  the  stone  was  placed  and 
made  a  prayer.  The  father  was  the  first  to  go  to  the  stone.  He  spoke 
and  said:  "Father,  yonder  lies  my  daughter.  You  took  her  life.  I  will 
not  cry,  for  in  place  of  my  beautiful  daughter  you  came,  and  are  now  in 
her  place  in  my  heart.  You  are  from  the  heavens  and  have  taken  my 
daughter.  Keep  the  power  that  you  had  while  you  were  in  the  heavens. 
Give  me  and  teach  me  your  powers,  for  from  this  time  on  you  shall  be 
my  father. "  Then  the  man  left  and  the  other  people  came  and  talked  to 
the  stone.  After  all  this  the  lodge  was  swept  and  the  people  washed 
themselves.  After  the  lightning  struck  the  girl  the  clouds  disappeared 
and  the  sun  shone  brightly. 

The  next  day  the  father  invited  his  male  relatives  and  told  them  that 
the  lightning  had  struck  his  daughter.  He  told  them  that  it  was  not  a 
flint,  but  was  an  object  the  shape  of  a  human  body.  The  men  sat  around 
in  a  circle  while  the  girl  was  laid  out  where  she  had  been  killed.  The 
father  told  the  other  men  that  he  did  not  know  whether  to  take  the  stone 
and  bury  it  with  the  girl  or  to  keep  it  at  the  altar  in  the  lodge.  The  pipe 
was  filled  and  given  to  one  of  the  men.  The  man  lighted  the  pipe,  then 
arose,  walked  to  the  stone,  and  blew  a  few  whiffs  to  it  and  said:  "Father, 
smoke;  you  shall  be  one  of  us;  you  have  taken  one  of  our  daughters,  but 
we  know  you  are  from  the  heavens  and  have  great  powers.  You  shall 
remain  with  us. "  After  smoking,  the  man  passed  the  pipe  on.  He  then 
took  the  stone  and  passed  it  over  the  body  of  the  girl;  then  placed  it 
again  in  its  place.  Every  time  a  pipe  was  smoked,  the  ashes  were  placed 
before  the  stone.  After  the  smoking  was  over,  each  man  reached  and 
lifted  the  stone.  Although  it  was  small  it  was  very  heavy,  and  so  they 
called  it  "iron  stone." 

The  people  began  to  make  preparations  to  bury  the  girl.  She  was 
taken  up  on  a  high  hill  and  a  grave  about  two  feet  deep  was  dug.  Two 
forks  were  set  at  the  head  and  foot  of  the  grave.  A  pole  was  then  laid  in 
the  forks.  Poles  were  then  set  upon  each  side  and  the  girl  was  set  inside. 
Grass  was  placed  on  each  side,  then  dirt.  The  father  talked  to  the  peo- 
ple and  said:  "I  do  not  mourn,  for  I  believe  that  the  gods  in  the  heavens 
favored  my  girl  and  that  they  have  taken  her.  Let  us  go  home  and 
think  that  the  gods  have  taken  her."  The  people  all  went  home,  but 
the  father  stayed  around  the  grave  and  at  last  went  to  sleep. 

In  a  dream  he  saw  his  daughter.  She  stood  up  and  he  saw  a  bright 
star  upon  her  forehead.  Her  hair  was  plaited  smoothly,  and  on  the  back 
of  her  head  were  eleven  eagle  feathers  all  strung  together  so  that  they 
looked  like  a  moon.  The  girl  spoke  to  her  father  and  said:  "My  father, 
the  gods  have  favored  me;  I  am  now  staying  by  the  moon.  I  am  not 


264  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

among  our  people,  but  am  among  the  gods.  The  stone  in  your  lodge 
was  a  god,  and  was  in  the  heavens.  The  lightning  did  not  kill  me;  it  was 
the  stone  that  fell  from  the  heavens.  Stay  not  around  this  place  longer, 
for  I  am  to  turn  to  stone  and  will  not  be  able  to  hear  you  if  you  speak 
to  me.  Go  home  and  make  your  bed  on  the  north  side  of  the  stone.  Let 
your  pillow  be  near  the  stone,  for  it  will  speak  to  you  when  you  are 
asleep.  It  is  a  god<.  When  you  speak  to  it,  it  will  listen  to  you.  The 
other  gods  will  favor  you  in  many  things,  for  one  of  their  number  will 
be  present  with  you. " 

The  girl  disappeared;  then  the  father  moved  and  opened  his  eyes, 
but  for  a  long  time  could  not  see,  for  the  light  about  the  girl  had  dazzled 
his  sight.  At  last  he  could  see  plainly,  though  it  was  night.  He  went 
home  and  told  his  wife  that  he  had  seen  their  daughter  and  that  she  had 
told  him  to  lie  by  the  stone.  The  woman  said,  "Husband,  do  what  our 
daughter  told  you  to  do. "  The  father  made  his  bed  by  the  stone  and 
laid  down.  While  he  was  asleep  he  saw  in  his  dream  a  man  standing  at 
the  head  of  his  bed.  This  man  said:  "My  son,  I  liked  your  daughter. 
I  came  to  her  and  killed  her.  I  lost  my  place  in  the  heavens.  I  am  now 
here  with  you.  I  am  one  of  the  gods.  Keep  me  at  the  altar,  and  do  not 
let  people  come  around  where  I  am ;  keep  them  away.  Cover  me  with 
the  hide  of  a  buffalo;  in  front  of  me  make  a  little  hole,  and  in  this  hole 
pour  water,  so  that  you  will  have  fresh  mud  to  put  upon  my  body. 
You  see  I  have  the  soft  downy  feathers  upon  my  head.  You  did  right 
when  you  put  downy  feathers  upon  my  head.  See,  my  robe  is  turned 
with  the  hair  outside ;  my  face  is  daubed  with  mud ;  red  paint  is  around 
my  mouth.  I  hold  in  my  right  hand  something  like  a  gourd  rattle;  in 
my  left  I  hold  an  eagle  wing;  you  seel  am  a  medicine-man.  To-night 
I  will  tell  you  that  I  am  not  the  Lightning;  I  am  a  god.  Your  daughter 
is  gone.  I  now  take  her  place,  and  I  will  from  this  time  on  teach  you  to  be 
a  medicine-man.  I  stood  high  up  in  the  heavens.  I  know  where  the 
animals'  lodges  are,  but  these  animals'  lodges  will  be,  after  I  have  opened 
the  entrance,  in  the  earth.  It  will  be  through  my  power  that  you  will 
understand  all  of  these  things. " 

The  next  day  the  father  sat  up,  but  neither  ate  nor  drank  water.  He 
went  out  to  the  creek  and  took  a  bath ;  then  he  went  into  the  lodge  again 
and  picked  up  some  mud  from  the  holy  place.  He  laid  his  hands  upon 
the  stone  and  said:  "My  father,  my  heart  is  glad,  for  I  saw  you  last 
night.  This  mud  I  put  upon  my  head  and  face.  I  will  now  go  out  upon 
some  high  hill;  there  I  will  stand  and  fast.  If  it  is  your  wish  that  I 
fast  and  mourn  let  me  know  while  I  am  there. "  The  father  then  went 
out  of  the  lodge  and  went  west.  At  the  first  hill  he  came  to  he  stopped 


THE  LIGHTNING'S  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.  265 

and  began  to  cry;  he  stayed  there  until  night,  when  he  fell  asleep.  He 
dreamed  that  he  saw  the  same  man,  and  that  this  man  told  him  not  to 
mourn  or  fast ;  that  some  time  in  the  future  he  would  be  told  where  to  go 
and  where  to  stay ;  that  then  the  animals'  lodge  would  be  opened  to  him. 
The  man  did  not  stay  upon  the  hill  any  more,  but  went  home.  He  lay 
down  by  the  altar  and  did  not  dream  anything. 

For  several  days  he  lay  by  the  altar  without  dreaming.  One  rainy 
night  the  man  lay  down  by  the  altar  where  the  stone  was,  and  while 
it  rained  and  stormed  he  slept  and  dreamed  that  he  saw  a  man  who 
represented  the  stone,  who  told  him  that  the  time  had  come  when  he 
should  go  to  a  distant  place  where  the  animals'  lodge  was.  The  man 
awoke ;  the  rainstorm  had  passed.  The  man  went  out  and  stood  upon 
the  lodge  and  cried. 

He  stayed  upon  the  lodge  until  there  was  another  rainstorm ;  again 
he  dreamed,  and  this  time  he  dreamed  that  he  saw  the  strange  man  again, 
who  said:  "To-morrow  you  must  leave  the  village.  Go  to  the  place 
that  is  known  as  Swimming-Mound  upon  the  Republican  River.  Your 
people  you  shall  take  with  you,  and  also  the  stone.  When  you  have 
reached  the  mound,  place  the  stone  upon  it;  take  your  place  upon  the  south 
side  of  the  stone,  facing  north.  Once  in  a  while  walk  around  the  stone 
in  a  circle,  so  that  the  grass  will  be  trampled  down.  You  will  stay  upon 
the  mound  until  a  rainstorm  shall  come.  When  it  thunders,  watch  upon 
the  banks  of  the  Republican  River;  wherever  the  lightning  strikes  upon 
the  banks,  there  go.  Carry  the  stone  with  you.  There  you  will  find  a 
clump  of  trees  upon  the  bank.  There  you  will  see  that  the  lightning  has 
struck  many  times.  The  dirt  shall  have  been  moved  away,  and  there 
you  will  find  a  hole;  crawl  into  this  hole  and  place  the  stone  at  the 
entrance.  Go  through  the  entrance  and  you  will  find  that  it  will  become 
larger.  As  you  go  through  the  entrance  you  will  notice  that  the  pas- 
sage will  lead  you  under  the  Swimming-Mound.  As  you  approach  the 
animals'  lodge  you  will  hear  all  kinds  of  mysterious  noises.  You  will 
hear  the  noise  of  rubbing  on  the  sacred  stick  of  the  animals.  When  you 
hear  this,  sit  down  and  you  will  see  an  animal  coming  from  the  animals ' 
lodge.  The  animal  will  pass  you  and  will  go  to  the  entrance.  As  the 
animal  comes  to  the  entrance  and  sees  the  stone,  it  will  stop.  It  will 
then  return,  pass  you,  then  enter  the  animals'  lodge.  The  animals  will 
then  find  a  way  to  remove  the  stone  from  their  lodge  entrance.  While 
they  are  meditating  over  this,  appear.  The  animals  will  see  you  and  will 
make  a  request  of  you  to  remove  the  stone.  Tell  the  animals  to  give  you 
their  power;  that  you  will  then  remove  the  stone.  As  you  stand  upon 
the  hill,  do  not  care  for  the  mysterious  voices  that  you  will  hear." 


266  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

The  man  awoke.  It  was  nearly  morning.  He  took  his  pipe,  filled 
it,  and  smoked.  He  gave  a  few  whiffs  to  the  stone,  then  laid  the  pipe 
down  and  laid  his  hands  upon  the  stone  and  said:  "Father,  I  dreamed 
about  you.  I  saw  you  as  a  man.  You  have  told  me  to  go  to  the  Swim- 
ming-Mound. May  all  that  I  saw  in  my  dream  come  true,  for  as  soon  as 
the  sun  appears  I  shall  move  with  my  family  to  the  Swimming-Mound.  I 
will  do  as  you  have  said.  Father,  take  pity  upon  me."  He  then  took 
his  pipe  and  emptied  the  ashes  by  the  stone.  Then  he  rubbed  his  hands 
over  it,  saying,  "Father,  let  all  these  things  that  I  saw  last  night  come 
true."  Before  the  sun  was  up  he  roused  the  women  and  told  them  to 
cook  some  dried  meat.  The  women  began  to  cook,  sitting  on  the  east 
side  of  the  lodge.  The  man  sat  on  the  west  side  with  bowed  head  and 
with  the  robe  wrapped  around  his  legs.  When  all  the  people  were  seated 
around  the  fireplace  the  man  spoke  and  said:  "My  kinfolk,  make 
preparation  to  move  away  to  the  Swimming-Mound  upon  the  Repub- 
lican River.  My  father  has  spoken  to  me  in  a  dream."  The  young 
men  were  told  to  go  and  drive  the  ponies  from  the  hollow  in  the  hills. 
After  breakfast  the  women  began  to  put  their  things  into  the  cache  hole 
near  the  entrance.  Saddles  were  placed  in  the  hole,  having  been  made 
ready  to  be  put  upon  the  ponies.  Nothing  was  said  to  any  of  the  other 
people  in  the  lodges.  They  put  their  saddles,  their  meat,  corn,  tipi,  and 
everything  they  needed  upon  the  ponies'  backs.  By  daylight  they 
started  in  a  southwesterly  direction. 

For  many  days  they  journeyed  until  they  came  to  the  Republican 
River;  then  they  followed  up  the  river.  When  they  came  to  the  Swim- 
ming-Mound the  man  told  the  women  to  pitch  their  tipi  in  the  river  bot- 
tom. Then  he  took  the  stone,  folded  in  his  buffalo  robe,  and  went  to  the 
mound.  As  he  walked  up  he  noticed  that  there  was  no  wind,  but  as 
soon  as  he  had  made  a  place  upon  the  hill  for  the  stone  the  wind  began 
to  blow  up  on  each  side  of  the  mound.  The  man  thought  that  the 
mound  was  blowing  its  breath  upon  the  stone.  Then  again  he  thought 
that  the  animals  of  the  mound  were  sending  the  wind  to  blow  off  from 
the  stone  all  smells  of  the  people.  The  man  then  stood  up,  as  he  had  been 
told  to  do.  In  the  night  he  heard  strange  noises  coming  from  the  mound. 
It  sounded  like  the  rubbing  of  sticks,  and  drumming.  The  man  had  no 
fear.  He  stayed  all  night.  By  morning  the  wind  ceased.  He  stayed 
upon  the  mound  all  day  and  neither  ate  nor  drank. 

The  second  night  he  again  heard  strange  noises,  and  whistling.  He 
soon  heard  what  sounded  like  a  strong  wind.  He  looked,  and  there  was 
a  big  drove  of  elk  around  the  hill.  He  closed  his  eyes  and  said,  "  Father, 
shall  I  listen  to  these  animals?  Are  they  to  give  me  power?"  Then  he 


THE  LIGHTNING'S  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.  267 

began  to  cry.  He  fainted  and  fell.  He  saw  a  man  stand  by  him.  This 
man  was  painted  with  red  paint.  His  head  was  decked  with  small 
downy  feathers.  He  had  in  his  right  hand  a  whistle,  made  from  a  reed; 
he  also  had  over  his  shoulders  an  elk  skin,  and  he  said:  "My  son,  you  see 
that  I  am  a  great  man.  All  these  Elks  do  what  I  say.  Leave  this  place, 
for  this  is  our  home  and  we  do  not  like  your  presence  here.  If  you  leave, 
I  will  give  you  this  robe  and  whistle,  and  I  will  give  you  great  power. 
This  stone  before  you  came  from  the  heavens.  Remove  it  also,  for  it 
draws  lightning  and  will  kill  many  of  my  people  if  left  here. "  The  man 
recovered  and  stood  up  again  and  cried.  When  the  sun  rose,  the  man 
saw  the  strange  man  standing  in  front  of  him,  and  he  knew  it  was  the 
Elk. 

The  man  again  stood  all  day  on  the  mound  and  cried.  By  noon  he 
saw  many  Eagles  flying  overhead.  They  lighted  around  him,  and  he 
saw  another  man  with  his  head  decked  with  soft  downy  feathers  and 
his  body  covered  with  clay.  The  man  said:  "My  son,  leave  this  place. 
Take  the  stone  with  you  and  we  will  give  you  great  power,  for  I  control 
all  of  these  birds  that  you  see.  This  mound  is  our  resting  place.  The 
stone  resting  there  is  from  the  heavens,  and  if  it  stays  upon  the  mound 
there  will  be  rain  here  all  the  time.  Some  of  my  birds  will  be  killed. " 
The  man  awoke  and  the  birds  disappeared.  That  night  he  stood  by  the 
stone.  In  the  night  the  strange  noises  began  again.  The  man  seemed 
to  hear  people  singing  and  making  a  noise  like  that  of  a  flock  of  geese. 
Then  he  looked  toward  the  river  and  saw  fire  coming  up  from  it.  As  he 
stood  and  watched  he  thought  he  saw  all  kinds  of  fish,  beaver,  mink, 
and  other  animals  swimming  around.  He  seemed  to  know  that  these 
animals,  too,  wanted  him  to  take  away  the  stone.  The  man  did  not  pay 
any  attention  to  all  this,  but  closed  his  eyes  and  began  to  cry  the  more. 
He  did  not  look  toward  the  river  any  more. 

The  next  day  as  the  sun  rose  he  saw  many  colors.  As  the  sun  rose 
higher  he  saw  these  colors  everywhere.  He  rubbed  his  eyes,  then  looked 
again  and  saw  these  colors.  They  were  like  many  rainbows.  Then  he 
looked  at  the  stone  and  said,  "The  same  colors  I  see  everywhere"  (mean- 
ing the  stone).  All  day  there  were  many,  many  colors  everywhere. 

When  night  came  the  man  began  to  get  frightened.  He  began  to 
tremble  and  think  to  himself:  "What  am  I  afraid  of?  I  have  been 
here  all  of  this  time.  What  can  I  be  afraid  of  ? "  He  was  about  to  leave, 
when  a  green  light  seemed  to  shine  from  the  stone.  This  attracted  his 
attention.  He  looked  at  the  stone  and  said:  "Father,  make  me 
brave.  Let  me  not  leave  you  for  fear  of  the  animals."  His  fear  went 
from  him.  He  began  to  cry  again,  and  while  he  cried  he  heard  strange 


268  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

noises  again.  He  did  not  pay  any  attention  to  them,  but  soon  he  heard 
a  loud  noise  which  seemed  to  come  from  the  timbered  country.  He 
became  scared  and  trembled.  He  thought,  "Must  I  run?"  Again  he 
looked  at  the  stone  and  he  saw  the  green  light,  and  again  his  fear  went 
from  him.  He  heard  the  noise  again,  and  as  it  sounded  louder  and  nearer 
he  opened  his  eyes  to  see  what  the  thing  was  that  was  making  it.  He 
thought  that  it  was  a  white-legged  horse.  When  he  looked  at  the  stone 
again,  he  saw  that  it  gave  a  bright  light.  Then  the  noise  stopped,  and 
there  stood  before  him  a  man.  The  light  shone  so  brightly  from  the  stone 
that  he  could  see  the  man  plainly.  The  strange  man  had  a  bear  robe  over 
his  shoulder.  Around  his  ankles  were  bears '  claws.  His  face  was  painted 
red.  From  his  mouth  two  tusks  stuck  out,  and  when  the  strange  being 
breathed  different  colored  dusts  seemed  to  cover  the  stone ;  but  the  stone 's 
light  seemed  to  dispel  the  dust.  The  strange  man  then  said:  "My  son, 
upon  this  mound  is  my  lodge.  I  live  here  with  many  of  my  children. 
I  go  and  kill  all  kinds  of  animals  and  people.  You  come  here  upon  this 
mound  with  thestone,  and  I  do  not  like  it,  for  the  stone  is  from  the  heavens. 
It  will  bring  rain  and  lightning,  and  it  will  kill  my  children. "  The  man 
closed  his  eyes  and  cried  with  a  loud  cry.  The  light  went  out.  The 
strange  man  turned  into  a  Bear  and  trotted  away.  The  strange  noise 
continued  all  night.  The  morning  was  cloudy.  All  day  the  clouds 
seemed  to  roll  as  if  in  madness.  They  rolled  about  in  the  heavens,  but 
there  was  no  lightning  or  thunder.  The  man  thought  that  the  time  was 
near  for  it  to  thunder,  and  that  his  dream  was  to  come  true.  So  he  took 
new  courage. 

Towards  evening  he  looked  and  saw  another,  darker  cloud  coming 
from  the  west.  He  heard  sharp  thunders  and  saw  lightning  that  seemed 
to  be  making  its  way  to  where  he  was  standing.  He  heard  drumming, 
the  rubbing  of  sticks,  the  sound  of  geese,  and  the  howling  of  coyotes  and 
bears.  The  clouds  from  the  west  seemed  to  come  rapidly,  for  he  now 
heard  thunder  overhead.  He  tried  to  close  his  eyes,  but  the  flashing  of 
the  lightning  opened  them.  Soon  the  rain  poured  down.  A  noise  went 
by  the  man  that  sounded  like  a  hailstorm.  Presently  his  eyes  were 
opened  by  the  lightning.  Then  it  thundered.  He  thought  he  saw  the 
lightning  strike  the  ground,  for  there  was  fire  and  smoke  upon  the  bank 
of  the  river.  Again  and  again  it  lightened  and  struck  at  the  same  place. 
Soon  the  storm  seemed  to  encircle  the  man  and  the  lightning  struck 
him  down.  The  storm  passed  away,  and  the  sky  cleared;  the  man 
lay  stunned.  As  he  lay  there  he  saw  a  man  whom  he  knew  to  be  the 
Stone-Man.  The  man  said:  "My  son,  all  I  have  told  you  to  do,  you  have 
done.  The  animals  who  dwell  upon  this  mound  wanted  to  scare  you 


THE  LIGHTNING'S  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.  269 

away.  These  animals  have  never  been  friendly  with  people,  but  they 
have  delighted  in  killing  and  eating  them.  Now  they  shall  talk  to  you 
in  their  lodge  this  very  night,  and  they  will  give  you  great  powers.  Arise, 
take  me  and  carry  me  to  the  place  where  I  told  you  to  see  me.  You  know 
the  place  where  the  bank  was  struck  many  times  by  lightning.  There  the 
entrance  to  the  animals '  lodge  has  been  opened  to  you.  Go  through  the 
entrance  to  the  animals'  lodge  and  stay  near  the  animals'  lodge;  they 
will  call  you  themselves.  They  will  ask  you  to  remove  me.  Do  not  listen 
to  them.  When  they  have  taught  you  all  their  secrets  then  you  may  come 
and  pick  me  up  and  carry  me  back  to  your  tipi.  Place  me  outside  at  the 
west.  Hang  up  the  things  that  the  animals  shall  have  given  you. " 

The  man  arose  and  walked  to  the  bank  of  the  river.  There  he  saw 
where  the  lightning  had  struck  the  bank.  He  even  saw  a  tree.  He 
went  to  the  tree  and  beyond  there  was  a  hole.  He  went  into  the  hole, 
and  at  the  very  entrance  smoothed  a  place  with  his  right  foot  where 
he  placed  the  stone.  He  then  crawled  into  the  hole  for  some  distance, 
until  it  began  to  grow  larger,  so  that  he  could  stand  up.  He  went  on 
until  he  heard  the  noises  of  drumming  and  of  many  Geese.  At  last  he 
came  to  where  the  animals  were.  He  sat  down.  He  heard  great  noises 
and  saw  a  small  animal  coming  from  the  lodge,  which  was  lighted  by  a  big 
fire.  The  animal  came  and  passed  him  and  he  saw  that  it  was  a  Mink.  The 
Mink  went  on  to  the  entrance.  In  a  little  while  it  came  back  and  ran  past 
the  man.  As  soon  as  it  went  into  the  lodge  the  drumming  and  noises 
ceased.  In  a  little  while  there  was  a  great  noise  among  the  animals, 
but  there  was  no  drumming.  The  man  hearing  the  noise  of  the  animals 
became  scared  and  lay  low. 

For  some  time  the  animals  continued  the  noise,  and  when  the  noise 
ceased  a  man  came  forth,  who,  when  he  saw  the  man  who  had  brought 
the  stone  to  the  entrance,  sat  up.  He  said  to  the  stranger:  "My  brother, 
the  animals  have  sent  me  to  you.  They  want  me  to  tell  you  that  they 
want  you  to  remove  the  stone  at  the  entrance."  The  stranger  said: 
"My  brother,  how  did  you  get  in  here?  Why  are  you  here?"  The 
animal  man  said:  "I  am  a  fire-maker  for  the  animals.  I  do  not  care  to  be 
among  our  people  any  more.  There  is  another  man  here  who  is  also  a 
fire-maker  for  the  animals.  Will  you  go  away  and  remove  the  stone  ?" 
"No,"  said  the  stranger,  "I  will  not  remove  the  stone  until  the  animals 
have  taken  pity  upon  me  and  given  me  the  ceremony  of  the  medicine- 
men. "  The  man  went  back  to  the  lodge  and  for  a  time  there  was  silence 
in  the  lodge.  Again  the  man  came  and  said:  "My  brother,  the  animals 
have  agreed  to  take  pity  upon  you,  for  you  can  remove  the  stone. 
They  are  afraid  to  touch  it.  The  stone  is  from  the  heavens,  and  the 


270  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

animals  are  afraid  of  it.  Come  in  where  the  animals  are  and  they  will  see 
you.  When  you  go  in  you  must  cry  and  be  meek.  Ask  the  animals  to 
help  you  and  they  will  do  so."  The  stranger  arose  and  went  with  the 
messenger  into  the  lodge.  All  the  animals  arose  and  walked  around  the 
fire.  Then  all  was  dark  and  the  man  could  not  see  what  was  going  on. 
When  he  could  see  he  found  himself  lying  on  his  back  at  the  south 
and  inside  of  the  lodge.  He  arose  and  began  to  cry,  and  as  he  cried 
he  talked.  When  he  stopped  crying  he  was  told  to  stand  west  of  the 
fireplace.  He  looked  on  the  ground  and  saw  several  things  that  looked 
like  pieces  of  ice.  The  man  came  and  said:  "These  things  were  taken 
from  your  stomach  by  the  animals.  You  will  now  take  them  into  your 
mouth.  As  you  receive  them  in  your  mouth  stamp  your  feet,  then  they 
will  go  down  into  your  stomach  again.  You  are  now  to  possess  power 
to  mesmerize  and  to  throw  things  into  people 's  stomachs. "  The  man 
took  one  of  the  things  and  put  it  into  the  stranger's  mouth.  He 
dropped  one  at  a  time  into  his  mouth  and  told  him  to  stamp  his  feet. 
The  man  did  so,  and  as  each  was  dropped  the  thing  seemed  to  melt  away 
in  his  mouth,  and  as  he  stamped  his  feet  on  the  ground  the  thing  disap- 
peared and  returned  to  his  stomach.  When  this  was  done  the  man  at 
the  entrance  told  the  stranger  that  he  now  had  power  the  same  as  all  of 
the  animals  had. 

The  stranger  was  then  given  a  seat  near  the  entrance.  He  looked 
around  and  saw  all  kinds  of  animals  sitting  around  the  circle.  One  of 
the  men  at  the  entrance  was  a  scalped  man;  the  other  who  had  talked  to 
the  stranger  gave  him  an  account  of  his  life.  He  said:  "In  my  youth 
I  knew  nothing;  my  mind  was  not  good  and  I  used  to  run  at  random 
through  the  village.  Once  in  a  while  I  knew  what  I  was  doing,  but  one 
time  when  I  seemed  to  be  out  of  my  head  some  strange  being  came  to  me 
in  a  snowstorm  and  led  me  away,  and  by  some  mysterious  agency  took 
me  into  the  animals'  lodge.  The  animals  cared  for  me  and  cured  me. 
Before  my  birth  my  father  killed  a  black-tail  deer,  so  that  when  I  was 
born  I  always  acted  crazy.  Now  that  I  am  well  I  always  want  to  stay 
with  the  animals  and  wait  upon  them. "  The  strange  man  was  kept 
in  the  lodge  for  several  nights  and  was  taught  sleight-of-hand  perform- 
ances. He  was  told,  among  many  other  things,  that  when  he  should 
build  the  animals '  medicine-lodge  he  should  kill  several  snipe  and  cranes 
and  take  their  skins  to  hang  inside  the  lodge. 

When  the  animals  had  taught  him  all  of  their  powers  they  told  him 
that  he  must  go  out  and  bring  in  the  stone.  The  man  went  out  and 
brought  in  the  stone  and  set  it  upon  the  west  side  of  the  lodge  right  in  front 
of  the  leading  animals  who  were  known  as  the  Big-Medicine-Animals. 


THE  LIGHTNING  S  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.  271 

One  by  one  the  animals  went  to  the  stone  and  blew  their  breath  upon  it. 
The  last  to  go  was  Skunk.  Skunk  said:  "My  son,  I  know  lightning. 
I  get  my  power  from  it.  I  can  also  make  rainbows  in  the  night. "  The 
Skunks  gave  the  stranger  power  to  cleanse  people  from  the  lightning 
shock. 

After  all  the  animals  had  given  their  breath,  they  said:  "Take  the 
stone  with  you.  The  power  from  the  heavens  and  the  animal  power  you 
shall  have  with  you.  This  lodge  shall  be  known  as  the  Stone-Medicine- 
Lodge.  When  you  decide  to  have  the  animals'  ceremony  and  perform 
the  mysterious  rites  of  the  animals '  lodge,  you  shall  set  the  stone  in  front 
of  the  altar.  The  other  altar  shall  be  of  cottonwood  and  willows.  Place 
the  dead  Beaver  that  we  shall  give  you  upon  the  second  altar. "  The 
medicine-men 's  power  to  do  sleight-of-hand  and  songs  were  taught  the 
strange  man.  When  the  animals  had  finished  teaching  him  he  was  told 
to  go  home  and  bring  them  some  tobacco,  a  black  silk  handkerchief,  and 
a  shell.  He  was  also  told  to  take  the  stone  with  him  to  his  home.  He 
was  given  many  animal  skins  and  soft  downy  feathers.  He  took  the 
stone  and  placed  it  into  the  feathers;  then  he  was  guided  out  of  the  lodge, 
and  it  was  evening. 

The  man  went  on  to  find  his  camp.  He  could  see  clearly  in  the  night. 
He  came  to  his  tipi  and  went  in  with  the  stone,  which  he  set  at  the  west 
side;  then  he  hung  his  skins  on  the  tipi  poles  above  the  stone.  He  lay 
down  and  went  to  sleep.  In  the  morning  one  of  the  women  arose  and 
made  a  fire.  She  saw  the  things  hanging  upon  the  tipi  poles,  and  also 
saw  the  stone  and  the  man.  She  woke  up  some  of  the  other  women  and 
pointed  to  where  the  man  lay.  The  women  were  glad  when  they  knew 
that  he  was  back.  They  cooked  some  corn.  They  knew  that  the  man 
would  make  an  offering.  He  awoke  and  went  out,  taking  with  him  his 
pipe  and  pouch.  He  went  up  on  a  high  hill  and  filled  his  pipe,  and 
said,  "Now,  Father  Sun,  you  shall  smoke."  The  man  filled  the  pipe 
and  held  it  in  his  hand  until  the  sun  came  up  in  the  east,  then  lighted 
the  pipe.  He  drew  a  few  whirls,  then  held  the  pipe,  stem  towards  the 
east,  where  the  Sun  was  coming  up,  and  said:  "Father,  smoke,  and 
make  true  all  these  things  that  I  have  heard  and  seen.  The  heavens  took 
my  daughter.  She  is  dead,  but  I  think  she  now  stands  in  the  heavens 
as  a  star.  Give  me  your  power  so  that  I  may  understand  mysteries." 
He  emptied  the  pipe  and  passed  his  hand  over  the  pipestem,  then  made 
motions  with  his  hand  toward  the  Sun.  He  went  home  and  took  his 
seat  by  the  stone  and  other  sacred  things.  He  again  filled  his  pipe  and 
smoked,  giving  a  few  whiffs  to  the  stone,  then  a  few  whiffs  to  the  things 
that  were  hung  upon  the  pole. 


272  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

The  people  lingered  at  Swimming-Mound  for  some  time.  The  man 
disappeared  nearly  every  day,  and  when  he  came  home  he  brought  roots 
and  herbs.  The  man  told  the  people  not  to  pay  any  attention  to  him, 
for  he  would  be  taken  care  of  by  the  animals.  One  day  he  went  off  and 
did  not  return  for  some  time.  When  he  did  return  he  could  not  under- 
stand the  people.  He  was  under  the  influence  of  some  mysterious  power. 
When  he  went  away  the  next  day,  the  women  watched  him.  They  once 
saw  him  appear  as  a  deer,  then  as  a  coyote,  and  again  he  flew  like  an  eagle. 
They  learned  that  by  mysterious  power  he  was  guided  to  where  there 
were  herbs  and  roots  which  he  dug  up.  For  many  days  he  was  under 
this  influence.  When  the  man  recovered,  he  said,  "It  is  now  time  that 
we  go  to  our  people."  The  women  brought  their  ponies  and  packed 
their  things  upon  them;  then  they  all  started  for  their  home  in  the  east. 
Each  night,  after  the  people  had  pitched  the  tipi,  the  man  placed  the 
stone  in  the  west  and  hung  the  things  upon  the  pole.  Then  he  sat  down 
and  smoked.  After  he  had  smoked  and  eaten,  he  sang  songs  that  the 
women  had  never  heard.  He  kept  up  the  singing  nearly  all  night.  At 
last  they  came  to  the  village. 

The  people  were  glad  to  see  them  and  gave  them  many  presents.  In 
the  night  the  man  invited  his  male  relatives  and  told  them  all  that  he  had 
gone  through,  what  he  had  seen  in  the  animals '  lodge  and  what  powers  he 
had  received.  The  man  told  his  friends  that  he  came  after  presents  and 
native  tobacco.  The  men  soon  gathered  the  things  and  gave  them  to 
him.  He  thanked  them  and  went  out,  leaving  the  lodge.  For  some 
time  he  did  not  come  in.  When  he  did  return  he  told  the  people  that 
the  animals  had  received  the  presents  and  were  glad  to  get  the  smoke. 
He  then  told  his  friends  that  he  wanted  them  to  help  him  to  build  a  lodge 
that  winter;  and  they  agreed  to  build  a  medicine-man's  lodge. 

In  the  fall  several  men  went  and  cut  the  forks  for  the  circle  in  the  lodge. 
All  of  the  timber  was  cut  and  brought  to  the  village  and  piled  up.  The 
women  brought  elm-bark  strips  to  tie  it  with.  These  strips  were  tied  and 
hung  up  to  dry.  Willows  were  also  brought  and  piled  up.  The  people 
all  went  hunting  buffalo.  While  on  the  hunt,  winter  set  in.  The  people 
were  successful;  they  found  many  buffalo  and  brought  much  meat 
home.  Then  the  man  invited  his  male  relatives  to  his  lodge,  where  he 
taught  them  the  songs  of  the  medicine-men.  The  men  liked  the  songs. 
The  man  told  them  about  the  lodge  that  they  were  to  build,  and  the  men 
looked  forward  to  the  time  when  they  should  build  the  lodge. 

Early  in  the  spring  a  place  was  selected  in  the  center  of  the  village 
for  the  new  lodge.  Ten  forks  were  set  in  a  circle  to  support  the  poles. 
The  lodge  was  completed  at  about  the  same  time  the  corn  was  planted. 


THE  LIGHTNING'S  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.  273 

The  corn  came  up.  The  people  began  to  get  ready  for  a  hunt.  The 
old  men  held  their  bundle  ceremonies  to  secure  from  the  gods  success  in 
hunting.  When  the  man  heard  that  the  chiefs  had  given  orders  for  the 
people  to  get  ready  to  go  on  the  buffalo  hunt,  he  sent  for  his  relatives. 
When  they  were  seated  in  the  lodge  he  told  them  to  kill  several  kinds  of 
snipe  and  crane,  for  he  wanted  their  skins.  He  also  told  them  to  kill 
many  buffalo,  so  that  much  meat  would  be  dried  and  used  in  his  new 
ceremony.  With  these  instructions  in  their  minds  the  people  went  on  the 
buffalo  hunt.  It  was  summer,  and  they  did  not  go  very  far  before  they 
found  many  buffalo.  Much  buffalo  meat  was  brought  to  the  man's  lodge. 

In  the  night  the  man  invited  the  chiefs  and  braves  of  the  tribe,  and 
when  they  were  all  seated  he  said:  "We  are  seated  in  my  lodge.  The 
young  men  are  roasting  some  ribs  by  the  fire.  What  I  have  in  my  mind 
the  chiefs  and  braves  must  know.  My  daughter  was  killed  by  the  heav- 
ens, and  the  thing  that  killed  her  is  here  with  us. "  The  man  rose  and 
took  up  the  stone  and  placed  it  in  front  of  the  chiefs  and  braves.  "I 
have  talked  with  this  stone  in  my  sleep  for  a  long  time,  and  now  I  have 
done  all  that  it  told  me  to  do.  I  was  placed  upon  Swimming-Mound 
and  stayed  there  for  several  days.  By  the  help  of  this  stone  I  went  into 
the  animals '  lodge.  The  animals  taught  me  many  wonderful  things  and 
also  taught  me  their  songs.  They  also  told  me  to  have  sleight-of-hand 
performances  in  my  lodge  that  you  have  helped  me  build.  Now,  my 
friends  have  killed  many  buffalo;  you  see  the  meat  in  front  of  my  lodge. 
The  meat  will  be  jerked  and  dried,  put  in  parfleches  and  kept  for  the  sleight- 
of-hand  performances  which  we  shall  have  for  our  people.  When  we 
return  to  our  village  corn  will  be  plentiful  as  well  as  meat.  We  shall  have 
plenty  to  eat  while  we  give  the  sleight-of-hand  performances.  I  want 
the  chiefs  and  braves  to  know  that  I  will  have  something  that  will  be  new 
to  our  people. "  The  chiefs  and  braves  were  glad  to  hear  what  the  man 
had  to  say;  they  now  knew  why  so  many  men  took  meat  to  this  man's 
lodge.  After  they  had  eaten,  they  went  home. 

When  all  of  the  people  had  returned  from  the  hunt  to  the  village,  prep- 
aration was  made  to  have  sleight-of-hand  performances.  The  women 
went  to  their  fields  and  gathered  corn  to  cure,  and  fires  were  made  every- 
where to  roast  the  corn.  After  the  corn  was  cured  the  man  sat  down 
in  his  lodge.  He  sent  for  some  of  his  relatives,  from  whom  he  selected 
two  young  men  to  act  as  errand  men ;  the  other  men  were  seated.  The 
two  errand  men  were  told  to  put  their  robes  over  their  bodies,  with  the 
hair  outside;  then  they  were  told  to  take  eagle  wings  and  brushes  of 
wild  sage  and  sweep  out  the  lodge.  When  the  lodge  was  swept  out  the 
man  told  the  errand  men  to  get  some  wild  sage.  They  brought  the 


274  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

wild  sage  and  piled  it  up  in  the  west,  inside  of  the  lodge.  The  man 
then  placed  the  skin  of  a  beaver  upon  the  wild  sage  and  put  the  stone 
in  front  of  the  beaver.  The  rest  of  the  wild  sage  he  spread  around  the 
circle  of  the  lodge.  Other  men  came  in  with  the  skins  of  birds.  Two 
sticks,  one  of  which  extended  from  the  head  to  the  tail,  and  another 
which  crossed  the  first  stick  and  supported  the  wings,  pierced  the  birds. 
The  two  sticks  were  bound  at  the  crossing  by  means  of  a  sinew  string. 
The  birds  were  hung  up  in  the  lodge ;  one  was  hung  up  in  the  west,  another 
in  the  north,  another  in  the  east,  and  another  in  the  south.  There  were 
other  smaller  species  of  snipe  that  hung  around  the  lodge.  There  was 
something  wonderful  about  these  birds,  as  the  medicine-men  saw  and 
heard  afterwards. 

The  two  errand  men  were  told  to  get  dry  ash  wood  and  four  dry  ash 
limbs.  The  first  was  a  large  timber,  from  which  the  bark  was  peeled 
and  in  which  notches  were  made.  The  small  limbs  were  shaved  down 
smooth  and  were  about  the  length  of  a  man 's  arm.  The  pole  with  the 
notches  was  placed  in  front  of  the  altar,  and  the  sticks  were  placed  across 
the  pole.  Old  medicine-men  also  took  part,  so  that  there  was  a  great 
company  of  men  in  the  lodge.  The  medicine-men 's  wives  brought  in 
many  kettles  of  corn.  At  each  meal  a  parfleche  was  untied  and  dried 
meat  placed  by  the  fireplace  to  be  cooked.  Those  of  the  medicine-men 
who  had  learned  secrets  of  different  animals  or  heavenly  bodies,  came 
into  the  lodge  and  begged  that  they  be  allowed  to  take  part  in  the 
ceremonies.  The  man  thanked  them  and  told  them  to  come  and  select 
their  seats  in  the  lodge. 

When  all  things  were  completed  the  man  placed  two  water  drums 
in  front  of  the  altar.  A  procession  was  formed  inside  the  lodge.  The 
man  then  told  the  men  that  they  were  to  go  into  the  timber  to  cut  young 
cottonwood  trees  and  willows.  The  cottonwood  trees  were  to  stand  one 
on  the  west  side  of  the  altar,  one  on  the  north  side,  and  another  on  the 
south  side,  and  two  were  to  be  set  near  the  entrance.  The  willows  were 
to  be  placed  about  inside  of  the  lodge  so  that  there  would  be  little  lodges 
around  within  the  lodge ;  the  other  procession  started  toward  the  timber. 
As  they  went  along  the  man  yelled  and  grunted  at  them  and  threw  them 
down.  Sometimes  when  they  arose,  the  men  vomited  corncobs ;  sometimes 
a  piece  of  stick  or  a  piece  of  root.  They  kept  on  going  until  they  came  to 
a  creek.  Then  the  man  began  to  wave  his  eagle  wing,  and  all  the  men  ran 
into  the  water  and  began  to  swim.  The  man  told  them  that  they  must 
wash  clean,  for  they  were  to  do  many  wonderful  things,  and  that  they 
must  wash  themselves  every  day.  After  they  had  washed,  they  went  into 
the  timber  and  cut  two  cottonwood  trees  which  were  to  be  carried  by 


THE  LIGHTNING'S  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.  275 

the  two  errand  men.  The  other  two  cottonwood  trees  were  cut,  and 
two  other  men  were  selected  to  carry  them.  Willows  were  cut,  and  the 
other  men,  according  to  their  places  in  the  lodge,  carried  them.  The  two 
errand  men  were  placed  in  the  lead;  then  followed  the  willow  men;  then, 
last  of  all,  came  the  two  men  with  the  cottonwood  trees.  The  man  then 
headed  the  procession.  As  they  neared  the  village  the  man  began  to 
wave  his  eagle  wing  and  shout  and  grunt.  Every  time  he  shouted  and 
grunted  the  men  fell  to  their  knees.  This  was  to  show  the  people  that 
each  man  had  power  in  his  stomach  that  was  being  taken  from  him.  The 
man  also  did  this  to  find  out  to  what  animal  clan  the  men  belonged; 
for  the  only  time  the  people  could  tell  what  clan  the  men  belonged  to  was 
when  they  were  wounded,  for  then  they  would  imitate  the  animal  of  the 
clan  to  which  they  belonged. 

When  they  came  to  the  lodge  they  stopped  in  front  of  it,  and  a  song 
about  entering  the  lodge  was  sung.  The  march  was  resumed  and  they 
went  four  times  around  in  a  circle,  then  entered  the  lodge.  As  they 
went  in  great  noises  went  up,  for  as  they  circled  around  the  fireplace 
each  man  imitated  his  kind  of  animal.  Four  times  they  went  around  the 
fireplace,  then  the  two  errand  men  stopped,  one  on  the  north  side  and 
the  other  on  the  south  side  of  the  entrance.  The  others  went  to  their 
places  under  the  willows.  The  other  two  men  stopped  west  of  the  lodge. 
At  the  altar  sat  only  the  four  singers;  the  rest  of  the  space  was  filled 
with  willows  which  were  so  arranged  inside  the  lodge  that  each  animal 
group  had  a  booth  or  lodge  of  its  own.  Then  the  men  went  out  after 
their  animal  skins,  medicine,  and  paints.  Meat  was  served  to  the  differ- 
ent men,  and  preparation  was  made  for  the  rubbing  which  belongs  to 
the  powers  of  the  stone  and  symbolizes  several  thunderings  at  one  time. 
The  next  day  each  man  was  told  to  go  out  upon  the  hills  to  mourn,  sleep, 
or  do  anything,  then  eat  wild  sage  and  take  a  swim;  then  rub  the  wild 
sage  over  his  body.  They  were  neither  to  go  home  nor  to  touch  a  woman. 

This  new  lodge  of  the  medicine-man  had  not  yet  the  cedar  tree.  On 
the  next  day,  when  all  the  men  got  together,  they  sang,  and  in  the  night 
the  owner  sang.  At  daylight  the  owner  arose  and  called  the  other  men 
to  follow  him,  as  many  as  wished  to  go  with  him.  They  went  far  into  the 
country  and  came  to  some  cedars.  Those  who  followed  were  told  to 
remain  at  a  distance.  The  owner  went  alone,  while  the  other  men  sat  down 
and  waited.  After  a  time  they  thought  they  heard  many  cubs  and  they 
were  about  to  run  when  they  heard  the  man  coming  with  the  tree.  He 
did  not  let  anyone  go,  for  he  wished  to  keep  secret  the  way  he  got  the  cedar 
tree.  When  the  cedar  tree  was  brought  to  the  village  there  was  great 
rejoicing.  The  cedar  tree  stood  on  the  south  side  of  the  lodge  where  the 


276  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

Bear  family  was.  This  was  the  only  cedar  in  the  medicine-lodge.  In 
the  night  the  medicine-men  did  many  wonderful  things.  The  owner  of 
the  stone  and  ceremony  was  among  the  first  who,  through  the  powers  of 
the  stone, made  lightning.  The  fire  was  put  out,  so  that  it  was  dark  in  the 
lodge.  The  medicine-men  stood  up  on  the  west  side  of  the  fireplace;  a 
dyed  and  tanned  buffalo  hide  was  waved  through  the  air,  and  then  the 
stone  was  waved  by  the  owner  in  front  of  the  hide,  while  several  of  the 
other  men  squirted  water  with  their  mouths  upon  the  stone.  In  this 
way  lightning  was  made.  Others  performed  sleight-of-hand  tricks. 

The  first  night  of  the  sleight-of-hand  performances,  the  leader  placed 
the  water  drums  in  front  of  the  altar;  then  he  spoke  and  said:  "All 
put  mud,  downy  feathers,  and  animal  skins  on  your  bodies.  We  want 
now  to  throw  up  the  animal  power  from  our  insides.  We  want  the  people 
to  see  these  powers."  The  owner  and  the  three  men  ran  around  the 
fireplace,  each  taking  up  a  handful  of  ashes  and  throwing  them  up  to  the 
four  world-quarter  gods.  They  stood  in  a  line,  and  as  each  stamped  with 
his  feet  he  fell  to  the  ground,  face  downward.  The  things  called  ' '  powers  " 
were  seen  sitting  upon  the  ground.  The  men  left  them  lying  there 
and  went  and  took  their  seats  in  the  west.  Now  the  drums  were  taken 
up  and  the  men  began  to  sing.  Each  man  came  out  from  his  willow 
lodge  and  danced.  When  they  stopped  singing,  all  of  the  men  fell  to  the 
ground  and  in  a  few  minutes  all  was  quiet. 

As  each  man  revived,  he  went  and  stood  in  front  of  his  willow  lodge. 
The  owner  told  the  errand  man  to  place  a  wooden  bowl  of  water  west  of 
the  fireplace.  The  owner  and  the  other  three  then  went  to  the  powers, 
which  looked  much  like  ice  or  glass.  The  owner  was  the  first  to  pick 
up  this.  He  held  the  power  up  with  his  thumb  and  finger  so  that  the 
people  could  see  it,  then  he  dropped  it  into  the  water  and  lifted  it  to  his 
mouth  and  swallowed  it.  He  then  stamped  his  feet  on  the  ground  and 
beat  the  sides  of  his  body  with  his  palms,  then  stood  up  straight  and  said, 
"Now,  medicine-men,  this  power  that  I  have  within  me  I  shall  keep.  I 
shall  not  throw  it  up  any  more. "  The  other  three  men  went  through  the 
same  movements,  which  were  then  repeated  by  the  other  medicine-men. 

Night  after  night  they  performed,  until  all  the  people  became  inter- 
ested. Other  medicine-men  who  had  never  before  taken  part  came  into 
the  lodge  and  asked  permission  to  take  part  in  the  ceremony.  One  night, 
just  before  they  began  their  sleight-of-hand  performances,  a  warrior  of 
distinction  walked  in  and  stood  in  the  lodge  and  said:  "Medicine-men, 
I  came  to  ask  your  permission  to  take  part  in  your  ceremonies.  I  wish 
to  perform  some  sleight-of-hand  tricks,  and  I  wish  these  brother  medicine- 
men to  see  me  perform  them."  All  of  the  medicine-men  said:  "Nawa, 


THE  LIGHTNING'S  MEDICINE  CEREMONY.  277 

it  is  well.  Let  our  brother  come  and  play  in  this  lodge. "  The  warrior 
then  said:  "For  three  days  I  will  make  preparation,  and  the  fourth 
night  I  will  come  and  perform."  The  warrior  then  went  out.  He  was 
known  as  a  great  warrior.  He  had  gone  into  the  enemy 's  country  and 
had  captured  many  ponies,  for  it  was  an  easy  thing  for  him  to  bring  ponies 
home.  His  face  was  always  painted  red  upon  the  forehead,  and  when 
he  appeared  at  the  medicine-lodge  his  mouth  was  daubed  with  clay,  which 
extended  toward  his  ears;  and  white  clay  was  about  his  eyes.  He  had  a 
little  soft  downy  feather  on  top  of  his  head,  and  a  downy  feather  stuck 
in  his  scalp-lock.  His  hair  was  covered  with  white  clay.  He  had  a  robe 
about  his  shoulders,  and  a  belt  with  eagle  legs  filled  with  native  tobacco 
about  his  waist;  and  he  wore  an  otter  collar  with  an  ear  of  corn  on  it. 

One  day  after  going  to  the  lodge,  he  went  through  the  village  and 
saw  a  boy  who  was  very  poor.  He  said  to  the  boy:  "Come  with  me  to 
my  lodge;  I  have  something  to  say  to  you. "  The  boy  followed  the  war- 
rior to  his  lodge,  and  when  they  were  seated  a  bowl  of  soup  with  dried 
meat  in  it  was  placed  before  him  and  he  was  told  to  eat.  The  boy  ate, 
for  he  was  very  hungry,  and  after  he  had  eaten  the  warrior  said:  "Boy, 
I  want  your  help.  I  am  about  to  perform  in  the  medicine-men's  lodge. 
Will  you  help  me  and  perform  with  me?"  The  boy  arose,  walked  to  the 
man,  and  passed  his  hands  over  the  man's  head  and  said:  "You  take 
pity  upon  me.  I  am  poor,  and  I  will  do  whatever  you  wish  me  to  do." 
In  the  afternoon  the  two  went  off  into  the  hills.  They  came  to  a  high 
hill,  and  on  the  side  of  this  hill  they  dug  until  they  came  to  some 
sticky  mud,  which  they  took  up  and  carried  to  the  warrior 's  lodge.  The 
next  day  the  lodge  was  swept  out.  The  boy  was  told  to  make  mud 
ponies  and  to  make  them  as  nearly  perfect  as  he  could.  He  began  to 
make  the  mud  horses,  and  he  made  four,  all  of  the  same  size  and  build. 
When  the  boy  finished  a  pony  he  set  it  in  the  rays  of  the  sun  that  came 
through  the  hole  in  the  lodge. 

On  the  fourth  day,  when  he  had  completed  the  four  ponies,  they 
stood  in  the  rays  of  the  sun;  and  the  boy  sat  by  them,  moving  them  as 
the  rays  of  the  sun  moved  around  the  lodge.  The  warrior  told  the  boy 
that  they  were  now  to  try  the  sleight-of-hand  tricks.  He  sang  and 
danced  round.  The  magic  worked  and  the  warrior  was  satisfied.  In 
the  night  they  went  to  the  lodge.  The  warrior,  with  the  assistance  of  the 
boy,  made  the  mud  ponies  walk  around  the  lodge.  The  warrior  sang,  and 
every  time  he  moved  his  robe  the  ponies  trotted.  When  he  stamped  his 
feet  the  ponies  stopped.  The  warrior  was  satisfied.  The  medicine-men 
wondered,  for  the  warrior  was  not  a  medicine-man.  The  spectators 
were  impressed  and  they  gave  many  presents  to  the  warrior.  After  the 


378  THE  ORIGIN  OP  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

performance  the  warrior  told  the  boy  to  gather  up  his  ponies  and  to 
go  with  him.  The  boy  gathered  the  ponies  and  placed  them  in  his  robe. 
They  went  out  of  the  lodge  toward  the  creek,  and  when  they  got  to  the 
creek  the  warrior  told  the  boy  to  throw  the  ponies  into  the  water.  When 
the  boy  had  thrown  the  ponies  into  the  water,  they  went  home.  The 
warrior  never  after  this  was  known  to  have  a  pony.  His  power  went 
from  him  and  he  became  a  poor  man.  Whoever  it  was  that  had  given 
him  the  power  had  become  displeased  with  him  for  throwing  the  ponies 
into  the  creek.  He  should  have  stood  the  mud  ponies  upon  dry  land 
in  some  cave.  This  ceremony  of  sleight-of-hand  performance  lasted 
several  days,  but  finally  it  was  over.  Ever  after  that  the  people  made 
great  preparation  for  this  ceremony.  The  participants  were  known  as 
"medicine-men,"  or  "stone-medicine-men." 

One  summer  the  people  went  out  hunting.  The  owner  of  the  stone  went 
and  took  the  stone  with  him.  It  was  now  covered  with  skunk's  hide,  a 
handkerchief,  calico,  and  cotton.  The  coverings  were  offerings  the  people 
had  made  to  it.  When  they  reached  the  head  of  the  Republican  River 
they  were  attacked  on  all  sides  by  the  enemy  and  were  finally  driven 
into  a  small  ravine.  One  of  them  while  out  saw  that  all  of  his  people 
were  about  to  be  killed,  and  rode  east  to  the  camp  of  the  Potawatami. 
He  went  to  their  chief  and  told  him  that  his  people  were  surrounded  by 
the  enemy.  The  chief  sent  for  the  medicine-man  and  told  him  to  select 
twenty  young  men,  with  their  medicine-bags,  and  have  them  mounted 
on  horses.  The  young  men  were  selected  and  started.  Soon  they  came 
to  the  place  where  the  Pawnee  were  surrounded  and  were  about  to  be 
killed.  The  twenty  men  rode  in  a  line,  and  the  enemy  saw  them  coming 
and  turned  upon  them.  Ten  Potawatami  stepped  forward  and  shot. 
Each  shot  brought  down  a  man.  The  enemy  rushed  at  them,  but  the 
other  ten  men  went  forward,  took  aim,  and  again  each  shot  brought 
down  a  man.  The  other  ten  men  had  reloaded  and  they  went  forward, 
for  the  enemy  had  again  made  an  attack.  Again  ten  of  the  enemy  were 
killed.  The  other  ten  went  forward  to  meet  the  enemy.  Finally  they 
came  to  the  dead  bodies  of  the  enemy.  They  took  out  their  knives  and 
cut  out  the  hearts  from  the  bodies  and  put  them  into  their  medicine- 
bags.  Then  they  dipped  blood  and  spread  it  upon  their  faces.  They  also 
rubbed  some  of  the  blood  upon  their  guns.  The  enemy  watched  them 
and  became  scared.  They  let  the  Kitkehahki  alone  and  turned  upon 
the  Potawatami,  who  kept  making  every  shot  count.  Finally  the  enemy 
retreated.  The  Potawatami  kept  on  after  the  enemy  and  saved  what 
few  Kitkehahki  were  left.  The  owner  of  the  stone  was  alive.  He  went 
to  the  place  where  he  had  packed  his  pony  to  look  for  the  bundle 


THE  LIGHTNING  S  MEDICINB  CEREMONY.  279 

with  the  stone  upon  it.  He  could  not  find  the  bundle;  it  was  lost.  All 
the  people  who  knew  the  Stone-Medicine-Men 's  ceremony  have  died  and 
the  ceremony  no  longer  exists. 

80.  THE  STONE-MAN  MEDICINE-LODGE. ' 

Tirawa  created  a  man  and  woman  and  put  them  upon  the  earth. 
They  had  two  sons  and  many  daughters.  When  they  grew  up  each  of 
the  two  sons  took  a  wife.  Then  the  old  man,  who  was  called  by  his  chil- 
dren Man-from-the-East  (Pitahauirat) ,  said:  "I  have  one  lodge.  We  can 
not  all  live  in  this  lodge.  Let  us  make  another  lodge  to  the  right,  where 
my  older  son  will  live  with  his  family.  Then  let  us  make  another  lodge 
to  the  left  of  us  and  there  my  younger  son  will  live  with  his  family.  The 
tipi  to  my  right,  with  all  the  other  tipis  which  shall  be  placed  about  it 
in  the  future,  shall  be  known  as  Leading- Village  (Chaui) ;  and  the  tipi  to 
the  left,  with  all  other  tipis  that  shall  be  placed  about  it  in  the  future, 
shall  be  known  as  Small- Village  (Kitkehahki) .  The  old  man  taught  his 
two  sons  the  bundle  ceremonies  and  gave  them  bundles  that  were  some- 
thing like  the  original  bundles  which  he  had  kept.  These  bundles  were 
known  as  Kawarakis. 

The  family  of  the  son  who  placed  his  tipi  to  the  right  made  its  vil- 
lage somewhere  near  Nemaha,  Nebraska.  The  other  family  went  farther 
south  and  made  their  village  near  Little  Nemaha,  Nebraska.  The  other 
families  stayed  behind  and  they  increased  very  rapidly.  The  old  man 
said  to  his  sons:  "Your  two  lodges  must  face  the  west,  as  mine  does. 
As  your  families  increase,  you  must  make  more  lodges  and  they  must  all 
face  east."  Again  he  spoke  and  said:  "Your  descendants,  my  oldest 
son,  shall  communicate  with  the  animal  gods.  They  will  teach  you  the 
mysteries  of  the  different  herbs  and  roots  that  are  under  the  ground. 
You  shall  be  a  great  medicine-man.  You,  my  younger  son,  shall  under- 
stand the  stones  that  are  set  in  many  places  over  the  land.  The  stones 
will  teach  you  their  mysteries,  their  power,  and  their  strength.  My 
people  who  remain  here  with  me  shall  know  the  sacred  things  that  belong 
to  Tirawa,  and  we  shall  be  known  as  "Tirawa  people." 

The  two  sons  went  their  ways,  and  the  old  man  with  his  family 
remained  where  he  was.  The  Kitkehahki  went  south;  the  Chaui  went 
west;  the  Pitahauirat  stayed  east.  The  Pitahauirat  were  known  to  be  a 
people  who  were  favored  by  Tirawa.  The  Chaui  were  known  to  be  a  people 
watched  over  by  the  heavenly  gods.  The  Kitkehahki  people  had  many 

1  Told  by  Good- Food-in- Kettle,  Kitkehahki.  This  tale,  while  recounting  the 
origin  of  a  certain  medicine-lodge  and  certain  migratory  movements,  is  in  part  a 
hero  story. 


280  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

bundles.  They  understood  the  powers  of  the  stones.  They  knew  where 
there  was  a  stone  god,  and  this  stone  god  used  to  talk  with  the  people  and 
made  them  famous  among  all  other  people.  Among  the  Chaui  there 
grew  up  a  young  man  who  disappeared,  and  when  he  came  back  he  was  a 
wonderful  young  man.  Among  the  Pitahauirat  was  a  man  who  acted 
curiously  and  had  many  names.  They  called  him  the  Cheat-Coyote,  or 
Crow-Feathers.  He  stole  things  from  many  people. 

One  time,  when  the  three  bands  came  together  to  make  an  offering  of 
buffalo  to  the  gods,  Crow-Feathers  saw  Animal-Boy  from  the  Chaui  band. 
This  young  man  was  dressed  in  fine  buckskin  leggings  and  moccasins. 
Crow-Feathers  wanted  these  clothes  and  determined  to  have  them.  One 
time  Animal-Boy  went  out  in  the  timber.  He  met  Crow-Feathers,  who 
dared  him  to  turn  into  some  kind  of  animal.  The  boy  at  first  would  not  do 
anything,  but  finally  consented.  He  took  off  his  leggings  and  moccasins 
and  arose  and  flew  like  an  eagle.  As  he  flew  over  Crow-Feathers'  head, 
Crow-Feathers  said:  "Be  an  eagle  always.  Do  not  come  down  any 
more. "  The  boy  then  flew  around  and  around,  but  could  not  turn  into 
human  form  again.  Crow-Feathers  took  the  leggings  and  moccasins  and 
went  home.  The  boy  was  missed,  and  after  a  long  search  he  was  given 
up  for  dead. 

There  was  a  poor  man  and  woman  who  lived  east  of  the  village. 
They  had  no  tipi,  so  they  had  to  make  a  grass-lodge.  As  the  woman 
gathered  some  grass,  a  bird  of  some  kind  flew  downwards  and  fell  into 
the  bunch  of  grass.  The  old  woman  looked  into  the  grass  and  there  lay 
a  baby  boy.  The  woman  ran  and  told  her  husband  that  she  had  a  baby 
grandchild.  The  two  wrapped  the  baby  in  old  skins,  but  they  were  so 
poor  that  they  had  nothing  to  feed  the  child.  They  lay  him  by  the  fire. 
The  next  morning  the  child  was  larger.  As  days  went  by  the  child 
grew  taller.  In  a  few  days  he  was  of  considerable  size  and  ran  around. 
One  day  he  ran  to  the  man  and  said:  "Grandfather,  make  me  a  bow 
and  four  arrows,  so  that  I  may  play  with  them. "  The  old  man  made 
the  bow  and  arrows  and  the  boy  went  out  to  the  timber  to  try  and  kill 
game.  He  could  not  kill  anything  with  the  little  bow  and  arrows,  so  he 
told  the  old  man  to  make  him  a  larger  bow  and  larger  arrows.  The  man 
made  them  and  gave  them  to  the  boy.  Now  the  boy  asked  the  old 
woman  to  make  him  a  spider-web  ring.  The  old  woman  cut  up  a  piece 
of  her  robe  and  made  the  ring.  The  boy  hung  the  ring  outside  the  grass- 
lodge.  The  next  day  he  arose  early  and  played  around  the  lodge,  call- 
ing for  his  grandmother  to  awake  and  get  the  ring  and  roll  it  for  him,  so 
that  he  might  shoot  at  it.  "Well, "  said  the  old  woman,  "I  will  roll  it. " 
She  rolled  the  ring  inside  the  lodge,  and  the  boy  shot  at  it.  The  arrow 


THE  STONE-MAN  MEDICINE-LODGE.  281 

went  through  the  ring  and  the  boy  said:  "Get  your  knife,  grandfather, 
and  skin  the  buffalo. "  When  the  old  man  looked  at  the  place  where  the 
ring  had  been,  there  was  a  dead  buffalo.  The  old  man  gave  a  grunt  of 
satisfaction  and  began  to  skin  the  buffalo.  He  cut  up  the  meat  while 
the  old  woman  laid  the  bones  around  the  fire  to  roast. 

They  did  not  throw  any  of  the  meat  away,  for  they  were  poor  and 
hungry  and  had  not  had  any  meat  for  a  long  time.  When  the  meat  was 
gone,  the  boy  asked  the  old  woman  to  roll  the  ring,  and  he  shot  and  killed 
another  buffalo,  and  he  continued  to  kill  a  buffalo  every  day,  so  that  they 
had  more  meat  than  they  needed.  The  old  people  recognized  that  the 
boy  was  wonderful,  but  none  of  the  other  people  in  the  village  paid  any 
attention  to  him,  for  he  continued  to  run  about  through  the  timber 
ragged  and  dirty.  No  one  recognized  him  for  the  Animal-Boy  who  had 
disappeared  some  time  before,  but  he  was  the  same  boy.  When  he  had 
disappeared,  the  animals  took  him  to  their  lodge  and  gave  him  great 
powers.  Then  he  returned  to  the  people  as  a  poor  boy. 

Among  the  Kitkehahki  was  a  man  who  had  gone  very  far  into  the  west, 
where  he  found  a  man  of  stone.  This  man  of  stone  spoke  to  him  and 
said:  "You  shall  be  called  Stone-Man.  You  shall  be  a  great  warrior; 
arrows  will  not  go  through  you. "  The  man  returned  to  his  people,  and 
he  treated  them  so  badly  that  they  tried  to  kill  him,  but  they  could  not. 
The  people  were  hungry,  for  there  was  a  certain  animal  that  scared  away 
the  buffalo  by  its  howling.  This  animal  was  known  as  the  red  fox.  The 
chief  gave  out  orders  for  his  people  to  try  and  kill  this  fox.  They  tried 
in  every  way  to  kill  it,  or  catch  it,  but  they  could  not.  The  chief  told 
the  crier  to  go  through  the  village  and  tell  the  men  of  the  village  that 
whoever  would  kill  the  red  fox  should  marry  his  oldest  daughter.  The 
crier  went  through  the  village  telling  the  people  what  the  chief  had  said. 
The  little  boy  at  the  old  woman 's,  who  was  now  called  Belly-Boy,  said: 
"Grandmother,  I  shall  kill  the  red  fox  and  I  shall  marry  the  chief's 
daughter. "  The  old  woman  nearly  cried.  She  laid  her  hands  on  the  boy 's 
head  and  said:  "My  poor  boy  thinks  he  is  going  to  kill  the  red  fox." 

The  boy  prepared  himself  and  went  out.  He  wandered  over  the  prairie 
until  he  came  to  some  timber.  There  he  found  some  men  fixing  tim- 
ber to  trap  the  red  fox.  Everywhere  he  went  he  found  men  fixing  some 
kind  of  trap  to  catch  the  fox.  Burnt-Belly  went  home,  and  said: 
'  'Grandmother,  all  the  men  are  out  fixing  their  traps  to  catch  the  red  fox. 
Crow-Feathers  is  out  and  I  know  he  is  going  to  take  my  fox  away  again. 
I  will  make  my  trap  near  our  place,  so  we  can  watch  it.  Go  with  me, 
grandmother,  and  cut  a  long  elm  pole.  Then  put  a  sinew  string  at  the 
small  end.  Dig  a  hole  and  set  the  pole  in  it.  Then  make  a  kind  of  hole 


282  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

in  the  ground  where  the  loop  of  the  sinew  string  will  be.  Lay  a  piece  of 
stick  across,  and  place  the  bait  on  there.  When  the  fox  bites  the  bait  it 
will  get  caught  and  will  swing  in  the  air. "  The  old  woman  went  out  and 
fixed  the  trap  as  she  had  been  directed  by  the  boy.  Then  they  went 
home.  Burnt-Belly  could  not  sleep,  for  he  was  thinking  of  his  trap. 

Early  on  the  next  morning  he  went  to  the  trap  and  there  was  the  fox. 
The  fox  swung  up  and  down,  so  that  the  boy  jumped  around  as  he  tried 
to  pull  it  down.  At  last  he  caught  the  end  of  its  tail  and  went  up  and 
down  with  the  fox.  Finally,  the  hairs  came  out  of  its  tail  and  the  boy 
fell  to  the  ground.  As  he  stood  up,  some  one  struck  him  on  the  side  of 
the  head  and  said:  "Get  out  of  my  way!  This  is  my  red  fox.  I  am 
going  to  kill  it  and  take  it  to  the  chief's  tipi,  and  I  shall  marry  the  chief's 
daughter."  The  boy  looked  at  the  hair  in  his  hand  and  he  found  that 
he  had  the  whole  hide  of  the  red  fox.  He  was  satisfied,  and  went  home. 
The  man  who  had  struck  him  was  Crow-Feathers.  As  Burnt-Belly 
entered  the  lodge  of  his  grandmother  he  said:  "Grandmother,  I  have 
here  the  red  fox.  Crow-Feathers  tried  to  take  it  away  from  me,  but  I 
have  it  here. "  The  old  woman  took  the  fox  hide  and  hung  it  up  on  the 
grass-lodge. 

Crow-Feathers  took  his  fox  home,  and  when  the  chief  saw  it  he  was 
glad,  and  gave  his  daughter  to  Crow-Feathers.  The  fox  was  tied  to  a 
long  pole  and  the  pole  was  set  in  the  ground.  Each  day  the  people  went 
to  Crow-Feathers '  tipi  to  see  the  fox.  As  the  people  came  near  the  fox 
the  hair  came  off  from  it,  and  it  fell  to  the  ground.  The  hairs  were  not 
red,  but  of  a  bluish  color.  The  people  said:  "Why,  the  fox  is  not  red." 
Still  the  buffalo  did  not  come  anywhere  near  the  village,  but  the  boy  had 
his  bow  and  arrows  and  ring.  Each  day  his  grandmother  rolled  the  ring 
and  he  shot  at  it,  and  there  would  always  be  a  buffalo  lying  in  the  place 
where  the  ring  fell.  The  old  man  would  skin  the  buffalo  and  the  old 
woman  would  jerk  it  and  dry  it,  throwing  nothing  away.  Crow-Feathers 
was  married  to  the  chief's  daughter.  Everybody  talked  about  it,  for  the 
people  were  hungry  and  they  looked  to  Crow-Feathers  to  help  them  in 
some  way. 

One  day  Burnt-Belly  said:  "Grandmother,  take  a  roll  of  pemmican 
and  go  and  visit  the  chief 's  tipi.  Sit  down  at  the  entrance  and  when  you 
get  tired,  arise  and  drop  the  pemmican.  The  people  will  see  it,  and  the 
chief  will  see  it,  and  he  will  call  you  back.  When  he  calls  you  back  and 
wants  to  know  what  the  thing  is,  tell  him  that  it  is  a  piece  of  fat,  with 
which  you  grease  the  boy's  eyes."  Burnt-Belly  went  off,  knowing  that 
his  grandmother  would  go  to  the  chief's  tipi.  The  old  woman  did  as  she 
was  told,  and  when  she  dropped  the  pemmican,  the  people  were  aston- 


THE  STONE-MAN  MEDICINE-LODGE.  283 

ished,  for  they  did  not  think  the  old  woman  could  afford  to  have  any  meat. 
When  they  called  her  back,  she  told  them  that  the  thing  was  fat  to  grease 
her  grandchild's  eyes  with.  "But,"  said  the  old  woman,  "if  you  want, 
you  may  grease  your  lips  with  it."  The  old  woman  went  home.  The 
chief  had  a  younger  daughter  left,  and  he  told  the  girl  to  follow  the  old 
woman  home  and  see  what  she  had  at  her  house.  The  girl  went,  and 
peeped  into  the  grass-lodge.  She  saw  the  real  red  fox  hanging  up  on  the 
side  of  the  lodge,  and  it  made  the  lodge  red.  She  also  noticed  many  par- 
fleches  filled  with  buffalo  meat  piled  up  around  the  lodge.  The  boy 
was  sitting  by  the  fire,  warming  his  belly.  The  girl  did  not  enter  the 
lodge,  but  she  went  home. 

When  the  old  woman  returned,  the  boy  told  her  that  the  chief's 
younger  daughter  had  been  there  to  see  him.  The  old  woman  nearly 
cried  and  said:  "Why,  my  grandson,  you  must  not  think  that  you  can 
marry  the  chief's  daughter.  I  will  go  and  see  what  the  girl  wanted." 
The  old  woman  went  out,  and  saw  the  girl  just  as  she  entered  the  village. 
When  the  old  woman  came  in,  the  boy  said:  "Grandmother,  I  want  you 
to  take  a  parfleche  and  lay  the  red  fox  upon  it  and  carry  it  to  the  tipi  of 
the  chief.  Tell  the  chief  that  the  poor  boy  sends  the  meat  and  the  fox  to 
him.  Tell  him  that  I  want  the  younger  daughter  for  my  wife."  The 
old  woman  went  to  the  chief 's  tipi  and  set  the  meat  and  the  fox  in  the 
entrance,  at  the  same  time  saying:  "My  grandson  sends  these  things  to 
the  chief.  Let  the  chief  hang  them  by  the  other  fox,  and  let  the  people 
see  them.  Also  let  the  chief  gather  his  friends  and  feed  them  with  this 
meat,  and,  as  they  eat,  let  them  send  for  my  grandson,  and  let  my  grand- 
son sit  by  the  chief 's  daughter,  that  they  may  eat  together  and  become 
husband  and  wife." 

The  chief  listened  to  the  old  woman 's  words  and  was  glad.  He  sent 
for  his  friends  and  told  them  to  look  at  the  red  fox.  The  people  were 
astonished,  for  they  saw  that  the  lodge  looked  very  red.  The  chief,  after 
he  had  eaten  some  of  the  meat,  said:  "The  poor  boy  shall  sit  by  my 
daughter,  and  she  shall  be  his  wife.  Send  word  to  my  son-in-law,  that 
my  new  son-in-law  may  live  in  his  tipi  with  him. "  The  boy  came  and 
sat  down  by  the  girl.  The  chief  spoke  again  and  said:  "My  boy,  this  day 
you  shall  be  my  son-in-law.  You  shall  live  with  my  other  son-in-law." 
That  day  the  boy  told  the  girl  to  go  with  him.  They  came  to  a  pond. 
The  boy  washed  and  came  out,  a  fine-looking  young  man.  He  had  a  cap 
made  from  woodpecker's  feathers,  and  his  robe  had  many  stars  upon  it. 
They  went  home  and  entered  the  tipi  of  Crow-Feathers.  They  made 
their  bed  at  the  north  side  of  the  tipi,  while  Crow-Feathers  had  his  bed 
in  the  south  part  of  the  tipi.  In  the  night  Crow-Feathers  peeped,  and  he 


284  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

saw  something  strange  happening.  There  seemed  to  be  sparkling  of  fire 
going  up  from  the  robe  of  the  young  man.  There  was  some  kind  of 
power  upon  the  robe  that  made  it  look  like  many  lights.  The  next 
morning  Crow-Feathers  saw  that  Burnt-Belly  was  handsome  and 
dressed  very  fine.  Crow-Feathers  tried  to  imitate  him  in  dress.  His 
wife  was  mad  at  herself,  for  when  Burnt-Belly  first  came  to  their  tipi  his 
wife  asked  her  sister  if  she  could  pour  some  water  into  her  bowl,  so  she 
could  wash,  and  the  sister  refused.  The  next  morning  the  older  sister  said: 
"You  may  take  my  bowl  and  let  your  husband  wash  his  face  in  it."  The 
younger  girl  refused  and  said:  "I  have  my  own  bowl  for  my  husband." 

The  next  day  Burnt-Belly  went  off  through  the  timber  and  caught  a 
woodpecker  and  took  it  home.  The  next  morning  he  told  his  wife  to 
follow  him,  for  he  was  going  to  his  grandmother's  to  eat.  He  placed 
the  woodpecker  upon  the  top  of  his  head.  As  they  went  on,  the  wood- 
pecker flopped  its  wings  and  whistled.  Crow- Feathers  saw  that  the  boy 
had  a  woodpecker  and  so  he  went  out  into  the  timber  and  somehow  he 
caught  a  woodpecker  and  took  it  home.  In  the  night  Crow-Feathers 
saw  the  sparkling  upon  the  young  man's  robe.  He  grunted  and  with 
the  branch  of  a  tree  he  struck  the  bed  of  hot  coals.  Then  he  threw  the 
coals  upon  his  robe.  Early  in  the  morning  he  found  that  he  had  burnt 
his  robe,  but  nevertheless  he  took  the  woodpecker  and  tied  it  upon  the 
hair  on  top  of  his  head  and  said  to  his  wife:  "Let  us  go  out;  the  people 
ought  to  see  my  power."  Crow-Feathers  went  out  and  the  woodpecker 
began  to  peck  his  head.  It  pecked  it  until  it  began  to  bleed  and  the  blood 
ran  down  his  face.  His  wife  ran  up  to  him  and  said:  "You  are  being 
hurt.  Take  the  bird  off  and  let  it  fly  away. "  The  girl  took  the  bird  off 
and  it  flew  away. 

One  day  Burnt-Belly  told  the  chief  to  tell  the  crier  to  tell  all  the 
young  men  to  tie  their  ponies  close  by,  for  some  of  them  were  to  go  out 
and  look  for  buffalo.  There  was  joy  throughout  the  camp  and  the  men 
staked  out  their  ponies.  Early  in  the  morning  there  were  several  men 
selected  to  go  out  and  look  for  buffalo.  They  were  told  to  go  to  certain 
hills.  They  went  to  the  hills,  but  they  saw  no  buffalo,  and  so  they  came 
back.  The  young  man  then  told  the  chief  to  tell  the  crier  to  go  through 
the  village  and  make  known  to  the  men  that  they  were  to  go  to  a  certain 
place,  for  the  men  had  brought  news  that  buffalo  were  sleeping  in  the 
valley.  The  men  got  upon  their  ponies  and  gathered  at  the  chief 's  tipi. 
The  chief  led  them  out.  Crow-Feathers  was  glad,  for  he  went,  while 
Burnt-Belly  stayed  home. 

The  men  went  out  to  the  hills  and  when  they  were  upon  the  hill  the 
men  who  had  gone  out  said:  "It  is  here  that  we  were  and  we  saw  no 


THE  STONE-MAN  MEDICINE-LODGE.  285 

buffalo."  While  they  were  talking,  Burnt-Belly  came  up.  "Look," 
said  he,  "yonder  in  the  valley  you  will  see  buffalo.  Surround  them  and 
kill  them."  The  men  looked  in  the  valley  and  there  they  saw  the 
buffalo. 

The  chief  divided  the  men  so  that  some  went  on  the  west  side  and  some 
went  on  the  north  side  and  some  went  on  the  south  side  and  the  others 
stayed  where  they  were.  As  soon  as  the  robe  was  thrown  up  in  the  air, 
the  men  rode  towards  the  buffalo.  The  buffalo  rose  and  ran,  but  the 
people  came  from  all  sides,  so  that  the  buffalo  ran  around  in  a  circle,  so 
that  all,  even  those  who  had  poor  horses,  got  a  chance  to  kill  a  buffalo. 
Crow-Feathers  was  among  them.  He  found  one  buffalo,  and  he  chased  it 
around  until  at  last  he  wounded  it.  It  was  then  nearly  dark.  Finally  he 
succeeded  in  killing  the  buffalo,  and  he  found  that  it  was  a  poor,  thin 
bull,  unfit  to  eat.  Nevertheless,  he  was  proud  of  his  success.  He  skinned 
it  and  took  the  meat  home.  He  felt  very  proud,  for  he  thought  that  he 
had  killed  a  buffalo,  and  that  Burnt-Belly,  being  afoot,  would  not  kill 
any.  As  soon  as  the  people  surrounded  the  buffalo,  Burnt-Belly  ran, 
and  when  he  came  to  a  fat  cow  he  pulled  its  beard  and  then  went  on. 
From  the  sides  of  some  he  pulled  hairs,  and  the  hairs  became  hearts. 
From  the  beards  of  others  he  pulled  hairs,  and  they  became  tongues.  He 
came  to  one  cow  that  was  very  fat.  From  its  tail  he  pulled  some  hair 
and  these  became  the  whole  buffalo. 

The  boy  was  first  to  get  home.  He  told  his  wife  to  fix  a  place  for  him 
to  put  the  meat.  Branches  of  trees  were  spread  out  and  the  boy  began 
to  reach  from  under  his  robe  and  to  take  out  meat,  hearts,  and  tongues, 
and  place  them  upon  the  branches.  When  he  had  taken  out  all,  there 
was  a  large  pile  of  very  fine  fat  meat.  In  the  night  came  Crow-Feathers. 
He  began  to  take  the  meat  off  from  his  pony 's  back.  As  he  entered  the 
lodge  he  saw  the  boy's  fine  meat,  and  he  asked  the  boy's  wife  where  it 
came  from.  She  said  that  her  husband  had  brought  it.  "But,"  said 
Crow-Feathers,  "how  did  he  bring  it?"  His  wife  told  him  that  the  boy 
brought  it  in  his  robe.  After  this,  Crow-Feathers  tried  to  kill  the  boy, 
but  the  animals  took  care  of  him,  and  one  morning  Crow-Feathers  was 
found  dead  in  his  bed. 

The  people  then  knew  that  the  boy  had  wonderful  powers,  except  one 
man,  who  was  the  Stone-Man.  One  day  the  girl  went  out  to  the  creek  for 
water,  and  on  her  return  she  found  the  Stone-Man  waiting  for  her.  She 
tried  to  pass  him,  but  he  would  not  let  her  pass.  Stone-Man  said:  "If 
you  will  give  me  a  drink  from  your  bucket  I  will  let  you  pass."  "No, ' ' 
said  the  girl,  "I  cannot  let  you  drink  from  my  bucket,  for  my  husband 
will  find  it  out."  She  said  she  would  tell  her  husband,  but  Stone-Man 


286  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE   CEREMONIES   OR  POWER. 

said  he  did  not  care,  and  took  the  vessel  from  the  girl 's  hand  and  drank 
from  it.  The  girl  went  home  and  told  her  husband  what  the  Stone-Man 
had  done.  The  boy  said:  "I  know  that  he  is  my  enemy.  He  is  going 
to  try  to  starve  all  of  us.  I  will  go  after  him  and  see  what  I  can  do.  I 
may  kill  him  and  I  may  not.  He  is  a  wonderful  man.  If  he  has  animal 
power  I  will  get  the  better  of  him. " 

The  boy  took  his  bow  and  arrows  for  the  first  time  since  his  marriage. 
He  went  among  the  hills,  and  there  sat  the  Stone-Man.  As  Burnt-Belly 
went  near  the  Stone-Man  he  said:  "My  son,  do  not  try  to  harm  me." 
The  boy  took  an  arrow,  put  it  upon  the  string,  and  shot  at  Stone-Man,  but 
the  arrow  flew  back;  and  every  time  the  boy  shot  at  the  Stone-Man  his 
arrow  flew  back.  The  boy  went  home.  The  animal  power  seemed  to  go 
from  him  and  he  was  sad.  Stone-Man  also  was  sad.  At  last  he  made 
up  his  mind  to  live  among  the  people.  He  had  his  tipi  taken  down, 
and  packed  up  his  ponies,  and  then  he  went  west  with  his  wife.  He  trav- 
eled far  until  he  came  to  a  hilly  country  where  there  were  many  stones. 
He  found  a  round  place  where  hot  water  bubbled  up,  and  he  lay  down 
near  this  to  rest.  By  his  power  he  made  the  buffalo  go  west,  so  that  the 
people  could  not  get  any  meat.  He  and  his  wife  went  to  work  and  made  an 
earth-lodge.  When  the  lodge  was  completed,  he  went  out  and  brought 
into  it  a  fine  stone  that  he  had  found  upon  the  hills.  This  stone  he  placed 
at  the  west,  inside  of  the  lodge.  He  went  out  every  day,  killed  buf- 
falo, and  brought  home  the  meat,  and  the  woman  jerked  it  and  dried  it. 
Out  of  the  skins  they  made  robes  and  parfleches,  and  the  woman  placed 
the  dried  meat  in  the  parfleches,  and  tied  them  up.  After  a  time  a  girl 
baby  was  born  to  them.  The  mother  died,  so  that  there  was  left  only 
Stone-Man  and  his  daughter. 

Among  the  other  people  the  wonderful  boy  lost  his  wife.  She  died, 
and  then  he  went  away  from  his  people.  The  people  became  dissatis- 
fied, for  there  were  no  buffalo  in  the  country  and  they  were  hungry.  The 
chief  gave  orders  for  the  young  men  to  travel  through  the  country  and 
see  if  they  could  find  any  buffalo.  They  went  in  pairs  into  different 
parts  of  the  country.  Two  young  men  went  directly  west  for  many  days. 
At  last  they  could  get  no  farther,  for  they  had  nothing  to  eat.  They 
climbed  to  the  top  of  a  high  hill,  then  they  lay  down  and  looked  toward 
the  west,  and  in  the  distance  they  saw  an  earth-lodge.  They  knew  by 
the  earth-lodge  that  whoever  lived  there  must  be  a  Pawnee.  They  arose 
and  went  towards  the  lodge.  When  they  came  near  they  lay  down  and 
waited  until  sunset ;  then  they  went  to  the  lodge  and  listened.  They  heard 
a  man  talking.  They  knew  that  he  belonged  to  their  people  and  so  they 
went  in.  As  they  were  entering  the  lodge  the  man  said:  "My  daughter, 


THE  STONE-MAN  MEDICINE-LODGE.  287 

some  one  is  coming  into  our  lodge.  Sit  up  and  we  will  see  who  it  is." 
At  the  entrance  there  appeared  two  men  who  looked  very  thin,  for  they 
had  had  nothing  to  eat  all  the  time  they  had  been  out.  Stone-Man 
greeted  them  with,  "Nawa, "  and  pointed  to  the  side  of  the  fire  and  told 
them  to  be  seated.  After  they  were  seated  Stone-Man  asked  them  many 
questions,  for  he  wanted  to  know  what  had  become  of  Animal-Boy. 
Stone-Man  was  told  that  Animal-Boy  lost  his  wife  and  then  disappeared. 
Stone-Man  uttered  a  grunt  of  satisfaction.  He  said:  "Daughter,  fix 
something  for  these  men  to  eat,  for  they  have  brought  us  news  from  our 
people. "  The  girl  placed  a  pot  upon  the  fire,  then  put  some  dried  buffalo 
meat  in  it.  The  men  ate  till  they  were  filled;  then  they  lay  down  by  the 
fire.  While  they  were  resting,  they  heard  strange  noises  in  the  lodge, 
and  when  they  moved  to  find  out  what  the  noise  was,  Stone-Man  spoke 
up  and  told  them  to  lie  still  and  not  move. 

In  the  morning  the  two  men  were  given  something  to  eat;  then  Stone- 
Man  told  the  girl  to  give  each  a  parfleche  filled  with  dry  meat.  He 
then  said:  "Now  you  must  go  to  your  people.  Tell  them  I  am  here 
and  there  are  many  buffalo  here,  and  that  I  will  give  them  something  to 
eat.  Tell  them  that  I  have  a  lodge  here  and  that  I  do  not  get  hungry. 
Now  you  may  go. "  The  young  men  put  the  meat  upon  their  backs 
and  went  home. 

When  they  reached  home,  the  young  men  told  of  the  man  in  the  west, 
and  of  many  buffalo  near  the  earth-lodge.  The  chiefs  met  in  council  and 
it  was  agreed  to  go  to  the  place.  Thus  the  Kitkehahki  band  went  west, 
and  with  them  some  Chaui.  When  they  got  to  the  lodge,  Stone-Man 
came  out  and  told  the  people  to  make  their  camp  south  of  the  lodge. 
Then  he  told  all  of  the  men  to  come  to  his  lodge,  to  get  some  meat.  The 
girl  brought  the  meat  out  and  placed  it  on  the  ground.  The  men  came, 
and  the  chiefs  and  leaders  divided  the  meat.  Stone-Man  was  all  the 
time  looking  at  the  young  men,  for  he  wanted  to  select  a  husband  for  his 
daughter.  At  last  he  saw  a  handsome  young  man.  He  made  up  his 
mind  to  get  the  young  man  for  his  son-in-law. 

The  next  day  Stone-Man  called  all  of  the  men  to  his  lodge.  When 
the  young  man  came,  he  said  to  the  men:  "I  have  a  daughter.  I  want 
this  young  man  to  marry  her. "  The  chief  spoke  up  and  said:  "Leave 
it  to  the  young  man;  if  he  is  willing,  let  him  marry  her."  The  girl  was 
standing  outside  of  the  earth-lodge.  She  was  dressed  in  fine  buckskins 
and  she  had  a  yellow  robe  over  her  shoulders.  The  young  man  saw  her 
and  he  liked  her.  He  stepped  forward  and  said:  "I  will  go  to  your 
lodge,  and  I  will  do  as  you  command  me  to  do."  Stone-Man  said:  "I 
am  satisfied.  Now  I  give  you  a  handful  of  buffalo.  Go  west  and  you 


288  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

will  find  the  buffalo. "  Stone-Man  took  the  young  man  home  and  gave 
him  a  seat  by  the  side  of  the  girl  in  the  lodge. 

In  the  night,  the  three  sat  around  the  fireplace,  and  Stone-Man  began 
to  talk  to  the  young  man  and  tell  him  what  was  expected  of  him.  The 
young  man  did  not  understand  what  he  wanted  and  so  he  did  not  say 
anything.  At  last  Stone-Man  told  the  two  to  go  to  bed.  When  they  lay 
down  they  had  to  lie  still,  for  whenever  the  boy  moved  Stone-Man  would 
grunt  and  say:  "Why  do  you  move?  Lie  still. "  They  had  to  lie  still  all 
through  the  night.  When  the  girl  tried  to  tell  the  boy  something,  Stone- 
Man  knew  it.  When  he  found  out  that  the  boy  had  no  power  of  any 
kind,  he  said:  "My  son,  although  you  lay  by  my  daughter,  you  are  not 
married  to  her.  To-day  we  are  to  play  the  hoop  game.  We  must  play 
inside  of  the  lodge."  Now,  at  the  south  of  the  lodge  it  was  dark  and 
there  was  a  hole  from  which  a  hot  stream  issued.  No  one  knew  what 
this  was  except  Stone-Man.  They  began  to  play  the  game.  The  ring 
was  rolled  and  the  sticks  were  thrown.  Every  time  that  the  young  man 
threw  his  stick,  Stone-Man  began  to  grunt  and  tried  to  trip  him.  As 
they  ran  from  north  to  south  Stone-Man  began  to  grunt,  and  when  they 
came  to  the  south  end  of  the  lodge  he  threw  the  boy  into  the  hole.  A 
few  days  afterwards  Stone-Man  again  invited  the  men  to  his  lodge.  He 
selected  another  man  to  be  his  son-in-law.  He  treated  this  young  man 
as  he  did  the  other  one,  and  he,  too,  was  thrown  into  the  hole  where  the 
boiling  water  was.  He  did  this  to  many  other  young  men.  Every  time  he 
took  a  son-in-law,  he  promised  the  people  buffalo. 

In  his  wanderings  Animal-Boy  was  told  by  the  animals  where  the 
people  were  and  what  was  being  done  to  the  young  men  of  the  tribe. 
The  animals  promised  the  youth  protection  and  they  told  him  to  go 
to  his  people.  Animal-Boy  traveled  west  until  he  found  his  people. 
Animal-Boy  arrived  just  as  the  men  were  going  into  the  lodge  of  Stone-Man, 
and  so  he  went  with  them.  He  stood  among  the  men,  and  when  Stone- 
Man  saw  him,  he  said:  "I  want  the  young  man  with  the  woodpecker 
cap  upon  his  head. "  The  boy  went  with  the  Stone-Man,  but  first  asked 
permission  to  take  two  of  his  errand  men.  Stone-Man  gave  him  permis- 
sion. As  they  entered  the  lodge,  Stone-Man  said:  "My  son,  I  want 
you  to  send  one  of  your  errand  men  to  tell  the  chief  that  there  will  be 
many  buffalo  near  the  camp  by  daylight. "  Animal-Boy  sent  one  of  his 
men  to  the  chief.  The  people  were  glad  to  hear  it.  In  the  night,  when 
the  people  had  all  gone  to  bed,  the  girl  said:  "I  think  I  know  you.  I 
hope  you  will  kill  my  father,  for  he  has  killed  many  young  men." 
Animal-Boy  spoke  and  said:  "I  am  afraid  that  I  can  not  kill  your  father, 
but  the  animals  are  with  me  and  with  their  help  I  may  kill  him. "  As 


THE  STONE-MAN  MEDICINE-LODGE.  289 

the  boy  said  this,  Stone-Man  grunted  and  said:  "Do  not  stir  or  move, 
my  children.     Lie  still.     Do  not  talk. " 

The  next  day  Animal-Boy  went  out  with  the  men  and  killed  a  buffalo 
and  brought  in  the  meat.  Stone-Man  was  angry  and  scolded  Animal- 
Boy.  In  the  night  he  said:  "My  son,  you  are  not  yet  married  to  my 
daughter.  If  you  will  go  and  get  me  some  plums,  you  may  have  my 
daughter."  It  was  winter,  and  all  the  plums  were  gone.  "The  plums, " 
said  Stone-Man,  "must  be  all  whitish,  and  they  must  have  no  specks." 
The  boy  went  to  bed  with  the  girl,  and  the  girl  tried  to  talk,  but  Stone- 
Man  would  say:  "Daughter,  do  not  move  nor  talk."  In  the  morning 
the  boy  said:  "My  wife,  your  father  asked  for  plums.  I  shall  go  and 
get  them  for  him,  for  I  want  you  to  be  my  wife. "  The  boy  put  his  robe 
over  his  shoulders  and  started  south.  After  he  had  gone  a  long  distance 
he  stopped  and  sang: 

My  father,  Grizzly  Bear; 

My  father,  Cinnamon  Bear; 

My  father,  White  Bear; 

My  father,  Black  Bear; 

Help  me !    Help  me ! 

I  want  some  plums  for  my  father-in-law. 

He  thinks  that  I  can  not  get  them. 

Come,  my  fathers,  help  me ! 

The  Grizzly  came,  but  could  not  find  any  plums;  the  Cinnamon  Bear 
came,  but  could  not  find  any  plums;  the  White  Bear  came,  but  could  not 
find  any  plums;  but  when  the  Black  Bear  came,  he  said:  "My  son,  I  am 
from  the  south  where  the  plums  stay  upon  the  trees  nearly  all  winter. 
Do  not  cry;  I  will  get  the  plums  for  you.  Come,  let  us  go  where  there 
is  a  plum  bush. "  They  went,  and  when  they  came  to  the  side  of  a  hill, 
they  found  a  plum  bush.  The  Black  Bear  went  under  the  bush  and 
growled.  Then  he  said:  "My  son,  spread  your  robe  over  the  plum 
bushes.  Now  shake  the  bushes."  The  boy  did  as  he  was  told.  He 
heard  something  dropping  upon  the  ground.  He  looked,  and  there  under 
the  bushes  were  many  plums.  He  selected  only  those  that  had  not 
specks  or  spots  on  them.  The  plums  were  made  by  magic  power  and  so 
they  were  nearly  all  good.  The  boy  took  the  plums  home,  gave  them  to 
his  wife,  and  said:  "Take  these  plums  to  your  father.  I  hope  that  he 
will  like  them.  "  The  girl  carried  the  plums  to  her  father  and  gave  them 
to  him.  Stone-Man  was  surprised,  but  as  he  picked  them  up  one  by 
one  he  said:  "This  one  is  no  good;  I  can  not  eat  it. "  He  kept  throwing 
them  away  until  he  did  not  have  any  left. 

That  night  Stone-Man  told  Animal-Boy  to  get  him  some  of  the  finest 
timber,  with  no  crooks  or  knots  in  it,  and  to  make  him  a  fine  bow  and 


ago  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

arrows  out  of  it.  Again  the  boy  went  out ;  this  time  to  the  southwest.  He 
came  to  hilly  country  with  swamps  in  the  bottoms.  There  the  boy  cried 
and  called  upon  the  animal  gods  to  help  him  to  get  the  bow  and  arrows. 
The  boy  called  upon  the  Mountain-Lion  for  the  bow.  The  Mountain- 
Lion  came  and  said:  "Stop  crying,  my  son;  I  have  a  bow  here  that  is 
wonderful.  The  wood  is  imitation  of  ash.  There  is  a  long  sinew  on  the 
back  of  the  bow.  It  is  not  the  sinew  of  buffalo.  The  sinew  is  from 
my  tail.  The  bowstring  is  also  sinew  from  my  tail."  The  boy  was 
glad  to  get  the  bow.  Then  he  went  to  the  bottoms  and  there  he 
stood  crying,  "My  father,  listen  to  me.  When  I  was  among  the  ani- 
mals, far  away,  the  rushes,  flag  roots,  and  other  weeds  that  grow  in 
ponds  promised  me  aid  when  I  needed  it.  Have  them  give  me  arrows 
of  different  colors,  four  in  number,  and  let  them  be  straight."  Some 
one  close  by  him  spoke  and  said:  "Spread  your  robe  upon  the  rushes. 
Shake  the  robe,  then  take  the  robe  off  and  pull  up  four  stems  of  rushes. 
Take  them  and  put  them  inside  your  robe.  Throw  the  robe  four  times 
upon  the  ground,  then  open  the  robe  and  you  will  find  the  arrows  you 
are  looking  for. "  Although  the  boy  could  not  see  who  it  was  speaking, 
he  did  as  he  was  told.  When  he  had  thrown  the  robe  four  times  upon 
the  ground,  he  opened  it  and  there  were  the  four  arrows.  One  arrow 
was  red,  one  white,  one  yellow,  one  black,  and  they  were  all  fine  arrows. 
The  boy  then  went  and  stood  among  the  rocks  and  stones.  He  began  to 
cry  again,  and  again  he  heard  a  voice  that  spoke  to  him  and  said:  "Place 
the  arrows  in  your  robe,  then  pick  up  the  finest  stones  you  can  find; 
place  these  stones  with  the  arrows,  roll  up  the  robe,  and  throw  them  on 
the  ground  four  times. "  The  boy  did  as  he  was  told.  When  he  opened 
the  robe,  the  arrows  had  the  flint  stones  upon  them.  The  boy  was  glad. 
He  went  home  and  gave  the  bow  and  arrows  to  his  wife,  and  said:  "Give 
these  to  your  father."  The  girl  gave  the  arrows  to  her  father.  Stone- 
Man  said:  "How  crooked  these  arrows  are;  the  bow  is  not  a  good  one. 
I  would  like  to  have  the  finest  feathers  of  swift  hawks  upon  these  arrows ; 
and  I  would  like  to  have  the  finest  gray  wolf  for  my  quiver." 

The  next  day  the  boy  went  out  and  cried.  A  swift  hawk  came  and 
said:  "My  son,  do  not  cry;  we  know  what  you  want.  See,  a  whole  flock 
of  swift  hawks  are  flying  overhead ;  they  will  drop  you  their  finest  feath- 
ers."  When  the  boy  looked  up  he  saw  many  hawks  flying  overhead, 
and  soon  the  feathers  began  to  fall.  The  boy  picked  up  the  feathers 
and  took  them  home.  Again  he  went  out  and  cried.  A  wolf  came  and 
said:  "My  son,  we  know  what  you  want.  See  over  yonder  hill  are  com- 
ing wolves.  I  will  give  you  four  wolves,  for  your  father-in-law  wants 
four  hides  instead  of  one. "  The  wolves  came,  and  the  four  leading 


THE  STONE-MAN  MEDICINE-LODGE.  2QI 

wolves  were  chosen.  They  stood  side  by  side  and  the  boy  spread  his 
robe  over  them  and  shook  the  robe.  When  the  boy  removed  the  robe, 
there  were  four  wolf  hides.  The  boy  went  home  with  the  wolf  hides.  He 
gave  the  wolf  hides  and  feathers  to  his  wife  and  said:  "Give  these  to 
your  father."  When  Stone-Man  received  them,  he  said:  "These  are 
fine.  This  quiver,  bow,  and  arrows  shall  be  hung  up  in  the  southeast, 
inside  the  lodge.  I  want  another  quiver  full  of  arrows  and  a  bow,  so 
that  I  can  hang  it  up  in  the  southwest  of  the  lodge.  Then  I  want  an- 
other quiver  to  hang  up  in  the  northwest.  Then  I  want  another  quiver 
to  hang  up  in  the  northeast.  Then  I  will  be  satisfied. " 

The  boy  took  the  errand  man  into  the  timber,  and  there  they  made  the 
other  bows  and  arrows.  They  took  the  bows  and  arrows  to  the  lodge. 
When  they  came  back  they  tanned  the  wolves'  hides  and  made  them 
into  quivers.  The  quivers  were  then  presented  to  Stone-Man,  who  was 
astonished.  "Wonderful  man!  wonderful  man!  my  son-in-law. "  Many 
other  things  he  asked  of  the  boy,  but  with  the  aid  of  the  animals  the  boy 
supplied  all  of  his  demands. 

At  last,  Stone-Man  said:  "My  son,  to-morrow  we  shall  play  the  hoop 
game.  We  will  see  who  wins.  If  you  lose  your  life  in  the  game,  all  the 
people  shall  turn  into  stone.  If  I  lose,  the  spring  in  my  lodge  will  bubble 
up,  and  the  people  will  always  remember  that  this  was  my  home. " 
Animal-Boy  went  out  in  the  night  and  cried.  The  animals  came  to  him, 
one  by  one,  and  promised  him  aid.  The  Otter  came  and  gave  the  boy 
a  piece  of  root,  and  said:  "Keep  this  in  your  mouth,  for  Stone-Man  will  try 
to  put  you  into  the  hole  where  the  boiling  water  is. "  The  boy  went  into 
the  lodge  and  lay  down.  Stone-Man  grunted  and  said:  "Now,  children, 
lie  still  and  be  good  children;  to-morrow  we  shall  play  with  the  sticks." 
The  girl  took  courage  and  said:  "I  hope  you  will  kill  my  father,  for  he 
is  very  bad;  he  has  thrown  many  young  men  into  that  boiling  water." 
The  boy  said  nothing,  but  moved  away  from  the  girl. 

The  next  day  Stone-Man  took  the  sticks  and  ring  down.  He  laid  the 
sticks  in  the  south  side  in  the  lodge  and  called  the  boy.  The  boy  went. 
They  took  up  the  sticks  and  Stone-Man  picked  up  the  ring.  They  ran 
towards  the  north.  The  ring  was  thrown,  then  the  sticks.  They  picked 
up  the  sticks  and  again  they  ran,  this  time  toward  the  hole  of  the  boiling 
water.  After  they  ran  back  and  forth  several  times,  Stone-Man  grunted 
and  pushed  the  boy  towards  the  hole.  When  Stone-Man  touched  the 
boy  and  pushed  him,  the  boy  fell,  struck  the  edge,  and  slid  across  the  hole 
with  the  quickness  of  an  otter.  Several  times  Stone-Man  pushed  the 
boy,  but  he  escaped  every  time.  One  time  the  boy  turned  into  a  real 
otter;  then  Stone-Man  said:  "I  am  beaten,  so  we  will  quit."  They 


292  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

sat  down  and  the  girl  gave  them  something  to  eat.  In  the  night  Stone- 
Man  said:  "The  people  shall  live.  I  intended  that  they  should  all  turn 
into  stones.  I  would  very  much  like  to  have  you,  my  son-in-law,  drive 
to  me  a  four  or  five  year  old  buffalo,  so  that  I  can  chase  it  around  my 
lodge,  or  let  it  chase  me  around  my  earth-lodge.  I  have  four  quivers 
and  many  arrows. " 

It  was  night,  but  the  boy  arose  and  went  out  of  the  lodge  and  went 
west.  He  came  to  the  place  where  he  thought  the  buffalo  were.  He 
stood  up  and  cried,  and  said:  "My  father,  I  am  in  need  of  your  help. 
This  man  who  lives  in  the  lodge  wants  me  to  drive  him  a  buffalo  that 
will  fight  with  him. "  Then  he  cried  again.  The  boy  opened  his  eyes 
and  there  by  him  stood  a  man.  His  hair  was  long,  his  face  was  dirty, 
and  he  wore  a  robe  that  had  horns  upon  it.  The  man  said:  "My  son, 
I  am  the  leader  of  all  these  Buffalo.  The  man  who  lives  yonder  is 
Stone-Man.  I  will  take  you  where  the  stone  is  that  gives  him  the  power 
he  possesses.  Come  with  me."  The  boy  followed  the  man  and  they 
came  to  a  plateau.  There,  on  the  top,  was  a  stone.  "This  is  the  stone, " 
said  the  man.  "Now  take  many  hard  stones  and  throw  upon  the  top  of 
this  stone  until  you  break  off  many  small  pieces.  Then  take  more  stones 
and  throw  them  on  the  sides  of  the  stone,  and  you  will  take  the  power 
from  this  stone  and  the  man. "  The  boy  did  as  he  was  told,  and  it  took 
him  all  night.  "Now,"  the  man  said,  "let  us  go  back  to  where  the 
Buffalo  are,  and  we  will  select  one  for  you  to  run  to  the  lodge. " 

It  was  daylight  when  they  reached  the  herd.  The  man  uttered  a 
loud  cry,  "Ho!  Ho!  Ho!"  The  Buffalo  all  stood  up.  They  came  and 
surrounded  the  boy  and  the  man.  A  young  Buffalo  that  was  low  and 
had  thick  wool  all  over  it  came  up.  "This, "  said  the  man,  "is  the  Buf- 
falo that  you  are  to  take.  It  has  great  powers;  its  horns  are  of  flint,  so 
that  when  it  fights  the  man  it  will  kill  him.  Follow  it.  It  will  lead  you 
to  the  lodge.  When  the  bull  gets  to  knocking  pieces  of  stone  from  the 
man,  let  your  errand  man  pick  them  up  and  pound  them  to  dust;  then 
let  your  wife  pick  up  the  pieces  of  stone  and  throw  them  into  the  boiling 
water. "  The  boy  followed  the  Buffalo.  Some  time  in  the  afternoon 
they  reached  the  lodge.  Stone-Man  was  sitting  upon  the  lodge,  watch- 
ing the  boy  running  the  Buffalo.  Stone-Man  stood  up  and  said  to  him- 
self: "He  is  a  wonderful  young  man;  but  I  will  kill  him  after  I  kill  the 
Buffalo.  He  will  never  marry  my  daughter." 

The  Buffalo  ran  around  the  lodge  and  stood  on  the  north  side  with  its 
tongue  out,  as  if  it  were  winded.  Stone-Man  went  down  from  the  top 
of  the  lodge  and  went  in.  He  took  down  one  of  the  quivers,  took  the 
bow  out,  pulled  the  string,  and  found  it  all  right.  He  ran  out  to  the  place 


THE  STONE-MAN  MEDICINE-LODGE.  293 

where  the  Buffalo  stood,  grunting.  The  Buffalo  ran  and  the  man  shot  at 
it.  Instead  of  the  arrow  going  through,  the  point  became  entangled  in 
the  hair.  Stone-Man  shot  at  it  many  times,  but  did  not  kill  it.  He  shot 
all  of  the  arrows  from  the  first  quiver  and  then  he  told  his  daughter  to 
bring  the  next  quiver.  He  continued  to  shoot  at  the  Buffalo,  but  could 
not  kill  it.  He  used  all  of  the  arrows  from  the  second  quiver;  then  he 
called  for  his  daughter  to  bring  him  another  quiver.  This  quiver  did  not 
have  many  arrows  in  it  and  they  soon  gave  out.  He  called  for  the  fourth 
quiver.  This  quiver  contained  the  four  arrows  that  were  colored. 
They  were  not  real  arrows,  for  they  were  made  of  rushes.  The  Buffalo 
knew  this,  so  it  sat  down  with  its  tongue  out.  Stone-Man  grunted  and 
ran  up  to  the  Buffalo,  but  the  Buffalo  took  no  notice  of  him.  He  shot  it, 
but  the  arrows  had  no  effect.  Stone-Man  shot  the  last  arrow ;  then  he  ran 
and  passed  the  Buffalo.  The  Buffalo  jumped  up  and  hooked  the  Stone- 
Man,  and  a  piece  of  stone  fell  from  the  man  and  went  through  the  air 
whistling.  The  man  kept  grunting,  and  the  Buffalo  kept  hooking  him 
and  knocking  pieces  off  until  it  had  Stone-Man  down.  The  errand  men 
of  the  young  man  came  and  threw  rocks  at  the  man  until  they  shattered 
him  in  pieces.  The  girl  came  and  picked  up  the  pieces  and  threw  them 
into  the  boiling  lake.  As  soon  as  the  pieces  fell  into  the  lake,  the  steam 
came  out  and  filled  the  lodge  and  went  out  from  the  top  of  the  lodge. 
These  people  ran  to  the  camp. 

They  stayed  there  until  the  next  morning;  then  they  went  back  to 
the  lodge  and  they  found  that  it  had  turned  into  solid  stone,  but  still 
retained  the  shape  of  an  earth-lodge.  This  is  why  we  have  geysers  in  the 
west,  hot  boiling  water  coming  out  from  the  ground. 

The  young  man  took  his  wife  home,  and  the  people  went  back  to  the 
east  and  made  a  village  somewhere  upon  the  Republican  River.  The 
young  man  started  the  animals'  lodge  among  the  Kitkehahki,  and 
performed  many  miracles.  Even  the  woman,  the  Stone-Man's  daughter, 
took  part.  She  had  men  shoot  her  with  spiked  arrows,  but  they  dropped 
from  her  body.  In  the  ceremony  of  the  medicine-men,  the  Animal-Boy 
would  place  at  the  foot  of  the  altar  a  stone  that  was  supposed  to  have 
dropped  from  the  Stone-Man  while  the  Buffalo  was  throwing  him  around. 
The  daughter  picked  it  up  and  kept  it.  This  is  the  reason  why  the 
animals '  lodge  among  the  Kitkehahki  was  known  as  the  Medicine-Stone- 
Man-Lodge,  although  the  young  man  was  the  one  who  gave  the  animal 
ceremony  to  the  Kitkehahki.  This  stone  was  kept  by  the  descendants 
of  these  two  people,  Animal-Boy  and  Stone-Man's  daughter. 

One  time  the  Sioux  attacked  the  Kitkehahki  while  they  were  on  a 
buffalo  hunt.  The  Sioux  ran  these  people  into  a  ravine,  and  here  the 


294  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

keeper  dropped  the  stone,  rather  than  have  the  enemy  capture  it.  The 
keeper  was  killed.  The  stone  was  never  found,  but  there  were  other  men 
who  had  learned  the  ceremony,  and  to  this  day  the  ceremony  is  still  kept 
up  by  the  priests.  Songs  are  still  sung  about  Animal-Boy — about  his 
wanderings  and  his  wonderful  doings.  This  boy  died  of  old  age  and 
left  many  children  who  were  taught  the  ceremony  by  their  mother. 

81.  THE  FOSSIL  GIANT  MEDICINE-LODGE.1 

In  olden  times  when  the  medicine-men  began  to  have  their  perform- 
ances there  was  a  society  known  as  Stone-Medicine-Men.  They  began  to 
get  ready  to  have  their  ceremony.  These  people  were  called  Stone-Medi- 
cine-Men, for  at  the  altar  sat  a  large  white  stone,  so  it  seemed  to  the 
people;  but  when  I  was  taken  into  the  lodge  to  be  taught  the  mysteries 
of  these  medicine-men  I  found  it  different.  The  old  man  to  whom  I  gave 
presents,  so  that  he  would  teach  me,  told  me  to  sit  down  with  him  in  one 
of  the  lodges  of  the  animals — that  is,  inside  of  the  earth-lodge.  He  did 
this  because  he  wanted  me  to  hear  the  story  which  he  had  to  tell  about 
this  stone  which  was  placed  at  the  altar.  The  old  man  told  me  this: 

Many,  many  years  ago,  when  our  people  lived  upon  the  Republican 
River,  we  used  to  go  hunting  in  the  western  part  of  what  is  now  Kansas. 
Upon  our  journey  on  one  of  these  hunts  we  stopped  near  a  place  where 
there  was  a  big  mound  known  as  the  Swimming-Mound.  Here  one  man 
went  upon  the  hill  and  into  the  timber.  There  he  wandered  until  he 
became  tired,  when  he  lay  down  upon  this  high  mound.  While  asleep  he 
saw  a  man  standing  near  him.  The  man  was  of  large  stature,  and  spoke 
to  him  in  his  dream  and  said:  "My  son,  I  have  come  to  you.  Many  of 
my  people  were  drowned  here  in  this  place,  and  here  our  bones  rest.  The 
people  make  light  of  our  bones  when  they  find  them.  I  will  now  tell  you 
that  when  you  find  some  of  these  old  bones  they  have  curative  powers. 
Upon  the  south  side  of  the  hill  you  will  find  a  bone.  That  is  a  bone  of 
one  of  my  thighs.  Take  it,  wrap  it  up,  and  my  spirit  will  be  with  that  bone 
and  I  will  be  with  you  and  will  give  you  great  power.  "  The  man  awoke, 
looked  around,  but  could  see  nobody.  Then  he  went  to  the  side  of  the 
hill  and  there  sticking  out  he  found  this  supposed  stone.  The  man  began 
to  dig  out  the  bone.  When  he  got  the  bone  out  it  was  the  thigh  bone 
of  a  giant.  Upon  the  bone  were  carvings  of  a  woman  and  a  man.  On 
one  side  was  the  carving  of  a  skull,  at  another  place  bow  and  arrows,  and 

1  Told  by  Young-Bull,  Pitahauirat.  This  tale  is  of  what  is  commonly  known 
as  the  Stone-Medicine,  owing  to  the  fact  that  the  fossil  used  on  the  altar  was  be- 
lieved by  outsiders  to  be  a  large  stone.  By  the  medicine-men  themselves,  however, 
it  was  regarded  as  the  bone  of  a  great  giant. 


THE  FOSSIL  GIANT  MEDICINE-LODGE.  295 

around  the  thigh  were  several  stars.  Around  the  joint  was  carved  the 
sun,  and  at  another  place  the  moon  was  carved.  The  man  took  the 
thigh  bone  home  with  him  and  placed  it  in  a  buffalo  robe  and  hung  it  up 
in  his  tipi. 

Once  in  a  while  the  keeper  of  the  thigh  bone  had  a  dream  of  this  man, 
and  it  taught  him  how  to  hold  the  ceremony  and  where  to  place  the  bone. 
Sometimes  when  this  man  was  asleep  he  would  hear  singing.  Then 
somebody  would  say:  "Listen  carefully  to  the  song  which  you  hear,  for 
they  are  your  songs.  You  must  learn  them  and  sing  them  in  your  cere- 
monies. "  The  man  would  listen,  and  after  a  while  he  got  so  that  he  could 
sing  the  songs  himself.  Several  years  afterwards  he  was  told  by  the 
person  he  saw  in  the  dream  to  have  a  ceremony.  The  man  sat  down  in 
his  lodge  and  invited  several  other  medicine-men  to  sit  down  with  him. 
He  placed  a  young  buffalo  robe  in  front  of  the  altar,  and  placed  some 
calico  upon  the  robe.  He  put  the  thigh  bone  upon  the  calico.  When 
the  other  men  entered,  he  seated  them  and  began  to  sing  about  the 
thigh  bone.  Every  time  he  mentioned  the  thigh  bone  in  the  song  he  spoke 
of  it  as  a  stone.  The  people  began  to  call  these  people  the  Medicine- 
Stone-People. 

When  I  approached  the  altar  in  one  of  the  ceremonies  to  pray  to  it, 
I  saw  the  pictures  upon  the  thigh.  I  also  found  out  that  instead  of  a 
stone  it  was  a  bone  which  we  had  before  us.  The  man  who  was  the  keeper 
of  the  thigh  bone  became  a  very  great  man.  He  never  rode  on  horse- 
back when  upon  the  war-path,  for  he  had  the  strength  of  a  giant.  He 
killed  a  buffalo  with  one  shot  from  his  bow  and  arrow  and  carried  the 
meat  upon  his  back.  This  man  became  a  great  medicine-man.  In  all 
his  doctoring,  instead  of  giving  herbs  and  roots  to  the  sick,  he  took  the 
dust  from  the  bone,  gave  it  to  the  people,  and  it  cured  them.  Many  years 
ago  the  people  were  visited  by  a  disease  known  as  smallpox.  It  was 
very  bad.  All  those  people  who  went  and  touched  the  thigh  bone  did 
not  get  sick.  All  those  who  took  sick  and  drank  of  tea  made  from  the 
thigh  bone  became  well.  The  people  thought  that  this  must  be  a  won- 
derful stone,  and  they  never  knew  what  it  was  until  some  of  the  men 
gave  it  presents  in  order  to  come  close  to  the  owner  and  found  out  that 
it  was  a  thigh  bone  instead  of  a  stone.  These  medicine-men  who  be- 
longed to  this  society  have  all  died.  There  were  no  descendants,  and 
the  whole  ceremony  and  everything  connected  with  it  are  lost. 


296  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

82.  THE  SQUASH  MEDICINE.1 

A  long  time  ago,  before  ordinary  people  were  placed  on  the  earth, 
Tirawa  put  upon  the  earth  a  race  of  giants,  who  were  given  great  power. 
These  large  people  went  out  into  the  country  and  when  they  killed  a 
buffalo  they  carried  it  easily.  They  were  not  afraid  of  wild  animals,  for 
they  had  great  power.  They  were  not  afraid  of  the  gods  in  the  heavens, 
for  they  felt  that  they  themselves  had  the  same  power.  Early  in  the 
morning,  when  the  sun  rose  in  the  east,  these  people  would  turn  out  and 
call  the  sun  names  and  make  fun  of  it.  When  they  heard  the  thunder 
in  the  west  they  would  call  it  names.  They  would  turn  their  backs  to 
the  timber  and  show  the  utmost  contempt  for  it.  When  Tirawa  saw 
the  people  doing  these  things,  and  saw  that  he  had  not  done  right  by 
making  these  large  people,  he  said:  "I  shall  now  destroy  them.  They 
make  fun  of  me,  and  they  make  fun  of  my  minor  gods.  I  have  tried  to 
punish  them  and  I  can  not  do  it  on  account  of  the  great  power  which  I 
gave  them.  Although  I  shall  destroy  them,  the  earth  will  receive  them 
and  they  shall  turn  into  big  roots,  and  when  I  have  placed  the  smaller 
people  on  the  earth  they  shall  dig  the  roots  and  use  them  for  sick  people. " 
Then  Tirawa  sent  the  rain  on  the  earth.  The  rain  did  not  pour  down 
very  hard.  The  buffalo  in  the  west  seemed  to  have  moved  from  its 
place  and  the  waters  broke  through  and  everything  was  covered  with 
water.  There  seemed  to  be  more  thunder  and  lightning  from  the  heavens. 
Where  the  water  rushed  upon  the  land  the  people  were  washed  away 
and  were  left  on  steep  banks  and  other  high  places.  Where  the  people 
were  not  destroyed  they  stood  upon  the  land  and  the  earth  seemed  to 
become  soft  and  these  people  sank  down.  While  they  were  sinking  they 
were  covered  with  lightning  and  clouds.  This  was  done,  because  when 
they  sank  down  into  the  earth  some  power  should  be  left  in  them  so 
that  their  remains  would  become  medicine.  The  people  who  were  washed 
away  did  not  turn  into  roots,  but  their  bodies  were  lodged  in  banks  and 
other  places.  Tirawa  promised  that  when  the  small  people  should  be  on 
the  earth  they  should  find  these  bones  of  the  large  people  and  that  the 
bones  should  contain  curative  power  for  the  sick. 

Many  years  afterwards  when  the  small  people  were  put  on  the  earth 
the  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star  came  to  a  man  in  a  vision  and  told  him 
where  to  find  the  roots ;  that  these  roots  should  be  dug  up  from  the  earth ; 
that  they  were  made  from  a  large  people  who  had  been  destroyed  on 
account  of  their  wickedness ;  that  the  roots  should  not  be  dug  where  they 

1  Told  by  Buffalo,  Skidi.     The  tale  explains  the  origin  of  certain  root  medicines 
which  came  from  giants. 


THE  SQUASH  MEDICINE.  297 

were  very  sensitive ;  that  the  roots  contained  power ;  that  if  dug,  the  odor 
of  it  would  get  onto  the  people  and  they  would  not  like  them  on  account 
of  the  odor,  for  it  was  something  like  that  from  a  person 's  armpits.  The 
Big-Black-Meteoric-Star  explained  all  that  had  happened  to  the  large 
people,  and  how  they  had  turned  into  roots;  that  the  roots  were  the 
large  people  who  had  been  on  the  earth  and  had  been  destroyed;  that 
before  digging  they  must  sing  songs  and  give  an  offering  of  smoke  from 
the  pipe,  so  that  they  would  not  become  angry  at  them  and  so  that  they 
could  easily  dig  them.  The  songs  were  taught  to  the  people  by  the 
Big-Black-Meteoric-Star.  The  smoke  offering  was  also  explained  by  the 
Star,  who  told  the  man  to  go  and  dig  for  roots ;  that  in  digging  he  must 
dig  up  the  whole  root ;  that  it  was  in  the  shape  of  a  human  being ;  that  if 
it  was  a  man  it  would  have  a  root  upon  it,  but  if  it  was  a  woman  it  would 
have  none.  The  curative  power  of  the  root  was  also  explained. 

After  the  Big-Black-Meteoric  Star  had  talked  to  this  man  about  the 
root,  it  disappeared.  The  man  knew  that  the  root  was  one  that  the 
people  were  afraid  of;  that  when  they  saw  the  vine,  they  moved  away  and 
would  not  go  near  on  account  of  the  odor  which  they  might  receive  from 
it.  Some  had  tried  to  dig  the  roots,  but  they  had  received  the  odor  and 
would  have  nothing  to  do  with  them.  They  thought  that  the  roots 
meant  evil  fortune  to  the  people  who  received  the  odor.  One  day  they 
saw  the  man  who  had  had  a  vision  sitting  down  near  a  plant.  The 
people  ran  away  from  the  place,  and  it  happened  that  the  people  were 
making  their  camp  close  by.  This  man  sat  down  near  the  root  and  began 
to  sing  songs.  When  the  men  in  the  camp  heard  the  songs  they  knew 
that  they  were  entirely  new  ones.  Some  of  the  men  went  and  sat  down 
near  the  man.  After  a  while  several  men  came  and  sat  down  with  the  man. 
The  man  then  said  to  them  that  the  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star  had  spoken 
to  him.  He  told  the  people  that  he  was  going  to  dig  the  root;  that  he 
was  told  to  dig  it,  as  it  had  power  to  cure  the  sick.  The  other  men  were 
afraid,  but  when  the  man  began  to  sing  they  knew  that  he  must  have 
learned  the  songs  from  some  one  other  than  a  human  being.  After  this 
man  was  through  singing  he  filled  his  pipe  and  stood  near  the  plant. 
He  gave  a  whiff  in  the  east  to  the  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star.  Then  he  knelt 
down  and  gave  four  whiffs  to  the  place  where  the  vines  grew  from  the  root. 
He  said,  "You,  our  father,  our  mother,  I  ask  you  to  permit  me  to  remove 
you  from  where  you  now  stand. "  As  he  spoke  he  noticed  water  oozing 
from  the  top  of  the  root.  By  this  he  knew  that  the  root  had  given  its  con- 
sent to  be  removed.  While  he  knelt,  he  said:  "I  thank  you.  I  am  to 
remove  you,  so  that  you  may  remain  in  the  medicine-man's  bundle,  and  I 
am  to  use  you  for  the  sick. "  When  he  saw  the  water  coming  from  the  top 


398  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

he  remembered  what  the  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star  had  told  him;  that  if 
instead  of  the  water  coming  out  it  had  burst  and  air  had  escaped,  he 
would  know  from  that  that  the  root  was  angry  and  that  it  was  turning 
its  odor  upon  the  people.  Then  they  must  allow  it  to  remain  under  the 
ground,  for  there  was  no  use  in  digging  it,  as  it  would  yield  no  curative 
powers. 

When  the  Indians  heard  the  man  thanking  the  root,  they  all  were 
thankful  and  they  jumped  up  and  went  to  where  the  man  was  kneeling. 
There  they  placed  their  hands  near  the  root  and  all  thanked  it.  After 
this  the  men  sat  in  a  circle  west  of  the  root.  Women  were  sent  for,  and 
they  came  with  their  hoes.  One  of  the  women  stood  in  the  west,  another 
in  the  south,  another  in  the  east,  and  another  in  the  north.  The  man 
filled  the  pipe  again  and  went  to  the  woman  in  the  west.  He  lighted  the 
pipe,  knelt  down,  and  gave  four  whiffs  to  mother-earth,  saying:  "  Mother- 
earth,  we  are  about  to  dig  into  you.  We  do  this  to  remove  father  or  mother, 
whatever  it  may  be,  which  is  to  remain  in  our  medicine  bundles.  Allow 
us  to  remove  it,  for  we  do  not  want  you  to  take  any  of  the  power  which 
it  contains.  This  root  was  one  of  your  children.  You  received  it  when 
Tirawa  destroyed  it.  You  were  good  in  receiving  the  root  so  that  we  may 
now  take  it,  when  you  permit  us,  and  use  it  among  our  sick  people. "  The 
woman  in  the  west  began  to  dig;  then  the  woman  in  the  east;  then  the 
woman  in  the  north ;  then  the  woman  in  the  south.  The  west  represented 
birth;  the  east,  the  power  when  they  grow  to  be  men  and  women;  the 
north,  chief  or  warrior;  the  south,  the  South  Star,  where  they  are  re- 
ceived when  they  die.  For  a  long  time  the  women  dug,  until  they  finally 
came  close  to  the  root.  As  they  took  away  the  dirt  from  it  they  saw 
that  the  root  was  in  human  form.  At  last  they  took  the  whole  root  out 
and  placed  it  on  the  west  side  of  the  hole.  The  women  then  put  back  the 
dirt  into  the  hole  and  covered  it.  The  man  then  arose,  took  the  root  and 
placed  it  in  the  center  of  the  circle  of  men. 

He  then  sat  down,  filled  his  pipe,  lighted  it,  and  gave  a  whiff  to  the 
east  to  the  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star;  then  straight  to  heaven  to  Tirawa; 
then  four  whiffs  in  the  west  to  the  gods  who  sat  there  and  who  sent  the 
rain-storms,  thunder,  and  lightning  upon  the  earth ;  then  to  mother-earth 
who  received  the  giants  after  they  were  turned  into  roots.  Then  he  knelt 
down  by  the  root  and  gave  four  whiffs  to  the  head ;  to  the  right  arm  one 
whiff  and  also  to  the  left  hand ;  then  to  the  feet ;  then  went  back  and  gave 
one  whiff  upon  the  stomach  upwards  to  the  head.  When  he  dumped  the 
ashes  he  placed  them  at  the  feet  of  the  root.  Afterwards  he  passed  his 
hands  over  the  pipe-stem  and  said:  "Father,  you  are  now  with  us.  The 
gods  taught  us  how  to  remove  you  from  the  earth.  The  earth  was  will- 


THE  SQUASH  MEDICINE.  299 

ing  for  you  to  be  removed.  You  let  us  know  by  the  water  from  the  top 
that  you  were  willing  to  be  removed.  We  removed  you  from  the  earth 
so  that  we  might  use  you  to  heal  the  sick.  We  are  not  to  place  you  near 
the  sick.  We  are  not  to  place  you  near  the  entrance  of  our  lodges 
where  people  will  step  on  you.  We  are  to  place  you  in  our  medicine 
bundles  and  we  shall  feel  that  your  spirit  and  power  is  with  us  always. 
Take  pity  on  us  and  help  us  to  cure  the  sick."  Then  the  man  said, 
"Help  me  to  carry  this  root  into  my  tipi. " 

Word  had  been  sent  to  his  people  that  the  root  was  to  be  brought  to 
their  tipi.  The  tipi  had  been  swept  out  and  new  mats  placed  on  the 
ground.  The  root  was  placed  on  the  west  side  of  the  fireplace,  and  there 
the  people  sang  songs.  While  they  were  singing,  other  medicine-men 
came  in  and  sat  in  the  lodge.  When  they  were  through  singing  the  man 
filled  his  pipe  again  and  gave  a  few  whiffs  to  the  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star, 
then  one  to  the  root,  and  gave  a  few  whiffs  to  the  head,  and  said:  "I  am 
now  about  to  cut  you  up,  so  that  these  medicine-men  who  have  entered 
may  be  allowed  to  break  pieces  off  of  you,  so  that  they  may  have  some 
in  their  bundles.  Do  not  be  angry  because  they  are  near  me.  Take 
pity  on  all  of  us  and  help  to  drive  away  diseases  from  the  camp. "  Then 
the  man  sat  down  and  said  to  the  medicine-men:  "From  what  part  of 
the  root  do  you  wish  a  piece? "  Some  said  they  would  take  a  piece  from 
the  arm;  some  said  they  would  take  it  from  the  feet,  ankles,  or  knees. 
The  man  himself  took  the  part  around  the  hips.  He  also  had  the  chest, 
for  nobody  had  chosen  it.  The  man  then  said:  "Now,  the  root  is 
divided  among  us.  Its  power  is  with  every  medicine-man  in  the  tipi. 
Let  us  think  of  it.  Let  us  not  treat  it  roughly,  but  hang  it  upon  the  wall 
where  the  children  and  the  women  will  not  touch  it.  Every  night  let  us 
give  it  a  few  whiffs  of  smoke  so  that  it  may  remember  that  we  believe 
that  it  has  wonderful  power.  Each  of  us  will  now  go  to  our  place  and 
there  pray  to  the  root  and  put  it  away. "  All  of  the  medicine-men  left. 

That  night  the  man  had  a  dream,  and  he  saw  a  woman  clothed  with 
a  black  dress  and  covered  with  soft  downy  feathers.  This  woman  had 
in  her  left  hand  a  clam  shell.  In  her  right  she  held  powdered  root.  She 
sang  a  song,  then  she  took  some  of  the  root  and  dropped  it  into  the  clam 
shell,  which  contained  water.  Then  she  said:  "When  you  are  doctor- 
ing a  sick  person  sing  this  song,  hold  the  shell  and  the  dust  of  the  root ; 
drop  it  into  the  shell;  when  you  have  finished  singing  give  it  to  the 
patient  and  he  will  become  well. "  When  the  man  awoke  he  reached  for  his 
pipe,  filled  it,  lighted,  smoked,  and  said:  "My  mother,  I  shall  do  as  you 
have  told  me  in  my  dream.  Let  your  spirit  always  be  with  me  in  my 
dreams,  so  that  I  may  learn  your  powers,  and  I  shall  always  be  ready  to 


300  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

offer  you  smoke  in  the  night. "  So  it  was  through  the  root  and  the  songs 
he  learned  from  the  woman,  who  was  none  other  than  the  root  itself,  that 
this  man  became  a  great  medicine-man. 

83.  THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE  GEESE  MEDICINE.1 

A  long  time  ago,  when  the  Pawnee  were  living  in  Nebraska,  there  was 
a  young  man  in  the  village  who  was  very  handsome.  This  young  man 
had  several  ponies  and  joined  many  war  parties.  Whenever  he  returned 
to  the  village  he  would  sit  around  at  the  place  where  they  dipped  water 
from  the  river  so  that  he  might  see  the  girl  he  liked.  Whenever  the  girl 
came  she  dipped  her  water  and  ran  away  from  him.  He  determined  that 
he  would  win  the  girl  in  some  way,  but  that  he  would  try  to  court  other 
girls  and  in  this  way  he  would  finally  be  able  to  marry  the  girl  he  loved. 
He  would  put  on  his  robe  and  go  through  the  village  in  the  night.  When- 
ever he  saw  a  girl  he  would  try  to  talk  to  her,  but  the  girl  would  run  away. 

He  did  this  for  many  years  and  at  last  he  found  out  that  the  girls  did 
not  like  him.  He  went  to  his  home  one  night,  sat  down,  filled  his  pipe, 
and  smoked.  While  he  was  smoking  he  thought  of  all  the  young  men  in 
the  village  and  how  well  they  were  liked  by  the  girls.  He  determined  to 
go  and  stay  with  a  certain  young  man  who  was  ugly  in  appearance  but 
whom  the  girls  liked. 

That  night  the  young  man  went  to  the  tipi  of  the  homely  young  man. 
He  stayed  with  him  for  several  nights,  and  one  night  while  they  were 
sitting  and  smoking  the  young  man  asked  the  homely  young  man  how 
he  managed  to  be  liked  by  the  girls  of  the  village.  The  homely  young 
man  told  him  that  he  possessed  a  power  given  him  by  the  antelope.  The 
young  man  then  begged  the  homely  young  man  to  let  him  know  this 
secret.  The  homely  young  man  told  the  boy  that  if  he  were  in  earnest  he 
would  take  him  to  a  certain  place  and  leave  him  there  alone.  The 
young  man  then  said  he  was  willing  to  go  with  him.  They  got  some 
meat  and  corn  and  went  toward  the  Missouri  River.  There  the  homely 
young  man  tied  the  young  man  around  the  waist  with  a  lariat  rope  and 
told  him  that  he  had  to  hang  over  a  steep  bank.  The  homely  young  man 

1  Told  by  Buffalo,  Skidi.  It  is  the  belief  of  the  informant  that  possibly  this  tale 
is  the  Ankara  version  of  the  origin  of  a  medicine  which  corresponds  to  the  Loon 
medicine  of  the  Skidi.  It  is  claimed  that  many  years  ago  an  Ankara  woman  who 
married  into  the  Skidi  was  the  owner  of  a  medicine  bundle  which  contained  two 
geese,  and  that  she  brought  the  story  with  her.  It  is  possible,  however,  that  the 
story  is  a  part  of  the  Skidi  mythology.  Apart  from  the  explanation  afforded  of  a 
ceremony,  the  story  teaches  boys  that  no  matter  how  good  looking  they  may  be, 
women  would  have  nothing  to  do  with  them  if  they  were  proud.  It  also  teaches 
the  necessity  of  undergoing  great  hardship  before  admission  may  be  gained  to  the 
medicine  societies. 


THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE  GEESE  MEDICINE.  3©I 

tied  one  end  of  the  lariat  rope  to  a  tree,  and  said  to  the  young  man: 
"Now  you  are  poor.  Do  not  be  angry.  You  must  cry."  The  young 
man  was  put  down  over  the  bank,  and  the  homely  young  man  went  off. 
The  young  man  hung  on  the  bank  for  several  days.  Every  night  he 
noticed  fire  in  the  water,  which  was  caused  by  the  animals  that  were 
swimming  in  the  water. 

The  fourth  night  the  young  man  fainted.  When  he  regained  con- 
sciousness he  was  in  an  animals'  lodge.  The  animals  spoke  to  him  and 
said:  "Young  man,  we  have  taken  you  in.  We  know  that  you  are 
poor  in  heart.  We  know  that  the  girls  among  your  people  dislike  you. 
We  also  know  that  you  went  to  a  young  man  for  help.  The  animal  who 
took  pity  upon  this  homely  young  man  was  the  Elk.  The  Elk  has  con- 
trol of  this  lodge.  It  was  the  homely  young  man 's  place  to  come  into 
this  lodge,  for  he  promised  to  come  here,  but  you  have  taken  his  place. 
What  we  tell  you,  you  must  tell  him."  The  animals  began  to  tell  him 
what  he  must  do,  and  gave  him  great  powers.  The  fifth  night,  just 
before  dawn,  the  young  man  found  himself  lying  upon  the  bank.  He  sat 
up ;  and  while  he  was  thinking  of  the  time  that  he  was  in  the  animals ' 
lodge,  some  one  touched  him  on  the  shoulder.  He  turned  around  and 
looked  and  there  stood  the  homely  young  man.  The  homely  young  man 
then  said :  ' '  My  brother,  I  have  built  a  big  fire,  and  I  also  have  cooked  some 
meat  for  you.  Let  us  go  and  we  will  eat."  They  went  to  the  fire  and 
sat  down  and  ate  together.  The  young  man  then  told  the  homely  young 
man  all  that  he  had  seen  in  the  animals'  lodge,  and  said:  "All  these  things 
that  I  have  learned  belong  to  you.  I  will  tell  you  all  these  things. "  The 
homely  young  man  was  glad,  for  the  young  man  had  been  honest  with  him. 
When  the  young  man  told  him  these  things,  the  homely  young  man  told 
him  that  he  was  going  to  give  him  the  power  that  he  himself  possessed. 

They  went  home,  and  when  they  were  seated  in  the  homely  young 
man's  lodge  he  took  down  his  sacred  bundle,  unwrapped  it,  and  took 
therefrom  a  flute.  He  then  took  some  red  paint  and  a  piece  of  root  and 
four  strings  of  elk  hide,  which  he  handed  to  the  young  man,  saying: 
"These  things  are  yours,  my  brother.  When  night  comes,  put  the 
paint  all  over  your  body,  take  a  little  piece  of  this  root  and  put  it  in  your 
mouth.  Then  take  this  flute  and  go  around  the  village  and  blow  it.  The 
women  and  girls  will  come  to  you.  Be  careful  not  to  take  any  women 
who  are  married,  or  any  young  girls,  for  it  will  make  trouble  for  you. 
Go  now  to  your  home  and  place  these  things  in  your  lodge."  But  the 
young  man  said:  "My  brother,  I  will  not  go  to  my  home.  You  are 
now  my  brother,  and  I  wish  to  remain  with  you."  The  homely  young 
man  then  said  that  it  was  well.  When,  after  a  while,  the  homely  young 


302  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

man  was  gone,  the  young  man  put  the  paint  upon  his  body,  put  the  little 
root  into  his  mouth,  and  then  he  went  out  and  blew  the  flute  around  the 
village.  The  women  came  out,  and  he  saw  that  they  were  not  the  ones 
that  he  wanted.  That  night  he  did  not  take  any  woman  to  his  home, 
but  went  into  the  homely  young  man's  lodge.  The  second  night  he 
painted  and  went  again  around  the  village  with  the  flute,  but  did  not  take 
a  woman  home  with  him.  The  third  night  he  did  the  same,  but  did  not 
take  any  woman  home  with  him. 

The  fourth  night  he  went  around  and  the  girl  whom  he  loved  came. 
He  did  not  notice  her,  but  went  on.  She  followed  him  into  the  lodge  of  the 
homely  young  man.  Before  daylight  the  young  man  tried  to  get  the  girl 
to  go  to  her  home,  but  she  would  not  go.  She  stayed  with  him  all  day 
and  the  next  night,  and  the  homely  young  man  came  and  said:  "My 
brother,  this  girl's  parents  are  looking  for  her.  I  am  afraid  they  are 
going  to  make  trouble  for  you.  I  told  you  not  to  take  any  young  girl 
into  your  lodge. "  The  young  man  said:  "My  brother,  I  am  not  going  to 
give  up  this  woman.  I  am  going  far  away  where  I  shall  not  be  troubled. " 
The  young  man  left  all  of  his  things  and  told  the  young  girl  to  go  with 
him.  They  left  the  lodge  and  went  toward  the  east.  For  many  days 
they  journeyed  toward  the  east.  The  people  found  out  that  the  young 
man  was  missing  and  they  knew  that  he  had  taken  the  girl,  so  they  hunted 
all  over  the  country,  but  could  not  find  them. 

One  day  the  young  man  and  the  girl  came  to  a  swampy  country. 
As  they  were  wading  through  the  ponds  the  girl  saw  two  young  Geese  in 
the  water.  She  picked  them  up  and  said,  "My  husband,  I  wish  to  take 
these  young  Geese  with  us,  and  I  shall  call  them  my  children."  They 
went  on,  and  when  they  had  gone  a  certain  distance  the  young  man  said, 
"We  will  rest  here. "  They  made  a  grass-lodge  in  the  timber,  and  there 
they  lived  some  time.  Every  day  the  girl  would  take  her  young  Geese 
to  the  pond  and  let  them  swim  around  and  eat;  then  take  them  back  to 
their  grass-lodge.  The  young  man  went  out  every  day  and  killed  deer 
and  brought  meat  to  their  lodge.  When  they  had  much  meat  and  the 
Geese  were  growing  to  be  large,  the  girl  told  the  young  man  that  they 
had  better  go  farther  into  the  timber,  for  there  were  no  large  ponds  near  by 
and  she  was  afraid  that  her  Geese  might  stray  away,  for  they  were  now 
very  large.  They  left  and  went  farther  south.  They  came  to  a  large 
tract  of  timber  and  there  made  another  grass-lodge.  The  girl  would 
stay  with  the  Geese,  while  the  young  man  would  go  hunting.  The  girl 
would  talk  to  the  Geese  as  if  they  were  human  beings. 

In  the  winter  time  the  girl  would  make  moccasins  for  the  Geese  and 
they  would  walk  around  in  them.  She  had  planted  the  corn  that 


THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE  GEESE  MEDICINE.  303 

they  had  taken  with  them,  so  that  they  had  corn  to  eat  as  well  as  dried 
meat. 

One  day  while  the  young  man  was  gone,  one  of  the  Geese  spoke  and 
said,  "My  mother,  why  are  we  so  far  from  everybody?"  The  woman 
replied  that  they  had  run  away  because  they  had  been  threatened  with 
death.  The  Goose  spoke  to  the  girl  and  said,  "Mother,  you  tell  our 
father  that  we  want  him  to  go  south,  for  there  are  many  people,  and  he 
can  capture  ponies  and  we  will  watch  over  him  and  get  him  back  to  this 
place."  When  the  boy  came  home  she  told  him  what  the  Goose  had 
said.  The  young  man  then  spoke  and  said  that  he  would  go,  and  the 
next  day  the  young  man  went  south.  Aster  about  four  days  one  of  the 
Geese  said:  "Mother,  I  will  follow  our  father  and  I  will  find  out  if  he 
is  well. "  The  Goose  followed  him  and  was  gone  several  days.  One  day 
the  Goose  came  back  and  said:  "My  mother,  our  father  is  well.  He  is 
near  the  enemy's  camp. " 

In  a  few  days  the  Goose  told  the  mother  that  he  would  go  again  and 
see  where  his  father  was.  He  again  flew  away  and  was  gone  for  many 
days.  One  day  he  came  back  and  said,  ' '  Mother,  our  father  will  be  here 
in  a  few  days  with  many  ponies. "  The  young  man  came  back  with  many 
ponies.  Then  the  Goose  said,  "Mother,  tell  our  father  that  we  must 
return  to  our  people. ' '  The  mother  told  the  young  man,  and  he  said, ' '  We 
will  go."  They  started  upon  their  journey.  The  Geese  flew  overhead, 
and  when  they  saw  any  buffalo  they  came  back  and  told  the  mother  to  tell 
the  father  to  go  out  and  kill  the  buffalo.  The  young  man  would  go  out 
on  the  pony  and  kill  buffalo;  then  they  would  make  their  camp.  The 
young  man  killed  so  many  buffalo  on  the  journey  that  they  had  much  dry 
meat.  The  Geese  flew  on  one  day  and  came  back  and  said,  "Mother,  we 
have  seen  our  people's  village. "  They  went  on  and  came  to  the  village 
in  the  night.  The  young  man  made  their  tipi  outside  of  the  village. 

In  the  morning  the  young  man  told  his  wife  to  cook  meat.  He  went 
and  invited  the  homely  young  man,  who  came,  and  the  young  man  told 
the  homely  young  man  to  go  and  invite  as  many  people  as  he  wanted. 
Among  those  invited  was  the  father  of  the  girl.  When  the  people  came 
into  the  tipi  they  saw  the  Geese  sitting  at  the  entrance.  They  ate  much 
meat  and  returned  to  their  homes,  and  said  that  the  young  man  who  had 
disappeared  with  the  girl  had  come  back  with  many  ponies  and  much 
meat.  They  also  told  the  people  that  they  had  two  Geese  with  them 
who  acted  like  people.  The  father  of  the  young  girl  invited  the  young 
man  to  his  tipi  and  told  him  not  to  think  about  the  time  that  he  was 
ready  to  take  his  life,  for  now  he  was  glad  that  he  had  come  back  with  his 
daughter  as  his  wife. 


304  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

The  young  man  always  had  his  tipi  on  the  south  side  of  the  village, 
and  always  had  the  homely  young  man  in  his  tipi.  For  many  years  they 
lived  together,  still  keeping  the  Geese.  Finally  one  of  the  Geese  became  sick 
and  died.  The  other  Goose  spoke  one  day  and  said:  "Mother,  my  brother 
is  dead.  I  must  now  go  to  my  people.  You  shall  give  birth  to  only  two 
children,  who  shall  both  grow  up  to  be  men,  though  one  shall  die,  while 
the  other  will  live  to  be  great."  The  Goose  flew  away  and  disappeared. 

The  young  man  was  allowed  to  pitch  his  tipi  among  his  people.  In 
years  afterward  the  girl  gave  birth  to  a  boy,  and  years  after  she  gave 
birth  to  another  boy.  These  boys  grew  up  until  they  were  young  men; 
then  one  of  them  became  sick  and  died.  The  other  became  a  great  war- 
rior and  was  known  as  a  brave  man  among  his  people.  The  people  tried 
to  make  him  a  chief,  but  he  refused,  telling  them  that  he  was  only  a  medi- 
cine-man and  not  a  chief.  This  young  man  started  the  Geese  society 
among  the  Pawnee,  and  did  many  wonderful  things.  The  father  and 
mother  both  died  of  old  age  and  the  young  man  became  the  leading 
medicine-man.  He  had  many  children,  and  he  also  died  of  old  age.  The 
people  said  that  it  was  through  the  power  of  the  gods  that  he  had  lived 
so  long. 

84.  THE  WONDERFUL  BOY  WHO  KILLED  HIS  FATHER.1 

A  long  time  ago  while  the  Kitkehahki  were  upon  the  Republican 
River  they  gave  many  medicine-men's  dances.  They  once  had  a  cere- 
mony of  sleight-of-hand  performances  which  lasted  several  months  and 
many  people  from  other  bands  came  to  see  the  ceremony.  There  was 
one  who  came  from  another  land  who  did  many  wonderful  things.  The 
leading  medicine-man  went  home  one  day  and  told  his  wife  that  he  did 
not  like  to  have  the  stranger  perform,  for  he  had  done  many  wonderful 
things  that  his  medicine-men  could  not  do.  While  the  leading  medicine- 
man was  talking,  his  fourteen-year-old  son  came  up  and  sat  down  by 
him.  The  father  told  all  the  wonderful  things  that  the  stranger  did.  The 
boy  did  not  say  anything  until  his  father  left  the  lodge;  then  he  said: 
"Mother,  I  want  you  to  go  to  the  field  and  find  two  squashes  with  long 
necks.  I  want  you  to  help  me  perform  in  the  medicine-men's  lodge." 
The  mother  said:  "My  son,  how  can  we  do  these  things  when  your 
father  has  not  said  anything  about  the  secret  of  their  mysteries.  I  know 
that  he  has  not  taken  you  to  the  medicine-men's  lodge,  for  you  are  too 
young. "  The  boy  said,  "Come,  mother,  we  will  go  together  to  the  fields." 

1  Told  by  High-Eagle,  Kitkehahki.  The  tale  relates  especially  to  the  origin  of 
certain  sleight-of-hand  performances  and  is  told  at  the  conclusion  of  the  ceremony. 
The  story  also  is  told  that  the  young  men  may  strive  to  emulate  the  boy  of  the  tale 
and  so  obtain  the  pity  of  the  animals. 


THE  WONDERFUL  BOY  WHO  KILLED  HIS  FATHER.  30$ 

The  two  went  to  the  fields  where  they  came  to  a  creek,  and  the  boy  told 
his  mother  to  bathe.  She  went  into  the  water  and  bathed.  While  she 
was  bathing  she  heard  the  noise  of  a  swan.  She  looked  around  and  saw 
only  her  boy.  The  boy  did  some  tricks  that  surprised  his  mother.  He 
performed  these  tricks  to  let  her  know  that  he  had  some  wonderful  power. 
They  left  the  creek  and  went  into  the  field.  They  found  the  two  squashes 
and  took  them  home. 

When  they  reached  home  the  boy  told  his  mother  to  enclose  a  place 
near  the  entrance  in  the  medicine-lodge,  so  that  people  might  not  see  him 
do  things  that  he  was  about  to  do.  The  enclosure  was  made.  The  boy 
told  his  mother  to  bring  in  the  squashes.  The  boy  took  his  knife  and 
cut  both  of  them  in  two.  He  told  his  mother  to  take  out  all  the  seeds 
and  to  clean  the  inside  nicely.  As  soon  as  the  squashes  were  cleaned  the 
boy  placed  in  them  soft  downy  swan  feathers.  He  made  some  mysterious 
movements  and  put  the  squashes  together  so  that  they  were  solid.  He 
then  told  his  mother  to  take  the  seeds  and  bury  them  west  of  the  village. 
The  boy  left  the  squashes  in  the  enclosure  and  went  away.  In  the  night, 
when  everybody  had  gone  to  witness  the  performances  of  the  medicine- 
men, the  boy  and  his  mother  performed  several  wonderful  tricks  in  their 
own  lodge.  The  mother  saw  her  boy  do  these  things  and  thought  to  her- 
self, "When  my  husband  sees  these  performances  he  will  embrace  his 
boy  and  will  be  glad.  " 

The  boy  said,  "Mother,  we  will  now  go  to  the  medicine-lodge  and  do 
these  things. "  They  each  took  a  squash  and  went  to  the  medicine-lodge. 
Those  who  were  looking  on  at  the  performances  gave  way  to  them  and  they 
entered  the  medicine-lodge.  The  boy  stood  up  and  said,  "Medicine-men, 
help  me;  I  want  to  perform  a  little."  Everybody  was  glad,  even  the 
boy 's  father,  though  he  thought  the  boy  would  fail,  for  he  had  not  given 
him  any  power.  The  medicine-men  arose  and  stood  around  the  boy  and 
his  mother.  The  boy  began  to  sing.  He  ran  to  the  crowd  of  spectators 
and  invited  anyone  who  would,  to  assist  him.  Two  young  men  came  for- 
ward. They  were  given  knives,  and  with  these  knives  cut  the  squashes  in 
two.  When  the  squashes  were  opened  they  found  soft  downy  feathers  in 
them  instead  of  seeds.  The  boy  then  took  the  squashes,  put  them  together, 
and  they  were  solid  again.  He  thanked  the  two  young  men  and  said, ' '  Help 
me  once  more. "  The  mother  went  and  brought  in  a  bowl  of  water.  The 
boy  began  to  sing.  His  mother  placed  the  squashes  upon  the  ground. 
As  he  sang  he  ran  around  the  fireplace,  took  a  mouthful  of  water  from 
the  bowl,  then  went  where  the  squashes  lay  and  sprinkled  them.  He 
continued  to  do  this  until  there  was  a  pool  of  water.  The  boy  now  ran 
around  and  started  off,  and  the  two  squashes  began  to  make  a  noise  like 


306  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

swans.  They  were  swans  and  they  followed  the  boy.  After  a  time  the 
boy  went  up  to  them,  laid  his  hands  upon  their  necks  and  caught  them, 
and  they  were  squashes  again.  He  picked  them  up  and  gave  them  to 
his  mother.  They  went  out  of  the  lodge  and  went  home. 

There  was  rejoicing  in  the  lodge.  The  medicine-men  thought  that 
the  father  must  have  taught  the  boy  how  to  do  the  wonderful  things,  but 
it  was  not  so.  The  only  man  who  did  not  seem  to  take  pleasure  in  the 
boy's  performances  was  his  father,  who  with  bowed  head  sat  in  the  west. 
He  thought  within  himself:  "I  thought  the  stranger  very  wonderful, 
but  now  my  son  comes,  a  mere  child,  and  he  performs  greater  things, 
and  the  things  he  does  are  not  mine,  and  I  have  no  knowledge  of  them." 
Next  day  the  boy  and  his  mother  took  the  squashes  and  dumped  them 
into  the  creek.  People  told  throughout  the  village  the  wonderful  things 
that  the  boy  had  done.  Nearly  every  day  they  talked  about  the  boy. 
His  father  hastened  the  ceremony  of  the  medicine-lodge  to  a  close,  for 
he  did  not  feel  right  in  his  mind. 

The  ceremony  was  over.  An  old  man  cried  through  the  village,  telling 
the  people  to  store  away  their  corn  and  other  things  and  to  get  ready 
to  go  on  a  buffalo  hunt.  The  people  began  to  dig  cache  holes;  others, 
who  had  them,  cleaned  them  out.  All  this  time  the  leading  medicine-man 
never  spoke  to  his  son  nor  asked  him  to  come  near  him.  On  the  buffalo 
hunt  he  began  to  speak  to  the  boy  and  called  on  him  to  help. 

One  time  when  they  were  surrounding  buffalo,  the  medicine-man  told 
his  son  to  stay  by  him  and  to  follow  him  if  he  should  run  after  a  buffalo 
cow.  When  the  run  was  made  the  boy  watched  his  father,  and  when 
he  saw  him  running  after  a  buffalo  cow  that  seemed  to  be  getting  away 
from  him  he  followed,  until  they  had  gone  away  out  among  the  hills  by 
themselves.  The  father  then  whipped  up  his  pony  and  soon  overtook 
the  cow.  He  shot  at  it  and  it  fell  into  a  ravine.  The  boy  caught  up  and 
they  began  to  skin  the  buffalo.  The  father  looked  up  and  said,  "My 
son,  I  must  go  up  on  the  hill  and  look  around,  for  we  are  in  the  enemy's 
country  and  they  may  be  coming. "  The  father  climbed  the  hill,  and  as 
he  went  he  thought  of  the  wonderful  things  that  the  boy  had  done  in  his 
medicine-lodge  and  his  heart  was  filled  with  envy.  He  reached  the  top 
of  the  hill,  then  turned  and  looked  at  his  son  for  a  moment,  and  then 
shot  an  arrow  at  him.  The  boy  turned  and  started  to  run,  but  when  he 
saw  that  it  was  his  own  father  who  had  shot  him,  he  fell  to  the  ground  and 
died.  The  man  went  to  his  son  and  made  sure  that  he  was  dead.  He 
picked  him  up  and  threw  him  into  a  tributary  of  the  Republican  River. 
He  went  back  to  the  buffalo,  cut  the  meat,  packed  the  pony,  and  went 
home.  He  turned  the  boy's  pony  loose.  The  man  reached  home  in  the 


THE  WONDERFUL  BOY  WHO  KILLED  HIS  FATHER.  307 

night  and  at  once  inquired  for  his  son  and  was  told  that  the  boy  had  not 
come  home.  A  crier  was  sent  through  the  camp  to  ask  if  anyone  had  seen 
the  boy.  No  one  had  seen  him.  Some  people  said:  "We  saw  him  follow 
his  father. "  A  search  was  made,  but  the  boy  was  not  found. 

The  man  mourned  for  his  son  and  pretended  that  he  had  met  death 
by  being  thrown  from  his  pony.  Some  men  went  and  hunted  over  the 
ground  where  they  had  surrounded  the  buffalo.  They  did  not  find  the 
boy  and  so  they  all  gave  him  up  for  dead. 

On  the  night  of  their  return  to  their  permanent  village  the  boy  returned 
to  his  mother.  He  woke  her  up  and  told  her  to  keep  still  and  give  no 
alarm ;  that  he  would  stay  with  other  people  for  a  few  days  and  then  send 
for  her.  The  mother  felt  of  her  boy  and  she  was  sure  he  was  alive.  The 
boy  went  to  his  uncle 's  lodge  and  there  he  stayed.  In  the  morning  his 
uncle  saw  him  and  was  glad.  It  was  noised  through  the  village  that  the 
boy  had  returned.  His  father  heard  of  it  and  sent  for  him,  but  the  boy 
would  not  go  to  him.  Again  his  father  sent  for  him  and  offered  him  all 
his  medicine  bundles,  but  still  the  boy  would  not  go  to  him.  The  father 
tried  to  get  his  wife  to  help  him  get  his  boy  back,  but  the  woman  would 
not  do  anything,  for  she  now  suspected  that  her  husband  had  killed  their 
own  child. 

The  boy  sent  for  his  mother.  His  mother  went,  and  the  boy  said, 
"Mother,  do  you  want  me  to  tell  you  where  I  have  been?"  She  said, 
"Yes,  tell  me  all  about  it."  The  boy  said,  "Mother,  father  and  I  ran 
after  a  buffalo  cow,  and  I  caught  up  with  him  as  he  killed  it.  After  we 
had  begun  to  skin  it  my  father  went  up  on  the  hill  to  look  around  for  the 
enemy.  The  next  thing  I  knew  an  arrow  had  gone  through  my  body. 
I  looked  around,  and  there  was  my  father.  I  fell  over  and  died.  Later 
I  found  myself  in  the  animals '  lodge  at  Swimming-Mound,  for  our  swans 
had  taken  me  there.  The  animals  took  pity  upon  me  and  brought  me 
to  life.  Here  are  the  scars  upon  my  body  where  the  arrow  went  through. 
The  animals  kept  the  arrow.  They  told  me  to  come  home.  I  want  to 
kill  my  father.  "  The  woman  said,  "Kill  him,  for  he  did  wrong. " 

The  boy  took  from  his  bundle  a  bone  from  the  sunfish,  placed  it  in  the 
palm  of  his  left  hand  and  blew  his  breath  upon  it,  and  the  bone  was  gone. 
The  boy  said:  "Mother,  father  is  struggling,  for  I  sent  that  bone  straight 
to  his  heart.  Go  now,  mother,  for  he  is  dead.  I  will  come  home  when 
he  is  buried."  The  man  died,  and  everybody  said  the  boy  was  right. 
The  boy  grew  up  and  was  a  great  medicine-man.  He  told  of  the  animals' 
lodge  at  Swimming-Mound.  Men  used  to  go  there  and  cry,  but  they 
were  never  received  by  the  animals. 


308  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

85.   THE  MEDICINE-MAN  WHO  KILLED  HIS  SON.1 

A  long  time  ago  the  Pawnee  held  their  medicine-lodge  ceremonies 
and  performed  sleight-of-hand.  While  they  were  performing  a  ceremony 
the  wife  of  the  leader  of  the  medicine-men  spoke  to  her  son,  who  was  now 
about  thirteen  years  old.  She  said:  "My  son,  it  is  now  time  that  you 
were  in  the  medicine-lodge  where  all  these  acts  are  being  carried  on.  Go 
to  the  medicine-lodge.  When  you  have  entered,  walk  up  to  your  father, 
place  your  hands  upon  his  head,  pass  them  down  over  his  body,  speak 
and  say,  'My  father,  I  want  you  to  take  pity  on  me.  I  want  you  to 
accept  me  in  this  lodge.  I  have  one  pony  and  I  now  give  it  to  you.' '  The 
boy  went  to  his  father  and  did  as  his  mother  had  told  him,  but  his  father 
refused  him,  and  would  not  admit  him  into  the  lodge.  The  boy  went 
back  and  told  his  mother  that  his  father  had  refused  him.  The  mother 
did  not  know  what  to  make  of  it.  She  said:  "Take  these  presents  to 
your  father,  place  them  before  him  and  tell  him  that  you  want  him  to  take 
pity  on  you."  The  boy  went,  but  the  father  again  refused.  The  boy 
returned  to  his  mother  and  told  her  what  his  father  had  done.  Then  the 
woman  said:  "Once  more  you  shall  go.  Take  this  pipe  filled  with 
native  tobacco,  place  it  in  his  hands,  and  tell  him  that  you  wish  to  become 
a  member  of  the  medicine-lodge. "  The  boy  went  into  the  lodge  and 
placed  the  pipe  in  his  father's  hands,  but  his  father  refused  to  light  the 
pipe  and  returned  it  to  the  boy.  The  boy  went  home  and  told  his  mother 
that  his  father  had  refused.  The  mother  then  said:  "It  is  strange  that 
your  own  father  should  do  this.  He  is  the  leader  of  all  the  medicine-men 
and  he  rejects  you.  You  shall  go  to  him  for  the  last  time.  Take  this 
vessel  of  corn  which  I  have  boiled,  and  this  dried  meat  into  the  lodge. 
When  he  sees  this  surely  he  can  not  refuse."  The  boy  took  the  corn  into 
the  medicine-lodge.  He  again  went  with  the  dried  meat  and  put  it  in 
front  of  his  father.  His  father  still  rejected  him.  The  boy  went  home 
to  his  mother.  As  he  sat  in  his  mother's  lap  he  cried  and  said: 
"Mother,  I  do  not  see  how  I  can  meet  my  father  when  these  ceremonies 
are  over.  I  can  not  understand  why  he  refuses  me. "  Then  the  mother 
said:  "Boy,  you  must  not  cry.  Your  father  is  not  the  only  medicine- 
man. My  father  was  also  a  leader  in  a  medicine  ceremony.  To-day,  for 
the  first  time,  your  father  shall  know  that  I  understand  some  of  the 
mysteries  of  your  grandfather. " 

The  woman  took  her  sacred  bundle,  untied  it,  and  took  therefrom  a 
skirt  which  had  been  dyed  black.  Upon  this  skirt  were  scattered  soft 

1  Told  by  White-Horse,  Pitahauirat.  This  story  may  be  regarded  as  the 
Pitahauirat  version  of  the  preceding  tale.  The  story  teaches  that  the  father  should 
not  refuse  to  admit  his  own  son  to  his  medicine  ceremony. 


THE  MEDICINE-MAN  WHO  KILLED  HIS  SON.  309 

downy  feathers.  She  also  took  therefrom  a  buffalo  hair  robe,  which 
was  also  covered  with  soft  downy  feathers.  She  unbraided  her  hair. 
She  took  from  the  bundle  a  ball  of  mud.  This  she  spread  all  over  herself. 
Then  she  spread  some  of  it  all  over  the  boy.  She  took  a  buffalo  robe  from 
the  bundle  and  placed  it  on  the  boy's  shoulders.  She  then  took  her 
own  robe  and  put  it  upon  her  shoulders.  Then  she  tied  up  the  bundle 
and  put  it  away.  She  took  the  boy  by  the  hand  and  they  went  to  the 
medicine-lodge.  As  they  entered  the  lodge,  and  the  woman's  husband 
saw  them,  he  bowed  his  head  instead  of  looking  up,  and  never  said  a 
word.  The  woman  and  the  boy  seated  themselves  on  the  north  side 
near  the  entrance.  Other  medicine-men  gave  them  this  place.  In  the 
afternoon,  when  the  grand  procession  of  medicine-men  was  about  ready, 
she  daubed  the  boy  with  mud  and  downy  feathers.  She  went  to  her 
tipi,  opened  her  bundle,  and  took  from  it  two  gourds  with  round  necks. 
These  she  took  into  the  lodge.  When  everybody  had  marched  out,  the 
woman  began  to  sing  about  the  diving  ducks.  The  boy  was  imitating  the 
ducks.  They  marched  outside  in  a  circle  four  times  and  then  entered 
the  lodge.  The  medicine-men  were  surprised  at  the  way  in  which  the 
woman  was  carrying  on,  for  she  was  the  wife  of  the  leading  medicine- 
man, and  these  songs  which  she  was  singing  were  not  the  songs  of  any 
of  the  men  who  were  within  the  lodge.  After  the  performance  was  over 
the  woman  was  told  that  if  she  wanted  to  do  sleight-of-hand  perform- 
ances, she  could  do  so  that  night.  She  told  them  that  she  was  not  going 
to  do  any  sleight-of-hand  performances  at  night.  She  said  she  wanted 
to  do  it  in  the  daytime  and  that  she  wanted  to  do  it  the  next  day  at  noon. 
That  night  the  medicine-men  began  to  do  their  sleight-of-hand  per- 
formance and  kept  it  up  until  daylight.  The  woman  asked  the  medi- 
cine-men all  to  join  in  and  help  her.  Her  husband  would  not  have 
anything  to  do  with  her.  He  tried  to  discourage  the  others  from  doing 
anything,  for  he  did  not  know  that  the  woman  understood  any  of  these 
performances.  When  all  the  other  medicine-men  agreed  to  help  the 
woman  she  told  them  that  she  wanted  them  to  march  down  to  the  creek. 
She  and  the  boy  were  in  the  lead,  and  the  medicine-men  followed,  singing 
for  them.  They  arrived  at  the  creek.  The  woman  jumped  in  with  the 
gourds  in  her  hand  and  held  the  gourds  under  the  water.  Then  she 
brought  them  up  from  the  water  and  the  gourds  had  turned  into  soft 
downy  feathers.  She  turned  them  loose  and  the  soft  downy  feathers 
drifted  down  the  stream.  She  waved  her  hands  at  the  downy  feathers 
and  they  turned  back  and  came  upstream  to  where  she  was.  Then  she 
took  hold  of  them,  pulled  them  down  under  the  water,  and  when  she 
took  them  out  they  were  gourds  again.  The  people  were  shouting,  for 


310  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

they  were  glad  to  see  this  woman  perform  when  her  husband  had  refused 
to  aid  his  boy.  The  boy  was  now  given  the  gourds.  Then  the  woman 
began  to  sing  and  the  men  helped  her.  The  boy  was  told  to  jump  into 
the  water  with  a  gourd  in  each  hand.  When  he  jumped  in  he  waved 
the  gourds  under  the  water  and  his  mother  told  him  to  release  them. 
The  boy  released  them  under  the  water,  and  after  a  while  they  came  up 
and  there  were  two  ducks  instead  of  the  gourds.  They  swam  around  in 
the  water,  and  after  a  while  they  returned  to  the  boy,  who  caught  them, 
and  they  turned  again  into  gourds.  When  the  boy  came  out  from  the 
water  with  the  gourds  the  medicine-men  were  so  glad  that  this  had 
happened,  that  they  began  to  mesmerize  one  another.  They  began  to  mes- 
merize the  woman,  but  she  had  too  much  power  for  the  men.  When 
the  medicine-men  went  into  the  lodge  they  told  what  the  woman  and  the 
boy  had  done.  The  boy's  father  was  still  sitting  in  his  place  with  his 
head  bowed,  for  he  was  angry.  He  could  do  many  things,  but  none  which 
could  equal  that  of  turning  gourds  into  ducks.  He  was  jealous. 

The  medicine-men  often  spoke  of  the  power  of  this  woman  and  her 
child.  Wherever  the  husband  went  after  that  the  people  spoke  of  his  wife 
and  boy  as  being  wonderful.  People  thought  they  were  doing  a  good  act 
for  him,  but  they  were  not,  for  the  man  was  angry  with  the  woman  and 
her  son.  After  the  performance  of  the  woman  and  the  boy  they  returned 
home.  They  never  went  to  the  medicine-lodge  again.  After  the  cere- 
mony was  finished,  people  began  to  make  preparation  to  go  hunting. 
They  surrounded  the  buffalo  several  times.  Once  when  they  surrounded 
the  buffalo  the  medicine-man  took  his  son  with  him.  They  went  far 
from  the  other  people.  After  they  had  left  the  others  far  behind,  the 
man  turned  to  his  son  and  said,  "So  you  and  your  mother  will  outdo 
me  in  sleight-of-hand  performances. "  He  took  his  bow  and  arrow,  shot 
the  boy  in  the  side,  and  threw  him  into  the  river.  Then  the  man  went 
home. 

When  he  arrived  at  his  home  his  wife  said,  "Where  is  my  son?"  The 
man  said  that  he  did  not  know.  Then  the  woman  and  the  man  went 
through  the  village  hunting  for  their  son.  As  the  boy  was  not  found 
the  woman  began  to  mourn.  The  father  also  began  to  cry.  From  that 
time  on  the  boy  was  dead  to  them.  Many  years  afterwards  the  boy's 
father  married  another  woman  and  no  longer  lived  with  his  first  wife, 
the  mother  of  the  boy. 

After  the  boy  was  thrown  into  the  river  the  water  took  the  boy's 
body  downstream  until  it  came  to  an  animals'  lodge.  Here  the  body 
was  stopped,  but  the  animals  said:  "It  is  not  our  place  to  touch  him. 
If  we  are  to  bring  the  boy  back  to  life  he  must  be  taken  to  Pahuk. " 


THE  MEDICINE-MAN  WHO  KILLED  HIS  SON.  311 

The  boy  drifted  downstream.  On  the  one  side  was  the  Beaver,  and 
the  Otter  on  the  other  side,  the  Mink  heading  the  procession.  Other 
animals  swam  behind  the  body.  They  came  to  Pahuk  and  the  boy  was 
taken  in.  He  was  placed  upon  the  ground  in  the  lodge.  The  arrow 
was  taken  out,  and  the  boy  was  brought  to  life  through  the  powers  of  the 
Beaver  and  the  Otter.  Then  the  animals  said:  "We  know  he  killed 
you,  but  we  wish  you  to  return  to  your  people.  You  must  go  back  to 
your  people  now  and  tell  them  that  we  want  native  tobacco,  eagle  feath- 
ers, blue  beads,  and  sweet-smelling  grass. " 

The  boy  went  home  to  his  lodge  and  there  he  found  his  mother.  He 
woke  her  up  and  said,  "Mother,  I  am  here."  The  mother  got  up,  cried, 
and  said,  "And  this  is  the  way  my  son  used  to  do  when  he  was  living 
and  now  he  comes  to  me  always  only  in  dreams."  He  said:  "No, 
mother,  it  is  true.  I  am  here.  Do  not  make  a  noise.  Go  to  my  rela- 
tives and  tell  them  I  am  here  and  I  want  native  tobacco,  eagle  feathers, 
blue  beads,  and  sweet-smelling  grass."  The  mother  touched  her  boy, 
made  a  fire,  seated  him,  and  then  went  through  the  village.  The  peo- 
ple opened  their  sacred  bundles  to  get  the  blue  beads  and  other  things 
which  the  boy  wanted.  These  things  were  brought  to  the  boy  and  placed 
before  him.  Then  the  boy  thanked  them  and  said:  " My  relatives,  I 
go  from  you.  You  shall  see  me  again. "  The  boy  left  and  was  not  heard 
of  again  for  some  time. 

One  night  he  came  back  into  the  lodge  and  awoke  his  mother  and  said, 
"Mother,  I  am  here."  She  got  up,  caught  him,  and  made  a  fire.  People 
knew  that  he  had  come  back.  For  some  time  the  boy  remained  with  his 
mother.  The  father  would  come  and  visit  them,  but  the  boy  never  had 
much  to  do  with  him. 

One  night  the  boy  sat  down  with  his  mother  before  his  sacred  bundle, 
where  he  kept  the  things  which  had  been  given  him  by  the  animals. 
He  said,  "Mother,  I  will  now  tell  you  my  story.  Mother,  my  father  shot 
me  with  one  of  his  arrows  and  killed  me.  If  he  had  left  me  upon  dry 
land  I  should  have  died,  but  he  picked  me  up,  carried  me  to  a  stream  of 
water,  threw  me  in,  and  said,  'Animals  under  the  water,  I  give  you  this 
boy  for  you  to  eat. '  The  animals  took  pity  on  me.  If  you  want  father 
to  live  he  shall  live.  If  you  think  he  ought  to  die  because  he  did  me 
wrong,  then  take  this  little  water-dog  down  to  the  stream,  dip  it  into 
the  water,  and  if  when  you  take  it  out  there  is  a  little  piece  of  liver  in 
its  mouth,  you  will  know  that  the  people  down  at  Pahuk  have  eaten  up 
the  insides  of  my  father.  If  you  dip  this  little  animal 's  nose  into  the 
water  and  there  is  no  liver,  then  you  may  know  that  what  I  tell  you  is 
not  true." 


312  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

The  woman  took  the  little  animal  and  went  down  to  the  stream  of 
water.  She  dipped  the  animal 's  nose  into  the  water,  and  when  she  took 
it  up  she  saw  a  little  piece  of  liver  in  its  mouth.  She  could  see  the  water 
heave,  for  the  animals  were  in  the  water  moving  around.  When  the 
water  was  stirred  the  woman  could  see  pieces  of  entrails  in  the  water, 
and  also  blood.  She  went  back  to  the  village  into  her  lodge.  The  boy 
took  the  animal  and  placed  it  near  the  fireplace,  gave  it  some  smoke 
and  tobacco,  and  then  put  it  back  in  the  bundle.  After  that  the  boy 
became  the  leader  of  the  medicine-lodge  and  taught  the  people  what 
the  animals  had  taught  him  and  not  what  his  father  had  taught  him. 
The  people  knew  that  the  boy  was  a  wonderful  boy  and  that  he  had 
been  taken  into  the  animals'  lodge  at  Pahuk. 

86.   THE  CHIEF'S  SON   WHO  RECEIVED  THE  ANIMAL  POWER.1 

A  long  time  ago  the  people  had  their  village  upon  the  Republican 
River.  In  the  village  was  a  fine-looking  young  man  who  was  a  son  of 
the  chief.  The  young  man  was  very  kind  and  was  good  to  everybody. 
There  was  a  man  who  became  very  fond  of  the  chief 's  son  and  one  day  he 
came  to  him  and  said,  ' '  I  would  like  to  talk  with  you  and  take  you  to  a 
far-away  country."  The  boy,  suspecting  nothing,  promised  to  go  with 
the  man,  and  so  they  prepared  for  their  journey  and  started.  They 
traveled  for  many  days  until  at  last  they  came  to  a  place  known  as  Pahuk. 
They  went  to  a  steep  bank  and  sat  down.  The  man  began  to  tell  the  boy 
that  there  had  been  stories  told  about  this  wonderful  place,  and  that  he 
had  brought  him  there  because  he  wanted  to  tie  a  rope  around  his  waist 
and  let  him  down  over  the  steep  bank  to  pick  up  some  eagle  and  wood- 
pecker's feathers  which  were  upon  the  bank.  The  man  put  a  lariat  around 
the  boy 's  waist  and  let  him  down  the  steep  bank.  When  the  boy  reached 
the  bank  he  began  to  pick  up  the  feathers.  He  then  looked  up  to  tell 
the  man  to  pull  him  up,  but  the  man  was  not  there  and  there  were  no  signs 
of  him.  The  boy  cried  for  help,  for  he  was  in  trouble.  On  the  journey  he 
had  become  pregnant,  and  gradually  grew  larger  all  the  time  until,  when 
he  was  upon  the  bank,  he  knew  that  he  was  about  to  give  birth.  Then  he 
cried  and  yelled  and  called  to  the  man  to  pull  him  up,  but  the  man  had 
run  away  and  left  the  boy  hanging  on  the  side  of  the  steep  bank  so  that 
he  would  die.  The  boy  cried  until  he  was  exhausted  and  then  he  went 
to  sleep. 

1  Told  by  White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  teaches  that  it  is  impossible  to 
deceive  the  animals.  Especially  does  it  illustrate  the  dire  consequences  befalling  one 
who  betrays  a  friend. 


THE  CHIEF  S  SON  WHO  RECEIVED  THE  ANIMAL  POWER.  313 

The  animals  came  out  from  under  the  bank  and  found  the  boy. 
When  they  saw  him  they  said,  "Let  us  take  pity  on  him, "  and  they  car- 
ried him  into  their  lodge.  When  the  boy  awoke  he  saw  all  kinds  of 
animals  and  birds,  and  he  was  surprised.  The  Buffalo  was  the  first  to 
speak.  He  said:  ' '  Let  us  l^elp  this  poor  boy.  We  know  what  the  trouble 
is.  He  has  been  bewitched. "  All  the  animals  agreed,  and  the  Elk  was 
the  first  to  stand  up  and  run  towards  the  boy.  The  Elk  jumped  over  the 
boy,  and  when  he  jumped  over  the  boy  the  other  animals  saw  blood  in  the 
Elk's  mouth.  Then  the  Buffalo  ran  and  jumped  over  the  boy  and  there 
was  blood  in  his  mouth.  Each  animal  took  his  turn,  and  then  they  all 
ran  busily  about  in  the  lodge.  The  dust  rose  towards  the  sky,  so  that  the 
boy  could  not  be  seen.  The  Bear  came  to  where  the  boy  was  and  stopped. 
The  Bear  screamed,  then  took  one  of  his  claws  and  cut  the  boy  open. 
He  took  out  the  bones  of  the  child,  threw  them  away,  and  healed  the 
wound.  The  boy  was  then  told  to  sit  up.  Then  the  Snake  came  and  said: 
' '  My  son,  I  am  bad.  I  kill  people.  I  can  kill  you  by  spitting  upon  you. 
I  give  you  this  bone.  Strike  the  enemy  with  this  bone  that  I  have 
given  you  and  it  will  kill  them."  The  Buffalo  came  and  said:  "I  will 
teach  you  something.  Take  this  whistle."  Upon  the  center  of  the 
whistle  was  painted  a  buffalo  skull.  ' '  When  you  get  into  trouble,  whistle 
and  I  will  be  with  you.  I  will  make  you  brave  so  that  you  shall  get 
out  of  trouble."  Then  the  Bear  came  and  said:  "My  son,  I  can  kill 
people.  Look  at  me. "  The  Bear  at  this  time  was  on  his  four  feet  and 
when  he  arose  there  was  a  great  dust.  When  the  dust  passed  by,  the 
Bear  blew  his  breath  and  the  dust  came  from  his  mouth.  He  told  the 
boy  to  take  a  little  dust  and  put  it  into  the  sack.  It  was  to  be  used  as 
a  paint  to  put  upon  the  sick  people  and  upon  the  wounded.  Then  a 
Buffalo  cow  came  and  said,  "I  can  kill  people. "  She  made  a  great  dust 
about  the  boy.  Each  animal  taught  the  boy  some  mystery;  then  they 
told  him  that  he  must  return  to  his  people.  Before  they  let  him  go  they 
told  him  that  they  must  teach  him  some  sleight-of-hand  performances. 
The  Eagles  taught  the  boy  how  to  fly.  The  Ducks  taught  him  how  to 
swim  and  dive.  The  animals  then  said  that  the  boy  was  hungry  and 
that  they  wanted  to  feed  him.  They  sent  the  Crow  into  the  west,  and 
the  Beaver  into  the  north,  and  the  Otter  into  the  east,  and  the  Hawk  into 
the  south,  to  bring  food  for  the  boy.  While  these  animals  were  away 
to  get  something  for  the  boy  to  eat  one  of  the  animals  spoke  to  the  boy 
and  said:  "We  know  what  the  man  did  to  you.  He  tried  to  poison  you. 
He  tried  to  make  you  like  a  woman.  We  have  taught  you  great  mysteries. 
If  you  desire  you  can  bewitch  him."  After  the  animals  came  back 
with  something  to  eat,  and  the  boy  had  eaten,  the  leading  animal  of  the 


314  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

lodge,  who  was  a  Beaver,  said:  "My  boy,  it  is  time  to  go  home.  The 
animals  will  show  you  the  way.  The  Owl,  Buffalo,  and  two  Crows  will 
be  the  ones  to  lead  you  to  your  home.  They  will  stop  outside  the  village. 
Enter  the  village,  but  do  not  let  the  people  know  that  you  are  there.  The 
next  day  after  you  arrive,  take  the  man  who  tried  to  poison  you  to  the  river 
and  swim  with  him.  Our  animals  will  go  up  the  stream  and  they  will 
bewitch  him. "  When  the  Beaver  finished  speaking,  the  Crow  came  near 
to  the  boy  and  touched  him  and  the  boy  found  himself  outside  of  the 
lodge  of  the  animals.  Then  he  was  told  to  try  to  fly,  and  he  arose  in  the 
air  and  flew  like  a  crow. 

They  left  the  boy  just  outside  of  his  village.  In  the  night  the  boy 
went  into  the  village  to  the  lodge  of  his  father  and  spoke  to  him.  The 
father  did  not  believe  that  his  son,  whom  he  had  mourned  for  as  dead, 
could  have  returned.  He  made  his  wife  make  a  fire  and  then  he  saw  that 
it  was  his  son  and  he  was  glad.  The  next  day  the  people  heard  that  the 
boy  had  returned.  They  came  from  all  directions  to  see  the  boy  and  to 
give  him  presents.  Then  the  boy  sent  for  the  man  who  had  injured  him, 
and  when  the  man  came  the  boy  picked  up  a  bucket  and  said,  ' '  Come 
with  me  down  to  the  creek. "  When  the  boy  was  dipping  water  the  other 
man  touched  the  water.  As  soon  as  he  touched  the  water  he  was  dragged 
under.  The  man  disappeared  and  was  never  seen  again.  When  the 
boy  came  up  he  told  the  people  that  the  man  was  a  witch,  but  for  them 
not  to  be  afraid,  as  he  had  disposed  of  him  and  that  he  would  never 
return  to  trouble  them. 

87.   THE   THUNDER-BIRD   CEREMONY.1 

A  long  time  ago  when  the  Kitkehahki  lived  upon  the  Republican 
River,  near  Swimming-Mound,  there  were  two  people  who  were  half 
women  and  half  men.  These  two  people  once  took  up  their  hoes  and 
sacks  made  of  buffalo  hide  and  went  to  a  place  where  there  had  been 
artichokes.  They  found  none  and  so  they  went  farther  down  the  river 
until  they  came  to  a  bank  where  there  were  many  artichokes.  One  of 
the  hermaphrodites  straightened  up  from  digging  artichokes  and  saw  a 
man  sitting  near.  He  showed  no  sign  of  fear,  but  went  on  digging.  As 
he  dug  he  whispered  to  his  companion:  "There  is  a  man  sitting  near 

1  Told  by  Mouth- Waving-in- Water,  Kitkehahki.  The  ceremony  described  in 
this  tale  is  sometimes  known  as  the  Elk  medicine,  because  of  the  great  feather 
appendages  placed  on  the  bird  which  stands  on  the  altar  and  which  bear  a  super- 
ficial resemblance  to  the  antlers  of  the  elk.  The  ceremony  is  no  longer  given  by 
the  Pawnee,  as  none  of  the  medicine-men  who  belonged  to  this  society  are  now 
living. 


THE  THUNDER-BIRD  CEREMONY.  315 

us.  I  will  continue  to  dig  around,  and  suddenly  I  will  straighten  up, 
walk  around  the  bank,  and  hit  him  upon  the  back  of  his  head  with  my 
hoe;  then  we  will  kill  him."  His  companion  said:  "Go  at  once  and  do 
as  you  have  said.  I  will  keep  on  digging."  The  one  who  first  spoke 
straightened  up  and  walked  around  as  though  he  were  looking  for  arti- 
chokes. When  he  came  around  behind  the  stranger  he  took  his  hoe  and 
struck  him  behind  the  head,  and  the  man  fell.  Then  he  called  for  his 
companion  and  they  killed  him.  They  took  up  their  sacks  of  artichokes 
and  ran  home. 

When  they  reached  the  village  they  told  the  people  that  they  had 
killed  a  strange  man  and  that  the  man  lay  along  the  bank  where  they  had 
dug  artichokes.  The  men  did  not  believe  them,  but  notwithstanding 
they  went  to  the  place  and  there  they  found  the  strange  man.  The  man 
had  on  a  robe  with  the  hair  side  out.  His  face  was  painted  with  blue 
mud  and  red  streaks  of  paint.  His  hair  was  reached  and  covered  with 
soft  downy  feathers,  and  a  long  downy  feather  stuck  through  his  scalp- 
lock.  His  head  was  covered  with  blood,  so  that  every  man  who  came 
to  the  place  thought  the  man  had  been  scalped  and  would  not  touch  the 
head.  The  people  removed  his  robe  and  saw  around  his  shoulders  a 
black  hair  lariat  rope.  Some  people  said,  "He  must  have  been  a  war- 
rior." Others  said,  "No,  he  is  a  wonderful  man. "  They  all  went  home 
and  had  war  dances  and  in  the  night  the  women  gave  scalp  dances. 

Two  or  three  days  after  the  man  had  been  killed,  an  old  man  took 
the  hand  of  his  grandson,  who  was  four  or  five  years  old,  and  led  him  to 
the  place  where  the  dead  man  lay.  When  they  got  there  the  man  gave 
the  boy  a  stick  and  said,  "Now,  grandchild,  strike  the  enemy  and  count 
coup  on  him."  The  boy  struck  the  man,  and  then  he  saw  the  long 
downy  feather  upon  the  dead  man's  head.  He  said,  "Grandfather,  let  me 
take  the  downy  feather  from  the  dead  man's  head. "  The  old  man  took 
his  knife  and  cut  the  scalp-lock  where  the  feather  was  stuck  in,  and  then 
gave  the  stick  to  the  boy  to  carry  to  the  village.  When  they  got  to  their 
lodge  the  boy  placed  in  front  of  it  the  pole  that  had  the  scalp  and  the 
downy  feather  attached  to  it. 

The  next  night  the  boy  in  a  dream  saw  the  man  who  was  daubed  with 
blue  mud.  The  downy  feather  was  in  his  scalp-lock.  The  man  said: 
"My  son,  I  came  to  your  people  to  talk  to  them,  and  they  killed  me.  I 
am  not  a  man;  I  am  Thunder-Bird,  the  bird  that  flies  away  up  in  the 
heavens.  Look  at  me. "  The  boy  looked,  and  there  just  where  the  man 
had  stood  was  standing  a  tall  bird.  This  bird  had  long  legs  and  its  bill 
was  very  long.  It  was  like  a  crane.  It  opened  its  wings  and  the  boy  saw 
upon  its  breast  the  downy  feather  that  the  man  had  had  in  his  scalp-lock. 


316  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

The  bird  turned  back  into  a  man.  Then  the  man  told  the  boy  that  he  was 
going  to  tell  him  something  wonderful;  that  he  must  keep  the  downy 
feather,  for  as  long  as  he  kept  it  his  spirit  would  be  with  him.  The  boy 
awoke  and  he  lay  awake  for  a  long  time,  thinking  of  what  he  had  dreamed. 
In  the  morning  he  went  out  and  there  upon  the  lodge  was  his  stick  with 
the  scalp  and  feather.  After  a  time  the  boy  threw  away  the  scalp,  but 
the  feather  he  kept,  for  he  knew  that  it  was  not  that  of  an  eagle  but  of  a 
crane.  As  he  grew  up  he  carried  the  feather  with  him. 

One  time  while  on  a  buffalo  hunt,  the  boy  hung  the  feather  near  his 
tipi.  He  dreamed  again  of  seeing  the  man  and  he  said:  "My  son,  let  us 
go  through  thick  timber  near  here;  I  want  to  talk  to  you.  Take  me 
to  the  timber.  Place  the  feather  upon  some  limb  and  go  on  through  the 
timber. "  The  boy  awoke,  and  did  not  wait  to  eat,  but  went  out  of  the 
tipi,  took  down  the  feather,  and  went  into  the  timber.  He  left  the  feather 
as  he  was  told  to  do  in  his  dream.  He  went  on  into  the  timber,  and  as 
he  came  to  a  pond  he  saw  a  man  coming  through  the  reeds  and  brush,  who 
every  once  in  a  while  turned  into  a  crane,  then  back  into  a  man.  The 
boy  said,  "This  is  wonderful!  I  wonder  what  it  is."  He  stopped  and 
looked  and  saw  that  it  was  the  man  he  had  seen  in  his  dream. 

This  mysterious  being  came  close  to  the  boy  and  said,  "My  son,  we 
will  now  go  into  the  timber.  "  They  went  into  the  timber  to  a  place  that 
seemed  to  have  been  cleared  for  a  purpose.  At  the  west  was  the  altar. 
There  stood  a  large  bird,  with  downy  feathers  on  the  top  of  its  head.  The 
bird  was  dead.  In  the  east  was  an  unknown  animal.  Another  bird  was 
in  the  south,  known  as  Bird-That-Never-Moves.  The  boy  was  seated  at 
the  west  behind  the  bird.  The  man  then  began  to  teach  the  boy  a  cere- 
mony, and  then  he  taught  him  some  sleight-of-hand  tricks.  For  several 
days  they  sat  together,  and  the  mysterious  man  told  the  boy  that  the 
people  had  gone  on ;  that  they  had  given  him  up  as  dead.  Then  he  told 
him  to  go  on  home. 

The  boy  started  for  home  and  carried  with  him  the  things  that  were 
given  him  by  the  mysterious  man.  The  boy  did  not  seem  to  get  tired, 
but  ran  faster  every  day.  One  night  he  saw  the  camp,  and  so  he  went 
on,  walking  very  slowly.  He  heard  a  man  crying  upon  a  high  hill,  and 
went  to  the  hill  and  saw  that  the  man  was  his  father.  He  slowed  his 
steps  until  he  was  close,  and  then  he  said,  "Father,  stop  crying;  I  am 
here."  His  father  looked  and  saw  his  son  standing  before  him.  He 
tried  to  put  his  arms  around  the  boy,  but  the  boy  told  his  father  not  to 
touch  him  for  a  while.  They  went  on  down  to  the  camp,  and  there  close 
to  the  village  was  his  mother,  crying.  The  father  told  the  boy  to  wait 
while  he  went  and  told  his  wife  that  her  son  had  come  back.  The  man 


THE  THUNDER-BIRD  CEREMONY.  317 

went  up  to  his  wife  and  told  her  to  stop  crying,  that  the  boy  had  come 
back.  She  stopped  crying  and  they  went  to  the  boy.  The  boy  told  his 
mother  that  she  must  not  touch  him.  They  went  to  their  tipi,  and  the 
boy  told  his  parents  not  to  let  other  people  know  he  had  come  back.  The 
next  day  the  people  saw  the  boy  with  his  parents  and  wondered  about 
him.  People  from  the  next  camp  came  into  their  tipi  and  tried  to  find 
out  where  he  had  been,  but  the  boy  would  say  nothing.  When  the  people 
found  buffalo,  the  boy  told  his  father  to  kill  many,  so  that  they  could 
have  plenty  of  the  dried  meat.  The  man  knew  that  the  boy  wanted  dried 
meat  to  take  to  the  medicine-man 's  lodge.  He  told  his  relatives  what 
the  boy  wanted,  and  they  killed  many  buffalo  and  dried  the  meat.  They 
suspected  that  in  time  the  boy  would  work  wonders.  When  the  people 
had  killed  many  buffalo  and  all  their  families  had  plenty  of  dried  meat, 
they  turned  back  to  their  village. 

After  they  had  arrived  and  the  people  had  settled  down,  the  medicine- 
men began  to  prepare  for  their  wonderful  ceremonies.  When  they  were 
all  ready  the  boy  unwrapped  his  little  bundle  and  said:  "Father,  I  must 
go  into  the  medicine-lodge.  I  want  to  perform  sleight-of-hand  tricks. " 
The  father  went  out  and  told  his  relatives  what  the  boy  had  said.  They 
came  into  the  boy 's  lodge  and  brought  many  presents  that  were  to  be 
presented  to  the  medicine-men.  The  boy  arose  with  his  buffalo  robe 
wrapped  around  him  and  his  face  daubed  with  blue  mud.  He  put  his 
little  bundle  upon  his  left  arm  and  started  for  the  medicine-lodge.  His 
relatives  followed  him  with  goods,  buffalo  robes,  blankets,  and  dried  buffalo 
meat.  The  boy  went  into  the  lodge  and  stood  in  the  center,  while  the 
man  who  carried  the  goods  and  meat  stopped.  The  young  man  spoke  to 
the  medicine-men  and  said:  "Medicine-men,  I  am  a  young  man.  I  have 
come  into  your  lodge  that  you  may  give  me  a  seat  among  you.  I  want 
to  perform,  and  have  brought  my  friends  with  me  who  have  with  them 
goods  and  meat."  All  of  the  medicine-men  said,  "Nawa. "  The  lead- 
ing medicine-man  gave  him  a  seat  in  the  south.  The  goods  were  then 
placed  near  the  altar,  and  the  meat  was  placed  near  the  entrance.  The 
boy  did  many  wonderful  tricks,  so  that  the  people  wondered,  for  his 
people  were  not  medicine-men.  Towards  the  last  of  the  ceremony  the  boy 
turned  the  downy  feather  into  a  large  thunder-bird.  He  also  made  a 
skull,  which  was  placed  in  the  east,  while  the  thunder-bird  stood  in  the 
west.  He  then  made  a  crane,  a  bird  that  stands  by  the  ponds  and  lakes 
and  looks  at  the  sun.  This  was  placed  at  the  south  with  three  things  in 
the  lodge  that  the  boy  had  made.  At  last  he  made  them  disappear. 
Then  he  stood  up  before  all  of  the  medicine-men  and  said:  "Medicine- 
men, my  tricks  are  ended.  You  have  seen  me  perform.  I  have  a  cere- 


318  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

mony  that  I  want  to  perform,  but  I  want  a  lodge  first.  I  want  three 
things  to  be  placed  there  when  the  lodge  is  done — the  skull  in  the  east 
on  the  north  of  the  entrance,  a  sun  crane  in  the  south,  and  a  large  crane  in 
the  west."  The  medicine-men  were  glad  to  hear  what  the  boy  said. 

After  the  ceremony  the  boy's  relatives  went  to  work  and  gathered 
poles  and  forks,  and  the  lodge  was  put  up.  A  buffalo  skull  was  brought 
out  and  placed  at  the  northeast  entrance.  In  the  south  was  placed  a  sun 
crane;  and  the  young  man  himself  placed  the  large  crane  at  the  west. 
This  crane  had  soft  downy  feathers  upon  the  top  of  its  head,  but  it  also 
had  feathers  standing  on  its  head  like  deer  horns.  The  people  called  this 
particular  ceremony  the  "  Elk  dance. "  They  saw  many  wonderful  things 
performed  by  the  boy.  After  the  boy  had  finished  his  tricks  the  ceremony 
was  ended.  He  did  not  allow  any  others  to  perform  any  sleight-of-hand. 
The  lodge  was  never  inhabited  until  the  boy  died.  Then  the  birds  and 
skull  were  removed. 

88.  PROUD  BOY  AND  THE  ANIMAL  MEDICINE.1 

The  Kitkehahki  were  to  have  a  great  bundle  ceremony  known  as 
"  Karipiro. "  This  ceremony  was  the  greatest  of  all  and  lasted  four  days. 
The  people  invited  the  Chaui  and  the  Pitahauirat.  These  two  bands 
were  far  away,  so  that  runners  had  to  be  sent  out  for  them.  When  all 
the  people  had  gathered  together  it  was  time  to  go  after  the  tree  that 
formed  the  center  pole  of  the  ceremonial  lodge.  The  priests  opened  the 
sacred  bundles  and  sang  the  rituals  explaining  why  they  were  to  get 
the  tree.  When  the  priests  came  to  that  part  of  the  ritual  that  spoke 
of  the  tree,  the  people — men,  women,  and  children — arose  and  started  for 
the  timber,  which  was  about  four  miles  away. 

Among  the  boys  who  went  out  for  the  tree  was  one  who  was  called 
Proud-Boy.  At  that  time  he  was  not  proud.  Among  the  girls  was  one 
whose  father  was  one  of  the  leading  men  from  the  Pitahauirat.  The 
boy  noticed  the  girl,  but  the  girl  did  not  notice  him.  When  they  neared 
the  timber,  young  warriors  were  sent  through  the  timber  to  find  a  suitable 
tree.  They  came  back  with  news  that  the  enemy  was  in  the  timber. 
Then  an  old  warrior  was  selected  to  go  and  defend  the  tree.  This  man 
sneaked  through  the  timber  and  sat  in  a  position  to  pounce  upon  the 
enemy  when  he  approached.  The  people  on  horseback  rode  into  the 

1  Told  by  Overtaker,  a  Pitahauirat  who  is  one  of  the  owners  of  the  Buffalo  cere- 
mony. It  is  possible  that  there  are  certain  Comanche  elements  in  this  story,  as 
the  narrator  formerly  lived  among  the  Wichita  where  he  came  in  contact  with  the 
Comanche.  The  story  in  the  main,  however,  is  purely  Pitahauirat.  Apart  from 
the  explanation  offered  in  the  story,  it  teaches  that  a  man  should  not  steal  the  wife 
of  another  man. 


PROUD  BOY  AND  THE  ANIMAL  MEDICINE.  31$ 

timber  and  brought  news  that  the  enemy  was  alone.  The  enemy  kept 
going  nearer  to  the  place  where  the  man  was  concealed.  At  last  an  attack 
was  made  and  the  man  killed  the  enemy.  The  tree  was  found  and  a 
young  girl  was  selected  to  cut  the  tree  first.  Then  the  warriors  assisted 
her.  As  the  tree  fell  there  was  great  shouting  by  the  men,  and  the  women 
gave  their  war  cry.  The  tree  was  then  taken  up  by  the  men  on  horse- 
back. Other  men  rode  alongside,  so  that  when  the  men  who  were  carry- 
ing the  tree  became  tired  they  might  take  their  places.  A  command 
was  given  for  the  men,  women,  boys,  and  girls  to  run  to  the  village. 
The  winner  of  the  race  to  the  village  was  to  become  holy,  and  red  ointment 
was  to  be  put  on  his  body.  If  the  winner  was  a  woman  she  lived  with 
the  priest  until  the  season  was  over;  if  a  man,  he  wore  a  holy  robe  and 
was  anointed  by  the  priests  during  the  whole  season.  In  the  race, 
Proud-Boy  ran  near  by  the  girl,  but  he  could  not  keep  up  with  her,  for  she 
was  a  swift  runner.  Everybody  was  present  when  the  tree  was  carried 
into  the  village  and  set  in  place.  Proud-Boy  wore  his  paint  and  fine 
clothing  all  the  time,  for  he  was  always  on  the  lookout  for  the  girl.  His 
clothing  consisted  of  a  buffalo  hide  string,  about  two  feet  long  and  about 
two  inches  wide,  which  was  tanned  on  one  side  and  had  hair  on  the  other 
side.  The  ceremony  was  performed,  visiting  tribes  returned  to  their 
homes,  and  the  Kitkehahki  were  left  alone  in  the  village. 

That  summer  the  Kitkehahki  went  buffalo  hunting.  They  killed 
many  buffalo.  The  young  men  in  the  tribe  consecrated  many  buffalo 
and  took  the  meat  to  the  lodge  of  the  priests.  The  meat  was  jerked,  and 
it  was  decided  that  they  were  to  have  another  ceremony,  similar  to  the 
one  they  had  had  before.  The  Kitkehahki  returned  to  the  village,  and 
early  in  the  spring  a  runner  was  sent  out  again  to  invite  other  tribes  to 
the  ceremony.  The  tribes  came  together  again.  Proud-Boy  watched 
for  the  girl.  He  saw  her.  She  was  dressed  in  beautiful  garments.  She 
had  a  buckskin  skirt,  and  her  dress  was  of  young  buffalo  calf  skin,  tanned 
and  dyed  black.  Her  leggings  were  of  buffalo  hide,  and  young  calf  hoofs 
were  hung  down  the  sides  of  them.  Her  moccasins  were  also  black  buf- 
falo hide.  The  boy  went  home  and  told  his  father  that  he  thought  it  was 
time  he  had  something  to  wear.  His  father  gave  him  a  piece  of  buckskin 
and  a  buckskin  string  to  tie  about  his  waist.  He  was  disappointed,  for 
he  wanted  leggings.  He  went  to  his  aunt 's  and  she  made  the  boy  a  pair 
of  elk  moccasins.  The  boy  painted  up  the  best  he  could,  and  as  he 
dressed  he  said  to  himself:  "I  have  laid  away  my  buffalo  string.  I  am 
getting  to  be  a  young  man." 

The  ceremony  was  performed.  Again  the  people  went  many  miles 
away  to  get  the  tree.  Some  rode  horses  and  others  walked.  Proud-Boy 


320  THE  ORIGIN  OP  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

stayed  around  where  he  could  see  the  girl.  After  they  had  found  the 
pole  and  given  it  to  the  men  on  horseback  to  carry,  a  command  was 
given  for  the  people  who  were  on  foot  to  race  to  the  village.  Proud-Boy 
ran  near  the  girl  until  she  went  ahead  of  him.  He  lost  sight  of  her,  but 
he  kept  on,  and  when  he  reached  the  village  he  saw  the  girl  sitting  by  the 
priests;  and  he  at  once  knew  that  she  had  won  the  race.  Some  said  the 
girl  had  not  won  fairly,  for  they  had  seen  some  one  carrying  her  on  horse- 
back. Because  there  was  some  doubt,  the  people  agreed  to  go  after 
another,  so  that  the  race  might  be  run  again.  When  the  girl's  father 
found  out  that  the  race  was  to  be  run  again,  he  went  to  the  priests  and 
asked  that  the  race  be  put  off  until  the  next  day.  The  priests  agreed  to 
this.  The  girl  was  sent  home.  Her  father  took  a  small  calf  robe  and 
painted  the  inside  red.  "This,"  he  said,  "my  daughter,  you  shall  wear 
to-morrow  in  the  race." 

The  next  day  a  crier  went  through  the  village  to  tell  the  people  to  get 
ready  to  run.  The  girl  had  on  only  her  black  skirt  and  black  moccasins, 
and  the  calf  robe  over  her  shoulders.  She  looked  beautiful,  the  boy 
thought.  They  went  near  the  timber;  then  a  command  was  given  for 
the  people  to  run.  They  ran.  People  on  horseback  rode  on  either  side 
of  the  procession.  Proud-Boy  ran  as  fast  as  he  could.  He  did  not  try 
to  get  near  the  girl,  for  he  wanted  to  run  his  best.  Finally  he  began  to 
give  out.  Then  he  saw  to  his  right  something  red,  waving  or  floating  in 
the  air.  Proud-Boy  looked,  and  it  was  the  girl.  The  red  calf  robe  was 
tied  about  her  shoulders  and  with  her  left  hand  she  held  her  skirt.  The 
boy  held  his  breath,  for  he  saw  that  the  girl  was  passing  everybody,  even 
some  men  whom  Proud-Boy  knew  to  be  good  runners.  Proud-Boy  ran 
on  with  all  of  his  strength,  and  as  he  ran  he  watched  the  red  robe.  When 
Proud-Boy  saw  that  the  girl  passed  everybody  and  was  in  the  lead,  he 
gave  a  war  whoop  and  fell  exhausted.  When  he  arose  he  said:  "Now 
I  know  that  she  beat  them  all.  This  day  I  call  upon  the  heavens  to 
help  me  make  her  my  wife.  I  shall  go  upon  the  war-path,  capture 
ponies,  kill  the  enemy,  and  take  a  scalp ;  then  I  can  claim  her.  I  shall 
give  many  ponies  for  her,  and  the  head  priest  shall  lead  me  to  her  lodge. 
My  father  thinks  I  am  still  young,  but  I  feel  that  I  am  now  a  man."  All 
this  the  boy  said  as  he  walked  to  the  place  where  the  priests  were  seated. 
He  saw  the  girl  seated  in  front  of  the  priests.  The  priests  were  satisfied ; 
for  as  one  of  the  priests  arose  and  anointed  her  body  with  the  holy 
ointment,  they  all  sang.  As  the  pole  was  being  raised  and  put  into  the 
hole,  and  as  they  were  shouting  and  crying  to  the  gods,  Proud-Boy, 
although  not  yet  a  warrior,  stood  among  them  and  shouted.  His  cry 
was  really  a  petition  to  the  gods  to  favor  him  and  to  help  him  to  win 


PROUD  BOY  AND  THE  ANIMAL  MEDICINE.  321 

the  girl  who  was  now  sitting  before  the  priests.  The  singing  was  kept 
up  by  the  priests  for  one  whole  day  and  one  whole  night. 

The  next  day  the  girl  was  taken  to  the  lodge  of  the  priests  and  there 
she  had  to  live.  Her  parents  then  had  to  live  with  these  people,  although 
they  belonged  to  the  Kawarakis,  a  band  of  the  Pitahauirat.  The  girl 
had  to  sit  under  the  bundle  all  of  the  time.  She  did  not  like  this,  for  she 
wanted  to  go  out  and  play  with  the  girls,  but  the  old  man  spoke  to  her 
and  said:  '  'You  have  holy  ointment  upon  your  body  and  you  yourself 
are  holy.  You  must  sit  still,  for  if  you  should  go  out  and  make  any 
noise,  the  winds  would  hear  you  and  would  not  send  buffalo.  If  you 
play  you  will  make  a  noise  upon  the  ground  that  will  scare  the  buffalo 
away,  and  the  gods  in  the  west  would  hear  the  noise  and  they  would  think 
that  the  people  did  not  want  cool  days  in  the  summer,  nor  rain."  So 
the  girl  lived  with  the  old  people  and  became  the  keeper  of  the  sacred 
bundles.  Proud-Boy  would  go  at  night  and  peep  into  the  lodge  to  see 
the  girl. 

The  time  to  go  on  the  buffalo  hunt  came.  On  the  journey  she  had  to 
carry  the  sacred  bundle  upon  her  back.  When  the  journey  was  ended 
the  bundle  was  placed  upon  the  sticks  and  she  sat  down  in  front  of  it. 
Proud-Boy  would  pass  by  many  times  before  the  bundle  was  taken  into 
the  tipi  and  hung  up.  When  this  had  been  done,  the  girl  had  to  go  and 
sit  down  under  the  bundle.  The  people  had  not  gone  very  far  when  they 
found  many  buffalo.  The  men  went  out  and  surrounded  the  buffalo. 
They  killed  and  brought  the  meat  to  the  priests'  lodge,  where  the  girl 
was.  The  tongue  and  heart  were  boiled  for  the  girl  and  this  was  all  she 
ate.  When  the  people  had  killed  many  buffalo  and  had  plenty  they 
went  back  to  their  village.  As  they  neared  the  village,  scouts  were  sent 
on  ahead  to  see  if  the  corn,  beans,  and  squash  were  good.  The  runners 
went,  and  when  they  came  back,  they  brought  corn,  beans,  and  squash 
and  reported  good  crops. 

When  the  people  entered  the  village,  corn,  beans,  and  squash  were 
gathered,  and  the  priests  gave  a  ceremony ,  so  that  the  girl  might  be  washed. 
The  priests  met,  the  bundle  was  opened,  and  sweet-smelling  grass  was  put 
upon  glowing  coals  that  were  now  placed  in  the  southwest  of  the  lodge. 
The  contents  of  the  bundle  were  waved  over  the  smoke  and  were  again 
placed  upon  the  wrappers.  The  girl  was  taken  to  the  smoke  and  a  ritual 
was  recited  while  the  holy  ointment  was  removed  from  her.  The  eyes 
of  the  gods  were  wrested  from  her  after  the  ointment  had  been  removed, 
so  that  she  became  the  same  as  any  other  girl.  Before  telling  her  of  her 
freedom,  the  high  priest  took  some  wild  sage  and  dipped  it  into  a  bowl 
of  water.  With  this  he  made  motions  about  the  girl,  but  did  not  touch 


322  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

her.  Then  she  was  taken  by  her  grandfather,  who  took  some  fresh  fat 
from  the  holy  meat  and  greased  her  with  it.  She  was  told  to  be  seated  on 
the  north  side  of  the  lodge.  When  the  singing  was  all  finished,  all  offer- 
ings of  meat  and  corn  were  first  given  to  the  girl,  then  to  the  others.  The 
girl  was  given  meat,  then  the  priest  took  her  by  the  hand  and  placed  her 
by  her  grandfather,  who,  after  the  ceremony,  led  her  home. 

At  this  time  Proud-Boy  told  his  father  that  he  wanted  to  marry  the 
girl.  The  girl  was  now  known  as  Yellow-Corn,  for  the  reason  that  she 
represented  Mother- Yellow-Corn.  The  father  spoke  and  said:  "My 
son,  you  can  not  marry  Yellow-Corn.  You  have  not  walked  over  this 
earth  to  the  enemy's  camp,  you  have  no  scalps  over  your  tipi,  you  have 
no  ponies  staked  out  around  our  tipi,  you  have  not  brought  in  any  small 
game,  and  you  can  not  yet  shoot  the  buffalo  under  the  shoulder."  "I 
know, "  said  the  boy,  "but  my  father  is  a  great  chief.  He  can  give  many 
ponies  for  his  son.  He  has  men  who  will  kill  buffalo  for  his  son.  My 
father  has  many  scalps.  What  more  do  you  want?"  But  his  father 
said:  "My  son,  you  can  not  have  Yellow-Corn,  for  you  have  made  no 
sacrifice  to  the  heavens;  the  heavens  have  not  seen  nor  received  your 
smoke.  Do  not  think  about  marrying  Yellow-Corn.  You  shall  marry 
when  I  think  best."  The  boy  was  sad. 

That  winter  he  was  not  the  same  as  usual.  His  grandfather  made  him 
bow  and  arrows  and  he  wandered  about  over  the  country.  In  the  spring 
his  people  had  many  ceremonies,  but  the  other  tribes  were  not  invited. 
The  following  winter  the  people  went  on  a  buffalo  hunt  and  brought 
much  dried  buffalo  meat  back  to  camp.  In  the  meantime  the  boy  grew 
up,  but  he  was  not  the  same  boy  that  he  had  been.  He  sat  about  his 
father's  lodge  with  his  head  down,  until  he  went  to  his  bed.  He  did  not 
care  to  play  with  the  boys  nor  to  listen  to  the  talk  of  the  old  men.  The 
next  spring  some  people  came  from  the  other  tribe  and  told  that  Yellow- 
Corn  had  married  the  greatest  warrior  in  the  village.  The  boy  heard 
it.  He  was  angry.  He  would  not  speak  to  anybody.  His  mind  was 
disturbed.  He  threw  away  his  bow  and  arrows.  The  robe  that  had  been 
given  him  he  laid  aside.  The  leggings  that  had  been  given  him  he  gave 
to  his  mother. 

Again  the  time  came  for  the  people  to  go  hunting.  They  went  north 
to  the  Platte  River,  where  there  was  thick  timber  and  hills.  The  thick 
timber  was  full  of  owls  and  birds  of  all  kinds  and  many  wonderful  ani- 
mals. On  the  side  of  the  hills  were  holes,  and  the  people  said  that  they 
were  the  homes  of  the  water-dogs,  which  possessed  magic  power.  One 
morning  Proud-Boy  awoke  and  went  to  the  timber.  He  came  to  the 
timber.  He  came  to  the  homes  of  the  water-dogs,  and  while  he  was  there 


PROUD  BOY  AND  THE  ANIMAL  MEDICINE.  323 

the  people  broke  camp  and  went  off.  Proud-Boy's  people  looked  for 
him,  but  could  not  find  him.  Some  of  the  people  said  that  they  had  seen 
him  going  towards  the  timber,  and  the  father  said,  "My  son  must  have 
been  eaten  by  wild  animals  in  the  timber."  The  people  began  to  mourn 
for  Proud-Boy,  for  they  thought  that  he  must  be  dead. 

Proud-Boy  went  through  the  timber.  Now  and  then  he  came  to  a 
hilly  place  thick  with  cedars  on  the  side  of  the  hills.  There  the  water- 
dogs  dwelt.  In  the  timber  he  saw  many  wonderful  birds.  The  magpies 
came  close  to  him  and  all  kinds  of  birds  nocked  to  him,  and  the  owls 
hooted,  although  it  was  daytime;  but  Proud-Boy  did  not  hear  or  see  the 
birds.  His  mind  was  always  on  the  girl  he  loved  and  he  thought  of  her 
constantly.  He  came  to  a  thick  willowy  place  and  there  he  saw  a  girl, 
whom  he  thought  to  be  the  girl  he  loved.  He  ran  to  her  and  threw  his 
arms  about  her  neck;  then  he  found  it  was  a  black-tail  deer.  The  deer 
jumped  up  and  threw  him  to  the  ground.  He  stood  up  and  looked  about. 
For  a  time  he  felt  dazed;  then  he  cried.  While  he  was  crying,  he  heard 
the  owls  hooting  close  by  him.  Then  he  heard  a  bear,  then  a  mountain- 
lion  roaring  close  by  him.  He  felt  afraid  and  a  shiver  ran  over  him. 
He  said:  "Kill  me,  for  I  no  longer  care  to  live.  The  one  I  cared  for 
is  gone  from  me."  Again  he  heard  some  strange  sounds.  The  screech- 
owl  hooted  so  near  him  that  it  made  him  sleepy  and  he  lay  down  and 
went  to  sleep.  Towards  evening  before  sunset  he  awoke.  The  birds 
were  sitting  all  around  him  and  one  said:  "My  son,  we  take  pity  upon 
you.  You  are  poor  in  heart.  We  have  nothing  to  give  you  except  the 
root  that  you  see  in  the  center.  We  all  eat  it  when  we  are  sick.  We  all 
eat  it  when  we  are  wounded.  Take  a  piece  of  it.  Carry  it  with  you  and 
we  will  always  be  near  you. " 

Night  came,  and  the  owls  and  the  water-dogs  came  to  him  and  gave 
him  great  powers.  Towards  morning,  when  the  birds  were  flying  around 
in  a  circle,  singing  their  songs,  a  Buffalo  came  and  said:  "My  son,  you 
shall  have  a  robe.  My  power  is  the  Sun.  When  you  get  a  robe,  paint 
upon  it  the  symbol  of  the  Sun ;  and  if  you  should  ever  be  killed,  have  the 
robe  thrown  over  your  body  and  all  these  birds  and  animals  will  come 
and  wake  you  from  your  sleep.  Through  life  the  Sun  will  always  shine 
upon  you  and  warm  you.  "  The  Buffalo  went  off  and  the  boy  went  to 
sleep  again.  He  found  himself  in  the  animals'  lodge.  The  Bear  came 
to  him  and  said:  "We  are  of  four  kinds,  Grizzly,  Cinnamon,  Black,  and 
White  Bear.  I  represent  the  Grizzly  and  the  Cinnamon  Bear.  I  give 
you  power  to  have  a  spirit  like  mine.  You  shall  conquer  the  enemy. 
You  shall  know  about  the  different  roots  and  herbs,  so  that  you  can  make 
medicine.  When  you  go  to  your  people,  have  them  make  a  tipi  for  you, 


324  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

so  that  you  may  live  by  yourself.  When  you  have  the  tipi  finished, 
draw  my  picture,  the  Cinnamon  Bear,  on  the  south  side  of  the  entrance, 
and  draw  the  Grizzly  Bear  on  the  north  side  of  the  entrance.  We  will 
guard  your  tipi  always."  The  Mountain-Lion  said,  "Have  my  picture 
by  the  Cinnamon  Bear  and  instead  of  drawing  me  with  the  fore  legs 
upwards,  draw  me  as  I  stand  now,  only  with  my  mouth  wide  open." 
The  Buffalo  said,  "Have  pictures  of  us  all  around  the  tipi. "  The  Eagle 
said,  "Have  my  picture  at  the  back  of  the  tipi. "  The  Owls  spoke  and 
said,  "Have  our  pictures  one  on  either  side  of  the  Eagle;  the  Black 
Owl  on  the  north  side,  the  Red  Owl  on  the  south  side."  Then  all  of 
the  other  birds  said,  "Put  us  upon  your  tipi,  too."  The  Buffalo  arose 
and  said:  "My  son,  when  you  go  among  your  people  and  kill  your  first 
Buffalo,  let  it  be  a  Buffalo  bull.  That  bull  will  be  me,  and  my  spirit  will 
be  with  you  always.  Take  only  the  scalp  of  the  Buffalo  and  leave  the 
horns  on  it.  Hang  the  scalp  upon  a  pole  at  the  head  of  your  bed.  Now 
return  to  your  people.  "  As  Proud-Boy  arose,  the  birds  flew  up  into  the 
air  and  the  animals  ran  in  different  directions  through  the  timber. 

Proud-Boy  then  went  to  the  place  where  the  camp  had  been  and  found 
that  the  people  had  gone.  He  followed  their  trail  for  three  days  and 
three  nights.  When  he  came  near  the  camp  of  his  people  he  waited 
until  it  was  dark;  then  he  went  into  the  camp  and  found  his  father's  tipi. 
He  entered  it  and  sat  by  the  fireplace.  He  spoke  and  said,  "Mother, 
I  am  here."  His  mother  arose  and  kindled  the  fire.  When  it  blazed 
up  she  saw  by  its  light  that  her  son  was  sitting  there  naked,  with  only  a 
pair  of  moccasins  on.  She  made  a  noise  as  if  to  cry,  but  Proud-Boy 
said,  "Mother,  do  not  cry;  I  am  here. "  His  mother  made  a  big  fire,  then 
woke  her  husband.  When  the  father  saw  his  boy  he  did  not  say  anything, 
but  remained  in  bed.  The  mother  prepared  some  meat  for  him,  then 
spread  a  robe  upon  the  ground  and  told  him  to  lie  down. 

The  next  morning  Proud-Boy  was  gone,  but  he  returned  before  the 
people  started  off,  and  went  with  them.  When  in  camp  he  would  dress 
up  in  a  beautiful  robe,  leggings,  and  fine  moccasins.  He  carried  in  his 
right  hand  an  eagle  tail  for  a  fan.  His  face  was  painted  all  the  time.  He 
stood  around  where  the  boys  were  playing,  but  would  never  play.  When 
he  talked,  he  told  of  some  great  deeds  that  he  was  going  to  do  in  battle, 
and  sometimes  he  said  that  he  wanted  to  fight  somebody.  Frequently 
he  went  to  the  playgrounds  on  horseback.  His  horse  sometimes  had  red 
paint  on  its  nostrils,  on  its  shoulders,  and  on  its  thighs ;  also  at  the  root  of 
its  tail.  At  other  times  the  horse  was  painted  green,  yellow,  and  black, 
and  occasionally  white.  Proud-Boy  often  rode  past  the  boys  at  play, 
holding  his  eagle  fan  up  to  his  face,  so  that  he  could  not  be  seen.  While 


PROUD-BOY  AND  THE  ANIMAL  MEDICINE.  325 

the  boys  were  playing  he  would  ride  among  them  and  command  them  to 
stop  making  a  noise.  Then  he  would  tell  of  how  he  longed  to  fight  in 
battle;  of  how  he  would  kill  and  take  a  scalp.  After  he  had  boasted 
this  way  he  would  ride  to  his  tipi,  get  off  of  his  pony,  and  turn  it 
loose.  The  children  would  go  home  and  tell  how  Proud-Boy  acted 
and  what  he  said,  but  the  people  did  not  pay  any  attention.  The 
children  then  gave  him  the  name  of  Proud-Boy.  Still  he  came  every 
day,  either  riding  or  walking,  to  the  place  where  the  boys  were  playing, 
and  continued  to  boast. 

The  people  killed  many  buffalo  while  out  on  the  hunt.  After  they 
had  dried  the  meat  they  turned  eastward  and  started  to  their  village. 
When  they  came  to  their  village  they  had  many  ceremonies  of  thanks- 
giving for  their  successful  hunt,  and  they  offered  the  tongue  and  heart  of 
many  buffalo  to  the  gods  in  the  heavens.  They  did  not  have  to  go  on  the 
hunt  the  following  winter,  for  the  buffalo  came  in  droves  to  their  village. 

During  the  winter  Proud-Boy  asked  his  father  to  kill  a  young  buffalo 
bull  and  to  take  its  scalp,  leaving  the  horns  upon  it.  The  father  killed  a 
bull  and  brought  home  the  scalp,  which  was  tanned  and  fixed  up  as  the 
boy  directed.  He  also  asked  that  several  buffalo  be  killed  to  make  him 
a  tipi,  for  he  wanted  to  live  by  himself.  The  women  sewed  together  the 
tanned  skins,  and  while  they  worked  Proud-Boy  went  through  the  camp 
and  selected  men  whom  he  had  heard  were  good  at  drawing  pictures  and 
asked  them  to  paint  his  tipi.  The  men  came,  and  the  tipi  was  spread 
upon  the  ground  to  be  painted  as  Proud-Boy  directed.  The  first  picture 
drawn  was  that  of  the  Cinnamon  Bear,  which  was  at  the  outside  of  the 
entrance  to  the  southeast.  The  Bear  was  painted  standing,  with  its 
fore  legs  upward.  The  Grizzly  Bear  was  drawn  upon  the  northeast  side, 
north  of  the  entrance.  The  Mountain-Lion  was  then  drawn  next  to  the 
Cinnamon  Bear,  with  its  mouth  wide  open.  Buffalo  were  then  drawn 
all  around  the  tipi.  Then  the  Eagle  was  drawn  on  the  west  side  at  the 
top  of  the  tipi.  Then  the  Owls  were  drawn,  the  Red  on  the  south  side 
of  the  Eagle  and  the  Black  on  the  north  side  of  the  Eagle.  All  kinds 
of  birds  were  drawn  all  over  the  tipi.  When  this  was  done,  Proud-Boy 
told  his  father  to  select  women  to  go  out  and  cut  cedar  poles  for  the  tipi. 
Women  were  selected  and  the  poles  were  brought  and  prepared.  The 
tipi  was  then  folded  and  put  away. 

In  the  spring,  the  Kitkehahki  began  again  to  make  preparation  for 
the  big  ceremony.1  They  left  their  permanent  camp  and  selected  a 

1  In  the  race  there  was  a  willow  stuck  by  the  place  where  the  old  men  stood,  and 
whoever  should  come  out  first  was  to  take  the  willow  and  stick  it  in  the  ground, 
thus  marking  the  center  of  the  circle  in  which  to  hold  the  ceremony.  The  one  who 
did  this  received  presents,  though  he  did  not  keep  them,  for  they  were  offered  to 
the  gods. 


326  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

place  upon  the  Platte  River  to  hold  their  ceremony.  Runners  were 
sent  out  to  invite  the  other  tribes  to  come  and  take  part.  While  the 
people  were  waiting  for  the  different  tribes,  who  could  be  seen  approach- 
ing in  the  distance,  the  boys  were  playing  games.  Proud-Boy  joined 
them  and  talked  in  such  a  way  as  to  make  the  boys  believe  that  he  was 
a  great  warrior.  That  night  he  ordered  his  mother  to  put  up  his  tipi. 
The  tipi  was  put  up.  Dirt  was  piled  around  the  circle  of  the  lodge. 
Inside  the  lodge,  at  the  west  side,  was  also  piled  dirt,  so  that  there  was  a 
mound.  By  the  mound  was  placed  a  cedar  tree.  At  the  head  of  the 
•boy's  bed  was  hung  the  buffalo  scalp.  Upon  his  bed  the  robe  was 
spread.  It  had  a  picture  of  the  sun  and  all  kinds  of  birds  upon  it. 

After  the  lodge  was  completed,  Proud-Boy  took  his  pony  and 
painted  the  nostrils,  the  shoulders,  the  hips,  and  the  root  of  the  tail  with 
red  clay.  He  tied  some  eagle  feathers  to  the  tail  and  the  mane.  He 
dressed  in  his  robe,  leggings,  and  moccasins,  took  his  eagle  fan,  and  rode 
to  the  place  where  the  boys  were  playing.  As  he  rode  among  them,  he 
said,  "Boys,  I  am  going  to  watch  the  people  as  they  enter  the  village, 
and  when  I  see  the  girl  that  I  love  I  am  going  to  take  her  home  with  me. " 
As  the  tribes  approached  from  all  different  directions  and  entered  the 
village,  Proud-Boy  mounted  his  pony  and  rode  to  the  place  where  they 
entered  the  village.  He  watched  one  tribe  as  it  passed,  but  he  did  not 
isee  among  all  the  people  any  girl  that  he  cared  for.  Then  he  rode  back 
to  the  place  where  the  boys  were  playing  their  games  and  told  them  that 
he  had  not  seen  the  girl  he  loved  among  the  people.  The  next  day 
another  tribe  entered  the  village.  Proud-Boy  arrayed  himself  and  his 
pony  as  he  had  done  the  day  before.  Then  he  rode  among  the  boys  and 
;said,  "Boys,  I  am  going  to  watch  the  people  come,  and  if  I  see  the  girl 
I  love  I  shall  take  her  home  with  me. "  Proud-Boy  rode  to  the  entrance 
:of  the  village,  and  there  he  sat  straight  up  on  his  pony,  holding  his  eagle 
fan  over  his  face.  He  watched  and  watched  until  all  had  passed,  but 
the  girl  did  not  come.  He  went  to  the  boys  and  told  them  there  was 
no  girl  that  he  liked  among  the  people  who  came  that  day.  The  next 
day  another  tribe  came  from  the  east,  and  again  the  boy  arrayed  him- 
self and  rode  among  the  boys  and  said,  "Well,  boys,  I  am  going  again. " 
He  went  and  watched  as  he  had  done  before,  but  he  did  not  see  the  girl 
he  was  looking  for.  He  did  not  go  to  his  home,  but  rode  around  the 
village.  In  the  village  he  saw  all  of  the  people  crowded  around  his  tipi. 
They  did  not  go  near  it,  but  admired  it  from  a  distance.  They  thought 
that  it  was  a  wonderful  tipi,  and  they  marveled  at  the  pictures,  for  it  was 
the  first  tipi  with  pictures  upon  it  that  was  ever  seen  among  the  Kitke- 
hahki.  Some  said:  "Proud-Boy  must  be  a  wonderful  boy.  It  may 


PROUD  BOY  AND  THE  ANIMAL  MEDICINE.  327 

be  that  the  animals  took  pity  upon  his  spirit  and  gave  him  great  power 
when  he  was  in  the  woods  for  several  days. " 

While  Proud-Boy  was  listening  to  what  the  people  were  saying,  he 
saw  at  a  distance  some  people  coming  with  pack  ponies.  He  rode  to 
the  entrance  of  the  village  and  waited  until  they  came  up.  As  they 
came  nearer  he  saw  that  there  were  only  two  people,  an  old  woman  and 
a  young  girl.  He  watched  them  as  they  approached.  The  girl  looked 
up  at  him  and  he  saw  that  she  was  Yellow-Corn.  He  dashed  out  to 
meet  her,  and  as  he  rode  he  felt  a  great  happiness.  He  did  not  speak  to 
Yellow-Corn,  but  turning  to  the  old  woman  he  said:  "I  love  your  daugh- 
ter. I  have  come  to  take  her  with  me.  May  she  go? "  The  old  woman 
looked  at  the  young  man  and  she  remembered  that  his  people  had  always 
treated  her  daughter  well.  She  said,  "Yes,  she  may  go. "  Proud-Boy 
put  Yellow-Corn  upon  his  pony's  back  and  the  two  rode  off.  As  they 
came  near  the  place  where  the  boys  were  playing,  he  made  several  grunts, 
so  that  the  boys  would  notice  him.  Then  he  took  the  girl  to  his  tipi. 

When  they  reached  the  tipi,  Proud-Boy  helped  Yellow-Corn  from 
the  pony  and  turned  it  loose.  He  led  her  into  the  tipi.  She  sat  down 
upon  the  robe  and  looked  around  at  the  mysterious  things  in  the  tipi. 
Proud-Boy  went  out  and  told  his  mother  to  bring  some  food.  His 
mother  came  and  placed  before  them  a  wooden  bowl  of  pemmican  and 
water.  She  then  went  out  and  Proud-Boy  and  Yellow-Corn  ate  together. 
While  they  were  eating,  Proud-Boy  spoke  and  said:  "Yellow-Corn,  did 
you  know  that  I  cared  for  you?  Did  you  notice  me  in  all  the  ceremo- 
nies ?  Did  you  know  that  I  tried  to  be  near  you  in  the  race  ?  Did  you 
know  that  I  was  angry  and  sad  when  I  heard  that  you  were  married 
to  some  warrior?  I  went  off,  and  while  I  was  gone  I  got  these  things 
that  you  see.  I  did  not  bring  you  here  that  you  might  eat  and  then  go 
back  to  your  mother.  I  brought  you  to  my  tipi  to  stay  as  my  wife. 
You  are  the  first  woman  to  enter  my  tipi,  with  the  exception  of  my 
mother,  who  brings  me  my  food."  The  girl  said:  "I  knew  that 
you  loved  me.  I  saw  you  many  times,  but,  as  you  know,  women  have 
not  the  right  to  say  whom  they  shall  marry,  and  so  I  had  to  marry  the 
man  who  was  chosen  for  me.  It  will  be  best,  Proud-Boy,  that  I  go  to  my 
mother's  tipi.  This  is  the  first  time  that  I  have  been  separated  from 
her.  As  you  know,  I  have  a  husband,  who  is  a  great  warrior  and  is  not 
afraid  of  anybody.  He  has  killed  many  enemies  and  brought  scalps  and 
counted  coup.  He  will  soon  come  home,  for  he  has  been  gone  for  many 
moons. "  The  boy  said:  "Proud-Boy  knows  all  these  things,  but  Proud- 
Boy  learned  to  love  you  and  brought  you  to  his  tipi,  and  here  you  are 
to  stay.  He  is  not  afraid.  "  The  girl  at  last  consented  to  remain. 


328  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

After  Yellow-Corn's  mother  had  put  up  her  tipi,  she  began  to  look 
for  her  daughter.  She  went  to  different  tipis  and  at  each  place  she  was 
told  that  Proud-Boy  had  taken  her  daughter  to  his  tipi.  She  asked 
where  Proud-Boy's  tipi  was,  and  she  was  told  to  go  to  the  other  village, 
that  there  she  would  see  a  tipi  that  had  pictures  of  birds  and  animals 
upon  it.  The  mother  went  and  saw  the  tipi.  She  entered  and  said: 
"My  son,  I  have  come  after  my  daughter.  She  is  married  and  we  are 
expecting  her  husband  to  come  any  day.  He  has  been  gone  for  many 
moons.  He  is  a  warrior  and  has  many  brothers  who  are  not  afraid  of 
anybody.  "  But  Proud-Boy  said:  "Mother,  this  girl  has  been  in  Proud- 
Boy  's  mind  since  the  first  time  he  saw  her.  Now  Proud-Boy  has  brought 
her  to  his  tipi.  She  is  now  his  wife,  and  if  your  son-in-law  comes  home 
and  gets  angry  Proud-Boy  will  take  care  of  himself.  Return  home,  for 
Yellow-Corn  shall  make  her  home  with  me.' '  The  old  woman  arose  and 
went  home.  The  next  day  the  old  woman  went  and  again  asked  for 
her  girl,  but  the  girl  refused  to  go,  for  she  was  happy  with  Proud-Boy. 
Ceremonies  were  performed,  but  Proud-Boy  and  Yellow-Corn  remained 
in  their  tipi  all  the  time,  and  never  attended.  After  the  big  ceremony 
there  were  other  dances,  but  these  two  never  went. 

One  morning  some  one  yelled  and  said:  "There  is  a  straight  smoke 
going  up  over  the  hills  to  the  south.  It  is  the  smoke  of  some  warriors!  '' 
People  went  out  of  their  tipis  and  saw  the  smoke.  Then  men  riding  fine 
horses  and  holding  in  their  hands  long  poles,  with  scalps  upon  them,  were 
seen  coming  over  the  hills.  They  were  a  victorious  party  of  warriors. 
Men,  women,  and  children  ran  to  meet  them  and  to  learn  of  their  deeds. 
Some  one  yelled  and  said:  "These  are  the  warriors  who  went  out  some 
time  ago.  They  have  killed  people  and  taken  their  scalps  and  ponies." 
Proud-Boy  knew  what  was  coming,  so  he  told  Yellow-Corn  not  to  be 
afraid;  that  he  would  take  care  of  her.  When  the  victorious  warriors 
came  into  camp,  Yellow-Corn's  husband  was  told  that  his  wife  had  been 
carried  away  by  Proud-Boy  and  that  she  was  living  with  him.  The 
warrior  said  nothing,  but  went  to  his  own  home,  not  to  the  tipi  of  his  wife's 
mother.  Apparently  he  did  not  care  because  his  wife  had  left  him.  His 
brothers  came  into  the  tipi  where  he  sat  and  they  said:  "Brother,  you 
are  a  great  warrior.  The  chiefs  call  you  brave.  You  make  war  on  the 
enemy  and  bring  home  many  scalps  and  ponies.  You  have  made  buffalo 
holy.  Your  smoke  went  to  the  heavens.  You  are  anointed  by  the 
priest.  The  heavens  and  the  gods  know  you.  Will  you  let  Proud-Boy 
take  Yellow-Corn  from  you,  and  he  a  young  man  who  has  never  yet 
killed  a  buffalo,  and  who  has  never  walked  over  this  earth  to  attack  the 
enemy  in  his  own  camp  ?  Let  us  get  our  bows  and  arrows  and  kill  both 


PROUD-BOY  AND  THE  ANIMAL  MEDICINE.  329 

Proud-Boy  and  Yellow-Corn,  Then,  my  brother,  you  will  be  looked 
upon  as  a  great  warrior  and  you  can  marry  some  other  woman.  Come, 
my  brother."  This  is  the  way  these  warriors  talked  to  their  brother. 

At  last  he  gave  in  and  promised  his  brothers  that  he  would  help  kill 
the  two.  The  news  was  spread,  and  Proud-Boy's  father  was  told  that 
the  brothers  were  planning  to  kill  his  son.  The  father  told  his  boy,  and 
Proud-Boy  said:  "My  father,  I  am  a  young  man,  but  I  have  a  strong 
heart.  Tell  our  people  not  to  fight  for  me.  Let  them  come  and  kill  me. 
I  will  not  run.  When  they  have  killed  Yellow-Corn  and  me,  take  us  into 
my  tipi  and  lay  us  side  by  side  on  my  bed ;  then  spread  my  robe  over  us. 
Then  leave  the  tipi.  You  will  see  us  again."  The  man  looked  at  his 
son  and  wondered  if  he  could  come  to  life  again. 

In  the  evening  the  news  that  Yellow-Corn  and  Proud- Boy  were  to  be 
attacked  the  next  day  was  spread  throughout  the  village.  That  night 
Proud-Boy  took  the  root  that  had  been  given  him  while  he  was  in  the 
timber,  and  ate  of  it,  and  gave  some  of  it  to  Yellow-Corn.  Then  he  said: 
"Yellow-Corn,  will  you  stay  by  me?  Will  you  be  killed  with  me?" 
She  said,  "Yes,  it  is  all  right.  I  will  die  with  you. "  Then  the  boy  said: 
"Yellow-Corn,  do  not  be  frightened,  for  we  shall  come  to  life.  It  is  now 
time  that  people  should  know  who  I  am. " 

Early  in  the  morning  Proud-Boy  arose  and  went  out  of  the  tipi.  It 
was  a  clear  day  and  the  birds  were  singing.  He  called  Yellow-Corn  and 
said:  "Bring  the  buffalo  scalp.  Let  my  father,  the  Sun,  look  upon  it.  " 
The  scalp  was  brought  out  and  hung  outside  of  the  lodge.  Proud-Boy 
told  his  mother  to  cook  nothing  for  them.  His  father  was  out  watching. 
Proud-Boy  and  Yellow-Corn  went  into  the  tipi.  Proud-Boy  painted 
Yellow-Corn  and  gave  her  some  root  to  eat.  Some  people  in  the  village 
yelled  and  said,  "The  warriors  are  coming!"  The  boy  and  the  girl 
seated  themselves  in  front  of  the  buffalo  scalp.  The  men  came  and  rode 
by  them  and  around  them,  shooting  at  them  with  arrows.  Two  of  the 
men  had  guns  and  these  two  were  the  ones  who  shot  and  killed  them. 
The  other  men  rode  their  horses  over  them.  The  people  ran  from  their 
camp  to  see  the  dead  Proud-Boy.  His  father  told  the  men  to  put  up 
their  bows  and  arrows.  They  obeyed  and  rode  off. 

The  father  and  the  mother  took  the  dead  bodies  and  laid  them  upon 
Proud-Boy's  bed,  and  then  covered  them  with  the  painted  robe.  The 
entrance  to  the  tipi  was  then  closed.  The  people  stood  afar  off  and 
watched.  They  said:  "The  parents  do  not  cry,  and  the  bodies  have 
been  taken  into  the  tipi.  There  must  be  something  wonderful  in  the 
tipi. "  When  the  Sun  was  near  noon,  the  people  saw  a  straight  dust 
going  up  from  the  tipi.  They  pointed  to  the  dust.  There  were  noises  in 


330  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

the  tipi.  Mountain-Lions  and  Buffalo  were  bellowing,  Birds  were  sing- 
ing, and  Owls  hooting.  There  was  a  great  dust  coming  out  from  the  top 
and  sides  of  the  tipi.  The  noise  ceased  and  the  dust  went  away.  The 
news  went  through  the  village  that  wonderful  things  were  going  on  in 
Proud-Boy's  tipi.  Some  people  said,  "We  understood  the  animals  and 
the  birds  took  pity  on  Proud-Boy  and  gave  him  power."  Again  the 
dust  was  seen  and  the  noises  heard.  The  news  of  this  was  taken  to  the 
men  who  had  killed  the  boy  and  the  girl.  The  warrior  said:  "I  am  sorry 
that  I  killed  the  boy.  I  knew  that  the  boy  was  wonderful  when  I  heard 
that  he  had  a  wonderful  tipi,  but  it  can  not  be  helped  now."  The 
noises  continued  for  a  time,  then  subsided.  When  this  had  happened 
four  times  and  the  dust  had  settled,  Proud-Boy  came  out  of  the  tipi  and 
said:  "Mother,  prepare  food  for  us,  for  we  are  hungry."  This  was  in 
the  afternoon.  The  mother  boiled  some  meat  and  fed  Proud-Boy  and 
Yellow-Corn.  The  news  went  through  the  camp  that  Proud-Boy  and 
Yellow-Corn  were  alive,  and  the  men  who  had  killed  them  heard  of  it. 
The  next  morning  the  young  man  said:  "Father,  you  see  my  bow  and 
arrows,  my  shield  and  spear?  I  shall  not  use  them  to  fight  against  these 
men;  but  before  the  moon  disappears  every  one  of  them  shall  die. " 

The  next  morning  the  young  man  sat  in  his  tipi  and  took  from  under 
his  bed  a  water-dog.  This  he  pointed  toward  the  village  of  the  men. 
When  the  sun  was  high  the  leading  warrior  was  found  dead  in  his  bed. 
Every  day  after  that  a  man  died  until  all  of  the  men  who  had  anything 
to  do  with  the  killing  of  the  boy  were  dead.  The  people  knew  why  the 
men  had  died  and  did  not  question.  They  said:  ' '  Let  us  make  Proud-Boy 
our  chief."  But  the  boy  said:  "No,  I  can  not  be  chief.  I  will  be  a 
medicine-man.  I  will  cure  people  of  their  sickness.  I  will  teach  my 
people  to  do  wonderful  things.  My  wife  will  wait  on  the  women,  for  she 
will  know  how  to  prescribe  for  them. "  From  that  time  Proud-Boy  was 
a  great  medicine-man.  All  the  people  painted  their  tipis  in  imitation 
of  his. 

89.   THE  BEAR  MEDICINE-MAN.1 

Many  years  ago  when  the  people  lived  near  Fremont,  Nebraska,  a 
little  boy  wandered  away  from  the  village  and  went  into  the  thick  timber. 
There  he  found  many  Magpies.  He  tried  to  shoot  some  of  the  birds,  but 
he  could  not  hit  them.  He  finally  ran  after  one.  It  would  fly  up  and  light 

1  Told  by  Little-Chief,  Chaui.  This  story  is  generally  related  during  the  Bear 
ceremony.  It  is  also  related  outside  of  the  ceremonial  lodge  to  children,  and  is 
especially  supposed  to  inform  the  poor  boys  that  the  bears  are  their  friends,  and 
that  they  could  count  on  securing  mysterious  power  from  the  bear  family  if  they 
approach  them  in  the  proper  spirit. 


THE  BEAR  MEDICINE-MAN.  331 

on  a  limb  a  short  distance  away.  The  boy  thought  that  he  could  surely  kill 
it.  Every  time  he  shot  at  it,  it  would  make  a  screeching  sound.  In 
following  the  bird  the  boy  could  almost  make  out  that  it  was  calling  him 
whenever  it  made  the  screeching  sound.  In  the  evening  the  bird  seemed 
to  lead  the  boy  to  the  lakes  where  there  were  many  bulrushes  and  cane- 
brakes,  etc.  The  boy  would  then  pay  no  more  attention  to  the  Magpie, 
He  went  into  the  ponds  and  dug  up  artichokes  and  stems  of  bulrushes 
and  ate  them.  Then  he  would  lie  down  in  a  pile  of  dried  rushes.  The 
next  day  the  Magpie  would  return  and  the  boy  would  follow  it  and  try  to 
kill  it.  The  boy  did  not  know  that  he  was  lost.  For  four  days  and 
nights  he  wandered  through  the  thick  timber  and  over  the  ponds.  •  .  ; 

One  night  the  boy  had  a  dream.  He  saw  a  man  standing  before  him, 
all  painted  black ;  he  had  a  big  bunch  of  feathers  on  the  top  of  his  head. 
The  man  said:  "For  several  days  you  have  been  trying  to  kill  a  bird. 
You  have  followed  it  from  one  place  to  another.  That  bird  is  the  errand 
bird  of  the  medicine-lodge  of  the  island.  I  have  come  to  tell  you  that 
I  am  that  bird.  You  must  return  to  your  people  and  after  several  years 
you  must  come  here  again.  The  people  are  looking  for  you  and  they 
think  you  are  dead.  You  will  find  me  in  this  timber  again  when  you 
come."  When  the  boy  woke  up  he  found  that  the  sun  was  up  high.  As 
he  started  he  saw  the  Magpie.  He  followed  the  Magpie  through  the 
timber  and  at  last  they  came  to  the  edge  of  the  woods  and  the  boy  then 
saw  where  he  was.  He  returned  to  his  village,  and  it  was  told  through- 
out the  village  that  the  boy  who  had  been  lost  had  come  back.  The  boy 
told  his  parents  that  he  had  wandered  over  the  ponds  and  was  taken  care 
of  by  the  birds. 

It  happened  at  this  time  that  the  Skidi  made  their  village  near  to 
these  Chaui.  The  Skidi  were  great  medicine-men,  but  they  were  jealous 
of  other  people  who  became  medicine-men.  Among  the  Skidi  was  one 
leading  medicine-man  who  seemed  to  understand  all  the  powers  which 
the  animals  possessed.  He  was  known  to  be  a  wizard.  This  man  was 
known  to  have  killed  a  number  of  men.  He  also  was  known  to  visit  the 
graves  and  there  dig  up  human  ears,  hands,  and  hearts.  These,  it  was 
said,  he  used  in  killing  other  people.  The  people  were  afraid  of  him. 
When  he  invited  anybody  to  eat  with  him  they  knew  that  they  had  to 
eat  some  part  of  a  human  body. 

Now  this  Skidi  heard  of  the  little  boy.  He  invited  him  to  his  tipi. 
The  boy  entered  the  tipi  of  the  Skidi,  and  when  he  sat  down  he  was  given 
a  pipe  to  smoke.  After  he  had  smoked,  a  wooden  bowl  was  placed 
before  him  filled  with  mush.  The  boy  ate  of  the  food  which  was  in  the 
bowl.  After  he  had  eaten,  he  went  to  his  home. 


332  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

A  few  days  afterwards  the  Skidi  broke  camp  and  went  away.  The 
boy  thought  to  himself  that  it  was  time  to  return  to  the  timber.  When 
he  went  into  the  timber  he  found  the  Magpie  again,  and  when  the  Magpie 
saw  the  boy  it  flew  from  one  limb  to  the  other,  making  a  screeching 
sound,  and  the  boy  could  see  that  the  Magpie  was  glad  to  see  him.  The 
Magpie  led  the  boy  around  through  the  timber.  Finally  it  came  to  the 
boy  in  a  dream  and  said:  "Something  is  wrong  with  you.  I  will  hasten 
now  to  take  you  into  the  lodge  of  the  animals,  for  you  must  not  remain 
in  your  present  condition."  The  next  day  the  boy  woke  up  and  followed 
the  Magpie  around  until  they  came  to  a  pond.  Here  the  boy  lay  down 
to  sleep.  When  he  woke  up  he  found  himself  at  another  place.  (A 
song  was  taught  the  boy  to  be  sung  in  the  medicine-man 's  lodge,  where 
it  tells  of  his  lying  down  to  sleep  in  one  place  and  waking  up  in  another.) 
The  boy  lay  down  again  and  he  dreamed  that  he  was  lying  upon  the 
fireplace  in  the  lodge  of  the  animals.  With  him  in  the  lodge  was  a 
Turtle. 

When  the  boy  woke  up  he  found  himself  at  another  place.  Then  he 
began  to  dig  into  the  earth.  He  found  canes  and  bulrushes  growing  all 
around.  When  he  went  to  sleep  again  he  saw  a  man  covered  with  mud. 
Fire  came  from  his  mouth  and  eyes.  He  said:  "My  son,  you  have  been 
lying  upon  my  back  for  some  time.  I  moved  around.  You  found  your- 
self at  different  places,  but  I  was  moving  around.  I  am  the  Turtle.  I  am 
the  fireplace  of  the  animal  lodges.  I  will  tell  you  one  thing  which  you 
can  do  to  try  my  power.  Make  a  bow  out  of  an  ash  tree.  Then  take  a 
cane  and  sharpen  it.  Put  soft  downy  feathers  upon  the  cane  and  put 
downy  feathers  upon  the  bow.  When  you  want  to  do  any  sleight-of- 
hand  jump  out  from  the  animals'  lodge.  Run  around  the  fireplace 
with  the  bow  and  reed  arrows.  When  you  have  gone  around  four  times, 
then  stand  in  the  west,  facing  east.  Take  aim,  shoot  at  the  turtle  in 
the  back,  and  the  turtle,  which  is  the  fireplace,  will  move  away.1 
This  is  all  I  can  tell  you  now.  You  are  not  well  and  the  animals  in 
the  lodge  know  of  it.  They  can  not  help  you,  for  there  is  nothing  that 
can  be  done  for  you. "  The  boy  woke  up  and  wondered  why  the  Magpie 
and  Turtle  had  spoken  to  him  in  that  way.  When  the  boy  went  through 
the  timber  he  found  the  Magpie.  The  Magpie  came  to  the  boy  and  sat 
in  the  tree.  It  said:  "My  brother,  you  are  not  well  and  you  are  in 
trouble.  This  night  I  shall  ask  the  animals  in  the  lodge  to  take  you  in.  " 
The  Magpie  went  away.  The  boy  woke  up  and  looked  around.  After 
a  while  he  saw  in  the  ponds  sparks  of  fire.  Then  he  heard  something 

1  The  fireplace  in  the  ceremony  of  at  least  one  Skidi  medicine-lodge  is  shaped 
and  painted  like  a  great  turtle. 


THE  BEAR  MEDICINE-MAN.  333 

like  a  drum  and  then  yelling.  Sometimes  he  would  see  many  sparks  of 
fire  going  up.  He  thought  he  saw  many  animals  swimming  through 
the  ponds  and  coming  nearer  to  him.  The  boy  had  this  time  strange 
sensations  running  through  him.  He  thought  his  hair  stood  up;  then 
he  fell  over  and  knew  no  more. 

When  he  awoke  he  was  sitting  by  the  fireplace.  He  looked  around 
and  he  saw  all  kinds  of  animals  sitting  in  groups  in  the  lodge.  The 
Beavers  seemed  to  be  the  leaders  of  the  medicine-men  in  this  lodge. 
He  saw  the  Magpie  sitting  on  the  south  side  of  the  entrance.  These  two 
were  the  errand  people  for  the  lodge.  The  Magpie  then  flew  up  and 
around  the  lodge.  It  stopped  at  the  entrance  and  stood  there.  This 
was  all  as  the  boy  had  seen  it  in  his  dreams.  Black  mud  covered  his 
body.  A  big  bunch  of  Magpie  feathers  was  upon  his  head.  He  said  to 
the  animals:  "My  brother  feasted  with  a  man  who  had  animal  power. 
He  fed  him  with  scrapings  from  a  buffalo  hide.  He  mixed  this  stuff 
with  white  clay  and  some  kind  of  medicine.  When  the  boy  ate  this 
there  was  a  little  ball  of  clay  formed  in  his  stomach.  That  little  ball  of 
clay  has  been  growing  until  now  it  is  large.  "  For  the  first  time  the  boy 
heard  this.  He  felt  strangely  about  his  stomach,  but  had  not  paid  any 
attention  to  it.  The  Magpie  continued  and  said:  "Animals,  I  wait 
upon  you.  I  carry  messages  for  you.  I  have  never  asked  anything  of 
you.  To-day  I  come  to  you  with  a  poor  heart.  I  ask  you  to  take  pity 
upon  this  brother,  so  that  he  may  live."  The  Magpie  sat  on  a  limb  near 
the  entrance  of  the  lodge. 

When  the  animals  heard  what  the  Magpie  said  there  was  great  shout- 
ing all  over  the  animals'  lodge.  Each  animal  made  a  noise,  so  that  there 
was  much  noise  in  the  lodge.  When  the  noise  died  away  the  Beavers 
asked  the  Magpie  what  he  meant,  and  the  Magpie  said:  "I  have  told 
you.  This  boy  has  a  ball  of  clay  in  his  stomach  and  that  ball  is  growing 
within  him.  If  that  ball  of  clay  is  not  removed  it  will  continue  to  grow 
until  he  will  burst  and  die."  Then  the  Beavers  said:  "Animals,  we 
have  before  us  a  human  being.  He  is  in  trouble.  We  will  first  visit  him 
and  see  if  we  can  remove  this  ball  of  clay  from  him. "  There  was  great 
shouting,  much  noise  and  singing.  The  Beavers  went  to  the  boy.  They 
jumped  over  him  several  times.  Then  they  turned  on  the  boy  and 
squirted  water  all  over  him.  They  touched  him  with  their  mouths  and 
made  grunting  sounds.  After  this  they  went  to  their  places  and  the 
leader  said:  "Animals,  it  is  hard.  We  can  not  do  anything  for  the  boy. " 
All  of  the  animals  failed  to  help  the  boy.  Then  they  decided  that  the 
boy  should  go  to  another  animals'  lodge  which  was  farther  up  the  Platte 
River.  The  Magpie  said,  "I  will  take  him  there." 


334  THB  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

The  next  day  the  boy  found  himself  upon  dry  land,  and  for  the  first 
time  he  noticed  that  there  was  a  heavy  weight  in  his  stomach.  The 
boy  saw  the  Magpie  and  followed  it.  For  several  days  they  traveled 
until  they  arrived  at  the  banks  of  the  Platte  River.  There  the  boy  lay 
down  and  went  to  sleep.  He  was  awakened  by  a  great  noise.  He  sat 
up,  looked  around,  and  again  he  saw  fire  in  the  water  in  different  places. 
Sometimes  it  was  like  a  lot  of  hot  coals  coming  up  in  the  water.  At 
another  time,  when  he  saw  these  hot  coals  in  the  water,  it  seemed  as 
if  something  were  blowing  through  the  fire  and  the  sparks  scattered  out. 
The  boy  had  a  strange  feeling.  He  was  again  knocked  over,  and  when 
he  woke  up  he  was  in  the  lodge  of  the  animals.  He  saw  the  Magpie 
sitting  there.  The  Magpie  said:  "My  brother  here  was  taken  into  the 
lodge  at  Pahuk.  They  could  not  do  anything  for  him,  so  they  sent  him 
to  this  lodge  and  I  came  with  him."  When  the  animals  looked  at  the 
boy  they  said,  "If  the  lodge  at  Pahuk  can  not  do  anything,  we  can  not 
do  anything. " 

The  Magpie  took  the  boy  out  again  and  they  went  to  another  place 
called  Spring-Mound,  on  the  banks  of  the  Republican  River.  The  boy 
was  placed  on  the  ground  where  the  spring  was.  He  was  taken  into 
the  lodge.  Most  of  the  animals  in  the  lodge  were  Catfish,  Mink,  Rac- 
coons, Otters,  Beavers,  and  a  very  few  birds.  They  could  not  help  the 
boy  here.  He  was  now  weak.  When  this  lodge  failed  to  do  anything 
for  him,  the  Magpie  told  the  boy  to  follow  again  and  they  would  go  to 
the  lodge  at  Pahuk.  The  boy  walked  back.  The  ball  of  clay  had  grown 
larger,  so  that  now  his  stomach  protruded.  He  became  very  weak  and 
thin.  When  he  walked  he  had  to  use  his  bow  for  a  cane.  He  was 
nearly  dead,  so  he  decided  that  if  he  got  to  Pahuk  he  would  lie  down 
upon  the  place  where  the  Turtle  had  been.  If  he  died  there  it  would  be 
well.  Just  as  he  reached  the  banks  of  the  river  he  found  he  could  go  no 
farther.  He  fainted  and  fell. 

The  Magpie  entered  the  lodge,  and  the  animals  with  their  power  took 
the  boy  in.  The  Magpie  again  begged  the  animals  to  help  the  boy.  The 
animals  said  that  they  could  not  do  anything,  but  that  there  was  one 
animal  who  was  classed  with  the  animal  medicine-men ;  that  he  controlled 
all  the  lodges  of  the  animals ;  that  he  it  was  who  carried  the  war  club ; 
that  he  could  do  many  wonderful  things ;  that  if  there  were  any  of  the 
birds  who  were  willing  to  go  for  this  being,  to  speak.  They  said,  "If 
this  animal  does  not  help  the  boy,  then  nothing  more  can  be  done." 
The  Magpie  flew  up  and  said,  "I  will  go  for  that  being."  Then  there 
was  a  great  noise  again  throughout  the  lodge,  for  they  were  glad  to  think 
that  the  Magpie  should  be  willing  to  help  the  boy.  The  Magpie  went 


THE  BEAR  MEDICINE-MAN.  335 

out  from  the  lodge  and  it  was  gone  for  some  time.  When  it  went 
back  to  the  lodge  it  flew  around  and  said:  "Animals,  he  is  coming.  I 
carried  presents  to  the  being  and  it  received  them  and  promised  to  help 
the  boy." 

For  some  time  afterwards  the  boy  noticed  a  great  dust  coming  in  at  the 
entrance.  After  the  dust  had  settled  the  boy  saw  that  the  being  was  a 
Bear.  The  Bear  was  given  a  seat  on  the  north  side  of  the  lodge  so  that 
it  could  look  at  the  sun.  The  leader  of  the  lodge  said:  "Father,  our 
errand  man  brought  a  human  being  into  the  lodge.  He  made  a  special 
request  as  an  errand  man  that  we  take  pity  on  this  boy.  We  have 
failed  to  help  him,  for  the  thing  which  he  has  in  his  stomach  can  not  be 
destroyed,  because  it  is  a  stone  and  it  is  hard.  We  have  called  upon  you 
to  help  us. "  The  Bear  then  said,  "If  the  boy  will  promise  me  one  thing 
I  will  remove  the  trouble  and  cure  him."  The  Bear  said  to  the  young 
man,  "When  I  cut  you  up,  I  want  to  eat  a  piece  of  your  liver."  The 
boy  told  the  Bear  that  it  was  all  right  and  that  he  could  have  a  piece  of 
his  liver.  The  Bear  then  stood  on  his  hind  legs  and  began  to  strike  upon 
his  breast.  All  at  once  it  cried  aloud,  rolled  in  the  dust,  and  then  stood 
up  again.  While  the  Bear  was  going  through  this  performance  the  boy 
was  told  to  lie  down.  The  Bear  jumped  at  the  boy  and  looked  at  him 
for  a  long  time.  The  Bear  began  to  blow  its  breath  upon  the  boy  until 
he  became  unconscious.  Then  the  Bear  took  its  right  paw  and  with  the 
least  claw  it  struck  the  breast  of  the  boy  and  tore  him  open.  The  Bear 
reached  into  the  stomach  of  the  boy  and  took  out  a  large  round  stone. 
This  he  threw  to  one  side.  Then  the  Bear  put  its  head  into  the  boy's 
breast.  When  it  lifted  up  its  head  it  had  a  piece  of  liver  in  its  mouth. 
After  the  Bear  ate  the  liver,  it  began  to  scream  and  yell,  and  it  jumped  on 
the  boy  and  blew  its  breath  upon  his  mouth  and  nostrils  and  upon  the 
opening.  The  animals  saw  the  opening  closing  up  until  it  was  closed  and 
well  again.  The  boy  lay  there  as  if  he  were  dead.  The  Bear  jumped 
to  one  side,  and  cried  out  for  the  animals  to  put  life  into  the  boy.  The 
animals  could  not  make  the  boy  alive.  Then  the  Magpie  flew  up  and 
begged  the  Bear  to  restore  him  to  life.  The  Bear  jumped  at  the  boy  and 
blew  its  breath  upon  his  nostrils  and  mouth  until  he  began  to  move.  The 
Bear  took  him  up  in  his  arms,  hugged  him,  and  then  he  began  to  breathe. 
The  Bear  jumped  away  from  the  boy  and  the  boy  stood  up.  The  Bear 
ran  around  and  the  boy  followed.  After  they  stopped  running,  the  Bear 
said,  "My  son,  from  now  on  you  shall  have  the  power  to  cut  people  open 
and  to  eat  their  liver. ''  This  had  never  been  done  before.  The  animals 
then  began  to  teach  the  boy  their  powers.  They  sent  him  home  and  the 
people  were  surprised  when  they  saw  him  coming. 


336  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

The  boy  had  great  power.  He  did  many  wonderful  things,  and  the 
people  talked  about  it.  The  news  reached  the  Skidi.  The  Skidi  man 
again  invited  the  boy  to  his  tipi.  This  time  the  man  would  not  eat  with 
the  Skidi.  They  talked  about  old  times  and  the  boy  told  the  man  that 
he  had  tried  to  poison  him,  but  that  the  animals  had  taken  him  into 
their  lodge  and  cured  him.  The  boy  opened  his  hand  to  the  man  and 
the  man  saw  a  bear  claw  there.  When  the  boy  closed  his  hand  and 
opened  it  again,  the  bear  claw  was  gone  and  the  man  fell  over  dead. 
Instead  of  the  Skidi  mourning  for  this  man  they  thanked  the  boy  for 
killing  him. 

The  boy  became  a  great  medicine-man.  It  was  through  him  that 
when  they  had  their  medicine  ceremonies  he  called  a  live  bear  to  visit 
them  in  their  lodge.  It  was  also  through  him  that  the  Bear-Men  used 
to  cut  people  open  and  eat  their  liver.  This  boy  also  belonged  to  the 
Deer  society.  At  one  time  the  medicine-man  and  the  Deer  family  were 
about  to  quarrel  over  their  power.  This  young  man  spoke  to  them  of 
taking  away  their  fireplace.  They  knew  then  that  he  had  power  to 
make  turtles  around  the  fireplace  move  away.  That  would  take  away 
their  power  also.  The  medicine-men  yielded  to  him.  They  were  afraid 
that  in  doing  some  of  the  animal  powers  they  might  kill  one  another  and 
that  the  Deer  family  might  not  be  able  to  heal  their  people. 

This  boy  became  a  great  medicine-man,  and  he  took  the  name  of 
Smoking-with-the-Bear.  Every  day  before  the  sun  came  up  he  went  out 
of  the  lodge,  sat  upon  it,  and  watched  the  sun  as  it  came  up.  Sometimes 
he  filled  his  pipe  and  smoked  to  the  sun  and  to  the  bear.  He  taught  his 
son  his  mysteries,  and  especially  the  secret  of  cutting  a  man  open.  This 
secret  died  when  Medicine-Sun  died,  for  he  was  the  last  of  the  bear  family 
who  learned  the  secrets  from  this  boy. 

90.  THE  BEAR  MEDICINE.1 

Many  years  ago  the  Pawnee  went  on  a  buffalo  hunt.  They  followed 
the  Platte  River.  When  they  had  journeyed  many  days  they  came  to  a 
rough  country  where  the  people  found  cedar  trees  and  they  knew  they 
were  getting  into  a  dangerous  country;  for  the  country  was  filled  with 
wild  animals,  such  as  grizzly  bears  and  mountain-lions.  Among  the 
people  was  a  man,  his  wife  and  son.  The  man  was  poor.  He  had  but 
one  pony  to  pack  his  tipi  and  other  things  upon.  The  boy  was  hand- 
some. Every  time  the  Pawnee  made  their  camp,  the  chief's  son  would 

1  Told  by  Medicine-Sun,  a  Skidi  priest  and  medicine-man  who  died  last  year. 
The  idea  in  relating  this  story  is  the  same  as  in  the  preceding  story.  It  further 
teaches  the  value  of  friendship  among  young  men. 


THE    BEAR    MEDICINE.  337 

visit  the  poor  boy  in  his  tipi  and  they  would  sleep  together.  For  many 
nights  the  chief's  boy  slept  with  the  poor  boy  in  the  poor  boy's  tipi. 
The  chief 's  son  then  coaxed  and  coaxed  the  poor  boy  to  go  to  his  tipi,  but 
he  would  not  go. 

On  one  of  their  journeys  they  came  to  a  mountainous  country,  to  a 
place  called  Mountains-Covered- With-Seeds.  The  camp  was  made  on 
the  south  side  of  the  mountains.  The  people  found  many  buffalo,  and 
they  killed  them  and  brought  the  meat  home,  jerked  and  dried  it.  They 
camped  for  several  days  at  this  place  while  they  were  drying  the  meat, 
and  the  chief's  son  stayed  with  the  poor  boy  all  the  time.  The  poor 
boy's  father  had  gone  with  the  party  to  kill  the  buffalo,  but  had  not 
killed  any  himself.  Some  other  men  called  him  to  help  skin  and  cut 
their  meat,  and  they  gave  him  some.  When  he  came  home  the  boy  felt 
ashamed  because  his  father  had  not  killed  any  buffalo.  While  they  were 
at  this  camp  the  father  had  told  the  boy  that  men  did  not  dare  go  into 
the  mountains  where  the  cedars  were,  and  if  they  did  they  never  came 
back;  for  there  were  mysterious  animals  among  the  cedars  that  killed 
people,  even  horses  and  ponies.  The  boy  listened  to  all  that  his  father 
said,  and  one  night  he  was  thinking  about  the  place,  although  the 
chief's  son  lay  beside  him  talking  to  him  and  playing  with  him.  He 
waited,  and  as  soon  as  the  chief's  son  went  to  sleep  the  boy  said  to  him- 
self: "I  will  now  go  and  be  devoured  by  those  mysterious  animals  in  the 
mountains."  So  the  boy  left  his  bed  and  went  out.  He  threw  his 
blanket  away  and  went  towards  the  mountains,  and  as  soon  as  he  began 
to  climb  the  mountains  he  began  to  cry.  He  climbed  to  the  top  of  the 
mountains  through  the  cedar  timber,  and  on  the  other  side  he  saw  a 
ravine  running  up  the  mountains.  He  followed  this  ravine  and  crossed 
a  little  stream  that  was  running  down  from  the  mountains,  and  on  the 
other  side  he  found  a  trail  that  was  much  like  a  human  pathway.  He 
followed  this  path  until  he  came  to  the  place  where  the  mountains  met 
and  there  he  found  a  hole.  He  thought  to  himself:  "This  is  what  I 
came  for;  I  shall  now  enter  this  den,  and  if  there  is  a  wild  animal  in  there 
he  can  devour  me.  I  am  poor  in  spirit  all  the  time  when  I  am  at  home. 
My  people  are  poor.  The  chief 's  boy  is  well  off,  he  likes  me,  he  likes  to 
stay  in  my  tipi,  and  I  always  feel  bad  to  have  him  with  me,  although  he 
likes  me." 

The  boy  went  into  the  den  and  he  found  that  it  was  the  home  of  the 
Bears.  There  was  sleeping  on  one  side  of  the  cave  a  mother  Bear;  in 
another  place  were  three  or  four  young  Bears.  The  boy  sat  down  and 
the  cubs  came  to  him  and  played  with  him.  After  a  while  one  of  the 
Bears  went  and  awoke  the  mother,  and  said:  "Mother,  there  is  a  boy  in 


338  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

our  lodge. "  The  mother  woke  up  and  saw  the  boy  sitting  there  playing 
with  her  children.  She  felt  sorry  for  him,  and  spoke  to  him  and  said: 
"My  son,  I  am  sorry  you  came  into  this  den.  This  is  the  den  where  a 
powerful  Bear  lives;  he  is  the  largest  Bear  in  the  country  and  has  wonder- 
ful powers,  given  him  by  the  Sun.  See,  yonder  in  the  corner  are  skele- 
tons of  human  beings,  even  horses  and  ponies,  that  he  has  brought  in 
here  for  us  to  eat.  He  has  taken  the  things  that  the  people  wear  and 
brought  them  here.  You  can  see  them  hanging  upon  the  wall  yonder. 
He  has  wonderful  powers  and  he  does  mysterious  tricks  with  the  things 
that  are  hung  up  there.  I  am  very  sorry  you  have  come  and  I  am  afraid 
you  will  never  go  back  to  your  people  alive. " 

The  boy  said:  "Mother,  I  am  poor.  I  came  seeking  your  place;  I 
have  found  it.  If  your  husband  comes  and  kills  me,  it  is  all  good  and 
well;  I  shall  be  eaten  up,  but  I  shall  be  thankful,  for  I  am  poor  in  spirit 
all  the  time  when  at  home.  I  am  poor,  so  I  might  as  well  be  dead." 
The  mother  Bear  rose  up  and  said:  "He  is  coming;  I  can  hear  him 
running.  He  smelt  your  tracks.  There,  take  the  little  Bear  in  your 
arms.  Hold  tight  to  him.  If  he  tells  you  to  turn  the  little  Bear  loose, 
do  not  obey  him,  for  he  thinks  a  great  deal  more  of  that  little  Bear  than 
of  the  others.  It  may  be  that  he  will  spare  your  life  for  taking  the  little 
Bear  in  your  arms. "  The  boy  took  the  little  Bear  in  his  arms,  and  the 
Bear  came  tumbling  into  the  hole,  spread  his  paws  down  upon  the  ground 
and  then  upwards,  and  exclaimed:  "What!  What!  What!  I  smell 
a  human  being."  He  called  his  wife  and  said:  "Where  is  the  man?" 
The  Bear  saw  him.  He  ordered  the  boy  to  turn  the  little  Bear  loose, 
and  said:  "How  dare  you  hold  my  child  in  your  arms!  Turn  him 
loose  or  I  will  kill  you!"  But  the  boy  would  not  turn  him  loose.  The 
Bear  ordered  the  boy  to  turn  the  little  Bear  loose  many  times,  but  he 
would  not  pay  any  attention.  At  last  the  little  Bear  said:  "Father  is 
not  going  to  kill  you;  he  is  going  to  take  pity  on  you,  for  he  thinks  much 
of  me.  I  will  ask  him  to  spare  your  life."  The  little  Bear  asked  his 
father  to  take  pity  upon  the  poor  boy,  as  he  had  come  to  them,  and  as  he 
had  played  with  them,  saying  that  he  wanted  to  keep  the  boy  in  the 
den  with  them.  The  Bear  grew  calm,  but  before  he  quieted  down  he 
had  been  exhaling  different  colored  dusts.  When  this  breathing  of  dust 
ceased,  the  boy  knew  that  the  Bear  was  no  longer  angry;  so  he  turned 
the  young  Bear  loose.  The  Bear  went  around  the  lodge  and  sat  down. 

The  Bear  told  the  boy  that  he  had  killed  many  people,  some  of  them 
hunters;  that  many  had  shot  at  him,  but  that  the  arrows  dropped  off 
from  his  shaggy  coat,  and  that  he  had  killed  them  and  brought  their  guns 
and  things  into  the  den.  The  Bear  also  told  the  boy  that  he  was  the 


THE   BEAR  MEDICINE.  339 

leader  of  all  the  Bears;  that  the  Sun  communicated  with  him  directly, 
and  that  he  was  the  son  of  the  Sun.  He  said:  "I  shall  take  pity  upon 
you,  my  boy,  for  I  want  you  to  go  back  to  your  people.  Let  them 
know  that  they  must  not  come  around  my  den  and  try  to  kill  me,  for 
they  can  not  kill  me.  I  also  want  you  to  go  into  the  lodge  of  the  Bears 
and  take  your  place  on  the  north  side  of  the  lodge,  so  that  you  will  always 
face  the  south.  I  shall  also  teach  you  to  do  sleight-of-hand." 

The  Bear  began  to  sing  and  he  turned  the  cubs  into  human  beings, 
and  also  the  mother  Bear;  then  he  turned  himself  into  a  man.  All  the 
time  he  continued  to  sing  Bear  songs.  The  Bear  took  a  bow  and  arrows, 
ran  up  to  the  boy,  and  shot  him  in  the  side  with  an  arrow.  The  arrow 
fell  back  and  did  not  pierce  him.  The  next  time  the  Bear  ran  up  to  the 
boy  and  blew  different  colored  dusts  upon  his  side ;  then  he  went  back  a 
few  paces  and  shot  at  the  boy  with  an  arrow,  so  that  the  arrow  went 
through  the  boy  and  he  fell  over.  The  Bear  and  his  wife  and  children 
all  got  around  him  and  worked  over  him  until  they  restored  him  to  life. 
All  these  things  they  taught  the  boy.  For  several  days  the  boy  sat  in 
the  Bear's  den,  learning  the  secrets  of  the  Bear.  The  Bear  spoke  and 
said:  "The  people  have  been  killing  many  buffalo;  they  have  remained 
several  days;  now  they  are  about  to  continue  their  journey  and  I  shall 
let  you  go;  but  remember  that  you  are  one  of  us  now,  and  that  you 
must  visit  me  once  in  a  while."  They  sang  another  song,  and  father 
and  mother  seized  the  children,  tumbled  them  over  several  times,  and 
they  were  turned  into  Bears  again.  Then  the  woman  was  seized  by  the 
man  himself,  and  she  turned  into  a  Bear.  Then  the  mother  Bear  and 
the  children  fell  upon  the  man  and  he  was  again  turned  into  a  Bear.  Now 
they  went  around  the  boy,  took  hold  of  him,  and  he  was  turned  into  a  Bear. 
They  ran  around  in  their  den  a  certain  number  of  times  and  then  rested. 
The  boy  was  caught  again  and  turned  into  a  human  being.  Then  the 
Bear  took  him  to  the  place  where  the  cedar  tree  was  standing.  The 
Bear  reached  up  in  the  tree,  took  down  one  bear  claw  and  strung  it  on 
a  string  of  buckskin,  and  put  it  around  the  boy's  neck.  The  Bear  now 
told  the  boy  to  put  his  breath  into  his,  and  that  now  he  had  the  different 
colors  of  dust  in  him,  which  were  very  curative;  so  that  when  he  went 
home  if  anyone  was  wounded,  or  if  there  were  sores  on  anyone,  all  he 
had  to  do  was  to  touch  his  sides  with  the  palms  of  his  hands,  blow  his 
breath,  and  the  dust  would  come;  for  it  was  the  spirit  of  the  Bear  that 
had  been  given  him;  and  if  the  people  should  make  him  angry,  it  was 
now  possible  for  his  canine  teeth  to  come  out  as  did  those  of  the  Bear, 
so  that  he  must  be  very  careful  among  his  own  people.  The  Bear  also 
said:  "Now,  I  have  given  you  my  power;  you  are  my  son.  You  shall 


340  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

live  to  be  an  old  man,  and  when  I  die,  then  you  are  to  die.  When  you 
go  hence  and  the  people  have  returned  to  their  village,  you  must  come 
to  a  certain  place  upon  the  Wonderful  River  (Missouri).  There  under 
a  certain  steep  bank  is  an  animals'  lodge,  where  you  will  stand  until 
you  are  taken  in.  There  you  will  learn  to  be  a  medicine-man,  for  I  have 
control  of  that  lodge.  Go  now,  my  son,  to  your  people."  When  the 
boy  left  the  cave  it  was  night.  He  went  to  his  home  and  lay  down. 
The  next  morning  the  father  and  mother  got  up  and  saw  him  lying  there ; 
they  also  saw  that  he  had  a  small  bundle.  They  knew  that  this  bundle 
meant  something,  so  they  took  it  and  wrapped  it  up  in  a  robe  and  hung 
it  up  on  the  side  of  the  tipi.  The  next  day  the  chief's  boy  came  to  his 
tipi  and  was  glad  to  see  him  again. 

When  the  people  had  dried  their  meat,  they  broke  camp  and  started 
back  to  their  permanent  village.  They  were  attacked  by  the  enemy. 
The  boy  did  not  join  them,  but  the  people  had  success  in  driving  the 
enemy  away;  but  one  man  was  brought  home  wounded.  The  different 
medicine-men  in  the  village  were  sent  for  to  wait  upon  the  man.  They 
waited  on  him,  but  he  seemed  to  grow  worse.  The  poor  boy  visited  the 
wounded  man.  Some  of  the  medicine-men  who  were  waiting  on  the 
man  were  singing,  when  the  Bear  spirit  in  the  poor  boy  took  hold  of  him, 
and  he  jumped  up,  going  close  to  the  wounded  man,  and  then  to  a  ray 
of  the  sun  that  was  shining  in,  and  there  he  stood  in  the  sun 's  ray  and 
poured  forth  from  his  mouth  different  colored  paints.  He  then  turned 
to  the  wounded  man  and  blew  his  breath  of  dust  upon  the  wound.  The 
dust  seemed  to  enter  the  wound,  and  the  man  felt  better.  The  boy 
became  quiet  and  took  up  his  robe  and  left  the  lodge.  The  wounded  man 
cried,  "Go  after  the  poor  boy,  and  let  him  wait  on  me  again.  "  The  boy 
was  sent  for,  and  when  he  came  in  the  other  medicine-men,  who  waited 
on  the  wounded  man,  sat  on  one  side  and  gave  the  patient  up  to  the  boy. 
He  went  through  the  same  performance,  and  after  he  had  finished  he  sat 
down,  and  the  wounded  man  said,  "My  son,  come  every  day  to  treat  me; 
you  shall  have  several  ponies  and  several  robes.  "  The  young  man  came 
and  cured  the  wounded  man,  and  it  was  noised  through  the  village  that 
the  boy  had  cured  the  wounded  man.  The  last  time  he  waited  upon 
the  man  he  sang  a  song  about  the  Bear,  and  the  people  said  that  the 
young  man  must  have  been  taken  into  the  Bear's  den.  He  sang  to  tell 
the  people  that  he  had  cured  the  man.  The  presents  were  taken  to  his 
lodge,  and  the  robes  and  other  presents  were  brought  in,  while  the  ponies 
were  tied  outside. 

The  boy  went  into  the  lodge  and  asked  the  people  to  sweep  it  out 
and  put  the  mat  and  other  things  in  order,  saying  that  he  did  not  want 


THE  BEAR  MEDICINE.  34! 

any  of  them  to  stay  in  the  lodge,  for  he  was  going  to  have  a  ceremony 
of  his  own.  The  women  swept  out  the  lodge,  spread  the  mat  on  the 
ground  and  went  out.  The  boy  was  then  alone.  He  took  down  his 
bundle,  and  took  therefrom  the  bear's  claw  and  four  downy  feathers,  each 
having  a  different  color.  He  laid  them  upon  the  ground  and  went  out 
to  the  place  where  the  ponies  were  tied.  He  first  put  his  hands  into  the 
mouths  of  the  horses,  went  back  into  the  lodge,  and  passed  his  hands 
over  the  bear's  claw  and  the  feathers.  This  was  a  sign  of  thankfulness 
to  the  Bear  who  had  taken  pity  upon  him ;  for  he  had  never  owned  a  pony, 
and  these  were  his  first.  After  this  performance,  he  filled  his  pipe  and 
sang  a  song,  calling  the  spirit  of  the  Bear  to  him.  The  boy  smoked  the 
pipe,  and  after  smoking  went  out  and  told  one  of  the  women  to  go  and 
bid  the  chief's  son  come  to  his  tipi. 

The  poor  boy  went  back  into  the  lodge,  sat  down,  put  another  cushion 
on  the  mat,  and  as  the  chief's  son  entered  the  young  medicine-man 
motioned  him  to  take  a  seat  on  the  cushion  that  he  had  placed  there 
for  him  to  sit  on.  The  chief 's  son  saw  the  things  spread  out  in  front  of 
the  poor  boy,  and  he  knew  then  where  the  boy  had  gone  when  he  disap- 
peared. The  chief's  son  now  arose  and  put  his  hands  over  the  poor 
boy,  and  told  him  that  he  was  glad  he  was  back,  and  that  he  now  knew 
that  the  poor  boy  had  been  among  the  Bears,  and  that  the  Bears  had 
taught  him  the  mysteries.  He  begged  the  poor  boy  to  teach  him.  The 
poor  boy  said:  "No,  I  can  not,  my  brother,  for  your  father  is  a  chief, 
and  you  can  never  know  these  mysteries.  You  must  be  kind  and  good 
to  the  people,  for  some  day  you  will  be  a  chief.  To  have  the  spirit  of 
the  Bear  you  must  kill  people  and  take  scalps,  and  this  I  do  not  want 
you  to  do.  I  sent  for  you,  for  I  have  been  treating  the  wounded  man. 
I  do  not  want  the  people  to  know  my  power,  but  when  I  went  to  visit 
the  wounded  man  the  spirit  of  the  Bear  overcame  me,  for  the  people 
who  were  waiting  upon  him  were  not  doing  right  by  him.  I  have  cured 
him.  The  people  know  my  power,  and  you,  who  have  befriended  me, 
ought  to  know  of  my  power  before  anyone.  I  possess  it,  it  is  in  me,  but 
I  can  not  explain  it  to  you.  Now  it  is  time  for  me  to  wrap  up  the  things 
in  the  bundle  and  hang  them  on  the  side  of  the  lodge.  Now,  my  brother, 
I  have  several  robes  which  I  received  for  waiting  upon  that  wounded 
man.  Take  your  choice."  The  young  man  took  one  robe  which  had 
pictures  of  a  pipe  upon  it,  for  these  things  belong  to  a  chief.  The  poor 
boy  took  the  chief's  boy  outside,  untied  one  of  the  ponies,  and  handed 
him  a  rope.  Said  he:  "This,  my  brother,  is  yours;  take  it  home,  use  it 
for  your  own,  but  come  back  to-night  and  stay  with  me. "  The  chief's 
boy  was  very  thankful.  He  took  the  pony  to  the  chief's  lodge,  went  in, 


342  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

and  found  his  father  sitting  there.  The  boy  said:  "Father,  the  poor 
boy  is  possessed  of  wonderful  animal  powers.  I  am  glad  that  when  he 
was  poor  I  was  his  friend,  for  now  I  shall  try  to  learn  the  mysteries  that 
he  knows. "  The  old  chief  spoke  up  and  said:  "  Nawa  in  ( it  is  good) ;  I 
am  glad  to  hear  the  words  you  have  spoken.  Take  your  robe,  your 
pony,  and  your  things,  and  make  your  home  with  the  poor  boy.  Let 
him  teach  you  all  these  things ;  then  I  shall  know  that  you  are  learning. 
Visit  us  once  in  a  while,  so  that  we  may  know  that  all  is  well  with  you. " 
The  boy  went  back  to  the  lodge  of  the  poor  boy  and  said:  "I  have  come 
to  stay  with  you,  my  brother.  My  pony  may  stay  with  your  ponies.  I 
shall  look  after  the  ponies,  and  we  can  be  together  always.  My  father 
wishes  us  to  visit  him  sometimes  at  night,  but  he  wants  me  to  be  with 
you  all  the  time.  "  The  boys  remained  together  in  the  poor  boy 's  lodge, 
and  the  poor  boy  would  sing  the  Bear  songs  which  had  been  taught  him. 
For  a  long  time  they  were  together. 

Once  the  village  was  attacked  by  the  enemy.  The  people  went  out 
to  fight,  but  the  poor  boy  stayed  in  his  lodge,  untied  his  bundle,  put  the 
bear  claw  about  his  neck  and  the  feather  upon  his  head,  and  painted 
his  body  with  red  paint,  making  two  black  streaks  downwards  from  his 
eyes.  Then  he  took  only  a  few  arrows  and  a  bow  and  went  out.  The 
chief's  boy  watched  him.  The  poor  boy  attacked  the  enemy  and  he 
killed  a  man.  He  went  from  there  close  to  the  line  on  the  enemy's  side, 
and  they  were  shooting  at  him,  but  the  arrows  and  bullets  seemed  to 
drop  off  from  his  body.  He  attacked  another  enemy  and  killed  him. 
Then  the  enemy's  line  was  broken.  They  came  home  with  many  scalps 
and  the  whole  village  was  in  an  uproar,  singing  and  dancing  victory 
songs  in  honor  of  the  poor  boy. 

In  the  battle,  as  the  poor  boy  attacked  the  enemy,  the  chief's  boy 
watched  the  battle  and  saw  the  poor  boy  rush  in  the  midst  of  the  enemy 
and  kill  them,  and  he  was  thankful  that  the  poor  boy  was  his  friend; 
and  in  his  heart  he  said:  "My  friend  is  a  brave  man.  How  I  wish  that  I 
had  the  courage  that  he  has ;  but  then  he  has  told  me  that  I  must  not  kill 
and  so  I  must  be  satisfied. "  The  people  talked  about  the  young  man  and 
asked  him  to  enter  their  Bear  dance  ceremony,  for  all  the  people  recog- 
nized the  fact  that  he  possessed  wonderful  powers.  The  boy  joined  in 
the  Bear  dance  and  was  finally  made  leader  of  the  Bear  dance  ceremonies. 
As  the  poor  boy  grew  to  be  a  man,  so  did  the  chief 's  boy.  The  chief 's  boy 
kept  begging  the  poor  boy  to  take  pity  upon  him  and  give  him  the  same 
powers  that  he  possessed;  but  the  poor  boy  said:  "No,  I  can  not." 

Winter  came,  and  the  people  began  to  talk  about  going  on  the  buffalo 
hunt.  The  poor  boy  and  the  chief's  boy  got  ready  to  go  with  the  hunt- 


THE  BEAR  MEDICINE.  343 

ing  party.  They  departed,  and  the  poor  boy  said  that  the  chief's  boy 
should  do  all  the  killing  and  bringing  in  of  the  buffalo,  and  when  he  saw 
certain  meat  he  would  tell  the  chief's  boy  to  prepare  it  for  him,  for  he 
was  going  to  put  it  to  a  special  use.  The  people  journeyed  west  and 
they  found  many  buffalo.  In  one  of  the  killings  the  chief's  boy  had 
killed  a  young  buffalo  cow.  The  poor  boy  told  the  chief 's  boy  that  this 
meat  should  be  his;  that  he  was  going  to  ask  his  mother  to  jerk  the  meat, 
dry  it,  and  put  it  in  one  of  the  parfleches  by  itself.  The  meat  of  the 
buffalo  cow  was  jerked,  dried  in  the  sun,  pounded,  piled  up  carefully, 
and  then  put  into  a  parfleche  and  tied  up.  When  it  was  tied  up,  the  poor 
boy  told  the  chief's  son  that  that  was  his  meat. 

Towards  spring  the  people  went  back  to  their  permanent  village. 
As  summer  came,  the  poor  boy  told  the  chief's  boy  that  he  wanted  him 
to  go  with  him  to  the  northeast,  to  a  certain  water  known  as  Wonderful 
River;  to  bring  his  pony,  saddle  it,  put  the  parfleche  on  the  saddle,  and 
several  robes  for  their  bedding.  They  started  toward  the  northeast, 
with  one  pony  that  carried  their  things.  They  traveled  for  many  days 
until  they  came  to  the  Wonderful  River.  They  went  down  the  river, 
and  after  a  while  they  came  to  the  place  that  the  Bear  had  told  the  poor 
boy  of.  "Now,  my  brother,"  said  the  poor  boy  to  the  chief's  son, 
"this  is  the  place  we  were  bound  for;  be  brave  and  do  as  I  tell  you.  Do 
not  retreat,  for  I  wish  you  to  have  powers  different  from  mine. "  The 
young  chief  said  that  he  would  be  brave.  They  lariated  their  pony  at 
some  distance  from  the  river,  put  their  things  upon  its  back,  and  went 
to  the  steep  bank  of  Wonderful  River.  The  poor  boy  untied  the  par- 
fleche and  cut  the  meat  in  small  pieces.  Then  he  took  from  his  bundle 
a  lariat  rope  made  of  rawhide.  He  tied  a  rope  around  the  body  of  the 
chief 's  boy  and  another  to  the  boy 's  legs ;  then  he  lowered  him  over  the 
steep  bank  and  brought  him  up  again,  so  that  the  poor  boy  knew  the 
lariat  would  work.  Then  he  put  all  the  meat  in  the  parfleche  again, 
and  tied  it  up  and  put  it  on  the  back  of  the  chief 's  boy;  then  he  gave  him 
a  sharp  stick.  He  let  him  down  the  steep  bank  to  the  ledge  in  the  middle 
of  the  bank.  There  he  told  him  to  set  the  parfleche  and  his  stick.  Then 
he  pulled  up  the  chief's  son  again,  put  him  upon  the  bank,  and  said: 
"Now,  my  brother,  you  are  poor  in  spirit;  I,  too,  was  poor  in  spirit  when 
I  made  up  my  mind  to  go  to  the  den  of  the  Bears;  they  took  pity  upon 
me  because  I  was  poor  in  spirit.  Now  if  you  want  to  possess  some 
powers,  make  up  your  mind  to  go  through  this  and  try  not  to  draw 
back;  I  am  to  place  you  under  the  bank  here,  and  you  are  to  hang  there, 
and  as  the  different  birds  come  to  you,  feed  them,  put  meat  upon  the 
sharp  stick  that  I  have  given  you  and  hold  it  out  from  you,  and  they 


344  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

will  come  and  eat;  then  put  another  piece  of  meat  on  and  feed  all  the 
birds  that  come  to  you.  If  they  take  you  into  their  lodge,  well  and  good ; 
if  you  are  not  taken  into  the  lodge  within  four  days,  then  I  shall  draw 
you  up  and  we  shall  go  home,  for  then  I  shall  know  that  you  are  not 
favored  by  the  animal  gods.  I  shall  leave  you  now,  shall  go  a  long  way 
off  for  four  days,  and  on  the  fifth  day  I  shall  come  back  and  see  if  you 
are  still  there."  The  chief's  boy  said,  "Very  well,  I  shall  do  as  you 
have  told  me." 

The  boy  went  to  the  timber,  cut  two  dogwood  sticks  of  good  size,  then 
came  to  where  the  chief's  boy  sat.  He  trimmed  down  the  sticks,  which 
were  about  six  inches  long,  and  sharpened  them  at  one  end.  He  told 
the  chief's  boy  to  sit  down  with  his  back  toward  the  sun,  saying  that  he 
wanted  the  sun  to  look  upon  him  so  that  the  sun  would  tell  the  Bear  that, 
instead  of  the  poor  boy  being  there,  he  had  put  down  another  man  in 
his  place.  The  poor  boy  said:  "Have  courage,  so  that  you  can  receive 
the  powers  from  the  animals. "  The  poor  boy  took  hold  of  the  skin  on 
the  back  of  the  chief's  boy,  first  on  the  left  side,  taking  it  between  the 
first  and  second  fingers  and  the  thumb,  then  running  the  stick  through 
the  skin,  which  protruded  through  the  fingers  to  the  backs  of  them;  then 
he  did  the  same  on  the  right  side  of  his  back,  running  another  stick 
through  the  skin.  The  boy  then  got  up  and  took  out  another  lariat 
rope  that  had  ten  soft  elk  hide  strings  at  the  ends.  These  strings  he  tied 
on  to  the  sticks.  He  let  the  boy  slip  down  the  bank  and  hang  there; 
when  the  boy  reached  the  ledge  where  the  parfleche  and  the  stick  were, 
the  poor  boy  then  tied  the  other  end  of  the  lariat  rope  to  a  tree.  He 
looked  down  and  saw  the  chief's  boy;  he  saw  that  he  grasped  the  sharp 
stick  and  that  he  could  reach  the  meat.  The  poor  boy  waited  until 
towards  evening  upon  the  bank.  The  chief's  boy  was  crying.  In  the 
evening  the  poor  boy  noticed  the  birds  coming  down  the  stream  from  the 
west.  He  also  noticed  that  some  of  the  birds  went  to  the  chief's  son 
and  received  meat  from  him.  The  poor  boy  saw  that  his  friend  was 
favored  by  the  animals,  so  he  left  him  and  went  away  and  hid  in  the 
timber.  He  stayed  there  for  several  days,  wondering  what  had  become 
of  the  boy.  On  the  fifth  day,  the  poor  boy  went  down  to  the  place. 
The  boy  was  gone.  The  poor  boy  was  satisfied  that  the  animals  had 
taken  him,  so  he  went  off.  The  poor  boy  stayed  around  close  to  the 
bank  for  several  days.  When  the  chief 's  son  had  remained  four  or  five 
days,  then  the  poor  boy  commenced  to  sleep  on  the  bank. 

One  morning,  while  the  poor  boy  was  sleeping,  something  seemed  to 
touch  him.  He  woke  up  and  saw  that  it  was  morning.  He  lay  down 
again,  and  again  some  one  touched  him.  He  looked  up  and  saw  that  it 


THE  BEAR  MEDICINE.  345 

was  nearly  day,  but  that  no  one  was  about.  The  third  time  he  was. 
awakened;  but  the  fourth  time,  when  he  awoke,  he  looked  to  the  east, 
and  the  sun  came  up.  As  the  sun  came  up  the  boy  looked  upon  the 
bank,  and  there  stood  his  friend.  The  chief 's  boy  had  on  leggings  that 
had  deer  hoofs  upon  them ;  in  some  places  were  bear  claws ;  in  some  places 
pictures  of  birds.  He  had  upon  his  body  a  robe  which  was  decorated 
with  sweet  grass  and  other  sweet  perfumes.  He  had  a  bundle  under 
his  arm.  The  poor  boy  arose,  and  said,  ' '  My  brother! "  Both  embraced 
and  said,  "I  am  glad  to  see  you  again."  The  chief's  boy  said  that  he 
would  tell  the  poor  boy  of  all  the  mysteries  he  had  seen  when  they  went 
home;  that  they  must  hurry  and  get  to  their  home.  So  they  went  to 
their  pony,  put  their  things  on  it,  and  started  home.  The  chief's  boy 
put  his  bundle  in  the  poor  boy's  lodge. 

The  next  day  the  chief 's  boy  told  the  poor  boy  to  go  with  him  to  his 
father's  lodge,  and  they  went.  They  sat  down  and  the  father  was  glad 
to  see  them.  The  boy 's  sisters  and  other  relatives  were  also  glad  to  see 
him.  The  chief's  boy  said:  "My  father,  this  boy  and  myself  went  to 
a  strange  country.  This  boy  has  taken  pity  upon  me;  he  let  me  go  down 
into  the  animals'  lodge,  under  the  Wonderful  River.  There  I  found  the 
animals  in  a  circle.  They  taught  me  the  powers  of  the  medicine-men. 
This  poor  boy  was  not  selfish;  he  let  me  receive  this  power  which  was  for 
him.  The  animals  have  requested  that  I  take  them  presents  of  native 
tobacco,  some  feathers,  some  beads,  and  some  meat;  get  them  forme, 
my  father,  for  I  must  be  going  back. "  The  father  arose,  passed  his  hand 
over  the  poor  boy,  and  went  out.  He  visited  the  different  lodges  of  his 
relatives  and  they  brought  much  meat,  many  beads,  and  much  tobacco. 
The  boys  received  the  presents  and  they  again  made  the  journey  east  to 
the  Wonderful  River.  The  chief's  boy  disappeared,  carrying  the  pres- 
ents with  him  and  coming  back  the  next  day.  They  then  went  home. 

In  the  fall,  when  the  people  had  their  medicine-men's  sleight-of- 
hand  performances,  these  two  boys  went  into  the  medicine-men 's  lodge. 
The  poor  boy  took  his  seat  facing  the  south,  as  directed  by  the  Bear. 
The  chief's  boy  sat  by  him.  Before  the  ceremonies  were  opened,  the 
chief's  boy  stood  up  and  said,  "Medicine-men,  I  want  to  select  a  place 
to  sit."  The  medicine-men  all  said,  "Nawa. "  The  boy  went  around 
the  fireplace  on  the  west  side,  then  to  the  east  on  the  north  side  of  the 
entrance.  Here,  at  this  place,  was  set  up  a  cedar  tree,  and  at  this  place 
no  one  of  the  medicine-men  sat,  for  it  was  a  place  alone  for  the  man  who 
had  been  taken  into  the  animals '  lodge  and  understood  their  mysteries. 
When  he  took  his  seat  there,  a  great  noise  was  made  by  the  men  through- 
out the  lodge.  As  the  young  man  took  his  seat  behind  the  cedar  tree  he 


346  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

came  out  and  appeared  again,  and  there  he  stood  with  his  robe  on,  cov- 
ered with  blue  mud  and  downy  feathers.  The  medicine-men  knew  by 
his  appearance  that  he  had  the  powers  of  the  animals.  They  noticed 
also  that  all  around  the  bottom  of  the  cedar  tree  were  downy  feathers. 
The  old  medicine-men  performed  sleight-of-hand  that  night.  The  two 
boys  did  not  do  any  sleight-of-hand  for  the  first  two  nights.  After  the 
third  night,  the  poor  boy  did  feats  which  the  other  medicine-men  could 
not  do.  The  next  night  the  other  young  man  did  some  wonderful  things, 
and  after  that  the  people  acknowledged  the  two  young  men  as  the  leaders 
of  the  medicine-men.  The  chief's  boy  became  the  leader  of  the  Medi- 
cine-Men 's  dance.  The  other  boy  became  the  leader  of  the  Bear  dance. 
The  chief's  boy  became  chief,  for  he  was  powerful.  The  other  man  was 
a  brave,  and  they  were  both  medicine-men,  with  great  power. 

The  poor  boy  told  the  chief 's  boy  that,  no  matter  where  he  was  or 
how  healthy  he  was,  as  soon  as  the  Bear  should  be  killed  or  die  from 
old  age,  he  also  was  to  die;  so  the  chief's  boy  knew  that  when  the  time 
came  for  him  to  die,  he  could  not  help  himself.  One  day  they  were 
sitting  in  the  lodge  and  the  man  grunted.  He  took  up  his  robe  with  the 
bear's  claw  on  it,  embraced  his  friend,  and  went  out  of  his  lodge.  Then  the 
people  went  out  and  they  heard  the  screams  of  Bears.  The  poor  boy 
disappeared  and  was  never  heard  of  again.  Before  he  disappeared,  he 
had  taught  many  Bear  songs  and  the  ceremony  to  the  people.  The 
other  man  mourned  for  the  poor  boy  for  some  time,  but  he  knew  that  he 
had  to  die  and  so  he  stopped  mourning.  He  kept  up  the  Bear  dance  and 
the  people  liked  him,  for  he  was  the  chief  and  a  medicine-man  as  well. 
He  married  and  had  many  children.  He  taught  his  children  the  mys- 
teries of  the  medicine-men,  and  they,  too,  became  great  medicine-men. 
The  father  died  of  old  age,  but  before  he  died  he  taught  his  children  all 
the  mysteries  that  were  given  him  in  the  animals'  lodge;  and  to  this  day 
the  same  ceremony  that  was  carried  on  at  that  time  is  carried  on  by  the 
Pawnee. 

91.  THE  BEAR  MEDICINE  AND  CEREMONY.1 

Many  years  ago  there  was  a  little  girl  among  the  Skidi  who  had  mys- 
terious ways.  As  she  grew  up  she  did  not  like  to  have  her  nails  trimmed, 
and  one  time  when  she  had  them  trimmed  she  nearly  died.  Before  her 
birth  her  father  had  killed  a  bear,  and  this  bear 's  spirit  had  entered  the 
child,  but  no  one  knew  it.  She  grew  up  to  be  a  woman  and  was  married 

1  Told  by  Medicine- Sun,  Skidi.  The  story  is  interesting  because  it  teaches  that 
women  might  obtain  medicine  powers  from  the  bears  and  make  use  of  this  power 
in  practice  of  medicine. 


THE  BEAR  MEDICINE  AND  CEREMONY.  347 

to  a  famous  warrior.  She  had  a  child,  but  it  died.  She  again  had  a  child 
and  it  died.  Again  she  had  a  child,  a  boy,  and  he  grew  up  to  be  over 
ten  years  old. 

One  time  the  Skidi  went  on  a  hunt  and  they  took  the  boy  with  them 
and  tied  him  on  a  spotted  pony,  for  they  wanted  him  to  ride.  When 
they  returned  to  the  village  they  found  that  the  boy's  father  had  gone 
out  with  a  war  party.  The  boy  became  sick;  the  mother  was  frightened 
and  she  sent  for  the  best  medicine-men  in  the  camp.  They  came,  but 
their  medicine  and  power  could  do  no  good  and  the  boy  died.  The 
mother  dressed  the  boy,  took  him  up  on  a  hill  and  dug  a  shallow  grave 
for  him;  then  she  made  a  kind  of  a  house  over  the  grave.  The  mother 
stayed  by  the  grave  several  days  and  nights  and  grieved,  for  she  had  lost 
every  child  she  had.  After  a  time  she  became  afraid,  for  there  were 
many  bears  and  mountain-lions  in  the  country,  and  so  she  went  home. 

The  people  moved  their  camp  and  went  toward  their  permanent 
village.  The  woman  went  with  them,  but  she  was  in  mourning.  She 
had  cut  her  hair  and  had  gashed  her  arms  and  legs  with  a  knife,  so  that 
she  was  in  great  pain.  Several  days  afterwards  some  warriors  overtook 
the  people,  and  told  them  they  had  seen  a  grave  and  asked  who  had  died. 
The  people  told  them  that  the  woman  had  lost  her  boy.  They  said  that 
somebody  had  robbed  the  grave  or  else  wild  animals  had  opened  it. 
The  woman  heard  it.  She  arose  and  started  for  the  place.  She  found 
her  son 's  body  exposed;  the  clothing  gone.  She  cried  and  cried,  and  then 
she  made  up  her  mind  to  stay  there  and  die.  She  reburied  her  boy,  then 
sat  down  by  the  grave.  She  cried  all  day,  all  night,  and  again  the  next 
day,  the  next  night,  and  so  on.  On  the  fourth  day  she  became  frightened. 
In  the  evening  she  looked  around  for  a  place  where  she  could  stop  over 
night.  She  saw  at  a  distance  a  thick  timber  with  many  cedar  trees. 
She  went  to  the  cedars,  and  among  them  she  found  a  large  cedar  with  its 
limbs  spreading  and  drooping  so  that  the  branches  touched  the  ground. 
She  crawled  under  the  branches  and  there  sought  protection. 

Some  time  in  the  night  she  heard  a  noise  that  sounded  like  a  donkey 
braying.  She  listened,  and  heard  it  again  and  again.  She  was  fright- 
ened, but  she  thought,  "I  might  as  well  die  here."  She  heard  the 
noise  again;  this  time  nearer  to  her,  and  she  recognized  the  growl  of  a 
Bear.  The  Bear  spoke  and  said:  "Do  not  be  afraid;  I  know  you  are 
under  the  cedar  tree ;  I  felt  sorry  for  you  and  so  came  after  you.  I  and 
my  wife  have  taken  pity  upon  you,  for  we  know  you  grieve  because 
every  time  you  have  a  child  it  dies.  Arise  and  come  with  me."  The 
woman  arose  and  followed  the  Bear.  The  Bear  once  in  a  while  gave  a 
loud  grunt,  and  wild  animals  moved  out  of  his  path.  He  led  the  way 
through  a  valley,  then  up  a  hill.  There  the  woman  saw  a  very  steep 


348  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

bank,  and  on  the  bank  was  a  cedar  tree.  The  Bear  slid  toward  the 
tree  and  disappeared.  The  woman  followed  and  disappeared,  too.  In 
another  moment  she  saw  that  she  was  in  a  Bear  "s  den.  The  den  inside 
was  like  an  earth-lodge.  On  the  south  side  of  the  lodge  lay  the  Bear's 
wife,  with  her  paws  on  the  ground  and  her  head  resting  upon  her  paws. 
The  Bear  made  a  peculiar  noise,  and  six  cubs  came  from  the  north  side  of 
the  den  and  sat  down.  The  Bear  again  made  a  peculiar  noise  and  his 
wife  sat  up.  She  looked  at  the  woman,  who  sat  by  the  entrance  on  the 
south  side.  The  Bear  spoke  to  the  woman  and  said:  "I  took  pity  on 
you  and  asked  my  wife  to  help  you,  and  she  has  promised  that  she  will. 
Now  the  first  thing  we  shall  do  for  you  is  to  give  you  a  promise,  and  if 
you  do  as  we  tell  you,  our  promise  will  be  good.  Run  after  our  cubs 
and  you  shall  have  children  equal  to  the  number  of  cubs  you  catch. " 
The  woman  arose  and  ran  after  the  cubs.  The  cubs  looked  so  clumsy 
and  big  that  she  thought  she  could  catch  all  of  them.  She  ran  after 
them,  but  she  could  not  catch  a  single  one.  She  was  giving  out,  but  she 
did  not  give  up.  She  kept  on  running  until  the  youngest  Bear  gave  out 
and  fell  behind  the  others,  and  the  woman  reached  out  and  caught  it  by 
the  legs.  She  held  it  in  her  left  arm  and  ran  again  until  she  succeeded 
in  catching  another,  but  as  she  then  had  two  Bears  she  could  not  run  any 
more,  so  she  gave  up  trying.  The  Bear  told  her  that  the  two  Bears  were 
hers  and  that  she  could  take  them  home.  Then  he  blew  his  red  dust 
breath  into  her  face,  then  his  yellow  breath,  then  his  black  breath,  and 
then  his  white  breath.  When  this  was  done,  the  Bear  said:  "If  a  man 
is  wounded  you  must  blow  these  different  breaths  into  the  wound  and  he 
will  feel  better  and  soon  get  well.  Now  my  wife  will  teach  you  some- 
thing." 

The  female  Bear  went  up  to  the  woman,  put  her  fore  legs  around  her 
neck,  and  then  coughed  up  a  piece  of  powdered  cherry.  The  woman 
ate  this.  Then  the  female  Bear  coughed  another  substance,  and  this 
time  it  was  a  piece  of  powdered  hackberry.  The  woman  ate  this  up. 
Again  the  Bear  coughed  up  something,  and  this  time  it  was  powdered 
bull-berry.  The  woman  ate  it.  "Now,"  said  the  Bear,  "you  are  pre- 
pared to  doctor  the  sick ;  when  you  have  blown  the  different  breaths  upon 
the  sick,  you  can  cough  these  different  powdered  berries  and  give  them  to 
the  sick  and  they  will  at  once  feel  better. "  The  Bears  kept  the  woman 
in  their  den,  teaching  her  many  mysterious  things.  At  last  the  male 
Bear  said:  "It  is  time  for  you  to  go  home.  Take  this  red  paint  of 
mine  and  this  red  downy  feather.  Give  them  to  your  husband  and  tell 
him  that  I  gave  them  to  him.  "  The  female  Bear  said:  "I  give  you  my 
yellow  paint  and  my  yellow  feather;  take  them;  they  are  yours.  When 


THE  BEAR  MEDICINE  AND  CEREMONY.  349 

you  doctor,  put  the  paint  upon  your  person;  put  the  feather  upon  your 
head.  We  want  you  to  make  a  tipi  and  have  it  painted.  Tell  your 
husband  to  get  many  tanned  buffalo  hides,  sew  them  together,  and  make 
a  tipi.  At  the  bottom  of  the  tipi  paint  a  yellow  circle,  on  the  middle  of 
the  tipi  paint  a  black  band,  and  above  this  paint  red.  On  the  west  side 
put  a  picture  of  a  cedar  tree  resting  upon  the  black  ground.  The  cedar 
tree  will  be  the  tree  that  you  see  on  the  side  of  my  den.  On  each  side 
of  the  tree  in  the  center  will  be  owls.  They  are  two  owls  who  are 
friendly  to  us,  who  come  and  guard  our  entrance.  Take  these  two 
young  Bears  to  your  home.  If  you  want  to  kill  them  when  you  get  home, 
do  so  and  make  casks  of  their  skins  so  that  your  children  can  crawl  into 
them.  The  Bears  will  come  back  to  us  after  they  are  killed. " 

The  woman  took  the  two  young  Bears  and  started  to  her  home. 
The  least  one  was  very  gentle;  the  other  one  was  somewhat  wild  and 
did  not  like  the  woman.  On  the  third  night  the  wild  Bear  strayed  off 
and  never  came  back  to  the  woman.  The  next  morning  the  woman  got 
up  and  took  the  little  Bear  in  her  arms,  and  when  she  became  tired  she 
put  him  down  on  the  ground  and  he  followed  her.  At  last  they  came 
to  the  village.  The  Bear  did  not  want  to  go  into  the  village,  for  he  was 
not  used  to  the  odor  of  people.  The  woman  picked  him  up  and  carried 
him  on  her  back  into  the  village.  It  was  noised  around  through  the 
camp  that  the  woman  had  come  back  and  that  she  had  a  young  Bear. 
People  did  not  pay  any  attention  to  the  story.  In  the  night  the  woman 
had  a  dream.  She  saw  the  female  Bear,  who  said  to  her,  "Have  the 
little  Bear  killed;  do  not  be  afraid;  he  will  come  back  to  me. " 

The  next  day  the  woman  told  one  of  her  brothers  to  kill  the  little 
Bear,  and  he  did  so.  The  woman  tanned  the  skin,  then  took  the  yellow 
paint  and  painted  it  on  the  inside.  She  then  put  the  yellow-painted 
feather  on  the  head  of  the  bear  skin.  The  bear  skin  was  hung  up  on  a 
pole  outside  of  the  lodge,  so  that  the  sun  could  cast  its  rays  upon  the 
skin.  The  skin  was  to  hold  the  spirit  of  the  Bears,  so  that  the  spirit 
would  be  present  with  the  woman.  Every  time  the  woman  was  touched 
she  made  a  grunting  noise  like  that  of  a  Bear.  Every  morning  just  as 
the  sun  came  up  in  the  east  she  was  always  sitting  there  with  the  yellow 
downy  feather  on  her  hair,  painting  with  the  yellow  paint.  She  also  had 
the  bear  hide.  As  the  sun  came  up  she  would  rise  and  go  into  the  lodge, 
put  her  things  in  a  bundle  and  hang  them  up.  Her  husband  came  home. 
She  did  not  tell  him  where  she  had  been,  nor  did  she  tell  him  about  the 
Bear.  The  man  noticed  that  the  woman  made  grunting  sounds  in  the 
night  and  thought  that  she  must  have  been  with  the  Bears.  The  people 
were  careful  how  they  talked  to  her,  for  they  knew  that  she  acted  like 


350  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

a  bear.  The  woman  herself  began  to  realize  that  she  had  the  spirit  of  a 
bear,  and  she  knew  why  it  was  that,  when  a  young  girl,  she  became  very 
sick  when  her  nails  were  cut. 

One  day  the  enemy  attacked  the  village.  She  gave  the  red  paint  to 
her  husband  to  put  all  over  his  body,  and  also  gave  him  the  red  feather  to 
tie  in  his  scalp-lock.  He  went  out  and  fought  and  was  very  brave.  The 
enemy 's  arrows  did  not  seem  to  have  any  effect  upon  him.  When  the 
battle  was  over,  the  people  brought  in  one  man  who  was  badly  wounded. 
The  wounded  man 's  folks  sent  for  some  of  the  best  medicine-men  in  the 
village,  but  the  medicine-men  said,  "We  can  not  do  anything  for  him. " 
The  man  gave  the  grunting  noise  of  a  bear,  so  the  relatives  said,  "Let 
us  send  for  the  woman  who  grunts  like  a  bear. "  The  people  sent  their 
errand  man  to  the  woman.  The  man  went  to  the  woman's  tipi  and 
went  up  to  where  the  woman  sat,  and,  passing  his  hands  over  her,  said, 
"Have  pity  upon  me  and  the  relatives  of  the  man  who  was  wounded  and 
is  dying. "  She  sat  still  for  a  while,  then  said,  "I  will  go. "  The  errand 
man  passed  his  hands  over  her  head  again  and  thanked  her;  then  went 
back  to  the  wounded  man's  lodge  and  told  the  people  that  the  woman 
was  coming.  The  woman  sent  word  to  the  wounded  man  to  be  patient, 
for  she  was  coming.  She  also  sent  word  that  the  women  should  sweep  out 
the  lodge  and  that  the  men  should  burn  cedar  limbs  in  the  lodge,  and 
that  the  man  should  be  placed  on  the  south  side  of  the  lodge. 

All  these  things  were  done.  A  tipi  was  now  put  up  to  the  west  of  the 
woman's  lodge.  She  took  her  husband  into  the  tipi,  carrying  her  medi- 
cine bundle  with  her.  When  they  went  in  she  untied  the  bundle,  and 
for  the  first  time  her  husband  saw  the  things  that  she  had  in  it.  She 
took  her  skirt  off  and  wore  a  piece  of  tanned  buffalo  to  cover  her  waist. 
She  painted  her  body  with  yellow  paint  and  took  the  yellow  feather  and 
put  it  in  her  hair.  She  then  painted  her  husband  with  the  red  paint  and 
put  the  red  feather  in  his  hair.  She  then  sang  a  song  to  call  the  Bears 
to  help  her.  The  Bears  had  told  her  to  sing  the  song,  and  promised 
that  if  they  heard  it  and  decided  to  help  her,  she  would  find  on  the  next 
morning  cedar  limbs  around  her  tipi. 

The  song  she  sang  was  this: 

Some  one  spoke  and  told  me. 
Yonder  shall  come,  yonder  shall  come. 
That  my  father  stood  where  I  now  stand. 
Yonder  shall  come,  yonder  shall  come, 
Yonder  shall  come,  yonder  shall  come, 
Yonder  shall  come,  yonder  shall  come, 
Yonder  shall  come,  yonder^shall  come. 


THE  BEAR  MEDICINE  AND  CEREMONY.  351 

I  am  now  imitating  the  Bear, 

I  am  now  acting  like  one. 

Yonder  shall  come,  yonder  shall  come, 

Yonder  shall  come,   yonder  shall  come, 

Yonder  shall  come,  yonder  shall  come. 

This  song  she  repeated  several  times.  All  the  time  she  was  grunting 
and  making  a  noise  like  a  bear,  so  the  man  was  made  to  feel  like  a  bear. 
They  sat  in  their  tipi  all  night  singing  bear  songs.  In  the  morning  the 
man  filled  his  pipe ;  then  they  both  went  out.  As  the  sun  came  up  from 
the  east,  the  woman  inhaled  power  from  it,  and  the  man  smoked  to  it. 
Then  the  woman  and  the  man  gathered  some  of  the  cedars  and  they 
started  for  the  wounded  man's  lodge.  The  wounded  man's  relatives 
were  anxious  to  have  them  to  come,  for  the  wounded  man  was  getting 
worse. 

As  the  woman  and  man  went  through  the  village  they  sang  another 
song.  When  they  entered  the  lodge  they  sang  a  third  song.  Then  the 
woman  went  around  the  lodge  by  way  of  the  north,  then  to  the  south, 
where  the  patient  lay. 

She  stood  on  the  east  side  of  the  lodge  and  blew  her  breath;  there 
was  no  color  to  her  breath.  Again  she  went  around  the  lodge  and  blew 
her  breath.  Again  and  again  she  went  around  the  lodge,  then  told  the 
people  to  remove  the  robe  and  to  bare  the  man 's  wound.  She  looked  at 
the  wound,  then  blew  her  breath  at  it,  and  her  breath  was  yellow.  The 
breath  went  straight  to  the  wound.  She  went  around  the  lodge  again 
and  stood  on  the  east  side  and  blew  her  breath  again.  It  was  red  and 
went  straight  to  the  wound.  Again  she  ran  around  the  lodge  and  stood 
on  the  east  side  and  blew  her  breath,  and  this  time  it  was  black,  and  it 
went  straight  to  the  wound.  The  last  time  her  breath  was  white,  and 
it  went  straight  to  the  wound.  The  wound  seemed  to  become  fresh  and 
the  blood  began  to  flow.  She  then  went  to  the  man  and  blew  different 
breaths  into  him.  The  spirit  of  the  Bear  within  the  woman  was  roused. 
The  woman  began  grunting  and  raising  her  hands.  Some  of  the  people 
said,  "The  bear's  teeth  are  coming  out. "  Her  husband  took  the  cedar 
limbs  and  tapped  the  woman  on  her  back  until  she  quieted  down. 
Some  limbs  of  cedar  were  put  upon  the  coals,  so  that  the  smell  of  burnt 
cedar  and  smoke  was  all  over  the  lodge.  The  woman  and  the  man  then 
went  home.  Four  days  afterwards  the  woman  went  through  the  same 
performance.  She  never  gave  the  man  any  medicine,  but  the  man's 
wound  began  to  heal.  The  third  time  she  went  through  the  performance, 
and  the  fourth  time.  The  wound  was  healing  rapidly  and  the  wounded 
man  was  getting  well. 


352  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

One  day  the  man  sat  up  in  his  bed  and  talked  to  his  relatives  and 
said:  "My  people,  this  is  a  wonderful  woman;  ever  since  she  doctored 
me  I  have  felt  good.  In  my  sleep  I  see  her  as  she  is,  naked  with  only  a 
covering  about  her  waist,  the  yellow  feather  tied  to  her  hair,  in  her  right 
hand  a  cedar  limb,  in  her  left  hand  the  young  bear  hide;  on  her  left  side 
a  she  cinnamon  bear  is  walking.  She  and  the  bears  come  to  my  bedside 
and  walk  around  me;  then  they  are  gone. "  The  wounded  man  continued: 
"Now,  my  friends,  I  want  to  know  how  many  ponies  and  how  many 
buffalo  robes  you  are  going  to  send  to  this  wonderful  woman,  for  I  now 
feel  well.  I  am  a  little  weak,  but  I  feel  that  I  can  walk  around  and  the 
wound  will  not  hurt  me. "  His  friends  told  him  that  they  were  to  send 
many  robes,  seven  parfleches  filled  with  dried  buffalo,  and  five  head  of 
ponies.  The  wounded  man  was  not  satisfied,  for  he  had  made  up  his 
mind  to  make  himself  poor  in  heart  before  her,  so  that  she  might  take 
pity  upon  him  and  give  him  the  spirit  of  the  Bear. 

The  woman  learned  the  thoughts  of  the  man  in  her  dream  from  the 
Bear.  One  day  the  woman  and  her  husband  went  to  the  lodge  of  the 
wounded  man,  and  she  told  the  wounded  man  not  to  worry  about  her 
pay;  that  she  was  satisfied  with  the  pay,  and  that  from  that  day  the 
wounded  man  was  to  become  a  member  of  the  Bear  society.  The  man 
arose  and  thanked  the  woman  by  passing  his  hands  over  her  head,  then 
down  over  her  arms,  saying,  "You  have  taken  pity  upon  me.  I  was 
wounded  very  badly;  I  could  not  see;  it  was  all  dark  to  me."  The 
woman  told  the  man  to  sit  down.  Then  she  went  around  the  lodge  and 
stood  in  the  west,  facing  east.  She  called  the  wounded  man  to  her.  He 
went  to  her  and  she  stood  him  in  her  place.  She  then  ran  around  the 
lodge,  slapping  her  side  as  she  went  around.  Then  she  staggered  and 
caught  the  wounded  man,  pulled  his  head  to  hers,  so  that  their  mouths 
met,  and  she  put  some  pounded  cherries  into  his  mouth  and  told  him  to 
eat.  He  ate.  The  man  became  well.  His  relatives  sent  robes,  and 
parfleches  filled  with  meat,  upon  ponies  to  the  woman. 

Another  ceremony  took  place.  As  the  offerings  were  brought,  the 
robes  and  parfleches  were  taken  into  the  tipi,  and  the  ponies  were  tied 
outside.  The  woman  took  her  medicine  bundle,  emptied  it,  and  placed 
the  young  bear  hide  on  the  west  side  of  the  fireplace  and  the  feathers 
and  the  paints  on  each  side  of  the  Bear.  She  next  took  some  native 
tobacco,  went  out  to  the  horses,  put  her  hand  in  each  horse's  mouth 
and  wet  her  hand  with  the  horse's  saliva.  She  rubbed  the  native 
tobacco  with  this.  Then  she  went  into  the  tipi  and  stood  on  the  west 
side  of  the  fireplace.  She  offered  a  little  of  the  tobacco  to  the  sun,  and 
set  the  tobacco  on  the  edge  of  the  fireplace ;  then  she  offered  a  little  more 


THE  BEAR  MEDICINE  AND  CEREMONY.  353 

to  the  west,  where  the  sun  sets,  and  that  was  also  placed  by  the  fireplace. 
Then  she  offered  a  little  more  to  the  southwest,  to  the  home  of  the  Bears; 
this  was  placed  upon  the  ground,  southwest  of  the  fireplace.  Now  she 
went  to  the  bear  hide  and  placed  the  native  tobacco  upon  its  nostrils, 
passing  her  hands  over  the  head  and  down  the  body.  She  made  another 
preparation  of  tobacco  and  horse  saliva.  She  took  it  out  and  placed  it 
on  the  southwest  side  of  the  tipi,  for  this  was  a  special  offering  to  the 
Bear.  The  woman  then  told  her  husband  to  fill  his  pipe  and  smoke,  and 
to  give  one  whiff  to  Tirawa,  four  whiffs  to  the  sun  in  the  east,  and  four 
whiffs  in  the  west  to  the  setting  sun ,  and  four  to  the  southwest  to  home 
of  the  Bears.  The  ashes  were  dumped  out  southwest  of  the  fireplace. 

When  the  man  had  finished  the  smoke  offering,  he  called  his  errand 
man  to  take  the  ponies  to  the  other  herd  of  ponies  that  were  grazing 
upon  the  prairie.  The  man  returned  to  the  tipi,  and  as  he  sat  down  the 
woman  began  to  tell  him  how  the  Bear  came  to  her  and  how  he  took 
her  to  their  den.  Her  husband  was  glad  to  hear  the  story,  so  the  woman 
taught  him  all  the  songs  she  had  learned  from  the  Bear.  The  people 
now  knew  that  the  woman  had  wonderful  powers. 

Several  years  afterwards  she  gave  birth  to  a  son,  and  this  son  grew 
and  was  never  known  to  be  sick.  Years  afterward  she  gave  birth  to  a 
girl.  These  two  children  grew.  The  woman  gave  birth  to  several  other 
children  and  they  died.  She  knew  that  they  would,  for  she  caught  only 
two  young  Bears,  when  she  was  told  to  catch  as  many  as  she  could. 

On  one  of  their  buffalo  hunts  the  man  killed  many  buffalo  and  the 
woman  tanned  them.  She  had  many,  so  she  made  a  tipi.  After  the 
tipi  was  completed,  she  sent  for  the  wounded  man  and  some  of  her  own 
relatives,  and  she  had  the  tipi  painted  as  she  had  been  told  by  the  Bear. 

In  the  Bear  ceremonies  and  dances  the  woman  was  sent  for,  because 
she  was  one  of  the  leading  persons  in  the  Bear  dance.  On  the  buffalo 
hunts  the  woman  always  had  the  man  possessed  of  the  Bear  spirit; 
so  if  he  was  attacked  by  the  enemy  he  could  fight  and  would  not  be 
afraid  of  the  enemy;  for  the  arrows  and  bullets  could  not  go  through 
his  body.  "But,"  said  the  woman,  "if  they  should  happen  to  strike 
you  on  the  hands  you  will  surely  die. "  On  one  of  these  hunts  the  men 
had  gone  to  attack  buffalo,  and  the  women  and  children  had  gone  to  a 
creek  near  by  and  made  camp.  As  the  men  attacked  the  buffalo  and 
scattered  out,  the  enemy  attacked  them.  As  the  shouts  and  shooting 
were  heard,  the  men  left  their  dead  buffalo  and  ran  their  ponies  toward 
camp.  In  this  way  the  Skidi  gathered  together  and  they  fought  the 
enemy;  but  the  enemy  was  more  numerous  and  the  Skidi  had  to  run. 
The  last  to  run  was  Bear- Woman's  husband.  He  fought  bravely  and 


354  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

was  wounded  in  several  places  on  the  body,  but  he  kept  on  fighting. 
The  Skidi  were  run  into  a  pond.  Then  the  enemy  turned  their  ponies 
and  gave  up  the  chase.  As  the  Skidi  crossed  the  pond,  Bear- Woman 's 
husband  began  to  give  out.  "Tell  my  wife  that  I  am  going  to  die;  tell 
her  that  I  was  not  possessed  with  the  Bear 's  spirit  when  we  were  attacked ; 
tell  her  I  fought  hard,  and  as  I  have  many  wounds  I  must  die. " 

Word  was  sent  to  the  woman  and  she  went  through  the  camp  asking 
the  women  if  any  of  them  were  sick  with  blood.  The  man 's  own  niece 
came  forward  and  said,  "I  am  sick."  Bear- Woman  took  this  young 
woman  with  her  to  where  the  men  were  coming  with  her  husband.  The 
women  got  there  too  late,  for  the  man  had  died.  The  woman  began  to 
mourn  for  her  husband.  Many  days  and  months  the  woman  continued 
to  mourn  for  her  husband.  As  her  children  were  growing  up,  she  com- 
menced to  teach  to  her  boy  the  mysteries  of  the  Bear.  Her  tipi  was  always 
decorated. 

The  fame  of  her  powers  reached  other  bands,  and  once  a  Chaui  came 
to  her  tipi  and  placed  before  her  a  parfleche  filled  with  dried  buffalo  meat 
and  many  robes  and  two  ponies.  He  placed  his  hands  upon  her  head 
and  begged  her  to  teach  him  the  mysteries  of  the  Bear.  He  sat  down 
in  the  lodge.  She  sat  for  a  long  time  in  silence.  At  last  she  spoke  and 
said:  "You  are  trying  me;  you  want  to  see  if  what  you  have  heard  is 
true.  I  do  not  do  the  things  that  you  have  heard  I  do,  for  these  things 
are  done  by  other  powers.  I  believe  in  these  powers.  You  will  doubt 
them  and  doubt  me.  I  will  try  you,  and  if  I  see  that  you  are  not  poor 
in  spirit  I  will  stop. "  This  Chaui  man  proved  to  be  a  believer  in  animal 
power;  so  the  woman  taught  him  the  mysteries  of  the  Bear.  The  Chaui 
man  was  so  good  that  the  woman  gave  him  her  Bear  dance.  His  tipi 
was  also  painted  like  the  woman's  tipi. 

The  Chaui  man  stayed  with  this  woman  for  many  years.  He  hunted 
and  killed  buffalo  and  game  and  brought  them  to  the  woman 's  tipi.  He 
also  cared  for  her  children,  and  clothed  them  with  the  finest  of  buckskin. 
In  the  fall,  after  the  hunts,  the  woman  joined  the  medicine-men's  lodge, 
and  sat  with  the  Bear  family,  on  the  south  side.  She  did  not  join  the 
Bear  family  who  sat  in  the  west,  and  who  were  the  Grizzlies,  for  these 
were  the  ones  who  caught  men  in  the  doctors '  lodge  and  cut  them  open 
with  a  bear's  claw,  and  pulled  the  liver  through  the  opening  and  ate  it. 
This,  the  woman  said,  she  was  not  told  to  do.  In  her  sleight-of-hand 
she  made  a  plum  tree  grow  from  the  hard  ground,  inside  the  medicine- 
men 's  lodge ;  then  she  would  shake  it  and  many  plums  would  fall  from 
the  tree.  Many  wonderful  things  she  did  in  the  sleight-of-hand  perform- 
ances. Most  of  these  things  she  taught  to  her  own  son. 


THE  BEAR  MEDICINE    AND  CEREMONY.  355 

Many  times,  while  on  a  buffalo  hunt,  the  woman  would  find  cedar 
limbs  around  her  tipi.  She  would  tie  them  into  a  bundle  and  pack  them 
around  until  the  people  who  belonged  to  the  Bear  family  came  and 
asked  for  some  of  the  cedar  branches.  She  would  give  them  away,  but 
never  threw  them  away. 

This  woman  lived  to  be  very  old.  When  she  died,  the  son  took  her 
place  and  became  one  of  the  four  leading  dancers  in  the  Bear  ceremony. 
The  woman  before  she  died  gave  a  name  to  the  Chaui  man,  and  that  name 
was  Carry-the-War-Club-in-  Anger.  Her  son  she  named  Wonderful-Sun. 

Her  teachings  are  now  kept  by  Seems-Like-Chief.  He  is  a  young 
man,  but  has  in  his  keeping  a  bear's  claw  that  the  woman  was  supposed 
to  have,  and  also  has  a  young  bear  robe  which  is  decorated.  This  dance 
is  still  performed  each  summer  by  the  descendants  of  this  Chaui. 

92.  THE  BUFFALO  POWER  AND  THE  WILD  HORSE  DANCE.1 

A  long  time  ago  there  was  a  big  village  upon  a  river,  and  in  this 
village  lived  a  chief  who  had  become  famous  for  traveling  to  many 
places  and  capturing  many  ponies  and  killing  people.  All  of  the  other 
chiefs  looked  upon  him  as  the  big  chief  of  the  tribe.  When  he  gave 
orders  they  were  carried  out  at  once.  This  chief  had  many  wives,  the 
youngest  of  whom  gave  birth  to  a  boy.  The  chief  cared  for  this  boy 
and  talked  to  him,  telling  how  he  had  become  a  great  chief.  The  peo- 
ple looked  to  the  son  to  become  chief  some  day  and  fill  his  father's 
place  without  having  to  go  on  the  war-path.  As  the  boy  grew  up  he 
thought  that  his  father  did  not  like  him,  because  he  talked  so  much  to 
him  about  what  he  should  do  to  become  a  chief,  to  fight  in  battles,  go 
on  the  war-path,  and  capture  ponies.  The  boy  made  up  his  mind  that 
as  soon  as  he  should  get  a  chance  he  would  join  a  war  party.  The  first 
war  party  he  found  going  out,  he  joined.  The  war  party  failed  and  had 
to  return  home  unsuccessful.  The  young  man  wanted  to  go  on  another 
war  party,  and  so  he  would  stay  out  at  night,  visiting  different  lodges, 
to  see  if  there  was  any  war  party  going  out.  Whenever  he  found  a 
war  party  starting  out  he  joined  it.  The  parties  that  he  joined  were 
unsuccessful.  They  met  obstacles,  were  seen  by  the  enemy,  were  run 
after,  sometimes  surrounded,  and  often  some  of  the  warriors  killed.  The 
boy,  however,  always  managed  to  escape.  If  the  war  party  happened 
to  capture  many  ponies,  they  were  overtaken  and  the  ponies  taken  from 


by  Roaming-Chief,  Chaui.  The  story  especially  points  the  moral  that  a 
chief  is  not  necessarily  a  great  man,  and  especially  that,  if  he  proves  to  be  lazy, 
people  will  have  no  respect  for  him. 


356  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

them.  The  warriors  began  to  worry,  and  they  finally  found  out  that 
when  the  young  man  was  with  the  party  it  met  hardships,  was  found  out 
by  the  enemy,  and  driven  away.  Other  war  parties  that  the  young  man 
had  not  joined  were  successful  and  brought  home  many  ponies.  After 
these  facts  were  recognized  the  warriors  were  careful  to  conceal  from 
the  boy  their  departure  from  the  village,  and  if  he  followed  and  caught 
up  with  them  the  warriors  told  him  to  return  home ;  and  they  called  him 
all  kinds  of  names,  but  still  he  would  follow  them.  Finally  all  of  the 
warriors  would  turn  back  home,  for  they  knew  there  was  no  use  going 
farther.  The  whole  village  grew  to  dislike  the  boy  and  he  came  to  be 
known  as  Poor-Boy. 

At  length  the  boy's  father  heard  what  the  warriors  thought  of  his 
son.  He  became  angry  at  his  boy,  called  him  all  kinds  of  names,  then 
told  him  that  he  should  go  upon  the  war-path  alone.  His  father  and 
mother  both  were  angry  at  their  son  and  ashamed  of  him.  The  boy 
became  very  sad.  He  would  sit  day  after  day,  wishing  that  the  enemy 
would  attack  the  village,  so  that  he  could  ride  one  of  his  father's  ponies 
right  into  the  enemy's  lines  and  be  killed;  but  the  enemy  never  appeared. 
Once  or  twice  he  was  about  to  commit  suicide.  All  at  once  he  made  up 
his  mind  to  go  away  from  his  village,  so  that  if  he  was  found  by  the  enemy 
he  might  be  killed;  and  if  not  found  by  the  enemy  he  might  meet  some 
wild  animals  and  be  killed  by  them;  and  if  not  killed  by  the  animals,  he 
might  starve  to  death. 

One  evening  the  boy  went  to  his  mother  and  said,  "Mother,  can  you 
give  me  one  or  two  pairs  of  moccasins  and  a  little  something  to  eat?" 
His  mother  said,  "No,  my  son,  I  can  not  give  them  to  you,  for  there  is 
no  use  of  your  trying  to  join  war  parties. "  The  young  man  said,  "I  am 
not  going  with  any  war  party,  but  I  am  going  alone. "  His  mother  gave 
him  two  pairs  of  moccasins,  one  pair  filled  with  parched  corn  and  the 
other  pair  filled  with  pemmican.  In  the  night  the  boy  put  his  leggings 
and  moccasins  on  and  a  covering  robe  over  his  shoulders,  took  his  quiver, 
slung  it  over  his  shoulders,  took  a  piece  of  buffalo  hair  lariat  rope  and 
tied  it  around  his  waist,  and  hung  his  moccasins  from  it.  He  started 
out  and  went  directly  west.  Each  day  he  took  a  very  little  of  the  meat 
and  a  few  kernels  of  corn.  The  farther  he  went  the  more  he  ate,  until 
at  last  he  had  eaten  all  he  had.  He  kept  on  day  after  day.  He  was 
very  hungry  and  very  thin,  so  he  could  walk  only  a  very  short  distance; 
then  he  had  to  stop  and  lie  down,  for  his  strength  was  leaving  him. 

One  day  he  felt  dizzy.  He  could  not  see  very  far  and  he  knew  that 
he  must  be  dying.  At  a  short  distance  there  was  a  hill.  He  made  up 
his  mind  to  go  to  the  hill  and  lie  down  upon  it,  so  that  if  he  should  die 


THE  BUFFALO  POWER  AND  THE  WILD  HORSE  DANCE.        357 

the  birds  would  find  him,  and  the  people,  seeing  the  birds  fly  over  the  hill, 
would  come  to  it  and  find  his  body  and  would  know  that  he  was  dead. 

When  he  reached  the  top  of  the  hill  he  saw  a  big  lake  in  a  valley  and 
things  that  looked  like  people  standing  around  the  lake.  He  did  not 
lie  down,  but  went  down  to  the  lake  to  wash  his  mouth.  He  stooped  over 
and  drank  some  water,  cleansed  his  mouth,  washed,  then  sat  down  by  the 
lake  and  spoke  with  a  loud  voice  and  said:  "This  is  a  good  place  for 
me  to  die.  You  gods  who  may  have  control  of  this  place,  let  me  die  here. " 
He  then  took  off  his  moccasins,  his  leggings,  his  robe,  and  everything  that 
he  had  on.  He  spread  the  robe,  put  all  the  other  things  in  a  row  and 
tied  them  up,  stood  up  and  said:  "You  animals  who  have  control  of 
this  lake,  I  give  you  these  things,  for  I  am  about  to  die.  I  have  no  fur- 
ther use  for  them, "  and  he  threw  the  bundle  into  the  lake. 

He  sat  down  and  he  thought  he  had  gone  to  sleep,  for  while  he  was 
sitting  there  he  saw  two  clouds  of  dust  coming  up  from  the  west.  The 
first  cloud  was  made  by  two  wild  horses,  one  a  black  horse  and  the 
other  a  gray.  The  two  horses  ran  around  the  lake,  one  on  each  side  of 
it;  and  they  came  to  the  boy  and  stopped.  Both  looked  at  him;  then 
they  turned  and  ran  back  from  whence  they  had  come.  The  other 
cloud  of  dust  came  and  there  were  two  buffalo,  and  they  circled  around 
the  lake  to  where  the  boy  was  sitting,  stopped  on  each  side  of  him  and 
looked  at  him.  Then  the  buffalo  returned  from  whence  they  had  come. 
The  boy  thought  he  woke  up.  He  saw  the  dust  again.  This  time  the 
horses  were  together,  and  the  two  buffalo  were  together,  and  instead  of 
stopping  on  each  side  of  him,  they  ran  over  him,  so  that  he  was  rolled 
over.  The  horses  and  buffalo  went  back  from  whence  they  had  come. 
The  boy  sat  up  again  and  saw  a  big  drove  of  buffalo  coming.  The 
buffalo  ran  over  him  and  trampled  him,  and  he  thought  that  he  was 
killed. 

Somebody  touched  the  boy,  and  he  sat  up.  He  was  in  a  big  lodge 
under  the  lake.  He  looked  around  on  the  north  side,  and  saw  that  the 
men  of  that  side  were  all  decorated  with  paint  and  feathers  and  imitated 
Horses.  On  the  south  side  the  people  wore  the  Buffalo  tail  upon  their 
backs,  and  were  Buffalo.  The  leader  of  the  Buffalo  spoke  and  said: 
"My  son,  we  know  that  you  are  very  poor.  The  people  do  not  like  to 
have  anything  to  do  with  you,  for  you  have  been  very  unlucky  in  all 
your  undertakings,  and  the  people  grew  to  dislike  you.  We  knew  this. 
We  sent  for  you.  All  the  men  that  you  see  on  my  side  are  the  Buffalo 
that  you  saw  attack  you.  All  the  men  that  you  see  on  the  north  side 
are  horses  that  you  saw  when  they  attacked  you.  We  had  to  do  this  in 
order  to  bring  you  into  our  lodge.  We  made  up  our  minds  to  take  pity 


358  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

upon  you  and  give  you  certain  powers,  so  that  you  may  become  a  great 
warrior,  and  finally  become  a  chief.  We  wish  to  make  a  medicine-man 
of  you  and  you  must  start  a  dance  among  your  people  known  as  the 
Buffalo  and  Wild  Horse  dance.  There  are  your  things  in  front  of  you. 
Put  the  things  upon  you  and  sit  among  us.  Before  we  do  anything  for 
you,  we  wish  you  to  go  home  and  let  your  father  and  mother  know  that 
your  are  alive,  for  they  are  mourning  over  you.  We  also  want  you  to 
go  after  presents  for  us.  Now,  I  want  you  to  look  at  me  and  you  will  see 
that  all  these  Buffalo  on  the  south  side  are  my  children.  Now  that 
you  have  been  taken  into  my  lodge  you  shall  die  of  old  age,  but  you  shall 
also  have  many  children.  Now  look  at  me. "  The  boy  looked  on  the 
south  side  and  there  sat  an  old  bull  whose  skin  was  bare  of  hair,  on 
account  of  old  age.  There  were  a  few  hairs  on  his  head ;  the  rest  of  his 
skin  had  no  hair.  The  bull  said:  "My  son,  you  have  heard  me  ask  my 
children  to  take  pity  upon  you,  and  they  have  consented  to  do  so ;  but 
first  bring  me  native  tobacco,  blue  beads,  a  black  silk  handkerchief, 
and  brown  eagle  feathers."  The  Horse  then  spoke  and  said,  "My  son, 
look  at  me. "  The  boy  looked,  and  there  sat  an  old  black  Horse.  It  had 
only  a  few  hairs  on  its  mane  and  tail.  The  black  Horse  then  said:  "My 
son,  my  children  have  taken  pity  upon  you;  but  first  get  me  native 
tobacco,  sweet  grass,  black  buffalo  lariat  rope,  eagle  feathers,  and  paint." 
Then  they  set  the  boy  west  of  the  lodge,  and  all  the  Buffalo  and  the  Horses 
arose  and  ran  to  the  boy,  and  as  they  gathered  around  him  he  disappeared. 

When  the  young  man  came  to,  he  was  sitting  by  the  lake  as  he  sat 
before.  He  saw  to  his  right  something  standing  up  like  a  Horse,  that 
spoke  to  him  and  said:  "I  am  going  to  your  home  with  you.  I  am 
the  black  Horse  that  you  saw  on  the  north  side  that  was  so  poor,  old, 
and  thin."  The  boy  then  arose  and  started  back  home.  In  the  even- 
ing the  black  Horse  said,  "My  son,  I  eat  the  grass.  You  must  eat  as 
I  do. "  The  boy  ate  a  few  bunches  of  grass  and  was  filled.  Each  day 
the  horse  circled  around  the  boy,  and  this  was  done  to  take  the  tired 
feeling  from  the  boy.  The  Horse  and  the  boy  traveled  fast.  One 
night  they  came  to  a  village  and  the  Horse  stopped  and  told  the  boy  that 
it  was  his  father's  village. 

The  boy  went  into  his  village  and  found  his  father's  lodge.  He 
entered  the  lodge  and  woke  up  his  mother.  She  screamed,  but  the  boy 
spoke  to  her.  He  told  his  father  that  he  was  there.  The  old  man  kin- 
dled a  fire.  The  boy  told  his  mother  and  father  that  he  had  come,  but 
that  he  had  not  come  to  stay;  that  he  had  to  go  back,  but  that  he  wanted 
his  father  to  go  through  the  village  and  tell  his  brothers  that  he  wanted 
tobacco,  blue  beads,  a  black  silk  handkerchief,  sweet  grass,  and  brown 


THE  BUFFALO  POWER  AND  THE  WILD  HORSE  DANCE.        359 

eagle  feathers.  He  told  his  mother  to  go  and  get  for  him  tobacco,  sweet 
grass,  a  black  lariat  rope,  brown  eagle  feathers,  and  paint.  The  boy  told 
her  to  go  to  her  brothers  and  get  these  things.  His  father  and  mother 
both  came  into  the  village  with  the  things  the  boy  wanted.  When  the 
boy  received  the  presents,  he  told  his  father  and  mother  that  he  was  to 
go  away  for  a  short  time,  and  would  return  in  a  few  days.  The  boy 
carried  the  presents  out  to  the  Horse.  The  Horse  circled  around  him 
and  hit  him  with  his  tail,  to  give  him  speed.  The  boy  and  the  Horse 
started  back  to  the  lodge  of  the  Buffalo,  and  before  daylight  they  arrived 
and  were  taken  into  the  lodge. 

The  Buffalo  and  the  Horse  put  the  feathers  upon  their  heads.  The 
Horse  gave  the  boy  a  spear,  a  shield,  and  a  black  lariat  rope.  The  Buffalo 
gave  him  buffalo  wool  and  some  mud  and  told  him  to  use  it  upon  his  body 
in  battles.  The  boy  was  taken  out  of  the  lodge  again.  He  went  home. 

The  first  chance  he  got  he  called  upon  a  certain  poor  boy  that  had 
been  his  friend  when  he  had  fallen  into  disfavor  with  all  the  village.  He 
took  this  boy  and  they  went  upon  the  war-path  alone.  In  a  few  days 
they  found  a  village  and  the  two  captured  many  ponies.  Among  the 
ponies  were  three  that  were  very  fine — one  black,  one  dun,  and  one  gray. 
When  they  came  near  the  village  the  boy  kept  the  black  and  the  dun 
ponies,  and  the  gray  he  gave  to  his  friend. 

Several  times  the  two  young  men  went  out,  and  each  time  they  were 
successful  and  captured  ponies  and  brought  them  home.  Other  war- 
riors sneaked  around  to  find  when  these  young  men  were  going  out,  for 
they  went  out  secretly.  The  boy  became  a  great  warrior.  When  the 
village  was  attacked  by  the  enemy,  the  young  man  sat  in  his  lodge  and 
told  stories  in  an  unconcerned  way.  When  he  thought  it  was  time  to  go 
out  to  help  his  people,  he  took  the  dun  horse,  put  the  paint  upon  it,  put 
the  paint  upon  his  body,  and  took  the  shield  and  the  black  lariat  rope  and 
spear.  He  placed  the  black  lariat  rope  about  his  waist  and  jumped  upon 
the  dun  horse  and  went  out  to  battle.  He  rode  between  the  foes  and  all 
the  time  waved  his  spear  while  the  enemy  were  shooting  at  him.  Again 
he  passed  through  the  lines  and  shook  the  spear  at  the  enemy,  and  when 
he  saw  that  they  were  frightened  he  commanded  all  his  people  to  attack. 
When  his  people  made  a  rush  at  the  enemy,  they  gave  way  and  his  peo- 
ple slaughtered  many  of  them.  His  father  saw  all  of  these  things  that 
he  had  done  and  was  well  pleased.  He  spoke  to  him  and  told  him  that 
he  must  marry.  There  was  another  chief  who  had  only  two  children, 
a  boy  and  a  girl.  To  their  place  the  boy  was  sent  to  marry  the  girl. 
They  were  married,  and  in  a  few  years  they  had  children,  and  the  boy 
became  chief  of  the  tribe. 


360  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

There  was  another  young  man,  who  was  also  of  high  birth,  who 
became  very  jealous  of  the  young  man,  for  the  young  man  had  married 
the  girl  whom  he  wanted.  The  jealous  boy  went  to  the  girl's  brother 
and  told  him  many  bad  things  about  his  brother-in-law,  so  that  the 
brother  also  wanted  to  harm  his  sister's  husband.  The  married  boy 
told  his  brother-in-law  that  of  all  the  Horses  he  had,  he  must  not  ride 
the  dun  Horse  or  the  black  Horse  when  hunting.  The  brother-in-law 
stayed  in  the  tipi  one  day  and  told  his  father  that  he  wanted  the  dun 
Horse  for  his  own  use,  but  his  father  told  him  that  he  could  not  have  the 
dun  Horse,  for  it  belonged  to  his  son.  The  boy  left  the  tipi,  went  out, 
bridled  the  dun  Horse,  and  chased  Buffalo.  As  he  came  up  with  one 
bull,  it  turned  around  and  hooked  the  Horse  in  several  places;  then  it 
hooked  the  boy  in  several  places  and  killed  him.  The  owner  of  the  dun 
Horse  was  staying  in  the  tipi,  when  the  black  Horse  neighed.  The  owner 
of  the  dun  Horse  then  said  to  his  father-in-law:  "Go  and  bring  your 
boy,  for  he  is  dead.  A  Buffalo  has  killed  him  and  my  Horse. "  The  old 
man  did  not  believe  it.  He  went  through  the  village  asking  everybody 
if  they  had  seen  his  son,  and  if  anybody  had  come  in  with  the  news  that 
his  son  had  been  killed.  Nobody  seemed  to  know. 

The  old  man  and  the  old  woman  went  out  and  found  that  the 
horse  was  still  living,  but  that  the  boy  was  all  cut  up.  They  took  the 
boy  home,  mourning  as  they  went  along,  and  just  as  they  came  opposite 
the  village  the  owner  of  the  dun  Horse  sent  word  to  the  old  people  to 
take  the  body  of  the  boy  around  the  village  and  place  it  on  the  east  side. 
The  old  man  knew  that  the  young  man  was  going  to  perform  a  miracle ; 
that  he  was  going  to  try  to  bring  his  boy  back  to  life.  The  owner  of  the 
dun  Horse  then  told  the  people  that  they  must  all  keep  quiet  and  fasten 
their  Horses  tight,  so  that  none  of  them  could  get  away.  That  night 
they  heard  the  Horses  neigh  and  snort ;  then  there  was  a  rumbling  noise. 
All  the  horses  in  the  village  seemed  to  jump  up  and  run  and  were  scared ; 
but  the  owner  of  the  dun  Horse  had  placed  guards  around  the  village 
to  keep  the  people  still.  The  neighing  of  the  Horses  was  kept  up ;  also 
the  rumbling  noise.  One  of  the  men  followed  the  noise  around  and 
found  out  that  it  was  the  black  and  the  dun  Horses  that  were  running 
to  the  body  of  the  young  man.  Just  as  the  sun  was  coming  up  in  the 
east,  the  two  Horses  ran  over  the  young  man  and  touched  him.  The 
horses  went  on  the  south  side  of  the  village  and  there  stood  panting. 

All  through  the  night  the  young  man  sat  up.  He  awoke  his  wife; 
told  her  to  prepare  a  meal  by  boiling  some  of  the  fattest  buffalo  meat. 
After  the  meat  was  boiled  down,  the  owner  of  the  dun  Horse  told  his 
wife  to  go  to  their  brother  and  touch  and  shake  him  and  tell  him  to 


THE  BUFFALO  POWER  AND  THE  WILD  HORSE  DANCE.       361 

arise  from  his  sleep  and  come,  for  he  had  slept  too  long.  The  woman 
went  and  touched  her  brother,  told  him  that  he  had  slept  too  long,  and 
that  it  was  time  for  him  to  get  up.  The  young  man  sat  up  and  said, 
"I  have  slept  too  long."  Then  the  young  girl  hugged  her  brother  and 
said,  "My  brother,  you  were  killed."  Then  he  remembered  chasing  the 
Buffalo.  He  went  to  the  tipi  and  ate. 

The  people  would  not  believe  that  the  young  man  had  brought  his 
brother-in-law  to  life,  and  they  said  that  the  young  man  was  not  power- 
ful. One  time  when  he  led  a  war  party  out  they  were  seen  by  the  enemy, 
and  just  as  the  enemy  were  about  to  overtake  them  the  young  man, 
owner  of  the  dun  Horse,  took  the  lariat  rope  from  his  shoulder,  and 
called  the  men  together  to  stand  by  him.  He  put  the  lariat  rope  over 
his  shoulder,  and  a  storm  came  down  from  the  heavens  and  covered  the 
enemy,  and  they  went  off  in  different  directions,  but  around  where  they 
were  it  was  clear.  The  owner  of  the  dun  Horse  told  them  that  he  was 
the  one  who  had  caused  the  storm.  They  captured  many  ponies  and 
went  home. 

At  another  time  many  different  tribes  joined  together  to  kill  these 
people,  for  they  had  heard  that  they  had  a  wonderful  man  among  them. 
The  tribes  attacked  the  village  and  the  people  went  out  to  protect  their 
village  and  fight,  and  after  a  while  the  young  man  came  and  fought  with 
them.  He  saw  that  the  enemy  were  numerous  and  that  his  people  would 
be  killed  if  he  did  not  prevent  it.  He  went  to  the  east  end  of  the  battle 
lines,  jumped  from  his  pony,  took  his  spear  and  swung  it  over  his  head. 
He  dropped  it  in  the  center  of  the  battle  line.  As  the  spear  fell  upon  the 
ground,  a  noise  was  made  in  the  ground,  and  the  earth  opened  up  and 
his  people  stood  on  one  side  and  the  enemy  on  the  other  side,  so  that 
the  enemy  could  not  attack  them  any  more.  The  people  then  knew 
that  this  young  man  had  great  powers ;  but  still  the  jealous  young  man 
kept  on  talking  to  the  brother  about  him. 

At  another  time  when  a  battle  was  going  on,  the  girl's  brother  got 
on  the  dun  Horse,  went  out,  and  fought  the  enemy.  He  knew  very  well 
that  the  owner  did  not  want  him  to  ride  the  horse,  for  he  had  told  him  so. 
The  owner  of  the  dun  Horse  spoke  to  his  wife  and  said:  "Your  brother 
has  been  trying  in  some  way  to  cause  my  death.  He  has  succeeded  at 
last.  You  see  me  now  for  the  last  time.  My  father,  the  Buffalo,  told 
me  that  I  would  have  many  children  and  grow  to  old  age,  but  my  brother- 
in-law  has  done  wrong;  for  both  of  my  horses  must  not  fight  in  the  same 
battle,  but  one  must  fight  at  a  time.  I  go  to  battle  for  the  last  time. 
Keep  this  black  lariat  rope  for  your  own.  Our  children  will  grow  up. 
Let  them  carry  it  upon  the  war-path,  for  it  has  great  powers.  These 


362  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

things  that  are  used  in  the  Buffalo  dance,  keep.  Save  them  for  our 
children,  for  they  contain  much  power."  The  young  man  took  his 
spear  and  shield,  mounted  the  black  Horse,  and  went  into  battle.  He 
rushed  right  into  the  enemy's  lines,  was  knocked  over  and  killed,  and 
the  black  Horse  that  he  was  riding  was  also  killed.  His  brother-in-law 
upon  the  dun  Horse  followed  him  and  he  also  was  killed,  and  the  dun  Horse 
was  killed.  The  enemy  ran  and  the  people  were  victorious.  When  the 
battle  was  over,  the  people  called  the  brother-in-law  all  kinds  of  names 
for  the  way  he  was  doing;  for  it  had  come  to  their  knowledge  that  it  was 
on  account  of  the  boy  riding  the  dun  Horse  that  the  other  young  man 
with  powers  was  killed.  The  girl  kept  the  lariat  rope,  and  when  her 
children  were  grown,  she  gave  it  to  one  of  her  sons,  who  grew  up  to  be 
a  medicine-man,  and  always  danced  the  Wild-Horse  dance. 


93.  THE  ORIGIN  OP  THE  BUFFALO  CEREMONY.1 

A  long  time  ago  the  Kitkehahki  made  their  village  upon  the  Repub- 
lican River.  On  the  south  side  was  a  place  where  the  men  played  with 
the  gambling  sticks.  Here  every  morning  the  young  men  went  who  had 
the  sticks,  and  they  called  for  the  other  young  men  to  come  out  and 
play.  There  was  one  ring  that  belonged  with  the  sticks  and  other  men 
had  rings  of  their  own.  These  they  kept  until  they  themselves  played 
the  game.  There  was  a  young  man  named  Howling-Fox  who  liked  to 
watch  the  others  play  the  game,  but  never  played  himself.  He  went 
out  every  day  and  sat  on  the  northeast  side  of  the  playground.  One 
day  while  the  men  were  playing  with  the  sticks,  Howling-Fox,  who  was 
looking  on,  heard  a  peculiar  noise  under  the  ground  where  the  men  were 
playing.  He  watched  and  listened.  The  noise  went  towards  the  east. 
In  the  evening  the  noise  went  back  toward  the  west,  but  he  could  not 
see  anything. 

After  the  men  finished  their  game  they  went  home,  and  Howling-Fox 
arose  and  went  with  them.  That  night  he  had  a  dream.  He  dreamed 
that  he  saw  an  evil  one  standing  by  him,  who  said:  "My  son,  I  want  to 
speak  to  you.  I  know  you  have  heard  my  footsteps.  I  walked  by 
where  the  men  were  playing  with  sticks.  To-morrow  remain  on  the 


by  Mouth-  Waving-in-  Water,  Kitkehahki.  This  may  be  regarded  as  a 
variant  of  several  tales  already  presented  relating  to  the  so-called  buffalo  game. 
In  this  story,  however,  the  man  becomes  a  medicine-man  through  the  power  of  the 
ring,  and  the  story  may  be,  therefore,  properly  regarded  as  belonging  in  this  group. 
It  is  said  that  the  story  is  told  in  such  a  way  that  the  people  should  be  on  the  look- 
out to  keep  the  pipe  filled,  in  order  that  those  in  the  lodge  might  smoke  during  the 
pauses  in  the  relation  of  the  story. 


THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE   BUFFALO    CEREMONY.  363 

grounds  and  I  will  be  there  to  talk  to  you."  The  man  woke  up.  He 
had  been  dreaming.  He  arose,  put  his  robe  about  his  shoulders,  went  to 
the  creek,  and  washed.  After  eating  his  breakfast  he  dressed,  took  his 
pipe  and  tobacco  bag,  and  went  to  the  grounds.  He  sat  down  on  the  north- 
east side  of  the  playground  as  usual,  and  filled  his  pipe.  After  smoking, 
he  watched  the  men  play.  In  the  evening  when  the  men  finished  their 
game,  they  went  home,  but  Howling-Fox  sat  still  and  waited.  After 
everybody  had  gone,  he  saw  a  woman  coming  towards  him  from  the  west. 

He  arose  and  went  to  the  woman,  who  said:  "Well,  do  you  know 
me?  I  have  been  to  your  lodge  to  talk  to  you. "  The  man  said:  "Yes, 
I  know  who  you  are.  You  are  not  human.  You  are  a  Buffalo,  for  I 
saw  your  tracks  on  the  ground."  The  woman  sat  down  and  told  him 
to  sit  down.  She  then  said:  "My  son,  I  have  been  all  over  the  country 
looking  for  my  daughter.  I  have  seven  children  and  they  are  all  bulls 
but  one.  My  only  daughter  is  missing.  I  have  traveled  all  over  the 
country  hunting  for  her,  but  can  not  find  her.  The  other  day  when 
you  were  sitting  yonder  I  came  by  and  you  heard  a  rumbling  under  the 
ground.  You  wondered  what  the  sound  meant.  I  came  in  the  night 
and  went  to  your  lodge  and  spoke  to  you.  You  saw  my  footprints  upon 
this  ground.  You  are  wondering  what  I  am  here  for,  but  I  have  told 
you  that  I  have  been  all  over  the  land  looking  for  my  daughter.  I  found 
my  daughter's  tracks  upon  this  ground  where  the  men  play  the  sticks. 
I  want  you  to  find  my  daughter  and  return  her  to  me.  I  will  make  you  a 
great  man.  I  will  give  you  powers  so  that  your  people  will  never  become 
hungry  as  long  as  you  live.  My  daughter  runs  around  on  this  ground 
once  in  a  while,  for  some  man  has  her  and  only  uses  her  in  the  game  when 
he  plays  with  the  sticks.  She  was  killed  and  her  genital  was  taken  from 
her  and  made  into  a  ring,  but  she  came  to  life  again  and  is  now  in  the 
care  of  some  man.  When  you  go  home,  go  to  the  different  men  who 
have  these  rings.  Bring  them  to  me  to-morrow  night.  When  I  have 
seen  them  I  can  tell  where  my  daughter  is.  Bring  also  a  stout  string  with 
you.  I  must  now  run  away,  and  you  must  go. " 

The  Buffalo  woman  ran  away  and  Howling-Fox  arose  and  went  home. 
He  lay  down  and  slept.  When  he  awoke  the  sun  was  high.  After  he 
had  eaten  breakfast,  he  went  to  the  different  lodges  of  the  men  who  had 
rings.  He  went  into  one  of  the  lodges,  passed  his  hands  over  the  man 's 
shoulders,  and  said:  "My  brother,  I  want  you  to  take  pity  upon  me. 
I  want  you  to  let  me  have  this  ring.  If  this  is  not  the  ring  I  want,  I  shall 
return  it  to  you.  If  it  is  the  one  I  want,  you  will  be  well  paid. "  The 
owner  of  the  ring  said,  "I  will  let  you  have  the  ring."  The  man  took 
the  ring  from  his  sacred  bundle  and  gave  it  to  Howling-Fox.  Howling- 


364  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

Fox  went  to  another  man  who  had  a  ring  and  begged  it  of  him.  The 
man  was  about  to  go  to  the  playground,  and  had  the  ring  on  his  wrist. 
He  took  it  off  and  gave  it  to  Howling-Fox,  who  thanked  him  and  went 
on  to  another  lodge.  The  man  in  this  lodge  was  seated  by  the  fireplace. 
Howling-Fox  told  him  what  he  wanted,  and  the  man  was  glad  and  gave 
his  ring  willingly  to  Howling-Fox.  He  went  home  with  the  rings,  and 
as  he  entered  he  told  the  women  to  brush  out  the  lodge.  Then  he  asked 
all  the  people  to  leave  the  lodge.  When  they  had  all  gone  out,  Howling- 
Fox  placed  the  rings  west  of  the  fireplace,  then  took  his  pipe  and  filled  it 
with  tobacco,  which  he  lighted.  He  blew  a  few  whiffs  to  the  heavens, 
then  to  the  ground,  then  he  blew  one  whiff  to  each  ring.  As  he  dumped 
the  ashes  onto  the  fireplace  he  said:  "My  mothers,  I  did  not  know 
how  you  are  made,  but  now  I  do,  and  I  also  know  that  you  live.  Help 
me,  I  am  poor  in  spirit.  I  hope  that  one  of  you  is  the  one  I  am  looking 
for. "  Howling-Fox  then  took  the  rings  and  placed  them  under  his 
pillow.  He  went  out  and  told  the  people  to  enter  the  lodge. 

As  the  people  went  into  the  lodge,  Howling-Fox  went  up  on  top  of 
the  lodge  and  sat  down.  He  watched  the  men  playing  the  game  of 
sticks.  Towards  evening  he  saw  all  the  men  go  home  from  the  play- 
ground. Howling-Fox  then  went  down  from  the  lodge  and  entered  it. 
He  took  the  rings  from  his  pillow  and  went  out  to  the  ground.  He  sat 
down  on  the  north  side  and  placed  the  rings  in  front  of  him.  He  filled 
his  pipe  and  smoked.  The  sun  had  set  and  it  was  dark.  Howling-Fox 
placed  the  rings  on  the  north  side  of  the  grounds,  near  the  place  where 
he  was  sitting.  He  waited,  and  after  a  while  he  heard  a  rumbling  noise. 
The  sound  seemed  to  come  from  under  the  ground.  As  it  came  nearer 
he  could  hear  hoofs  rattle.  He  stood  up  and  went  to  the  rings.  The 
noise  came  closer  and  closer  and  at  last  Howling-Fox  saw  a  dark 
form  approaching.  The  form  disappeared,  and  Howling-Fox  heard  a 
noise  that  he  knew  to  be  that  of  the  Buffalo  rolling  upon  the  ground. 
When  the  Buffalo  stood  up,  Howling-Fox  saw  that  it  had  changed  into 
a  woman.  The  woman  came  to  him  and  said:  "I  am  here.  I  am  glad 
that  you  have  brought  the  rings.  Let  us  now  go  to  them. "  They  went 
to  the  rings.  There  were  three  of  them.  The  middle  one  had  a  blue 
bead  upon  it  instead  of  the  white  bead.  The  woman  went  up  and  said: 
"This  is  my  daughter.  She  shall  go  back  to  my  people  and  the  bulls 
shall  play  with  her.  You  have  the  string;  now  tie  the  ring. "  Howling- 
Fox  did  as  he  was  told.  The  woman  spoke  again  and  said:  "My  son, 
from  this  day  forth  I  shall  look  after  you,  and  when  you  are  in  need  of 
meat  I  will  come  and  tell  you  where  you  can  get  it.  I  must  now  return 
to  my  people,  for  they  are  far  away.  My  daughter  will  return  with  me. 


THE    ORIGIN   OF   THE   BUFFALO   CEREMONY.  365 

Her  grandfathers,  the  old  bulls,  will  decide  whether  she  shall  remain 
a  ring  or  whether  she  shall  become  a  Buffalo  again.  My  son,  you  will  see 
me  in  your  dreams.  I  will  come  to  you  and  speak  with  you.  Take  this 
piece  of  mud.  It  has  my  power,  and  with  it  you  can  cure  people.  This 
mud  you  must  spread  across  your  mouth.  When  you  go  to  the  sick 
you  are  to  blow  your  breath,  and  the  smell  that  is  in  the  mud  will  reach 
them.  Now  take  the  ring  and  string  and  tie  the  ring  fast  upon  my  head, 
so  that  it  will  not  fall. " 

Howling-Fox  took  the  ring  and  string  and  tied  the  two  parts  on 
opposite  sides  of  the  ring.  He  placed  the  ring  upon  the  top  of  the 
Buffalo 's  head  and  with  the  strings  tied  it  very  tightly  to  the  Buffalo 's 
horns.  The  Buffalo  snorted,  for  she  was  satisfied.  She  ran  toward 
the  west  and  was  soon  out  of  sight.  The  man  lingered  around  the 
grounds  and  repeated  over  and  over  to  himself,  "So  I  really  have  seen  a 
Buffalo,  a  wonderful  Buffalo."  As  he  looked  to  heaven,  he  said: 
"Thanks  to  you  in  the  heavens!  I  am  a  poor  man.  I  had  not  seen 
anything  so  wonderful.  I  thank  you. " 

Howling-Fox  went  home  and  lay  down.  In  the  morning  he  took 
two  of  the  rings  and  returned  them  to  the  owners.  He  went  to  the  man 
whose  ring  was  gone.  He  laid  his  hands  upon  the  man's  head,  passed 
them  over  it,  and  said:  "My  brother,  your  ring  is  gone.  Ask  nothing 
about  it.  I  have  one  pony.  You  shall  have  it  in  place  of  the  ring.  I 
shall  let  you  know  more  about  the  ring  in  the  future,  and  I  shall  again 
pay  you. "  The  owner  of  the  ring  was  satisfied  and  said:  "My  brother, 
it  shall  be  as  you  have  said.  If  there  is  anything  wonderful  I  want  to 
hear  from  you  again."  Howling-Fox  was  satisfied  and  went  home. 

In  the  fall  all  the  people  went  toward  the  southwest  on  a  Buffalo 
hunt,  but  there  were  no  Buffalo  to  be  found  anywhere;  not  even  bulls. 
They  went  far  into  the  southwest  and  the  people  began  to  complain,  for 
they  were  getting  hungry.  The  chief  kept  giving  commands  for  the 
people  to  go  south.  One  time  when  the  people  had  made  a  camp,  Howl- 
ing-Fox went  out  of  the  tipi  and  met  a  woman  who  spoke  to  him  and  said: 
"My  son,  I  am  here.  I  am  the  woman  who  was  with  you  and  talked  with 
you.  I  know  the  people  are  starving.  You  know  what  I  promised  you. 
Now  I  come  to  tell  you  that  I  am  here  to  help  you  call  the  Buffalo.  Tell 
the  chief  that  you  want  them  to  stop  going  south,  and  that  you  want 
them  to  go  northwest. "  Howling-Fox  had  to  be  careful  how  he  talked 
to  the  chief,  for  the  chief  was  hard  to  please.  He  asked  his  friend  for 
meat.  She  gave  him  dried  meat,  which  he  had  the  women  boil.  He 
then  invited  the  chief,  and  when  the  chief  came  in,  Howling-Fox  said: 
"Chief,  I  present  to  you  this  dried  boiled  meat  for  you  to  eat.  As  the 


366  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

people  are  hungry  and  we  are  still  going  south,  let  us  go  northwest.  Let 
the  chief  give  me  the  lead.  I  may  help  the  chief  and  his  people. "  The 
chief  was  glad  to  hear  what  Howling-Fox  had  to  say.  He  went  out 
and  gave  orders  to  the  crier  to  go  through  the  camp  and  cry  out,  that 
Howling-Fox  would  give  orders  where  they  were  to  travel  and  how  far 
they  were  to  go.  The  crier  then  went  to  Howling-Fox,  who  told  him  to 
tell  the  people  that  they  were  to  travel  northwest. 

The  people  broke  camp  the  next  morning  and  went  northwest.  They 
made  short  journeys,  for  the  people  were  very  thin  and  weak.  Several 
days  they  went,  until  they  got  to  the  Platte  River,  where  they  made 
their  camp.  In  the  night  Howling-Fox  went  out  and  again  met  Buffalo- 
Woman,  who  said:  "I  came  from  afar.  There  are  no  buffalo  here. 
Let  the  people  make  an  earth -lodge,  and  let  its  entrance  be  in  the  west. 
There  you  shall  sit,  and  I  will  come  in  and  visit  you.  In  four  days  I  shall 
return  here.  I  shall  want  at  that  time  eagle  feathers,  blue  beads,  and 
native  tobacco."  The  woman  disappeared  and  was  gone,  and  Howling- 
Fox  went  into  his  tipi.  He  had  some  boiled  meat  that  he  had  kept.  He 
sent  for  the  chief  and  told  him  that  he  wanted  an  earth-lodge  built. 
Some  of  the  people  began  to  help  build  the  lodge.  There  were  other 
people  who  complained  and  said,  "We  ought  to  be  traveling,  so  that  we 
could  find  Buffalo."  But  the  people  went  on  with  the  building  of  the 
lodge. 

The  fourth  night  Howling-Fox  went  out  and  met  Buffalo- Woman, 
who  said,  "  Goyaow  and  get  the  things  I  told  you  that  I  want. "  Howling- 
Fox  went  ana  Drought  the  things  and  gave  them  to  her.  She  was  glad 
to  get  them.  She  said,  "My  son,  go  with  me  and  carry  these  things  that 
you  have  brought  me. "  They  went  over  the  hill.  She  found  a  buffalo 
wallow  and  began  to  roll  in  it  and  turned  into  a  Buffalo.  Howling-Fox 
then  ran  along  beside  the  Buffalo  and  they  went  on  till  they  came  to 
some  Buffalo  bulls.  Howling-Fox  took  the  feathers,  native  tobacco, 
and  other  gifts  and  tied  them  on  the  horns  of  the  bulls,  who  were  pleased. 
The  bulls  turned  upon  the  cow  and  she  became  a  woman.  She  said: 
"My  son,  the  bulls  are  pleased.  They  promise  you  some  Buffalo  in  a 
few  days.  They  also  give  you  power  to  call  the  Buffalo.  They  are  glad 
you  found  my  daughter  and  returned  her  to  me.  Now  we  must  start 
back  to  your  home,  for  it  is  very  far  to  your  people. "  The  woman  went 
up  to  Howling-Fox  and  covered  him  with  her  robe.  She  began  to  blow 
her  breath.  The  wind  seemed  to  blow.  Howling-Fox  did  not  move 
nor  try  to  look.  At  last  the  wind  went  down.  The  woman  turned  him 
loose  from  her  robe  and  said:  "Here  we  are,  my  son ;  go  to  your  tipi  and 
sleep.  As  soon  as  the  lodge  is  finished,  you  must  meet  me  there.  I  will 


THE   ORIGIN   OF  THE   BUFFALO    CEREMONY.  367 

go  and  prepare  the  inside  of  the  lodge  for  you. "  Howling-Fox  entered 
his  tipi  and  lay  down. 

In  the  morning  he  invited  the  chief.  When  the  chief  entered  the  tipi, 
Howling-Fox  said:  "I  have  been  away,  my  brother.  In  a  few  days 
your  people  will  find  plenty  to  eat."  The  chief  was  pleased,  and  he 
ordered  the  lodge  to  be  finished.  After  the  lodge  was  completed,  the 
chief  notified  Howling-Fox  that  the  lodge  was  finished.  That  night 
Howling-Fox  went  out  to  the  place  where  he  was  to  meet  the  woman. 
The  woman  told  Howling-Fox  that  she  had  brought  some  bulls  with  her 
for  the  people.  She  went  to  the  new  lodge  with  Howling-Fox.  She 
entered  the  lodge,  which  she  was  glad  to  see.  She  told  Howling-Fox  that 
she  was  going  away  and  that  she  would  come  again.  She  told  him 
how  to  fix  the  lodge,  for  she  was  to  bring  her  father,  the  chief  of  all  the 
Buffalo.  She  said,  "I  want  my  father  to  receive  the  native  tobacco  and 
eagle  feathers  from  you. "  Buffalo- Woman  then  went  away.  The  next 
day  Howling-Fox  sent  word  to  the  chief  to  tell  all  the  people  to  keep 
away  from  the  lodge.  Howling-Fox  had  a  big  fire  made  in  the  fire- 
place and  stayed  in  the  lodge  by  himself.  Towards  evening  the  fire 
went  out,  and  as  night  came  he  took  up  ashes  and  scattered  them  around 
the  fireplace,  so  that  they  completely  encircled  it  and  extended  on  through 
the  entrance. 

In  the  night  Howling-Fox  left  the  lodge  and  met  Buffalo- Woman. 
Soon  another  Buffalo  came;  it  was  the  bull.  He  sat  down  in  the  west. 
Howling-Fox  then  filled  the  pipe  and  lit  it.  He  blew  a  few  whiffs  to  the 
place  where  the  bull  sat.  After  he  had  finished  smoking,  the  bull 
grunted.  Buffalo- Woman  spoke  and  said:  "My  son,  my  father  is 
satisfied.  He  says  that  you  are  to  tell  the  chief  and  the  people  that 
they  shall  kill  some  Buffalo;  that  the  Buffalo  are  thankful  for  the  return 
of  the  girl. "  The  bull  went  out  and  another  came  in  for  smoke.  The 
man  filled  his  pipe  again  and  gave  a  few  whiff s  to  this  bull,  who  promised 
Buffalo  to  the  people  the  next  morning.  The  bull  left  the  lodge  and 
another  came  in.  Howling-Fox  stayed  up  all  that  night,  making  smoke 
for  the  bulls  that  came  into  the  lodge. 

Early  in  the  morning  Buffalo- Woman  gave  some  dried  meat  to 
Howling-Fox.  Howling-Fox  invited  the  chief  and  the  crier.  The 
crier  put  the  kettle  over  the  fire  that  he  had  made.  He  then  cut  up  the 
dried  meat  and  placed  it  in  the  kettle.  The  chief  was  surprised  to  see 
the  hoofprints  upon  the  ashes  that  were  scattered  upon  the  ground. 
He  was  more  than  surprised  when  Howling-Fox  placed  the  dried  meat 
before  the  crier.  When  the  meat  was  cooked,  the  crier  went  after  the 
braves,  who,  when  they  reached  the  entrance  of  the  lodge,  were  surprised 


368  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

to  see  Buffalo  hoofprints  upon  the  ashes.  When  they  were  all  seated, 
the  chief  addressed  them  and  said:  "My  people,  you  have  come  into 
this  new  lodge.  You  see  hoofprints  of  the  Buffalo.  You  can  see  that 
they  were  not  put  there  by  men.  You  can  see  the  meat  that  we  are  about 
to  eat.  This  brother  of  ours  will  tell  us  what  the  Buffalo  said. "  Howl- 
ing-Fox told  the  men  to  eat,  which  they  did,  for  they  were  very  hungry. 
After  they  had  eaten,  Howling-Fox  told  the  chief  to  send  three  or  more 
men  over  the  hills  to  look  for  Buffalo.  The  chief  sent  three  men  at  once 
over  the  hills.  The  men  went,  and  when  they  were  upon  the  top  of  the 
hill  they  looked  all  around  the  country,  but  they  could  see  nothing. 
They  came  back  and  reported  to  the  chief,  saying,  "We  have  seen  no 
Buffalo."  Howling-Fox  said,  "Go  again  upon  the  same  hill  and  look 
down  the  hill." 

The  men  went  back  to  the  same  place  on  the  hill  and  looked  down  at 
the  foot  of  the  hill.  There  was  a  ravine,  and  in  this  ravine  there  sat 
several  Buffalo  bulls.  The  three  men  then  went  on  the  opposite  side 
of  the  hill  and  threw  up  their  blankets  for  a  signal  that  there  were  Buffalo. 
Then  they  went  down  the  hill  into  the  camp.  They  entered  the  lodge. 
The  pipe  was  filled  for  them.  Each  gave  a  few  whiffs  to  the  sky  and  the 
ground  as  a  thanks  offering.  When  the  pipe  was  emptied,  the  leader  of 
the  three  told  where  the  Buffalo  were.  A  crier  was  told  by  the  chief  to 
cry  through  the  camp  and  let  the  men  know  that  they  were  now  to 
attack  Buffalo.  The  ribs,  tongues,  and  hearts  were  to  be  brought  to  the 
lodge.  The  men  made  preparation,  for  each  wanted  to  kill  a  Buffalo 
for  his  family.  The  men  all  gathered  together  near  Howling-Fox's 
lodge.  Howling-Fox  went  out  and  said:  "Men,  you  are  to  kill  many 
Buffalo.  When  you  bring  them  home,  do  not  let  the  women  pound  the 
head  with  an  axe  to  get  the  meat  out.  Let  them  get  the  brains  out 
at  the  neck  joint  by  boiling  them  out.  As  you  run  the  cows,  there  will 
be  one  cow  to  run  out.  This  cow  you  shall  not  kill,  for  she  is  a  messen- 
ger for  our  people. "  The  chief  led  the  men  upon  the  hill. 

A  man  was  selected  to  make  motions  with  his  hands  for  the  different 
companies  to  move  and  make  the  attacks  on  each  side.  The  surround 
was  made.  A  sign  was  given  by  the  chief,  a  rush  was  made,  the  Buffalo 
rose  from  the  ground  and  tried  to  run,  and  the  people  began  to  kill. 
Everyone  saw  the  Buffalo  cow  that  was  not  to  be  killed,  and  they  let 
her  go.  They  killed  many  bulls  and  everybody  was  given  meat.  As 
the  men  skinned  the  Buffalo  they  found  the  eagle  feathers  and  native 
tobacco  upon  their  heads.  Each  man  who  had  killed  a  Buffalo  then 
knew  that  Howling-Fox  had  had  something  to  do  with  their  coming. 
Each  man  as  he  entered  the  camp  rode  up  to  the  lodge  and  cut  out  the 


THE    ORIGIN   OF  THE    BUFFALO    CEREMONY.  369 

ribs,  tongue,  and  heart  as  they  had  been  told  to  do.  Howling-Fox 
stayed  at  the  lodge  with  the  chiefs  and  braves  to  receive  the  offerings. 
The  people  were  happy.  They  had  plenty  to  eat.  It  was  known 
through  the  village  that  Howling-Fox  brought  the  Buffalo.  The  people 
gave  him  many  presents  and  many  ponies.  After  the  first  killing,  the 
people  killed  four  more  times;  then  the  Buffalo  passed  the  camp  and 
went  east.  Howling-Fox  told  the  chief  that  they  had  plenty  of  dried 
meat  and  that  the  promise  of  the  Buffalo  had  been  fulfilled  and  that 
they  must  move  east  to  their  permanent  village.  Howling-Fox  did  not 
go  east  with  his  people,  but  stayed  behind  in  the  old  camp.  Buffalo- 
Woman  visited  him  during  the  nights  and  taught  him  Buffalo  dance 
songs  and  gave  him  the  Buffalo  ceremony.  Howling-Fox  went  back  to 
his  people  and  started  the  Buffalo  dance.  In  the  dance  he  always  wore, 
upon  his  left  arm,  a  ring  that  he  had  taken  from  a  Buffalo  cow.  He  sent 
for  the  man  who  had  owned  the  ring,  and  gave  him  presents  of  Buffalo 
robes  and  one  pony.  Then  he  taught  him  the  Buffalo  ceremony  and 
the  songs.  Howling-Fox  soon  died,  and  the  people  said  it  was  because 
he  had  given  out  all  of  his  secrets  to  the  other  man. 

94.  THE  BUFFALO  MEDICINE  DANCE.1 

The  people  were  upon  a  buffalo  hunt  and  had  made  their  camp  in  a 
valley.  The  holy  lodge  that  held  the  sacred  bundle  was  in  the  center 
of  the  village.  While  they  had  their  camp  in  this  valley  a  buffalo  bull 
attacked  them.  The  people  pursued  the  buffalo,  but  he  ran  right  into 
the  holy  tipi  where  the  bundle  was  hanging  up,  and  tore  the  tipi  all  to 
pieces.  The  people  sent  for  a  man  who  understood  the  spirit  of  the 
buffalo,  and  when  he  saw  what  the  buffalo  had  done  he  told  the  people 
that  something  was  going  to  happen.  In  the  afternoon  dark  clouds 
came  in  the  west  and  it  began  to  rain  and  storm.  The  wind  blew  so 
hard  that  it  picked  up  one  woman  and  blew  her  away.  After  the  storm 
was  over  a  drove  of  Buffalo  came  near  the  village  and  one  of  the  Buffalo 
spoke  and  said:  "People,  you  shall  have  your  things  again.  You  shall 
have  the  buffalo  skull,  the  drums,  and  gourds."  So  the  things  which 
were  carried  away  from  the  sacred  lodge  were  brought  back  and  placed 
in  the  lodge  again.  Then  the  drove  of  Buffalo  went  away. 

The  Buffalo  who  had  spoken  to  the  people  came  again  and  invited 
some  of  the  Buffalo  medicine-men  to  go  with  him  into  a  country  where 

1  Told  by  White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  This  story  is  told  to  show  that  when  buffalo 
attack  a  village  it  is  an  omen  of  bad  luck;  especially  is  it  believed  that  a  storm 
will  follow. 


370  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

the  Buffalo  were.  The  medicine-men  went,  and  far  away  from  the  vil- 
lage they  came  to  a  steep  bank.  There  the  Buffalo  ran  away  and  told  the 
medicine-men  to  do  the  same  thing.  The  men  followed  the  Buffalo 
and  they  entered  the  lodge  of  the  Buffalo.  When  they  entered  the  cave, 
they  first  came  to  deep  water.  The  people  went  into  the  water  and  kept 
walking  in  it  until  they  entered  an  animals '  lodge.  There  they  saw  on 
one  side  a  Bear,  and  on  the  other  side  a  Buffalo.  The  Bear  and  the 
Buffalo  began  to  do  sleight-of-hand.  After  a  while  these  men  saw  other 
animals  sitting  around.  As  the  animals  did  the  sleight-of-hand  per- 
formances, they  arose,  blew  their  breaths,  and  as  they  did  so,  soft  downy 
feathers  fell  from  their  mouths.  One  Buffalo  stood  up  and  took  a  reed 
whistle  and  swallowed  it.  Afterwards  he  threw  up  feathers  instead  of 
the  whistle.  Then  he  said:  "People,  I  give  you  this  ceremony.  You 
must  have  a  Buffalo  skull  and  give  presents  to  the  skull,  for  the  spirit  of 
the  Buffalo  will  be  in  the  skull,  and  the  skull  will  give  you  dreams  so  that 
you  will  know  what  to  do  in  the  Buffalo  ceremony. "  The  people  went 
back  to  their  village,  and  they  performed  the  ceremony,  and  the  first 
song  that  they  sang  was  the  song  which  the  Buffalo  had  taught  them. 


95.   THE  WOMAN  AND  THE  BUFFALO  DANCE.1 

The  people  left  their  permanent  village  to  go  upon  a  hunt.  Only  a 
young  woman  who  was  with  child  was  left  behind.  The  people  were 
angry  with  her  because  she  would  not  tell  with  what  man  she  had  been, 
and  so  they  had  gone  and  left  her  alone.  She  had  not  been  with  any 
man,  and  did  not  know  how  she  had  come  to  be  pregnant.  She  gave 
birth,  and  she  and  the  child  stayed  alone  in  the  deserted  village.  One 
night  the  child  began  to  cry.  The  mother  tried  very  hard  to  stop  the 
child  from  crying,  but  he  would  not  stop.  At  last  she  took  the  baby 
in  her  arms,  threw  him  upon  her  back,  and  started  west,  not  knowing 
where  she  was  going. 

She  finally  came  to  a  high  hill ,  and  as  she  was  ascending  the  high  hill 
she  found  a  Buffalo  bull  sitting  in  a  hollow.  She  stopped,  for  she  was 
scared.  The  bull  said,  "Nawa.  Why  are  you  carrying  your  baby?" 
The  woman  said,  "My  baby  is  sick  and  has  been  crying  for  sometime." 
Then  the  bull  grunted  and  the  smoke  came  out  of  his  mouth.  The  bull 
spoke  and  said:  "Woman,  I  will  give  you  a  root,  but  I  want  you  to  be 
careful  how  you  give  it  to  the  child.  The  child  will  get  well.  I  will 

1  Told  by  White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  In  this  story  a  woman  receives  power  from 
the  buffalo  and  becomes  a  medicine-woman. 


THE   WOMAN    AND    THE   BUFFALO    DANCE.  371 

doctor  him  myself."  Then  the  Buffalo  said:  "Let  him  nurse.  Now 
place  him  upon  the  ground. "  Then  the  Buffalo  bull  began  to  roll  in  the 
dust  on  the  ground.  When  he  stood  up  he  said:  "Woman,  take  up 
the  robe  which  I  have  made  while  I  wallowed.  Place  the  baby  in  the 
robe,  and  put  some  of  the  dust  all  over  the  child."  When  the  woman 
had  done  this  the  child  stopped  crying,  and  then  the  bull  began  to  bawl, 
and  after  a  while  three  more  bulls  came.  The  bull  spoke  and  said,  "Let 
us  doctor  the  baby,"  and  the  other  bulls  said:  "Everything  has  been 
done  for  the  child  which  could  be  done  except  to  blow  breath  upon  him. 
If  you  want  us  to  blow  our  breath  upon  the  child  we  will  do  so. "  Each 
bull  went  up  to  the  child  and  blew  his  breath  upon  him.  Then  one  of 
the  bulls  took  a  large  piece  of  wool  from  his  back  and  placed  it  upon  the 
child.  He  told  the  woman  not  to  be  afraid;  that  her  son  would  get 
well.  While  they  were  all  standing  around  the  woman  and  the  child,  a 
Buffalo  cow  came.  She  lay  down  and  the  Buffalo  bull  told  the  woman 
to  let  the  boy  lie  beside  the  cow.  The  mother  placed  her  child  by  the 
cow.  After  a  long  time  the  cow  spoke  and  said:  "The  child  is  now 
well.  He  has  had  sleep."  The  boy  crawled  around  the  bulls,  and  the 
bulls  awoke  and  they  doctored  him.  By  daylight  the  boy  was  strong 
and  well.  Then  the  Buffalo  gave  the  root  to  the  woman,  and  the  Buffalo 
bull  said:  "When  the  boy  is  sick,  take  this  root  and  pound  it  and  give 
it  to  him.  The  disease  and  the  medicine  will  fight,  and  when  pains  come 
out  upon  the  sick  one,  take  him  down  to  the  creek  and  wash  him.  Be 
not  afraid  of  wild  beasts,  for  the  root  will  scare  them  away. " 

The  woman  took  her  boy  and  went  off,  and  on  the  way  she  saw  a 
snake.  The  woman,  having  the  root,  passed  by  the  snake,  and  when 
she  passed  she  looked  back  and  saw  that  the  snake  had  died.  Every 
time  that  the  child  became  sick  the  woman  washed  him  in  the  river  and 
he  became  well.  After  a  while  a  man  came  to  the  village  where  the 
woman  and  her  boy  lived  alone,  and  said:  "Let  me  live  with  you.  Let 
me  be  your  husband. "  The  woman  said,  "I  will  let  you  live  with  us. " 
Soon  the  man  learned  about  the  wonderful  medicine  that  his  wife  had, 
and  saw  her  power  to  cure  the  sick,  and  he  was  glad  that  he  had  come  there 
and  married  her.  He  asked  her  to  tell  him  how  she  had  received  the 
power,  and  she  told  him  about  her  sick  child  and  how  the  Buffalo  had 
pitied  her  when  she  was  alone  and  in  trouble,  and  had  saved  the  life  of 
her  boy,  and  had  given  her  medicine  that  would  always  keep  disease  and 
danger  away  from  him.  When  the  man  heard  the  story  he  wanted  to  go 
and  see  the  Buffalo  and  thank  them  for  what  they  had  done.  He  and 
the  woman  and  boy  started  west  and  soon  came  to  the  Buffalo.  The 
Buffalo  bull  who  had  first  helped  her,  came  and  spoke  to  them  again.  He 


372  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

said:  "You  must  dance  the  Buffalo  dance  as  I  teach  it  to  you.  You 
know  that  the  Buffalo  roll  upon  the  ground.  Imitate  me  and  do  the 
same  thing."  Then  the  Buffalo  stood  up  and  threw  himself  down  and 
rolled  upon  the  ground,  and  when  he  arose  he  said:  "Take  that  which 
is  upon  the  ground.  You  shall  use  it  in  the  ceremony  as  a  rattle." 
Upon  the  rattle  was  the  picture  of  a  buffalo  skull.  "This  rattle  you 
must  also  shake  before  sick  people. "  The  Buffalo  rolled  again  and  made 
a  whistle.  At  the  end  of  the  whistle  was  a  shell  hanging  down  which 
was  the  shape  of  the  moon.  There  was  another  shell  tied  to  the  middle 
of  the  whistle.  Then  the  Buffalo  said:  "When  you  doctor,  put  medi- 
cine upon  the  patient.  Take  the  whistle  and  blow  upon  it  near  him. 
When  you  have  whistled,  look  about  you  and  you  will  see  my  shadow. 
If  you  see  my  shadow  then  you  may  know  that  the  patient  will  get  well. 
If  you  do  not  see  my  shadow  you  will  know  that  the  patient  is  to  die. " 
Then  the  Buffalo  said:  "I  have  many  children.  You  shall  have  many 
children,  too.  They  shall  grow  up  to  be  men  and  women.  Always  take 
care  of  the  rattle  and  the  whistle."  After  this  the  Buffalo  bull  disap- 
peared. Then  the  man  and  the  woman  went  home  with  the  boy.  As 
the  boy  grew  up  the  man  taught  him  what  the  Buffalo  had  said.  The 
man  became  a  great  medicine-man  and  gave  the  people  the  Buffalo  dance. 


96.  THE  BUFFALO  MEDICINE  DANCE.1 

A  little  boy  went  out  upon  the  hillside  to  play  and  there  he  saw  an 
old,  lean  Buffalo.  The  boy  went  to  the  Buffalo  and  talked  to  him  and 
called  him  his  grandfather,  and  said:  "You  are  getting  old  and  can  not 
stand  much  now.  You  can  not  travel  as  you  once  could."  All  at  once 
the  Buffalo  looked  up  and  said:  "My  grandchild,  I  have  lived  a  long 
time  upon  this  earth.  I  am  now  very  old.  I  am  glad  that  you  take 
pity  upon  me.  Your  people  kill  my  people  and  eat  them.  I  have  come 
many  times  with  my  people,  but  somehow  your  people  have  never  killed 
me.  Now,  my  grandchild,  before  I  die  I  want  to  speak  a  few  words  to 
you.  I  have  some  things  that  I  want  to  give  you. ' '  The  boy  went  and 
cut  a  lot  of  grass  and  brought  it  to  the  Buffalo  and  fed  him. 

After  he  had  eaten,  the  Buffalo  said:  "Look  at  me.  Whenever 
you  want  to  see  me,  take  this,  smell  it,  and  you  will  see  me. "  The  thing 
that  was  handed  to  the  boy  was  a  little  ball  which  the  Buffalo  bull  had 
carried  in  his  stomach  and  which  possessed  magic  powers.  "With  this 

1  Told  by  White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  In  this  story  a  boy  receives  power  from  the 
buffalo  and  becomes  a  great  medicine-man. 


THE    BUFFALO   MEDICINE   DANCE.  373 

I  shall  make  you  a  great  medicine-man.  I  shall  give  you  the  Buffalo 
dance."  The  Buffalo  then  gave  the  boy  a  whistle  and  some  roots. 
"These  roots  you  shall  give  to  wounded  people  when  you  doctor  them. 
When  I  am  dead  take  my  tail  and  a  piece  of  my  scalp,  dry  them,  and  use 
them  for  yourself.  Whenever  you  see  a  place  where  there  are  many 
buffalo,  where  the  buffalo  bulls  have  made  their  water,  take  up  the  mud, 
place  it  in  a  buffalo  bladder  and  keep  it.  When  you  are  about  to  dance, 
take  a  small  piece  of  this  ball  which  I  have  given  you  and  chew  it.  Then 
take  a  little  of  the  root  and  chew  it.  Then  take  some  of  the  mud  from 
the  ball  and  put  it  upon  your  face  and  more  upon  your  nose  and  more 
upon  your  body.  When  the  medicine  and  the  ball  have  reached  your 
stomach  then  your  spirit  shall  turn  into  a  Buffalo  spirit,  so  that  when  you 
dance  the  people  who  are  looking  on  can  not  help  but  be  under  your 
influence  and  they  will  give  you  many  presents.  You  shall  do  the  same 
thing  when  you  are  doctoring  a  wounded  man.  Sickness  I  can  not 
doctor.  When  a  person  is  wounded,  then  you  can  doctor,  but  when  he 
is  sick  from  disease,  you  can  not." 

The  boy  went  back  to  the  village  and  told  his  father  all  that  the 
Buffalo  had  said,  and  gave  him  the  things  which  the  Buffalo  had  given 
him.  These  things  which  the  boy  received  from  the  Buffalo  were  made 
mysteriously  by  the  Buffalo.  They  were  not  handed  to  the  boy,  but  the 
boy  picked  them  up  when  the  Buffalo  spoke  to  him.  When  the  father 
heard  of  what  the  boy  had  seen,  he  asked  the  boy  to  take  him  to  the 
place  where  the  Buffalo  was,  and  there  they  found  that  the  Buffalo  had 
died.  Then  the  boy  told  the  father  to  take  off  the  tail  for  him  and  also 
a  piece  of  the  scalp.  The  boy  stayed  around  near  the  Buffalo  for  several 
days.  His  father  knew  where  his  boy  was ,  so  he  did  not  worry  about  him. 

Several  months  afterwards  the  people  had  their  medicine  ceremony. 
The  boy  took  his  things  and  went  into  the  medicine-lodge  and  did  just 
as  the  Buffalo  had  told  him.  He  put  the  Buffalo  robe  over  his  shoulders 
when  he  danced,  and  it  changed  into  different  colors,  and  the  people  all 
wondered  and  gave  the  boy  many  presents.  After  the  dancing  was  over, 
many  medicine-men  spoke  and  asked  where  he  had  learned  the  dance. 
The  boy  told  them  that  the  spirit  of  the  poor  Buffalo  had  taught  him, 
and  so  they  called  his  dance  the  Buffalo  dance. 


374  THE  ORIGIN  OP  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

97.  THE  BUFFALO  GAME  MEDICINE.1 

In  the  early  times  a  man  lived  among  the  people  who  knew  about  the 
trees  and  the  herbs.  He  wandered  about  with  the  animals  and  they 
taught  him  many  strange  things.  One  night  while  he  *was  sleeping  out 
under  the  open  sky  some  one  touched  him  and  he  awoke.  He  looked 
around  to  see  who  it  was,  but  did  not  see  anyone.  He  looked  up  in  the 
heavens  and  he  saw,  as  if  they  were  drawn  there,  two  sticks  lying  side  by 
side  and  a  ring  between  them.  They  were  stars  and  were  in  the  west. 
He  looked  at  them  a  long  time,  and  wondered  what  they  meant;  for  peo- 
ple had  never  seen  anything  like  them  before. 

He  went  to  sleep  again  and  a  young  man  appeared  to  him  and  told 
him  that  it  was  he  who  had  shown  him  the  ring  and  sticks  in  heaven, 
and  that  he  wanted  him  to  make  two  sticks  like  them  and  to  get  the  ring 
from  the  Buffalo  cow.  "You  must  throw  the  sticks  through  the  ring 
and  so  try  to  catch  the  ring.  Play  with  the  sticks  in  the  west  part  of 
your  village,  for  the  home  of  the  buffalo  is  in  the  west.  Never  play  in 
the  east,  for  diseases  are  in  the  east.  From  the  south  comes  death. 
From  the  north  come  enemies  to  your  camp.  Go  make  a  bow  from  ash 
wood,  take  two  dogwood  sticks,  shave  them  down  and  make  arrows; 
sharpen  them  at  one  end,  then  hold  them  over  the  fire  so  that  they  will 
harden.  You  must  then  kill  two  young  buffalo  bulls ;  have  the  women 
tan  them,  and  then  cut  them  into  long  strips  so  that  you  can  wind  them 
around  the  body  of  the  sticks  which  you  shall  prepare.  Then  go  to  the 
timber,  and  when  you  come  to  an  ash  tree  sing  this  song: 

Some  one  said, 

"Sticks  standing  in  the  ground, 
Here  they  are  standing, 
Yonder  are  they  standing." 
There  coming,  coming  yonder. 

"Go  through  the  timber  until  you  come  to  a  straight  ash  covered  with 
something  like  soft  feathers.  It  will  be  a  peculiar  stick.  Darken  the 
enemy 's  sight  by  making  a  motion  as  if  to  cut  at  the  bottom  of  the  tree 
on  the  north  side.  Then  make  a  motion  on  the  east  side,  for  you  must 
cut  the  diseases.  On  the  south  side  make  the  same  motion  to  cut  death. 
Then  cut  on  the  west  side  of  the  tree.  Although  you  cut  it,  it  shall  have 
life.  Light  your  pipe,  give  a  few  whiffs  to  the  heavens  to  remind  us, 

1  Told  by  Yellow-Bird,  Chaui.  While  this  story  is  somewhat  similar  to  several 
others  which  relate  to  the  ring  and  javelin,  or  buffalo  game,  it  belongs  to  the  medi- 
cine group,  because  the  individual  in  the  story  was  taught  how  to  make  the  sticks, 
which  in  this  case  had  their  origin  from  a  constellation  in  the  sky,  and  how  to  use 
them  in  sleight-of-hand  performances  in  the  medicine-man's  ceremony. 


THE  BUFFALO  GAME  MEDICINE.  375 

the  gods  of  the  heavens,  that  we  gave  you  the  sticks  and  rings,  and  then 
we  will  hold  the  spirit  in  the  sticks.  Then  give  a  whiff  to  the  base  of  the 
tree,  dump  the  ashes  and  bury  them.  After  the  smoke  offering,  cut  the 
tree  down.  Repeat  the  ceremony  before  a  second  tree,  then  cut  it. 
Trim  the  trees,  and  from  them  cut  two  sticks  the  length  of  your  body,  for 
they  shall  represent  men.  Then  go  to  two  other  trees,  perform  the  same 
rites  and  cut  down  the  trees,  trim  them,  and  cut  two  sticks  shorter  than 
the  first  two,  for  they  shall  represent  buffalo  with  one  horn.  Although 
the  sticks  shall  represent  men,  they  shall  have  the  spirit  of  a  buffalo  with 
one  horn  who  is  in  the  west.  Shave  the  sticks  down,  splice  them,  take 
sinew  that  you  took  from  the  buffalo  and  bind  them.  Kill  a  cow ;  do  not 
eat  the  flesh;  but  take  the  skin  from  about  the  vulva.  You  must  lay 
her  head  toward  the  east,  so  that  when  the  buffalo  come  from  the  west 
they  will  note  the  absence  and  follow  your  camp.  Be  sure  and  play  in 
the  west  always.  Now  go  home  and  do  these  things.  I  will  be  there  to 
teach  you  further." 

The  man  went  home,  called  his  friends  together,  and  they  went  to 
the  timber  and  did  as  he  directed.  He  kept  the  sticks  together,  and  when 
they  went  on  a  hunt  he  killed  the  two  young  bulls  and  made  sinew.  The 
sticks  were  then  spliced  together  and  tied  with  sinews.  On  the  head 
parts  were  made  marks  for  ears ;  marks  were  made  for  the  hands  and  legs 
and  one  horn.  Then  the  thin  sticks,  four  in  number,  were  placed  across 
them  where  the  hands  and  legs  were  to  be.  They  were  tied  at  the  top 
and  the  other  ends  were  spread  open.  The  front  part  represented  the 
Sun,  and  the  hind  portion  the  Spider- Woman  or  the  Moon.  They  were 
the  ones  who  first  played  in  the  heavens,  and,  as  the  Sun  lost,  the  Moon 
gave  the  game  to  man.  A  smoke  offering  was  made  and  everything 
received  a  whiff.  Then  the  wrapping  was  done ;  the  front  leg  was  put 
with  the  thing  on  it,  then  one  of  the  hind  sticks  was  put  on  for  legs;  and 
last  of  all  the  hind  stick  was  put  on  for  the  horn.  The  front  part  was 
then  fixed  with  some  dried  hide  to  represent  ears,  and  the  two  notches 
were  eyes.  One  stick  was  burnt  at  the  head  to  make  it  black,  to  repre- 
sent darkness  or  north;  the  other  was  white,  to  represent  day  or  south. 

The  people  then  went  on  another  hunt  and  the  man  who  had  had  the 
dream  killed  a  buffalo  cow.  He  cut  the  ring  from  her  and  then  left  her 
lying  with  her  head  toward  the  east.  He  took  the  ring  home.  He  dried 
it  and  rubbed  it,  then  bound  it  about  with  strips  of  tanned  buffalo. 
One  night  he  had  another  dream,  and  the  strange  man  who  appeared 
in  his  dreams  gave  him  a  white  bead,  which  was  to  be  put  on  the  ring 
and  which  was  to  represent  the  star  itself.  He  fastened  the  bead  to  the 
ring  and  the  next  day  he  invited  some  of  his  friends  to  go  to  the  west 


376  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

part  of  the  village  to  learn  the  game.  The  sticks  were  carried  by  men, 
while  the  ring  was  carried  by  his  granddaughter,  for  the  ring  was  now 
a  granddaughter  to  all  men,  and  'should  be  spoken  of  as  such.  The 
people  went  out  with  the  man  to  the  west  side  of  the  village,  where  they 
found  a  place  where  there  was  only  buffalo-grass. 

They  sat  down,  the  man  filled  his  pipe,  and  after  smoking  to  the  sun, 
the  moon,  and  the  stars,  he  went  to  the  ground  and  gave  whiffs  of  smoke 
to  the  ground;  then  to  the  ring  and  the  sticks.  He  then  dumped  the 
ashes — a  little  on  the  center  of  the  ring  and  a  little  on  each  of  the  sticks, 
where  the  heads  were  supposed  to  be.  "Now,  my  friends,  the  sticks 
were  given  me  from  above;  we  shall  play.  The  crowd  must  divide  into 
two  parties,  so  that  we  will  be  in  pairs ;  so  that  when  two  throw  the  ring 
at  the  sticks,  the  other  two  will  be  there  to  take  them  and  pierce  the  ring 
with  the  sticks.  We  shall  count  one  hundred  and  twenty,  or  as  many 
as  ten  fingers  and  ten  toes  on  six  persons.  If  you  ring  at  the  head,  you 
count  three  persons.  If  you  ring  at  the  hands  or  legs,  you  count  two 
persons.  If  you  ring  at  the  horn  it  will  count  six  persons,  and  you  will 
win.  We  shall  have  two  sticks — one  long  one  and  the  other  short.  The 
short  one  will  count  one  person  if  it  reaches  the  bead.  If  it  does  not 
touch  the  bead  it  will  count  just  the  hands.  The  long  stick  will  count 
ten  if  it  reaches  the  bead.  If  it  reaches  just  the  ring  it  will  count  five. 
There  are  other  measures  that  will  be  added  afterwards.  Now  we  play, 
and  the  side  which  loses  must  bring  wood  and  kindle  fire  and  boil  the 
meat ;  the  other  side  will  offer  a  piece  of  heart  and  tongue  of  the  buffalo 
to  the  gods  in  the  heavens  and  to  the  buffalo. " 

The  playing  was  commenced  with  great  rejoicing,  and  when  one  side 
lost,  wood  was  brought,  fire  kindled,  and  meat  put  in  the  kettle  and  set 
on  the  fire.  When  the  meat  was  all  cooked  the  man  took  a  piece  of  heart 
and  tongue  and  offered  it  to  the  sun,  moon,  and  stars.  He  then  took 
some  fat  and  rubbed  it  on  the  sticks  and  ring,  and  then  upon  himself.  The 
sticks  and  ring  were  then  taken  home  and  tied  to  a  pole,  which  was  stuck 
in  the  ground. 

That  night  the  man  had  another  vision.  The  same  being  came  to 
him  and  said:  "Now  you  have  seen  the  game,  I  am  now  to  give  you 
another  ring.  This  ring  you  will  get  from  a  calf.  You  must  be  by  your- 
self and  you  must  pray  to  Tirawa,  for  it  will  be  not  from  Tirawa,  but  to 
remind  you  that  he  gave  you  the  buffalo,  the  sticks,  and  everything  that 
you  have.  On  this  ring  you  must  put  a  blue  bead,  which  will  represent 
Tirawa.  The  ring  will  represent  the  earth.  The  white  bead  you  must 
carry  on  the  war-path.  In  doctoring,  you  will  use  no  herbs  or  roots  if  the 
sick  person  has  played  the  sticks.  Go  straight  to  where  they  are  playing, 


THE  BUFFALO  GAME  MEDICINE.  377 

and  as  they  come  with  the  sticks  and  the  ring,  go  where  the  ring  stops,  and 
in  the  center  take  some  dust,  go  home,  and  let  the  man  smell  the  dust; 
then  rub  it  over  his  head,  arms,  and  legs  and  he  will  get  well. " 

As  the  tribe  increased,  other  people  prepared  meat  and  had  the  game. 
Young  boys  saw  the  game  and  they  made  sticks  and  rings  and  they  had 
a  game  of  their  own.  But  this  particular  man  did  a  sleight-of-hand.  He 
took  the  black  stick  into  the  medicine-man's  lodge,  and  after  passing  it 
around  for  examination  he  took  it  and  put  his  mouth  on  the  end,  put  the 
bowl  of  a  pipe  that  was  lit  at  the  other  end,  and  drew  the  smoke  from  the 
bowl.  The  stick  was  passed  around  and  no  hole  could  be  found. 


98.  THE  LOST  WARRIOR  AND  THE  SINGING  BUFFALO  MEDICINE.1 

There  were  many  warriors  who  were  on  the  war-path,  and  as  they 
were  going  into  the  Cheyenne  country  they  were  overtaken  by  the  enemy. 
One  man  slipped  off  from  his  pony  and  hid  in  the  thick  brush.  The 
enemy  passed  him  and  went  on  after  the  others.  The  man  came  out  from 
his  hiding  place  and  went  on  towards  home.  He  thought  that  he  was 
lost.  He  cried  and  called  to  all  the  gods  in  the  heavens  and  to  all  the 
animal  gods.  Just  a  little  before  daylight,  as  he  was  climbing  a  high 
hill,  he  heard  some  one  singing.  He  went  on  and  when  he  had  climbed 
the  hill  he  heard  the  singing  coming  from  the  east.  He  looked  and  saw  a 
Buffalo  cow  running  towards  him  and  snorting  as  she  came.  The  man 
was  frightened,  but  the  Buffalo  said:  "Do  not  be  afraid.  I  was  sing- 
ing as  I  loped  along  over  these  hills ;  you  heard  the  song,  and  I  will  teach 
it  to  you  and  you  will  start  up  a  dance  that  will  be  called  the  Big- Warrior 
dance. "  The  Buffalo  and  the  man  sat  down  together  on  top  of  the  hill 
and  they  looked  toward  the  east. 

As  the  sun  came  up  the  Buffalo  galloped  off  towards  the  east,  sing- 
ing the  same  song: 

There  coming,  coming  yonder, 
There  coming,  coming  yonder, 
There  coming,  coming  yonder, 
There  coming,  coming  yonder, 
There  coming,  coming  yonder, 
There  coming,  coming  yonder, 
There  coming,  coming  yonder, 
The  buffalo  is  coming,  coming  yonder. 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  teaches  that  when  traveling  over  the 
•country  one  should  be  attentive,  because  at  such  times  the  animals  might  desire 
to  teach  them  songs  to  be  used  in  medicine  ceremonies,  etc. 


378  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES   OR  POWER. 

The  man  learned  many  mysterious  things  from  the  Buffalo,  and  the 
Buffalo  gave  him  power  to  travel  without  growing  tired  and  to  capture 
many  ponies.  The  man  was  told  to  sing  the  song  at  dawn  as  the  Buffalo 
had  done.  The  man  returned  to  his  home,  and  when  the  dawn  came  in 
the  east  he  sang  the  song  about  the  Buffalo  coming  with  good  message 
to  the  man.  After  that  the  man  when  on  the  war-path  always  had  suc- 
cess in  capturing  ponies. 


99.  THE  BUFFALO  MEDICINE  WAR  SHIELD.1 

One  time  a  boy  went  upon  a  hill  and  looked  down  upon  the  village  and 
saw  many  young  men  talking  to  young  girls.  He  had  tried  to  do  the 
same  thing,  but  the  girls  did  not  seem  to  care  for  him,  though  he  did  not 
know  why.  While  he  was  thinking  of  the  different  girls  to  whom  he 
had  tried  to  talk,  and  who  would  have  nothing  to  do  with  him,  he  began 
to  cry,  for  it  seemed  that  none  of  these  girls  would  ever  have  him,  and  he 
had  no  one  to  love  him  or  make  a  home  for  him.  As  he  continued  to 
think  he  arose  and  left  the  place  where  he  was  and  went  to  another  hill 
farther  from  the  village.  There  he  stood  upon  the  high  hill  and  began 
to  cry.  While  he  was  crying  he  called  to  the  gods  in  the  heavens  and 
said  that  he  cried  because  he  had  no  woman  to  love  him,  not  even  a  sister. 
After  a  time  he  stopped  crying  and  wandered  away,  and  was  gone  for  one 
winter.  No  one  knew  where  he  went. 

In  the  spring  he  came  back  again,  but  when  he  was  close  to  the  village 
he  made  up  his  mind  that  he  would  not  enter  it,  for  he  had  no  sisters  nor 
relations  where  he  could  go  to  make  his  home.  He  climbed  a  high  hill, 
and  looking  about  he  saw  a  big  herd  of  Buffalo  not  far  away.  The  boy 
ran  after  them,  and  as  they  crossed  the  ravine  he  saw  among  the  Buffalo 
a  woman.  The  boy  called  the  woman  and  she  stopped.  Then  the  boy 
said,  "Woman,  I  am  all  alone;  I  would  like  to  marry  you."  The  woman 
said  that  she  was  willing;  that  he  could  be  her  husband.  Then  the  boy 
went  with  the  woman  to  the  place  where  the  Buffalo  were.  When  they 
reached  the  Buffalo,  the  uncle  of  the  woman  came  and  spoke  to  the  boy 
and  said,  "I  want  a  scalp  and  some  blue  beads  to  give  to  the  Buffalo." 
The  boy  went  back  to  the  village  and  entered  the  chief 's  tipi.  He  told 
the  chief  that  he  had  come  after  scalps  and  beads,  and  that  he  wished 
that  he  would  give  them  to  him.  The  chief  sent  a  man  through  the 

1  Told  by  Big-Crow,  Skidi.  This  story  relates  to  the  origin  of  a  medicine  war 
shield,  the  power  of  which,  however,  is  finally  taken  away  from  the  owner  because 
he  disobeys  the  injunctions  placed  upon  him  and  does  not  keep  the  taboo. 


THE  BUFFALO  MEDICINE  WAR  SHIELD.  379 

village,  who  went  to  different  sacred  bundles,  opened  them,  and  took 
scalps  and  beads  out  of  the  bundles.  The  boy  took  these  things  back 
to  the  Buffalo  camp,  and  gave  the  beads  and  the  scalps  to  the  Buffalo. 

The  Buffalo  were  very  proud  of  their  presents  and  in  return  they  gave 
the  boy  a  small  shield.  The  Buffalo  said,  "You  shall  wear  this  shield 
in  battle  upon  your  left  shoulder ;  never  upon  your  right  shoulder. "  The 
boy  then  took  his  wife  and  they  went  back  to  his  people. 

Two  days  after  they  arrived  in  the  village  it  was  attacked  by  enemies. 
The  man  threw  the  shield  over  his  left  shoulder  and  went  into  battle.  He 
was  very  brave,  and  killed  so  many  people  that  the  warriors  talked  much 
about  his  deeds.  Again  the  village  was  attacked.  The  man  again  wore 
the  shield  over  his  left  shoulder  and  rushed  into  the  midst  of  the  enemy, 
killing  more  than  any  other  warrior.  Again,  for  the  third  time,  the 
village  was  attacked.  The  man  threw  the  shield  over  his  left  shoulder 
and  rushed  out  to  fight,  and  he  killed  more  men  than  he  had  before. 
The  fourth  time  the  enemy  attacked  their  village.  In  the  excitement 
the  man  forgot  what  he  was  doing  and  he  took  the  shield  from  his  left 
shoulder  and  placed  it  upon  his  right  shoulder.  In  a  little  while  he  was 
wounded.  He  was  taken  to  his  tipi  and  left  there  to  die. 

A  Buffalo  bull  came  in  the  night,  stood  at  the  entrance  and  made 
water,  and  then  went  off.  In  the  morning  the  boy  arose  and  went  out, 
put  his  hands  into  the  mud  made  by  the  bull's  water,  and  smeared  it 
upon  his  face  and  nostrils.  He  went  back  into  the  lodge  and  lay  down. 
Suddenly  many  Buffalo  began  to  roll  about  in  his  lodge,  but  nobody  could 
see  them.  There  was  a  great  dust  in  the  lodge,  but  the  people  outside 
could  see  nothing  but  the  dust  flying  out  of  the  lodge.  The  boy  rolled 
out  of  his  bed  and  fell  in  the  dust.  The  dust  seemed  to  whirl  around, 
and  as  there  was  much  wind  in  the  tipi  the  boy  was  thrown  about,  and 
after  a  while  he  was  rolled  out  of  the  entrance.  He  lay  outside  in  the 
dust  for  a  while,  then  rolled  back  into  the  tipi,  and  when  he  rolled  back  he 
had  turned  into  a  Buffalo.  Again  he  went  out  of  the  tipi  and  rolled  in  the 
dust  outside  of  the  tipi.  He  went  back  into  the  tipi,  and  when  he  came 
out  again  the  people  saw  that  he  was  a  man  again  and  that  he  had  a  buffalo 
robe  upon  his  shoulders. 

He  was  known  as  a  wonderful  man  ever  afterward.  The  Buffalo  had 
taught  him  never  to  put  buffalo  horns  or  buffalo  hoofs  into  his  fire,  for 
when  he  did  he  would  die.  This  was  a  secret  which  he  kept  to  himself, 
and  did  not  tell  anyone.  One  time,  some  one,  through  carelessness,  threw 
a  buffalo  horn  spoon  into  the  fire  and  he  died. 


380  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

100.   THE  MAN  WHO  MARRIED  A  DEER-1 

A  long  time  ago  when  the  Skidi  lived  near  what  is  now  Fremont, 
Nebraska,  one  young  man  went  out  upon  a  hunt.  He  went  over  the 
hills  and  finally  came  to  a  place  that  is  called  Pahuk,  where  he  stopped 
to  rest.  In  the  afternoon  he  went  into  a  swampy  place  in  a  dogwood 
thicket,  and  there  sat  down  to  eat.  While  he  was  sitting  there  he  thought 
he  heard  somebody  coming.  He  looked  in  the  direction  from  which  he 
had  come  and  there  he  saw  a  woman  coming.  He  recognized  the  woman 
as  one  whom  he  liked,  and  when  she  came  near  he  went  up  to  her  and  took 
her  into  the  thicket.  The  man  gave  the  woman  something  to  eat,  and 
after  they  had  eaten  the  woman  jumped  up  and  hugged  the  man. 
The  man  finally  lay  with  her.  When  they  arose,  the  woman  became  a 
black-tail  Deer  and  ran  off.  The  man  knew  at  once  that  he  had  been 
deceived  by  the  Deer.  He  was  angry  at  himself,  and  he  determined 
that  he  would  kill  the  Deer.  He  shot  at  it  several  times,  but  each  time 
as  he  shot  the  Deer  it  would  shake  itself  and  the  bullets  would  drop  to 
the  ground.  The  man  then  tried  to  go  back  to  his  home,  but  the  Deer 
followed  him  until  he  finally  gave  up  trying  to  go.  He  followed  the  Deer 
to  a  swampy  place  until  at  last  they  came  to  a  big  thicket.  Here  the 
Deer  stopped  and  turned  into  a  woman  and  told  the  man  that  he  would 
have  to  live  with  her.  The  man  stayed  with  the  woman  and  the  woman 
finally  transformed  him  into  a  Deer. 

They  wandered  over  the  country  for  several  years  until  one  day  the 
woman  gave  birth  to  two  young  fawns.  Always,  in  the  meantime,  the 
woman  had  been  teaching  the  man  the  wonderful  ways  of  the  black-tail 
Deer.  The  man  was  able  to  transform  himself  into  a  Deer  at  any  time, 
and  then  change  to  a  man.  After  an  absence  from  home  of  about  three 
years,  the  woman  asked  him  if  he  would  like  to  return  to  his  people. 
The  man  said  that  he  would.  Then  the  woman  told  him  that  she  was 
going  to  take  him  back  to  his  people ;  so  she  led  the  way  and  the  man  and 
the  fawns  followed.  When  they  approached  the  village,  the  woman 
told  the  man  that  the  people  were  having  their  yearly  medicine-men 's 
ceremony;  that  he  must  go  straight  to  the  medicine-lodge  and  let  the 
people  know  that  he  had  returned;  that  she  could  not  enter  the  village 
for  a  time,  but  that  when  the  medicine-men  had  consented  to  let  him 
enter  their  lodge  he  must  return  to  her  and  the  fawns.  The  man  went 

1  Told  by  Buffalo,  Skidi.  Like  a  similar  story,  it  teaches  the  people,  especially 
the  young  men,  to  be  careful  of  strange  women  they  may  encounter  while  upon  the 
prairie.  Such  women,  according  to  the  tale,  are  most  likely  black-tailed  deer 
which  have  transformed  themselves  into  women,  and  the  influence  of  these  deer 
upon  men  who  cohabit  with  them  is  so  great  that  they  often  become  crazed  and  die. 


THE  MAN  WHO  MARRIED  A  DEER.  381 

into  the  village  in  the  night  and  entered  the  medicine-men's  lodge. 
When  the  medicine-men  saw  him  enter  the  lodge  they  greeted  him  with 
a  great  noise.  The  man  then  begged  that  he  might  do  some  sleight-of- 
hand  performances.  The  medicine-men  consented  and  the  man  went 
back  to  the  Deer  and  the  fawns,  and  when  they  were  about  to  start  the 
Deer  turned  into  a  woman  and  the  fawns  into  children,  one  a  boy  and 
the  other  a  girl.  The  man  then  took  the  woman  to  his  home,  and  when 
he  had  taken  her  and  the  children  into  the  lodge  they  had  to  put  up 
an  extra  buffalo-hide  tipi  for  them,  because  the  odor  of  the  people  was 
offensive. 

When  they  had  been  there  several  days,  the  woman  and  the  children 
became  accustomed  to  the  odor  of  the  people;  and  the  woman  told  the 
man  to  get  ready,  that  she  wanted  to  go  to  the  medicine-lodge  and  do 
some  sleight-of-hand  performances.  The  man  put  a  lot  of  white  clay 
all  over  his  body,  and  the  woman  spat  at  different  places  on  his  back, 
thus  making  the  black  marks.  The  woman  and  children  were  painted  in 
the  same  way.  The  man  then  took  them  into  the  medicine-men 's  lodge 
and  they  were  given  a  place  nearest  to  the  entrance  of  the  lodge,  behind 
the  cedar  tree.  The  medicine-men  then  all  agreed  that  this  man  should 
do  the  sleight-of-hand  performances  that  night,  for  they  were  anxious  to 
see  what  powers  he  had.  The  man  and  the  woman  asked  the  medicine- 
men to  lend  them  deer  antlers.  The  antlers  were  lent  them  and  they 
began  to  sing.  While  they  were  singing,  the  man  would  take  the 
antlers  and  place  them  upon  his  head,  and  the  antlers  would  remain 
there.  He  would  then  ask  some  spectator  to  take  them,  but  they  were 
fastened.  When  he  would  reach  for  the  antlers  they  would  come  off.  He 
then  threw  the  antlers  to  one  side  and  went  to  the  place  where  the  chil- 
dren were  and  brought  out  the  boy.  He  placed  a  young  fawn  skin  over 
his  back  and  they  began  to  sing.  The  little  boy  began  to  jump  around 
and  after  a  while  turned  into  a  Deer.  When  the  Deer  began  to  jump 
around  in  the  lodge  the  woman  began  to  make  a  noise  like  that  of  a  deer. 
The  man  then  went  to  the  fawn,  and  as  he  placed  his  hand  upon  its  head 
it  turned  into  a  boy  again.  When  they  had  finished  doing  these  things 
the  man  spoke  to  the  medicine-men  and  said,  "Brothers,  I  and  my  wife 
have  performed  a  little  sleight-of-hand  for  you,  and  every  night  we 
shall  come  and  continue  our  performance. "  The  medicine-men  greeted 
them  with  yells  in  imitation  of  different  animals.  The  woman  and 
children  then  left  the  lodge  and  went  to  their  home.  Every  night  they 
did  a  little  sleight-of-hand,  and  when  the  medicine-lodge  dance  was  over 
the  medicine-men  met  together  in  the  medicine-lodge  and  invited  the 
man  to  be  with  them.  In  this  meeting  the  medicine-men  all  agreed  that 


382  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

he  should  be  their  leader;  that  he  was  possessed  of  more  powers  than 
they  were. 

For  a  number  of  years  the  man  lived  with  the  people.  One  day  the 
woman  said  to  her  husband:  "I  must  now  go  to  my  people.  My  chil- 
dren are  with  you.  They  know  of  our  ways,  and  whatever  they  may  not 
know,  teach  them,  for  I  can  not  remain  with  you  any  longer. "  Before 
the  man  could  say  anything,  the  woman  went  out  of  the  lodge,  changed 
into  a  black-tail  Deer,  and  ran  away.  The  man  saw  her  go.  He  stayed 
with  his  people  and  cared  for  his  children,  but  he  was  always  unhappy. 
The  children  grew  up  and  both  married.  The  boy  possessed  great  powers 
as  did  his  father.  When  the  man  saw  that  his  children  were  happy  he 
took  his  quiver,  bow,  and  arrows,  and  went  into  the  woods  and  never 
returned  to  his  people. 

101.  THE  DEER  DANCE.1 

Many,  many  years  ago  a  man  wandered  away  from  the  village  and 
was  for  many  years  upon  the  mountains.  While  he  was  there  he  lay 
down  upon  a  high  mound  and  went  to  sleep.  He  had  a  dream,  and  in 
the  dream  he  saw  a  man  standing  near  him  who  had  black  paint  over  his 
body.  He  had  a  buffalo  robe  around  him.  This  man  spoke  to  him  in 
the  dream  and  said:  "My  brother,  I  came  for  you.  I  am  the  messenger 
in  a  Deer  dance  which  is  being  carried  on  at  the  foot  of  the  mountains 
in  a  cave.  You  must  go  to  that  place,  for  the  people  there  are  anxious 
that  you  should  take  part  in  our  ceremonies.  The  ceremony  they  wish 
to  give  you,  so  that  you  can  take  it  back  to  your  people." 

After  the  man  was  through  speaking  he  started  off.  He  spoke  again 
and  said,  "You  must  go  in  the  direction  I  go. "  When  the  man  awoke 
he  looked  around  to  see  if  he  could  see  the  man.  Instead  of  the  man  he 
heard  some  one  speaking  to  him  from  the  sky.  He  looked  up  to  the  sky 
and  there  he  saw  a  Raven  flying  around,  and  it  was  this  Raven  who  was 
speaking  to  him  and  telling  him  to  go  to  the  place.  The  man  did  not 
pay  any  attention  to  the  Raven.  He  felt  queerly.  He  wanted  to  leave 
the  place.  He  was  scared.  All  at  once  the  Raven  flew  down  past  the 
man  and  spoke  to  him,  telling  him  to  do  as  directed  in  his  dream.  As 
soon  as  the  Raven  spoke  to  him  and  told  him  which  way  to  go,  there  was 
a  great  noise  in  the  distance.  After  a  while  he  found  out  that  the  noise 

1  Told  by  Roaming- Fox,  a  young  Pitahauirat  man,  the  keeper  of  the  Deer  dance 
in  his  band.  The  story  serves  as  a  warning  to  young  men  when  away  from  home 
to  be  as  alert  as  possible,  as  they,  too,  might  be  taken  into  a  similar  lodge  and  receive 
mysterious  power. 


THE   DEER  DANCE.  383 

came  from  the  top  of  a  high  mountain.  As  he  went  to  the  top  of  the 
mountain  the  noise  kept  going  from  him  until  it  stopped.  The  boy  went 
to  a  certain  place  and  there  the  man  was  standing  at  the  entrance  to  the 
mountain.  He  said:  "My  brother,  do  you  remember  me?  It  was  I 
who  came  to  you  in  your  dream.  When  I  saw  that  you  did  not  care  to 
come  I  came  to  you  as  a  Raven.  When  I  saw  that  you  would  not  listen 
to  me  I  gathered  a  lot  of  Ravens  and  placed  them  upon  the  hill  and  told 
them  to  make  a  great  noise.  They  did  this  and  you  followed  the  noises. 
You  thought  they  were  people,  when  they  were  not.  Now  you  are  here. 
The  Ravens  have  entered  the  place  and  we  will  enter  also. "  When  they 
went  into  the  cave  the  boy  saw  all  kinds  of  animals  and  birds.  The  Elk 
people  were  the  leaders  in  this  dance.  From  the  south  side  came  the 
rattling  of  the  gourds  and  then  a  song.  When  the  boy  looked  again  all 
the  animals  and  birds  in  the  cave  had  turned  into  people.  They  were 
painted  after  their  animal  and  bird  kind.  The  boy  noticed  that  the  Elk 
were  painted  red  and  wore  elk  hoofs  upon  their  wrists.  They  also  wore 
elk  teeth  upon  their  breast,  strung  on  a  buckskin  string.  Each  one  of 
these  Elks  had  a  whistle.  On  the  north  side  were  the  Jack-Rabbits  and 
Ravens.  The  Raven  people  were  painted  black.  The  Jack-Rabbits 
were  painted  with  white  clay.  On  the  south  side  were  the  Foxes  and 
the  Coyotes.  These  two  sets  of  people  were  also  painted  with  white 
clay.  There  were  all  kinds  of  birds  in  the  cave  as  well  as  animals. 
These  people  began  to  dance. 

The  first  song  which  this  man  heard  these  people  singing  in  the  cave 
he  thought  was  very  fine.  The  people  in  the  cave  began  to  eat  the  red 
beans  which  grow  in  the  south,  and  they  gave  the  man  some  of  the  red 
beans  to  eat.  After  awhile  he  became  sick,  for  the  beans  were  very  strong. 
He  fell  down  and  lay  there  as  if  he  were  dead.  While  he  lay  there  he 
went  into  the  heavens,  where  he  saw  Tirawa.  Tirawa  was  sitting  in  an 
earth-lodge.  He  held  a  bow  in  his  left  hand  and  bunches  of  wild  sage 
in  his  right  hand.  When  the  man  saw  him,  Tirawa  placed  the  wild 
sage  upon  the  ground  and  waved  them,  and  many  red  beans  rolled  out. 
Tirawa  spoke  to  the  man  and  said:  "You  must  go  to  your  people  and 
teach  them  this  dance ;  and  also  teach  them  how  to  drink  and  eat  these 
beans,  so  that  they  may  see  me,  too.  You  must  now  return  to  the  cave. " 
The  man  stood  up  as  if  he  had  been  asleep.  He  danced  a  while  with  the 
people,  and  then  as  daylight  was  coming  the  people  turned  into  animals 
and  birds  again  and  began  to  go  out  of  the  cave.  At  night  these  animals 
and  birds  came  back  and  again  they  had  the  dance.  For  four  days  this 
man  stayed  in  the  cave  learning  the  mysterious  ways  from  these  people. 
On  the  fourth  night  they  danced  all  night,  and  the  animals  and  birds  told 


384  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

the  man  that  he  must  go  to  his  people.     The  man  went  out  of  the  cave 
and  went  east  to  his  people. 

On  the  way  he  made  a  song  which  he  was  to  sing  at  the  opening  of 
his  ceremony.  The  song  is  about  the  Raven-Man  who  first  spoke  to  him. 
The  second  song  which  went  with  the  other  song  was  about  the  Raven- 
Man  going  away  after  telling  him  to  go  to  a  certain  place  in  the  moun- 
tains. He  also  made  up  two  more  songs  about  the  Raven  flying  overhead 
and  flying  downwards.  He  also  made  up  two  other  songs  about  the 
Raven  crying  to  him  and  a  great  noise  being  made  at  a  distance.  He 
made  up  another  song  about  the  Ravens  making  great  noises  upon  the 
top  of  the  mountain.  Then  he  made  up  two  more  songs  about  when  he 
first  entered  the  cave  and  heard  the  singing  of  the  animals.  He  made 
up  a  song  also  in  which  he  says,  "The  song  which  the  people  sang  was 
fine."  The  song  which  went  with  this  latter  song  says:  "The  song  was 
fine  as  I  heard  it  at  a  distance.  "*  The  man  started  the  ceremony  among 
the  people.  It  was  known  as  the  Deer-Dance  or  Elk-Dance,  and  these 
songs  are  the  first  which  they  sing  to  show  the  people  where  this  man 
got  his  dance. 


102.  THE  WOLF-WARRIOR.2 

A  company  of  warriors  were  out  on  the  war-path.  One  man  was 
separated  from  the  party  and  could  not  find  it  again.  He  climbed  a 
high  hill  and  as  he  neared  the  top  of  the  hill  he  heard  a  song.  The  song 
was  like  this:  ,  w  ; 

Here  and  there  over  this  earth, 
Here  and  there  I  have  traveled. 

The  man  looked  around  for  the  singer,  and  there  on  top  of  the  hill 
sat  an  old  Wolf  on  his  haunches  with  his  body  erect.  He  was  looking 
towards  the  heavens  and  singing.  He  sang  the  song  several  times,  and 
the  man  heard  the  song  and  recognized  it  as  the  Wolf- Warrior  song. 
The  wolf  was  old,  his  hair  had  fallen,  and  there  were  few  hairs  upon  his 
head,  paws,  and  the  end  of  his  tail.  The  Wolf  saw  the  man  and  said: 
"Come,  my  son,  I  want  you  to  see  me.  This  is  my  medicine  that  you 

1  The  import  of  the  songs  are  as  given  above.  They  consist  of  endless  repeti- 
tions of  the  same  lines.  The  music  will  be  found  in  Part  II. 

'Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  relates  the  origin  of  the  individual  power 
obtained  from  a  wolf  by  which  a  man  became  a  fast  traveler  and  a  great  warrior. 
The  story  serves  as  a  reminder  to  old  men  that  before  dying  they  should  transmit 
their  power  to  young  men. 


THE   WOLF-WARRIOR.  385 

see  before  me ;  although  I  am  old  I  eat  a  little  of  this  root  and  it  makes 
me  strong  so  that  I  can  walk  a  long  distance  without  growing  weary. 
You  can  take  the  root,  powder  it  fine,  mix  the  root  with  white  clay  so 
that  it  will  become  dust,  and  when  you  are  on  the  war-path  and  are  very 
tired,  take  the  pounded  root  and  snuff  it  up  your  nose,  and  the  tired 
feeling  will  go  from  you  and  you  can  travel  fast.  When  you  go  home  kill 
a  wolf  and  make  you  a  robe ;  then  kill  two  more  wolves  and  have  moc- 
casins made;  have  the  front  paws  upon  your  moccasins,  the  hind  paws 
back  on  your  heels.  Always  wear  the  moccasins  and  wolf  robe  when  you 
are  on  the  war-path  and  want  to  travel  fast.  Do  as  I  have  told  you  and 
you  shall  become  a  great  warrior  and  you  shall  have  long  life. " 

The  man  answered  the  Wolf,  saying:  "My  father,  you  are  a  wonder- 
ful being.  Tirawa  watches  over  you  and  has  given  you  long  life.  Give 
me  long  life,  my  father;  make  me  a  great  warrior  and  I  will  keep  the 
things  you  have  told  me.  I  will  always  have  my  tobacco  bag  filled  with 
sumach  leaves  mixed  with  tobacco,  so  that  I  can  smoke  to  you."  The 
Wolf  then  said:  "My  son,  lie  down  by  me  to-night.  I  am  dying  of  old 
age;  by  the  time  the  sun  comes  up  and  looks  upon  me  I  shall  be  dead. 
When  I  am  dead,  cut  my  nose  and  then  cut  a  strip  up  the  scalp  about 
the  length  of  the  forefinger  to  the  wrist.  This  you  must  dry  and  wear 
upon  your  scalp-lock,  for  this  nose  shall  be  my  spirit,  and  if  you  keep  it 
you  shall  live  to  be  old  and  you  shall  not  die  until  your  skin  is  wrinkled 
and  you  have  only  a  few  hairs  left  upon  your  head.  Then  give  these 
things  to  your  children  and  tell  them  about  me,  so  that  they  will  take 
care  of  my  things."  The  man  sat  down  and  the  Wolf  began  to  howl 
again  and  raised  his  head  towards  the  heavens.  As  he  kept  on  howling, 
the  man  listened  and  he  heard  a  song.  He  heard  it  so  plainly  that  he 
could  sing  the  song: 

Often  when  the  sun  is  high, 
Then  I   despise  myself. 

This  song  was  to  belong  to  the  man,  for  he  was  to  get  old  like  the  Wolf. 
The  Wolf  kept  on  howling,  and  that  night  the  man  lay  down  by  the 
Wolf.  As  darkness  came  on,  the  Wolf  crawled  nearer  to  the  man  and 
sat  down  by  him,  and  so  the  Wolf  and  the  man  slept  side  by  side.  The 
Wolf 's  power  was  transferred  to  the  man  through  the  medium  of  a  dream. 
Towards  morning,  when  the  first  morning  star,  "Wolf-Star,"  came  up, 
the  Wolf  sat  up  and  gave  one  big  howl,  then  lay  down  again.  At  dawn 
the  man  awoke  and  saw  that  the  Wolf  was  still  sleeping.  He  sat  up, 
faced  the  east,  and  waited  for  the  sun  to  come  up  from  the  horizon.  As 
its  first  ray  shot  across  the  land,  the  Wolf  lifted  up  its  head  and  looked 


386  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

at  the  sun,  gave  a  howl,  and  as  the  sound  died  away  the  Wolf  died. 
The  man  went  up  to  where  the  Wolf  lay  and  spoke  to  him,  with  deep 
feeling,  and  wept.  He  remained  upon  the  hill  several  days,  and  one  night 
the  Wolf  came  to  him  in  a  dream  and  said:  "  My  son,  take  the  nose  off 
from  my  body  and  keep  it,  as  I  told  you.  Do  not  stay  upon  the  hill  any 
more,  for  the  Sun,  my  father,  who  gives  me  my  power,  has  given  me 
permission  to  follow  you  all  the  time.  When  I  last  cried,  it  was  a  cry 
to  the  Sun,  for  now  the  Sun  has  helped  me  to  pass  out  of  this  world  to  our 
home,  to  a  place  unknown  by  man."  When  the  man  awoke,  he  looked 
about  him  and  saw  the  Wolf  lying  there.  He  took  his  knife  out  and  laid 
it  on  the  ground.  He  took  some  sumach  leaves  and  tobacco  and  placed 
them  inside  the  nostrils  of  the  Wolf.  After  this,  he  took  his  knife  and 
cut  the  nose  with  a  piece  of  the  scalp  on.  He  left  the  Wolf  on  the  hill; 
for  the  Wolf  in  the  dream  had  told  him  that  he  should  leave  his  body  on 
the  hill.  The  man  took  the  things  that  he  was  to  take  with  him,  the  root 
and  the  nose  of  the  Wolf.  The  man  did  not  go  to  join  the  war  party,  but 
went  on  home. 

When  he  reached  home,  people  asked  about  the  others  who  were  with 
him.  He  told  them  that  he  was  lost  from  the  others  and  had  not  seen 
them  any  more,  and  so  he  had  come  back  home.  The  people  called  him 
a  coward  and  said,  "You  should  have  remained  with  them."  The  man 
did  not  say  anything.  Days  went  by.  The  man  was  always  absent 
from  the  village.  While  he  was  gone  one  day,  the  war  party  came  over 
the  hills  as  if  to  attack  the  village.  They  were  on  fine  ponies  that  they 
had  captured  from  the  enemy,  and  each  was  singing  his  victory  song. 
As  they  approached  the  village  men  went  out  to  meet  the  victorious 
party,  while  the  women  and  children  climbed  the  mud-lodges  to  see  the 
victorious  war  party  come  in.  Some  of  them  had  white  clay  all  over 
their  bodies,  and  others  were  painted  black  with  prairie  grass  that  they 
had  burned,  to  let  the  people  know  by  the  smoke  that  a  victorious  war 
party  was  coming.  When  the  men  came  home  the  people  told  them  that 
they  did  not  go  out  to  meet  the  man  who  had  come  home  alone.  The 
warriors  then  told  the  people  that  they  thought  the  man  had  strayed  off 
and  perhaps  been  killed  by  the  enemy,  for  he  had  never  been  seen  by 
them  again.  Wolf-Man  returned  to  the  village  when  he  saw  the  war 
party  approaching,  and  listened  to  all  they  said,  but  remained  silent. 

The  summer  passed.  In  the  fall  when  the  people  were  gathering 
their  corn,  another  warrior  of  distinction  sat  in  his  lodge  and  invited  a 
few  of  his  friends  to  join  him,  telling  that  he  intended  to  go  out  among 
the  Comanche.  Wolf -Man  heard  about  the  war  party,  and  he  stole  away 
from  home  and  joined  the  party.  There  were  good  warriors  in  this 


THE  WOLF-WARRIOR.  387 

party,  so  Wolf-Man  was  not  so  prominent.  When  they  reached  the 
enemy's  country  he  made  up  his  mind  that  he  would  scout  on  ahead. 
Every  morning  when  the  war  party  began  to  journey,  Wolf-Man  would 
remain  behind.  In  the  evening  he  would  be  the  last  to  come  to  camp, 
and  he  would  tell  of  all  he  saw  farther  south,  where  the  other  scouts  had 
failed  to  go.  Most  of  the  warriors  did  not  believe  him. 

One  day  he  stayed  behind,  but  when  he  did  travel  he  went  far  beyond 
the  others.  He  turned  back,  and  on  his  way  the  other  scouts  saw  him. 
They  were  surprised,  for  these  scouts  had  started  out  before  anyone. 
Wolf -Man  went  to  where  the  main  company  had  made  the  camp.  The 
two  scouts  reported  carefully  all  they  had  seen  and  they  also  told  that 
they  had  seen  Wolf -Man  coming  from  a  long  distance  in  advance  of  them 
and  that  he  had  a  report  to  make.  Wolf-Man  then  told  how  he  walked 
and  passed  the  other  scouts  and  how  he  had  gone  a  long  way  from  the 
scouts.  There  were  no  signs  of  any  enemy,  so  Wolf-Man  recommended 
that  they  go  southeast  to  the  land  of  the  Osage.  The  two  leaders  were 
glad  to  hear  the  man  speak.  The  next  morning,  before  daylight,  he  was 
told  to  scout  on  ahead.  The  man  went  out,  and  before  daylight  he  was 
back,  for  he  had  seen  Cheyenne  and  Arapaho  breaking  camp. 

The  company  hid  until  noon ;  then  they  came  out  from  their  hiding 
place  and  followed  the  trail.  The  trail  was  plain.  They  could  see  the 
enemy  making  camp.  They  could  also  see  where  they  were  taking  their 
ponies.  After  night  scouts  were  sent  to  capture  the  ponies.  Wolf-Man 
was  one  of  the  six  scouts  selected.  He  went  with  the  men,  but  finally 
went  away  from  them  to  the  place  where  the  leader  was,  with  the  other 
young  men.  As  he  drove  the  ponies  up,  the  leader  came  and  met  him. 
"All  these  ponies  I  give  you,"  said  Wolf -Man.  The  leader  thanked  him 
and  said,  "This  day  you  shall  be  known  among  our  great  warriors  as  the 
Man- Who-Has-No-Leader. ' '  Wolf -Man  went  back  to  camp  and  found 
more  ponies,  brought  them  to  the  leader,  and  again  he  gave  them  all  to 
him.  The  young  men  surrounded  the  herd  of  ponies.  Each  man  had 
his  lariat  rope  trying  to  rope  a  pony.  Everybody  was  told  to  catch  his 
pony  and  to  drive  the  herd.  Most  of  the  men  caught  ponies  and  got  on 
them.  While  the  men  were  riding  and  driving  the  ponies  they  saw 
Wolf-Man  walking,  sometimes  running,  and  he  did  not  seem  to  get  tired. 
The  leader,  when  he  divided  the  ponies,  let  Wolf -Man  take  his  choice  of 
all.  Wolf-Man  took  one  pony.  The  leader  divided  the  ponies  so  that 
even  the  young  men  who  for  the  first  time  had  gone  on  the  war-path 
received  a  pony,  and  every  one  of  the  warriors  had  a  pony.  As  they 
neared  the  village  the  leader  started  a  prairie  fire  and  made  the  young 
men  take  the  burnt  grass  and  paint  their  faces  black. 


388  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

The  people  in  the  village  saw  the  smoke.  Soon  they  saw  the  war- 
riors coming  over  the  hills  on  ponies  and  singing  their  victory  songs,  and 
they  knew  that  it  was  the  war  party  which  had  gone  out.  When  the 
warriors  were  in  their  lodges,  they  told  of  Wolf's-Man's  wonderful 
endurance  in  walking.  After  that  when  a  leader  wanted  to  go  on  the 
war-path  he  invited  Wolf-Man.  Wolf-Man  was  always  ready  to  go. 
He  was  the  leader  of  scouts.  The  war  party  always  came  back  successful, 
for  they  had  Wolf-Man  with  them. 

Among  the  warriors  was  a  famous  leader  who  determined  to  go  on 
the  war-path.  He  sent  for  only  the  best  men  in  the  tribe,  and  Wolf-Man 
was  among  them.  This  party  of  warriors  started  out  for  the  Mexican 
country,  for  in  that  country  they  could  capture  mules  and  fine  ponies. 
Before  starting,  Wolf-Man  had  a  wolf  robe  made.  He  also  had  moccasins 
made  from  wolf  hide.  The  nose  and  scalp  of  the  wolf  he  wore  on  his  scalp- 
lock  all  the  time,  and  he  wore  the  wolf  robe  and  his  wolf  moccasins. 
When  the  company  had  gone  far  south  into  the  enemy's  country,  the 
leader  found  two  men  who  seemed  never  to  grow  tired,  and  yet  they 
traveled  farther  every  day  than  the  others.  They  soon  were  recognized 
as  leaders  of  all  the  scouts.  They  were  sent  out  in  different  directions 
one  day,  and  when  they  were  far  away  from  the  others  they  met.  There 
were  no  enemies  in  sight.  They  could  see  no  sign,  and  so  they  started 
back  to  the  place  where  the  leaders  were  with  the  other  men.  As  they 
journeyed,  both  seemed  to  be  equal  in  endurance.  Wolf -Man 's  companion 
said:  "How  do  you  travel  so  fast?  You  must  possess  some  power." 
' '  Well , ' '  said  Wolf-Man ,  "  I  will  let  you  know.  See  my  moccasins  ?  They 
are  made  of  wolf  hide.  I  wear  them  on  my  journey;  when  I  near  the 
camp,  I  take  them  off.  I  also  use  this  dust  in  my  buckskin  sack.  Take 
some  and  snuff  it  up  into  your  nostrils."  The  other  man  took  the  dust 
and  snuffed  it.  The  tired  feeling  wore  off  and  he  felt  like  walking  a 
long  distance.  They  went  on  for  many  miles,  and  then  Wolf-Man  said 
to  the  other  man:  "Have  you  no  guardian  nor  helper?  I  have  told 
you  my  secret,  now  tell  me  yours. "  The  man  reached  for  his  scalp-lock 
and  took  from  it  a  small  root.  This  he  broke  and  gave  to  Wolf-Man, 
and  said,  "Chew;  swallow."  Wolf -Man  took  the  root,  chewed  it,  and 
swallowed  the  juice.  He  felt  as  though  it  were  morning  and  he  had  not 
been  traveling  all  day.  As  he  swallowed  the  juice  from  the  root  he  felt 
relieved  from  hunger,  for  the  root  tasted  like  fat.  Wolf -Man  said,  "This  is 
wonderful ;  who  or  what  animal  gave  you  this  root  ? "  The  man  answered 
and  said:  "This  root  I  got  from  a  Horse;  the  Horse  did  not  speak  to 
me,  but  I  had  a  dream,  and  the  Horse  told  me  in  my  dream  that  I  must 
go  with  him  and  he  would  show  me  the  Horses'  root.  I  followed  the 


THE  WOLF-WARRIOR.  389 

Horse  and  he  showed  me  the  root ;  I  dug  it  up  and  tasted  it ;  I  knew  how 
it  tasted;  I  woke  up.  The  next  day  I  went  out  and  found  the  root,  and 
dug  it  up  and  tasted  it  and  it  was  the  same,  and  so  I  kept  it. "  Wolf- 
Man  did  not  say  any  more,  for  he  had  found  one  man  equal  to  himself  in 
traveling.  Wolf-Man  also  knew  that  the  man  did  not  tell  all  of  his  story. 

When  they  reached  camp  they  told  the  leaders  where  they  had  been , 
and  it  was  hard  for  the  leaders  to  believe  them ;  for  it  was  a  journey  of 
several  days  to  the  place  where  they  said  they  had  been.  These  two  men 
were  the  ones  who  found  a  Mexican  village  and  took  from  a  corral  many 
ponies  and  mules,  giving  them  to  the  leader.  The  leader  thanked  them. 

After  this  trip  Wolf-Man  made  friends  with  the  other  man  who  could 
walk  fast.  They  became  old  and  were  often  invited  by  young  warriors 
to  tell  their  war  stories  to  them.  Wolf-Man  outlived  the  other  man  and 
came  to  Oklahoma  in  1872.  He  was  then  a  very  old  man,  but  still  a 
good  walker.  He  had  a  son  whom  he  took  pains  to  teach  his  secrets  and 
songs.  One  night  after  the  old  man  had  given  all  of  his  things  to  his 
son,  he  lay  down  in  his  earth-lodge  and  waited  through  the  night  for  the 
first  ray  of  the  morning  sun  to  come,  for  he  knew  that  when  it  came  he 
had  to  die.  The  ray  came  through  the  lodge  and  rested  on  the  old  man. 
He  gave  one  cry  and  died,  as  the  wolf  had  died,  of  old  age. 

103.    THE  COYOTE  AND  WOLF  MEDICINE1 

A  man  was  walking  along  and  he  met  Coyote.  Coyote  spoke  to  the 
man  and  said,  "How  would  you  like  to  smoke  my  pipe?"  The  man 
thanked  Coyote  and  told  him  that  he  would  like  to  smoke  it.  After  the 
man  had  smoked  he  returned  the  pipe,  and  then  Coyote  said  to  him: 
"You  have  smoked  my  pipe  and  so  I  will  not  catch  you  and  kill  you,  but 
will  take  you  to  my  people.  I  want  my  people  to  know  that  you  have 
smoked  my  pipe.  They  will  be  glad  to  see  you  and  will  give  you  great 
powers. "  They  went  on,  and  after  a  while  they  met  many  Coyotes  and 
Wolves.  When  the  Coyotes  and  the  Wolves  saw  Coyote  with  the  man, 
one  of  the  Wolves  called  to  the  other  Wolves  and  said:  "All  be  seated. 
Let  us  hear  what  these  people  who  are  coming  have  to  say."  When 
they  were  seated  Coyote  stood  up  and  said:  "This  man  is  my  brother. 
He  smoked  my  pipe.  He  came  with  me  to  make  you  people  a  visit.  Let 
us  take  pity  upon  him  and  make  him  a  wonderful  man. "  The  man  was 
frightened,  for  the  Wolves  came  close  to  him.  Then  the  man  was  told  to 
look.  He  looked  and  saw  many  Coyotes,  old  and  young.  The  Coyotes 

1  Told  by  White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  The  moral  of  the  story  is  about  the  same 
as  that  of  the  preceding. 


390  THE  ORIGIN  OP  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

began  to  roll  in  the  dust ;  then  they  came  to  the  man  and  gave  him  roots 
and  told  him  that  the  roots  were  good  for  the  sick.  Then  one  of  the 
Coyotes  arose  and  said:  "We  will  give  you  this  root  and  if  any  man  is 
bitten  by  a  mad  dog  give  this  medicine  to  him.  He  will  then  get  well 
and  not  go  mad.  The  other  medicines  are  good  for  the  urine  and  for 
pains. " 

A  Wolf  stood  up  next,  rolled  in  the  dust,  then  arose  and  gave  to  the 
man  a  whistle,  and  said:  "I  give  you  the  whistle.  When  anybody  is 
sick, use  this  whistle  and  the  person  will  be  made  well."  Then  another 
Wolf  arose  and  said:  "I  give  you  this  bone  with  which  to  kill  people. 
You  must  kill  people,  consecrate  them,  and  give  them  as  an  offering 
to  the  gods."  Then  a  Coyote  arose  and  said:  "I  go  around  in  the 
night  and  no  one  sees  me,  and  I  get  things  to  eat.  This  bone  that  I  give 
you  to  use  as  a  club  represents  me."  Then  another  Coyote  stood  up 
and  rolled  in  the  dust.  He  gave  the  man  a  piece  of  bone  with  the  skull 
of  a  Coyote  on  it.  This  Coyote  said:  "Take  this  bone.  If  anyone 
attempts  to  poison  or  bewitch  you,  lay  the  bone  on  your  forehead  and 
you  will  kill  them.  My  power  is  in  the  bone."  The  man  spoke  and 
said:  "This  is  enough.  I  thank  you.  Wolves  and  Coyotes,  I  am 
glad."  Coyote  took  the  man  back  to  the  village.  "When  you  get 
home,"  he  said,  "take  this  whistle.  Blow  it  before  you  get  home. 
Blow  hard  and  we  will  hear  it ;  all  the  Coyotes  and  Wolves  will  hear  it. " 
The  man  did  as  he  was  told  and  heard  the  Coyotes  howl  in  the  distance. 
The  man  arrived  home.  After  several  days  he  heard  of  a  man  who 
could  not  make  water.  He  went  to  him  and  doctored  him  until  he  was 
cured. 

104.  THE  SCALPED-MAN  MEDICINE.1 

A  long  time  ago  a  war  party  went  to  the  Comanche  country  to  cap- 
ture ponies.  The  warriors  captured  so  many  ponies  that  they  began  to 
organize  another  party  as  soon  as  they  arrived  home.  The  second  party 
had  anything  but  the  success  of  the  first  party.  It  was  surrounded,  at- 
tacked, and  lost  many  ponies  and  the  lives  of  some  of  the  bravest  warriors. 
They  ran  in  terror  from  the  enemy,  and  many  of  the  wounded  fell  by  the 
way,  unable  to  go  farther.  Among  these  was  one  man  who  was  wounded 
in  the  leg.  He  managed  to  keep  up  with  the  others  until  night  came  and 
they  camped.  During  the  night  his  wound  grew  worse,  and  at  daylight 

1  Told  by  Sun-Chief,  Skidi.  The  belief  in  scalped  people  has  already  been  re- 
ferred to.  The  tale  teaches  that  travelers  away  from  home  should  not  be  afraid 
of  these  scalped  people,  because  they  have  the  ability  of  conferring  power.  The 
story  is  also  interesting  because  it  shows  the  existence  among  the  Pawnee  of  the 
power  of  ventriloquism. 


THE  SCALPED  MAN  MEDICINE.  3QI 

when  they  were  ready  to  break  camp  and  start  on  he  was  not  able  to  go 
with  them.  Some  of  the  men  went  out  and  killed  a  few  buffalo,  jerked 
the  meat  and  made  it  into  a  bundle,  which  they  placed  at  his  head. 
Others  brought  water  and  fire  sticks  for  him  and  did  all  that  they  could 
to  make  him  comfortable,  then  they  left  him,  promising  to  let  his  people 
know  of  his  condition  as  soon  as  they  could,  so  that  they  could  come  to 
his  rescue. 

The  war  party  had  not  been  gone  long  when  the  wounded  man 
heard  many  voices,  and  he  became  frightened  for  fear  the  enemy  were 
upon  him.  Soon  he  heard  some  one  laugh,  and  a  voice  that  sounded  so 
near  that  it  was  speaking  in  his  ear  said:  "I  just  wanted  to  scare  you. 
It  was  only  I  who  made  all  of  that  noise. "  The  man  looked  everywhere, 
but  he  could  see  no  one.  The  next  morning  he  saw  some  of  his  meat 
had  been  stolen  during  the  night,  and  he  thought  that  surely  the  enemy 
had  followed  him.  When  night  came  he  again  heard  many  strange 
voices,  and  the  next  morning  he  discovered  that  more  of  his  meat  was 
gone.  He  became  very  much  frightened  and  cried  aloud  that  whoever 
was  stealing  his  meat  should  come  and  kill  him,  for  he  would  rather  be 
killed  than  starve  to  death.  For  reply  he  heard  only  some  one  laugh. 
For  several  evenings  he  continued  to  hear  voices,  now  near,  now  far  away, 
and  each  morning  he  discovered  that  more  of  his  meat  had  been  stolen. 
Finally  his  last  piece  of  meat  was  stolen  and  again  he  called  out  for  the 
person  who  took  it  to  come  and  kill  him.  For  reply  he  heard  only  some 
one  laugh,  and  then  suddenly  Scalped-Man  appeared  before  him  and  said, 
"  If  you  will  come  to  my  home,  I  will  heal  your  wounds  and  care  for  you. " 
The  man  was  not  afraid  of  Scalped-Man  and  said  that  he  would  go  with 
him,  for  he  knew  that  he  would  die  if  he  stayed  where  he  was.  Scalped- 
Man  took  him  upon  his  back  and  carried  him  to  his  home,  which  was  in  a 
big  cave. 

There  in  the  cave  were  heaps  of  wild  sage  spread  upon  the  ground. 
Close  to  the  fireplace  was  a  buffalo  skull  with  presents  of  blue  beads, 
eagle  feathers,  black  silk  handkerchiefs,  and  wampum  about  it.  Back  of 
the  skull  was  the  pile  of  meat  that  the  man  had  lost,  and  many  other 
parfleches  filled  with  dried  meat.  Many  buffalo  robes  were  scattered 
through  the  cave,  and  on  one  of  them  Scalped-Man  placed  the  wounded 
man.  He  looked  about  for  an  opening,  but  could  not  see  any,  and  he 
could  not  tell  how  they  came  in. 

Every  day  Scalped-Man  would  leave  the  cave  and  be  gone  for  a  long 
time.  Before  he  returned,  the  wounded  man  would  always  hear  many 
voices  crying  out,  and  giving  war  cries,  and  then  all  at  once  he  would  hear 
a  laugh  and  then  Scalped-Man  would  appear  in  the  cave.  He  would  tell 


392  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

the  man  that  it  was  he  who  was  making  all  the  noise,  but  the  man  could 
not  believe  him  for  a  long  time,  but  at  last  he  was  convinced.  While 
Scalped-Man  was  away  the  man  thought  that  he  heard  his  own  father 
and  mother  crying  and  calling  his  name,  and  then  other  people  crying 
and  calling  to  him.  He  became  so  excited  that  he  arose  for  the  first 
time  and  tried  to  walk.  He  was  so  sure  that  his  father  and  mother  had 
come  and  were  looking  for  him,  that  he  started  to  go  to  them  and  cried 
out  to  them,  but  he  could  not  find  the  entrance.  While  he  was  running 
frantically  about,  trying  to  get  out,  Scalped-Man  called  and  said,  "Get 
back  there;  the  people  will  see  you  and  take  you  away  from  me, "  and  he 
appeared  before  the  excited  man  and  began  to  laugh.  The  man  asked 
him  if  he  had  seen  any  of  the  people  who  were  calling  him,  and  he  said 
that  he  had  not.  After  a  while  he  told  the  man  that  it  was  he  who  made 
all  the  noise  that  sounded  like  the  voices  of  his  people.  The  man  refused 
to  believe  Scalped-Man  at  first,  but  he  began  to  cry  and  call  and  made 
his  voice  sound  like  many  people  talking,  until  he  convinced  the  man. 
Then  he  offered  to  give  him  the  power  of  making  the  many  peculiar 
sounds. 

Every  day  he  taught  him,  and  he  learned  so  rapidly  that  soon  he  could 
make  sounds  so  well  that  he  could  fool  Scalped-Man  just  as  he  had  been 
fooled  by  him.  Scalped-Man  also  taught  him  sleight-of-hand  per- 
formances, and  gave  him  a  white  downy  feather  and  covered  his  body 
with  white  clay.  He  put  many  coats  of  clay  over  the  wounded  leg,  and 
the  soreness  went  away  and  the  wounded  man  was  healed.  Then  he 
blew  his  breath  upon  the  eagle  feather  and  put  it  in  the  man 's  hair,  say- 
ing: "Keep  this  and  it  will  give  you  power,  for  it  stands  for  me.  I  am 
a  spirit  and  I  travel  like  the  wind  and  I  run  fast.  When  you  want  to 
run  fast  like  a  spirit,  put  this  downy  feather  in  your  hair  and  spread  clay 
all  over  your  body  as  I  have  done,  and  then  you  can  run.  If  you  fight 
with  the  enemy,  spread  the  clay  all  over  your  body,  and  when  you  want 
to  run  fast,  spit  upon  your  hands  and  wet  the  soles  of  your  feet  or  moc- 
casins, and  then  you  will  be  as  swift  as  the  wind.  Break  wild  sage  and 
carry  it  with  you,  and  the  pieces  will  turn  into  arrows  at  your  wish  when 
you  are  fighting.  Now,  I  have  taught  you  all  that  I  know  and  have  given 
you  all  the  power  that  I  have.  In  return  I  ask  only  that  you  do  not 
mention  me  to  the  people  or  ever  tell  anyone  where  I  live.  If  you  do  I  shall 
know  it  at  once,  and  though  I  move  to  some  other  place,  I  will  punish 
you  for  telling."  Scalped-Man  then  embraced  the  man  and  told  him 
that  in  a  few  days  his  people  would  come  to  see  if  he  were  living  or  dead, 
and  so  he  would  have  to  return  to  his  old  camp  in  the  cave  where  the 
men  had  left  him,  so  that  his  people  would  find  him  there. 


THE  SCALPED-MAN   MEDICINE.  393 

The  people  did  come  and  found  him  in  his  own  cave,  and  they  were 
surprised  to  find  him  a  well  man.  He  asked  for  some  blue  beads, 
native  tobacco,  a  black  silk  handkerchief,  and  some  eagle  feathers. 
These  they  gave  him,  and  in  the  night  he  went  to  Scalped-Man 's  cave 
and  gave  him  the  presents.  The  man  came  back  to  his  people  and  they 
returned  to  the  village. 

When  they  arrived,  the  Medicine-Men's  ceremony  was  in  progress, 
and  on  every  night  the  different  medicine-men  were  performing  some 
sleight-of-hand  performances  that  were  taught  them  by  different  animals. 
The  man  went  at  once  to  the  medicine-lodge,  and  asked  that  he  be  per- 
mitted to  do  some  sleight-of-hand.  The  first  thing  he  did  was  to  throw 
his  voice  in  different  directions  so  that  there  seemed  to  be  many  people 
speaking,  when  really  there  was  only  he.  Medicine-men  were  all  surprised 
and  they  called  him  the  wonderful  man,  but  other  people  who  had 
heard  that  this  man  had  been  living  with  Scalped-Man,  called  him 
Scalped-Man. 

While  they  were  having  the  Medicine-Men's  ceremony,  a  cry  was 
given  that  the  enemy  were  about  to  attack  the  village,  and  the  men  rushed 
out  to  meet  the  attack.  Among  the  enemy  was  one  who  seemed  to  have 
power  to  make  the  arrows  go  to  one  side  or  the  other  and  not  pierce  him, 
and  to  ward  off  blows  so  that  he  could  not  be  wounded.  The  people 
began  to  be  frightened  by  his  power,  and  cried  for  more  help.  The 
wounded  man,  who  had  become  a  medicine-man,  was  in  the  medicine- 
lodge.  When  he  heard  the  cry  he  arose,  covered  his  body  with  white 
clay,  put  the  downy  feather  in  his  hair,  hung  an  eagle-wing  whistle  about 
his  neck,  then  took  in  his  left  hand  some  pieces  of  wild  sage  and  in  his 
right  a  small  war  club  and  started  forth.  He  blew  his  whistle,  and  as  he 
blew  it  he  ran  so  fast  that  he  seemed  to  be  carried  by  the  wind.  He  saw 
that  his  people  were  retreating  before  the  enemy,  and  so  he  ran  around 
and  attacked  them  from  the  rear.  Some  of  the  men  turned  and  tried 
to  shoot  him,  but  the  arrows  went  to  the  right  and  left  of  him.  The 
wonderful  man,  who  also  had  power  to  escape  arrows,  ran  to  attack  him, 
but  the  man  raised  his  small  war  club  and  hit  him  a  blow  on  the  head 
that  felled  him,  and  he  rolled  over  dead.  As  soon  as  he  fell  dead,  the 
enemy  gave  way  and  became  frightened.  The  man  rushed  into  their 
midst  and  struck  another,  and  another,  until  he  had  killed  many,  and 
then  he  turned  back  and  went  into  the  medicine-lodge.  When  the  rest 
of  the  warriors  returned  to  the  village,  they  spoke  of  a  certain  man  who 
was  so  covered  with  white  clay  that  they  could  not  tell  who  he  was,  but 
they  all  talked  of  his  great  bravery.  He  became  a  great  medicine-man 
and  warrior,  and  though  he  fought  in  many  battles  he  was  never  injured. 


394  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

After  he  had  lived  a  long  time  he  committed  suicide.  Something  told 
him  that  his  friend  Scalped-Man  was  gone,  and  so  he  did  not  wish  to 
live  any  longer. 

105.  HOW  THE  PAWNEE  GOT  THE  EAQLE  DANCE.1 

Many  years  ago  while  the  Pawnee  lived  near  Nemaha,  Nebraska,  the 
people  agreed  to  remove  their  village  on  west  to  the  Republican  River. 
When  the  people  reached  the  place  where  they  were  to  make  their  new 
village,  there  was  a  man  among  the  people  who  wandered  away.  The 
relatives  of  this  man  did  not  know  where  the  man  went.  The  people 
kept  on  building  their  village  and  in  about  two  years  it  was  complete. 
Here  the  people  remained  for  some  time.  When  summer  came  they 
moved  west  to  hunt  for  buffalo.  When  they  had  gone  far,  the  man  who 
was  lost  came  into  their  camp.  He  wore  a  buffalo  robe  about  his  body, 
the  hair  outside,  and  covered  with  soft  eagle  feathers.  His  head  was 
covered  with  soft  downy  feathers,  one  soft  feather  being  stuck  into  his 
scalp-lock  on  the  top  of  his  head.  The  people  looked  at  him  with  wonder. 
On  account  of  the  way  he  was  dressed  and  covered  with  eagle  feathers 
they  knew  that  he  must  have  been  to  some  animals '  lodge,  or  to  some 
other  mysterious  place.  He  did  not  join  the  people  on  their  journey,  but 
waited  until  everybody  had  passed,  and  then  he  followed. 

When  he  would  reach  the  village  he  would  sit  down  on  the  south  side 
and  remain  there.  Sometimes  he  went  to  where  the  men  were  playing 
the  javelin  game.  He  would  sit  down  on  the  south  side  of  the  field  and 
remain  there  alone.  He  would  never  allow  any  man  to  come  and  sit  with 
him.  When  the  people  had  gone  a  long  way  through  the  western  coun- 
try, the  man  disappeared  again.  After  several  days  the  man  came 
back  to  the  camp  with  many  more  eagle  feathers.  He  tied  the  eagle 
feathers  in  a  small  buffalo  robe  and  hung  the  robe  up  in  his  tipi. 

When  the  people  saw  the  bundle  which  he  brought  back  they  were 
sure  that  he  was  a  wonderful  man,  and  that  he  must  have  wonderful 
ways.  The  people  killed  many  buffalo  and  returned  to  their  village. 
The  man  who  was  lost  went  with  them,  taking  his  sacred  bundle.  The 
people  looked  upon  him  as  wonderful,  but  in  reality  he  had  no  powers  of 
any  kind.  He  found,  however,  a  wonderful  place  and  brought  things 
from  that  place  to  his  home.  He  was  anxious  to  learn  more  about  the 
wonderful  place  he  had  found,  and  so  he  went  to  the  place  whenever  he 

1  Told  by  Young-Bull,  Pitahauirat.  Apart  from  the  story  of  the  origin  of  the 
Eagle  dance,  the  tale  is  similar  in  the  moral  it  points  to  No.  86.  Here  also  the 
lesson  is  taught  that  a  young  man  should  not  mistreat  a  member  of  his  own  tribe 
for  his  own  personal  benefit. 


HOW  THE  PAWNEE  GOT  THE  EAGLE  DANCE.  395 

was  not  watched  by  other  people.  When  he  would  reach  the  place  he 
would  find  many  eagle  feathers  scattered  over  a  high  hill,  and  before 
gathering  them  up  he  would  stand  on  the  top  of  the  hill  where  a  soft  downy 
feather  seemed  to  be  placed.  There  he  would  stand  and  cry.  He  heard  no 
strange  noise,  neither  was  he  put  to  sleep  in  order  to  be  taken  into  the 
lodge  of  the  animals,  and  he  knew  all  the  time  that  he  received  no  power 
from  anyone.  He  would  stop  crying,  gather  the  feathers  and  take  them 
home.  The  first  feathers  he  found  he  placed  all  over  his  robe. 

At  this  time,  when  the  people  had  their  village  upon  the  Republican 
River,  this  man  decided  to  learn  what  was  in  the  hill  where  he  found  so 
many  eagle  feathers.  He  studied  and  thought  what  he  should  do  for  the 
animals  that  were  in  the  hill.  At  last  he  made  up  his  mind.  One 
evening  he  went  out  where  the  children  were  playing  and  there  he  found 
his  nephew  playing  with  the  other  children.  This  little  boy  thought  a 
great  deal  of  his  uncle.  He  used  to  follow  him  around  through  the 
village.  When  the  boy  saw  his  uncle  he  ran  up  to  him  and  asked  to  be 
taken  home.  The  man  put  the  child  upon  his  back  and  carried  him  off. 
When  they  were  gone  many  days  the  man  told  the  boy  that  they  were 
going  to  a  wonderful  place.  When  the  boy  was  taken  away,  the  parents 
looked  for  him  all  through  the  village,  but  they  could  not  find  him. 

After  a  while  the  uncle  came  back,  but  the  child  was  not  with  him. 
Then  the  people  knew  that  the  child  must  be  lost.  The  uncle,  upon 
reaching  the  wonderful  place  with  the  child  upon  his  back,  saw  many 
feathers  scattered  over  the  hill.  He  went  up  to  where  the  downy  feather 
was,  stood  there,  and  cried.  As  he  cried  he  took  the  child  from  his  back. 
He  placed  the  child  upon  the  downy  feathers  and  said:  "To  whatever 
being  is  in  this  place,  I  now  give  you  my  nephew  to  devour.  For  this 
present  I  want  you  to  take  pity  on  me  and  give  me  the  power  which  you 
possess,  and  teach  me  why  these  feathers  are  scattered  over  this  hill. " 
As  he  let  the  boy  go,  the  boy  dropped  into  a  hole,  for  where  the  soft 
downy  feather  was  placed  was  really  an  opening  for  the  eagles  to  fly  in 
and  out.  As  the  boy  fell  into  the  hole  the  man  began  to  cry,  and  although 
he  cried  for  several  days  he  saw  that  he  would  receive  no  powers  from 
anybody.  He  began  to  walk  around  and  pick  up  the  feathers.  After- 
wards he  went  home. 

When  the  boy  was  dropped  into  the  hole  all  the  Eagles  in  the  den 
gave  a  whistling  sound,  jumped  up,  and  looked  at  the  boy.  The  Eagles 
began  to  talk  among  themselves  and  say:  "This  is  wrong.  This  man 
who  has  been  visiting  our  place  has  stolen  his  own  nephew  and  has  placed 
him  in  our  den  in  order  that  we  might  feast  upon  him.  He  has  given  us 
this  boy.  The  man  who  has  been  visiting  us  has  received  from  us  many 


396  THB  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

feathers.  We  were  arranging  a  time  when  this  man  should  be  allowed 
to  come  into  our  den.  Instead  of  waiting  until  we  should  arrange  for  him 
to  come,  he  has  stolen  a  child  and  has  given  it  to  us.  This  child  has  a 
father  and  a  mother.  The  father  and  the  mother  are  hunting  for  the 
child,  and  they  are  mourning  at  this  time  for  the  child.  This  father  and 
mother  love  their  child."  Then  one  of  the  Eagles  said,  "See,  on  the 
east  side  of  our  den  are  seated  our  father  and  our  mother."  All  the 
Eagles  looked  to  the  east  in  the  den,  and  there  sat  two  old  Eagles. 
Their  feathers  were  worn  off.  They  looked  very  old.  Then  the  Eagle 
who  was  speaking  said,  "We  will  leave  it  to  these  two  old  people  to  tell 
us  what  to  do  with  the  boy."  The  two  old  Eagles  then  began  to  stir 
around,  stretching  their  wings  and  their  necks.  The  old  man  Eagle  said: 
"The  man  in  his  haste  to  learn  our  power  has  stolen  this  boy  and  thrown 
him  into  our  den  to  learn  our  secrets.  We  had  promised  to  help  this 
man,  but  since  he  has  stolen  this  child  we  will  let  him  go  and  will  not  give 
him  any  powers.  Let  the  child  remain  with  us.  I  give  you  my  power 
and  my  consent  to  turn  the  boy  into  an  Eagle."  All  the  Eagles  in  the 
den  jumped  up  and  screeched,  for  they  were  satisfied  with  what  the  old 
Eagle  had  decided.  The  child  was  now  told  to  sit  up.  The  Eagles  flew 
around  in  the  den,  for  they  were  very  numerous.  All  these  Eagles  were 
descended  from  the  two  which  were  now  old.  The  Eagles  flew  around  in 
the  den  and  also  around  the  boy.  Then  the  Eagles  flew  in  a  flock  around 
in  the  den  and  surrounded  the  little  boy.  When  the  Eagles  flew  up, 
there  were  many  feathers  scattered  around  the  boy. 

Again  the  Eagles  surrounded  him.  This  time  they  covered  him  with 
soft  downy  feathers.  The  next  time  they  flew  around  the  boy  and 
surrounded  him.  When  they  flew  away  the  arms  of  the  boy  had  feathers 
upon  them.  Again  the  Eagles  surrounded  him,  and  when  they  flew  away 
the  boy  was  not  there.  They  flew  around  the  den  several  times  and 
then  placed  the  boy  on  the  south  side.  When  the  Eagles  had  flown  away 
the  boy  sat  there  as  an  Eagle,  for  he  had  been  turned  into  an  Eagle 
according  to  his  age.  The  boy  tried  to  fly,  but  as  he  was  still  young 
and  his  feathers  small,  he  could  not  fly.  Every  day  the  Eagles  flew  out 
of  the  den  and  went  over  the  country.  In  the  afternoon  they  would 
return  to  the  den  with  all  kinds  of  meat  and  animals  and  drop  them  into 
the  den.  The  boy  and  the  other  young  Eagles  would  surround  the  meat 
and  eat  of  it.  When  the  young  Eagles  had  eaten  the  meat  from  the 
bones,  and  the  old  Eagles  had  returned  to  the  den,  the  bones  were  taken 
out  and  dropped  over  the  country.  For  some  time  the  boy  remained  in 
the  den,  for  he  could  not  fly  out.  The  boy  was  being  taught  by  the  old 
Eagles  the  power  which  he  was  to  have.  The  old  Eagles  kept  telling  the 


HOW  THE  PAWNEE  GOT  THE  EAGLE  DANCE.  397 

boy  how  bad  the  man  had  been  for  dropping  him  into  the  den.     They 
told  him  that  in  time  he  was  to  help  to  kill  the  man  for  what  he  had  done. 

For  some  time  afterwards  the  boy  was  told  to  try  to  fly  out  of  the 
den.  He  flew  up  and  out  of  the  den,  but  the  other  Eagles  remained 
with  him  to  watch  over  him  and  see  that  he  did  not  go  back  to  the  people. 
In  the  evening  the  Eagles,  together  with  the  Eagle-Boy,  came  back  to 
the  den.  For  several  months  the  boy  flew  out,  but  was  always  watched 
by  the  other  Eagles.  After  a  while  the  Eagle  boy  went  off  by  himself  and 
always  brought  in  a  badger  or  a  prairie  dog,  or  sometimes  he  would 
bring  fish  which  he  had  taken  from  the  creeks.  These  things  he  placed 
before  the  old  Eagles.  The  boy  found  out  that  the  old  Eagles  were  very 
fond  of  fish  and  he  would  bring  more  for  them.  One  day  the  boy 
Eagle  went  out  and  brought  in  a  small-sized  deer.  When  the  old  Eagles 
saw  that  the  boy  brought  the  deer  into  the  den,  they  knew  that  he  was 
now  strong. 

In  the  night  when  all  the  Eagles  were  gathered  together  in  the  den, 
the  old  Eagle  said:  "It  is  now  time  for  this  young  Eagle  to  return  to 
his  people.  We  have  given  him  powers  which  we  possess,  and  he  must  go 
among  his  people  and  be  good  to  them.  But  before  he  goes  to  his  people 
I  wish  to  be  satisfied,  for  I  want  to  eat  of  the  man  who  brought  this  boy 
and  threw  him  into  our  den. "  The  Eagles  all  screamed  and  said:  "Our 
father  has  spoken  well.  We  will  go  and  bring  this  man,  so  that  the  Eagles 
may  eat  of  him  and  then  our  father  shall  also  eat  of  the  man.  Our 
brother  here  knows  his  uncle.  He  will  take  us  to  where  he  is  and  we 
will  catch  him  and  bring  him  to  this  den. "  That  night  it  was  planned  to 
go  and  catch  the  man  and  bring  him  into  the  den. 

The  next  morning,  just  as  the  sun  was  about  to  come  up,  the  Eagles 
began  to  fly  out  from  the  den.  They  joined  the  Eagle-Boy  up  in  the  sky 
When  they  had  all  left  the  den  the  Eagles  could  be  seen  flying  in  the  sky. 
After  all  had  come  together  they  flew  to  the  east  where  the  people  had 
made  their  village.  The  Eagles  flew  up  high  into  the  sky,  so  that  the 
people  could  not  see  them.  The  Eagles  flew  over  the  village,  and  there 
on  the  south  side  of  the  village  the  men  were  playing  with  sticks.  There 
on  the  south  side  sat  the  man  who  had  stolen  the  boy.  His  robe  was 
covered  with  eagle  feathers,  and  the  boy  knew  him  at  once.  The  Eagles 
flew  around  once  or  twice  overhead  where  the  man  sat.  Then  the  Eagle 
boy  flew  down  and  all  the  Eagles  swooped  down  with  him.  The  men 
who  were  playing  sticks  saw  the  Eagles  fly  down  toward  the  man  in 
a  funnel-shaped  line,  and  when  they  saw  that  the  Eagles  took  hold  of 
the  man  and  lifted  him  up  from  the  ground  they  knew  that  something 
was  wrong.  The  men  ran  from  the  gambling  grounds  into  the  village. 


398  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

There  was  shouting  all  through  the  village.  The  people  came  out  and 
watched  the  Eagles  as  they  bore  the  man  up  into  the  sky.  The  Eagles 
twisted  the  man  around  until  they  finally  unwrapped  his  buffalo  robe. 
The  robe  dropped  down  to  the  ground  and  the  Eagles  took  hold  of  the 
man 's  flesh  by  the  arms  and  legs.  They  flew  away  with  their  burden  to 
their  den,  but  instead  of  flying  through  the  hole  into  the  den  with  the 
man,  they  dropped  him  from  the  sky  into  the  hole.  He  fell  upon  the 
ground  in  the  den  and  was  killed.  The  Eagles  now  flew  into  the  den  and 
placed  the  man  in  front  of  the  two  old  Eagles.  They  ate  of  him  for 
several  days.  When  he  was  eaten  up  and  there  was  nothing  but  the 
bones,  the  Eagles  all  came  together  and  took  bone  after  bone  out  of  the 
den  and  scattered  them  over  the  earth. 

After  the  Eagles  had  carried  this  man  off,  the  people  broke  camp  and 
went  away  from  that  place.  From  that  day  to  this  the  people  have 
called  this  site  "  Place-Where-the-Eagles-Carried-a-Man-Off . " 

Several  years  afterwards  the  Eagles  turned  the  Eagle-Boy  into  a  man, 
and  when  the  Eagles  saw  that  he  was  quite  a  young  man  they  were  satis- 
fied to  send  him  home  again.  The  Eagles  all  came  together  and  agreed 
that  the  boy  should  return  to  his  people.  The  oldest  of  the  Eagles, 
except  the  two  old  parents,  told  the  boy  to  kill  him  and  remove  his  skin, 
leaving  only  the  head  in  the  skin,  and  to  take  the  body  out  of  the  den 
and  throw  it  away.  He  told  the  boy  that  by  doing  this  his  spirit  would 
be  with  him  always;  that  the  spirit  of  the  Eagle  would  always  be  with 
him  to  help  him  in  anything  he  undertook.  The  old  Eagle  said:  "My 
son,  I  should  have  given  you  my  feathers,  but  you  see,  as  I  stretch  my 
wings,  that  my  feathers  are  worn  off.  You  shall  grow  to  old  age  just 
as  I  have  grown,  and  all  your  children  and  all  who  shall  have  received 
the  powers  which  I  possess  shall  grow  to  great  age."  The  old  Eagle 
then  took  one  claw  from  his  right  leg  and  gave  it  to  the  boy  and  told  him 
to  wear  it  when  fighting  with  the  enemy..  The  Eagle  also  gave  the  boy 
a  soft  downy  feather  for  him  to  wear  in  battle.  The  old  Eagle  then  com- 
menced to  scratch  with  its  claws  in  the  earth.  Then  he  told  the  boy  to 
place  the  dirt  in  a  little  buckskin,  for  it  was  the  paint  that  he  should  put 
upon  his  body  when  in  battle.  The  Eagle  reached  behind  and  took  there- 
from a  bone  whistle,  which  was  from  the  wing  of  an  Eagle.  He  said: 
"When  you  have  spread  this  paint  upon  your  body,  and  you  have  the 
soft  downy  feather  upon  your  scalp-lock,  and  you  do  not  feel  that  we 
are  near  you,  put  this  bone  in  your  mouth,  whistle,  and  our  spirit  will  be 
with  you. "  The  old  Eagle  promised  the  boy  that  in  sickness  the  Eagle 
would  be  sent  to  watch  over  him  and  help  him  to  wait  on  people  when 
they  were  sick  and  cure  them.  The  old  Eagle  also  said:  "When  you 


HOW  THE  PAWNEE  GOT  THE  EAGLE  DANCE.  399 

have  been  with  your  people  for  some  time  you  must  get  an  Eagle- wing  fan. 
That  wing  will  have  our  power  and  our  breath,  so  that  in  waving  that 
wing  over  a  sick  person  we  will  breathe  over  them.  The  sickness  will  go 
from  them  and  they  will  become  well.  After  you  have  been  with  your 
people  for  some  time  you  must  kill  a  young  fawn  and  from  the  fawn  skin 
you  must  make  a  rattle.  The  rattle  you  will  use  when  you  sing  for  sick 
people.  In  shaking  this  rattle  over  them  it  will  arouse  the  animal  spirit 
in  them.  The  sick  will  try  to  imitate  our  kind  and  they  will  be  made 
well. "  The  old  Eagle  then  selected  other  Eagles  to  fly  with  the  boy  to 
his  home.  At  daylight  ten  Eagles  flew  out  of  the  den  with  the  boy. 
They  flew  toward  the  south  where  the  village  was  located  upon  the 
Republican  River.  When  they  came  near  the  village  the  Eagles  flew 
down  to  the  earth.  They  alighted  upon  a  high  mound.  They  told  the 
boy  to  go  to  his  people;  that  they  would  watch  over  him  and  take  care 
of  him.  The  Eagles  flew  around  the  boy  Eagle  and  he  turned  into  a 
young  man.  Then  the  Eagles  flew  away. 

The  boy  went  toward  the  village.  When  he  entered  the  village  he 
looked  into  the  different  lodges,  and  at  last  he  came  to  one  lodge  where 
he  saw  his  father  and  mother  sitting  by  the  fireplace.  They  were  all 
scarred  and  had  their  hair  cut  short.  All  these  years  they  had  mourned 
over  their  lost  child.  The  boy  entered  the  lodge  and  said,  "Father,  I  am 
here. "  The  man  looked  and  saw  a  young  man  with  a  buffalo  robe  with 
many  Eagle  feathers  upon  it.  He  thought  this  was  the  same  man  who 
had  been  carried  away  by  the  Eagles.  The  boy  said,  "Father,  I  have 
come  back  to  remain  with  you. "  The  father  saw  that  the  boy  was  now 
quite  a  young  man.  He  jumped  up,  caught  his  son  in  his  arms,  and  said, 
"Woman,  come,  our  son  is  here. "  The  woman  came  and  cried,  but  the 
young  man  said:  "Do  not  cry,  for  I  am  here  now.  Take  this  bundle 
and  place  it  at  the  altar  in  the  west. " 

It  was  then  told  through  the  village  that  the  boy  who  had  been  lost 
had  returned.  The  people  began  to  come  in.  The  men  sat  in  a  circle 
around  the  fireplace.  The  boy  told  how  his  uncle  had  found  a  wonderful 
place  away  from  the  village ;  that  the  wonderful  place  was  a  mound  cov- 
ered with  Eagle  feathers;  at  the  top  was  the  entrance,  but  it  was  covered 
with  soft  downy  feathers  so  that  the  hole  could  not  be  seen;  that  his 
uncle  had  gone  there  and  gathered  the  feathers ;  that  he  had  placed  these 
feathers  upon  his  robe ;  several  times  he  had  gone  to  this  place ;  that  the 
people  looked  upon  him  as  a  wonderful  man  when  in  reality  he  had  no 
power  at  all.  He  told  that  his  uncle  was  in  a  hurry  to  learn  of  the  powers 
of  the  Eagles  and  had  thought  that  by  giving  something  to  the  wonder- 
ful place  he  might  receive  powers.  He  decided,  therefore,  to  steal  the 


400  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

boy  and  give  him  to  the  birds,  so  that  the  birds  might  give  him  powers. 
He  said  that  he  came  into  the  village  and  carried  him  to  the  wonderful 
place.  The  boy  said:  "When  the  man  stood  by  the  entrance  he  cried 
and  gave  me  to  the  birds.  'To  you,  Eagles  in  this  den,  I  give  my  nephew 
as  a  present.  Take  pity  upon  me  and  give  me  your  powers.'  '  The  boy 
continued  and  said:  "I  remained  in  the  den  for  many  years.  The 
Eagles  did  not  eat  me.  Instead,  they  took  pity  on  me  and  I  flew  into 
the  sky,  looked  over  the  country,  and  I  saw  you,  my  people,  traveling 
around.  I  remained  with  the  Eagles  until  it  was  decided  to  take  the 
man  up,  so  that  the  Eagles  would  receive  him  in  their  den  and  eat  him. 
I  came  and  helped,  and  we  carried  the  man  up  into  the  sky  and  down  into 
the  den  and  the  Eagles  ate  him  up.  Now  you  understand  why  the 
Eagles  took  the  man  up  into  the  sky. " 

The  boy  remained  in  the  village  for  some  time.  A  war  party  was 
got  up  and  they  went  into  the  country  of  the  enemy.  The  boy  did  not 
follow  them.  Soon  after  this  the  boy  told  his  people  that  he  was  going 
to  follow  the  war  party.  About  four  days  afterwards  the  boy  disap- 
peared, but  as  he  did  so  he  turned  into  an  Eagle  and  flew  away  to  the 
warriors.  He  saw  them,  flew  down,  turned  into  a  young  man,  and  went 
into  their  camp.  The  men  were  surprised  when  they  saw  him.  Before 
morning  the  boy  went  away.  As  the  warriors  continued  on  their  march 
they  saw  the  boy  coming  over  a  hill.  He  told  the  warriors  that  the  enemy 
was  near  at  hand.  Scouts  were  sent  out  to  look  over  the  village,  and 
they  came  back  and  said,  "We  must  attack  the  village,  for  there  are 
only  a  few  tipis. "  The  warriors  began  to  put  on  their  war  costumes. 
Some  put  on  war  bonnets,  some  spears,  and  some  carried  shields.  Others 
were  naked.  The  boy  sat  down,  took  some  clay  and  spread  it  upon  his 
body.  He  placed  a  bone  whistle  upon  his  breast.  He  put  a  soft  downy 
feather  in  his  scalp-lock.  In  his  right  hand  he  carried  a  club.  The  club 
he  did  not  have  when  they  first  saw  him,  but  afterwards  they  discovered 
that  it  was  the  claw  of  an  eagle. 

When  they  attacked  the  village  the  boy  was  the  first  to  go  into  the 
village,  so  that  when  a  man  came  out  from  a  tipi  he  struck  him  with 
his  war  club  and  killed  him.  Again  he  came  through  the  village  and 
struck  another  man  and  killed  him.  Then  he  went  through  the  village 
and  took  two  scalps.  These  scalps  he  tied  upon  his  club  and  then  went 
away  from  the  fight.  After  the  fight  the  warriors  returned.  The  boy  said, 
"Leader,  I  give  you  these  scalps,  but  I  want  two  small  pieces,  one  from 
each  scalp,  to  hang  upon  my  eagle  claw  as  a  gift  to  the  old  Eagle." 
This  was  promised  him.  After  all  the  warriors  came  back  the  boy  told 
the  leaders  that  he  was  going  to  his  home.  That  night  the  boy  disap- 


HOW  THE  PAWNEE   GOT  THE   EAGLE   DANCE.  401 

peared.  He  had  turned  into  an  Eagle  and  had  gone  home.  The  next  day 
the  boy  was  found  in  his  lodge,  and  when  he  was  asked  about  the  warriors 
he  told  his  father  that  he  had  been  with  them,  that  they  had  attacked  a 
village,  and  the  warriors  had  acted  bravely  and  had  taken  some  scalps. 
The  people  who  heard  the  boy  telling  this  to  the  father  went  through 
the  village  and  told  the  people  what  the  boy  said.  The  people  made 
fun  of  the  boy.  They  believed  that  the  boy  had  gone  out  and  had  never 
overtaken  the  warriors,  but  had  returned. 

In  a  few  days  the  warriors  came  over  the  hills  singing  war  songs  and 
shouting  the  name  of  the  boy,  telling  how  he  had  first  attacked  the  vil- 
lage; that  he  had  killed  two  and  that  he  had  also  taken  two  scalps. 
Then  the  people  believed  what  was  said  of  the  boy.  After  that,  whenever 
the  boy  sat  down  before  going  on  the  war-path,  other  young  men  came 
and  sat  with  him.  They  knew  that  he  had  great  powers.  They  followed 
him,  and  he  was  successful  in  conquering  the  enemy  and  capturing 
ponies.  He  always  had  upon  his  body  the  white  clay  which  was  given 
him  by  the  Eagle,  the  whistle,  and  the  downy  feather.  The  enemy  tried 
to  kill  him,  but  they  could  not  hit  him  and  so  he  was  never  killed.  After 
he  became  a  great  warrior  he  thought  it  was  time  that  he  should  enter 
the  Medicine-Men's  lodge. 

One  summer  the  people  went  on  a  buffalo  hunt.  In  the  fall  when 
they  came  back  to  their  village,  and  the  medicine-lodge  was  cleaned  out 
and  the  medicine-men  were  to  have  their  ceremonies,  the  boy  thought  he 
would  do  something.  When  the  lodge  was  all  ready,  the  Eagle-Boy  went 
into  it.  When  he  entered  the  lodge  the  leading  medicine-man  got  up, 
went  to  him,  and  asked  him  what  he  wished  to  do.  Eagle-Boy  said, 
"I  have  come  into  your  medicine-lodge  to  act  with  the  medicine-men." 
The  young  man  was  given  a  seat  in  the  northwest,  for  the  medicine-man 
knew  that  the  den  of  the  Eagles  was  in  the  northwest.  When  his  turn 
came  to  do  some  sleight-of-hand,  he  took  the  whole  eagle  skin  which 
he  had,  ran  around  the  fire  three  or  four  times,  and  threw  the  whole  eagle 
skin  west  of  the  fireplace,  and  there  sat  a  live  Eagle.  The  other  medicine- 
men, as  soon  as  they  saw  this,  got  up  from  their  seats,  took  their  pipes 
filled  with  native  tobacco,  went  up  to  the  live  Eagle,  and  offered  native 
tobacco  and  smoke  to  the  Eagle.  When  the  young  man  went  up  again 
to  the  Eagle  he  ran  around  it  several  times,  and  as  he  reached  his  hands 
toward  the  Eagle,  the  Eagle 's  life  seemed  to  die  away.  The  boy  caught 
the  Eagle  and  it  was  the  skin  of  the  Eagle  again.  The  boy  performed 
many  sleight-of-hand  tricks,  and  after  this  he  was  looked  upon  as  a 
great  medicine-man.  When  anybody  was  sick  he  was  sent  for.  He 
went,  taking  with  him  the  Eagle  wing  and  the  rattle.  He  sang  songs 


402  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

about  the  Eagles,  and  waved  the  eagle  wing  over  their  bodies  where  the 
pain  was.     The  pain  would  leave  them. 

Eagle-Boy  became  a  great  medicine-man,  a  warrior,  and  finally  a 
chief.  He  became  very  old.  Then  he  handed  the  story,  the  eagle  skin, 
and  everything  that  went  with  it  to  his  son.  These  talismans  have 
been  handed  down  until  at  the  present  time  Hawk,  of  the  Pitahauirat 
band,  is  the  keeper  of  everything — the  whistle,  the  rattle,  and  the  white 
clay.  He  now  dances  the  Eagle  dance.  In  the  medicine-men 's  dances, 
Hawk  sings  the  song  that  was  taught  the  boy  by  the  Eagles  when  they 
carried  the  boy 's  uncle  up  into  the  sky.  There  is  another  song  sung  when 
the  boy  was  transformed  into  an  eagle.  There  are  also  other  songs  which 
go  with  this  story. 

106.  THE  DOG  MEDICINE.1 

A  boy  was  going  along  when  he  came  to  a  hill,  where  he  sat  down  to 
rest.  After  a  while  he  saw  a  Dog  coming,  but  he  did  not  notice  the  Dog 
closely.  After  a  little  time  the  Dog  came  and  sat  down  near  him,  and 
spoke  to  him  and  said:  "Listen  to  me.  I  have  something  to  tell  you. 
I  am  sorry  that  I  am  here.  People  do  not  take  care  of  me.  You  have 
had  hard  times  in  the  village.  I  saw  you  coming  away  because  the 
woman  whom  you  wanted  to  marry  scolded  you.  I  know  that  you  want 
that  woman  and  by  my  help  you  shall  have  her.  You  must  go  south,  for 
the  people  have  gone  into  the  southern  country." 

The  young  man  went  south.  He  found  the  village  and  remained 
there,  and  as  the  Dog  had  taught  the  boy  a  song,  the  boy  sang  in  the 
night.  The  girl  he  wanted  to  marry  came,  and  he  told  her  to  go  with  him, 
and  she  consented.  They  traveled  far,  until  they  came  to  the  place  where 
the  Dog  was  sitting.  The  Dog  was  glad  to  see  them  and  said:  "Tell  me 
of  your  marriage.  You  must  call  me  brother  all  the  time. "  The  boy 
told  how  he  had  gone  into  the  village,  and  how  the  people  were  glad  to 
see  him.  He  told  how  at  night  he  went  out  and  sang  a  song  and  the  girl 
came  to  him.  The  Dog  then  gave  the  boy  a  buffalo  robe,  an  eagle  wing 
for  a  fan,  a  bone  whistle,  and  a  gourd.  The  Dog  said:  "Whistle  when 
you  want  me.  The  bone  whistle  you  must  use  in  your  medicine  cere- 
mony. I  will  give  you  many  children.  I  have  taken  pity  upon  you, 
for  you  had  a  great  desire  to  have  children.  I  am  going  to  teach  you 
how  to  be  a  medicine-man."  The  Dog  blew  his  breath  and  the  smoke 
came  out  of  his  mouth.  Then  he  gave  the  man  some  roots  and  taught 

1  Told  by  White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  teaches  that  even  dogs  should  not 
be  mistreated,  for  they  also  have  powers  which  it  is  possible  for  them  to  bestow  upon 
the  people. 


THE    DOG   MEDICINE.  403 

him  what  they  were  good  for.  The  Dog  then  said:  "You  must  dance 
the  Dog  dance,  and  when  you  are  having  the  Dog  dance,  whisper  to  me 
and  I  will  listen  to  you."  The  Dog  continued:  "I  have  also  given  you 
a  pony.  This  pony  you  shall  capture  when  you  have  gone  on  the  war- 
path. You  will  know  it,  for  it  shall  have  the  picture  of  a  star  upon  its 
forehead.  It  shall  be  a  wonderful  pony,  for  it  shall  not  be  a  real  pony, 
but  myself.  Go  home  to  your  people  and  dance,  and  at  once  start  upon 
the  war-path.  Carry  the  things  which  I  have  given  you.  I  will  make 
my  home  upon  these  hills  and  when  you  have  returned  come  to  this  place. " 
The  boy  went  home,  ard  in  the  evening  he  called  several  young  men 
to  sit  with  him  in  the  lodge  and  smoke.  While  they  were  smoking  he 
said:  "Brothers,  I  want  you  to  go  on  the  war-path  with  me.  How 
many  of  you  will  go  with  me?"  All  the  young  men  who  were  in  the 
lodge  said  that  they  would  go.  The  war  party  started  out  before  morn- 
ing, and  were  far  away  from  the  village  when  it  became  daylight.  For 
several  days  they  went  south,  and  at  last  they  came  upon  a  village  of  the 
enemy.  The  young  man  selected  several  scouts  to  go  into  the  village 
and  to  drive  the  ponies  from  the  village  when  they  found  them.  The 
ponies  were  brought,  but  the  young  man  did  not  see  one  with  a  star  on 
its  forehead,  and  so  he  was  dissatisfied  and  started  into  the  village  himself. 
On  the  way  he  saw  a  pony  tied  close  to  the  entrance  of  a  tipi.  When  he 
saw  the  pony  and  saw  the  white  spot  upon  its  forehead  he  knew  that 
it  was  the  pony  that  the  Dog  had  promised  him.  Instead  of  reaching 
down  to  untie  him  from  the  post,  he  took  his  knife  out  from  the  scabbard, 
cut  the  rope,  and  led  the  pony  out  from  the  camp.  When  he  had  reached 
the  place  where  the  young  men  were,  they  traveled  towards  home.  For 
several  days  and  nights  they  traveled  without  sleep.  At  last  they 
stopped  to  rest  and  sleep.'  When  they  had  had  a  little  rest  they  began 
to  journey  again  and  they  went  into  their  village.  The  boy  gave  all  the 
ponies  that  he  had  away  except  the  one  with  the  white  spot.  When 
the  boy  had  eaten  and  rested  a  little,  he  jumped  upon  his  pony  and  went 
to  the  place  where  the  Dog  was.  The  boy  found  the  Dog  at  the  place 
where  he  had  left  him.  The  Dog  told  the  boy  that  he  had  the  pony 
which  he  had  promised  him,  and  said:  "In  a  few  days  your  people  will 
have  a  medicine  ceremony,  and  you  must  go  into  the  lodge  and  dance 
with  them."  The  boy  returned  to  the  village,  and  while  he  was  there 
it  was  noised  through  the  village  that  the  people  were  going  to  have  the 
Medicine-Men's  ceremony.  The  boy  went  into  the  lodge  and  asked 
that  he  be  permitted  to  dance.  The  medicine-men  gave  him  a  seat,  and 
when  his  turn  came  to  dance,  he  sang  a  song  which  the  people  had  never 
heard  before.  The  boy  was  painted  with  red  ointment  all  over  his 


404  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

body.  There  were  many  downy  feathers  upon  his  head,  so  that  when 
he  danced  it  seemed  to  the  people  as  if  sparks  of  fire  were  all  around 
him.  The  people  gave  him  many  presents. 

After  the  dance  the  people  talked  about  the  boy  and  seme  believed 
that  he  was  a  medicine-man.  In  a  little  while  a  man  took  sick,  and  his 
relatives  went  for  the  boy  to  doctor  the  sick  man.  The  young  man 
selected  three  men  to  go  with  him  who  were  to  help  him  sing.  When 
the  boy  began  to  sing  Dog  songs,  he  jumped  up  and  ran,  and  he  spat  out 
a  small  dog  hide  close  to  the  sick  man.  When  the  dog  hide  was  spread 
open  there  was  a  picture  of  the  moon  upon  it.  The  boy  spread  the  dog 
hide  upon  the  patient  and  the  patient  went  to  sleep  at  once,  and  in  a 
few  days  he  awoke  a  well  man.  The  boy  went  to  his  home,  and  the 
relatives  of  the  patient  sent  him  many  presents  for  his  pay.  The  boy 
afterwards  started  what  is  known  as  the  Young-Dog  dance  among  the 
Pawnee. 

107.  BURNT-BELLY  AND  THE  DOG.1 

Many  years  ago  the  poorer  class  of  the  Pawnee  lived  in  grass-lodges. 
The  well-to-do  people  lived  in  earth-lodges.  Among  the  Pawnee  at  this 
time  was  an  old  woman  who  lived  on  the  outskirts  of  the  village  with  her 
grandson.  He  sat  by  the  fireplace  all  day  long  and  so  his  belly  began 
to  turn  black  from  burning.  In  those  times  a  poor  boy  had  only  half 
of  a  buffalo  robe  with  which  to  cover  his  body.  When  he  sat  by  the  fire 
he  placed  his  belly  towards  the  fire  with  his  robe  upon  his  back.  One 
day  the  old  woman  and  the  boy  went  through  the  village  picking  up 
kernels  of  corn  which  people  had  dropped.  They  found  a  little  Dog  out- 
side of  an  earth-lodge.  This  Dog  was  brown  in  color.  The  boy  picked 
up  the  Dog  and  carried  it  home.  Whenever  the  grandmother  made  mush 
the  boy  would  divide  with  the  Dog.  The  Dog  grew  up  very  fast,  so  that 
it  was  now  quite  large.  At  night  the  Dog  would  disappear.  When  it 
returned  it  would  bring  dried  meat  mixed  with  fat.  The  old  woman  did 
not  like  the  Dog  much  at  first,  but  when  it  began  to  steal  meat  for  them 
she  liked  it  and  made  it  lie  with  the  boy. 

One  time  when  the  boy  and  the  Dog  went  to  bed,  the  boy  saw  the 
Dog  in  his  dream.  The  Dog  told  the  boy  that  it  was  now  time  for  him 
to  go  upon  the  war-path ;  that  he  must  listen  to  him ;  that  he  would  pro- 
tect him  and  keep  him  from  being  caught.  Several  days  after  this 
dream  the  boy  decided  that  he  would  go.  He  told  his  grandmother  to 
make  him  a  pair  of  moccasins.  When  the  moccasins  were  finished  he 

'Told  by  Leading-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  The  moral  of  the  story  is  the  same  as  that 
of  the  preceding  tale. 


BURNT-BELLY  AND  THE  DOG.  40$ 

started  with  his  Dog  and  went  south  into  the  country  of  the  enemy.  For 
several  days  they  traveled  and  finally  came  to  a  village.  The  Dog  entered 
the  village  and  brought  out  a  bay  pony.  The  pony  was  very  thin,  and 
had  big  lumps  on  its  heels.  The  Dog  told  the  boy  to  get  on  and  to  return 
home.  The  boy  got  on  the  pony  and  returned  home.  When  they  reached 
home  with  the  pony  the  grandmother  was  very  proud.  Soon  after  this 
the  people  went  to  hunt. 

At  this  time  the  son  of  a  chief  began  to  take  interest  in  the  boy.  When 
the  chief's  son  came  to  the  poor  boy's  grass-lodge  he  rode  a  spotted 
pony  with  a  fine  saddle,  and  he  himself  was  well  dressed.  Burnt-Belly 
did  not  have  any  saddle  on  his  old  pony  and  did  not  have  any  clothing. 
Both  of  the  boys  were  good  riders  and  they  would  get  on  their  ponies  and 
ride  before  the  people.  When  they  camped  the  boy  would  go  to  the 
chief 's  tipi.  While  they  were  there,  if  the  Dog  came,  the  chief 's  son  told 
the  people  not  to  scold  it. 

One  time  while  these  boys  were  together,  Burnt-Belly  asked  the 
chief 's  boy  to  give  him  four  or  five  spiked  arrows  and  a  bow.  He  said 
he  wanted  to  go  with  the  people  when  they  should  surround  the  buffalo. 
The  chief's  boy  got  the  arrows  for  Burnt-Belly.  When  the  time  came 
for  the  people  to  surround  the  buffalo,  Burnt-Belly  was  there  with  the 
chief's  son.  The  people  made  fun  of  Burnt-Belly,  but  he  never  said  a 
word.  When  the  people  surrounded  the  buffalo,  and  word  was  given  for 
them  to  run,  Burnt-Belly  got  among  the  buffalo  before  anyone  else.  He 
shot  and  killed  one.  He  shot  and  killed  another  and  then  he  started 
back.  The  chief's  son  came  to  him.  He  had  killed  nothing.  Burnt- 
Belly  gave  the  chief's  son  one  of  his  own  buffalo.  Burnt-Belly  took  the 
meat  to  his  grandmother  and  she  was  thankful.  The  chief's  boy  came 
to  his  grass-lodge  and  there  they  slept  together. 

Again  the  Dog  came  to  the  boy  in  his  dream  and  said,  ' '  You  must  go 
on  the  war-path  again. "  This  time  the  chief's  boy  followed  him.  They 
were  gone  only  a  few  days  when  they  found  the  camp  of  an  enemy. 
This  time  they  each  took  two  ponies  and  went  home.  After  they 
reached  home  the  boy  was  told  by  the  Dog  that  he  had  enough  ponies 
and  that  it  was  now  time  for  him  to  kill  an  enemy.  The  Dog  gave  red 
paint  to  the  boy ;  also  owl  feathers.  The  Dog  also  gave  a  bone  whistle 
to  the  boy.  The  Dog  told  the  boy  that  the  Sun  was  his  father,  and  that 
the  red  paint  was  to  show  that  the  Sun  was  protecting  him ;  that  the 
Dogs  had  a  father  in  the  heavens  who  sat  near  Tirawa;  that  he  was  one 
of  the  children.  The  young  man  got  ready  to  go  on  the  war-path.  The 
chief's  son  came  and  said,  "We  will  go  together."  They  went  into  the 
country  of  the  enemy  and  were  gone  for  several  days. 


406  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

When  they  found  the  village  of  the  enemy,  they  went  in  at  night  and 
killed  one  or  two  people  and  took  their  scalps.  They  returned  home. 
The  people  then  discovered  that  it  was  Burnt-Belly  who  was  taking  the 
son  of  the  chief  away  on  the  war-path.  On  the  hunt  Burnt-Belly  killed 
many  buffalo,  so  that  now  his  grandmother  had  a  fine  tipi.  The  Dog 
said  to  the  boy,  ' '  Four  times  you  shall  come  with  scalps  into  the  village 
and  then  you  must  get  a  woman  for  a  wife. "  The  boy  went  upon  the 
war-path  four  times,  and  each  time  he  returned  with  a  scalp.  At  this 
time  he  was  recognized  throughout  the  village  as  a  great  warrior.  He 
went  and  asked  for  a  girl  and  the  girl  was  given  to  him.  He  married  her. 
The  young  man  was  sorry  that  he  had  married,  for  the  chief 's  son  wanted 
him  to  stay  single  so  that  he  could  follow  him  on  the  war-path. 

Some  of  the  young  men  kept  after  him  and  asked  him  to  go  on  the 
war-path.  At  last  he  consented.  When  he  consented  to  go  on  the  war- 
path, the  Dog  came  to  him  and  said:  "Go.  I  shall  watch  over  your 
wife  while  you  are  away. "  The  young  man  went.  The  party  captured 
many  ponies  and  killed  one  or  two  of  the  enemy.  They  returned  to 
their  village.  On  the  way  the  Dog  met  them,  wagging  his  tail.  The 
man  knew  that  all  was  right;  that  his  wife  had  behaved  herself  well. 

Many  times  the  young  man  went  as  a  leader  of  the  warriors.  Once 
while  the  young  man  was  on  the  war-path  another  young  man  decided 
that  he  would  visit  the  young  man 's  wife.  He  went  into  the  lodge  where 
the  girl  was.  The  Dog  was  on  the  bed.  When  the  young  man  came 
close  to  the  bed  the  Dog  growled.  The  woman  began  to  kick  the  Dog. 
When  the  man  got  into  the  bed  he  kicked  the  Dog  out.  The  Dog  went 
out  of  the  lodge  and  went  to  the  lodge  of  the  grandmother.  When  the 
young  man  came  back  with  the  victorious  party  the  Dog  did  not  come 
to  meet  him.  The  boy  was  hurt,  for  he  knew  that  something  was  wrong. 
He  went  to  where  the  Dog  was,  and  the  Dog  came  to  him.  Then  the 
young  man  took  the  Dog  out  of  the  lodge,  went  up  on  the  top  of  a  high 
hill, and  there  they  sat  down.  The  people  in  the  village  saw  the  young 
man  sitting  with  the  Dog.  Man  after  man  went  up  on  top  of  the  hill 
with  a  pipe  to  try  to  get  the  man  to  smoke ,  so  that  he  would  come  back 
into  the  village.1  The  boy  refused  to  smoke,  for  the  Dog  had  told  him 
all  that  had  happened.  Finally  the  chief's  son  came  with  his  pipe. 
Burnt-Belly  said:  "My  brother,  it  is  too  late.  I  can  not  go  down  with 
you.  Had  you  come  before  any  of  these  other  people,  I  could  have  gone 
down  with  you.  But,  my  brother,  I  shall  always  sit  upon  the  hill  with 
my  Dog.  When  you  are  upon  the  war-path,  come  up,  let  me  know  what 
you  want,  and  it  may  be  that  I  can  help  you.  See,  I  am  turning  into 

1 A  common  method  of  healing  a  breach  of  this  nature. 


BURNT-BELLY  AND  THE  DOG.  407 

stone. "  The  boy  and  the  dog  turned  into  stone  and  there  they  sat  upon 
the  hill.  The  people  believed  that  their  turning  into  red  stone  was  the 
origin  of  red  sandstone  in  the  country. 


108.  THE  EAGLE  AND  THE  SUN  DANCE.1 

Many  years  ago  when  the  people  had  their  village  upon  the  Platte 
River,  there  was  a  young  man  who  thought  that  he  was  poor.  He  began 
to  compare  himself  with  other  young  men  who  had  ponies,  buckskin 
leggings,  beaded  moccasins,  and  ear-bobs  in  their  ears.  He  had  none 
of  these  things,  and  he  felt  so  sorry  for  himself  that  he  got  up  and  walked 
away  from  the  village  and  went  up  on  a  high  hill  and  there  began  to  cry. 
He  stood  there  for  several  days,  and  on  the  third  night  he  thought  he 
heard  drumming  at  a  distance,  but  he  was  not  sure.  The  fourth  night, 
however,  he  heard  the  drumming  very  plainly,  and  knew  that  it  came 
from  the  river.  He  started  towards  the  river,  but  as  he  approached 
the  drumming  ceased,  and  so  he  went  back  upon  the  hill.  He  began 
again  to  cry  and  again  he  heard  the  drumming  coming  from  the  river. 
The  boy  went  there  three  times,  and  each  time  the  sound  ceased  as  he 
approached,  but  when  he  went  the  fourth  time  not  only  did  he  hear  the 
drumming  but  also  whistling  and  something  flying  overhead.  He  looked 
up  and  saw  a  bald-headed  Eagle.  The  Eagle  spoke  to  the  boy  and  said: 
"Have  you  heard  the  drumming  and  the  whistling?"  and  the  boy 
said,  "Yes."  Then  the  Eagle  said:  "I  have  come  to  take  you  to  the 
drumming. " 

The  Eagle  flew  into  the  timber,  returned  and  flew  around  the  boy, 
and  then  went  back  into  the  timber.  The  boy  followed  him  to  the 
timber,  and  there  he  found  all  kinds  of  birds  sitting  in  a  circle,  and  he 
saw  two  big  Swans  in  the  center  beating  their  wings  and  making  the 
drumming  sound  that  he  had  heard.  The  Eagle  spoke  to  the  boy  and 
said:  "Now,  look  and  see  how  these  people  are  dancing.  I  give  you 
this  dance.  You  can  see  that  every  bird  is  whistling.  It  is  their  noise." 
Then  the  Eagle  again  said:  "When  you  dance  you  must  dance  for  four 
days  and  four  nights.  For  four  days  you  were  out  and  the  fourth  night 
you  found  this  dance.  Three  times  you  came  to  the  river,  and  you  never 
found  anything,  but  on  the  fourth  night  you  found  the  birds  dancing. 
When  you  are  dancing  you  must  not  eat,  neither  must  you  drink  any- 
thing. You  must  fast  when  you  are  dancing,  for  when  you  were  hunting 

1  Told  by  Cheyenne-Chief,  Skidi.  This  is  to  be  considered,  of  course,  as  only  a 
fragment  of  the  tale  of  the  origin  of  the  Sun  dance  among  the  Skidi.  The  ceremony 
itself  has  not  been  held  for  over  thirty  years. 


408  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

this  dance  you  ate  nothing,  neither  did  you  drink. "  Then  the  big  white 
Swans  in  the  center  spoke  and  said:  "My  son,  we  are  leaders  of  this  dance. 
When  you  go  home  our  spirits  will  go  with  you.  You  shall  from  this 
time  on  dream  of  this  dance  and  dream  of  all  that  you  are  to  do  and  then 
you  will  have  the  ceremony.  You  shall  always  give  this  dance  at  the 
time  when  the  Buffalo  bulls  get  upon  high  hills  and  stand  there,  for  it 
was  at  that  time  that  you  found  the  birds  dancing  in  the  timber. "  When 
the  Swans  had  finished,  the  Owls  circled  around  and  began  to  sing.  The 
man  learned  the  songs  which  were  sung  by  the  Owls,  and  then  he  was 
told  to  go  home  and  start  the  dance. 

When  the  young  man  started  the  dance  he  had  visions,  so  that  he 
knew  clearly  the  rites  which  he  was  to  perform.  After  the  first  dance 
the  boy  knew  the  ceremony  and  gave  many  Sun  dances  during  the  sum- 
mers. 

109.  THE  SKELETON-MAN  AND  THE  SUN  DANCE.1 

A  long  time  ago  a  man  and  his  wife  went  off  from  the  village  on  a 
hunt.  They  came  to  a  thickly  timbered  country,  and  there  made  a 
little  grass-house.  Every  day  the  man  would  go  hunting,  while  the  woman 
would  stay  in  the  house.  One  evening  the  man  came  home  and  brought 
meat  with  him.  They  sat  outside  of  the  grass-house  and  cooked  the 
meat  on  coals.  While  they  were  cooking  the  meat  they  heard  somebody 
coming  from  the  timber.  The  man  told  the  woman  to  go  into  their 
lodge,  and  the  woman  went  in.  After  a  while  the  man  entered  also  and 
they  lay  down.  The  man  took  his  bow  and  arrows  and  placed  them 
beside  him  and  put  his  knife  under  the  mat.  Soon  he  heard  a  noise  and 
so  he  reached  for  his  bow,  and  called,  "Who  are  you?"  As  he  spoke, 
the  being,  who  had  entered,  turned  into  a  skeleton  and  dropped  to  the 
ground  with  a  rattling  of  bones.  The  man  told  the  woman  to  get  up  and 
to  put  the  bones  into  a  robe  and  to  place  them  somewhere  in  the  lodge, 
but  the  woman  was  frightened  and  would  not  do  it.  Then  the  man 
gathered  the  bones  in  his  arm  and  placed  them  in  a  corner  of  the  lodge. 
As  he  lay  them  down  a  voice  whispered  to  him  and  said:  "  I  am 
Knee-Prints-upon-the-River-Banks. "  Then  the  man  began  to  cry. 

The  next  day  the  man  sent  his  wife  home,  for  she  was  frightened. 
When  she  reached  her  village  she  told  the  people  what  had  happened, 
and  they  made  fun  of  her.  The  people  said:  "You  should  have  remained 
with  your  husband. "  This  mysterious  being  called  to  the  man  as  soon 

1  Told  by  Big-Crow,  Skidi.  This  tale  is  also  a  fragment  of  the  Skidi  origin  of 
the  Sun  dance. 


THE  SKELETON-MAN  AND  THE  SUN  DANCE.  409 

as  his  wife  was  gone  and  said:  "I  come  to  smoke  with  you. "  The  man 
filled  his  pipe,  lighted  it ,  and  handed  it  to  the  mysterious  being  and  he 
heard  only  one  whiff,  and  then  the  mysterious  being  whispered  and  said: 
"Fill  the  pipe  again;  I  did  not  get  enough  smoke."  The  man  blew  his 
breath  into  the  pipe  and  there  was  nothing  in  it.  Then  this  mysterious 
being  spoke  and  said:  "I  control  all  the  animals  and  the  birds.  I  will 
now  give  you  a  dance  which  will  be  known  as  the  Whistle  dance.  If  you 
will  stay  here  I  will  teach  you  just  what  to  do."  The  man  remained 
with  this  mysterious  being  and  he  learned  the  ceremony  of  the  Sun  dance. 
This  ceremony  was  known  only  to  Pipe-Chief,  an  old  Skidi  priest, 
who  is  now  dead. 


110.  THE  WOMAN  WHO  WAS  BEWITCHED  BY  A  FOX.1 

A  long  time  ago,  when  the  Kitkehahki  lived  near  Nemaha,  Nebraska, 
something  wonderful  happened.  My  grandmother  did  not  see  it,  but 
her  grandmother  told  her.  One  day  some  women  went  out  to  gather 
wood.  While  they  were  gathering  dry  limbs,  one  of  the  young  girls 
strayed  away.  She  came  to  a  tree  that  had  been  broken  by  wind.  The 
hollow  trunk  of  the  tree  lay  upon  the  ground.  Some  mysterious  power 
prompted  her  to  look  into  the  hollow  log  and  there  she  saw  a  child.  The 
child  had  a  very  small  face  and  scarcely  any  hair,  and  its  arms  were  very 
thin  and  its  finger  nails  were  long.  The  child  looked  at  the  girl  and 
reached  out  its  long,  thin  arms  to  her.  The  girl  was  so  frightened  that 
she  did  not  know  what  to  do.  She  stood  up  and  looked  to  see  where  the 
other  women  were,  but  she  could  not  see  them.  She  looked  into  the 
hollow  tree  again  and  there  was  the  child  grinning  and  making  motions 
with  its  hand  as  if  calling  to  her.  The  girl  was  so  frightened  that  she 
could  not  run.  Her  scalp  seemed  to  draw  up  in  a  knot  upon  the  top  of 
her  head.  Again  she  looked,  and  the  child  was  still  there.  This  time 
the  girl  noticed  that  the  child  had  yellow  paint  all  over  its  face,  and 
black  paint  close  to  the  hair.  The  girl  ran  to  where  the  women  were 
gathering  wood.  She  told  them  that  she  wanted  them  to  go  and  see  the 
child.  The  women  went.  They  looked  into  the  hollow  tree,  but  no 
child  was  there.  The  girl  was  disappointed,  and  she  began  to  scream. 
The  scream  was  that  of  a  fox  and  the  women  saw  a  fox  running  from 
them.  Something  was  exerting  a  mysterious  influence  over  the  girl. 
She  wanted  to  run  to  the  fox,  and  she  screamed  and  yelled  like  a  fox. 

1  Told  by  Good-Food-in-Kettle,  Kitkehahki.  The  moral  of  this  story  is  similar 
to  that  of  No.  101,  except  that  in  this  case  women  are  warned  to  be  careful  of  the 
animals  they  encounter  while  away  from  home,  especially  in  the  timber. 


410  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

The  women  held  her.     The  wood  they  had  gathered  they  put  upon  their 
backs  and  went  home.     On  the  way  the  girl  became  very  wild. 

When  they  reached  home  her  uncle,  a  medicine-man,  was  sent  for. 
As  soon  as  he  entered  he  said  that  the  girl  must  have  seen  one  of  those 
wonderful  little  people.  "It  is  human;  it  has  wonderful  powers;  it  is 
not  a  fox,  "  said  he.  The  man  ordered  some  live  coals  to  be  placed  upon 
the  ground  where  the  girl  was  held  down.  He  untied  his  medicine 
bundle  and  put  some  herbs  upon  the  live  coals.  The  smoke  came  up 
and  the  women  placed  the  girl  over  the  smoke,  so  that  she  could  inhale 
it.  The  man  then  prepared  some  medicine,  which  was  given  to  the  girl. 
She  began  to  vomit,  and  she  threw  up  white  clay  mixed  with  fox  hair. 
Then  the  man  began  to  draw  upon  her  body  with  his  mouth.  In  this  way 
the  hair  was  taken  from  out  her  limbs,  arms,  legs,  and  body.  Smoke 
was  again  placed  before  the  girl,  and  she  began  to  get  better.  The  man 
then  told  the  people  that  if  there  were  any  more  hairs  left  in  her  body 
that  they  would  in  time  break  out.  That  is  what  is  called  undoing  the 
bad  medicine  from  animals.  When  the  woman  became  of  middle  age 
she  complained  of  a  pain  in  her  wrists.  There  was  a  breaking  out,  and 
when  the  white  clay  came  out  she  began  to  get  well.  She  lived  to  a  good 
old  age  and  had  many  children. 


111.  GHOST-MAN  WHO  BECAME  A  WHIRLWIND.1 

A  long  time  ago  there  was  a  man  who  lived  in  graveyards.  He 
would  never  stay  at  home.  One  time  he  came  into  the  village,  and 
while  walking  through  the  village  people  saw  whirlwinds  about  him. 
The  whirlwinds  came  up  by  him  and  disappeared.  People  said  that  the 
man  must  be  a  ghost.  He  once  heard  of  a  man  who  was  very  sick,  for  a 
ghost  or  whirlwind  had  surrounded  him  and  wanted  to  take  his  spirit 
away.  Ghost-Man  went  and  asked  that  he  might  attend  the  sick  man, 
and  he  was  given  permission.  Ghost-Man  sat  down  by  the  sick  man, 
picked  up  dust  and  threw  it  up  in  the  air.  This  formed  a  whirlwind 
which  enveloped  the  man  and  he  became  well.  Ghost-Man  went  home 
and  claimed  no  pay. 

Other  people  were  affected  by  the  same  sickness,  and  Ghost-Man 
went  and  made  them  well.  Once  a  man  was  taken  sick  because  he  had 
dreamed  of  dead  people.  Ghost-Man  went  to  him  and,  instead  of 

lTold  by  Big-Crow,  Kitkehahki.  Apart  from  the  fact  that  the  story  gives 
expression  to  a  belief  in  ghosts,  it  especially  teaches  that  people  should  be  extremely 
careful  when  seeking  the  services  of  a  medicine-man. 


GHOST-MAN  WHO  BECAME  A  WHIRLWIND.  411 

throwing  dust  in  the  air,  he  whirled  himself  around  and  turned  into  a 
whirlwind,  which  enveloped  the  sick  man  and  made  him  well.  Instead 
of  turning  back  into  a  man,  Ghost-Man  fell  down  to  the  ground  a  skeleton. 
The  people  were  scared  and  ran  out  of  the  lodge.  The  man  who  recov- 
ered stayed  in  the  lodge,  gathered  up  the  bones,  and  buried  them. 

Ghost-Man  made  a  mistake  when  he  turned  himself  into  a  whirlwind. 
This  is  why  we  call  whirlwinds  "ghosts"  or  "spirits." 


112.  THE  MAN  WHO  WENT  TO  SPIRIT-LAND.1 

A  young  man  lived  in  a  village  where  there  was  a  beautiful  girl.  He 
loved  the  girl,  but  he  could  not  win  her,  for  he  was  poor  and  unknown. 
At  last  he  determined  that  he  would  become  rich  and  famous  so  that  he 
could  marry  the  girl.  He  went  on  the  war-path  with  two  or  three  other 
young  men  and  they  captured  many  ponies,  which  they  drove  into  the 
village.  When  the  ponies  were  divided,  the  young  man  selected  a  little 
brown  pony,  which  proved  to  be  a  good  runner.  When  he  rode  the  pony 
he  was  able  to  surround  and  kill  buffalo.  Again  he  went  on  the  war- 
path with  several  other  young  men.  They  found  an  enemy,  killed  him, 
and  the  young  man  counted  coup.  They  then  went  back  home  and 
women  danced  in  honor  of  the  young  man 's  success.  The  young  man 
then  thought  that  he  might  win  the  girl.  He  asked  for  her  and  her  rela- 
tives allowed  him  to  marry  her.  In  a  few  days  the  young  girl  became 
sick  and  died.  She  was  buried,  and  the  young  man  stayed  around  the 
grave  and  cried. 

One  night  somebody  spoke  to  him  and  told  him  to  leave  the  grave, 
for  his  wife  was  dead  and  he  could  not  see  her.  The  young  man  paid 
no  attention  to  the  voice.  Every  night  the  mysterious  being  came  to 
him,  and  one  night  he  said:  "Do  you  want  to  see  your  wife?"  The  man 
said:  "Yes. "  The  mysterious  being  told  the  man  that  he  could  take  him 
where  his  wife  was  if  he  would  be  brave  and  not  get  scared  at  the  things 
that  would  happen.  The  young  man  promised  to  be  brave.  The  mys- 
terious being  said:  "I  will  take  you,  but  you  must  travel  alone.  You 
must  travel  toward  the  south.  You  will  not  see  me,  but  I  will  now  and 
then  speak  to  you  to  let  you  know  that  I  am  with  you. "  The  young 
man  started  and  traveled  for  many  days.  Several  times  he  thought 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  is  said  to  be  related  not  only  to  children 
but  to  adults.  It  illustrates  the  belief  in  a  future  world  and  explains  the  origin 
of  the  Whistle  dance  which  is  still  retained  by  the  Pawnee.  It  especially  illustrates 
the  bad  effect  of  the  wrongdoing  of  the  young  man  who,  after  he  had  recovered  his 
wife  from  Spirit-Land,  did  not  take  care  of  her  but  paid  attention  to  another  woman. 


412  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

that  he  had  been  fooled  and  was  about  to  return,  when  the  mysterious 
being  spoke  to  him  and  said:  "Keep  up  your  courage;  keep  right  on." 
The  young  man  went  on. 

One  dark  night  he  thought  that  the  ghosts  were  upon  him  and  that 
they  were  in  his  way,  but  he  kept  on  until  he  saw  a  bright  tipi.  When 
he  came  close  to  the  tipi,  somebody  inside  spoke  and  said:  "You  must 
not  come  into  this  tipi. "  But  the  young  man  went  in  and  found  an  old 
woman  sitting  on  the  south  side  of  the  tipi,  and  he  saw  wild  sage  spread 
all  around.  The  woman  asked  the  young  man  what  he  was  there  for. 
He  said:  "My  wife  died  some  time  ago;  I  miss  her,  and  I  am  hunting  for 
her. ' '  The  woman  said: ' '  The  journey  is  hard,  but  I  will  let  you  go.  From 
here  to  Spirit-Land  all  is  darkness.  You  will  come  to  a  stream  of  water 
that  is  black,  and  across  this  stream  of  water  is  a  log.  If  you  can  cross 
over  this  log  you  can  enter  Spirit-Land.  If  you  fail  to  cross  it  you  will 
die.  I  will  now  give  you  these  mud  balls  that  you  must  carry.  When 
you  enter  into  Spirit-Land  the  spirits  will  be  dancing,  and  among  them 
will  be  your  wife.  You  must  sit  down  and  watch  the  dance,  and  when- 
ever your  wife  passes,  you  must  throw  one  of  these  mud  balls  at  her. 
The  fourth  ball  with  which  you  hit  her  will  remind  her  of  her  people  still 
living,  and  they  will  remind  her  of  you.  She  will  then  know  you  are 
there  and  will  come  to  you.  When  she  comes  to  you,  go  to  the  mud 
balls  and  pick  them  up,  for  by  means  of  them  you  will  return  to  your 
own  country. "  The  woman  told  the  young  man  to  start,  and  that  on 
his  way  back  he  must  visit  her,  for  she  was  going  to  give  him  a  certain 
dance. 

When  the  young  man  left  the  tipi  he  went  on  until  he  came  to  the 
log  across  the  black  stream.  When  he  stepped  on  the  log  and  found 
it  was  unsafe,  somebody  spoke  to  him  and  said:  "Keep  your  courage." 
He  walked  until  he  came  to  the  end  of  the  log,  then  he  jumped  off.  He 
went  on  until  he  came  to  the  village.  There  all  was  light.  On  the  south 
side  of  the  village  men  and  women  were  dancing  around  in  a  circle. 
Among  the  dancers  was  his  wife.  When  she  came  around  where  he  was 
sitting,  he  threw  one  of  the  mud  balls  at  her  and  hit  her.  She  again  came 
around  and  he  hit  her  again.  Again  she  came  around  and  again  he  hit 
her.  The  fourth  time  she  came  around,  and  he  hit  her  again.  She  looked 
at  him  and  came  to  him  and  wanted  to  know  what  he  was  doing.  She 
said:  "  It  is  sad,  but  I  can  not  return  with  you.  "  But  the  man  begged  and 
said:  "You  must  go  with  me. "  She  told  him  to  wait,  for  she  wanted  to 
go  to  the  village  and  gather  some  of  her  things.  She  came  back  and 
stayed  with  him  for  some  time.  Finally  she  made  up  her  mind  to  go 


THE    MAN    WHO    WENT  TO   SPIRIT-LAND.  413 

with  him.  They  went  back  and  all  was  light.  They  crossed  upon  the 
log  together.  They  went  on  until  they  came  to  the  old  woman's  tipi. 
The  old  woman  then  gave  them  something  to  eat  and  kept  them  there 
for  some  time.  She  taught  the  young  man  a  certain  ceremony  known 
as  the  Elk  dance.  She  gave  him  a  whistle  and  some  red  beans  and 
told  him  that  when  he  returned  to  his  people  he  must  give  them 
the  red  beans  to  eat,  so  that  they  would  receive  power  to  communicate 
with  the  dead  spirits.  She  then  told  the  young  man  to  take  the  four 
balls  with  him  on  the  journey  home,  and  whenever  they  became  hungry 
to  throw  one  of  these  balls  away  and  it  would  turn  into  a  buffalo.  ' '  Then, " 
she  said,  "you  must  cut  up  the  buffalo  and  jerk  the  meat  and  dry  it,  so 
that  you  can  carry  it  with  you.  When  the  meat  gives  out  you  must 
throw  the  next  mud  ball  and  it  will  turn  into  a  buffalo  and  you  must  kill 
it.  Cut  up  the  meat  and  dry  it  and  carry  it  with  you.  When  you  have 
used  all  of  the  meat,  throw  the  third  ball,  and  when  you  have  used  the 
meat  from  the  third  ball  throw  the  fourth  ball."  They  started  on 
their  journey  and  did  as  the  old  woman  told  them  to  do.  With  them 
the  mysterious  being  traveled,  as  he  had  promised  the  young  man  that 
he  would.  When  they  had  thrown  the  last  ball  and  killed  the  last 
buffalo,  the  mysterious  being  said:  "Now  I  must  leave  you.  I  took 
you  to  the  Spirit-Land,  and  you  have  your  wife  and  also  the  ceremony. 
I  am  the  Wind.  Your  village  is  now  but  a  short  distance  away. "  Then 
the  young  man  and  the  young  woman  went  on  and  they  finally  reached 
home. 

The  man  and  his  ghost-wife  lived  happily  for  some  time,  but  when 
the  young  man  started  up  the  Elk  dance  the  women  liked  it  so  much 
that  they  came  to  him  and  wanted  him  to  marry  them.  The  ghost-wife 
had  told  the  man  that  she  did  not  want  him  to  have  anything  to  do  with 
other  women,  and  when  he  disobeyed  her  she  became  sick  and  died  again, 
and  this  time  she  died  for  good.  The  man  cried  at  her  grave  as  he  had 
done  before,  and  the  Wind  came  to  him  and  told  him  that  there  was  no 
use  of  his  crying;  that  the  woman  had  come  back  to  him  and  that  he  had 
not  treated  her  right.  The  young  man  went  into  the  village  and  taught 
some  friends  his  ceremony,  and  after  he  knew  that  his  ceremony  was 
known,  he  wandered  off  and  died. 


113.  THE  SPIRIT  WIFE  AND  THE  WHISTLE  DANCE. 

(See  Abstracts.) 
[Told  by  White-Horse.     This  tale  is  the  Pitahauirat  variant  of  No.  112.] 


414  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

114.  HANDSOME-BOY.1 

Many  years  ago,  while  the  people  had  their  villages  upon  the  plains, 
there  was  born  a  male  child  who  was  called  Handsome-Boy.  His  par- 
ents were  very  careful  with  him,  and  kept  him  hidden  most  of  the  time 
in  an  enclosed  place  upon  the  bed  in  their  earth-lodge.  They  were  very 
proud  of  their  son  and  always  kept  him  clean  and  clothed  him  in  the 
best  clothing  that  could  be  found  in  the  village.  Once  in  a  while  the 
boy  would  be  allowed  to  go  out  and  play  with  the  children.  After  a 
while  he  grew  up  to  be  a  handsome  young  man.  His  father  was  very 
careful  not  to  talk  with  him  about  the  war  parties  that  went  out,  and 
not  to  let  him  attend  the  dances  given  to  the  victorious  warriors  when 
they  returned  with  ponies  and  scalps,  for  fear  that  he  might  want  to  go 
on  the  war-path.  He  was  all  the  time  closely  guarded,  but  whenever 
he  went  out  he  overheard  people  talking  about  the  war  parties. 

One  night  after  most  of  the  young  men  in  the  village  had  gone  on  the 
war-path  he  did  not  sleep,  but  lay  awake  thinking  of  the  other  young  men 
who  had  gone  on  the  war-path,  and  wondering  why  his  parents  would  not 
allow  him  to  go.  Some  time  after  midnight  he  heard  a  woman  near 
his  bed.  The  boy  asked  the  woman  what  she  wanted,  and  the  woman 
said:  "You  ought  to  know  why  I  am  here. "  The  boy  said:  "  I  know  not 
what  you  mean."  The  woman  kept  on  telling  him  that  he  knew  why 
she  was  there.  At  last  the  woman  spoke  plainly  and  said:  "I  came  to 
lie  with  you. "  The  boy  said:  "No,  you  must  go  to  your  home;  I  do  not 
care  to  lie  with  you. "  The  woman  jumped  on  the  young  man,  and  the 
young  man  became  angry  and  struck  her  and  kicked  her  so  that  she 
fell  from  his  bed.  The  woman  became  mad  and  said:  "Young  man, 
I  came  to  lie  with  you  and  you  will  not  lie  with  me.  You  are  not  a  great 
warrior  that  women  should  come  and  try  to  be  with  you.  You  are  only 
a  boy  whose  name  is  Handsome-Boy.  You  have  won  no  great  name 
by  your  deeds.  The  young  men  of  the  village  are  now  making  the  earth 
ring  with  their  shouts  as  they  start  forth  on  the  war-path,  and  here  you 
are  lying  asleep.  I  do  not  care  if  you  do  not  wish  me  to  lie  with  you. 
I  hope  that  the  women  of  the  tribe  will  have  nothing  to  do  with  you  what- 
ever, for  you  do  not  go  on  the  war-path,  neither  do  you  know  how  to  kill 
the  buffalo.  You  stay  inside  of  the  lodge  day  after  day  and  night  after 
night."  The  woman  went  out  from  the  lodge. 

The  boy  lay  there  and  thought:  "This  woman  has  told  the  truth. 
I  may  be  handsome,  but  I  do  not  gain  anything  by  lying  around  here 
and  permitting  my  parents  to  pet  me.  To-night  I  must  be  a  man  and  go 

•  Told  by  Little-Chief,  Pitahauirat. 


HANDSOME-BOY.  415 

forth  through  this  country  to  the  camps  of  the  enemy  and  make  for  my- 
self a  name. "  He  got  up  from  his  bed,  put  on  his  leggings  and  clothing, 
took  his  quiver  with  bow  and  arrows,  and  went  out  to  catch  his  ponies. 
One  was  a  bald-faced  bay  horse;  the  other  was  a  mouse-colored  horse. 
He  got  upon  the  back  of  one  of  the  horses  and  led  the  other  one  away. 
He  traveled  for  many  days  over  the  plains.  At  last  he  stopped  to  rest 
and  began  to  make  camp,  when  he  found  out  that  he  had  forgotten  to 
bring  anything  to  make  fire  with.  He  killed  game,  but  ate  only  kidneys 
and  some  other  things  that  he  could  eat  raw.  He  thought  that  he  was 
going  to  die  of  hunger. 

One  night  he  lay  down  and  he  had  a  dream,  in  which  he  saw  a  man 
standing  near  him ,  who  had  on  a  fine  pair  of  leggings  that  were  fringed 
with  human  scalps  and  trimmed  with  eagle  feathers,  and  he  had  the 
bear  claws  about  his  neck.  The  man  spoke  to  the  boy  and  said:  "It 
is  now  time  that  you  know  who  I  am.  I  stand  between  the  people  and 
the  spirits.  From  this  time  on  I  will  take  charge  of  you  and  I  will  make 
a  great  man  of  you.  I  want  you  to  go  towards  the  southwest  until  you 
come  to  a  high  hill.  I  have  placed  something  for  you  upon  that  hill. " 

The  next  morning  the  boy  mounted  one  of  his  ponies,  and  led  the 
other  pony  to  the  high  hill.  He  sat  down  upon  the  hill  and  there  he 
saw  human  beings  coming  up  from  a  stream  of  water.  These  beings 
looked  like  eagles,  but  they  walked  around  like  men.  The  boy  thought 
to  himself:  "That  man  whom  I  saw  in  my  dream  must  have  meant 
these  people.  I  will  go  to  them  and  see  what  they  are. "  He  put  his 
hands  upon  the  ground  to  support  himself  in  rising.  As  he  did  so  he 
touched  something,  and  he  picked  the  thing  up  and  looked  at  it  and  he 
found  that  it  was  a  flint  knife.  He  took  it,  for  he  did  not  have  a  knife 
about  him  and  he  knew  that  it  was  what  the  man  had  promised  him  in 
his  dream.  He  put  it  in  his  belt,  mounted  his  pony ,  and  went  towards  the 
water.  Before  he  arrived  at  the  water  he  saw  a  drove  of  buffalo.  The 
boy  killed  a  buffalo  and  with  his  knife  skinned  it.  He  made  camp  and 
remained  at  that  place  for  several  days  while  drying  meat,  so  that  he 
would  have  meat  to  eat  when  on  his  other  journeys.  While  there  he 
again  saw  the  mysterious  being  in  his  sleep.  The  being  told  him  to  go 
to  a  certain  place,  and  there  upon  another  hill  he  would  see  two  sticks 
that  he  must  take  and  rub  together  and  fire  would  come  from  them. 

The  next  day  the  young  man  traveled  and  traveled  until  towards  even- 
ing he  arrived  at  the  place.  As  he  neared  the  top  of  the  hill  he  thought 
that  he  saw  fire-flies  go  from  one  weed  to  another,  but  soon  he  saw  that 
they  were  sparks  of  fire.  When  he  came  to  the  place  the  boy  found  a 
weed  in  the  center  of  a  bunch  of  other  weeds.  This  he  took  and  also 


4l6  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

another  of  the  same  kind.  Then  he  placed  one  stick  across  his  flint 
knife  and  another  one  on  top  of  it,  and  began  to  rub.  The  place  was 
sandy  and  he  picked  up  sand  and  threw  into  the  hole  where  he  was  rubbing. 
He  continued  to  rub,  and  after  a  while  fire  sparks  began  to  drop  out. 
A  little  later  he  picked  up  some  dried  grass  and  placed  it  near  the  place 
where  the  sparks  were  falling.  He  kept  on  working  until  the  grass 
blazed  up.  Then  he  placed  dry  limbs  upon  the  burning  grass  and  soon 
he  had  a  fire.  He  went  out  and  killed  game  and  brought  the  meat  to 
the  fire  and  roasted  some  of  it,  and  ate  it.  He  was  thankful  for  the 
knife  and  the  fire  sticks.  He  placed  the  fire  sticks  in  his  quiver  and  went 
on.  He  came  to  a  village  of  Prairie  Dogs ,  and  when  he  was  lying  there  he 
dreamed  again  and  saw  this  mysterious  being  again,  who  said:  "You 
must  go  and  kill  several  buffalo  and  you  must  remain  here  at  this  place 
until  I  tell  you  when  to  go  away. " 

The  young  man  awoke.  It  was  then  daylight  and  he  went  and 
mounted  one  of  his  horses  and  rode  to  where  he  saw  a  drove  of  buffalo. 
He  rode  among  them  and  killed  one  buffalo  with  his  bow  and  arrows. 
He  took  the  meat  to  where  he  had  his  things,  threw  it  off  from  the  horse, 
and  began  to  jerk  it.  He  gathered  a  lot  of  wood  and  piled  it  up  near  the 
meat.  Then  he  took  his  fire  sticks  again  and  made  fire.  When  he  had 
made  the  fire  he  roasted  the  meat  and  ate  it.  After  he  had  eaten  he 
jerked  the  rest  of  the  meat  and  placed  it  out  in  the  sun  to  dry.  There 
he  remained  for  a  number  of  days. 

One  night  he  lay  down  and  went  to  sleep,  and  while  he  was  asleep  he 
heard  many  people  dancing  and  singing,  and  he  could  hear  the  people 
shouting  and  saying:  "Handsome-Boy  has  killed  an  enemy!  Hand- 
some-Boy has  scalped  an  enemy!"  When  he  awoke  it  was  dark  and 
silent  all  around  him.  He  lay  down  again  and  had  another  dream,  and 
he  saw  the  mysterious  being  again.  The  being  said:  "My  son,  to-day 
you  are  to  find  an  enemy.  You  are  to  fight  with  him.  You  are  to  over- 
power him  and  kill  him.  You  must  take  his  scalp,  and  dry  it  and  keep  it, 
for  some  time  you  will  want  it  to  hang  upon  your  leggings. "  After  this 
the  boy  woke  up  and  he  looked  around  and  it  was  still  in  the  night.  He 
lay  down  again  and  went  to  sleep.  He  heard  singing  and  dancing,  but  the 
singing  was  close  to  where  he  was  and  the  people  were  shouting:  "Hand- 
some-Boy has  killed  the  enemy  and  has  taken  the  scalp."  They  con- 
tinued to  dance  and  the  boy  raised  up,  looked  in  the  direction  of  the  sing- 
ing, and  he  saw  the  people.  Then  he  arose  and  walked  over  to  where  the 
people  were.  As  he  came  near  he  saw  that  they  were  not  people,  but 
Prairie  Dogs  that  scattered  and  ran  into  their  holes  as  he  approached. 
The  boy  then  went  to  his  place  and  took  some  native  tobacco  from  his 


HANDSOME-BOY.  417 

quiver.  He  took  it  to  the  Prairie  Dogs '  holes  and  placed  it  there,  telling 
them  that  he  was  well  pleased  with  their  singing  and  dancing.  He  told 
them  that  he  only  wished  that  it  was  true  that  he  had  killed  an  enemy. 
Then  he  said:  "I  offer  this  tobacco  to  you  so  that  you  may  help  me  if  I 
should  meet  any  enemies. " 

After  placing  the  tobacco  in  the  Prairie  Dogs '  holes  he  returned  to 
his  place  and  he  went  to  where  his  ponies  were  tied.  He  mounted  one 
of  the  ponies  and  rode  it  towards  the  north  where  he  could  get  up  on  some 
high  hills  to  look  around  and  see  if  there  was  an  enemy.  As  he  climbed 
a  high  hill  the  sun  was  coming  up,  so  that  he  could  see  a  long  distance. 
As  he  looked  towards  the  north  he  saw  a  man  coming.  The  man  was 
on  horseback  and  was  all  alone.  He  then  rode  back  to  where  his  quiver 
and  blankets  were.  He  took  some  paint  that  he  had  dug  from  the 
earth  and  painted  the  horse  with  it ;  then  he  put  some  of  the  paint  upon 
himself.  He  took  his  bow  and  arrows  and  rode  out  to  where  the  man 
was  coming.  He  met  him,  and  the  man  shot  and  showed  fight.  They 
rode  up  to  each  other  and  began  to  shoot  arrows  at  one  another.  After 
a  while  Handsome-Boy  shot  an  arrow  into  the  man's  side.  He  fell  from 
his  horse  and  Handsome-Boy  jumped  off  of  his  horse,  took  out  his  knife, 
and  took  the  man's  scalp.  He  took  the  lariat  which  was  tied  around 
the  dead  man's  belt  and  led  the  pony  to  where  his  stopping-place  was. 
He  took  a  long  pole  and  tied  the  scalp  upon  the  pole  and  put  the  pole  in 
the  ground.  He  sat  there  all  day.  In  the  night  he  went  to  bed.  Just  a 
little  before  daylight  he  heard  dancing  again.  He  knew  that  the  dancers 
were  Prairie  Dogs  and  he  did  not  bother  them.  By  daylight  the  dancing 
ceased.  Then  the  boy  went  and  placed  some  more  tobacco  in  the 
Prairie  Dogs '  holes.  The  next  night  he  had  a  dream.  He  saw  the  mys- 
terious being,  and  it  said:  "In  about  three  more  days  you  are  to  see  hard 
times.  You  are  to  have  a  hard  time  with  some  enemies  who  are  coming 
this  way.  Do  not  be  afraid,  for  I  will  be  near  you  and  protect  you. " 

Three  days  afterwards  he  had  another  dream.  He  saw  the  mys- 
terious being,  who  told  him  that  he  must  start  out  towards  the  east.  He 
told  him  that  on  his  way  he  would  meet  the  enemies,  who  were  coming. 
The  boy  went  the  next  day  as  he  was  told,  leaving  two  of  his  ponies 
behind.  He  went  over  several  hills,  and  as  he  was  going  over  the  last  hill 
he  saw  some  men  coming  towards  him  on  horseback.  The  leader,  being 
on  a  fast  pony,  was  coming  a  long  distance  ahead  of  the  others.  The 
boy,  instead  of  running,  jumped  from  his  pony  and  took  his  bow  and 
arrows.  As  the  man  approached  he  saw  that  he  had  a  spear  and  intended 
to  spear  him.  The  boy  ran  towards  the  man,  and  as  he  drew  near,  the 
man's  horse  became  scared  and  threw  the  man  off.  The  boy  ran  and 


4l8  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINB  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

shot  him  three  or  four  times,  then  took  his  war  bonnet  off  and  tied  it 
upon  his  saddle.  The  other  men  then  came  up  and  surrounded  him. 
The  boy  did  not  watch  his  pony,  for  it  followed  him  wherever  he  went. 
He  killed  several  others,  and  finally  the  enemies  became  afraid  of  him 
and  left  him.  The  boy  went  to  work  and  took  scalps  from  the  other  men. 
These  he  took  to  his  camping-place. 

That  night  he  had  another  dream  and  saw  the  mysterious  being  again. 
The  being  told  the  boy  that  he  must  go  north,  and  there  upon  the  prairie 
he  would  see  a  pile  of  dirt  and  there  would  be  a  hole  there ;  he  must  go 
into  the  hole ;  that  although  it  would  be  a  long  journey  he  wanted  him  to 
go  through  this  cave;  that  he  would  learn  something  there.  When  the 
boy  awoke  he  knew  that  he  had  been  dreaming. 

He  took  the  enemy 's  horse  and  turned  it  loose.  His  own  ponies  he 
took  care  of,  saddled  one  of  them  and  led  the  other  one.  Then  he  went 
north  over  the  prairies.  When  he  came  to  a  prairie  country  he  saw  at  a 
distance  a  big  mound.  He  went  to  the  place  and  he  saw  that  the  dirt 
was  fresh  just  as  if  it  had  been  dug  recently.  He  saw  that  there  was  a 
hole  in  the  ground.  He  looked  down  into  it  and  saw  footprints  of  a 
little  child.  He  went  to  the  south  side  of  the  hole  and  there  he  tied  the 
ponies  and  placed  his  things  in  a  pile,  leaving  only  the  breech-cloth  which 
he  wore.  Then  he  went  to  the  hole  and  entered  it.  He  went  far  inside, 
and  he  saw  that  the  farther  he  went  the  larger  the  hole  became.  He 
still  saw  fresh  footprints  along  the  pathway  which  he  saw  in  this  hole. 
As  he  walked  through  this  passage-way  he  made  up  his  mind  that  he 
would  go  to  the  end  to  see  what  was  there.  He  began  to  run,  and  he 
ran  and  ran,  but  came  no  nearer  to  the  end.  Sometimes  it  circled  around 
and  then  again  it  was  straight.  He  crossed  several  streams  of  water 
which  were  running  through  this  passage-way.  After  a  while  he  heard 
whistling.  When  he  reached  the  place  from  where  he  heard  the  whis- 
tling he  saw  a  little  human  being  about  four  feet  high.  This  being  was 
daubed  all  over  with  mud,  and  had  an  eagle-bone  whistle  which  he 
whistled.  This  being  spoke  to  the  man  and  said:  "You  may  pass.  I 
will  talk  to  you  when  you  come  by  here. "  Then  the  boy  ran  on  and  on. 
All  at  once  he  saw  that  it  was  beginning  to  grow  light  at  the  other  end. 
When  he  got  out  at  the  other  end  he  looked  around  and  he  saw  his  ponies 
grazing  around  and  his  things  there.  He  saw  also  a  village  of  people 
and  several  men  came  to  meet  him.  These  men  said:  "Why,  this 
young  fellow  has  come,  but  he  is  not  dead.  He  has  come  to  us  in  body. " 
One  of  them  said:  "My  nephew,  you  have  come  and  you  shall  enter  our 
village,  for  we  know  that  you  are  wandering  over  the  country  and  the 
person  who  is  watching  over  you  brought  you  here. "  So  they  took  the 


HANDSOME-BOY.  419 

young  man  to  the  edge  of  the  village  and  stood  him  up.  Then  they 
brought  some  coals  and  placed  them  on  the  east  side  of  him,  on  the 
south  side,  on  the  west,  and  on  the  north.  Then  they  placed  wild  sage 
upon  the  hot  coals,  so  that  the  boy  stood  in  the  center  where  the  four 
smokes  went  up.  After  the  smoke  died  out  the  uncle  came  and  touched 
him  with  wild  sage.  Then  he  took  one  stem  of  wild  sage  and  took  the 
leaves  off  and  rolled  it  into  a  ball.  He  gave  it  to  him  and  said,  "Eat, 
and  swallow  the  spit,  for  you  must  not  spit  anything  out. "  Then  they 
took  the  boy  into  the  village  and  they  gave  him  many  things  to  eat. 
After  four  days  the  uncle  said:  "My  nephew,  it  is  now  time  for 
you  to  leave  us ,  for  you  are  not  dead,  but  the  being  who  has  been  watch- 
ing over  you  made  you  come  here.  Since  you  have  come  here  you  know 
now  that  the  people  who  die  come  t6  us  through  this  passage.  It  is 
very  good  for  a  young  man  to  die  in  battle.  Warriors  find  the  road  here 
easy  and  are  gladly  received,  but  the  people  who  die  upon  their  sick  bed 
have  a  long  and  hard  journey.  The  people  who  commit  suicide  never 
enter  this  entrance.  If  they  do  enter,  the  person  who  watches  drives 
them  back.  Now  you  must  go.  It  is  not  time  for  you  to  come  to  stay. " 
They  placed  the  hot  coals  again  as  at  first,  and  placed  the  wild  sage  upon 
the  hot  coals  and  the  young  man  stood  in  the  center  of  the  smoke.  After 
the  smoke  died  away  they  took  wild  sage  and  rubbed  it  upon  him  and 
told  him  to  go,  and  to  return  to  his  people,  as  it  was  not  right  for  him  to 
wander  over  the  country.  They  said  he  was  to  tell  them  of  the  journey 
he  had  taken.  The  boy  entered  the  passage-way  and  began  to  run  again. 
When  he  reached  the  little  being  who  was  in  the  way,  the  being  spoke  to 
him  and  said:  "You  will  stop  a  little  while."  He  saw  the  little  being 
there  as  he  had  seen  him  before,  but  when  he  closed  his  eyes  and  opened 
them  again  there  stood  the  man  concerning  whom  he  had  been  dreaming. 
He  had  on  the  buffalo  robe,  and  the  leggings  with  the  scalps  and  eagle 
feathers.  Then  he  knew  him.  The  man  said:  "Do  you  remember  me? " 
and  the  boy  said:  "I  do."  Then  he  said:  "I  am  the  one  who  has  been 
taking  care  of  you,  and  it  is  I  who  brought  you  here  so  that  you  could  go 
to  where  the  dead  people  are.  You  have  seen  them  with  your  own  eyes. 
You  have  seen  some  come  in  covered  with  blood.  They  were  the  people 
who  died  on  a  sick  bed.  I  am  the  Wind  that  blows.  I  shall  always  be 
with  you,  so  that  in  fighting  with  the  enemy  you  need  not  be  afraid,  for 
they  can  not  kill  you.  I  give  you  this  mud  and  I  give  you  this  downy 
feather  to  put  upon  your  head.  When  you  go  to  battle,  if  the  enemy 
shoots  the  downy  feather,  you  will  die.  I  give  you  also  this  whistle 
which  I  have  and  you  must  blow  it  in  the  battle.  You  must  go  out  of 
this  entrance,  and  as  soon  as  you  go  out  I  will  guide  you  to  your  people ; 


420  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

you  must  return  to  your  people."  The  boy  left  the  wonderful  being 
and  ran  with  the  things  which  were  given  to  him.  He  ran  for  a  long 
distance  until  he  finally  came  to  the  entrance  of  the  cave.  He  looked 
for  his  pony,  and  he  saw  it  there  again ;  also  his  other  things.  Then  he 
put  the  saddle  on  his  pony  and  started  north. 

Night  came  and  the  wonderful  being  came  to  him  in  a  dream  again 
and  told  him  to  continue  traveling  on  to  the  north.  The  next  day  he 
went  on  again  until  night  overtook  him.  He  lay  down  to  sleep  and  the 
being  came  to  him  again  in  a  dream  and  told  him  that  the  next  day  he 
must  cut  little  pieces  from  each  scalp;  that  he  must  string  these  pieces 
of  scalp  on  a  string  and  must  wear  them  on  his  breast ;  that  he  would  in 
time  have  scalps  all  over  his  leggings  and  all  over  his  breast,  and  then 
he  would  be  known  as  a  great  man.  The  next  day  the  boy  did  as  he  was 
told.  He  had  several  scalps,  and  he  cut  little  pieces  from  each  one  and 
put  them  on  a  string  and  wore  them  upon  his  breast.  He  continued 
his  journey,  and  when  he  lay  down  to  sleep  the  being  came  to  him  again 
and  said:  "My  son,  your  people  are  near  at  hand.  I  forgot  to  tell  you 
that  your  father  and  mother  have  adopted  another  boy  in  your  place, 
and  that  they  think  of  him  and  love  him  just  as  they  did  you.  They 
thought  that  you  were  dead.  When  you  reach  the  village  of  your  people 
and  see  your  parents  caressing  the  other  boy,  you  must  not  get  angry. 
You  have  been  to  the  Spirit-Land  and  you  must  not  show  resentment." 
The  boy  went  on,  and  the  next  day,  some  time  in  the  afternoon,  he  saw 
the  village.  Just  outside  he  met  a  boy,  and  the  boy  asked  him  who  he 
was,  where  he  was  from,  and  where  he  belonged.  He  said:  "I  belong  to 
your  people.  I  have  been  away.  I  am  a  warrior  and  I  am  just  return- 
ing. "  The  boy  then  said:  "Warrior,  let  us  go  into  the  village  and  go 
to  my  lodge.  My  father  and  mother  will  be  glad  to  have  you  with  us. 
After  you  have  been  with  us  a  few  days  you  may  hunt  your  people  and 
go  to  them."  The  young  warrior  was  glad. 

They  entered  the  village  and  went  to  the  boy's  house  and  he  was 
kindly  received  there.  They  gave  him  plenty  to  eat  and  a  good  place 
to  sleep.  The  people  who  had  seen  him  enter  with  his  scalps  and  war 
bonnet  came  and  asked  about  the  warrior  who  had  arrived  in  the  village, 
and  invited  him  to  the  Crazy-Dog  dance  to  dance  with  them.  Hand- 
some-Boy said  that  he  would  go  with  them.  While  there  he  saw  his 
father  and  mother,  but  he  thought:  "I  will  stay  here  to-night  and 
to-morrow  I  will  go  to  them.  I  will  give  all  these  scalps  to  my  father." 
The  next  morning  Handsome-Boy's  mother  came  and  invited  the  young 
man  to  bring  the  stranger  to  their  lodge,  for  they  wanted  to  see  him. 
Handsome-Boy  hastened  to  go  to  his  father  and  mother.  He  did  not 


HANDSOME-BOY.  431 

wait  for  the  other  boy,  although  he  was  invited  to  take  him.  When 
Handsome-Boy  entered  the  lodge  of  his  father  he  saw  the  boy  who  now 
took  his  place  lying  upon  the  bed.  Handsome-Boy  walked  towards  the 
bed  and  started  to  sit  down  at  the  foot  of  the  bed,  but  his  mother  and 
father  both  called  to  him  to  keep  away  from  the  bed,  and  told  him  to  sit 
down  at  another  place.  Handsome-Boy  moved  away  from  the  bed  and 
seated  himself  upon  the  ground.  His  feelings  were  hurt,  so  that  he  did 
not  let  himself  be  known  to  his  parents. 

After  the  sun  was  high  up,  two  men  went  through  the  village  inviting 
the  young  men  to  go  to  the  Young-Dog  ceremony.  When  the  two  men 
entered  the  lodge  of  the  boy,  they  invited  the  boy  and  the  stranger  to 
come  to  their  ceremony.  The  two  young  men  went  to  the  ceremony 
and  there  they  were  told  to  take  seats  on  the  south  side.  When  the 
ceremony  began  a  young  man  on  the  north  side  was  selected  to  act  as  a 
brave  for  the  dance,  and  Handsome-Boy  was  selected  on  the  south  side. 

Just  as  the  people  were  about  to  dance,  an  alarm  was  given  that  the 
enemy  was  about  to  attack  the  village.  When  they  went  out  to  fight 
the  enemy,  the  dancers  scattered  out  to  their  tipis  and  there  they  took 
their  ponies  and  their  weapons  and  went  out  to  fight.  Handsome-Boy 
mounted  his  pony  and  went  out  with  the  others.  Just  as  he  entered  the 
battle  he  met  the  young  man  who  invited  him  to  stay  with  him  at  his 
home.  Handsome-Boy  told  him  to  follow  him  wherever  he  went  and 
to  stop  fighting  whenever  he  stopped.  Handsome-Boy  went  into  the 
thickest  of  the  battle  with  the  other  boy  behind  him  and  made  a  dash 
through  the  line  of  the  enemy.  He  killed  one  enemy,  and  the  boy  who 
was  following  struck  the  enemy  and  counted  coup.  Then  they  went  back 
to  the  line.  An  enemy  was  killed  in  front  of  every  battle  line,  and 
Handsome-Boy  rode  up  and  struck  each  enemy  and  counted  coup.  The 
other  boy,  following  him,  also  struck  the  enemy.  Again  Handsome-Boy 
made  a  dash  at  the  line  of  the  enemy.  This  time  he  routed  them,  selected 
his  man,  killed  him,  jumped  off  his  horse  and  took  his  scalp  while  the 
boy  counted  coup  on  the  enemy.  Handsome-Boy  then  stopped,  but  the 
people  saw  him  and  recognized  him.  The  enemy  was  routed  and  over- 
powered, and  Handsome-Boy  and  his  companion  had  killed  many  and 
taken  many  scalps. 

That  evening  when  the  fight  was  over,  Handsome-Boy  went  to  his 
new  home ,  where  he  was  received  with  great  honors  by  the  people  who 
lived  in  the  lodge.  The  old  people  rejoiced  that  the  young  man  came 
to  their  lodge,  for  it  was  by  his  help  that  their  son  had  counted  coup. 
In  the  evening  the  women  came  and  asked  for  the  scalps.  Handsome- 
Boy  told  a  woman  to  untie  a  certain  bundle.  Upon  untying  the  bundle 


422  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

the  woman  took  therefrom  several  old  scalps.  She  gave  these  scalps  to  the 
women,  together  with  the  fresh  ones.  The  women  then  went  to  one  of 
the  lodges  and  there  they  started  a  dance  known  as  the  women 's  Scalp 
dance.  The  women  started  out  from  their  lodge  and  went  straight  to 
the  young  man's  lodge,  and  there  they  danced  and  shouted,  saying: 
"The  young  man  killed  the  enemy,  took  scalps,  and  counted  coup.' '  The 
shouting  was  the  same  as  he  had  heard  when  he  was  out  upon  the  plains 
near  the  Prairie  Dog  town.  The  young  man  gave  most  of  his  presents 
away  to  the  women  who  were  dancing.  The  women  danced  nearly  all 
night,  going  from  one  place  to  another. 

The  next  morning  when  the  sun  was  high  the  two  men  from  the 
Crazy-Dog  ceremony  came  again  and  invited  the  young  men  of  the  lodge 
to  go  to  the  ceremony.  The  two  young  men  went,  and  when  they  were 
seated  Handsome-Boy  was  again  selected  on  the  south  side,  to  act  as  a 
brave  and  to  ride  his  pony  around  the  dancers.  He  arose  and  left  the 
tipi  of  the  dancers  and  went  to  his  lodge.  He  caught  his  pony  and  painted 
it  with  red  paint  and  then  he  painted  himself.  He  put  the  string  of 
scalps  about  his  neck  and  put  the  war  bonnet  that  he  had  taken  from  the 
enemy  on  the  prairie  upon  his  head.  Then  he  went  to  where  the  people 
were  having  the  dance.  When  he  arrived  he  noticed  a  gray  pony  tied  in 
front  of  the  tipi  where  they  were  to  have  the  dance.  The  horse  was  tied 
to  a  spear  stuck  in  the  ground.  This  was  to  show  to  the  people  that  the 
person  who  stuck  the  spear  into  the  ground  would  give  the  pony  to  any 
warrior  who  would  kill  with  the  spear  several  enemies  in  the  next  battle. 
If  a  man  among  the  dancers  was  willing  to  undertake  to  kill  the  enemies 
and  thus  avenge  those  who  had  been  killed  in  battle,  he  was  to  dance  up  to 
the  spear  and  take  it  up  from  the  ground.  The  dancers  came  out  into  the 
open  air  and  went  through  the  village  dancing  from  one  tipi  to  another. 

While  they  were  dancing,  the  other  brave  who  was  selected  with 
Handsome-Boy  to  be  a  leader  rode  among  the  dancers  and  told  all  of  his 
deeds.  He  told  of  his  killing  one  of  two  enemies  and  scalping  him. 
When  the  young  brave  told  his  story  there  was  great  shouting.  Hand- 
some-Boy rode  among  the  dancers  and  began  to  tell  his  story.  He  told 
that  when  the  young  warriors  went  over  the  prairie  upon  the  war-path 
he  was  left  lying  upon  his  bed,  and  in  the  middle  of  the  night  a  woman 
had  come  to  his  bedside ;  that  he  had  driven  the  woman  away  and  then 
she  had  called  him  names  and  made  fun  of  him  because  he  was  not  a 
brave  warrior,  and  so  he  decided  at  once  to  start  upon  the  war-path. 
He  said:  "I  arose  from  my  bed  and  made  up  my  mind  that  I  would  go 
upon  the  war-path,  and  I  went  at  once.  I  was  upon  the  prairie  for  many 
years,  and  one  day  I  met  an  enemy.  I  fought  the  enemy,  killed  him ,  and 


HANDSOME-BOY.  423 

scalped  him.  His  scalp  is  upon  my  breast  at  this  time.  Another  time 
about  forty  or  fifty  warriors  attacked  me.  I  killed  their  chief,  took  his 
war  bonnet ,  and  also  scalped  him.  The  scalp  is  upon  my  breast.  I  have 
returned  to  my  own  people  and  now  I  am  here  with  you.  You  saw  me 
fighting  the  other  day  and  so  I  will  not  speak  of  that  myself.  I  am  the 
young  man  whom  you  called  Handsome-Boy. "  The  old  men  shouted  and 
sang  for  joy.  The  old  women  cried,  sang ,  and  danced  for  joy.  The  father 
and  mother  came.  They  tried  to  take  him  to  their  lodge,  but  he  mo- 
tioned them  away  and  said:  "Father  and  mother,  you  have  one  in  my 
place.  You  pushed  me  away  from  his  bed.  Keep  him.  He  is  as  good 
as  I  am.  I  have  a  new  father  and  mother  and  a  brother.  I  will  make 
my  home  with  them. " 

After  the  dance  was  over  Handsome-Boy  and  his  brother  went  to 
the  lodge  of  his  father  and  said:  "Father,  I  have  come  for  my  ponies." 
The  father  said  that  it  was  well,  and  so  the  two  boys  went  for  the  ponies. 
When  they  brought  up  the  drove  of  ponies,  the  boy  divided  the  ponies 
into  two  bunches.  One  bunch  he  left  for  his  father  and  mother,  and  the 
others  he  took  for  his  new  father  and  mother. 

In  a  few  days  it  was  noised  about  that  the  enemy  was  seen  in  the 
country  and  the  people  began  to  watch.  When  they  came  and 
attacked  the  village  Handsome-Boy  went  to  the  lodge  where  the  spear 
was  stuck  in  the  ground.  He  took  it  up  and  rushed  into  battle  and 
killed  four  with  the  spear.  Each  time  he  took  the  scalp  and  hung  it  upon 
his  belt,  so  that  when  he  went  to  the  lodge  of  the  mourners  he  took  four 
scalps  from  his  belt  and  gave  them  and  the  spear  to  the  people  who  were 
mourning.  He  then  went  to  his  lodge,  and  the  people  brought  the  pony 
which  was  tied  in  front  of  the  ceremonial  lodge,  and  it  was  given  to  him. 
Handsome-Boy  gave  the  pony  to  his  new  father.  The  father  then  said: 
"My  son,  it  is  now  time  that  you  take  a  woman  for  your  wife."  A 
young  girl  was  selected  for  him;  he  married  her  and  they  lived  many 
years.  They  had  one  child.  The  child  was  a  boy.  The  woman  was 
very  mean,  but  the  father  put  up  with  all  her  bad  doings. 

At  one  time  the  people  went  on  a  hunt.  The  young  man  was  selected 
to  lead  the  people  on  the  hunt.  The  mysterious  being  appeared  to  him 
in  a  dream  and  told  him  where  the  buffalo  were  and  how  to  find  them. 
The  next  day  he  sent  out  scouts  to  look  for  buffalo,  and  they  found  a  large 
herd.  The  people  began  to  realize  that  the  young  man  was  a  wonderful 
man.  His  wife  was  always  away  from  their  home,  and  whenever  she 
came  home  she  told  her  husband  that  a  certain  young  man  had  tried 
to  approach  her.  Every  few  days  she  kept  telling  him  this,  and  then  she 
would  say:  "What  would  you  do  if  you  were  to  find  me  with  some  man?" 


424  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

Handsome-Boy  would  say:  "I  could  not  do  anything,  for  it  is  not  in  me 
to  strike  anybody. "  This  was  because  the  spirits  had  told  him  while  he 
was  there  that  he  should  never  strike  anybody. 

One  day  his  wife  was  telling  him  how  a  certain  young  man  had 
followed  her  around,  but  Handsome-Boy  did  not  take  it  up  nor  try  to 
hurt  the  young  man.  His  wife  became  angry  and  began  to  call  him  names, 
and  even  tried  to  strike  him.  Handsome-Boy  went  off  from  the  village  and 
lay  down  with  his  face  upon  the  ground  and  wept.  For  some  time  he 
lay  upon  the  ground.  After  a  while  some  one  came  and  stood  near  him. 
Handsome-Boy  said:  "Sit  down,  whoever  you  are."  A  beautiful  girl 
sat  down  by  him  and  said:  "Handsome-Boy,  I  have  come  to  you.  I 
have  come  to  be  with  you  and  to  take  you  to  my  lodge  to  be  my  husband. " 
Handsome-Boy  told  the  girl  that  what  she  said  was  good  and  that  he 
would  take  her  for  his  wife.  They  waited  until  after  dark;  then  they 
went  into  the  village.  The  girl  took  Handsome-Boy  to  her  tipi  that  had 
been  put  up  outside  for  her.  She  told  him  to  lie  upon  the  buffalo  robes 
which  were  spread  upon  the  ground  while  she  went  to  tell  her  mother  to 
cook  some  dried  buffalo  meat  for  him.  As  soon  as  the  girl  told  her 
mother  that  Handsome-Boy  was  in  the  tipi,  she  began  to  cook  something 
for  him  and  the  old  man  jumped  up  with  his  tobacco  and  pipe  and  went 
into  the  tipi  where  Handsome-Boy  was.  The  old  man  was  glad  to  have 
Handsome-Boy  for  his  son-in-law.  He  told  him  that  he  was  glad  that  his 
daughter  had  selected  him  for  her  husband.  He  filled  the  pipe  and  they 
began  to  smoke  together.  After  a  while  the  woman  brought  in  buffalo 
meat  and  placed  it  before  Handsome-Boy.  He  ate  of  the  meat  and 
passed  the  wooden  bowl  to  the  old  woman.  The  old  people  knew  that 
Handsome-Boy  and  their  daughter  wanted  to  be  alone  and  so  they  left 
and  went  into  their  own  tipi.  Handsome-Boy  and  the  girl  remained  in 
the  tipi  for  four  days  and  four  nights. 

On  the  fourth  day  the  child  of  Handsome-Boy  began  to  cry  for  his 
father.  The  people  did  not  know  where  Handsome-Boy  had  gone.  They 
hunted  for  him  throughout  the  village,  but  they  could  not  find  him. 
Towards  evening  the  boy  cried  for  his  father  and  pointed  in  a  certain 
direction.  The  mother,  seeing  the  child  pointing,  went  in  that  same 
direction  until  she  came  close  to  a  tipi.  The  child  pointed  to  the  tipi, 
and  the  mother  peeped  into  the  tipi  and  she  saw  her  husband  there  with 
another  woman.  She  took  the  child  home,  gave  it  to  his  grandmother, 
and  said:  "Take  this  child  to  a  certain  tipi.  His  father  is  sitting 
there  and  you  may  let  him  take  the  child."  The  old  woman  took  the 
child  to  the  tipi  where  his  father  was.  She  entered  the  tipi  and  put  the 
child  into  the  lap  of  the  father.  The  father  was  glad  to  hold  the  child. 


HANDSOME-BOY.  425 

The  child  stopped  crying.  The  young  woman  took  the  child  and  put  it 
upon  her  back  and  carried  it  around ;  then  she  gave  him  back  to  his  father. 
The  child's  mother  came  and  went  up  to  her  husband  and  struck  him 
several  times  and  called  him  names,  but  he  did  not  do  anything  or  say  a 
word.  Then  she  said:  "I  will  now  kill  you  and  our  child."  She  took 
out  a  knife,  and  just  as  she  was  about  to  stick  the  knife  into  the  child 
Handsome-Boy 's  new  wife  struck  the  woman  back  of  the  head  with  a  club 
and  threw  her  to  the  ground.  Some  men  ran  into  the  tipi  as  the  woman 
fell  to  the  ground.  One  of  the  men  hit  the  woman  with  a  club  on  the 
head  and  killed  her.  Handsome-Boy  did  not  say  a  word;  but  the  people 
had  heard  of  the  meanness  of  the  woman  and  knew  that  she  was  a  bad 
wife  and  mother.  They  said  that  they  were  glad  that  she  was  dead 
because  she  tried  to  kill  her  own  child.  Nothing  was  done  to  the  woman 
who  struck  her,  and  Handsome-Boy  married  her. 

For  several  days  Handsome-Boy  sat  in  the  tipi  with  the  child  in  his 
lap.  The  chiefs  of  the  tribe  came  into  the  tipi  and  sat  with  him  to  watch 
and  guard  over  him,  for  they  knew  that  his  spirit  was  hurt.  The  chiefs 
would  talk  to  him  and  say :  ' '  You  are  the  ruler  of  these  people.  Cheer  up 
and  do  not  feel  downhearted."  Handsome-Boy  at  last  spoke  and  said: 
"Chiefs,  it  is  well  that  you  are  the  chiefs.  It  is  wrong  that  I  should  be  a 
chief.  I  have  taken  many  scalps  and  killed  many  people.  You  have 
given  me  the  whole  tribe  to  govern,  but  I  can  not  do  it,  for  when  I  try  to 
tell  the  people  what  to  do  they  will  say  that  a  woman  hit  me  on  the  side 
of  the  face  and  will  laugh  at  me  and  not  obey  my  commands.  I  will  not 
be  a  chief. "  He  went  to  the  home  of  his  brother.  He  told  the  father  to 
make  a  certain  kind  of  leggings.  The  leggings  were  to  be  made  of  buck- 
skin with  the  scalps  hanging  down  on  them,  and  an  eagle  feather  every 
inch  between  the  human  hairs.  He  also  had  the  ring  of  scalps  com- 
pleted. Each  scalp  counted  the  dead  that  he  had  killed.  Handsome-Boy, 
went  into  his  tipi  with  his  new  wife.  He  arose  and  went  out,  having 
the  leggings  on,  and  he  was  never  heard  of  again. 

If  he  died  or  was  killed  no  one  knows,  but  the  night  before  he  went  he 
sat  down  and  called  the  people  together  and  told  them  that  he  had  been 
to  the  Spirit-Land ;  that  he  had  seen  many  of  their  relatives,  and  he  told 
them  how  they  must  live  and  how  good  it  was  to  die  in  battle.  He  told 
the  people  what  the  spirits  had  told  him  to  tell  them.  Then  he  said  to 
the  people:  "This  is  why  I  can  not  strike  our  people,  even  if  it  be  my 
own  wife.  When  it  comes  to  an  enemy,  then  I  can  strike  and  kill. "  The 
next  day  after  this  happened  he  went  out  and  disappeared  and  never 
came  back.  This  is  why  the  Pawnee,  in  their  secret  ceremonies,  wear 
leggings  with  scalps  and  eagle  feathers  for  decoration. 


426  THE  ORIGIN  OF  MEDICINE  CEREMONIES  OR  POWER. 

115.  THE  WEEPING  CEDAR  TREE.1 

In  olden  times  a  war  party  went  out  to  the  west  to  find  the  enemy. 
For  many  moons  they  traveled.  At  last  they  came  to  a  rough  country. 
There  they  made  a  camp.  In  the  night  these  warriors  heard  a  woman 
crying.  Three  warriors  were  selected  to  find  the  woman.  They  went 
in  the  direction  of  the  crying,  which  became  fainter  as  they  drew  near 
to  it.  They  went  away,  and  again  the  crying  was  heard.  They  followed 
the  sound  again  and  all  came  to  a  cedar  tree.  It  was  the  cedar  tree  that 
was  crying  like  a  woman.  When  they  found  it  was  the  cedar  tree  that 
was  crying,  one  of  the  men  said:  "Warriors,  let  us  go  home."  They 
would  not  listen  to  the  man,  but  continued  their  march.  The  man 
would  not  go  with  them,  but  lingered  behind,  for  he  was  afraid  to  go  on 
the  war-path  after  he  had  heard  the  cedar  tree  weeping,  for  he  thought 
it  was  a  bad  omen.  The  next  day  they  were  attacked  by  the  enemy. 
The  lone  man  looked  on  from  a  distance.  All  were  killed,  so  the  lone 
man  went  home  and  told  the  story. 

116.  BIG  TURTLE.3 

In  olden  times  a  warrior  borrowed  the  warriors '  bundle,  for  he  was 
going  to  leave  his  country  to  capture  ponies  or  to  kill  people.  He  took 
the  bundle  to  his  lodge  and  invited  other  young  men  to  join  him.  The 
young  men  came  into  the  lodge  where  the  leader  was  sitting  with  the 
bundle  in  front  of  him.  As  the  young  men  came  into  the  lodge  they 
were  told  to  sit  around  the  fireplace  in  a  circle.  A  pipe  was  filled  and 
lighted,  and  the  men  smoked  to  the  gods  in  the  heavens  to  insure  their 
success.  When  the  pipe  was  empty  the  leader  spoke  to  the  young  men  and 
said:  "I  am  about  to  go  into  the  enemy 's  country.  If  any  of  you  want 
to  go  you  had  better  get  ready,  for  I  am  going  to  start  in  the  morning. " 
The  young  men  all  went  out  and  returned  in  a  short  time  with  their  bun- 
dles of  clothing  and  food  and  their  moccasins.  They  left  the  lodge  in 
the  morning  and  started  out  for  the  enemy's  country.  For  many  days 
they  walked. 

One  day  as  they  were  walking  along  a  deep  ravine  the  warriors  saw 
a  big  Turtle  moving  along.  Two  mischievous  young  men  climbed  upon 
the  Turtle's  back  and  said:  "Let  us  ride  the  Turtle. "  They  jumped  up 
and  down,  but  all  at  once  they  found  themselves  stuck  fast  upon  the 

1  Told  by  Big-Crow,  Kitkehahki.  This  is  presumably  a  fragment  of  a  longer 
tale  which  relates  the  origin  of  some  medicine-lodge. 

1  Told  by  Curly-Hair,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  is  told  to  the  children  so  that 
they  may  not  make  fun  of  any  animals  on  the  earth. 


BIG  TURTLE.  427 

Turtle's  back.  The  young  men  were  scared  and  called  out  to  their 
leader.  They  said:  "Something  wonderful  has  happened  to  us;  we  are 
fast."  The  leader  said:  "I  can  not  go  on  without  you,  so  I  will  get  on 
also."  The  leader  stepped  upon  the  Turtle's  back  and  he  also  became 
fast.  The  other  men  climbed  on,  and  they,  too,  became  fast.  The  leader 
told  the  youngest  of  the  warriors  to  stay  upon  the  ground;  to  go  home 
and  tell  the  people  what  had  happened.  The  young  man  followed  them 
until  at  last  the  Turtle  came  to  a  big  water  and  disappeared  under  it  with 
all  the  warriors.  The  boy  saw  the  Turtle  go  into  the  water,  and  as  the 
men  were  disappearing  under  the  water  the  leader  of  the  warriors  spoke 
to  the  boy  and  told  him  not  to  cry,  but  to  go  home  and  tell  his  people 
that  a  big  Turtle  took  them  into  the  water;  that  whenever  he  should 
want  to  go  upon  the  war-path  he  should  come  to  the  place,  and  that 
they  would  talk  to  him  and  tell  him  where  to  go  to  capture  ponies. 

The  boy  remained  for  several  days  around  the  water.  One  night  he 
had  a  dream.  He  thought  he  was  under  the  water  and  there  he  saw  the 
other  men  in  a  lodge  under  the  water.  The  leader  of  the  warriors  spoke 
to  him  and  said:  "You  must  go  home  and  tell  the  people  that  we  are  under 
the  water,  but  that  we  are  living. "  The  next  day  the  young  man  went 
home.  He  told  the  people  about  the  Turtle  taking  the  people  into  the 
water.  Some  people  believed  it  and  some  did  not. 

Some  time  afterward  the  young  man  went  to  the  place  and  there  he 
remained  for  a  while.  He  was  finally  taken  into  the  water  and  there  he 
saw  different  kinds  of  animals,  and  the  Turtle  was  the  leader  of  the  other 
animals.  The  boy  was  taught  many  mysteries,  and  he  was  then  told 
to  go  home.  When  the  people  saw  the  boy  doing  many  wonderful  things 
they  did  not  like  it.  All  the  people  gathered  together  and  said:  "Let  us 
go  to  the  water  where  the  Turtle  took  the  people. "  The  people  moved 
to  the  place,  and  when  they  reached  the  water  they  made  their  village 
near  it.  They  took  their  skin  buckets  and  began  to  dip  the  water  and 
throw  it  to  one  side.  For  many  days  the  people  dipped  the  water.  At 
last  they  got  to  the  bottom  of  the  water,  and  there  they  found  the  skele- 
tons of  the  men  who  were  taken  into  the  water  by  the  Turtle.  They  could 
not  find  the  Turtle,  and  so  they  gave  it  up.  After  this  was  all  done,  the 
animals  did  not  like  the  way  the  people  did  and  they  took  the  power 
away  from  the  boy. 


IV.   COYOTE  TALES. 

The  tales  of  this  division  may  be  related  at  any  time  and  upon  any 
occasion  except  during  the  summer,  at  which  time  it  is  said  that  the 
star  known  as  Fool  's-Coyote  would  inform  the  Snake-Star,  who  in  turn 
would  inform  the  snakes,  who  would  bite  the  teller.  These  stories  are  not 
true.  Some  of  them,  as  may  be  noticed,  are  unquestionably  episodes 
of  longer  tales.  They  teach  especially  the  ethics  of  tribal  customs  and 
beliefs;  in  a  word,  they  form  a  code  of  living.  They  are  generally  told  at 
night  in  the  winter,  the  special  object,  other  than  that  noted,  being  to 
furnish  amusement  and  to  pass  away  the  time.  Many  of  the  stories  are 
accompanied  by  songs,  during  the  singing  of  which  the  children  dance 
to  the  time  of  the  singing.  Thus  the  tales  are  supposed  to  free  the 
children  of  bashfulness  and  shyness. 

Many  of  the  tales  have  certain  elements  of  the  culture  hero,  or  at 
least  in  many  of  them  there  is  some  element  which  may  serve  to  encour- 
age the  poor  boys  and  girls  and  to  arouse  in  them  ambition. 

The  tales  might  be  considered  as  forming  two  groups,  Nos.  117  to  142 
forming  the  first  group  and  referring  to  Coyote.  The  second  group,  Nos. 
143  to  148,  consists  of  animal  tales  proper,  but  differ  from  the  tales  of 
the  first  group  only  in  the  fact  that  some  animal,  or  other  animals  than 
coyotes,  enters  into  the  composition  of  the  story.  Notwithstanding  the 
fact  that  the  coyote  individually  plays  no  part  in  this  second  group, 
they  also  are  known  as  "Coyote  tales." 


117.  COYOTE  AND  THE  SCALPED-WOMAN. l 

Coyote  was  traveling  over  the  hills  one  day  when  he  saw  a  Scalped- 
Woman  sitting  on  a  hillside.  He  saw  that  matter  was  running  from  her 
head.  He  commenced  to  make  fun  of  her  and  said:  "It  looks  as  though 
mush  were  running  over  the  top  of  the  pot."  The  woman  said:  "You 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.     The  story  is  told  to  teach  the  children  about  a 
certain  class  of  people  who  lived  on  the  earth  and  were  human  beings,  but  as  they 
were  scalped  they  did  not  live  with  the  people.     They  had  animal  power  and  could 
teach  many  mysteries  to  the  people. 
428 


COYOTE  AND  THE   SCALPED-WOMAN.  429 

are  making  remarks  about  my  head."  At  the  same  time  Coyote  was 
wondering  how  he  could  manage  to  have  connection  with  this  Scalped- 
Woman. 

He  said:  "I  am  talking  about  a  pot.  When  my  grandmother  puts 
meal  into  the  boiling  pot  the  mush  overflows. "  After  a  time  Coyote 
yelled  and  said:  "I  did  mean  you."  Scalped- Woman  jumped  up 
and  said:  "I  will  kill  you."  She  ran  after  him.  Coyote  went  over 
the  hill  and  changed  himself  into  a  queer-looking  man.  He  had  on  his 
chin  a  little  buffalo  grass,  so  that  his  chin  looked  as  if  he  had  whiskers 
like  an  old  man.  Near  him  was  a  patch  of  tobacco.  The  woman  came 
up  and  saw  him  standing  there,  and  said:  "You  tobacco  grower,  did  you 
see  Coyote  pass  by  here?"  Coyote  pretended  that  he  was  a  man  and 
mumbled  to  himself.  The  woman  said:  "That  man  can  not  under- 
stand. I  guess  Coyote  went  on  by."  She  went  on  over  the  hill. 

Coyote-man  turned  into  Coyote  and  called  after  her:  "I  did  mean 
you."  Scalped- Woman  started  after  Coyote  again,  and  almost  caught 
him.  Coyote  ran  over  the  hill  again  and  stood  there,  a  warrior,  with 
great  powers.  He  had  jointed  grass  that  looked  like  feathers  stuck  up 
around  his  head.  He  sang  a  song  about  the  grass  warrior: 

This  grass  I  walk  around 

When  I  walk  around, 

Grass  I  have  as  I  start  out  as  a  warrior. 

This  grass  I  walk  around 

When  I   walk  around, 

Grass  I  have  as  I  start  out  as  a  warrior. 

Scalped- Woman  said:  "Warrior,  did  you  see  a  man  pass  by  here?" 
Coyote  kept  on  singing  as  if  he  did  not  know  her,  but  she  continued  to 
question  him.  Finally  Coyote  said,  impatiently:  "Why  do  you  talk  to 
me?  I  will  shoot  you  with  these  arrows.  Do  not  talk  to  me  any  more. " 
The  woman  went  on.  After  she  had  gone  over  the  ihill,  the  warrior 
turned  into  Coyote  again  and  said:  "I  did  mean  you. "  Scalped- Woman 
started  again  and  was  about  to  catch  him.  Coyote  crawled  into  a  hole 
in  a  rocky  place  and  came  out  on  the  other  side.  Scalped- Woman 
crawled  in  after  him  and  became  fast.  Coyote  raised  her  dress  and  they 
had  connection.  Then  the  woman  began  to  kick.  She  said:  "Let  me 
get  out,  so  that  we  can  do  it  right."  Coyote  kept  on  and  Scalped- 
Woman  got  loose.  She  went  up  to  Coyote  and  hit  him  with  her  hand 
and  said:  "You  are  a  rascal.  You  are  now  my  husband. "  They  went 
off  and  lived  a  while  together ;  then  Coyote  pretended  that  he  was  going 
on  a  hunt.  He  went  off  and  never  came  back. 


430  COYOTE  TALES. 

118.  HOW  A  WITCH-WOMAN  WAS  KILLED  BY  COYOTE.1 

There  was  an  island.  Upon  this  island  lived  a  Spider- Woman.  She 
killed  many  people.  Coyote  happened  to  come  that  way,  not  thinking 
of  the  Spider- Woman.  He  was  going  through  a  timber,  and  just  as  he 
came  to  the  edge  of  the  timber  he  saw  Spider- Woman  coming  at  a  dis- 
tance. The  place  where  he  was  was  thick  with  timber,  there  being  many 
young  willow  trees.  Coyote  sat  down  and  wondered  what  he  should  do 
to  gain  the  friendship  of  Spider- Woman.  Coyote  took  hold  of  his  mem- 
brum  and  began  to  play  with  it.  Soon  it  became  hard  and  he  stuck  it 
out  from  the  timber.  He  kept  moving  it  backwards  and  forwards  and 
Spider- Woman  saw  it.  She  stopped,  gave  a  yell,  and  laughed.  Then 
she  began  to  sing: 

Yonder  I  see  it  with  my  eyes, 

Yonder  I  see  it  with  my  eyes, 

You,  yonder,  moving  back  and  forth  from  the  bushes, 

Ugly  red  thing,   O! 

She  continued  to  sing,  and  after  a  while  she  began  to  dance.  Then 
Coyote  moved  faster  and  the  old  woman  began  to  sing  and  dance  faster. 
Spider-Woman  thought  it  so  funny  that  she  continued  to  dance  until  she 
finally  gave  out,  dropped  down  upon  the  ground,  and  died.  Then  Coyote 
went  on  about  his  business. 

119.  COYOTE  MARRIES  HIS  DAUGHTER.2 

In  a  village  there  lived  a  Coyote,  his  wife,  one  daughter,  and  several 
sons.  They  went  off  on  a  hunt,  and  while  they  were  away  the  old  man 
became  sick.  He  told  his  wife  that  he  was  going  to  die.  One  day  he 
became  worse.  Then  he  sang: 

Well,  now,  there  she  comes,  yonder; 
Old  woman  will  have  a  happy  time. 
She  who  was  my  wife, 
As  they  make  a  gurgling  noise. 

After  he  sang,  the  old  woman  sang  a  song  and  said: 

Old  man's  "membrum,  crooked 
Like  the  handle  of  a  dipper. 
Yes,  I  shall  miss  it. 

1  Told  by  Bright-Eyes,  Skidi.  The  story  is  told  to  teach  the  young  girls  not  to 
be  like  the  spider-woman  who  danced  when  the  Coyote  acted  as  he  did;  that  only 
half-crazy  women  could  do  as  the  spider-woman  did.  A  woman  who  becomes 
morally  bad  can  do  anything.  The  people  tell  this  story  to  keep  their  girls  from 
doing  wrong. 

JTold  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  story  is  told  to  teach  the  young  men  that 
when  they  marry,  and  have  children,  they  should  never  think  of  marrying  their 
own  daughter,  for  it  is  very  wrong. 


COYOTE  MARRIES  HIS  DAUGHTER.  43! 

Then  the  old  man  said:  "My  wife,  when  I  am  dead  dig  a  hole  and 
place  my  body  in  the  hole,  but  leave  my  head  sticking  out,  for  you  know 
that  I  was  very  religious  and  always  looked  to  Tirawa  for  assistance. 
When  you  see  a  man  making  arrows,  when  the  other  people  have  left 
their  village,  then  you  may  know  that  he  is  a  chief.  If  he  should  ask  for 
my  daughter  let  him  have  her.  When  they  have  killed  buffalo  and  you 
see  a  man  coming  with  only  the  tongues  and  the  hearts,  then  you  may 
know  that  he  is  the  chief,  and  if  he  asks  for  our  daughter  let  him  have 
her. "  Coyote  died  and  was  buried  just  as  he  wanted  to  be.  His  wife 
and  children  gathered  up  their  belongings  and  went  and  joined  the  other 
people. 

In  the  meantime  Coyote  crawled  out  of  the  grave  and  said:  "Now 
my  wife  thinks  I  am  dead.  I  must  fix  myself  up  so  that  I  can  deceive 
my  wife  and  marry  my  daughter. "  He  ran  into  the  village  and  he  stayed 
close  to  the  grass-lodge  where  his  family  lived.  The  next  morning  when 
the  people  broke  camp  he  sat  down  in  the  midst  of  the  village  site  and 
there  began  to  make  arrows.  When  the  old  woman  and  her  children 
started  out  they  went  past  Coyote  who  was  making  arrows,  and  the  girl 
said:  "Mother,  that  looks  like  ourfather."  The  old  woman  said:  "Come 
daughter,  this  is  the  chief  and  we  must  not  trouble  him."  After  the 
woman  and  the  children  were  gone  Coyote  got  up  and  followed  them. 
When  they  reached  the  village  the  girl  saw  Coyote  going  through  the 
village.  The  girl  was  sure  that  it  was  her  father,  and  when  he  entered 
a  lodge  close  to  their  own  she  went  up  to  the  lodge  and  peeped  in.  She 
saw  a  man  sitting  inside  who  looked  like  her  father,  the  only  difference 
being  that  this  man  had  but  one  eye. 

While  they  were  here  in  this  village  the  people  went  out,  surrounded 
the  buffalo,  and  killed  several.  The  old  man  went  to  the  killing  and 
begged  several  people  for  tongues  and  hearts.  Then  he  came  to  the 
village  and  went  past  the  lodge  of  his  own  family.  When  he  heard  his 
children  talking  about  the  man  with  the  hearts  and  tongues  upon  his 
back  he  stopped.  When  he  turned  around  he  looked  at  the  children, 
but  he  had  only  one  eye,  for  he  had  closed  the  other  one  to  make  the 
children  believe  that  he  had  but  one  eye.  He  said:  "Children,  take 
these  to  your  mother  and  tell  her  that  the  chief  wants  her  to  eat  them. " 
The  children  took  the  hearts  and  tongues  to  their  mother.  The  mother 
made  a  big  fire  and  was  cooking  the  hearts  and  tongues  when  Coyote 
came  into  the  lodge.  He  had  but  one  eye.  He  said:  "Woman,  being 
the  chief  of  this  village,  I  have  looked  through  the  place  for  a  girl  to 
marry  me.  I  like  your  girl  the  best.  I  have  come  to  ask  for  her. ' ' 
The  old  woman  said:  "You  shall  have  my  daughter,  for  her  father  wished 


432  COYOTE  TALES. 

that  she  should  marry  a  chief. "  When  the  old  woman  placed  some  heart 
and  tongue  before  the  old  man  and  the  girl,  the  old  man  forgot  himself, 
for  he  was  happy  thinking  that  he  was  now  married  to  his  own  daughter. 
The  little  boys  who  were  playing  whispered  to  their  mother  and  said: 
"Mother,  that  looks  like  our  father.  Both  of  his  eyes  are  open  now." 
When  the  old  woman  looked  at  Coyote  she  saw  that  he  was  her  husband. 
She  picked  up  a  club,  went  up  to  Coyote,  and  said:  "Old  man,  I  am  glad 
that  I  found  you  out  before  it  was  too  late."  He  begged  and  begged, 
but  the  old  woman  brought  down  the  club  upon  his  head  and  smashed 
his  skull.  The  boys  jumped  on  their  father,  kicked  him  around,  and 
dragged  him  out.  The  next  day  when  the  people  began  to  break  camp, 
the  women  and  children  joined  them  and  left  Coyote  upon  the  ground. 
They  did  not  bury  him. 

When  the  people  see  a  dead  coyote  lying  upon  a  village  site  they  say: 
"This  coyote  must  have  tried  to  marry  his  own  daughter  and  was  killed. " 

120.  COYOTE  AND  HIS  TWO  WIVES  MEET  WONDERFUL-BEING.1 

One  fine,  bright  morning  Coyote  arose  and  awakened  his  two  wives. 
When  they  had  eaten  their  breakfast,  Coyote  said:  "We  will  now  go 
into  the  land  where  the  sun  travels  (meaning  the  south) ;  there  we  may 
find  some  other  people,  and  we  will  live  with  them.  We  are  all  alone  in 
this  country,  and  I  am  afraid  that  the  giants  may  find  us." 

They  started  out  and  traveled  into  the  southern  country.  When 
they  had  been  traveling  for  several  days  they  came  to  a  brook  of  clear 
water.  There  they  stopped  to  rest.  There  was  a  high  hill  on  the  south 
side  of  the  brook.  While  they  were  resting,  one  of  the  women  looked 
up  on  the  high  hill  and  there  she  saw  Wonderful-Being.  She  pushed 
the  other  woman  and  awoke  her.  Then  she  awoke  her  husband.  They 
all  stood  up.  Both  of  the  women  said :  "  He  will  kill  us ;  let  us  run  away. " 
But  Coyote  said:  "Let  us  not  run  away,  but  do  as  I  tell  you.  Put 
your  robes  close  to  your  bodies  and  then  the  strings  around  them.  Then 
pick  up  those  pebbles  along  the  brook  and  throw  them  into  your  robes, 
so  that  when  you  jump  up  and  down  the  stones  will  rattle  and  make  a 
peculiar  noise."  The  women  did  as  they  were  told. 

Wonderful-Being  came  close  to  them  and  said :  ' '  What  are  you  peo- 
ple doing  and  where  are  you  going?"  Coyote  had  told  the  women  that 

lTold  by  Buffalo-Come- to-Drink,  one  of  the  oldest  of  the  Kitkehahki  and  a 
medicine-man.  This  story  is  told  to  the  people  so  that  they  shall  have  fear  of  the 
giants,  and  to  let  the  children  know  that  in  olden  times  the  giants  were  upon  the 
earth  and  were  destroyed  by  the  Evening-Star. 


COYOTE  AND  HIS  TWO  WIVES  MEET  WONDERFUL-BEING.  433 

as  soon  as  he  began  to  dance,  for  them  to  dance.  He  thought  that  Won- 
derful-Being was  going  to  crush  them  and  throw  their  flesh  away  and 
keep  their  skins  for  his  own  use. 

Coyote  paid  no  attention  to  the  Wonderful-Being,  and  Wonderful- 
Being  again  spoke  to  him  and  said:  "Do  you  not  hear  what  I  say?" 
Coyote  paid  no  attention  to  Wonderful-Being,  but  all  at  once  began  to 
jump  up  and  down,  and  then  he  sang  as  follows: 

Here  we  stand,  old  woman, 

Truly  that  looks  like  the  man, 

The  wonderful  man  we  killed, 

Whose  membrum  you  struck  and  counted  coup, 

Whose  membrum  you  struck  and  counted  coup. 

Here  we  stand,  old  woman, 

Truly  that  looks  like  the  man, 

The  wonderful  man  we  killed, 

Whose  membrum  you  struck  and  counted  coup, 

Whose  membrum  you  struck  and  counted  coup. 

He  kept  singing  and  repeating  the  same  words  over  and  over  again,  and 
as  the  three  kept  jumping  up  and  down  the  stones  in  their  robes  began 
to  rattle.  When  the  Coyote  stopped  singing,  then  the  two  women  began 
to  sing,  and  said:  "Old  man,  does  not  this  Wonderful-Being  look  like 
the  man  we  killed  yonder?  Must  we  kill  him,  so  that  you,  old  man,  may 
count  coup  on  Wonderful-Being  ?  Shall  we  kill  him  ?  Shall  we  kill  him  ? ' ' 

When  Wonderful-Being  heard  the  rattling  of  the  pebbles,  he  did  not 
know  what  to  make  of  it.  Then  from  what  he  heard  of  the  singing  he 
thought  that  he  was  going  to  be  killed.  Wonderful-Being  began  to 
move  backwards  and  they  kept  up  the  singing  and  dancing.  After 
Wonderful-Being  went  over  the  hill  he  turned  and  ran.  Coyote  went 
up  on  the  hill  and  saw  Wonderful-Being  running  away.  Then  he  called 
his  wives  and  they  ran  from  the  place.  When  they  tried  to  rest,  Coyote 
would  speak  to  them  of  Wonderful-Being,  and  again  they  would  jump 
up  and  run.  Coyote  would  tell  them  how  easily  Wonderful-Being  could 
have  killed  them  if  he  had  just  tried.  They  kept  on  running  until  at 
last  the  older  woman  of  the  two  fell  over  and  died.  The  other  one  went 
on  with  Coyote  and  they  came  to  a  rocky  place  and  there  they  made 
their  home. 

This  is  why  we  find  coyotes  in  rocky  places  and  also  why  we  find  dead 
coyotes  upon  the  prairies.  Whenever  a  coyote  gets  scared  it  runs  and 
never  knows  when  to  stop  until  it  falls  down  and  dies. 


434  COYOTE  TALES. 

121.  COYOTE  TRIES  TO  FOOL  THE  RAIN-GODS.1 

Coyote  traveled  over  the  prairie  for  many  days.  He  could  not  find 
any  water  and  so  he  almost  died  from  thirst.  When  he  could  go  no  far- 
ther he  sat  down  upon  the  ground  and  looked  to  the  heavens  and  said : 
"To  you  four  gods  in  the  west  I  give  my  tongue  and  my  heart  and  the 
best  parts  of  my  body  if  you  will  send  me  a  little  rain. "  At  once  clouds 
formed  in  the  west  and  a  rainstorm  came.  The  rain  began  to  fall  and 
pools  of  water  soon  formed  over  the  prairie.  Coyote  then  drank  and  felt 
refreshed.  It  still  continued  to  rain.  Then  Coyote  said:  "You  gods  in 
the  heavens,  I  did  not  ask  you  for  so  much  rain.  What  shall  I  do  if  I  give 
to  you  my  heart  and  tongue  and  other  parts  of  my  body  ?  I  can  not  get 
more  and  I  need  these  things  in  my  body.  I  will  not  give  them  to  you. 
I  take  back  all  that  I  promised  you. "  New  clouds  came  from  the  west 
and  it  began  to  lighten  and  thunder  and  the  rain  poured  from  the  sky. 
Coyote  tried  to  run,  but  the  water  was  so  deep  that  he  had  to  swim.  Then 
suddenly  a  hailstorm  came  and  hailstones  struck  Coyote  upon  the  head 
and  killed  him. 

When  people  go  over  the  prairie  and  see  a  dead  coyote  upon  the 
ground  they  say:  "This  coyote  fooled  the  gods  and  the  gods  killed  him." 

122.  COYOTE  AND  THE  PRIESTS.2 

The  people  went  hunting;  among  them  were  Coyote-Man,  Fox-Man, 
and  Rabbit-Man.  There  was  also  among  these  people  a  woman  who 
was  called  Spider- Woman.  On  the  journey  these  four  were  always  in 
the  lead,  and  if  they  saw  any  buffalo  they  reported  the  fact  to  the  priests. 
One  time  these  men  and  this  woman  were  sent  out.  They  saw  many 
buffalo.  They  returned  to  the  priests'  lodge  and  reported  many  buffalo. 
The  next  day  the  people  turned  out  and  surrounded  the  buffalo. 

When  the  people  had  many  buffalo  and  were  returning  home,  Coyote- 
Man  took  the  meat  he  had  to  the  priests'  lodge.  Fox-Man,  seeing  that 
Coyote-Man  went  there,  also  took  his  meat  to  the  lodge  of  the  priests. 
Rabbit-Man  also  took  his  meat  there,  because  the  other  two  had  done  so. 
Spider- Woman,  seeing  the  men  take  their  meat  there,  also  took  her  meat 
to  the  lodge  of  the  priests.  The  priests  took  up  their  rattles  and  sang 
songs  about  these  people  bringing  the  meat  to  their  lodge: 

1  Told  by  Leading-Sun,  Kitkehahki  medicine-man.     This  story  is  told  to  teach 
the  children  that  although  they  may  be  in  dire  distress  they  must  never  offer  them- 
selves up  to  the  gods. 

2  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.     This  story  is  told  to  teach  the  children  that  when 
they  grow  up  they  should  always  remember  the  priests  and  their  bundles;   that 
when  they  kill  a  buffalo  they  should  take  it  to  the  lodge  of  the  priests  so  that  the 
meat  might  be  offered  to  the  gods  in  the  heavens. 


COYOTE  AND  THE  PRIESTS.  43$ 

Alone  she  came  with  her  pack  strings, 
Alone  she  came  with  her  pack  strings, 
The  daughter  of  Claw-Shield, 
This  has  the  young  woman  done: 
Alone  she  thought  of 
The  wonderful  old  men. 

Alone  she  came  with  her  pack  strings, 
Alone  she  came  with  her  pack  strings, 
The  daughter  of  Brave-Fox, 
This  has  the  young  woman  done; 
Alone  she  thought  of 
The  wonderful  old  men. 

Alone  she  came  with  her  pack  strings, 
Alone  she  came  with  her  pack  strings, 
The  daughter  of  Jack-Rabbit, 
This  has  the  young  woman  done; 
Alone  she  thought  of 
The   wonderful   old   men. 

Then  the  errand  man  went  through  the  village  asking  women  to 
bring  their  pack  string  to  the  priests '  lodge  and  to  go  after  wood  for  the 
priests.  Coyote's  daughter  came  with  her  pack,  Fox's  daughter  came 
with  hers,  Rabbit's  daughter  came  with  hers,  and  Spider- Woman 's 
daughter  came  with  hers. 

123.  COYOTE  WHO  CALLED  HIMSELF  "  DRAQQINQ-THE-STONE." l 

There  was  a  village  of  Coyotes.  The  people  in  the  village  heard  that 
there  was  another  village  of  Coyotes  east  of  them.  One  Coyote  decided 
that  he  would  go  and  visit  the  other  village.  He  started,  and  after  a  while 
he  came  to  the  village.  He  looked  around  and  he  saw  the  Coyote-men 
playing  with  gambling  sticks.  He  thought  to  himself:  "Now,  if  I  go 
into  the  village  these  people  will  kill  me.  I  must  plan  some  way  to  make 
these  people  afraid  of  me. "  He  reached  the  edge  of  the  village  and  he 
shouted:  "People,  I  come  to  visit  your  village.  My  name  is  Dragging- 
the-Stone. "  The  people  were  all  frightened.  Some  said:  "What  kind 
of  a  man  is  this  who  has  such  a  big  name  as  Dragging-the-Stone! "  They 
all  looked  at  him  and  were  afraid  of  him.  Coyote  was  dressed  like  a 
warrior,  and  he  had  a  quiver  filled  with  arrows  and  a  bow.  He  then 
walked  through  the  village  in  an  unconcerned  way  and  went  to  where 

1  Told  by  White- Horse,  Pitahauirat.  The  story  is  told  to  teach  the  young  men 
that  when  they  go  on  the  war-path,  if  they  should  happen  to  meet  enemies,  not  to 
be  scared  but  to  be  brave;  that  no  matter  how  much  frightened  they  are  they 
must  not  show  it  to  the  enemy. 


436  COYOTE  TALES. 

the  men  were  playing  with  the  gambling  sticks.  There  he  sat  down  by 
himself  and  watched  the  game. 

After  a  while  a  young  man  came  to  where  he  was  sitting  and  said: 
"Dragging-the-Stone,  the  chief  of  these  people  invites  you  to  eat  dinner 
with  him."  Dragging-the-Stone  looked  up  at  him  and  said:  "Has 
not  the  chief  a  mouth  to  eat  the  things  he  has  to  eat?  Tell  him  that 
Dragging-the-Stone  says  that  he  does  not  care  to  sit  with  him  to  eat. " 
When  the  young  man  returned  and  told  the  people  what  Dragging-the- 
Stone  had  said,  they  said:  "This  must  be  a  wonderful  man."  In  a 
little  while  another  man  came  and  said:  "Dragging-the-Stone, the  giant, 
the  wonderful  being,  invites  you  to  come  and  eat  dinner  with  him. " 
Dragging-the-Stone  then  said:  "Has  not  the  wonderful  being,  the 
giant,  a  mouth?  He  shall  eat  alone  of  the  food  that  he  has  prepared 
for  me  to  eat.  Tell  him  I  do  not  care  to  go  and  eat  with  him. "  When 
the  man  reported  to  the  giant,  the  wonderful  being,  what  Dragging-the- 
Stone  had  said,  the  giant  said:  "He  must  be  a  wonderful  man.  He 
must  be  either  equal  to  me  or  more  wonderful  than  I  in  power. "  After 
a  while  another  man  came  and  said:  "Dragging-the-Stone,  the  bravest 
man  in  the  village  here  invites  you  to  eat  with  him."  Dragging-the- 
Stone  looked  at  the  man  and  said:  "The  brave  man  has  a  mouth.  Let 
him  eat  what  he  has.  I  do  not  care  to  eat  with  him. "  When  the  brave 
man  heard  what  Dragging-the-Stone  said,  he  was  afraid,  and  he  told  the 
people  that  this  man  must  be  a  wonderful  man. 

Towards  evening,  after  all  had  stopped  playing  with  the  sticks, 
Dragging-the-Stone  got  up  and  went  to  the  poorest  lodge  that  he  could 
find  in  the  village  where  lived  an  old  Coyote  and  his  wife,  and  he  made 
his  home  with  these  people.  Everyone  in  the  village  was  afraid  of 
Dragging-the-Stone,  and  none  went  near  him.  The  old  Coyote  told 
Dragging-the-Stone  that  there  was  a  wonderful  being  in  their  village; 
that  when  people  killed  buffalo  this  wonderful  being  went  to  the  fattest 
buffalo  and  told  the  people  that  he  was  going  to  have  the  buffalo,  and 
they  had  to  let  him  have  it,  for  he  was  bad  and  either  killed  them  or  blew 
them  away.  Dragging-the-Stone  said:  "I  wish  to  meet  this  wonder- 
ful being,  for  I  do  not  like  him  to  be  robbing  the  people  of  their  meat. " 

One  fine,  bright  morning  an  old  man  began  to  cry  through  the  village 
asking  certain  men  to  go  out  into  the  country  to  find  buffalo.  He  sang 
as  follows: 

Hurry,  bring  your  bow  and  arrows. 
You,  Coyote,  of  the  Claw-Shield, 
You  are  to  look  for  buffalo, 
You  are  to  look  for  buffalo. 


COYOTE  WHO  CALLED  HIMSELF  "DRAGGING-THE-STONE.  437 

Hurry,  bring  your  bow  and  arrows. 

You,  Brave-Fox,  who  angry  go  through  ravines, 

You  are  to  look  for  buffalo, 

You  are  to  look  for  buffalo. 

Hurry,  bring  your  bow  and  arrows. 

You,  Jack-Rabbit,  who  hold  high  your  bow  and  arrows, 

You  are  to  look  for  buffalo, 

You  are  to  look  for  buffalo. 

Hurry,  bring  your  bow  and  arrows. 
You,  Raven,  who  shout  at  the  people, 
You  are  to  look  for  buffalo, 
You  are  to  look  for  buffalo. 

Hurry,  bring  your  bow  and  arrows. 
You,  Old- Woman,  always  contrary, 
You  are  to  look  for  buffalo, 
You  are  to  look  for  buffalo. 

As  for  myself,  I  never  lag  behind, 
I  never  lag  behind, 
I  never  lag  behind, 
I  never  lag  behind. 

The  first  one  called  was  a  young  Coyote;  he  came  with  his  bow  and 
arrows.  The  next  one  was  Brave-Fox;  he  came  with  his  bow  and  arrows. 
Then  Jack-Rabbit  and  Raven  were  called;  they  came  with  their  bows  and 
arrows.  And  lastly  old  Coyote  and  Old- Woman-Coyote  were  called. 
The  old  woman  said:  "Dragging-the-Stone,  do  you  hear  them  calling 
my  old  husband  and  me  to  look  for  buffalo  ? "  He  said : ' '  Yes. ' '  The  old 
man  and  the  old  woman  took  their  horses  and  joined  the  party  which 
was  going  to  hunt  for  buffalo.  They  went  off,  and  in  a  little  time  the 
people  saw  these  people  coming  back.  They  went  into  the  lodge  of  the 
chief  and  said:  "People,  on  the  other  side  of  the  hills  are  many  buffalo. 
We  must  at  once  prepare  to  surround  the  buffalo."  Everybody  began 
to  get  their  horses  to  go  out  to  surround  the  buffalo.  The  old  woman 
said:  "Dragging-the-Stone,  would  you  like  to  go?"  and  he  said:  "Yes." 
The  old  woman  said:  "I  have  a  horse  that  you  may  ride  if  you  wish." 
Dragging-the-Stone  took  out  some  red  paint  and  painted  the  horse,  put 
some  eagle  feathers  on  its  tail,  painted  himself,  and  jumped  upon  the 
horse  and  rode  among  the  people. 

When  the  people  saw  Dragging-the-Stone  coming  among  them  to  be 
one  of  the  men  to  surround  the  buffalo,  they  pointed  at  him  and  spoke 
about  him  and  said:  "Here  is  Dragging-the-Stone.  We  will  now  find 
out  how  wonderful  he  is. "  The  people  were  becoming  excited  and  their 
horses  were  jumping  up  and  down  getting  ready  to  run.  Dragging-the- 
Stone  was  riding  the  old  woman's  horse,  and  it  was  jumping  up  and 


438  COYOTE  TALES. 

down  and  was  very  unmanageable.  After  a  while  Dragging-the-Stone 
felt  something  coming  up  from  the  back  of  the  horse.  He  kept  on 
riding  until  the  object  went  into  his  body ;  then  he  jumped  off  and  exam- 
ined it  and  found  that  it  was  the  horse's  penis.  Dragging-the-Stone 
then  took  his  bow  and  arrows  and  shot  the  horse  and  killed  it.  The 
horse  was  the  property  of  the  old  woman,  and  when  the  old  woman 
wanted  to  be  with  men,  she  rode  upon  this  horse.  Dragging-the-Stone 
went  on,  and  he  came  to  a  man  who  had  killed  a  buffalo.  The  man  who 
killed  the  buffalo  came  up  and  said:  "Dragging-the-Stone,  I  will  give  you 
this  buffalo."  Dragging-the-Stone  thanked  the  man  for  the  buffalo. 

After  a  while  other  people  came,  and  they  began  to  skin  this  buffalo. 
While  they  were  skinning  they  saw  the  giant  coming.  When  he  came 
he  said:  "People,  you  may  go  away  from  this  buffalo.  This  is  my 
buffalo  and  I  am  going  to  have  the  meat. "  The  people  then  looked 
towards  Dragging-the-Stone  to  see  what  he  would  do.  Dragging-the- 
Stone  told  the  people  to  continue  skinning  the  buffalo  and  not  to  listen 
to  the  giant.  After  a  while  the  giant  said:  "I  am  going  to  have 
the  meat  of  this  buffalo."  Dragging-the-Stone  said:  "You  are  not. 
T.his  buffalo  is  mine. "  They  began  to  quarrel  and  the  giant  became 
mad.  Dragging-the-Stone  became  mad  and  took  his  bow  out  from 
his  quiver  and  began  to  hit  the  giant.  The  giant  then  turned  around 
and  blew  his  breath  upon  Dragging-the-Stone  and  blew  him  a  long 
way  off.  Coyote  came  and  continued  to  fight  the  giant  until  the 
giant  became  scared  and  went  away.  Then  Dragging-the-Stone  felt 
very  proud  that  he  had  conquered  the  giant.  The  people  talked  about 
him  as  they  went  home.  Not  only  the  giant  became  scared,  but  the 
chief  and  the  braves  were  all  also  scared.  When  Dragging-the-Stone 
reached  the  village  the  old  Coyote  woman  said:  "Old  man,  that  man 
Dragging-the-Stone  has  sense.  He  walks  home  and  leaves  my  horse 
at  some  grassy  place  where  he  can  pick  grass."  When  Dragging-the- 
Stone  arrived  at  the  lodge  the  old  woman  asked  where  the  horse  was, 
and  he  said:  "I  killed  him.  He  tried  to  act  with  me  as  he  did  with  you 
and  I  shot  him  with  my  bow  and  arrows." 

The  people  all  became  afraid  of  Dragging-the-Stone.  The  chief 
gathered  all  his  men.  They  were  going  to  have  a  big  feast  and  eat 
roast  ribs.  They  invited  Dragging-the-Stone.  The  people  said:  "We 
want  Dragging -the-Stone  to  be  our  chief."  When  the  people  were  all 
together,  Dragging-the-Stone  came  in  and  they  gave  him  a  prominent 
seat.  Then  the  chief  spoke  and  said:  "Dragging-the-Stone,  I  have  pre- 
.pared  a  lot  of  meat,  for  we  are  to  have  a  feast."  Then  Dragging-the- 
Stone  said:  "I  do  not  eat  ribs.  I  eat  something  else.  If  the  chief 


COYOTE  WHO  CALLED  HIMSELF  "DRAGGING-THE-STONE."  439 

wants  me  to  eat  he  must  get  what  I  like. "  The  people  were  told  to  find 
out  what  Dragging-the-Stone  ate.  Dragging-the-Stone  told  them  that 
it  was  a  little  piece  of  dried  buffalo  meat  and  a  piece  of  buffalo  tallow. 
He  told  them  that  when  they  cooked  this  piece  of  tallow  to  build  an  arbor 
over  the  fire  and  spread  tallow  over  the  framework.  While  they  were 
cooking,  Dragging-the-Stone  stood  up  and  thought  to  himself:  "Now 
what  am  I  going  to  do  to  get  away  from  these  people  ?  I  fear  they  will 
kill  me."  He  went  where  these  people  were  looking  after  the  tallow 
which  was  spread  on  the  framework  over  the  fire.  He  told  the  people 
to  sit  down  and  he  himself  would  do  the  cooking,  as  he  was  very  fond  of 
cooking.  Every  little  while  he  would  turn  the  tallow  over.  He  noticed 
that  the  grease  was  running  out  and  as  it  dripped  into  the  fire  it  began 
to  burn.  When  Dragging-the-Stone  thought  it  was  time  to  get  away 
from  these  people,  he  took  the  tallow  and  swung  it  around  the  circle  so 
that  everyone  in  the  circle  received  a  burn.  Everyone  bowed  down  and 
closed  his  eyes  to  keep  from  being  burned,  and  he  kept  swinging  the 
tallow  around  until  they  were  all  burned;  then  he  threw  the  fat  away 
and  ran.  The  people  then  ran  after  him.  They  caught  him  as  he  got 
on  top  of  the  sand  bar  and  killed  him. 

Whenever  people  see  coyotes  lying  on  sand  bars  they  say:  "That 
coyote  tried  to  fool  the  people,  but  he  was  found  out  and  killed." 

124.  COYOTE-MANZAND  HIS  TRICKS.1 

Old  Coyote-Man  had  many  tricks.  He  had  hair  upon  his  breast  aad 
a  little  upon  his  back.  He  carried  a  quiver  made  from  raccoon  hides. 
One  day  Coyote-Man  was  going  along  trying  to  find  game,  but  he  could 
not  find  any.  He  was  going  through  the  timber,  when  he  came  to  some 
squirrels  playing  in  the  trees.  He  stood  at  the  bottom  of  the  tree  and 
said:  "Grandchildren,  you  are  having  such  a  good  time,  while  your 
grandfather  down  here  is  starving.  Help  your  poor  old  grandfather 
and  give  him  something  to  eat."  The  Squirrels  said:  "You  are  too 
mean.  We  can  not  give  you  anything  to  eat. "  Coyote-Man  kept  on 
begging  until  the  male  Squirrel  came  down  and  said:  "Now,  my  grand- 
father, you  are  tricky.  Be  careful  how  you  cut  me.  You  shall  have 
something  to  eat  if  you  will  do  just  what  I  tell  you. "  Then  the  Squirrel 
placed  one  of  its  hind  legs  against  the  tree  and  the  other  upon  the  ground. 
Then  he  told  Coyote-Man  to  take  his  knife  and  to  cut  off  one  of  his  testes. 
As  soon  as  Coyote-Man  cut  him,  down  came  a  lot  of  pecans,  so  that  there 

1  Told  by  Cheyenne-Chief,  Skidi.  The  story  is  told  to  the  children  so  that  they 
may  be  on  the  lookout  for  tricky  men  and  those  who  are  always  bothering  children. 


44O  COYOTE  TALES. 

was  a  big  pile  on  the  ground.  Then  the  Squirrel  ran  up  the  tree  and 
said:  "Now,  grandfather,  you  may  eat  those  nuts."  Coyote-Man  then 
said:  "Grandchildren,  these  taste  very  good.  Grandchildren,  take  pity 
on  your  grandfather  and  teach  him  how  to  do  that  trick. "  Then  the 
Squirrel  said:  "Go;  you  can  do  that  three  or  four  times  a  day,  but  not 
more  than  three  or  four  times. " 

Coyote-Man  ran  to  his  home,  called  his  wife,  told  her  to  cut  him,  and 
down  poured  pecans.  The  children  gathered  around  and  ate,  and  after 
they  had  eaten  all  of  them  up,  he  said:  "Did  you  all  have  enough?" 
They  said:  "No. "  Then  he  told  his  wife  to  cut  him  again,  and  again  they 
had  pecans  to  eat.  Four  times  he  was  cut  and  then  he  tried  the  fifth 
time.  When  the  woman  brought  her  knife  down  upon  him,  instead  of 
pecans,  blood  flowed  out  and  he  became  scared  and  ran  to  the  Squirrels. 
He  came  to  the  Squirrels  and  said:  "My  grandchildren,  I  must  have 
made  a  mistake.  The  blood  is  flowing  from  me."  The  Squirrels  said: 
' '  That  is  wrong.  We  knew  that  you  would  not  do  as  we  told  you.  We  will 
stop  the  blood  and  heal  the  wound,  but  the  power  is  all  taken  from  you. " 

He  went  along  the  banks  of  a  creek  and  he  found  some  Beavers.  He 
commenced  to  beg  of  them  for  something  to  eat.  One  of  the  Beavers 
told  him  to  go  and  get  some  bark  from  a  cottonwood  tree.  When  he 
brought  the  bark  the  Beaver  told  Coyote-Man  to  rub  his  hands  upon  the 
bark,  so  that  they  would  become  soft.  Then  the  Beavers  told  him  to 
take  his  knife  and  cut  his  scrotum,  which  he  did.  As  soon  as  Coyote- 
Man  cut  himself  oil  came  out  and  the  Beaver  poured  the  oil  over  the 
powdered  bark.  The  Beaver  told  Coyote-Man  to  stir  the  bark  up,  and 
when  Coyote-Man  did  that  the  mixture  turned  into  pemmican.  Coyote- 
Man  ate  the  pemmican  and  then  he  began  to  beg  of  the  Beaver  to  teach 
him  to  do  the  same  thing.  The  Beavers  taught  him  and  told  him  that 
he  could  do  that  four  times  a  day  and  no  more. 

Old  Coyote-Man  went  home.  He  told  his  wife  to  get  her  knife  and 
catch  hold  of  his  scrotum  and  cut  it.  He  placed  some  pounded  bark 
under  him  which  he  had  gathered  on  his  way.  When  she  cut  him  the 
oil  came  out,  and  he  poured  it  over  the  bark  and  made  pemmican.  The 
children  ate  of  it,  but  they  did  not  seem  to  get  enough,  so  he  tried  it  for 
four  times.  The  children  did  not  have  enough,  and  he  tried  it  the  fifth 
time.  When  the  woman  cut  him  there  came  out  blood  instead  of  oil. 
He  ran  to  the  Beavers  and  told  them  that  he  had  made  a  mistake  and  he 
wanted  them  to  heal  him.  The  Beavers  healed  him  up,  but  they  took 
the  power  from  him. 

Coyote-Man  went  along  and  wandered  over  the  country.  One  fine 
day  he  got  into  a  thick  timber.  As  he  went  along  he  saw  a  Bear  coming. 


COYOTE-MAN  AND  HIS  TRICKS.  441 

The  Bear  stopped  and  looked  at  him  and  said:  "Grandfather,  where  are 
you  going?"  Coyote-Man  said:  "I  am  going  to  a  village  west  of  here." 
Coyote-Man  asked  the  Bear  where  he  was  going,  and  the  Bear  said  that  he 
was  going  to  his  den.  As  soon  as  the  Bear  had  gone,  Coyote-Man  ran 
through  the  timber  and  made  a  big  circle.  He  came  to  a  little  creek. 
He  put  some  mud  upon  his  head  and  upon  his  body.  Then  he  took  white 
clay  and  put  it  upon  his  lips,  so  that  when  the  clay  dried  it  looked  as  if 
his  lips  were  chapped. 

After  a  while  he  met  the  Bear.  Coyote-Man  stopped  the  Bear  and 
said:  "My  grandchild,  you  should  take  pity  on  your  grandfather. 
You  have  many  things  to  eat,  while  I  have  none.  You  see  how  your 
grandfather's  mouth  is  chapped.  You  should  give  a  little  grease  to 
your  grandfather  to  grease  his  lips.  See  how  his  lips  are  chapped. "  The 
Bear  said:  "I  know  that  you  are  tricky.  I  can  not  do  that  for  you." 
Coyote-Man  begged  so  hard  that  at  last  the  Bear  gave  in.  Then  the 
Bear  said:  "Cut  me  on  the  loin  and  take  a  little  tallow  to  grease  your 
lips."  The  Bear  lay  down  and  Coyote-Man  took  his  knife  and  com- 
menced to  cut  the  Bear.  When  Coyote-Man  began  to  cut,  the  Bear 
grunted,  for  the  cut  was  paining  him.  Then  Coyote-Man  would  say: 
"Grandchild,  I  have  just  begun  to  cut  it."  Coyote-Man  had  already 
made  a  deep  cut.  Then  he  took  one  of  his  spiked  arrows  and  put  it 
into  the  wound  and  rammed  it  in  hard.  As  he  drove  it  in  he  said:  "I 
thought  I  could  fool  you,  Bear,  and  I  now  kill  you. "  Coyote-Man  killed 
the  Bear.  He  went  through  a  timber  and  found  a  big  pile  of  dried  limbs. 
He  returned,  skinned  the  Bear,  and  cut  up  the  meat.  Then  he  took  the 
meat  to  where  the  pile  of  dried  limbs  was,  carrying  a  little  at  a  time. 
He  made  a  big  fire  and  began  to  roast  some  of  the  meat.  He  did  not 
want  to  eat  any  of  the  meat  until  every  piece  of  it  was  roasted.  When 
the  meat  was  roasted  he  took  a  thigh  bone  and  placed  it  upon  some 
leaves.  He  cut  a  big  piece  to  eat. 

Right  above  him  he  heard  the  squeaking  of  a  tree.  He  dropped 
his  meat  and  looked  up  and  said:  "Stop  that  noise  up  there.  If  you 
speak  again  I  will  come  up  there  and  kill  you. "  He  cut  another  piece 
off  and  just  about  that  time  the  tree  squeaked  again  and  he  threw  down 
the  meat.  Then  the  squeaking  continued.  Coyote-Man  jumped  up, 
ran  up  the  tree,  and  he  saw  where  the  two  trees  were  rubbing,  and  this 
was  what  caused  the  noise.  He  placed  his  hands  there  and  said:  "Now 
squeak  again  and  see  if  I  don't  catch  you  and  kill  you. "  The  trees  moved 
and  caught  his  hand.  There  he  sat  in  the  tree  with  his  hand  caught. 
Then  he  would  say:  "My  grandchild,  let  go  of  my  hand  now.  I  want 
to  go  down  and  eat  and  you  can  squeak  all  you  desire. "  He  looked  and 


442  COYOTE   TALES. 

he  saw  a  big  drove  of  Coyotes  at  a  distance.  He  began  to  yell  and  say: 
"Coyotes,  you  must  not  come  this  way,  for  I  have  a  lot  of  cooked  meat 
here  and  I  do  not  want  you  to  come  near  me."  The  Coyotes  stopped 
and  said:  "Listen;  that  man  is  calling  us.  He  says  he  has  a  lot  of  meat 
cooked  near  where  he  is."  The  Coyotes  ran  to  where  he  was.  They 
got  to  the  meat,  began  to  eat  it,  and  finally  they  ate  it  all  up.  They  then 
went  away.  Just  as  they  went  away  the  trees  opened  and  Coyote-Man 
got  loose.  He  went  down  and  began  to  scold  himself  for  allowing  the 
other  Coyotes  to  eat  up  his  meat.  He  had  to  lick  the  grease  which  had 
dropped  from  the  meat,  for  that  was  all  that  was  left. 

Coyote-Man  went  on  through  another  timber,  when  he  met  a  strange 
man.  The  man  had  on  a  buzzard  cap,  a  buffalo  robe,  an  eagle  wing  in  his 
left  and  a  gourd  rattle  in  his  right  hand.  Upon  his  back  was  his  medi- 
cine-bag. When  Coyote-Man  met  this  man  he  said:  "Grandchild,  where 
are  you  going?"  The  strange  man  said:  "I  am  going  to  a  village  west 
of  here.  I  am  doctoring  the  chief's  son,  who  was  wounded  in  battle. 
To-day  I  doctor  him  for  the  last  time.  I  am  to  bathe  him  and  then  I 
receive  my  pay  in  presents. "  Coyote-Man  said:  "What  do  you  do  when 
you  approach  the  village?"  The  man  said:  "When  I  approach  the 
village  I  stop  and  sit  down  for  a  little  while.  Then  I  get  up  and  sing: 

With  a  medicine-case  on  his  back. 
With  a  medicine-case  on  his  back. 
With  a  medicine-case  on  his  back. 
With  a  medicine-case  on  his  back. 
With  a  medicine-case  on  his  back. 
With  a  medicine-case  on  his  back.'! 

As  he  sang  he  danced  the  way  he  did  when  he  was  near  the  village. 
Then  the  man  said:  "When  I  am  through  dancing  I  walk  closer  to  the 
village  and  then  I  sing  again."  Coyote-Man  said:  "Sing  it  again. '* 
The  man  began  to  sing  and  dance.  Coyote-Man  began  to  dance  with  him. 
He  kept  on  asking  the  man  to  sing  and  dance  until  he  learned  both  the 
dance  and  the  song.  Then  he  asked  him  what  he  did  when  he  went  in  to 
doctor  the  wounded  man.  The  man  told  all  that  he  did,  and  also  told  how 
he  was  to  let  all  the  people  go  out  of  the  lodge  and  he  was  to  bathe  the  sick 
man  and  then  he  was  to  receive  his  pay.  When  Coyote-Man  thought  he 
knew  all  the  songs  he  took  a  club,  hit  the  man  on  the  head,  and  killed  him. 
Then  he  removed  his  clothing  and  put  them  on  himself.  He  went  on  to 
the  village.  As  he  went  out  from  the  timber  he  stopped  and  began  to 
sing  the  song  he  had  learned  from  the  medicine-man.  After  he  had  sung 
and  danced  four  times  he  went  on.  When  he  was  near  the  village  he 
stopped  and  sang  and  danced,  just  as  the  medicine-man  had  told  him. 


COYOTE-MAN   AND   HIS   TRICKS.  445 

After  he  was  through  dancing  he  sat  down  upon  the  ground.  After  a 
while  the  men  came  out  for  him,  placed  a  robe  upon  the  ground,  and  placed 
Coyote-Man  on  the  robe.  Then  these  men  carried  Coyote-Man  to  the 
lodge.  When  Coyote-Man  was  placed  in  the  lodge  he  took  his  bundle, 
put  it  in  the  lodge,  and  said:  "You  people  can  now  go  out  from  the  lodge 
and  stay  at  a  distance,  for  I  am  to  wash  this  young  man  and  put  medi- 
cine upon  him."  The  people  went  out  and  stood  some  distance  away. 
Coyote-Man  took  a  kettle,  placed  it  upon  the  fire,  and  went  and  got  a  piece 
of  iron.  This  he  placed  in  the  fire.  Then  he  told  the  wounded  man  to 
sit  near  the  fire  and  he  would  wash  his  wound.  The  man  began  to  feel 
of  the  wound  and  it  was  almost  healed.  Coyote-Man  took  the  red-hot 
iron  from  the  fire,  rammed  it  into  the  side  of  the  young  man,  and  said: 
"This  is  the  way  I  doctor  you.  I  will  kill  you  and  that  will  be  the  end  of 
you."  He  killed  him,  took  out  his  knife,  and  cut  him  up.  He  cut  the 
meat  into  small  slices  and  put  it  in  a  kettle. 

After  he  had  eaten  he  saw  a  little  Snake  crawling  up  towards  him,  and 
the  Coyote-Man  said:  "My  grandson,  I  will  give  you  something  to  eat." 
Coyote-Man  cut  a  strip  of  meat  and  shoved  it  down  into  the  throat  of  the 
Snake,  so  that  it  was  nearly  choked  and  could  not  speak.  The  Snake 
crawled  out  of  the  lodge  and  went  to  where  the  people  were.  It  was 
windy,  so  that  when  the  Snake  tried  to  speak  the  people  could  not  hear  it. 
The  Snake  came  close  to  one  person  and  spoke  to  him.  The  Snake  spoke 
very  low,  for  it  could  hardly  speak  on  account  of  the  meat  which  was  down 
in  its  throat.  The  person  then  said: ' '  People,  this  Snake  says  something. ' ' 
They  all  stopped  and  listened  and  the  Snake  spoke  again  in  a  whisper  and 
said:  "That  man  killed  the  boy  in  the  lodge  some  time  ago,  and  has  eaten 
him  up." 

The  people  then  ran  to  the  lodge  and  there  they  found  the  bones  of 
the  boy  and  some  of  the  meat  still  boiling,  but  the  man  was  gone.  They 
hunted  for  him  through  the  timber,  but  they  could  not  find  him.  His 
medicine-bag  and  other  things  were  left  in  the  lodge. 

Coyote-Man,  after  he  left  the  lodge,  went  through  the  timber,  and  after 
a  while  he  went  out  and  began  to  climb  a  hill.  As  he  reached  the  top  of 
the  hill  he  saw  several  Buzzards  sitting  upon  the  hill.  Then  he  began  to 
talk  to  the  Buzzards  and  they  listened  to  him.  Coyote-Man  asked  the 
Buzzards  to  carry  him  up  into  the  sky,  so  that  he  could  look  down  as  they 
did  and  see  what  the  earth  was  like.  Two  Buzzards  went  away,  while 
two  remained  behind.  The  two  who  remained  behind  told  Coyote-Man 
to  put  his  arms  around  their  necks  and  they  would  take  him  up.  When 
the  Buzzards  flew  the  Coyote-Man  would  say:  "Grandchildren,  wait, 
wait;  I  can  not  stand  this.  You  might  drop  me." 


COYOTB  TALES. 

Several  times  they  flew  with  him,  but  each  time  Coyote-Man  begged 
them  to  go  back  to  the  ground.  At  last  the  other  two  Buzzards  told 
Coyote-Man  that  he  must  close  his  eyes.  Coyote-Man  closed  his  eyes 
and  the  Buzzards  flew  up.  After  they  were  away  up  high  then  they 
told  the  Coyote-Man  to  look.  Coyote-Man  looked  down  and  he  could 
see  game  upon  the  ground.  Then  he  said:  "My  grandchildren,  if  I  had 
power  to  fly  high  I  could  see  where  the  game  is  and  then  go  down  and 
kill  it.  I  would  then  have  plenty  to  eat."  The  Buzzards  kept  flying 
with  him.  The  other  two  who  had  left  first  were  in  the  lead.  After 
a  while  the  two  leading  Buzzards  circled  around.  Then  the  Buzzards 
told  him  to  close  his  eyes.  When  the  Buzzards  swung  around  they 
came  to  a  certain  place  and  there  the  two  Buzzards  separated,  one  going 
one  way  and  the  other  another  way. 

Coyote-Man  was  dropped  into  a  hollow  log,  for  the  Buzzards  wanted 
to  kill  him.  The  two  who  had  gone  on  ahead  of  the  other  two  found  the 
hollow  log.  When  they  found  it  they  brought  the  other  two,  who  were 
flying  with  Coyote-Man.  Coyote-Man  remained  in  this  hollow  log  for 
several  days.  There  were  holes  in  the  sides  of  the  hollow  log.  Coyote- 
Man  began  to  make  them  a  little  larger,  so  that  he  could  look  through 
them.  One  day  he  heard  a  great  noise,  as  if  there  were  many  people 
traveling.  He  made  a  big  hole.  He  looked  and  saw  many  people 
traveling.  They  were  making  their  camp  near  the  log.  After  the  women 
had  put  up  their  tipis  they  went  into  the  timber  to  gather  dry  limbs.  When 
Coyote-Man  saw  the  women  coming  he  took  his  quiver,  cut  the  raccoon 
tails  from  his  quiver,  and  stuck  them  into  the  holes  of  the  log.  When  the 
women  came  and  saw  the  raccoon  tails  they  thought  that  they  had  found 
a  hollow  log  where  the  raccoons  stayed.  When  the  women  came  to  the  tree 
they  saw  the  tails  sticking  out.  They  caught  hold  of  the  tails  and  pulled 
them.  Coyote-Man  pulled  inside.  Then  the  women  said:  "Here  are 
some  raccoons.  Let  us  cut  the  tree  down  and  get  them  out."  They  cut 
the  tree  down,  and  as  it  fell  over  Coyote-Man  stood  up  and  said:  "What 
do  you  women  mean  by  cutting  down  my  house?  This  is  my  house." 
He  was  very  angry  with  the  women,  but  at  the  same  time  he  was  thank- 
ful that  they  had  cut  down  the  tree. 

Coyote-Man  left  the  place  and  traveled  on.  He  came  to  a  place  where 
there  were  two  women  gathering  wood.  He  went  by  them  and  came  to  a 
baby  tied  to  a  baby-board  standing  against  a  tree.  Coyote-Man  pulled 
out  the  baby,  cut  off  its  head,  and  put  the  head  in  the  cradle  again.  When 
the  women  came  they  took  up  their  baby,  and  when  they  slung  it  upon 
their  backs  the  head  fell  out.  The  two  women  then  knew  that  the  Coyote- 
Man  had  been  there.  Coyote-Man  went  on  and  came  to  another  village. 


COYOTE-MAN  AND  HIS  TRICKS.  445 

About  this  time  the  people  went  out  to  hunt  for  Coyote-Man.  They 
found  him,  made  a  big  fire,  and  placed  him  upon  it.  After  a  while  a  noise 
was  heard  something  like  a  gun-shot.  They  saw  something  pop  from 
the  fire.  The  thing  flew  over  into  the  timber,  and  as  it  fell  it  gave  one 
big  warwhoop.  The  people  say  that  instead  of  Coyote-Man  burning  up 
he  jumped  over  into  the  timber  and  turned  into  a  hairy  man.  He  was 
never  to  associate  with  the  people  any  more. 

125.  COYOTE  TAKES  THE  PIPE-STICKS  TO  THE  BEAVERS.1 

Coyote  lived  in  a  lodge  with  his  wife  and  many  children.  The  children 
became  hungry  and  so  Coyote  made  up  his  mind  that  he  would  go  off 
and  hunt  something  for  them  to  eat.  He  went  towards  the  creek  and 
there  he  found  many  Beavers  along  the  banks  of  the  stream.  Coyote 
sat  down  and  tried  to  think  what  would  be  the  best  way  to  kill  some  of  the 
Beavers.  He  made  up  his  mind  to  make  pipe-sticks,  and  so  he  went 
back  to  his  lodge,  sat  down,  and  made  the  pipe-sticks.  Then  he  went 
back  to  where  the  Beavers  were  and  asked  permission  that  he  be  allowed 
to  enter  their  lodge.  The  Beavers  gave  their  consent.  Coyote  went  in 
with  the  pipe-sticks  and  sang  this  song  to  the  Beavers: 

The  Beaver  who  swims  with  a  stick 

Is  my  child,  my  son. 

This  club  hanging  to  my  belt 

I  shall  use  upon  him. 

The  Beavers  were  satisfied.  Then  Coyote  told  them  that  where  he 
lived  away  up  on  the  hill  was  the  main  party  of  the  pipe-stick  people; 
that  the  Beavers  would  have  to  come  and  meet  the  party;  that  the 
Beavers  were  now  children  of  Coyote's  people,  and  that  they  were  the 
Beavers'  fathers.  The  Beavers  agreed,  although  they  had  heard  Coyote 
say  in  the  singing  something  about  his  war  club,  which  was  in  his  belt. 

That  made  them  suspicious,  but  the  majority  of  them  thought  that 
there  was  no  danger,  and  so  they  agreed  to  go  and  meet  Coyote  upon  the 
hill.  Coyote,  knowing  the  distance  from  the  hill  to  the  creek,  thought  if 
the  Beavers  went  upon  the  land  near  the  hill  he  could  kill  many  of  them 
with  his  club.  When  the  Beavers  came  towards  the  hill  Coyote  looked 
down  and  saw  that  most  of  them  were  near  the  foot  of  the  hill.  Then 
he  ran  down  with  his  club.  As  he  lifted  his  club  he  shouted:  "You  fool- 
ish Beavers,  you  have  no  fathers  to  meet.  It  is  I  who  am  starving  and 
I  now  kill  you  so  that  my  children  may  eat  you."  Coyote  began  to  kill 

1  Told  by  White-Horse,  Pitahauirat.  The  story  is  told  to  the  people  so  that 
they  might  be  careful  in  receiving  the  Pipe-stick  ceremony  from  unknown  people. 


446  COYOTE   TALES. 

the  Beavers,  and  some  of  them  ran  away  into  the  water.  Coyote  then 
went  up  and  brought  his  children  and  they  took  the  Beavers  up  to  their 
lodge.  There  they  skinned  them  and  had  plenty  to  eat.  After  they  had 
eaten  all  their  meat  they  tried  to  play  the  same  trick  on  the  Beavers 
again,  but  the  Beavers  would  not  listen  to  Coyote  any  more. 

126.  COYOTE  AND  THE  ROLLING  STONE.1 

Coyote  was  going  along,  and  as  he  had  not  had  anything  to  eat  for 
some  time  he  was  very  hungry.  In  the  evening  he  went  to  a  high  hill  and 
sat  down.  Early  the  next  morning  he  started  again.  He  came  to  a  big 
round  stone.  He  took  out  his  knife  and  said:  "Grandfather,  this  knife 
I  give  to  you  as  a  present.  I  want  you  to  help  me  to  get  something  to  eat. ' ' 

Coyote  went  over  a  hill,  and  there  in  the  bottom  was  a  village  of  people. 
He  went  into  the  village  and  he  could  see  meat  hanging  on  poles  every- 
where in  the  camp.  He  went  into  one  of  the  tipis  and  the  people  in  the 
tipi  roasted  a  piece  of  meat  for  him.  Just  as  he  was  about  to  taste  of  the 
meat  he  thought  of  his  knife  and  said:  "Why  did  I  give  my  knife  to  that 
stone  ?  I  should  have  kept  it  and  then  I  should  have  been  able  to  cut  the 
meat  without  having  to  pull  it  with  my  hands."  He  asked  to  be  excused 
and  went  out.  He  went  to  where  the  stone  was.  He  said : ' '  Grandfather, 
I  will  have  to  take  back  this  knife,  for  I  have  found  a  village  of  people  with 
plenty  of  meat."  He  went  over  the  hills  and  into  the  bottom,  but  there 
was  no  village  there.  Coyote  went  back  and  returned  the  knife  to  the 
stone.  He  went  back  over  the  hills  and  there  saw  the  village  and  he 
entered  one  of  the  tipis.  They  placed  before  him  some  meat.  He  began 
to  chew  the  meat.  He  thought  of  his  knife.  He  went  back  to  the  stone, 
and  as  he  took  the  knife  the  stone  said:  "Why  do  you  take  the  knife 
away  from  me?  I  am  now  going  to  kill  you."  Then  the  stone  ran  after 
the  Coyote.  Coyote  ran  and  came  to  a  den  of  Bears.  He  told  the  Bears 
that  a  person  was  running  after  him  and  he  asked  them  to  help  him.  The 
Bears  said  that  they  were  not  afraid  of  anything.  They  asked  what  the 
thing  was,  and  he  said  it  was  the  stone.  The  Bears  said:  "Keep  on  run- 
ning. We  can  not  do  anything  with  the  stone."  The  stone  was  close  to 
Coyote  when  he  came  up  to  another  den  of  Mountain-Lions.  They  also 
told  Coyote  to  pass  on,  as  they  could  not  do  anything  for  him.  After 
awhile  Coyote  came  to  a  Buffalo  standing  all  alone,  but  when  the  Buffalo 
found  out  that  it  was  the  stone  running  after  Coyote  he  told  him  to  pass  on. 

'  l  Told  by  Leading-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  is  told  to  the  children  so  that 
when  they  give  presents  to  stones,  trees,  or  any  other  thing  they  must  never  take 
them  away  again;  that  if  they  took  away  the  presents  something  would  happen  to 
them  and  cause  their  death. 


COYOTE   AND  THE  ROLLING  STONE.  447 

At  last  Coyote  came  to  a  place  where  the  Bull-Bats  stayed.  Coyote 
said:  "Grandchildren,  there  is  a  person  running  after  me."  The  Bull- 
Bats  then  said:  "Enter  our  lodge  and  remain  there."  When  the  stone 
came  rolling  up  it  said:  "Where  is  that  person  who  came  here?"  The 
Bull-Bats  did  not  reply  and  the  stone  became  angry.  Then  the  Bull- 
Bats  said:  "He  is  here  and  we  are  going  to  protect  him."  The  Bull-Bats 
flew  up  and  then  down,  and  they  expelled  flatus  on  the  stone.  Every 
time  they  did  this  a  piece  broke  off  from  the  stone.  The  largest  Bull-Bat 
came  down  and  expelled  flatus  right  on  the  center  and  broke  the  stone 
into  pieces.  Then  the  Coyote  was  told  to  come  out  and  go  on  his  way. 

Coyote  started  off,  and  when  he  got  over  the  hills  he  turned  around  and 
yelled  at  the  Bull-Bats  and  said:  "All  you  big-nosed,  funny  things,  how 
you  did  behave  to  that  stone . ' '  The  Bull-B  ats  heard  it  and  did  not  pay  any 
attention,  but  he  kept  on  making  fun  of  them.  Then  the  Bull-Bats  flew 
up  in  a  group,  and  came  down,  and  with  their  wings  they  got  the  stones 
together  again  and  started  it  to  rolling,  and  said :  "  Go  and  kill  that  fellow. ' ' 
The  stone  then  ran  after  Coyote  and  Coyote  tried  to  get  away,  but  he 
could  not.  At  last  he  gave  out.  He  jumped  over  a  steep  bank  and  the 
stone  was  right  behind  him.  As  Coyote  struck  the  bottom,  the  stone  fell 
on  him  and  killed  him.  This  is  why  we  used  to  find  dead  coyotes  in  the 
hills  and  valleys. 

127.  COYOTE  AND  THE   ROLLING  SKULL.1 

Coyote  was  going  along,  and  he  became  very  hungry.  He  came  to  a 
wide  prairie  covered  with  tall  buffalo-grass.  He  stopped  and  sang: 

What  a  fine  place  this  is; 

I  wish  I  could  run  the  buffalo  around; 

Thus  I  might  get  something  to  eat. 

Close  by  where  Coyote  was  singing  a  voice  spoke  and  said:  "Stop 
singing  and  dancing  around  my  place."  Then  the  skull  began  to  sing: 

Here   my   skull   rests, 
Here  my  skull  rests, 
Surrounded  by  a  path. 
Here  my  skull  rests. 

JTold  by  White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  This  story  was  originally  told  by  his  grand- 
father, one  of  the  leading  medicine-men  of  the  Kitkehahki.  It  is  told  to  teach  the 
children  that  when  they  find  skulls  upon  the  prairie  they  must  not  call  them 
names  nor  kick  them  around.  The  children  are  taught  by  the  story  that  skulls  have 
supernatural  power. 


448  COYOTE   TALES. 

Here  my  skull  rests, 

But  there  you  stand,  Coyote, 

Dying  of  starvation. 

Here  my   skull   rests. 

Here  my  skull  rests, 

But  there  you  stand,  Coyote, 

Awaiting  the  odor  of  meat  borne  by  the  wind 

Here  my  skull  rests. 

Coyote  looked  up  and  said:  "And  who  are  you  that  I  should  be  afraid 
of  you?"  Just  then  a  skull  rolled  up,  and  when  Coyote  saw  the  skull  he 
ran.  He  ran  from  one  place  to  another,  but  the  skull  pursued  him.  At 
last  he  ran  to  a  village  of  people  and  just  as  he  ran  into  the  village  and 
called  to  them  the  skull  devoured  him.  The  people  who  ran  out  from  their 
village  were  also  devoured  by  the  skull.  Four  girls  escaped  and  started  to 
run,  but  the  skull  pursued  them.  When  the  skull  was  about  to  catch  one 
of  the  girls,  she  threw  her  pack  strings  upon  the  ground,  and  many  bunches 
of  cactus  sprang  up  over  the  land.  The  girls  ran  on,  and  the  skull  tried 
to  get  over  the  cactus,  but  could  not  until  it  had  tried  many  times.  When 
it  did  get  over  it  ran  and  killed  the  woman  who  had  thrown  the  pack 
strings.  The  second  woman  threw  her  pack  strings  upon  the  ground  and 
there  was  a  big  stream  of  water  and  a  steep  bank.  The  skull  could  not 
cross  the  stream  of  water,  but  somehow  it  managed  to  jump  upon  logs 
which  were  floating  down  and  so  crossed  the  stream.  Then  it  took  after 
the  woman  and  killed  her. 

When  the  skull  was  about  to  overtake  the  other  two  women,  one  of 
them  threw  her  pack  strings  upon  the  ground  and  there  was  a  steep  bank. 
But  somehow  the  skull  managed  to  climb  up  and  took  after  the  woman 
and  killed  her.  Then  the  fourth  girl,  the  youngest,  ran  and  cried  for  help. 
A  Bull-Bat  flew  by  her  and  told  her  to  go  down  into  the  hollow;  that  there 
she  would  see  a  man ;  that  he  alone  could  help  her.  The  girl  went  down 
into  the  ravine  and  there  she  saw  a  little  lodge  and  a  small  boy,  as  she 
thought,  sitting  outside  of  the  lodge.  She  told  him  that  a  skull  was  com- 
ing after  her.  He  told  her  to  go  into  his  lodge,  and  he  would  stay  where 
he  was.  The  skull  came  and  asked  the  little  fellow  if  a  girl  had  gone  on 
by.  He  paid  no  attention  to  the  skull,  and  the  skull  became  angry  and 
was  about  to  devour  him,  when  he  opened  his  mouth  and  blew  with  his 
breath  a  little  blue  bead.  The  blue  bead  struck  the  skull  upon  the  fore- 
liead,  killing  it.  The  little  fellow  told  the  girl  to  go  on  her  way;  that  the 
skull  was  killed  and  would  never  molest  the  people  any  more.  The  little 
fellow  was  Milk- Weed  and  the  girl  was  called  Rolling  Skull. 


COYOTE  TURNS  INTO  A  BUFFALO.  449 

128.  COYOTE   TURNS  INTO   A   BUFFALO.1 

Coyote,  starving,  met  a  Buffalo  bull  grazing.  Coyote  watched  the 
Buffalo  eat  grass  and  said:  "Grandfather,  how  you  eat!"  The  Buffalo 
did  not  notice  Coyote.  After  a  while  Coyote  began  to  run  around  in 
front  of  the  Buffalo  bull.  The  Buffalo  bull  stopped  eating,  looked  at 
Coyote,  and  said: ' '  My  grandson,  why  do  you  run  around  and  bother  me  ?" 
Coyote  said:  "Grandfather,  you  have  grass  to  eat  all  over  this  country, 
and  here  I  am  starving  because  I  can  find  nothing  to  eat."  The  Buffalo 
said:  "My  grandson,  what  you  say  is  true,  but  I  know  you  and  I  can  not 
help  you.  You  are  tricky.  I  might  do  something  for  you,  but  you  would 
do  something  which  was  wrong  and  you  would  be  killed."  But  Coyote 
said:  "No,  my  grandfather.  I  do  not  think  that  if  you  take  pity  on  me 
I  shall  do  anything  wrong."  The  Buffalo  then  looked  up  and  said:  "If 
you  are  in  earnest  and  want  to  be  like  me,  go  and  hunt  a  buffalo  wallow." 
The  Coyote  went  and  found  a  buffalo  wallow,  then  he  came  back  and  told 
the  Buffalo  bull  that  he  had  found  a  buffalo  wallow.  They  went  along 
together  and  the  Buffalo  bull  ran  towards  Coyote,  and  when  the  Buffalo 
bull  made  a  motion  to  hook,  Coyote  jumped  to  one  side  and  the  Buffalo 
went  by.  Then  the  Buffalo  said:  "I  see  that  what  I  said  is  true.  You 
are  not  in  earnest.  You  jump  to  one  side.  I  can  not  do  anything  for 
you."  Three  times  the  Buffalo  ran  towards  Coyote  and  every  time 
Coyote  jumped  aside.  The  Buffalo  became  angry  and  was  going  away, 
but  Coyote  begged  hard  for  him  to  take  pity  on  him  once  more.  Coyote 
made  up  his  mind  that  he  would  rather  be  killed  than  starve  to  death, 
and  so  he  stood  in  the  buffalo  wallow.  The  Buffalo  ran  towards  him 
and  tried  to  hook  him,  but  when  his  horns  touched  Coyote  he  turned 
into  a  Buffalo,  and  there  the  two  Buffalo  fought  with  locked  horns,  push- 
ing one  another  about.  Then  the  Buffalo  said:  "My  grandchild,  there 
you  are.  Now  you  can  eat  all  of  this  good  grass  that  you  see  over  this 
land.  Stay  with  me  for  several  days,  and  learn  our  powers.  Graze  upon 
high  hills  so  that  you  can  see  a  long  distance,  and  when  you  see  people 
coming  always  run.  In  the  night  follow  the  ravines,  and  when  you  have 
come  to  a  bunch  of  grass  and  weeds  sit  down  in  the  center  of  the  weeds. 
In  the  morning  go  again  upon  the  high  hills  and  graze." 

Coyote-Buffalo  remained  with  the  Buffalo.  After  a  while  the  Buffalo 
told  Coyote-Buffalo  to  go  on  and  do  as  he  had  told  him.  He  told  him 
that  whenever  he  sat  down  to  always  have  his  nose  towards  the  wind,  so 

'Told  by  White-Horse,  Pitahauirat.  The  story  is  told  to  the  children  so  that 
they  might  learn,  that  whatever  power  they  should  receive  from  animals  they  must 
keep  it  to  themselves  and  not  try  to  give  it  to  some  one  else;  that  if  they  did  their 
power  would  go  from  them  and  they  would  be  as  poor  as  ever. 


450  COYOTE   TALES. 

that  if  any  people  should  come  he  could  smell  them  for  a  long  distance 
and  could  run  from  them.  While  Coyote-Buffalo  was  grazing  he  saw  a 
Coyote  sitting  near  him,  and  Coyote-Buffalo  said:  "My  grandchild,  what 
do  you  want?"  Coyote  said  that  he  was  starving  and  would  like  to  be 
like  the  Buffalo,  so  that  he  could  get  plenty  of  grass  to  eat.  Coyote- 
Buffalo  said:  "That  is  easy.  I  was  a  Coyote,  but  I  was  turned  into  a 
Buffalo.  You  find  a  buffalo  wallow  and  I  will  take  pity  upon  you  and 
make  you  like  a  Buffalo.  You  must  be  brave,  and  then  you  shall  be  like 
me."  The  Coyote  found  a  buffalo  wallow  and  they  went  to  it.  Coyote- 
Buffalo  put  the  Coyote  into  the  buffalo  wallow  and  told  him  to  stand 
there.  Then  Coyote-Buffalo  ran  toward  the  Coyote,  thinking  that  he 
would  have  the  power  to  turn  the  Coyote  into  a  Buffalo.  He  ran,  and 
when  he  tried  to  hook  the  Coyote,  the  Coyote  turned  around  and  tried  to 
bite  him.  As  Coyote-Buffalo  struck  the  Coyote  he  turned  into  a  Coyote 
again  and  there  were  two  Coyotes  with  their  mouths  locked  together. 
When  he  got  loose,  Coyote  who  had  been  a  Buffalo  began  to  call  the 
other  Coyote  names,  and  said:  "You  have  done  me  a  great  wrong. 
I  am  now  a  Coyote  again."  The  other  Coyote  ran  away. 

Coyote  who  had  been  a  Buffalo  went  back  to  the  Buffalo  and  said: 
"Grandfather,  I  am  sorry.  When  I  was  running  I  fell  down  and  I  turned 
into  a  Coyote  again.  Take  pity  upon  me  and  I  will  be  more  careful  after 
this."  The  Buffalo  told  Coyote  to  find  another  buffalo  wallow.  Coyote 
found  it  and  stood  in  the  buffalo  wallow,  and  the  Buffalo  ran,  and  as  his 
horns  struck  Coyote  he  again  turned  into  a  Buffalo.  He  said:  "Now,  do 
not  try  to  turn  Coyotes  into  Buffalo,  but  stay  with  me." 

After  they  were  together  for  several  days,  Coyote-Buffalo  said:  "I  will 
travel  towards  the  west;"  and  the  Buffalo  said:  "Good!  On  your  way 
you  will  meet  twenty  Buffalo  running  fast.  There  will  be  nineteen  Buf- 
falo cows  and  one  bull.  When  the  bull  sees  you  and  stops  he  will  say: 
'Join  us;  let  us  go  where  the  people  are,  so  that  we  may  receive  smoke. ' 
Do  not  listen  to  him.  You  must  not  go  with  him.  You  must  stay  away 
from  him."  Coyote  said:  "Grandfather,  I  will  do  as  you  say."  Coyote- 
Buffalo  went  west.  For  several  days  he  traveled,  and  one  evening  he 
heard  Buffalo  coming,  running  fast.  He  jumped  up  and  stood  in  the 
pathway.  The  Buffalo  cows  passed,  but  when  the  bull  came  up  he  said: 
"My  brother,  let  us  go  where  the  people  are,  so  that  we  may  receive 
smoke."  Coyote-Buffalo  said:  "Good!  I  will  go  with  you."  They  be- 
gan to  run.  Towards  evening  they  overtook  the  Buffalo  cows  and  they 
went  on  together.  In  the  evening  the  Buffalo  sat  down  to  rest.  Then 
the  Buffalo  bull  said:  "It  is  not  far  to  go  where  we  are  going,  and  there 
we  shall  receive  smoke."  Coyote-Buffalo  said:  "Let  us,  then,  start  again 


COYOTE  TURNS  INTO  A  BUFFALO.  4$I 

and  get  there  as  soon  as  we  can."  The  Buffalo  arose,  and  they  ran  for 
some  time  in  the  night.  When  they  came  to  ravines  they  squatted  down 
and  Coyote-Buffalo  said:  "My  brother,  let  us  now  smoke."  The  Buffalo 
bull  said:  "Why,  do  you  not  know  what  I  mean  when  I  say  that  we  are 
going  for  smoke?"  Coyote-Buffalo  did  not  know,  but  he  said:  "Oh, 
I  had  forgotten.  We  are  not  to  get  smoke  yet."  In  the  morning  they 
started  again.  Every  time  they  stopped  Coyote-Buffalo  would  say:  "Let 
us  now  smoke."  The  Buffalo  would  say:  "Why,  do  you  not  know  what 
I  mean  when  I  say  that  we  are  going  for  smoke?"  Coyote  would  say: 
' '  I  had  forgotten.  I  remember  now  what  it  is. "  Then  the  Buffalo  started 
on  again  and  at  last  they  came  close  to  the  village.  They  squatted  down 
in  the  ravine  and  sat  there. 

Early  in  the  morning  scouts  were  sent  out  from  the  people  and  they 
found  the  Buffalo  sitting  in  the  ravine.  The  scouts  went  and  told  the 
people  that  there  was  a  herd  of  Buffalo  close  to  the  village.  The  old  men 
cried  through  the  village  and  told  the  men  to  surround  the  Buffalo.  The 
men  went  out,  surrounded  the  Buffalo,  and  they  killed  all  the  Buffalo. 
The  men  said  that  the  Buffalo  were  holy  and  that  their  meat  was  to  be 
taken  to  the  lodge  of  the  priest.  Several  men  ran  after  one  Buffalo  that 
could  run  faster  than  the  others.  They  ran  this  Buffalo  over  some  hills, 
and  just  as  one  man  got  near  the  Buffalo,  the  Buffalo  came  to  a  place  where 
there  was  a  high  precipice.  The  Buffalo  fell  as  the  man  was  about  to 
shoot,  and  as  he  fell  the  Buffalo  turned  into  a  Coyote  and  ran  away.  The 
men  were  surprised  when  they  saw  the  Buffalo  turn  into  a  Coyote.  They 
went  home  and  told  about  it.  The  old  people  said  that  this  Coyote  must 
have  been  turned  into  a  Buffalo  by  some  other  Buffalo.  Coyote  ran 
back  to  where  the  Buffalo  bull  was  grazing  and  said:  "My  grandfather, 
I  joined  those  people  who  went  to  get  smoke  from  the  people.  The  people 
ran  after  me  and  I  stumbled  over  some  bad  places.  I  fell  down  and  turned 
into  a  Coyote.  Take  pity  upon  me  and  let  me  turn  into  a  Buffalo 
again."  Buffalo  bull  said:  "Find  me  a  buffalo  wallow."  Coyote  found  a 
buffalo  wallow  and  they  went  to  it.  Coyote  stood  in  the  wallow  and  the 
Buffalo  bull  ran  towards  him  and  hooked  him  and  threw  him  up  into  the 
air.  Before  he  struck  the  ground  he  hooked  him  again  and  again,  until  he 
killed  him.  Ever  since  that  time  the  Coyotes  have  been  willing  to  be 
Coyotes,  and  the  Buffalo  have  always  disliked  Coyotes. 


452  COYOTE   TALES. 

129.  COYOTE  FAMILY  RUN  AFTER  THE  BUFFALO.1 

There  was  a  Coyote  lodge  upon  the  banks  of  a  stream  of  water  some- 
where in  the  northern  country.  Coyote-Man  went  off  on  a  hunt.  While 
he  was  gone  a  bunch  of  Buffalo  came  past  their  lodge.  The  children  all 
turned  out  and  began  to  run  after  the  Buffalo.  The  mother  of  the 
children  came  running  and  told  them  to  run  on  after  the  Buffalo;  that 
they  might  as  well  run  after  Buffalo  as  to  stay  there  and  starve.  The 
Coyotes,  with  their  mother,  ran  after  the  Buffalo.  They  began  to  run 
after  the  Buffalo  in  the  morning  and  in  the  afternoon  they  were  some- 
where in  the  southern  country.  The  youngest  of  the  Coyotes  began  to 
give  out.  As  the  young  Coyote  fell  behind  he  began  to  sing: 

I  only  wish  he  knew, 

That  father  knew  of  our  running  the  Buffalo, 
These  running  Buffalo,  these  running  Buffalo. 
These  running  Buffalo,  these  running  Buffalo, 

Then  again,  father  is  pleased 

When  his  spirits  are  right; 

And  when  he  runs  his  best 

His  ears  seem  to  be  laughing. 

These  running  Buffalo,  these  running  Buffalo. 

Then  again,  father  is  pleased 

When  his  spirits  are  right; 

And  when  he  runs  his  best 

His  mouth  laughs  to  the  root  of  his  ears. 

These  running  Buffalo,  these  running  Buffalo. 

Just  as  the  little  Coyote  was  about  to  fall  down  and  die  his  father  over- 
took him  and  passed  him.  The  young  Coyote  stopped  and  began  to 
sing  again:  "My  father  will  now  catch  up  with  the  Buffalo  and  will  kill 
one  or  two  of  them."  One  of  the  young  Buffalo  gave  out  and  the  Coyotes 
surrounded  it  and  killed  it.  When  they  had  eaten  the  Buffalo,  the  old 
Coyote  said:  "Old  woman,  you  and  I  must  go  back  to  our  lodge  in  the 
north.  What  shall  we  do  with  these  children?"  Young  Coyote  said: 
"Let  us  all  scatter  here  and  each  one  go  wherever  he  chooses.  In  this 
way  the  country  will  be  filled  with  Coyotes."  They  all  decided  to  scatter 
out  and  they  did  so.  That  is  why  the  Coyotes  were  found  everywhere  in 
the  country. 

•Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  is  told  to  the  young  people  to  teach 
them  that  when  they  grow  up  they  would  go  upon  long  hunts  for  buffalo.  The 
story  teaches  the  children  that  the  Coyotes,  by  running  after  the  buffalo,  scattered 
out  over  the  earth. 


COYOTE  STEALS  TURTLE'S  BUFFALO.  453 

130.  COYOTE  STEALS  TURTLE'S  BUFFALO.1 

Turtle  was  going  along  a  sand  bar,  when  he  saw  a  herd  of  Buffalo  on 
the  other  side.  He  cried:  "Grandfather,  carry  me  across."  The  Buffalo 
looked  around  at  one  another  and  said:  "Poor  Turtle  wants  you  to  carry 
him  across."  One  said:  "I  will  go  and  bring  him  over."  The  Buffalo 
went  over  and  Turtle  saw  that  the  Buffalo  was  lean,  and  he  said:  "Grand- 
father, I  did  not  mean  you."  Then  another  came  and  it  also  was  lean, 
and  Turtle  refused  to  go  with  him.  The  Buffalo  kept  coming,  until  one 
came  that  was  fat.  Then  Turtle  said:  "Now,  grandfather,  you  are  the 
right  one  to  carry  me  across  the  river."  The  Buffalo  told  Turtle  to  sit 
upon  his  shaggy  head, but  Turtle  said:  "No;  you  will  shake  your  head  and 
drop  me  into  the  water."  Then  the  Buffalo  said:  "Suppose  you  sit  upon 
my  back ;"  but  Turtle  said :  ' '  No. ' '  Then  the  Buffalo  said : ' '  Where  would 
you  like  to  sit?"  Turtle  said:  "Let  me  sit  under  your  tail,  in  your  anus." 
The  Buffalo  said:  "All  right."  Turtle  sat  there  and  the  Buffalo  waded 
the  river.  As  the  Buffalo  went  into  the  river  Turtle  went  inside  and 
began  to  chew  on  the  entrails  of  the  Buffalo.  When  the  Buffalo  reached 
the  other  shore  Turtle  jumped  out  and  said:  "Your  intestines  are  all  cut 
up."  Buffalo  began  to  stagger  and  fell  to  the  ground  and  died,  when 
Turtle  began  to  sing: 

Flint  knife,  I  am  hunting  you, 
I  want  to  skin  and  cut  up  meat. 
Flint  knife,  I  am  hunting  you, 
I  want  to  cut  and  scrape  my  arrows. 

Coyote  heard  Turtle  singing  about  wanting  a  knife  to  cut  meat,  but 
Turtle  denied  it  and  said:  "I  am  singing  about  wanting  a  knife  to  make 
arrows."  Coyote's  ears  lay  back  on  his  head,  and  he  was  very  good  to 
Turtle  and  talked  so  kindly  to  him  that  Turtle  finally  admitted  that  he 
wanted  a  knife  to  cut  meat  with.  He  told  Coyote  about  the  Buffalo  and 
they  both  went  to  the  Buffalo.  Then  Coyote  began  to  talk  to  Turtle. 
He  said:  "My  grandson,  let  us  jump  over  the  Buffalo,  and  whoever 
jumps  over  the  Buffalo  shall  own  it.  The  loser  must  help  the  winner  to 
cut  up  the  Buffalo.  Then  we  will  divide  the  meat."  Turtle  agreed, 
because  Coyote  had  been  so  kind  and  talked  so  nicely  to  him.  Coyote 
smiled  to  himself  and  then  offered  to  jump  first.  He  jumped  clear  over 
the  Buffalo.  Turtle  ran  and  tried  to  jump,  but  failed.  Then  Coyote 
claimed  the  Buffalo.  Coyote  cut  up  the  meat  and  said:  "My  grandson, 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  is  told  to  the  children  to  teach  them 
that  when  they  kill  game  they  should  not  be  fooled  by  those  who  might  misrepre- 
sent things  to  them. 


454  COYOTE   TALES. 

you  may  take  the  blood  and  other  things  that  are  left  here.  I  am  going 
after  my  children,  and  when  I  come  back  we  will  divide  the  meat."- 
Coyote  then  went  off  after  his  children.  While  Turtle  sat  there  watch- 
ing the  meat  he  thought  to  himself:  "I  know  Coyote;  he  is  a  cheat. 
He  will  bring  his  children,  take  all  the  meat,  and  give  me  none."  He  saw 
two  Bald-Eagles  flying  overhead.  Turtle  cried  to  them  and  said:  "My 
grandfathers,  I  have  some  meat  here.  Take  it  up  on  a  high  tree,  for 
Coyote  is  coming  to  take  it  away  from  me."  The  Bald-Eagles  took  the 
meat  and  flew  up  to  a  high  cottonwood  tree  and  placed  it  in  an  eagle's 
nest.  Turtle  told  the  Eagles  to  take  him  up  there.  The  Eagles  took 
Turtle  up  and  placed  him  in  the  nest.  Then  Turtle  made  a  fire  and  began 
to  cook  some  meat.  In  the  meantime  Coyote  and  his  children  went  to 
the  place  and  found  nothing  but  blood  upon  the  ground.  The  children 
began  to  lick  up  the  blood,  but  Coyote  was  very  angry.  He  went  up  and 
down  the  stream,  and  after  a  while  he  saw  the  reflection  of  the  fire  in  the 
water.  He  said:  "There  is  Turtle  in  the  water  cooking  the  meat.  I 
will  get  the  meat  away  from  him  and  kill  him.  You  stay  here  and  watch, 
and  when  you  see  the  charred  coal  come  up  and  float  on  the  water,  you 
may  know  that  I  have  scattered  his  fire."  Coyote  dived,  and  his  head 
caught  between  two  logs  under  the  water.  The  children  stood  upon  the 
bank  watching  for  the  charred  coals  to  come  up.  After  a  while  they  saw 
some  things  coming  up.  They  said:  "See;  our  father  is  scattering  the 
fire  of  Turtle."  It  was  Coyote's  excrement,  and  when  Turtle  saw  that 
Coyote  was  dead,  he  spoke  to  the  children  and  said:  "How  would  you 
like  to  have  some  meat?"  They  looked,  and  up  there  in  the  tree  they 
saw  Turtle  with  all  the  meat.  Coyote's  children  cried  and  ran  away. 

131.  COYOTE  AND  BEAR.1 

Coyote  was  going  along  through  the  timber,  when  all  at  once  a  Bear 
jumped  from  the  bushes  and  faced  him.  Coyote  was  scared  nearly  to 
death,  and  he  said  to  himself:  "What  shall  I  do?"  He  took  his  bow  in 
his  hand,  and  beating  upon  it  with  his  arrow  he  sang  this  song: 

I  can  still  the  rivers  which  flow  and  they  stop. 

What  shall  I  do  with  this  rough-handed  fellow  standing  before  me? 

I  can  kill  him  with  my  bow  and  arrows. 

At  that  time,  it  being  hot  weather,  the  waters  had  gone  down  and  the 
bed  of  the  river  had  become  dry.  Bear  saw  that  the  creek  was  nearly 

lTold  by  White-Eagle,  Skidi.  This  story  is  told  to  the  children  to  teach  them 
that  they  must  not  make  war  on  people  who  have  greater  powers  than  they  them- 
selves possess. 


COYOTE  AND   BEAR.  455 

dry  and  he  said  to  himself:  "This  must  be  a  wonderful  man  who  can 
make  the  rivers  and  streams  run  dry  in  this  way."  Then  he  listened 
again  and  heard  another  song.  Old  Coyote  sang: 

I  overturned  even  the  timber 

That  extended  over  yonder, 

Standing  yonder,  with  my  wonderful  bow. 

Bear  looked  around  and  saw  great  big  trees  down,  with  the  roots  turned 
up.  A  few  days  before  there  had  been  a  cyclone,  which  had  blown  down 
the  trees  and  turned  up  the  roots,  and  Bear  looked  at  the  trees  that  were 
down,  and  said:  "Why,  this  is  a  wonderful  man  if  he  can  do  all  this." 
Then  Coyote  sang  again: 

Even  the  hills  yonder  I  killed, 

Yes,  even  the  hills  yonder. 

Then  this  rough-chapped,  flat-footed  one 

I  could  easily  kill 

With  my  wonderful  bow. 

Bear  looked  over  the  prairies  and  saw  that  there  were  no  hills  and  moun- 
tains, and  he  believed  Coyote.  The  people  had  burned  the  grass  from 
the  prairies  so  that  they  looked  level  all  over.  Then  Coyote  sang: 

I  killed  even  the  waters  that 
Flowed  through  the  land 
With  my  wonderful  bow. 

They  had  bright  sunlight  when  they  first  met,  but  Coyote  had  seen  that 
a  fog  was  rising.  Bear  said:  "This  is  a  wonderful  man,  for  he  can  make 
the  sun  disappear."  Bear  became  afraid  of  Coyote  and  said:  "Well, 
grandson,  let  us  travel  together."  Coyote  said:  "All  right."  In  the 
evening  they  made  a  fire,  and  when  they  had  made  the  fire,  Coyote  told 
Bear  to  cook  the  meat  on  hot  coals.  Bear  cooked  the  meat,  and  when  it 
was  done  he  took  it  off,  but  had  one  eye  on  Coyote  all  the  time.  When 
he  made  a  motion  to  reach  out  for  something  he  noticed  Coyote  jump. 
Bear  took  the  piece  of  meat  and  reached  out  to  hand  the  meat  over  to 
Coyote  and  Coyote  jumped.  Bear  said:  "Oh,  yes!  you  have  been  fooling 
me  with  your  big  talk,"  and  he  jumped  towards  Coyote  and  Coyote  ran 
for  his  life,  but  Bear  caught  him  and  killed  him. 

132.  COYOTE  AND  BEAR.1 

Coyote  was  going  along  and  he  came  to  thick  timber.  After  going  far 
into  the  woods  he  came  to  a  cedar  grove.  He  had  a  bow  made  of  willows, 
so  that  if  he  pulled  on  it  it  would  break  easily.  The  bow  was  dirty  and 

1  Told  by  White-Eagle,  Skidi.  The  story  is  told  to  the  children  to  teach  them 
to  listen  attentively  to  the  stories  of  other  people,  but  not  always  to  believe  them. 


456  COYOTE   TALES. 

greasy.  As  he  went  along  he  said:  "I  wish  some  wild  animals  would 
come  out;  I  would  shoot  them  with  my  bow  and  arrows."  While  thus 
saying,  Bear  came  out  from  among  the  cedars,  and  said:  "Nawa,  what 
is  that  you  have?  Let  me  see."  Coyote  handed  his  bow  to  Bear,  who 
pulled  the  string  and  broke  the  bow.  Coyote  then  sang  this  song: 

Father  Sun,  this  one  standing  here 
Has  broken  your  bow. 

Bear  became  frightened,  for  Coyote  had  said,  "The  Sun  is  my  god." 
"What  shall  I  do?"  he  thought.  "Grandpa,  do  not  sing  any  more.  I 
will  make  you  one,"  said  Bear.  He  went  into  the  timber  and  cut  an  ash 
and  brought  a  bow  already  made  to  Coyote,  for  Bear  had  made  it  with  his 
power.  Coyote  sang  again  about  the  Sun,  and  said:  "It  is  not  the  right 
kind  of  wood."  Bear  went  into  the  timber  and  brought  a  bow  of  another 
kind  of  wood,  but  Coyote  sang  again  and  said:  "  It  is  not  the  right  kind  of 
wood."  Bear  went  and  brought  a  plum-tree  bow,  which  was  very  fine. 
Coyote  said:  "This  is  something  like  it.  Now  go  and  hide,  so  the  Sun 
will  not  see  you."  Bear  sneaked  off.  When  he  had  gone,  Coyote  ran 
as  fast  as  he  could  in  another  direction.  The  bow  was  a  fine  one. 
Coyote  thought:  "I  was  lucky  to  getaway  from  Bear,  and  then  to  get  a 
fine  bow  from  him."  He  ran  out  of  the  timber  and  went  on  to  the  prairie, 
where  he  said:  "I  shall  stay  on  the  prairie  hereafter,  for  Bear  will  kill  me 
if  he  sees  me  again."  So  Coyote  made  his  home  on  the  prairie. 

133.  COYOTE  SHOWS   TURKEY  THE  SCALP-OFFERING  CEREMONY.1 

Coyote  was  going  along  all  alone,  when  suddenly  he  saw  Turkey.  He 
said:  "Hello!  grandson,  where  are  you  going?  May  I  go  with  you?" 
Turkey  said:  "Grandfather,  I  came  all  alone."  Coyote  said:  "I  want  to 
teach  you  how  to  make  fires  to  offer  sacrifices ;  for  before  long  I  shall  be 
dead,  and  I  want  to  teach  you  these  things,  so  that  you  will  know 
them  and  your  grandfathers  will  not  say  that  I  did  not  teach  you  about 
making  the  fires  for  making  offerings  to  the  gods  in  the  heavens." 
Turkey  said:  "All  right;  I  will  do  as  you  tell  me."  Coyote  said:  "Well, 
then,  come;  let  us  go  and  make  a  fire,  and  we  will  stand  on  the  different 
corners  of  the  fireplace,  just  as  in  the  heavens  the  different  gods  stand." 

Coyote  made  Turkey  believe  that  he  knew  all  about  the  ceremony,  but 
he  was  only  planning  to  kill  Turkey  and  take  him  home  and  eat  him. 
Coyote  made  the  fireplace.  They  both  stood  on  the  northeast  of  the 

1  Told  by  White-Eagle,  Skidi.  The  story  is  told  to  the  children  so  that  when 
they  grow  up  they  shall  have  a  desire  to  take  scalps  and  make  scalp  sacrifices  to 
the  gods  in  the  heavens. 


COYOTE   SHOWS   TURKEY   THE   SCALP-OFFERING  CEREMONY.  457 

fireplace,  Coyote  in  front  of  Turkey,  and  both  facing  the  fire,  so  that  he 
could  keep  his  eye  on  Turkey  and  finally  hit  him  on  the  head  with  his 
stick.  Each  stood  with  the  left  foot  forward,  while  they  grasped  a  stick 
with  both  hands,  the  left  hand  being  in  front  of  the  right.  First  they 
pointed  the  forward  ends  of  their  sticks  obliquely  upward,  then  obliquely 
downward ;  they  then  made  one  or  two  up-and-down  motions  of  the  body, 
raising  the  heels  from  the  ground,  the  body  being  bent  forward;  all  in 
imitation  of  the  old  priests  they  had  seen  making  fire  for  the  sacrifices  of 
scalps,  and  all  accompanied  by  the  following  song: 

Listen!     Attention! 

Who  will  eat,  who  will  eat  up 

That  neck  hanging  there? 

They  went  to  the  northwest  side  of  the  fireplace,  and  they  went 
through  the  same  performance  as  that  of  the  northeast  side,  keeping  time 
in  their  dancing  to  the  following  song: 

Listen!     Attention! 

Who  will  eat,  who  will  eat  up 

That  which  sits  inside  the  breast? 

They  repeated  the  dance  on  the  southwest  side  of  the  fireplace  in  a 
similar  manner,  while  Coyote  sang  this  song: 

Listen!     Attention! 

Who  will  eat,  who  will  eat  up 

That  end  of  the  backbone  which  carries  the  tail? 

While  Coyote  was  getting  ready  to  kill  him,  Turkey  began  to  suspect 
something  and  ran  away  to  the  timber  on  the  south  side  of  the  open  field 
where  they  were  dancing.  When  Coyote  opened  his  eyes  Turkey  was 
gone.  He  called  himself  names,  and  said:  "What  a  fine  neck  he  had; 
what  a  fat  Turkey!  If  I  had  only  killed  him  instead  of  fooling  my  time 
away.  Now  I  have  nothing  for  my  children  to  eat,  for  I  have  let  him 
slip  away."  Then  Coyote  hallooed  to  Turkey  and  said:  "Let's  com- 
plete the  ceremony;  you  must  not  be  scared;  my  songs  did  not  mean 
anything."  But  Turkey  never  came  back. 

134.  COYOTE  AND  THE  DANCING  TURKEYS.1 

A  bunch  of  Turkeys  were  dancing,  when  Coyote  came  up  to  them. 
"Grandchildren,  you  are  not  singing  a  good  song;  I  can  teach  you  a  good 
song,"  said  he.  "Very  well,"  all  the  Turkeys  said;  "sing  us  a  good  song." 
Coyote  sang: 

^old  by  White-Eagle,  Skidi.  The  story  is  told  to  the  children  so  that  they 
might  imitate  the  dancing  of  the  turkeys  and  should  dance  this  dance  when  playing 
in  the  night. 


458  COYOTE   TALES. 

Gizzard!     Gizzard! 

Lift  your  necks  high,  then  low, 

Waving  your  tails  to  and  fro. 

Tut!  Tut!     (Sound  of  turkey  when  jumping.) 

As  he  sang  the  song  the  Turkeys  stretched  their  necks  and  placed  them 
on  the  ground,  but  they  watched  Coyote,  for  as  he  danced  among  them 
he  would  open  his  mouth  as  if  to  bite  their  necks.  The  Turkeys  would 
say:  "His  mouth  is  open!  Look  out!"  But  Coyote  sang  louder.  They 
danced  and  danced,  and  all  at  once  Coyote  jumped  and  bit  the  necks 
of  the  two  biggest  Turkeys  and  killed  them.  The  others  ran  away.  ' '  Ah ! ' ' 
said  Coyote,  "I  am  quite  a  cheat;  my  children  will  have  plenty  to  eat." 

Coyote  took  the  two  Turkeys  home  and  said:  "Children,  pick  the 
feathers  off  and  cut  the  meat  off  and  put  it  in  the  pot  and  cook  it.  I  am 
going  to  ask  some  of  the  chiefs  to  eat  with  me,  but  I  will  save  some  meat 
for  you."  He  went  off,  and  after  he  came  back  he  sent  his  children  and 
wife  away.  He  went  into  their  tipi  and  sat  down.  Once  in  a  while  he 
would  swing  the  skin  that  hung  over  the  entrance  and  say:  "Nawa,  take 
this  seat."  The  children  could  hear  some  one  else  say:  "Nawa,  thanks;" 
and  they  thought  that  there  were  many  people.  After  a  while  Coyote 
made  a  speech  and  said:  "I  have  two  Turkeys  boiling  and  I  invite  you  to 
help  me  eat  them."  He  said  "Nawa"  a  number  of  times;  so  the  little 
ones  thought  that  there  were  many  people  in  the  tipi.  Old  Coyote  took 
the  kettle  off  and  commenced  to  dish  out  the  meat.  He  went  from  one 
plate  to  another  and  ate  all  of  the  meat  by  himself.  One  of  the  children 
went  in  and  saw  his  father  eating  by  himself,  and  went  back  and  told  his 
mother.  They  all  came  out  and  made  a  rush  into  the  tipi,  and  old 
Coyote  ran  away  and  the  children  had  only  bones  to  eat  and  they  were 
left  to  hunt  food  for  themselves. 

135.  COYOTE  AND  THE  TURKEYS  ROLL  DOWN  THE  HILL.1 

Coyote  was  going  along  and  he  saw  many  Turkeys  sliding  down  a  hill. 
"What  shall  I  do?"  he  said  to  himself.  "I  will  go  back  and  get  a  sack 
and  show  these  Turkeys  something  new."  He  got  his  sack  and  went 
back  to  where  the  Turkeys  were.  "Now,  my  grandchildren,  I  have  some- 
thing new.  Watch  me  go  into  this  sack.  When  I  am  inside  tie  it  fast. 
Now  roll  me  down  the  hill."  As  he  rolled  down  the  hill  he  laughed  and 
laughed,  and  said:  "It  is  very  fine  to  roll  down  hill."  At  the  foot  of  the 
hill  the  Turkeys  untied  the  sack  and  Coyote  walked  up  the  hill  with  them. 

1  Told  by  Fox,  Skidi.  The  story  is  to  teach  the  children  that  when  they  grow 
up  and  hunt  for  game  and  kill  it  they  should  always  be  sure  to  keep  watch  over  it 
and  preserve  it. 


COYOTE  AND  THE  TURKEYS   ROLL  DOWN  THE  HILL.  459 

"Now  you  little  ones  get  into  this  sack.  I  will  roll  you  down  the  hill  and 
you  will  see  how  fine  it  is  to  roll  down  hill."  The  young  Turkeys  went 
into  the  sack.  Coyote  tied  the  sack  and  rolled  them  down  hill.  The 
young  Turkeys  laughed,  so  the  older  ones  thought  they  would  try  it. 
Coyote  untied  the  sack  and  the  Turkeys  came  out.  Then  Coyote  went  to 
the  top  of  the  hill  and  invited  the  older  Turkeys  to  get  into  the  sack  and 
roll  down  the  hill.  They  all  went  in,  about  sixty  in  number.  As  he 
started  the  sack  down  the  hill  he  told  the  young  Turkeys  to  stay  on  the 
hill,  for  they  would  soon  come  up.  When  the  sack  reached  the  foot  of  the 
hill  Coyote  swung  it  on  his  back  and  said:  "I  am  a  cheat."  He  carried 
the  Turkeys  home  to  his  children.  ' '  Now,  children,  I  have  something  fine 
in  this  sack.  I  will  go  and  bring  your  mother  home.  Do  not  untie  this 
sack."  He  was  gone  but  a  little  while  when  the  youngest  one  went  to 
the  sack  and  untied  it.  The  Turkeys  were  very  anxious  to  get  out  and 
made  a  big  cackling  noise,  scratched  the  young  Coyotes,  and  made  their 
escape.  The  young  ones  cried  and  cried.  When  the  old  Coyote  came 
home  he  found  the  sack  empty  and  scolded  and  whipped  the  little 
Coyotes.  The  little  Coyotes  went  off  crying  and  singing  this  song  about 
their  father: 

Thus   father   likes, 

When  he  is  scared, 

To  lay  back  his  ears. 

Ha-o-o,    haho, 

Ha-o-o,    haho. 

Thus   father   likes, 
When  he  is  scared, 
To  open  wide  his  mouth. 
Ha-o-o,  haho. 
Ha-o-o,  haho. 

He  draws  his  knees  up  to  his  chin, 
He  defecates  in  every  direction, 
He  almost  loses  his  privates. 
Ha-o-o,    haho, 
Ha-o-o,    haho. 

136.  COYOTE  AND  PRAIRIE-CHICKEN.1 

Coyote  was  going  along  looking  for  something  to  eat,  when  he  met 
Prairie-Chicken.  He  greeted  Prairie-Chicken  and  said:  "Prairie-Chicken, 
suppose  we  try  to  frighten  one  another  and  see  who  will  get  scared  first." 
Prairie-Chicken  said  that  he  would,  not  suspecting  that  Coyote  was 

'Told  by  White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  This  story  is  told  to  teach  the  children 
always  to  be  on  the  look-out  lest  they  be  frightened  by  prairie  chickens  flying  up  in 
front  of  them. 


460  COYOTE    TALES. 

planning  to  get  a  chance  to  kill  and  eat  him.  They  selected  a  place  where 
there  was  tall  grass.  Coyote  hid  some  place  in  the  grass  and  when  Prairie- 
Chicken  came  along  he  jumped  at  him  and  tried  to  scare  him,  but  Prairie- 
Chicken  only  laughed  when  he  saw  Coyote.  Then  Prairie-Chicken  said: 
"  Now  it  is  my  time  to  try  to  frighten  you. ' '  Prairie-Chicken  slipped  off  to 
a  place  close  to  a  steep  bank  and  hid  there.  Coyote  walked  all  through  the 
grass,  expecting  Prairie-Chicken  to  jump  out  some  place.  Prairie-Chicken 
did  not  appear  and  Coyote  had  forgotten  all  about  him  and  started  on  his 
way,  when  suddenly  Prairie-Chicken  flew  up  in  Coyote's  face.  Coyote 
gave  a  great  leap,  for  he  was  frightened.  He  jumped  over  the  steep  bank 
and  fell  to  the  bottom  of  the  canyon,  where  he  died  from  his  wounds. 
When  we  see  Coyotes  at  the  bottom  of  steep  banks  and  in  canyons  we 
know  that  some  one  has  frightened  them  and  that  they  have  jumped  over 
and  so  met  their  death  through  fear. 


137.  COYOTE  AND  PRAIRIE-CHICKEN,1 

Coyote  was  going  along  and  he  saw  Prairie-Chicken  sitting  on  a  limb. 
Coyote  tried  to  get  Prairie-Chicken  to  come  down  from  the  tree  to  dance 
with  him,  but  Prairie-Chicken  would  not  come.  Then  Coyote  began  to 

sing: 

Prairie-Chicken  yonder,  sitting  on  a  limb,  * 
Somebody  is  going  to  bewitch  you. 

Then  Prairie-Chicken  sang: 

Who  now  is  going  to  bewitch  me, 
And  with  what  shall  I  be  poisoned? 

Coyote,  answering,  said: 

The  poison-ivy  berries  will  poison  you; 

Your  mouth  will  get  sore,  you  will  grow  large. 

Coyote  sang  again  and  said: 

Prairie-Chicken  yonder,  sitting  on  a  limb, 
Somebody  is  going  to  bewitch   you. 

Then  Prairie-Chicken  asked  in  a  song: 

Who  now  is  going  to  bewitch  me, 
And  with  what  shall  I  be  poisoned? 

1  Told  by  Young-Bull,  a  little  Skidi  boy,  eight  years  of  age,  who  also  sang  the 
song  in  the  graphophone.  His  mother,  Woman-Newly-Made-Chief,  was  the  daugh- 
ter of  Scabby-Bull,  a  great  medicine-man  among  the  Skidi,  and  who  had  many 
stories  to  tell  about  the  different  animals.  She  in  turn  tells  the  stories  to  her  son. 
The  story  is  told  to  the  children  to  teach  them  that  stones,  poison-ivy,  berries,  etc., 
are  poisonous  for  people  but  not  for  prairie  chickens. 


COYOTE  AND  PRAIRIE-CHICKEN.  461 

Coyote  sang  and  said: 

The  cedar  berries  will  poison  you, 
You  will  have  a  pain  in  your  stomach. 

Prairie-Chicken  did  not  pay  any  attention  to  Coyote.  Then  Coyote 
sang  again: 

Prairie-Chicken  yonder,  sitting  on  a  limb, 
Somebody  is  going  to  bewitch  you. 

Prairie-Chicken  sang: 

Who  now  is  going  to  bewitch  me, 
And  with  what  shall  I  be  poisoned? 

Coyote  sang  and  said: 

Gravel  will  poison   you, 

With  gravel  you  will  be  bewitched. 

Prairie-Chicken  sang: 

All  of  the  things  you  mention 

I  am  fond  of;  I  like  to  eat  them. 

Then  Prairie-Chicken  flew  up  and  away  and  Coyote  went  his  way 
among  the  hills. 

138.  COYOTE  TRIES  TO  MARRY  RABBIT.1 

Coyote  was  going  along  and  he  met  a  female  Rabbit.  He  tried  to 
marry  her,  but  she  would  not  have  him,  and  she  ran  away  from  him. 
Then  the  female  Rabbit  went  to  another  Coyote  and  tried  to  marry  him. 
The  Coyote  began  to  sing: 

Rabbit-  Woman,   standing  here, 
Rabbit-Woman,  standing  here, 
Wants  to  marry  my  son, 
But  one  fault  I  find  with  you; 
Your  nose,  like  the  earth, 
In  many  places  is  cracked. 

The  Rabbit  then  said:  "Your  people  and  my  people  shall  always  be 
apart  and  never  mix  up."  Then  they  went  off. 


by  Yellow-Calf,  Skidi,  keeper  of  the  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star  bundle. 
The  story  is  told  to  teach  the  children  that  the  rabbit-people  and  the  coyote-people 
are  two  different  sorts  of  animals. 


462  COYOTE   TALES. 

139.  COYOTE  AND  THE  SALT.1 

A  long  time  ago  the  people  did  not  have  any  salt.  The  people  had 
heard  of  Coyote  wandering  over  the  land ;  that  at  one  time  he  turned  into 
a  man,  made  a  big  fire  upon  a  high  hill,  and  began  to  roast  some  meat. 
Several  of  the  people  went  up  to  where  Coyote-Man  was  and  he  gave 
them  pieces  of  roasted  meat  with  salt  on  it.  When  the  people  ate  the 
salted  meat  it  tasted  so  good  that  when  they  went  home  they  told  their 
children  to  recite: 

Coyote    standing    yonder, 

Yonder  on  the  hill  by  the  fire, 

Give  me  some  salt. 

I  am  going  to  eat  soup  from  a  wooden  bowl. 

The  children  said  this  many  times  to  the  Coyote-Man,  and  the  Coyote- 
Man  finally  promised  the  people  to  lead  them  to  a  place  where  they  could 
get  salt.  In  those  times  the  people  did  not  have  any  horses,  so  the  men 
and  women  carried  south  their  tipis  and  belongings  upon  their  backs. 
Coyote-Man  led  them.  They  found  the  salt  in  the  south.  The  people 
dug  the  salt  in  lumps  and  carried  the  lumps  home  with  them.  Coyote- 
Man  disappeared  and  was  never  seen  again,  but  after  that,  when  the 
children  saw  Coyotes  upon  high  hills,  they  recited  this  little  ritual  to 
remind  the  Coyotes  that  they  were  the  ones  who  found  the  salt  for  the 
people. 

140.   COYOTE  AND  THE  ROSEBUDS.2 

The  Coyote  people  went  on  a  buffalo  hunt,  and  as  there  were  no  buf- 
falo in  sight  they  sent  scouts  out  over  the  country  every  day  to  look  for 
buffalo.  One  day  they  sent  out  several,  and  one  of  them  went  off  by 
himself.  He  went  up  on  a  high  hill  and  saw  that  there  were  rosebuds 
from  one  end  of  the  valley  to  the  other.  He  sat  on  the  hill  for  a  long 
time  until  he  thought  of  a  scheme.  Then  he  went  home  and  sang  this  song : 

Pah-o-o-o!     I  come  bringing  news, 
But  I  must  have  compensation. 

The  people  listened  and  said:  "He  brings  us  news  of  buffalo.  Listen 
to  him."  As  he  came  near  to  the  village  he  sang  again: 

1  Told  by  Woman-Newly-Made-Chief,  Skidi.  The  story  is  told  to  teach  the  peo- 
ple how  they  got  their  salt. 

*Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  The  story  is  told  to  the  young  people  so  that 
when  they  grow  up  they  should  never  fool  the  people  about  the  buffalo;  that  they 
should  learn  that  when  they  saw  buffalo  they  must  go  to  the  village  and  notify  the 
priests  so  that  the  people  might  prepare  to  kill  the  buffalo.  They  are  also  taught 
in  the  story  that  they  are  not  to  turn  out  to  be  false  prophets. 


COYOTE  AND  THE  ROSEBUDS.  463 

You  people  who  are  camped  here, 
Attention!     I  now  say  something  wonderful: 
The   buffalo,   the  buffalo, 
The  buffalo  have  arrived. 

The  people  gathered  around  and  he  kept  on  singing  until  some  gave 
him  presents  of  buffalo  robes.  Others  gave  him  other  presents.  Then 
he  changed  his  song,  and  sang: 

These  things  which  you  have  given  me, 
I  do  not  want  them. 

He  continued  to  sing  until  the  people  said:  "Ask  him  what  he  wants." 
They  asked  him  and  he  sang: 

I  want  the  chief's  daughter, 
I  want  the  chief's  daughter. 

They  went  and  begged  the  chief  to  let  him  have  the  girl,  for  they  were 
hungry  and  they  wanted  Coyote  to  tell  them  where  the  buffalo  were. 
They  brought  the  girl  to  Coyote.  Then  both  Coyote  and  the  girl  went 
into  the  tipi.  As  Coyote  and  the  girl  lay  down,  he  sang; 

You  may  push  my  back, 
You  may  push  my  back. 

Then  he  sang  again  and  said: 

You  have  pushed  me  enough. 
You  have  pushed  me  enough. 

After  he  had  remained  for  a  while  with  the  girl  he  went  out.  A  crowd 
had  gathered  to  hear  where  the  buffalo  were.  Coyote  sang: 

As  I  climbed  the  hill  yonder 

And  sat  on  the  top, 

I  looked  far  over  the  country. 

Then  he  continued  to  sing: 

Let  the  people  make  an  opening, 
For  I  am  hot,  for  I  am  hot. 

The  people  made  an  opening.  He  sat  on  his  haunches  and  continued 
to  sing: 

As  I  sat  upon  the  hill 

I  looked  down  the  valley; 

There,  from  one  end  to  the  other, 

The  valley  was  filled 

With,  with,  with — rosebuds! 

As  he  said  "rosebuds,"  he  made  a  leap,  for  the  people  had  expected 
to  hear  him  say  buffalo.  They  closed  around  him,  caught  him,  and  killed 
him,  and  he  was  no  more. 


464  COYOTE   TALES. 

141.  COYOTE  AND  THE  ARTICHOKE.1 

Coyote  was  going  along  a  road  alone,  when  he  saw  an  Artichoke  lying 
on  the  ground.  As  he  passed  by  the  Artichoke  said:  "Bite  me."  Coyote 
turned  around  and  said:  "I  will  bite  you  if  you  say  anything  more." 
Coyote  started  on,  and  the  Artichoke  said:  "Bite  me."  Coyote  turned 
around  and  said:  "I  will  bite  you  if  you  say  anything  more."  Coyote 
started  on  again,  and  Artichoke  called:  "Bite  me."  Coyote  turned 
around  and  ate  up  the  Artichoke.  All  at  once  he  began  to  expel  flatus. 
Coyote  said:  "Wah!"  He  went  on  and  expelled  flatus  many  times,  and 
each  time  harder  than  before.  Every  time  he  would  say:  "Wonder! 
Wonder!  Wonder!"  He  kept  on  expelling  flatus,  until  he  expelled  it 
so  hard  that  it  made  one  of  his  legs  jump  up.  He  kept  on  until  he 
began  to  defecate,  and  he  stopped  in  a  hollow,  and  he  defecated  until 
his  own  excrement  washed  him  away. 

142.  COYOTE,  THE  PLUM  TREES,  AND  THE  GRAPE  VINES.2 

When  the  Coyote  people  were  placed  upon  the  earth,  each  male  had  a 
membrum  which  he  carried  around  his  waist.  Whenever  the  women 
were  swimming  the  men  would  sit  upon  the  banks  and  let  their  mem- 
brums  crawl  into  the  water.  The  women  would  feel  of  them  and  would 
run  out  from  the  water,  thinking  that  snakes  were  coming.  The  leader  of 
these  people  had  a  membrum  longer  than  that  of  any  of  the  others.  He 
was  going  along  a  prairie,  when  he  heard  a  queer  noise  in  the  ground. 
He  stopped  and  said:  "Stop  making  that  noise.  I  will  run  my  mem- 
brum into  you  and  kill  you."  The  noise  continued.  He  took  down  his 
membrum,  stuck  it  into  the  hole,  and  as  he  pushed  it  into  the  ground 
something  began  to  chew  on  it.  When  he  got  away  from  the  hole  he 
found  that  his  membrum  was  only  four  or  five  inches  long.  It  had  been 
chewed  to  pieces.  He  began  to  dig  and  he  found  pieces  of  it  in  a  pile.  He 
took  a  handful  and  threw  it  to  one  side  of  where  he  was  and  said :  ' '  Let 
the  plum  trees  grow  from  these,  and  let  the  trees  bear  plums."  Then  he 
took  another  handful  and  threw  them  in  another  direction  and  said: 
"Let  the  grape  vines  come  up  and  bear  grapes."  Then  he  began  to 
throw  other  handfuls  in  different  directions  for  other  berries  and  nuts  to 
grow.  After  he  had  mentioned  everything,  the  insect  under  the  ground 

1  Told  by  White-Sun,  Kitkehahki.  This  story  is  told  to  teach  the  people  that 
they  should  not  eat  too  many  artichokes;  that  if  they  did  they  would  expel  flatus. 

JTold  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  story  is  told  to  the  children  to  make  them 
believe  that  all  fruit  came  from  the  genitals  of  the  first  man  placed  on  earth,  so 
that  the  children  should  not  eat  too  much  fruit,  but  would  give  it  to  the  older 
people. 


COYOTE,  THE  PLUM  TREES,  AND  THE  GRAPE  VINES.         465 

said:  "Go  your  way.  All  of  your  people  will  have  a  short  membrum. 
It  was  never  intended  that  you  should  have  a  long  one.  Now  go." 
Coyote  went  on,  and  he  found  that  all  the  others  were  in  a  condition 
similar  to  his.  If  that  little  insect  had  not  performed  the  operation,  all 
the  male  people  would  have  had  a  membrum  which  would  reach  around 
their  waists.  In  scattering  the  pieces  he  gave  us  plums  and  other  berries 
over  the  land. 

143.  THE  SKUNKS  AND  THE  BEAVERS.1 

There  was  a  prairie,  and  upon  this  prairie  were  two  lodges.  In  one 
lodge  lived  the  Skunks.  In  the  other  lodge  lived  the  Beavers.  The 
Skunks  became  very  hungry  and  they  sent  their  people  out  to  find  some- 
thing to  eat,  but  they  could  not  find  anything.  The  old  Skunk  said: 
"Brothers,  I  have  a  plan  whereby  we  can  obtain  something  to  eat."  All 
the  Skunks  said:  "What  is  it?"  Then  the  old  Skunk  said:  "Let  our 
old  woman  go  to  the  lodge  of  the  Beavers  and  ask  the  Beavers  to 
send  one  of  their  doctors  to  treat  our  young  one."  The  Skunks  agreed 
to  do  this.  The  little  Skunk  lay  down  and  pretended  to  be  sick;  then 
the  old  woman  was  sent  to  the  lodge  of  the  Beavers.  First  the  Skunk 
woman  entered  the  lodge  of  the  Beavers  and  sang,  and  in  this  song  she 
said  : 

I  came  for  you,  medicine-man  of  the  Beavers; 

I  left  a  young  Skunk  behind  very  sick, 

She  is  rolling  upon  the  ground  with  pain. 

All  the  Beavers  said  that  it  was  too  bad  and  that  they  would  send 
White-Beaver,  who  knew  all  kinds  of  diseases.  Said  they:  "Go  and  tell 
your  people  that  White-Beaver  will  come  to  doctor  the  young  Skunk." 
The  old  woman  Skunk  went  back  to  the  lodge  of  the  Skunks,  and  as  she 
entered  the  lodge  she  said:  "Now  lie  down  and  be  very  sick."  Then  the 
other  Skunks  came  and  pretended  to  help  hold  the  young  Skunk,  who  was 
rolling  about  on  the  ground.  After  a  while  White-Beaver  came  into  the 
lodge  and  went  near  the  young  Skunk.  Then  White-Beaver  said:  "The 
young  Skunk  is  suffering  with  pain.  Where  is  the  pain?"  Then  the 
oldest  Skunk  said:  "The  pain  comes  from  the  Skunk's  rectum."  White- 
Beaver  then  pressed  his  hand  upon  the  Skunk's  rectum,  and  said:  "It  is 
true.  The  young  Skunk's  rectum  is  in  bad  shape.  It  is  swollen."  Then 
White-Beaver  said:  "I  will  suck  it  with  my  mouth.  I  will  draw  out  the 
pain  from  the  rectum. ' '  As  the  Beaver  placed  his  mouth  upon  the  rectum 
of  the  Skunk,  the  young  Skunk  made  a  discharge,  so  that  the  Beaver  rolled 

1  Told  by  Little-Chief,  Pitahauirat .  The  story  is  told  to  teach  the  children 
that  the  beaver  family  is  a  medicine  family,  but  that  the  skunks  have  greater  power 
than  the  beavers. 


466  COYOTE   TALES. 

over  upon  the  ground.  As  he  did  so  the  older  Skunks  got  up  and  killed 
the  Beaver  with  clubs.  Then  the  young  Skunk  became  well.  The  older 
Skunks  then  skinned  the  Beaver  and  cooked  the  meat  and  ate  it.  They 
were  careful  not  to  throw  the  bones  out  of  the  lodge,  but  to  place  the  skin 
and  all  the  bones  and  the  entrails  together,  and  then  they  took  them  and 
dumped  them  into  the  river. 

The  next  day  they  sent  the  old  woman  again  to  the  lodge  of  the  Beavers. 
When  the  woman  entered,  she  sang  again,  telling  the  Beavers  that  the 
young  Skunk  was  very  sick ;  that  they  wanted  a  doctor  to  come  and  allay 
her  pain.  The  older  Beavers  said:  "What  is  the  matter?  The  Beaver 
who  went  to  doctor  that  child  is  the  best  one  we  had."  The  woman  then 
said: ' '  He  failed  to  cure  her  and  felt  so  ashamed  that  he  has  gone  to  another 
place  to  make  his  home."  Then  the  Beavers  said:  "We  will  send  the 
next  best  man."  The  old  woman  Skunk  went  to  their  lodge  and  said: 
"Another  one  is  coming."  Then  the  young  Skunk  was  put  upon  the 
ground  and  she  began  to  cry  with  pain  again.  She  stretched  out  her  legs 
and  the  other  Skunks  held  her  down.  The  Beaver  came  in  and  they  led 
him  to  the  young  Skunk.  The  Beaver  touched  the  earth,  then  began  to 
feel  the  young  Skunk  all  over  the  body.  When  he  got  his  hand  upon  the 
rectum  of  the  Skunk,  he  said:  "It  is  true.  The  young  Skunk  is  with 
pain  in  the  rectum.  I  will  cure  her  by  placing  my  mouth  upon  the  rec- 
tum." Then  the  Beaver  reached  down  his  head,  and  as  he  was  about  to 
put  his  mouth  upon  the  Skunk's  rectum  the  Skunk  made  a  discharge  and 
blinded  the  Beaver,  when  the  older  Skunks  took  up  sticks  and  killed  the 
Beaver.  The  Skunks  skinned  him,  cooked  the  meat,  and  saved  all  of 
the  bones.  The  bones  they  placed  in  the  skin  and  threw  them  into  the 
water.  The  Skunks  were  getting  fat.  They  sent  for  another  doctor  the 
next  day,  and  he  also  came  and  was  killed  in  the  same  way  as  the  other 
two.  The  Skunks  saved  the  bones  and  put  them  into  the  skin  and 
threw  them  into  the  water.  The  next  day  they  went  for  another  doctor. 
The  Beavers  wanted  to  know  where  the  other  doctors  were,  but  the 
woman  Skunk  said:  "They  were  ashamed  of  themselves,  for  they  did  not 
cure  our  Skunk,  and  so  they  have  gone  to  make  their  home  in  another 
place."  Another  one  came  and  was  killed  in  the  same  manner  as  the 
others.  The  meat  was  cooked  and  eaten;  the  bones  were  saved  and  all 
placed  in  the  skin  and  thrown  into  the  creek. 

They  kept  on  going  for  the  Beavers  until  they  had  killed  all  but  one, 
the  one  little  one.  Then  the  woman  Skunk  said:  "There  is  but  one  little 
Beaver  there  and  we  will  let  it  alone."  They  said:  "Very  well."  The 
young  Beaver  became  lonely  and  it  came  out  of  the  lodge  and  went 
towards  the  creek.  It  sat  upon  the  bank  and  cried.  A  diving  bird  came 


THE  SKUNKS  AND  THE  BEAVERS.  467 

and  said:  "Young  Beaver,  what  are  you  crying  about."  It  said:  "The 
Skunks  invited  our  medicine-men  to  doctor  their  young  one,  and  the 
doctors  never  returned."  The  bird  said:  "Come  with  me."  The  bird 
placed  the  young  Beaver  near  the  water,  and  said:  "Jump  into  the  water 
here."  The  young  Beaver  jumped  into  the  water  and  came  to  the  lodge 
of  the  other  Beavers  that  had  been  killed.  Then  one  of  the  Beavers  came 
out  and  said  to  the  bird:  "We  thank  you  for  bringing  our  young  one 
here.  Tell  the  Skunks  that  they  shall  never  be  our  friends;  that  we  are 
their  enemies,  though  we  are  glad  that  they  placed  us  in  the  water.  Here 
we  shall  make  our  home  for  all  time." 

Ever  since,  the  Beavers  have  lived  in  the  water,  and  when  the  people 
in  olden  times  killed  the  Beavers  they  were  careful  not  to  lose  any  of  the 
Beavers'  bones.  They  would  throw  the  bones  all  into  the  water,  believing 
that  the  bones  would  again  turn  into  Beavers. 

144.  HOW  WILD-CAT  KILLED  THE  BEAR.1 

In  the  thick  timber  lived  Wild-Cat  with  her  young  ones.  One  day  she 
went  off  hunting.  While  she  was  gone  a  Bear  came  to  her  den  and  ate  all 
her  young  ones.  When  the  Wild-Cat  came  back  her  young  ones  were  gone. 
She  cried  and  followed  the  Bear's  trail.  As  she  went  along  she  sang. 
After  a  while  the  Bear  heard  the  Cat  singing,  and  he  went  to  meet  her. 
When  the  Cat  saw  the  Bear  she  called  him  names.  The  Bear  became 
angry,  but  before  he  knew  it  the  Wild-Cat  had  jumped  on  him;  and  as 
she  was  small  she  clung  to  his  belly,  and  clawed  it  until  she  cut  it  open. 
She  took  out  her  young  ones  and  carried  them  back  home ;  then  she  went 
back  to  the  place  where  she  left  the  Bear  and  there  she  found  Coyote. 
Coyote  said:  "My  sister,  I  watched  over  the  Bear  while  you  were  gone, 
so  that  nobody  else  would  come  to  eat  him  up.  Take  what  meat  you 
want  and  leave  the  rest  for  me."  The  Cat  then  said  :  "My  brother,  you 
may  have  the  Bear.  I  am  glad  I  killed  him,  for  he  ate  up  my  young 
ones,  but  I  do  not  want  the  meat."  Coyote  took  the  Bear  off  to  his  young 
ones  and  gave  them  the  meat,  and  told  them  that  he  had  killed  the  Bear. 
He  said:  "I  am  a  great  warrior;  I  not  only  can  fight  in  battles,  but  I  can 
fight  animals  and  kill  them."  Just  then  an  old  Bear  came,  and  Coyote 
told  the  young  ones  to  run,  for  he  had  to  fight  the  Bear.  When  he  saw 
that  the  young  Coyotes  were  gone,  he  turned  and  ran  in  another  direc- 
tion. Coyote  kept  on  running  until  he  ran  himself  to  death. 

1  Told  by  White-Eagle,  Skidi.  The  story  is  told  to  the  children  to  teach  them 
that  although  the  bear  is  a  fierce  animal,  a  little  animal  like  the  wild-cat  could  kill 
it  if  it  slew  its  young. 


468  COYOTE   TALES. 

145.  HOW  RABBIT  LOST  HIS  TAIL.1 

Rabbit  was  going  along  the  creek,  jumping  here  and  there,  and  he 
saw  the  limb  of  a  willow.  He  tried  to  jump  over  the  limb,  and  as  he 
jumped  over,  his  tail  caught  on  the  end  of  the  limb  and  he  pulled  so  hard 
to  get  loose  that  he  pulled  his  tail  off.  He  left  his  tail  on  the  limb  and 
went  on  crying,  and  at  the  same  time  singing: 

Did  I  lose  my  tail  in  the  timber? 
Did  I  lose  my  tail  in  the  timber? 
My  tail,  Rabbit's  tail? 

Turtle  moved  out  near  to  Rabbit.  He  spoke  and  said:  "You  say  you 
lost  your  tail?"  Rabbit  said:  "Yes."  "Why  don't  you  look  behind  you 
and  see  if  your  tail  is  not  hanging  on  to  the  willows  ? "  "  Very  well , ' '  said 
Rabbit,  "I  will  go  and  hunt  for  my  tail."  "But,"  said  Turtle,  "since  you 
have  lost  your  tail  upon  the  willows,  the  willows  will  have  white  fur  at  the 
ends  in  the  fall,  so  that  the  people  will  always  know  that  you  lost  your 
tail  upon  the  willow  limbs."  Rabbit  went  back  and  there  his  tail  was 
upon  the  willow.  He  jumped  up  and  took  the  tail  from  the  limb,  and 
carried  it  to  the  Turtle,  who  replaced  his  tail.  Rabbit  thanked  Turtle 
and  went  on  his  way,  singing: 

Now  I  have  my  tail, 

Now  I  have  my  tail, 

Now  I  have  my  tail. 

Turtle  crawling  on  the  ground, 

Now  I  have  my  tail, 

Helped  me  to  find  it. 

This  is  why  we  have  white  burrs  upon  the  willows. 

146.  THE  WHITE  AND  BLACK  RATS.2 

A  black  and  a  white  were  the  first  two  Rats  that  were  put  upon  the 
earth.  The  White  Rat  was  going  upstream  to  the  west,  while  the  black 
one  was  going  towards  the  east.  The  Black  Rat  was  saying:  "I  am 
hunting  for  food.  I  am  hunting  for  food."  The  White  Rat  was  also  cry- 
ing: "I  am  hunting  for  food.  I  am  hunting  for  food."  Upon  the  limb 
where  they  met,  sat  Magpie.  He  said:  "Stop  crying  and  listen  to  me." 
The  two  Rats  stopped  crying,  and  Magpie  sang  to  the  Black  Rat: 

1  Told  by  Woman- Yellow- Corn,  one  of  the  oldest  women  among  the  Skidi,  and 
a  member  of  the  medicine-society.     The  story  is  told  to  teach  people  how  the 
rabbit  lost  its  tail. 

2  Told  by  Woman- Yellow- Corn,  Skidi.     The  story  is  told  to  the  children  to 
teach  them  that  the  white  rats  were  given  earth-nuts,  while  the  black  rats  were 
given  artichokes,  and  that  these  two  animals  gave  these  two  things  to  the  people 
for  food. 


THE   WHITE  AND  BLACK  RATS.  469 

Now  there  must  be  rat  trails  in  the  forest, 
Now  there  must  be  rat  trails  in  the  forest, 
Made  by  Black  Rats,  made  by  Black  Rats. 
The  artichoke  vines  will   climb 
Upon  the  red  willows,  and  there 
If  you  dig  you  will  find  artichokes, 
From  this  time  you  will  find  artichokes 
With  eyes  like  an  ash  tree. 

Then  Magpie  sang  to  the  White  Rat: 

Hunting  ground  beans,  hunting  ground  beans; 
That  is  hunting  something,  hunting  something, 
Among  the  willows  you  will  find  earth-nuts, 
Earth-nuts  by  the  willows  under  the  ground. 
You  shall  go  there  to  the  willows; 
There  you  will  find  soft,  crumbling  soil. 
Hereafter,    White    Rat, 
You  shall  live  on  earth-nuts. 

Each  of  the  Rats  went  his  way,  singing:  "The  errand  bird  of  the  god 
in  the  north,  who  is  known  as  'Ready-to-Give,'  has  given  us  artichokes  to 
eat." 

Ever  since  that  time  the  White  Rat  has  been  known  as  the  ground- 
bean  Rat  and  the  Black  Rat  as  the  artichoke  Rat. 

147.  TURTLE'S  WAR  PARTY.1 

Turtle  started  on  the  war-path.  On  the  way  he  met  Mosquito.  Mos- 
quito asked  Turtle  where  he  was  going  and  Turtle  said:  "We  have  a 
root  sticking  into  us  and  we  are  mad.  I  am  on  the  war-path."  Mosquito 
then  asked  that  he  be  allowed  to  join,  and  the  Turtle  said:  "All  right." 
After  a  while  Cricket  met  the  war  party  and  asked  that  he  be  allowed  to 
join,  and  they  consented.  The  three  warriors  traveled  on  until  they 
came  to  a  lodge.  They  entered  the  lodge  and  tried  to  kill  the  people  who 
were  inside,  but  they  were  discovered.  They  caught  Turtle,  Cricket  went 
into  a  hole,  and  Mosquito  lighted  on  a  place  in  the  fire.  They  were  going 
to  put  Turtle  into  the  fire,  but  he  said  that  he  was  not  afraid  of  the  fire 
and  that  he  wished  they  would  put  him  in,  for  he  would  scatter  the  fire  all 
over  the  room.  At  last  the  people  said:  "Let  us  throw  him  into  the 
water."  Turtle  cried  and  said:  "I  am  afraid  of  the  water."  The  people 
said:  "He  is  afraid  of  the  water;  let  us  throw  him  into  the  water."  They 
threw  him  into  the  water,  and  when  he  struck  the  water  he  raised  his  head, 
poked  his  tongue  out  to  the  people,  and  said:  "The  water  is  my  home;  I 

*Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  story  is  told  to  the  children  to  teach  them 
that  they  should  not  join  a  war  party  which  had  weak  men  in  it,  but  that  they 
should  join  a  strong  party,  and  theirs  would  be  successful. 


470  COYOTE    TALES. 

fooled  you."  The  other  members  of  the  war  party  were  not  found.  The 
people  knew  that  they  were  still  in  the  lodge,  but  they  could  not  find  them. 
Finally,  Mosquito  went  out  of  the  lodge  and  flew  into  a  swampy  country, 
where  he  got  his  legs  stuck  in  the  mud.  Ever  since  the  time  of  the  Tur- 
tle's war  party,  crickets  have  lived  in  people's  lodges,  and  mosquitoes  have 
lived  near  swampy  places. 

148.  THE  ANIMALS'  WAR  PARTY.1 

Many  of  the  people  once  gathered  together  and  went  on  the  war-path. 
They  had  heard  of  three  men  who  lived  at  a  certain  place  who  were  very 
hard  to  kill.  Many  people  had  tried  to  kill  them,  but  none  had  ever  been 
successful,  and  the  ground  about  their  camp  was  covered  with  skulls  of 
those  who  had  tried  and  failed.  Among  the  many  people  who  went  out 
on  the  war-path  were  three  little  warriors,  Rabbit,  Turtle,  and  Spider- 
Woman.  When  they  were  near  the  lodge  of  the  three  men  who  were  hard 
to  kill,  the  three  little  warriors  boasted  that  they  were  going  to  kill  them. 
They  told  all  the  men  to  get  their  bows  and  arrows  ready ;  that  they  were 
about  to  make  an  attack.  Rabbit  charged,  riding  a  mule,  and  singing 
this  song: 

I  make  the  charge  on  the  first  man, 

Look  out!     Look  out! 

Thus  they  are  frightened  away. 

Then  Turtle  came  with  a  spear  and  something  on  his  back,  and  he  also 
sang  a  song.  The  spear  that  Turtle  had  was  of  grass,  and  the  thing  that 
he  had  upon  his  back  was  a  shield.  Spider- Woman  came  out  and  said: 
"Kill  the  other  two,  but  I  want  to  catch  the  youngest  of  the  three  men." 
The  men  saw  them  coming,  and  the  youngest  of  the  three  said:  "Let 
us  make  a  fire,  for  the  enemy  are  coming.  Let  us  cook  for  the  enemy." 
The  three  men  went  out  with  fire  in  front  of  them,  and  as  they  came  to  the 
chief  of  the  men  on  the  enemy's  side,  the  fire  touched  him  and  all  of  his 
warriors  and  killed  them.  Those  whom  the  fire  did  not  kill  were  hit  upon 
the  head  with  a  war  club  and  killed.  At  last  they  killed  Rabbit  and 
Turtle.  The  youngest  of  the  three  took  Spider- Woman  and  had  all  the 
fun  killing  her.  Thus  the  three  men,  who  were  Hawks,  destroyed  the 
great  warriors  who  had  come  to  kill  them. 

1  Told  by  Thief,  Kitkehahki.  This  story  is  told  to  show  how  the  rabbit,  turtle, 
and  spider-woman  made  a  charge  against  the  warriors  who  were  the  hawks.  The 
hawks  were  known  among  the  Indians  as  warriors  and  they  killed  the  rabbit,  turtle, 
and  spider-woman.  The  story  is  to  show  that  the  warriors  should  always  imitate 
the  hawks  instead  of  the  rabbit,  turtle,  or  spider-woman. 


ABSTRACTS 


ABSTRACTS. 

1.    ORIGIN    OP    THE    CHAUI. 

Tirawa  creates  heavens  and  earth  and  a  woman.  At  Moon's  suggestion  man  is 
sent  to  earth  as  her  mate.  The  pair  are  directed  as  to  use  of  terms  '  'father"  and 
"mother,"  and  are  instructed  to  build  earth-lodge  according  to  certain  plan,  and 
are  told  of  symbolism  of  lodge.  They  are  further  instructed  as  to  fireplace,  altar, 
and  sacred  bundle.  They  are  also  given  bow  and  arrow,  hoe,  and  colored  grains  of 
corn.  They  are  instructed  how  to  make  earthenware  vessels  and  how  to  cook. 
Woman  enters  lodge  first  on  its  completion  and  sacrifices  corn;  man  later  sacrifices 
fat  of  animal.  They  eat  corn  meal  mush  and  have  increase.  They  are  given 
dances,  one  of  which  is  briefly  described  and  is  used  in  calling  buffalo. 

2.    THE    FOUR   GODS    IN    THE    WEST. 

First,  man  and  his  wife  occupy  earth-lodge  facing  west.  After  they  have  in- 
creased they  all  move  west.  They  stop  and  gamble.  After  game,  man  remains 
behind  and  meets  strange  woman  covered  with  hair.  In  morning  her  tracks  appear 
as  animal  tracks.  Later,  woman  comes  and  passes  near  man,  who  runs  after  her, 
while  she  turns  into  buffalo.  She  leads  him  to  her  lodge.  Four  men  sit  in  west, 
representing  the  four  gods.  In  lodge  are  parfleches  of  meat.  The  man  returns 
toward  his  home  in  dazed  condition,  is  awakened  by  bluebird,  and  finding  buffalo 
robe  on  his  shoulders,  knows  that  his  vision  is  true.  His  people  kill  buffalo  and 
sacrifice  heart  and  tongue  to  four  gods  in  the  west,  as  directed. 

3.  THE  SMALL- ANTS'  BUNDLE  AND  THE  BUFFALO. 

Before  time  of  corn  and  buffalo,  people  wandered  about  living  upon  roots,  etc. 
Going  north  they  find  small  game.  They  are  led  still  farther  north  by  boy  who  has 
been  directed  by  Moon.  Thus  led,  they  arrive  at  their  new  home  and  build  grass- 
lodges.  Famine  is  imminent.  The  young  man  fasts  upon  hill;  is  directed  by  Moon, 
whose  reflection  he  sees  in  water,  to  continue  fasting;  drinks  of  spring  as  commanded 
and  encounters  old  woman.  Second  time  he  encounters  still  older  woman;  third 
time,  middle-aged  woman.  Next  time  he  is  called  to  enter  into  cave,  from  which 
the  spring  issued,  and  old  woman  directs  his  attention  to  young  girl,  who  changes 
herself  into  woman  of  various  ages,  thus  representing  the  phases  of  moon  which 
she  now  declares  herself  to  be.  They  go  outside  and  woman  gives  boy  ring  and 
javelin  game  for  men,  and  basket  or  dice  game  for  women.  Young  man  returns 
home.  They  play  with  buffalo  game  sticks,  while  women  play  with  dice.  Young 
man  returns  to  cave,  sees  many  earth-lodges,  which  are  really  ant-hills,  which  she 
tells  boy  will  serve  as  models  for  people's  lodges.  She  gives  him  bowl  of  corn  for 
the  people  of  his  village,  and  also  some  meat.  With  this  he  feeds  his  people,  for  the 
food  is  magical.  He  returns  to  old  woman's  lodge;  is  told  that  she  proposes  sending 
buffalo,  and  gives  instuctions  as  to  what  is  to  be  done  with  hide,  skull,  meat,  etc. 
She  gives  boy  sacred  bundle,  to  be  known  as  Small-Ants'  bundle.  Boy  returns  to 

473 


474  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

his  village,  where  the  people  are  clamoring  for  food.  Chief  is  invited  to  his  lodge;  is 
told  how  they  may  obtain  buffalo.  Ceremonies  are  performed.  Buffalo  come,  first 
one  being  sacred  and  treated  in  accordance  with  Moon's  instructions.  After  people 
have  been  fed,  they  construct  earth-lodges.  Buffalo  in  meantime  having  entirely 
left  their  cave,  young  man  places  feathered  stick  in  ground  four  times.  He 
returns  to  cave,  where  men  give  him  seeds,  which  he  gives  to  his  people.  On 
returning  to  cave  he  finds  that  spring  has  become  dry  and  cave  has  disappeared. 
The  people  become  dissatisfied  and  divide  up  into  different  bands,  which  disperse. 

4.  THE  FOUR  GODS  OF  THE  NORTH. 

Tirawa  instructs  man  facing  north  to  point  toward  the  north,  his  two  thumbs 
being  placed  together.  Upon  them  are  imprints  of  two  faces.  On  repeating  this 
performance  two  additional  faces  appear,  which  represent  the  four  gods  of  the  north, 
who  sent  Kingfisher  upon  earth,  who  divided  land  from  water,  and  being  touched 
by  the  man  becomes  woman.  Man  holds  ceremony  in  honor  of  four  gods  and 
transmits  ceremony  to  his  descendants. 

5.  LONG-TONGUE,  THE  ROLLING  HEAD. 

Four  girls  gathering  wood  make  snow  snakes,  which  they  glide  over  ice.  They 
are  attracted  toward  north  by  strange  odor.  In  their  search  for  source  of  odor, 
three  give  up;  fourth  continues  to  cedar-covered  hill,  where  she  finds  rock-lodge. 
Being  invited,  she  enters  lodge  with  young  man,  who  claims  that  lodge  is  place  of 
origin  of  scent.  Inside,  girl  finds  that  lodge  has  no  opening  except  small  smoke  hole. 
Young  man  lays  down  on  buffalo  robe  and  becomes  old  man.  In  lodge  is  sacred 
bundle  and  five  rattles.  In  morning  man,  now  young  again,  speaks,  stone  door 
moves,  and  he  leaves  lodge.  Boy  speaks  to  girl,  telling  her  occupant  of  lodge  is 
Long- Tongue,  a  fierce  rolling  skull.  She  is  instructed  how  to  make  her  escape. 
Her  informant  is  Raven.  As  Long-Tongue  enters  lodge  he  becomes  old  man. 
Following  day  girl  asks  permission  to  leave  lodge.  Outside  she  picks  handful  of 
berries  and  is  soon  left  alone  by  Long- Tongue.  Again  Raven  addresses  her.  On 
Long-Tongue's  return  she  louses  him,  throwing  away  ticks  and  cracking  berries  to 
represent  killing  them.  Having  removed  last  tick,  Long-Tongue  dies.  She  gathers 
up  ticks,  carries  them  to  entrance,  stone  door  moves,  she  leaves  and  throws  ticks 
away  and  returns  to  lodge.  Soon  Long-Tongue  becomes  alive  and  again  leaves 
lodge.  At  girl's  request  Long-Tongue  brings  in  buffalo,  which  girl  skins  and  takes 
care  of  meat.  Next  she  makes  tallow.  Raven  removes  from  sacred  bundle  arrow 
planes  and  flint  knife.  Girl  makes  three  tallow  balls.  She  digs  hole  in  ground  and 
fills  it  with  tallow,  and  covers  earth  in  center  of  lodge  with  tallow,  smearing  some 
also  on  side  of  walls  and  on  bundle.  Girl  gets  on  Raven's  back,  carrying  bundle 
of  objects.  They  leave  lodge,  and  when  Raven  grows  tired  he  places  girl  on  ground 
and  flies  overhead,  directing  her.  They  go  toward  east.  Long-Tongue  on  return- 
ing finds  lodge  empty,  but  before  starting  on  pursuit  begins  to  eat  tallow  which 
girl  had  placed  in  lodge,  thus  losing  much  time.  He  returns  after  girl,  and  his 
pursuit  is  checked  as  she  drops  on  ground  arrow  planes,  which  multiply  and  Long- 
Tongue  attempts  to  gather  them  up.  Again  he  begins  pursuit,  but  stops  as  she 
strikes  him  with  tallow  ball,  fragments  of  which  he  gathers  and  eats.  She  throws 
second  and  third  tallow  balls,  checking  his  pursuit.  She  then  stops  him  with  her 
flint  arrow-point,  which  multiplies.  Next  she  stops  him  with  arrow,  which  turns 


ABSTRACTS.  475 

into  dogwood  timber,  where  Long- Tongue  stops  to  cut  arrow  shaft.  Next  she 
drops  sinew,  which  becomes  buffalo,  thus  detaining  Long-Tongue,  who  stops  to 
gather  sinew.  Again  he  stops  to  gather  turkeys,  caused  by  the  girl  dropping  turkey 
feathers.  Next  she  drops  flint  knife,  which  makes  great  gulch  in  earth,  which  checks 
Long-Tongue's  pursuit.  Girl  sees  in  front  of  her  mound,  outside  which  man  is 
making  bow.  Girl  explains  her  flight;  is  invited  into  mound  by  man,  where  she 
finds  herself  in  lodge  and  sits  down  under  sacred  bundle.  Long-Tongue  now  over- 
takes her  and  calls  to  owner  of  lodge  to  release  her,  but  is  struck  on  head  by 
club  and  his  skull  split  in  two;  but  pieces  immediately  come  together  again. 
Next,  man  strikes  him  with  flint  axe.  One  piece  of  skull  flies  to  west  into  sky  and 
becomes  moon;  other  piece  flies  up  into  east  and  becomes  sun.  Thus  human 
images  are  found  upon  sun  and  moon.  Woman  lives  with  man  and  her  younger 
brother.  Later,  other  brothers  return  and  they  decide  that  girl  should  remain 
with  them  as  their  sister.  They  open  bundle  and  she  asks  for  ear  of  corn  in  it,  which 
they  finally  give  her,  as  she  claims  to  be  daughter  of  Evening-Star.  She  plants  corn, 
which  increases.  In  autumn  she  gives  birth  to  child,  whose  father  is  North-Star, 
which  visited  her  as  redbird.  Instructed  by  old  man,  woman  now  goes  to  her  hus- 
band in  north.  The  six  brothers  go  to  east  and  begin  traveling  toward  west.  In 
time  they  are  to  be  joined  by  woman  and  her  child  and  North-Star,  at  which  time 
world  will  come  to  an  end.  These  seven  brothers  were  great  warriors  and  were 
Hawks. 

6.    HOW   EVENING-STAR'S    DAUGHTER   WAS    OVERCOME. 

In  east  is  village  near  river.  The  heavenly  beings  come  down  to  earth  and 
aided  by  their  animals  they  build  earth-lodge,  over  which  Evening- Star's  daughter 
is  to  rule.  She  sends  her  four  gods  to  watch  over  her  daughter,  who  is  guardian 
of  bundle.  Evening-Star,  wife  of  Morning-Star,  kept  Morning-Star's  medi- 
cine objects  in  bundle,  among  which  is  war  club.  In  lodge  stands  heavenly 
gods  according  to  their  places  in  heavens.  Evening-Star,  desiring  that  women 
should  be  superior  to  men,  sends  her  daughter  to  kill  off  all  young  men.  People  of 
eastern  village  often  try  to  visit  western  village,  especially  to  marry  daughter  of 
Evening-Star,  but  are  always  killed.  Poor  boy  fasting  is  visited  by  red-painted 
strange  being  who  wears  leggings  with  scalps  and  feathers.  He  is  given  war  club  and 
is  instructed  how  to  win  maiden.  Boy  returns  home  and  asks  old  man  to  lead 
him  to  western  village.  They  start  west  and  are  met  by  young  girl.  She  strikes 
ground  with  war  club  and  canyon  appears  in  front  of  couple.  Boy  drops  moc- 
casin which  bears  the  symbol  of  Morning-Star  into  canyon,  as  he  had  been  in- 
structed. Canyon  closes;  moccasin  is  returned.  They  continue  and  girl  causes 
wide  river  in  front  of  them,  which  is  made  to  disappear  by  boy  in  same  manner. 
Thick  timber  is  thus  also  overcome.  Animals  appear  from  girl's  lodge  that  are 
overcome.  Boy  is  told  that  before  he  can  marry  girl  he  must  get  baby-board.  In 
his  search  for  board  he  receives  help  from  Morning-Star  and  goes  to  animals' 
lodge,  where  he  is  told  of  beavers'  lodge,  where  baby-boards  are  made,  but  where 
fire  kept  by  Turtle  is  so  hot  as  to  prevent  anyone  from  obtaining  board.  Coyote 
offers  to  get  cradle,  but  is  driven  out  by  sparks.  Hawk  makes  similar  attempt. 
Magpie  steals  one,  but  fire  follows,  and  it  passes  board  to  Diving  Duck,  who  enters 
stream  of  water  and  fire  disappears  trying  to  follow  duck.  Boy  takes  board  to 
girl's  tipi,  where  it  is  received  by  one  of  priests  and  placed  on  west  side  of  lodge. 
Boy  is  then  told  to  get  tying  string  for  cradle.  Again  he  is  assisted  and  returns 


476  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

with  otter  string.  Next,  he  is  directed  to  get  mat  for  baby-board.  He  is  assisted  by 
Morning-Star,  who  gives  him  arrow  with  which  he  shoots  buffalo.  Next  he  gets 
wild-cat's  hide  with  hawk's  assistance.  First  night  boy  attempts  to  enter  girl's  tipi 
he  encounters  serpent,  which  he  destroys  with  Morning- Star  moccasin.  Next  night 
on  attempting  to  enter  he  encounters  two  bears,  which  he  kills  with  moccasin. 
Next  night  he  kills  panthers;  and  next  two  nights  he  kills  wild-cats  and  coyotes. 
Coyotes  are  willing  to  help  and  are  not  killed.  Following  night  he  is  refused  and  cries 
till  Morning-Star  again  takes  pity  on  him  and  gives  him  flint  stone,  and  directs 
as  to  what  he  shall  do.  That  night  boy  rids  girl's  vagina  of  teeth  by  means  of  flint 
stone.  She  becomes  human  being  and  his  wife.  He  is  addressed  by  Morning-Star 
and  is  instructed  concerning  bundles,  one  of  which  is  that  of  girl,  and  other,  which 
he  is  to  make, represents  Morning-Star,  the  two  together  being  Morning-Star  bundles. 
Morning-Star,  having  thus  aided  boy  by  giving  him  instructions  of  various  sorts, 
asks  in  return  maiden  in  sacrifice,  saying  that  during  ceremony  of  sacrifice  all 
obstacles  met  with  in  his  overcoming  girl  should  be  reproduced.  He  is  further  in- 
structed as  to  use  of  baby-board,  which  is  to  bear  Morning-Star  symbol.  Gods  now 
return  to  their  places  in  heavens,  and  animals  present  in  lodge  return  to  timber. 

7.  THE  DAUGHTER  OF  THE  EVENING-STAR  AND  HER  SACRED 

BUNDLE. 

In  sole  earth-lodge  beyond  grass-lodge  village  in  the  west  dwells  beautiful  girl,  in 
attempting  to  marry  whom  many  young  men  lose  their  lives.  Success  in  attempt 
to  marry  her  means  sacred  bundle  from  Tirawa,  and  other  blessings.  Rich  boy 
decides  to  marry  her,  goes  north,  and  fasts.  On  fourth  day  red-painted  man  stands 
by  him.  This  man,  the  Sun,  gives  him  bow  and  arrow,  and  tells  him  that  girl  is 
daughter  of  Evening-Star.  Returning  to  his  own  village  he  starts  out,  accompanied 
by  old  man,  to  west.  They  encounter  and  overcome  difficulties — deep  canyon, 
stream  of  water,  thick  timber,  two  bears,  and  two  mountain-lions.  In  mean- 
time girl  has  been  forced  back  toward  her  own  lodge,  and  as  boy  strikes  ground 
with  his  bow  remaining  animals  become  quiet,  even  great  serpent.  Girl,  in  defense 
of  her  action,  accuses  boy  of  desiring  to  know  secrets  of  Tirawa.  Entering  lodge 
they  find  sacred  bundle  and  four  priests,  representing  winds,  clouds,  lightnings,  and 
thunders.  Boy  is  sent  for  baby-board  and  other  accessories  of  cradle.  In  this 
task  he  is  aided  by  mysterious  being,  presumably  Morning-Star.  The  four  old  men 
now  give  bundle  to  girl,  and  send  them  forth  as  man  and  wife,  men  and  animals  in 
lodge  returning  into  heavens  and  timber.  Boy  and  girl  return  to  his  people  and 
teach  them  to  build  earth-lodges,  and  explain  symbolism  of  earth-lodge. 

8.  CONTEST   BETWEEN   THE   MORNING-STAR   AND  THE  MOON. 

Mysterious  Man,  living  by  himself  in  lodge  on  hill  overlooking  valley,  always 
returns  successful  from  his  hunt.  Famine  prevails  in  village.  They  desire  to 
appeal  to  Mysterious  Man  on  hill,  but  are  afraid,  on  account  of  snakes.  Spider- 
Woman  is  willing  to  challenge  him.  Chief  invites  the  young  man  to  be  his  son- 
in-law.  He  declines,  for  he  says  it  is  his  duty  to  feed  snakes;  that  he  should  con- 
sult with  them.  Again  he  is  successful  and  scatters  meat  to  feed  snakes.  When 
young  man  consults  snakes,  they  express  their  willingness,  providing  young  man 
can  release  them  from  power  of  witch.  Next  he  releases  buffalo  from  cave  and 
people  kill  them.  He  releases  buffalo  again  on  two  following  days.  Witch  attempts 


ABSTRACTS.  477 

to  prevent  him  from  releasing  buffalo  another  time,  and  waves  her  robe,  which  has 
on  it  picture  of  Morning-Star.  The  boy  shoots  at  this,  and  instead  appears  new 
moon  symbol,  thus  revealing  her  true  identity.  Boy  shoots  again  and  quarter  moon 
appears;  again,  three-quarter  moon  appears;  fourth  time  full  moon  appears.  As 
he  shoots  at  it  again  it  turns  into  spider,  which  he  kills  with  his  bow  and  arrow. 
Placing  spider  on  his  bow  he  shoots  it  into  heavens,  where  spider  remains  as  Moon. 
Young  man  again  releases  buffalo,  which  scatter  over  land;  also  deer,  antelope, 
etc.  He  feeds  snakes  and  returns  to  heavens  as  Morning-Star,  leaving  substitute 
in  his  place,  who  goes  to  village  and  marries.  People  now  increase,  because  Spider- 
Woman  has  disappeared. 

9.   ORIGIN  OP  THE  BASKET  DICE  GAME. 

At  beginning,  gods  make  mud  images  of  girl  and  boy.  They  come  to  life, 
and  bow  and  arrows  are  given  them.  To  determine  duration  of  life,  and  whether 
it  should  be  night  or  day,  animals  pass  by,  and  as  they  kill  spotted  one,  day  and 
night  intervene.  Man  hears  dancing.  Accompanied  by  his  wife,  he  approaches 
lodge  and  they  are  invited  by  woman,  the  Moon,  to  enter.  Within,  they  see  four 
old  men  and  many  girls,  daughters  of  Moon.  Young  man  learns  dances  and  receives 
seeds,  and  they  are  taught  dice  game.  Woman  dancing  in  west  is  Evening-Star, 
standing  before  four  old  men.  In  lodge  are  four  other  dancers,  daughters  of  Big- 
Black-Meteoric  Star.  The  two  learn  many  things,  especially  symbolism  of  basket 
game,  basket  representing  Moon,  mother  of  all  stars,  who  also  helps  Big-Black- 
Meteoric-Star  to  cure  people. 

10.  THE  ORIGIN  OF  A  NEW  BAND. 

In  village  in  north  poor  boy  is  invited  to  play  with  son  of  medicine-man  and 
son  of  chief.  He  finally  accepts  and  urges  them  to  learn  ceremonies,  etc.,  from 
their  fathers.  When  they  have  gained  this  knowledge  the  threeset  out  on  war-path, 
meet  man,  whom  they  kill,  and  take  possession  of  his  wives,  and  thus  found  new 
band,  compelling  their  offspring  and  their  wives  to  adopt  their  language.  After 
a  while  they  set  out  toward  their  former  home.  The  poor  boy  goes  to  hill  and  cries. 
He  is  importuned  by  chief's  son  and  medicine-man's  son  to  desist.  After  repeated 
attempts  to  urge  poor  boy  to  go  on,  he  explains  as  reason  of  his  desire  to  remain 
behind  his  wish  that,  inasmuch  as  boys  knew  ceremonies  of  their  fathers,  they  should 
found  permanent  band  with  its  own  place  of  habitation.  This  they  do. 

11.  HOW  THE  PEOPLE  GOT  THE  CROW  LANCE. 

Leader  of  war  party  announces  necessity  of  sacrifice  of  raccoon.  Raccoon  is 
taken  and  sacrificed  by  fire.  Some,  protesting  against  this  form  of  sacrifice  and 
fearing  bad  luck,  return  home;  others  continue  on  war-path.  Man  who  made 
sacrifice  while  out  as  scout  is  seen  by  remaining  warriors  to  be  attacked  and 
overcome  by  warriors,  who  are  Crows  and  Coyotes.  Recognizing  evil  omen,  they 
also  return  home.  Man  who  had  been  killed  that  night  is  restored  to  life,  and  sees 
people  dancing  who  are  painted  black  and  carry  black  lance.  In  morning  he  desires 
to  follow  some  deer,  and  then  some  antelopes,  but  is  restrained  by  Crows.  Next 
day  he  kills  fawn,  on  which  he  makes  his  meal.  That  night  he  hears  strange 
noises  from  mound,  but  is  restrained  from  going  to  place  by  Crows.  He  is  re- 


478  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

strained  fourth  time.  But  fifth  time  Crows  disappear  in  tree  under  which  man 
had  been  lying,  and  just  then  hill  appears  into  which  man  is  invited,  where  he  finds 
himself  in  cave  in  which  Crows  dance  and  make  him  member  of  the  Crow  Lance 
society.  He  is  taught  songs  and  ritual.  Man  had  been  scared  simply  by  Coyotes 
and  Crows.  Coyotes  wanted  to  eat  him  up,  but  Crows  preferred  to  give  him 
their  ceremonies. 


12.  THE   ORIGIN    OF   THE    PIPE-STICK   CEREMONY.         3 

A  man  in  dream  sees  monster  of  immense  size  with  head  of  many  colors  sur- 
mounted by  white  eagle  feather.  He  decides  to  visit  place  where  he  had  vision 
of  monster.  On  river  bank  he  sees  water  spouting.  Monster  lifts  its  head  up 
and  down  from  water  four  times,  drawing  its  breath  and  drawing  man  toward 
water.  On  opening  his  eyes  he  finds  monster  and  animals  of  all  kinds.  Monster 
proclaims  that  it  controls  all  water  beings.  He  is  taught  mysteries  of  animals 
and  their  ways  of  doctoring.  Man  on  his  way  home  collects  willows  with  which 
to  make  image  of  monster  in  his  lodge,  and  kills  some  buffalo,  one  of  which  he  is  to 
use  in  making  effigy.  Lacking  further  information  as  to  how  to  construct  effigy, 
he  is  visited  in  vision  by  monster  and  is  told  how  to  capture  eagle  in  order  to  obtain 
feather  for  head.  He  is  told  to  go  to  eagle's  nest.  The  eagles  are  unable  to  help 
him  and  he  meets  wild-cat,  representing  sky  and  stars,  which  teaches  him  how  to 
cheat  people.  Evening-Star  then  addresses  him  and  gives  him  corn.  Next,  wood- 
pecker helps  him  with  stick  upon  which  to  tie  corn,  explaining  that  when  bundle  is 
complete  it  shall  be  efficacious  in  bringing  rain.  Ducks  offer  to  assist,  and  next 
Owls,  and  next  the  four  gods  in  heavens.  Different  animals  also  visit  him  in  his 
visions  and  give  him  songs.  He  also  receives  a  song  from  Sun  as  it  comes  up.  He 
is  also  taught  how  he  may  decorate  child  to  represent  Tirawa  during  ceremony,  red 
line  of  paint  around  face  indicating  that  Sun  has  touched  child.  Child  is  to  be 
placed  on  nest  of  oriole,  thus  showing  that  its  path  should  be  hard  but  safe,  for 
oriole's  nest  is  high  in  tree  and  can  not  be  blown  away  by  storms  nor  can  snakes 
get  at  it.  He  is  further  instructed  that  child  is  to  be  permitted  to  return  home 
and  that  paint  on  its  face  is  to  be  allowed  to  wear  off. 


13.  THE   GIRL  WHO   MARRIED   A   STAR. 

One  of  two  girls  sleeping  in  summer  arbor  wishes  that  she  might  marry  star. 
Awakening,  she  finds  herself  in  strange  country,  wife  of  star.  She  is  warned  not  to 
dig  turnips,  but  does  so  after  birth  of  boy.  While  digging  she  sees  earth  below  and 
people  walking  around.  She  saves  sinew  of  animals  killed  by  her  husband  and 
makes  rope  by  which  she  descends  with  boy,  but  rope  does  not  quite  reach  earth. 
Her  husband  discovers  her  absence,  drops  stone  downward,  which  kills  her.  Boy 
remains  near  his  mother  for  several  days.  During  thunder  shower  boy  follows  dry 
path  until  he  comes  to  tipi  occupied  by  old  woman  and  her  grandson.  The  two 
boys  grow  up  together.  They  are  warned  not  to  go  to  certain  dangerous  places, 
disobey,  and  destroy  certain  monsters — bears,  monster,  mountain-lion,  and  other 
wicked  animals.  Afterwards  boys  return  to  their  country,  where  Star-Boy  becomes 
great  man.  He  disappears  and  is  supposed  to  have  returned  to  heaven. 


ABSTRACTS.  479 

14.  THE  GRAIN-OF-CORN  BUNDLE. 

Man  of  prairie  hears  woman  crying,  and  going  to  place  finds  no  one  there.  He 
dreams  that  night  of  seeing  woman,  who  speaks  to  him.  The  next  night  he  goes 
where  he  had  been  told  to  meet  woman,  who  is  beautiful.  She  is  grain  of  corn, 
having  her  origin  in  Evening-Star.  She  tells  man  to  carry  her  with  him,  keeping 
her  in  his  quiver.  Man  goes  on  war-path  and  his  guardian  informs  him  of  enemy. 
According  to  instructions,  he  makes  sacred  bundle,  which  contains  corn.  While  off 
to  gambling  ground  one  day  his  mother  opens  bundle  and  converses  with  com. 
On  his  return,  corn  tells  him  of  fact.  She  also  helps  him  on  war-path,  but  asks  him 
to  refrain  from  marrying  for  two  years  and  to  plant  her  as  seed  corn.  At  proper 
time  man  marries  and  his  descendants  are  many.  He  leaves  instructions  obtained 
from  Corn- Woman  concerning  ceremonies,  especially  those  respecting  planting  of 
corn. 

15.  THE   METEORITE  PEOPLE.  5-, 

Wonderful  being,  Pahokatawa,  is  killed  and  cut  up  by  enemy,  and  animals 
devour  his  flesh,  but  heavenly  gods  agree  to  restore  him  and  signify  their  desire 
to  earthly  gods,  who  go  and  restore  meat  and  bones,  but  can  not  find  man's  brains. 
Afterwards,  he  visits  earth  from  time  to  time  as  meteorite,  often  warning  them  of 
enemy,  and  telling  people  that  they  must  not  be  afraid  of  meteors  or  shooting  stars. 
Afterwards,  men  walking  over  prairie  dig  out  bright-colored  stone  in  shape  of 
turnip.  They  regard  it  as  meteor  sent  by  Pahokatawa.  Offerings  are  made  to  it, 
and  it  is  believed  to  be  part  of  Morning-Star.  It  is  believed  that  as  long  as 
stone  is  present,  diseases  could  not  enter  camp. 


16.  BUFFALO  WIFE  AND  CORN  WIFE. 

Young  man  in  village  does  not  associate  with  other  boys,  but  daily  climbs  hill, 
where  he  remains  by  himself,  paying  special  care  to  his  personal  adornment.  On 
his  return  in  evening,  he  is  an  eagle.  Once  while  on  hill  he  hears  singing  coming 
from  Buffalo  women  in  east  and  calling  some  one  in  west.  Each  woman  has  pair 
of  moccasins,  and  while  he  is  thinking  which  one  to  accept,  one  places  one  on  one 
foot  and  other  one  on  other  foot,  and  he  decides  to  marry  them  both.  With  his 
wives  he  returns  and,  with  his  mother,  they  all  live  together.  Buffalo- Wife  gives 
birth  to  boy  and  Corn- Wife  to  girl.  The  children  quarrel  over  spoon  and  ear  of  corn. 
Mothers  become  angry  and  Buffalo- Wife  leaves  with  her  child.  Corn- Wife  and  her 
child  disappear  under  ground.  Man  assumes  shape  of  eagle  and  flies  toward  east 
until  he  conies  to  his  Buffalo- Wife  and  son,  now  a  calf.  At  night  she  turns  into 
woman  and  selects  her  tipi.  Eagle-Man  becomes  man,  enters  the  tipi,  but  is  re- 
pulsed by  his  wife,  though  his  little  boy  plays  with  him.  In  morning,  wife  and  child 
turn  into  buffalo,  and  leave.  He  follows  them  as  before,  on  across  stream  of  water. 
They  cross  high  mountains  and  finally  enter  woman's  village,  where  man  is 
asked  to  pick  out  his  wife  from  other  cows  and  his  son  from  other  calves.  Before 
entering  her  lodge  he  calms  fierce  bear,  whereby  rock  entrance  to  her  lodge  opens. 
Passing  through,  entrance  falls,  but  he  is  unhurt,  as  he  turns  into  breath  feather. 
He  is  able  to  distinguish  his  wife,  being  instructed  by  his  son  to  look  for  mark  he  has 


480  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

placed  on  her  tail.  Husband  is  invited  into  sweat-lodge,  where  he  finds  bulls  which 
attempt  to  prevent  him  from  going  out.  When  steam  heat  becomes  oppressive  he 
turns  into  badger  and  thus  is  able  to  get  his  nose  from  under  lodge  and  so  can  stand 
heat.  Then  husband  is  sent  to  tree  with  eagle  nest  in  it,  where  storm  rages,  with 
lightning.  On  his  addressing  eagles  storm  ceases.  He  returns  with  wood.  He  is 
challenged  to  run  race  with  old  buffalo  cow,  race  to  be  to  the  four  ends  of  earth. 
Should  he  win,  people  are  to  live  upon  buffalo;  otherwise,  buffalo  are  to  feed  upon 
human  beings.  He  turns  himself  into  Magpie  and  they  start.  The  old  woman  cow, 
pointing  with  her  cane  in  direction,  is  at  once  there.  Thus  she  gains  on  Eagle-Man, 
but  at  his  request  Badgers  dig  holes  into  which  she  falls.  Thus  he  begins  to  gain. 
He  wins,  and  buffalo  are  released  from  cave.  Certain  spotted  buffalo  are  driven 
back,  together  with  buffalo  with  two  heads.  White  buffalo,  however,  escapes.  Then 
old  woman  tries  to  make  love  to  Eagle-Man  and  warns  him  not  to  drink  water  from 
ragged  woman.  He  does  so,  thus  exciting  people,  who  accuse  him  of  drinking 
chief's  water,  as  ragged  woman  was  chief's  wife.  Chief  becomes  angry  and  digs  up 
earth.  Although  his  body  is  nothing  but  bones,  he  is  chief  of  buffalo.  Eagle- 
Man  attempts  to  shoot  him,  and  is  told  by  Mocking-Bird  that  vulnerable  part  of 
chief  is  hole  in  his  chest.  Thus  Eagle-Man  kills  buffalo  chief.  Thereafter  buffalo 
scatter  and  Eagle-Man  returns  to  his  people. 

17.  THE   POOR  BOY  WHO    MARRIED   THE    CHIEF'S   DAUGHTER. 

Poor,  dirty  boy  is  always  left  behind  in  moving  camp  and  lives  upon  pieces  of 
sinew  and  refuse  meat.  Poor  people  are  good  to  him,  but  well-to-do  mistreat  him. 
He  visits  chief's  tipi,  but  is  ordered  out  by  his  daughter,  although  chief  asks  him  to 
be  seated  and  orders  his  daughter  to  cook  for  poor  boy.  She  refuses,  but  offers  to 
cook  if  he  will  provide  water.  Thereafter,  boy  often  visits  the  chief's  tipi,  though 
abused  by  chief's  daughter.  Finally  she  beats  him  with  stick  and  he  goes  upon  hill 
and  mourns.  People  break  camp  and  leave  behind  fine  horse,  now  badly  crippled. 
Boy  goes  to  pony  and  travels  with  it,  and  pony  now  rapidly  regains  its  strength. 
Boy  grows  stronger.  On  journey,  pony  speaks  to  boy,  telling  him  he  had  purposely 
lamed  himself  so  as  to  be  with  him.  He  tells  him  to  go  to  chief's  tipi,  sit  at  entrance, 
and  obey  chief's  daughter,  for  from  now  on  she  will  begin  to  love  him.  Presently 
the  girl  so  desires  boy  that  she  goes  out  to  find  him.  He  offers  to  run  away  with 
her,  asking  her  to  get  sewing  implements.  They  make  home  in  timber.  Absence 
of  boy  and  girl  is  noticed.  Boy  revisits  village  during  attack  by  enemy,  of  which 
he  is  warned  by  his  horse,  and  he  succeeds  in  driving  off  enemy.  Four  times  he 
assists  in  victory,  and  people  give  victory  dance.  Boy's  wife  enters  village  gaily 
attired,  and  chief  rejoices  to  learn  that  his  daughter  married  poor  boy. 

18.    THE    CANNIBAL  WITCH  AND  THE  DOY  WHO  CONQUERED  THE 

BUFFALO. 

Witch-Woman  lives  in  prairie  by  herself  with  her  Poor  Boy  and  four  powerful 
dogs.  Boy  has  black  bow  with  two  strings  and  four  black  arrows.  He  is  great 
hunter.  From  time  to  time  he  is  urged  by  witch  to  kill  human  beings  for  her 
food.  Boy  always  escapes  capture  because  of  magic  flight  of  his  arrow.  Buffalo 
knowing  woman's  habits,  become  angry,  hold  council,  and  send  two  young  buffalo  to 
get  boy  to  kill  him,  thus  stopping  witch's  supply  of  meat.  Boy  in  meantime,  sitting 


ABSTRACTS.  41 

on  hill,  has  vision,  goes  to  his  grandmother  and  tells  her  that  he  is  about  to  make 
journey.  She  asks  for  four  additional  bodies,  which  he  succeeds  in  securing.  As  he 
is  leaving  he  instructs  witch  as  to  care  of  dogs,  one  of  them  to  be  kept  tied  all  the 
time.  He  travels  many  days  without  food  and  encounters  two  buffalo,  one  of  which 
he  shoots.  As  he  is  about  to  eat  one  of  kidneys,  Buffalo  speaks  to  him,  directing  him 
to  put  back  piece  of  meat  he  has  in  his  hand  and  to  look  away.  Turning  back,  he 
sees  woman  wearing  new  buffalo  robe.  She  restores  life  to  fallen  Buffalo.  They  fol- 
low boy  to  hollow,  where  they  turn  into  women  to  secure  from  him  details  of  secret 
of  his  ability  to  kill  human  beings  and  elude  pursuit.  Women  start  to  return  to  their 
country  as  Buffalo,  and  boy  follows.  At  night  Buffalo  become  women  again  and 
obtain  further  details  of  his  secret.  He  even  relates  how  he  may  be  killed.  They 
approach  Buffalo  village,  where  he  sees  Buffalo  playing  with  game  sticks.  He  is 
warned  by  old  Buffalo  that  Buffalo  wish  to  kill  him.  Old  Buffalo  is  chief,  who  lives 
in  west  and  promises  to  help  boy.  Boy  follows  him,  and  he  instructs  him  that  he  is  to 
dive  four  times  in  pond  in  front  of  tipi  of  Buffalo  who  has  white  spot  on  his  fore- 
head and  who  is  especially  desirous  of  killing  boy.  He  does  so,  and  White  Spot 
refuses  to  take  his  usual  bath.  Boy  is  challenged  to  smoke  contest  with  White 
Spot,  but  is  directed  by  Buffalo  chief  as  to  secret  of  victory.  In  contest  they  are  to 
see  who  can  cause  smoke  to  ascend  the  higher.  Boy  wins,  as  smoke  from  his  pipe 
ascends  on  one  side  of  the  tree  and  comes  down  on  other.  Next,  drinking  contest  is 
proposed,  the  object  being  to  drain  pond.  Again  boy  is  assisted,  and  during  contest 
uses  horns  given  him  by  Buffalo  chief,  which  enable  him  to  be  victorious.  On  fol- 
lowing day  runners  are  to  race,  but  the  Buffalo  on  boy's  side  win,  as  he  lashes  them 
with  his  bow  string.  Boy  now  strings  his  bow  and  kills  several  Buffalo,  but  White 
Spot's  friends  attack  him  and  he  disappears.  Then  White  Spot  appeals  to  Buffalo 
women  as  to  how  to  take  boy,  who  tell  him  that  he  keeps  ahead  by  magic  of  his  bow, 
which  is  black  snake.  They  finally  draw  near  him  and  he  hides  in  bunch  of  grass, 
from  which  he  is  blown  by  bull.  Boy  disappears  and  hides  in  pond,  which  Buffalo 
drink  dry.  As  Buffalo  blows  his  breath  on  mud  hole  in  center,  boy  jumps  on  dry 
land  and  then  disappears.  He  goes  to  timber  and  climbs  high  tree.  Boy  urinates 
in  his  robe,  drops  of  which  fall  upon  bulls,  who  think  it  is  rain  because  boy  has  been 
killed,  for  they  see  no  clouds.  Presently  bulls  discover  boy  and  they  select  five  bulls 
to  butt  down  tree,  first  trying  to  lift  it  up  by  the  roots.  As  tree  begins  to  totter, 
boy  yells.  His  call  is  heard  by  his  dogs  at  home,  and  his  grandmother  releases 
chief  dog,  who  starts  after  boy,  followed  by  others.  Dogs  drive  away  Buffalo,  tree 
falls,  and  boy  is  unhurt.  Boy  tells  his  grandmother  to  cut  up  meat  and  that  there- 
after she  should  not  eat  human  flesh.  They  return  home  and  boy  tells  his  grand- 
mother to  go  north  with  bag  of  seeds,  and  to  plant  seeds,  and  to  depend  on  them  for 
her  food.  He  releases  his  dog  and  puts  on  his  costume.  Old  woman  goes  north. 
Boy  goes  south;  is  thereafter  known  as  great  warrior,  and  goes  to  land  of  the  sun. 
Buffalo  in  council  decide  that  they  have  been  fairly  beaten  and  that  henceforth 
people  should  smoke,  offering  Buffalo  whiffs  of  smoke;  that  they  were  beaten  in 
the  water  contest  and  henceforth  people  should  make  spoons  from  their  horns; 
that  in  race  they  were  beaten  and  that  henceforth  people  should  be  superior  to 
them  in  running;  and  that  they  should  seek  grass  when  hungry  and  water  when 
thirsty,  so  that  people  might  find  them  easily;  but  that  when  people  have  multiplied 
they  should  use  buffalo  robes  for  children  to  lie  upon  and  urinate  upon,  as  boy  had 
urinated  upon  buffalo.  White  Spot  is  killed,  as  are  buffalo  girls,  and  they  go  to 
north,  where  they  now  stand  as  minor  gods  and  send  buffalo  to  the  people. 


482  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

19.    THE   WARRIOR   AND    THE    BLACK   LIGHTNING    ARROW. 

Young  manonwar-pathtravelswest  to  mountainous  country  and  suffers  hunger. 
Leader,  being  blamed  for  their  misfortune,  ascends  hill  to  pray.  While  he  is  absent 
warriors  are  successful.  On  fourth  night,  man  praying,  facing  west,  is  enveloped  in 
storm,  accompanied  by  lightning  and  thunder,  during  which  he  falls  into  trance. 
On  awakening  in  morning  he  finds  on  his  breast  small  black  arrow  with  flint  point 
and  stone  shaft.  He  rejoins  other  warriors,  explains  his  experience,  offers  smoke  to 
gods  and  to  his  arrow,  promising  that  if  he  neglects  arrow  it  may  return,  and  he  fastens 
arrow  on  necklace  over  his  breast.  They  resume  their  journey,  and  next  night  leader 
in  vision  is  visited  by  protector  of  warriors,  who  tells  him  where  they  may  find 
enemy's  camp.  They  advance,  capture  ponies,  and  escape;  leader  returning  home 
offers  on  way  horse  hair  to  his  protector.  Again  they  set  out  on  war-path.  Encoun- 
tering buffalo,  he  starts  to  kill  one,  but  leaves  his  wonderful  arrow  and  friends 
behind.  As  he  aims  at  buffalo  dark  cloud  comes.  He  runs  back,  obtains  his  arrow, 
and  his  friends  attempt  to  help  him  retain  it.  It  thunders  and  lightens,  and  blows 
like  flapping  of  wings.  Nevertheless,  arrow  makes  its  escape,  and  returns  to  clouds, 
and  becomes  part  of  lightning.  The  disconsolate  warrior  mourns;  is  visited  by 
same  mysterious  being,  who  reminds  him  of  condition  under  which  arrow  was  given. 
He  tells  him  he  will  be  great  warrior,  but  never  chief.  Hereafter  he  only  goes  on 
war  party  when  success  has  been  predicted  for  him  in  vision. 

20.  SPOTTED-HORSE,   A  BRAVE  AND   A   CHIEF. 

Man  in  dream  sees  mysterious  being  with  painted  buffalo  robe,  lariat,  and 
bundle,  and  is  told  to  stand  on  hill  for  four  days,  whereupon  he  will  receive  power. 
Obeying  his  instructions,  he  finds  sun  glass  and  blue  stone,  which  he  makes  into 
pipe,  the  stem  of  which  he  does  not  perforate.  Next  he  finds  wild-cat,  which  he 
skins  to  become  part  of  sacred  bundle  which  he  has  been  directed  to  make.  Having 
assembled  the  parts  of  his  bundle,  he  lights  his  pipe  with  glass,  and  smoke  passes 
through  stem,  though  it  is  not  perforated.  He  is  importuned  by  his  friends  to  take 
pity  on  them  and  allow  them  to  join  him  onHvar-path.  He  consents,  saying  that  his 
protector  is  the  Sun.  In  journeying  he  always  passes  on  east  side  of  his  compan- 
ions. He  becomes  warrior  and  is  successful  in  taking  ponies.  He  becomes  chief. 
The  bundle  and  accompanying  rites  are  transmitted  to  young  man,  who  changes 
his  name  with  each  fresh  success  on  war-path.  As  Spotted-Horse-Chief  he  leads 
party  against  Sioux,  success  being  attributed  to  rite  he  performs  in  connection 
with  bundle. 

21.  THE  BOY  WHO  WAS  GIVEN  POWER  TO  CALL  THE  BUFFALO. 

Early  in  winter  people  travel  west  on  buffalo  hunt  until  they  pause  exhausted. 
A  certain  boy  decides  to  look  for  buffalo.  With  moccasins  filled  with  pemmican  he 
starts  out.  Cold  and  discouraged  he  sees  artichoke,  which  he  eats,  feels  better,  and 
a  voice,  the  Wind,  tells  him  that  he  has  been  protected  since  long  before  birth.  As 
yet  he  sees  no  one,  but  hears  noise  like  feather  striking  dry  buffalo  robe.  He 
sees  more  artichokes,  which  he  gathers,  and  now  he  sees  a  man  wearing  hawk's 
head  dress,  which  he  gives  to  boy.  In  return  he  asks  that  boy  bring  him  offerings  of 
red  paint,  blue  beads,  eagle  feathers,  and  tobacco.  Boy  returns  home  with  his  arti- 


ABSTRACTS.  483 

chokes,  secures  offerings,  makes  his  offerings  as  directed,  and  his  parents  hunt  arti- 
chokes, but  find  ground  beans.  Next,  boy  kills  bear  and  then  discovers  buffalo, 
and  becomes  efficient  in  calling  buffalo. 

22.  THE  SON  OF  WIND,  READY-TO-GIVE. 

People  preparing  to  break  camp  discover  that  young  girl  is  pregnant.  She, 
though  innocent,  is  driven  from  camp  with  her  father  and  sister  and  grandmother. 
Being  left  behind,  they  make  grass-lodge,  and  girl  soon  gives  birth  to  boy,  at  which 
time  there  is  strong  wind  in  north.  Child  grows  rapidly,  and  while  in  timber  is 
addressed  by  his  father  and  given  bird  to  take  home.  In  similar  manner  he  receives 
rabbit,  and  so  day  by  day  larger  game,  until  he  is  given  buffalo.  On  next  visit  boy's 
father  appears  and  leads  him  into  timber;  is  directed  to  dig  in  soft  sand,  where 
he  finds  rat's  hole,  beneath  which  are  many  rats  and  ground  beans,  which  he  takes 
to  his  grandmother  On  next  visit  he  is  led  to  discover  artichokes,  and  next  he  is 
presented  with  leggings,  moccasins,  robe,  quiver,  etc.  Boy  returns  home  and  tells 
his  mother  he  has  seen  his  father,  who  is  Wind,  Ready-to-Give,  and  that  he  has 
promised  to  return  to  them  in  the  spring  and  teach  them  agriculture.  Boy  there- 
after kills  meat  with  assistance  of  his  father,  who  enters  lodge  to  visit  his  wife.  He 
tells  her  he  is  angry  because  people  made  her  an  outcast;  that  her  son  shall  event- 
ually be  chief  and  call  buffalo.  After  making  provision  for  them  for  winter,  he 
returns  to  north.  They  have  great  success  in  capturing  buffalo  during  winter. 
In  spring  boy  meets  his  father.  They  return  to  woman  and  plant  seeds,  white  corn 
being  given  to  wife,  yellow  corn  to  mother,  red  corn  to  sister,  and  black  corn  to 
grandmother.  Father  then  directs  boy  to  make  sacred  bundle,  telling  him  that  he 
should  place  in  it  fire  sticks,  white  corn,  hawk  skin,  and  sweet  grass;  but  when  he 
kills  a  buffalo  he  should  place  tobacco  in  its  nostrils,  at  roots  of  its  ears,  and  on 
top  of  its  head,  as  offering.  Thus  the  gods  would  know  that  their  spirit  is  to  dwell 
in  buffalo  skull,  which  is  to  be  placed  on  high  hill  until  it  is  clean,  when  it  is  to  be 
taken  inside  his  lodge  and  is  to  become  part  of  altar.  During  ceremony  skull  is 
to  be  placed  north  of  fireplace,  to  remind  the  people  that  they  are  to  make  separate 
offering  to  Ready-to-Give.  In  the  fall  Ready-to-Give,  having  provided  for  his 
family,  returns  to  north,  warning  his  family  that  they  must  shun  his  wife's 
uncles,  because  they  were  instrumental  in  bringing  their  disgrace.  One  of  those  of 
former  village  decides  to  return  to  old  village  to  open  cache  hole,  for  his  children 
are  starving.  The  boy  discovers  man  coming  and  he  is  taken  into  their  lodge  and 
fed.  Man  asks  who  they  are,  and  they  tell  him,  and  he  asks  to  see  boy.  Boy 
tells  him  to  ask  all  people  to  return.  He  directs  his  mother  to  give  man  meat,  with 
which  he  sets  out.  People  return  to  old  village  and  chief  asks  boy  to  marry  his 
daughter,  but  first  he  gets  tipi,  in  which  he  hangs  his  bundle,  calls  buffalo  four  times, 
and  leads  successful  war  party. 

23.  THE  MAN  WHO  CALLED  THE  BUFFALO. 

Boy  is  born  with  mysterious  power,  which  he  recognizes  when  he  is  old  enough 
to  use  bow  and  arrow.  He  follows  party  hunting  buffalo  and  discovers  artichokes 
where  tipi  poles  had  dragged.  While  digging,  man  appears  wearing  black  leggings 
with  scalps  and  eagle  feathers,  buffalo  robe,  and  eagle-skin  cap.  He  tells  boy  that  he 
has  been  his  protector  and  that  he  is  North  Wind;  gives  him  ground  beans,  which 


484  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

when  put  in  pot  multiply  magically.  In  similar  manner  he  receives  artichokes, 
Indian  potatoes,  and  buffalo  meat,  and  on  successive  visits  he  receives  still  larger 
pieces  of  meat,  with  which  his  mother  feeds  those  who  are  famishing.  Others  are 
invited.  Boy's  power  increases  and  he  is  able  to  produce  buffalo  meat  by  reaching 
under  buffalo  robe.  People  recognize  boy's  power  and  chief  sends  for  boy's  father, 
who  says  that  only  his  son  has  mysterious  power.  Boy  visits  North  Wind  and  tells 
him  to  call  buffalo.  Boy  confers  with  chief  and  asks  that  grass-lodge  be  put  on  west 
side  of  village.  Two  women  enter  and  make  moccasins.  People  are  given  to  boy, 
who,  under  his  direction,  imitate  buffalo  bulls,  cows,  and  calves,  and,  starting  from 
south,  pass  by  way  of  east  and  north  about  his  lodge  four  times.  Boy  puts  on  pair 
of  moccasins,  starts  toward  entrance  of  lodge;  moccasins  are  worn  out.  Women 
make  many  pairs,  which  he  wears  out  during  four  days  and  four  nights,  fasting  in 
meantime.  Fifth  day  he  sends  two  men  to  summit.  They  report  four  buffalo. 
Under  boy's  direction  three  are  killed,  and  they  are  made  holy.  Their  heads  are 
placed  toward  east,  so  that  they  may  be  restored  to  life.  The  ribs  are  taken  to  boy's 
lodge,  and  he  and  chief  eat.  Two  scouts  are  again  sent  out  and  report  six  buffalo, 
four  only  being  killed.  They  are  made  holy  and  taken  to  sacred  bundle  tipi.  Next 
day  eight  buffalo  are  seen,  five  being  killed.  Next  day  ten  are  seen,  six  being  killed. 
That  night  all  are  ordered  to  keep  quiet.  The  dogs  are  not  allowed  to  bark.  In 
night  the  boy  yells  on  high  hill  toward  the  four  directions.  Wind  begins  to  blow 
and  it  snows.  As  day  breaks  buffalo  are  seen  in  every  direction,  and  upon 
hill  is  a  circle  of  buffalo  about  feathered  stick  which  boy  had  used  in  calling 
buffalo.  Boy  presents  buffalo  to  chiefs;  tells  them  he  has  fasted,  but  must  eat 
grass  before  he  may  be  permitted  to  eat.  Grass  is  found  in  south  with  difficulty, 
on  account  of  snow.  When  he  has  eaten  grass  he  eats  meat,  and  tells  chiefs  that  he 
is  not  to  be  chief;  that  people  were  made  by  Tirawa,  and  he  returns  people  which 
had  been  given  him  by  chiefs.  Many  buffalo  are  killed,  and  as  spring  approaches 
they  return  to  their  village  and  plant  their  crops;  but  their  crops  fail,  and  by  spring 
famine  threatens  again,  the  seed  corn  even  being  eaten.  Chiefs  in  council  send  for 
boy,  who  tells  them  to  call  him  Running-Howling-Wolf.  He  tells  them  to  clean  out 
the  cache  holes,  to  address  their  skin  receptacles  saying  what  kind  of  grain  they 
desire,  and  to  throw  sacks  into  holes  and  cover  holes  up.  Holes  remained  cov- 
ered four  days,  and  on  fifth  are  opened  and  sacks  are  found  filled  with  corn.  Thus 
people  are  saved  and  boy  returns  to  North  Wind. 

24.  THE  WONDERFUL  BOY. 

In  village  are  many  games,  especially  ring  and  javelin  game.  One  boy  gambles 
away  at  this  game  all  his  belongings,  even  his  robe,  his  sister's  robe  and  her  trinkets. 
Boy  lies  with  his  sister  with  half  robe  over  them.  His  angry  father  tells  him  to 
continue  gambling  until  all  the  family  belongings  have  been  lost  and  then  never  to 
return.  Boy  remains  sorrowing  all  day  in  lodge,  and  at  night  starts  west  with  moc- 
casins, arrows,  leggings,  and  robe,  part  of  which  girl  begs  from  her  uncle.  Traveling 
west  he  comes  to  village,  visits  chief  tipi,  and  inquires  if  other  people  live  farther  west. 
Receiving  an  affirmative  answer,  he  starts  west,  and  in  similar  fashion  visits  several 
villages,  until  he  comes  to  people  who  are  naked  and  who  have  neither  bows  nor 
arrows,  but  have  clubs,  which  they  use  in  hunting  rabbits,  upon  which  they  live. 
They  try  to  detain  him,  but  he  continues  onward  until  he  encounters  people  with- 
out mouths,  who  obtain  nourishment  by  inhaling  smoke  of  roasting  meat.  They 


ABSTRACTS.  485 

talk  by  signs.  They  feed  boy  and  he  continues  on  his  way  westward.  He  encoun- 
ters dwarfs  who  kill  game  with  slings.  They  challenge  him  to  shoot  hide.  His  bow 
and  arrow  prove  superior  and  they  wonder  at  his  skill,  and  at  their  request  he  teaches 
them  use  of  bow  and  arrow.  They  tell  him  that  there  are  no  people  to  west.  He 
travels  westward  and  at  night  is  addressed  by  North  Wind,  who  tells  him  of  coming 
events.  The  following  day  he  travels  swiftly,  seeing  high  peak  in  distance  covered 
with  eagle  feathers,  top  of  which  consists  of  eagles.  Gathering  feathers,  he  con- 
tinues to  steep  bank,  where  he  spends  night.  He  continues,  and  sees  water  and, 
beyond,  thick  fog.  He  is  now  at  the  horizon  and  is  told  by  North  Wind  that  under 
bank  toward  south  sits  buffalo,  who  controls  big  water.  He  is  directed  to  throw 
black  eagle  feathers  to  buffalo  and  to  ask  for  permission  to  go  beyond  horizon,  and 
he  rises  and  gives  buffalo  tobacco  and  feathers.  He  obtains  buffalo's  permission 
to  continue.  Buffalo  sits  down  in  the  water,  and  boy,  directed  by  North  Wind, 
removes  his  clothing,  wades  in,  and  wind  carries  him  over  to  opposite  side.  Still 
directed  by  wind,  boy  goes  on  and  enters  on  north  side  the  westernmost  lodge,  home 
of  the  four  gods.  North  of  lodge  he  sees  pumpkin  field,  and  on  south  bean  field, 
and  west  of  lodge  corn  field.  Entering,  he  is  given  seat  near  entrance,  and  one  of 
gods  tells  him  that  they  know  that  North  Wind  has  brought  him,  that  he  is  great 
gambler  and  has  lost  his  possessions.  They  tell  him  to  look  on  south  side  of 
lodge,  where  sits  South  Wind,  who  brings  bad  luck.  He  sees  ugly  man  with  rough 
skin  of  white  color  and  unkempt  hair.  He,  they  say,  it  is  who  brings  bad  luck. 
They  tell  him  he  is  in  home  of  Tirawa,  but  can  not  see  him.  They  teach  him  cere- 
monies and  prepare  squash,  beans,  melons,  and  corn  for  him,  priests  singing  in 
meantime.  Next  he  is  given  buffalo  meat.  They  tell  him  to  return  to  his  people 
and  feed  them.  They  give  him  buffalo  robe,  in  which  he  wraps  his  seeds  and  food  for 
his  people,  and  he  starts  eastward.  North  Wind  comes  and  covers  boy  and  they 
again  approach  horizon,  pass  through  water,  meet  buffalo,  who  is  satisfied  when 
he  sees  buffalo  robe,  telling  boy  that  now  he  possesses  buffalo's  power.  Buffalo 
is  offered  feathers,  and  boy  and  Wind  go  to  eagle  mound,  where  he  gathers  many 
feathers,  which  he  makes  into  bundle.  He  returns  home  without  visiting  villages 
encountered  on  his  way  westward,  being  directed  to  prepare  offerings  for  North 
Wind  of  blue  beads,  eagle  feathers,  red  paint,  sweet  grass,  and  tobacco.  As  he  draws 
near  village  odor  of  human  beingsovercomes  him.  He  remainswith  Wind  all  night. 
Following  day  people  see  buffalo  footprints.  He  approaches  nearer  village,  but 
can  not  enter  on  account  of  odor.  Fourth  night  he  enters  his  father's  lodge;  directs 
his  sister  to  have  his  father  bring  offerings,  which  he  takes  to  North  Wind.  He 
returns,  asks  his  father  not  to  stop  to  embrace  him,  but  to  warn  the  people  in  village 
that  he  has  returned.  He  feeds  people  on  magic  meat,  which  he  brings  from  under 
his  robe.  This  he  does  four  nights,  and  morning  of  fifth  day  he  directs  people  to 
send  scouts,  who  shall  give  signal  from  top  of  hill  that  they  see  buffalo,  which  are 
now  plentiful.  People  kill  buffalo  four  times  and  perform  ceremonies.  In  spring 
seeds  are  planted  and  following  spring  still  more,  and  so  people  obtain  seeds 
through  the  young  gambler. 

25.   THE   BOY   WHO   PREFERRED   WOMAN   TO    POWER. 

Coming  Sun  in  a  dream  is  told  to  stand  on  hill  four  days.  Obeying,  at  end  of 
his  fast  he  is  directed  to  look  in  certain  direction  and  sees  man  in  ravine  going 
toward  spring,  whom  he  is  directed  to  head  off.  He  fails.  He  again  is  directed  to 


486  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

look  into  valley  and  sees  warriors  driving  ponies,  but  fails  to  head  them  off,  as  before. 
Next  he  fails  to  head  off  crowd  of  warriors  who  carry  scalps  on  poles.  Myste- 
rious Being  makes  himself  known,  saying  that  he  is  North  Wind;  that  he  has  all 
kinds  of  birds,  animals,  grass,  and  trees,  and  gives  him  bag  of  medicine,  telling  him 
that  he  tried  to  make  warrior  of  him,  that  he  tried  to  give  him  ponies,  and  tried  to 
help  him  scalp  the  enemy;  that  as  he  had  failed  he  would  make  of  him  a  medicine- 
man; that  whenever  he  should  join  a  war  party  it  would  be  successful,  but  that  he 
could  never  be  leading  warrior.  Also  gives  him  eagle  feather,  which,  if  fastened  to 
pole  and  used  in  certain  way,  will  bring  buffalo.  He  becomes  great  man,  accom- 
panies many  war  parties,  and  becomes  prophet.  He  is  assisted  by  his  protector  and 
is  given  war  medicines,  such  as  buzzard  feathers,  which,  when  worn  on  their  heads, 
would  cause  great  cloud  of  dust  to  rise  and  obscure  warriors  when  they  stood  in 
circle.  He  calls  buffalo.  One  night  woman  enters  his  tipi,  and  while  he  is  with  her 
young  man  removes  feather  from  pole,  and  so  he  fails  in  calling  buffalo;  and  thus 
Coming  Sun  loses  his  power,  because  he  preferred  woman  to  power,  and  becomes 
blind  and  dies. 

26.    THE    BUFFALO    GAMING-STICKS. 

Ring  and  javelin  buffalo  game  is  given  to  people,  and  they  play,  singing  songs. 
Morning  after  first  game  they  see  tracks  on  gaming  field.  One  young  man  who 
went  into  field  lies  with  woman.  She  gives  birth  to  buffalo  calf.  Later,  party 
hunting  sees  snowbird.  It  flies  in  front  of  them,  leading  them  on,  for  they  can  not 
kill  it.  One  by  one  they  all  cease  to  follow  bird,  except  young  man  who  had 
associated  with  woman.  On  summit  of  ridge  he  is  able  to  see  countless  buffalo 
approaching.  In  the  field  is  woman  and  her  child,  as  cow  and  calf — his  wife 
and  child.  Calf  is  always  crying  for  its  father  and  overhears  bulls  declare  they 
will  kill  him.  Calf  tells  his  father  how  he  may  recognize  him  when  bulls  make 
him  undergo  certain  tests.  Calves  are  arranged  in  row  and  father  is  asked  to  recog- 
nize his  son.  He  does  so  as  calf  winks  at  him.  Next  he  distinguishes  wife,  for  calf 
has  placed  burr  on  her  tail.  Man  is  permitted  by  bulls  to  return  home,  where 
he  tells  his  people  that  in  four  days  buffalo  will  come  and  they  will  have  plenty  to  eat. 

27.    THE  BOY  WHO  CALLED  THE  BUFFALO  AND  WENT  TO  NORTH 

WIND. 

Famine  prevails,  and  chief  orders  people  to  go  west  to  find  buffalo.  They 
travel  westward,  having  no  success  until  timbered  country  is  reached,  where  they  are 
told  to  make  their  permanent  village.  They  erect  grass-lodges.  Famine  increases 
and  winter  is  approaching.  Chief  sends  them  far  into  country  to  hunt  buffalo. 
They  prepare  to  leave.  Coyote  Boy  asks  his  mother  to  make  moccasins,  that  he 
may  go  with  them.  He  follows  them.  They  go  west.  Third  night  it  snows,  and 
following  day  Coyote  Boy  gives  out  and  falls  behind.  Hunters  press  on.  Clouds 
come  from  west.  It  snows  and  artichoke  drops  in  front  of  Coyote  Boy.  He  eats, 
and  while  he  is  eating  some  one  addresses  him.  He  tells  him  he  is  the  author  of  his 
life  and  is  Snow  Storm.  Boy  sees  man  with  buffalo  robe  covered  with  snow,  and 
fox-skin  cap  with  feather  attached  to  it,  which,  blown  by  wind,  strikes  his  robe. 
According  to  instructions  boy  gathers  artichokes  and  starts  home,  being  given 
power  to  travel  fast.  He  gives  food  to  his  mother,  which  proves  magical.  He  col- 
lects presents  for  his  protector,  who  now  gives  him  his  cap  and  tells  him  he  should  be 


ABSTRACTS.  487 

known  as  Whipping  Feather  and  have  power  to  travel  fast  and  drive  buffalo.  Boy 
accompanies  his  parents  and  they  find  ground  beans.  Next  he  returns  home  with 
deer  and  then  notifies  people  that  buffalo  have  arrived.  Boy  marries  and  event- 
ually goes  to  North  Wind. 

28.    THE   MAN   WHO    MARRIED   A   BUFFALO. 

On  buffalo  hunt  shy  boy  who  dislikes  girls  has  intercourse  with  cow.  Next 
spring  this  cow  has  calf,  which  repeatedly  asks  for  its  father.  With  its  mother 
they  go  east  to  find  its  father.  They  change  into  human  beings  and  enter  father's 
lodge.  They  tell  his  sister  that  they  want  to  see  him.  He  does  not  recognize  her  and 
does  not  at  first  acknowledge  that  he  is  father  of  child.  She  explains,  and  he  takes 
them  into  his  lodge  and  presents  them  as  his  wife  and  child.  He  shuns  woman,  but 
makes  much  of  boy.  Within  four  days  she  becomes  exactly  like  other  people  and 
warns  people  to  be  on  their  guard  against  her  son  lest  he  strike  their  children, 
when  his  hands  would  be  like  buffalo's  hoofs;  also  that  he  should  not  be  permitted  to 
fall  lest  he  become  buffalo.  The  child  often  takes  water  to  his  father  while  gam- 
bling. One  day  his  father,  losing,  becomes  angry  and  refuses  to  drink.  His  wife 
knows  of  it,  leaves  lodge,  takes  her  son,  and  they  start  away.  Man  gets  his  mocca- 
sins and  follows,  his  wife  refusing  to  return  with  him.  His  child,  pitying  his  father 
feeds  him  with  pemmican,  which  falls  to  ground  as  his  father  strikes  him  on 
forehead,  at  his  request.  Calf  brings  water  from  ground  for  his  father  to  drink,  by 
pawing  earth.  On  fourth  day  they  arrive  at  buffalo  village,  where  cow  and  calf 
disappear.  On  next  day  calf  appears  and  tells  his  father  that  he  is  to  be  asked  to 
identifyhis  father-in-law  in  line  of  twenty  buffalo.  This  he  is  able  to  do  by  tail  marks 
on  rump.  On  following  day  he  identifies  his  mother-in-law  by  means  of  two  cockle 
burrs  on  her  forehead.  Next  day  he  identifies  his  wife  by  cockle  burr  on  her  tail. 
On  following  day  he  identifies  his  child  as  it  winks  at  him  and  by  cockle  burr  over  his 
right  eye.  Buffalo  now  agree  to  allow  him  to  remain  with  them,  and  they  by  magic 
turn  him  into  buffalo  bull.  Accompanied  by  his  wife  and  son  and  twenty  buffalo 
they  go  to  village  of  people  in  order  that  father  might  obtain  eagle  feathers,  etc.,  as 
presents.  This  he  does.  He  tells  his  people  to  go  to  certain  place  following  morn- 
ing and  there  find  buffalo;  to  kill  them  and  make  them  holy.  Man  takes  three 
additional  bunches  of  buffalo  to  his  people  and  thereafter  buffalo  scatter.  Once 
it  was  found  out  that  man  himself  had  been  killed,  because  when  his  hide  was  re- 
moved it  was  discovered  to  be  covered  with  feathers. 

29.   HOW  THE  WITCH-WOMAN  WAS   KILLED. 

East  of  village  lives  Witch- Woman.  Sometimes  she  doctors  people,  and  other 
times  bewitches  and  kills  them.  In  village  boy  is  born  whose  father  is  White 
Moccasins,  a  wonderful  man.  Child  is  favorite  with  all  women,  who  carry  him 
about  on  their  backs,  passing  him  from  one  to  another.  Witch  desires  child  and  asks 
Clam  Shell  to  change  places  with  her  while  she  travels  with  people.  On  following 
morning  witch  obtains  child  and  goes  off  with  it,  telling  Clam  Shell  to  follow  people, 
so  suspicion  would  not  be  cast  on  her.  Witch  carries  child  far  to  east.  People 
mourn  for  child  and  keep  abandoning  their  lodges  until  only  that  of  White  Moc- 
casin is  left.  Witch  stops  at  big  water,  makes  grass-lodge  and  garden,  where  she 
remains  with  boy  for  many  years,  boy  providing  game  and  calling  old  woman  his 


488  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

mother.  He  has  wonderful  power  and  is  warned  by  Witch  not  to  go  far  to  east. 
While  out  playing,  Crow  tells  him  that  his  real  parents  live  to  west.  Following  day 
boy  is  enticed  to  west  by  Red  Hawk,  who  has  scalp  hanging  from  his  claw  and 
carries  war  club.  Boy  follows  till  he  is  tired  out  and  then  lies  down  to  sleep,  Hawk 
dropping  the  scalp  and  club.  While  asleep  insect  tells  him  of  his  father.  In  morn- 
ing voices  cry  out  from  every  direction — tipi  poles,  fireplaces,  grass,  etc. — that 
he  is  son  of  White  Moccasin.  Finally  Clam  Shell  tells  of  what  had  passed  between 
her  and  Witch,  and  claims  to  have  brought  boy  back  through  her  desire,  aided  by 
the  gods.  At  her  request,  boy  takes  Clam  Shell  to  water  and  follows  trail  to  west 
and  comes  to  abandoned  village  site,  where  voices  again  tell  him  who  he  is.  For 
many  days  he  travels,  always  hearing  singing.  He  enters  village  and  is  taken  into 
chief's  tipi.  His  father  claims  him  and  boy  tells  how  he  gained  knowledge  of  his 
father.  Chief  asks  that  boy  be  his  son-in-law.  He  refuses,  for  it  is  not  yet  time  for 
him  to  marry.  Led  by  boy  they  travel  south  and  find  many  buffalo.  They  return 
to  their  old  home,  where  boy  leads  war  party,  which  is  successful,  and  they  return 
with  scalps  and  ponies.  He  leads  successful  war  party  four  times  and  makes  four 
buffalo  holy  and  takes  them  into  lodge  of  priests.  Then  he  leads  party  eastward 
until  he  comes  to  Witch's  lodge,  when  he  turns  into  Hawk,  others  turning  into  Owls. 
Hawk  kills  her  and  she  becomes  witch  again  and  laughs  at  him,  whereupon  he 
becomes  young  man  with  war  club  and  kills  her,  and  he  and  his  companions  bury 
her.  They  return  home.  He  goes  to  river  with  young  boy  friend  and  Clam  Shell 
gives  him  magic  power.  After  buffalo  hunt,  in  which  he  makes  four  buffalo  holy, 
he  marries  daughter  of  chief  and  becomes  great  medicine-man.  His  protector  was 
Sun,  and  he  was  thereafter  known  as  White  Sun. 

30.   PURSUIT  BY  A  RATTLING  SKULL— THE  PLEIADES. 

While  on  buffalo  hunt  people  camp  near  stream  of  water.  Girl  off  gathering 
wood  loses  her  way,  is  captured  and  taken  to  earth-lodge  by  Skull,  who  tells  her 
that  it  is  her  duty  to  keep  it  clean;  that  her  food  is  to  be  its  scales;  otherwise,  she 
would  die.  Girl  is  missed,  searched  for,  and  given  up.  Skull  makes  several  short 
journeys;  gaining  confidence  in  girl,  he  makes  longer  journey,  and  girl  goes  to 
high  hill  and  cries.  She  is  addressed  by  mysterious  man,  to  whom  she  tells  her 
trouble,  and  he  promises  to  help  her  and  gives  her  arrow,  bladder,  and  cactus.  She 
fills  bladder,  and  water  starts  running  toward  north.  Skull  discovers  her  absence 
and  pursues  her.  She  sings,  and  mountain-lion  appears  and  says  that  he  has 
no  power  against  that  of  Skull.  Girl  drops  cactus,  which  magically  multiplies 
and  checks  Skull's  pursuit.  She  sings,  and  Bear  answers  her,  but  he  is  powerless. 
She  drops  bladder;  wide  river  forms.  Skull  floats  down  river  on  log.  Girl  sings  to 
buffalo,  but  he  also  is  powerless.  As  Skull  is  about  to  overtake  her  she  drops  arrow 
and  thorn  trees  appear.  Skull  blows  its  breath  and  fire  burns  pathway.  Girl  now 
finds  lodge  of  brothers  and  sings.  Three  young  boys  come  out, 'each  with  quiver 
and  war  club.  They  invite  girl  into  lodge.  As  Skull  approaches,  youngest  breaks  it 
into  pieces.  Girl  breaks  Skull  into  smaller  pieces,  puts  them  upon  fire,  and  burns 
them.  Girl,  with  boy's  aid,  prepares  field  and  plants  corn,  beans,  and  squash  which 
she  brought  with  her,  and  warns  boys  not  to  visit  field  until  she  gives  them  permis- 
sion. In  fall  they  gather  corn  and  cure  it  and  cache  it.  In  winter  older  brothers 
return.  At  first  they  decide  to  send  girl  away,  but  as  she  has  brought  corn  they 
allow  her  to  live  with  them,  asking  youngest  what  relationship  she  shall  bear,  which 


ABSTRACTS.  489 

he  decides  shall  be  that  of  sister.  Girl  discovers  that  brothers  disappear  each  night, 
returning  in  morning.  They  are  stars.  Finally  they  decide  to  take  her  with  them 
and  she  becomes  seventh  of  the  Pleiades. 

31.  THE  POOR  BOY  AND  THE  MUD  PONIES. 

When  dogs  served  as  burden  bearers  instead  of  horses  poor  boy  lives  in  village, 
to  whom  only  chief  shows  friendship,  for  which  chief  is  laughed  at.  Boy  has  vivid 
dream  of  two  ponies,  and  thereafter  often  makes  little  mud  ponies,  and  carries  them 
in  his  robe  and  hides  them  outside  village.  He  treats  them  as  real,  giving  them  drink 
and  food.  While  sleeping  in  chief's  lodge  he  again  dreams  of  ponies  and  he  hears 
Tirawa  singing.  In  morning  he  goes  to  hill  and  repeats  song,  and  some  one  visits 
him  and  tells  him  that  Tirawa  has  given  him  dance,  that  he  shall  be  chief,  and  that 
his  ponies  will  live.  Obtaining  lariat  he  goes  to  his  mud  ponies,  which  are  now  liv- 
ing animals.  He  leads  them  to  village  where  people  revere  them,  as  they  are  first 
ever  seen.  Boy  marries  chief's  daughter,  goes  to  war  on  one  of  his  ponies,  and 
returns  victorious.  He  founds  chief's  society. 

32.  THE  ORIGIN  OF  THE  BUFFALO  BUNDLE. 

Buffalo  decide  to  go  to  the  people.  White  Spot,  the  leader,  takes  his  white  cow 
and  calf  and  starts.  Calf  carries  bundle  and  decides  distance  of  each  day's  journey. 
They  visit  people  and  give  them  buffalo,  which  are  made  holy.  They  also  capture 
bundle.  On  return  white  calf  gives  birth  and  leaves  offspring  behind.  Little  calf 
follows,  claiming  White  Frost  as  its  mother.  Mother  would  not  claim  it  and  little 
calf  says  that  her  milk  will  turn  black  and  that  there  would  be  no  more  white 
buffalo.  Little  calf  returns  to  village  of  people  and  becomes  a  boy  and  grows  up 
to  be  wonderful,  assuming  charge  of  the  buffalo  bundle.  He  explains  use  of  fat  in 
offerings,  use  of  pipe  and  meat  fork,  and  that  in  smoking  during  bundle  ceremonies 
they  should  use  the  enemy's  arrows  as  pipe  tampers,  thus  making  them  offerings  to 
Tirawa;  for  should  they  use  their  fingers  in  tamping,  they  would  be  offering  them- 
selves. 

33.  THE  LAST  OF  THE  WHITE  BUFFALO. 

[Similar  to  preceding  tale.     The  little  white  calf,  being  disowned,  turns  brown.] 
While  on  a  hunt  Buffalo  people  find  a  white  Buffalo  bull  and  cow.     The  robes 
are  used  in  sacred  bundles  and  no  white  Buffalo  are  seen  thereafter. 

34.   THE   WIFE   WHO  RETURNED   FROM  SPIRIT  LAND. 

Young  man  is  continually  on  war-path,  which  he  prefers  to  women.  He  finally 
falls  in  love,  but  must  capture  more  ponies  before  he  can  get  married.  Hearing 
drumming  and  singing  of  warriors,  he  joins  them  and  goes  south  toward  Comanches. 
The  girl  pines  for  the  young  man,  becomes  sick,  dies,  and  is  buried  on  hill  on  plat- 
form which  is  covered  with  little  mound.  Young  man  rejoins  his  people  victorious. 
Hearing  of  girl's  death,  he  goes  to  her  grave  and  mourns  for  many  days,  but  finally 
returns  to  village  for  something  to  eat.  He  enters  lodge,  from  which  smoke  issues, 
and  sees  girl,  who  has  been  buried,  surrounded  with  all  her  belongings.  He  remains 
there  during  night,  but  at  her  request  does  not  approach  her.  Thus  he  visits  her  on 


/ 


4Qo  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

following  nights,  approaching  more  closely  each  night.  She  warns  him  that  she  is 
ghost  and  may  disappear,  but  by  perseverance  he  might  retain  her.  One  night 
spirits  of  children  and  musicians  enter  lodge,  where  fire  is  always  burning.  He  is 
unable  to  see  them,  but  when  they  say  they  have  smoke,  he  answers,  "It  is  well. " 
Thus  spirits  enter  lodge  on  succeeding  nights.  Each  night  he  is  able  to  see  more 
plainly.  Finally  leader  addresses  him,  saying  that  they  have  taken  pity  on  him,  and 
warning  him  to  guard  his  wife  carefully.  These  spirits  are  girl's  relatives.  Girl  is 
able  to  relate  events  in  real  world,  and  tells  him  that  people  are  now  returning  to 
their  village;  that  her  four  uncles  are  about  to  put  offerings  of  fat  on  her  grave. 
Each  day  she  continues  to  tell  what  has  happened.  There  approaches  final  trial 
on  his  part  to  wrest  her  from  spirit  land.  As  her  uncles  approach  the  grave  with 
fat  offering,  he  is  to  hold  her,  for  her  spirit  each  time  will  struggle  to  free  itself, 
for  spirits  dislike  to  be  troubled  with  human  beings.  There  are  four  trials.  He 
fails  in  first  three.  Fourth  time  he  is  successful,  aided  by  uncles,  who  try  to 
hold  her  to  earth.  At  that  time  she  flies  up  into  air,  young  man  trying  to  hold  her 
by  her  hair.  After  she  has  eaten  corn  and  beans  she  announces  that  she  will  remain 
with  them  and  that  uncles  are  to  remain  four  nights  in  their  tipi.  After  four  days 
have  passed,  the  people, who  have  been  on  a  hunt,  return  to  village  and  are  informed 
of  what  has  taken  place.  They  live  with  her  mother  for  some  time,  but  mother, 
becoming  suspicious,  goes  to  grave,  where  she  digs  and  finds  bones  of  her  daughter. 
Returning,  she  announces  her  discovery,  and  her  daughter  admits  that  her  bones  are 
on  hill,  but  that  she  is  truly  the  spirit  of  her  daughter.  They  live  happily  for  many 
years,  young  man  being  successful  on  war-path  and  woman  giving  birth  to  boy.  She 
may  not  cook  nor  make  clothing.  Boy  grows,  but  is  not  allowed  to  touch  ground, 
being  continually  packed  on  some  one  else's  back.  Husband,  though  his  wife  at  first 
protests,  takes  second  wife,  and  they  live  happily  for  many  years.  Trouble  finally 
comes,  because  he  prefers  pair  of  his  ghost-wife's  moccasins  to  those  of  his  other  wife. 
He  becomes  angry  because  his  wife  reproaches  him  for  having  called  her  ghost-wife 
and  strikes  her.  As  he  strikes  her  repeatedly  she  disappears.  In  her  place  sits  a 
whirlwind,  which  rises  up  in  lodge  and  goes  out  of  opening  at  top.  At  night  he  goes 
to  grave  and  cries,  begging  his  wife  to  return.  Child  is  placed  in  bed,  but  in  morning 
is  dead  and  is  buried  in  its  mother's  grave.  For  four  days  man  mourns,  when  his 
wife's  spirit  reappears  and  recounts  that  she  has  left  because  he  struck  her  and  she 
will  never  return,  and  that  never  again  shall  spirits  return  from  spirit  land.  She 
becomes  whirlwind  again  and  disappears.  Man  dies  of  broken  heart  beside  his  wife's 
grave,  but  is  buried  in  another  place. 

35.   HOW   THE   WORLD   IS  TO    COME    TO  AN   END. 

Race  of  giants  are  first  race,  and  they  are  destroyed  by  flood,  whereupon 
Tirawa  places  buffalo  bull  in  northwest  to  prevent  second  recurrence.  Each  year 
bull  sheds  a  hair.  With  shedding  of  its  last  hair  will  ensue  another  flood  and  final 
destruction  of  human  beings.  Tirawa  devises  other  ways  also  of  destroying  people. 
That  fire  might  burn  people,  at  which  time,  so  Morning-Star  said,  Moon  would  turn 
red;  should  it  turn  black  it  would  presage  death  of  great  chief;  should  Sun  lose 
its  brightness  it  would  also  foretell  destruction  of  people;  that  North  Star  might 
eventually  move,  which  would  also  be  sign  of  world's  end.  Morning-Star  also  tells 
people  that  pathway  (Milky  Way)  leading  from  North  to  South  Star  is  road  of 
death,  and  that  South  Star  occasionally  moves  up  towards  north  to  see  if  North 


ABSTRACTS.  4QI 

Star  is  still  standing  in  its  place,  in  which  case  it  moves  back  toward  south;  that, 
according  to  Morning-Star,  during  first  great  council  of  stars,  when  position  of 
each  was  to  be  determined,  an  old  and  a  young  person  became  sick;  they  were 
placed  upon  a  stretcher  and  carried  by  certain  stars,  preceded  by  chief  medicine- 
man, and  the  group  goes  around  North  Star;  that  there  will  come  time  when  South 
Star  will  capture  people  who  were  carrying  stretcher;  that  South  Star,  god  of  death, 
would  then  take  possession  of  earth;  that  meteors  would  fly  through  sky  and  all 
rivers  would  rise,  and  that  animals,  otter,  beaver,  etc.,  would  drift  downstream  carry- 
ing out  people  like  human  beings.  Clam  Shell  would  carry  out  some  like  babies, 
and  some  would  be  in  shape  of  birds.  Some  of  signs  have  come  to  pass.  Moon  has 
turned  black  several  times,  but  time  for  end  of  world  is  not  yet  come.  Time  will  be 
determined  by  North  and  South  Stars.  At  that  time  people  will  turn  into  stars  and 
go  to  south,  all  stars  first  falling  from  heavens  and  mingling  with  people.  One  time 
men  preparing  for  war  party  see  that  Moon  has  turned  black.  Some,  recognizing 
the  evil  omen,  wish  to  postpone  party;  others  decide  to  go  on.  They  are  surrounded 
and  many  warriors  and  chiefs  are  killed,  only  one  escaping. 

36.   THE   TALKING   MEMBRUM   VIRILE. 

Young  man  while  hunting,  after  urinating  strikes  his  membrum  and  asks  it  if  it 
sees  buffalo.  Finally  it  answers,  '  'Yes,' '  and  continues  to  say  that  it  sees  buffalo, 
and  does  not  stop  until  addressed  by  his  mother-in-law.  He  is  so  ashamed  that  he 
leaves  and  is  never  heard  of. 

37.   THE    HERMAPHRODITE. 

Young  man,  caring  nothing  for  women,  is  visited  by  young  girl.  He  bathes  in 
spring.  In  dream  he  sees  Spider-Woman,  spirit  of  spring,  and  she  tells  him 
that  he  will  be  like  woman.  He  becomes  sick,  and  medicine-men  declare  that 
he  is  becoming  woman,  being  bewitched  by  Spider- Woman.  Only  moss  from 
spring  can  cure  him,  but  none  is  to  be  found,  for  Spider- Woman  caused  it  to  disap- 
pear. He  is  so  ashamed  he  commits  suicide  rather  than  be  hermaphrodite. 

38.   THE    SCALPED   MEN. 

Leader  of  war  party  carries  sacred  bundle  on  his  back,  but  never  makes  smoke 
offering.  Others  complain.  Scouts  report  small  village,  which  they  attack  and  find 
many  enemies.  They  are  surrounded  and  all  scalped.  After  enemy  leave  they 
come  together,  and  leader  as  spokesman  declares  that  being  scalped  they  would  be 
ashamed  to  return  to  their  people.  They  agree  to  live  among  hills.  After  several 
years,  man  while  on  hunt  encounters  these  scalped  people  singing  as  scabs  drop  from 
their  heads.  He  shoots  at  them  and  they  run  to  their  cave  and  disappear  in  cave, 
and  he  reports  to  his  people  fate  of  lost  war  party. 

39.  HANDSOME-BOY  AND  AFTER-BIRTH  BOY. 

Poor  boy  likes  chief's  daughter  and  is  invited  by  her  to  her  lodge.  Boy  does 
not  go,  fearing  chief.  Girl  visits  his  lodge,  but  he  refuses  to  lie  with  her.  She  pro- 
poses that  they  elope  and  they  make  preparations.  At  night,  after  she  has  driven 


492  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

horses  to  water,  she  meets  him  and  they  travel  south  to  heavily  timbered  river  valley, 
where  they  build  grass- house  and  live  alone.  She  gives  birth  to  boy  and  man  buries 
after-birth  by  elm  tree.  Child  grows  rapidly.  Father  goes  off  to  hunt.  Woman 
places  sleeping  child  on  bed.  She  hears  voices,  and  strange  beings  with  long  spines 
at  their  joints,  and  with  two  eyes,  one  in  front  and  one  behind,  enter  lodge.  She  is 
asked  to  feed  them,  but  is  warned  that  she  must  not  call  them  names,  which  she 
does  as  they  are  leaving,  whereupon  they  return,  kill  her,  and  take  her  away.  They 
do  not  see  boy.  Father  returns,  and  follows  trail  of  strangers  until  it  is  lost  in 
timber,  but  sees  grass-lodge  and  hears  voices,  so  that  he  knows  cannibals  are  about 
to  eat  his  wife.  He  and  his  child  live  together.  While  father  is  off  hunting  strange 
boy  appears.  Boys  play  together.  Stranger  disappears  as  father  approaches. 
Boy  tells  his  father  of  strange  boy  and  he  lays  plans  to  capture  him,  recognizing  that 
it  is  his  own  son  born  from  after-birth.  First  he  hides,  but  is  recognized  by  strange 
boy  by  his  odor.  Older  boy  finally  captures  him  by  tying  his  hair  with  strings,  and 
strange  boy  surrenders.  The  three  live  together  many  years  and  boys  grow  up 
and  hunt  with  bow  and  arrows.  They  are  warned  by  their  father  against  dangerous 
places.  They  go  to  river  and  get  in  bull-boat  which,  when  half  way  across  river, 
pitches,  whereupon  boys  fly  up  as  geese,  older  boy  being  afraid  and  requiring  urging. 
Next  they  go  to  steep  bank  covered  with  snakes,  which  are  unable  to  bite  them,  for 
one  of  boy's  feet  and  legs  are  covered  with  flint  stones,  while  other  has  soles  like 
horned  toad  and  his  legs  are  covered  with  turtle  shells  They  kill  four  largest  rattle- 
snakes, skins  of  which  they  take  home  and  put  at  entrance  of  lodge,  to  scare  their 
father.  Next  they  go  to  foot  of  hill  and  clouds  assemble  and  it  thunders  and 
lightens.  They  go  to  top  of  high  tree,  where  they  find  red-painted  being,  or  Thunder, 
which  they  throw  down  out  of  tree.  Next  they  find  Lightning,  then  Loud-Thunder, 
then  Wonderful- Lightning.  They  take  them  home  to  their  lodge.  Father  protests 
that  they  should  not  molest  these  heavenly  beings,  but  boy  protests  that  they 
should  not  live  in  tree,  and  causes  one  of  them  to  fly  to  west  to  sound  thunder  first  in 
spring.  With  him  is  sent  one  of  lightnings.  Other  thunder  and  lightning  are  sent 
to  south,  from  which  point  they  are  to  travel  to  earth  and  occasionally  kill  people. 
Father  is  provoked  because  they  have  overcome  these  heavenly  gods  and  warns 
them  not  to  go  to  certain  place.  They  go  into  timber  where  trees  are  dead  and  leaves 
are  yellow,  and  find  grass-lodge  of  sharp-elbowed  people  who  killed  their  mother. 
They  are  welcomed  and  kettle  is  placed  on  fire.  At  proper  time  boys  step  upon 
kettle,  overturn  it,  causing  steam.  Cannibals  scald  and  fight  each  other,  while  the 
lodge  burns  up.  Younger  brother  takes  leader  and  tells  him  that  he  and  his  people 
shall  become  locust  trees.  Father,  learning  of  their  feat,  becomes  alarmed  and 
decides  to  run  away,  fearing  for  his  life.  He  provides  food  and  water  for  boys, 
and  leaves.  Boys,  who  had  become  charred  leaves  and  were  thus  enabled  to  escape 
from  burning  grass-lodge,  return  home.  They  go  to  Wood  Rats'  nest  under  elm 
tree,  where  the  younger  brother  says  that  he  received  his  power,  and  that  Wood 
Rats  are  his  grandmothers  and  fed  him,  and  there  it  is  he  says  that  real  lightning 
warned  him  of  beings  who  pretended  to  be  lightnings,  and  these  were  those  which 
boys  despoiled  of  their  power.  Woman  feeds  boys,  and  they  leave,  hunting  their 
father,  asking  animals  they  encounter  if  they  have  seen  him.  They  also  ask  insects 
and  bugs.  Finally  they  return  to  lodge  and  Mouse  directs  them  to  wooden  mortar, 
which,  because  it  helped  boys'  father  to  escape,  is  again  to  be  used  and  not  to  be 
burned  in  future.  In  morning  they  find  their  father's  trail,  and  with  it  they  enter 
the  underground  world  and  follow  trail  until  they  come  to  village  of  people.  They 


ABSTRACTS.  493 

pass  through  additional  villages  until  they  come  to  village  of  bad  people.  They  shake 
their  heads,  which  makes  sound  like  rattles,  and  they  cause  death  of  all  people  in 
village,  one  starting  in  on  west  side  and  other  on  east.  People  die  whether  they  look 
at  them  or  not.  Passing  on,  they  encounter  their  father's  tracks  by  stream  of 
water.  On  opposite  side  they  encounter  strange  being,  who  challenges  them. 
Younger  brother  is  victorious  and  conquers  Lizard  through  his  ability  to  cause  his 
feet  to  turn  into  flint  stone.  They  finally  enter  village  which  contains  their  father. 
Again  they  kill  people,  including  their  father,  whose  body  they  carry  to  high  hill. 
Then  they  make  a  funeral  pyre  with  four  willow,  cottonwood,  box-elder,  and  elm 
poles.  They  ascend  with  him  in  rising  smoke. 

40.    LONG-TOOTH-BOY. 

A  man  and  his  wife  travel  east  to  country  of  small  ponds  where  they  live  by 
themselves  for  many  years.  Woman  gives  birth  to  child  and  dies,  after-birth  being 
thrown  by  father  into  water.  He  feeds  child  with  animals'  milk.  In  his  absence 
strange  boy  comes  and  plays  with  his  son.  He  has  long  teeth  and  is  called  Long- 
Tooth-Boy.  Older  son  tells  his  father  of  strange  boy  and  he  plans  to  capture  him  by 
strategy,  first  turning  into  parfleche;  but  Long-Tooth-Boy  recognizes  him  and  jumps 
into  pond.  Man  mourns  and  is  addressed  by  buffalo,  who  tells  him  to  kill  him,  remove 
his  bladder,  fill  itwith  air,  and  tie  it  to  head  of  Long-Tooth-Boy.  This  is  done,  and  so 
Long-Tooth-Boy  is  captured  in  water.  Boys  are  warned  against  visiting  dangerous 
places.  They  disobey,  visit  steep  bank,  where  they  encounter  water  monster,  which 
has  swallowed  their  father.  Leaving  their  bows  and  arrows  on  bank  they  fill  their 
pockets  with  stones,  slide  down  beaver  path,  and  as  they  touch  water  they  turn  into 
foam.  Foam  floats  down  river  and  into  mouth  of  monster.  Then  they  become 
human  beings,  but  do  not  find  their  father.  They  make  their  way  out  and  Long- 
Tooth-Boy  breaks  his  bow  and  arrows  and  plays  with  them  inside  monster's 
mouth.  With  flint  stones  he  makes  spark  which  he  throws  inside  monster,  and  bow 
and  arrows  are  burned.  Suddenly  monster  bursts  and  is  thrown  upon  ground. 
With  sinew  strings  they  drag  home  its  skin,  which  they  had  blown  off.  They  give 
it  to  their  father  for  tobacco  pouch.  They  go  to  river,  attempt  to  cross  on  fallen 
log,  but  old  woman  on  opposite  side  causes  log  to  stand  on  end  and  grow  up  like  tree. 
She  spits  upon  it;  it  grows  cold  and  sleets.  Around  tree  are  many  human  skulls. 
Old  woman  leaves,  thinking  they  will  soon  perish.  Long-Tongue-Boy  gnaws  steps 
on  tree  whereby  they  descend.  They  plan  the  old  woman's  death.  Long-Tooth- 
Boy  becomes  raccoon,  which  older  brother  kills,  and  at  old  woman's  request  takes 
it  into  her  lodge.  Inside  lodge  he  places  meat  in  pot,  and  on  top,  head  resting 
upon  paws,  being  careful  not  to  cut  intestines.  Big  fire  is  kindled  under  pot  and 
soon  raccoon  sticks  out  its  tongue,  which  is  signal  for  older  brother  to  leave  lodge. 
Old  woman,  owing  to  heat  in  lodge,  has  removed  her  garments;  pot  now  boils  over 
and  splashes  on  woman,  who  falls  toward  fire  and  is  killed.  Elder  brother  then  takes 
meat  and  places  it  on  skin,  wraps  it  up,  and  throws  it  into  pond.  Thus  Long-Tooth- 
Boy  is  restored  to  life.  Witch  hears  of  Long-Tooth-Boy's  deeds  and  decides  on 
his  death.  Warriors  join  her  and  they  travel  east.  She  turns  into  yellow  bird 
and  alights  on  opening  of  lodge.  Long-Tooth-Boy  directs  his  father  to  kill  it. 
He  shoots  twice,  but  misses  it,  whereupon  bird  flies  down,  takes  man  by  hair,  and 
disappears  with  him  into  sky.  Each  of  brothers  shoots  his  arrows  up  into  sky, 
following  their  father.  They  alight  and  see  yellow  feathers  on  ground.  They 


494  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

advance  and  find  warriors  dancing.  Long-Tooth-Boy  disguises  himself,  enters 
witch's  village,  and  takes  buffalo  hide,  asking  in  which  tipi  old  woman  is  hid. 
He  sees  his  father  sitting  by  witch,  who  recognizes  him.  He  returns  to  his 
brother.  The  two  go  to  gopher  hill  and  throw  up  handful  of  earth,  causing  dust 
storm,  in  midst  of  which  they  enter  tipi  where  their  father  is  confined.  There  every- 
one has  covered  his  head,  and  boys  escape.  In  the  night  they  re-enter  lodge,  find 
witch  asleep,  cut  off  her  head,  and  take  their  father  with  them.  The  three  bounce 
up  and  down  in  air  old  woman 's  head,  screaming.  Returning  home,  Long-Tooth- 
Boy  is  about  to  scalp  old  woman,  but  begs  that  her  head  may  be  placed  on  pole 
outside  of  lodge  where  she  is  to  remain  and  serve  as  sentinel. 

41.  LONG-TOOTH-BOY. 

A  man  and  his  wife  travel  south  and  erect  grass-lodge  by  creek.  Woman 
is  confined;  after-birth  is  thrown  into  water.  Shortly  woman  dies  and  boy  is 
nourished  by  milk  of  animals.  While  absent,  boy  is  visited  by  his  brother  born 
from  aftgr-birth.  In  attempting  to  capture  after-birth  boy  man  hides,  but  is 
detected  by  his  odor.  Next,  he  is  covered  up  in  hole,  which  he  leaves  and  returns 
with  two  bladders  blown  up  and  containing  rattles,  one  of  which  he  directs  his 
son  to  tie  to  the  hair  of  his  younger  brother.  Father  now  crawls  from  his  hiding 
place  and  boy  is  captured  in  water.  They  live  together,  but  younger  brother  grows 
long  teeth  like  those  of  beaver,  with  which  he  injures  his  father,  whereupon  with 
stone  he  files  them  down.  Father  warns  them  against  visiting  dangerous  places. 
One  day  they  go  to  Long-Tooth-Boy's  lodge,  which  was  under  water.  Within 
lodge  is  sage  floor,  and  bows  and  arrows  which  he  has  taken  from  his  brother. 
He  gives  his  brother  one  of  two  finely  braided  antelope  hide  strings,  to  one  end 
of  which  is  flint.  They  go  to  steep  bank  and  are  addressed  by  voice  which  tells 
them  that  it  has  devoured  their  father.  Water  monster  is  slain,  as  in  preceding 
tale,  except  that  fire  is  kindled  inside  monster,  heat  causing  bladder  to  burst. 
Skin  is  taken  home.  Next,  they  visit  snake's  den.  They  escape  being  bitten 
by  standing  upon  flint  stone,  which  increases  its  height.  Snakes  eject  venom 
at  boy,  which  he  diverts  by  waving  his  flint  stone.  He  shoots  snake  with 
his  arrow,  which  flashes  like  lightning,  causing  snake  to  burst  with  noise  like 
thunder.  Other  snakes  escape  to  their  holes.  Boys  take  skin  home.  They  go  to 
high  hill,  where  they  see  boys  sliding  from  its  top  on  buffalo-rib  sleds.  They  rub 
themselves  with  their  magic  stone.  Boys  kick  the  two  brothers,  but  do  not  injure 
them.  At  bottom  are  many  human  skeletons.  At  next  attempt  the  boys  kick 
brothers  on  back  over  kidneys.  The  leader  of  the  boys  is  spotted  calf.  They 
take  its  skin  home.  They  go  south  to  cedar  timber,  meet  red  painted  man  with 
bear-claw  necklace  and  carrying  war  club.  Before  he  strikes  boy  he  is  killed  with 
arrow.  Approaching,  they  find  not  man,  but  cinnamon  bear,  whereupon  they  tell 
bear  to  disperse,  and  take  skin  home.  Next,  they  go  to  river,  where  old  woman 
throws  log  across  water,  which  when  they  start  to  cross  stands  up  and  grows  into 
tree,  and  weather  turns  very  cold.  Long-Tooth-Boy  blows  his  breath  on  his 
brother  and  he  turns  into  snowbird.  He  also  becomes  bird  and  they  fly  to  earth. 
They  go  to  old  woman's  lodge  and  in  contest  dance  on  side  of  precipice.  She 
challenges  elder  boy  to  jump  and  he  is  killed  at  bottom.  Long-Tooth-Boy  dances 
with  old  woman.  He  jumps  and  lands  safely,  old  woman  following.  As  she 
flies  through  air  he  blows  his  breath  and  her  body  falls  on  one  side  and  her  skin 


ABSTRACTS.  495 

on  other.  He  kicks  his  brother's  feet,  saying,  "Awake,"  and  they  take  old 
woman's  skin  home  with  them.  They  return  to  river,  on  bank  of  which  are  many 
skeletons.  Near  by  is  fire.  Near  fire  is  man  groaning.  He  asks  boys  to  warm 
their  feet  and  step  upon  his  back  to  relieve  his  suffering.  With  his  magic  flint 
Long-Tooth-Boy  turns  his  legs  into  stone,  stamps  upon  man,  and  kills  him,  and 
they  find  that  being  is  catfish,  which  has  caused  death  of  many  people  by  asking 
them  to  doctor  it  by  stepping  upon  spines  on  its  back,  which  kills  them.  Go 
east  to  den  of  mountain-lions,  largest  of  which  is  struck  upon  head  with  arrow,  and 
boys  ride  it  home.  Other  lions  are  caused  to  disperse.  Soon  after  sky  is  filled 
with  dust,  caused  by  buffalo  scattering  over  country,  for  they  are  angry  because 
Long-Tooth-Boy  killed  spotted  calf.  To  escape  danger  Long-Tooth-Boy  takes 
his  father  and  brother  to  open  place  and  they  make  circle  of  smooth  stones.  In 
morning  stones  have  grown  high,  forming  corral  with  single  entrance.  They  make 
dogwood  arrows.  Buffalo  come  from  west  and  north.  They  try  to  butt  down 
stones  and  fail,  some  even  smashing  their  skulls.  Buffalo  scatter.  Few  are 
killed.  Long-Tooth-Boy  directs  his  father  to  go  east  and  bring  his  people.  He 
is  gone  several  days.  By  his  return  stones  of  the  corral  have  become  normal  size. 
Long-Tooth-Boy  addresses  people,  telling  them  he  has  overcome  all  bad  animals. 
He  teaches  them,  gives  them  buffalo,  tells  them  he  is  about  to  leave,  that  his  power 
comes  from  clouds,  that  they  may  obtain  power  from  him  where  they  see  lightning 
strike,  where  they  will  find  a  flint  stone.  He  directs  that  his  brother's  skull  shall 
be  placed  in  stone  circle.  He  smokes  with  his  brother  and  in  night  disappears. 
In  his  place  is  large-sized  flint.  This  is  placed  in  sacred  bundle. 

42.   BURNT-BELLY  AND  HIS   DREAMS. 

Apart  from  village  live  man  and  his  sister.  He  is  often  visited  by  poor  Burnt- 
Belly,  who  is  always  begging  food.  He  addresses  him  as  brother-in-law  and  tells 
his  sister  that  Burnt-Belly  is  her  future  husband.  Thus  he  made  fun  at  his  expense. 
Burnt-Belly  goes  to  stream  of  water,  where  he  has  vision,  in  which  he  is  addressed  by 
finely  costumed  man,  who  tells  him  that  he  is  to  become  great  warrior.  He  tells 
him  that  young  man's  power  comes  from  Sun,  that  this  power  is  in  his  shield,  and 
that  Burnt-Belly  is  to  ask  for  his  shield.  They  follow  war  party  and  Burnt-Belly 
is  told  that  he  will  be  spoken  to  again.  He  does  as  directed.  Joins  war  party  in 
spite  of  protest,  and  takes  scalp,  which  he  gives  to  leader.  Again  he  has  dream  on 
bank  of  river,  where  he  is  asked  to  fast  for  four  days.  Then  he  is  told  to  dive  into 
water  four  times  and  stand  on  bank.  He  does  so  and  finds  himself  beautifully 
costumed.  On  his  way  back  he  meets  sister  and  excites  her  admiration.  As  she 
returns  from  river  with  water  he  asks  for  drink.  She  hesitates,  and  follows  young 
man  to  her  brother's  lodge,  where  they  spend  night  together.  Brother-in-law  is 
pleased  that  his  sister  is  married.  Shortly  afterward  boy  repulses  attack  of  enemy 
and  soon  leads  successful  war  party.  People  wonder  who  he  is  and  he  tells  them. 

43.     THE  BOY  WHO  WORE  A  WOODPECKER  CAP. 

On  one  side  of  stream  is  village.  On  west  are  many  ponds  with  islands,  on 
which  lives  strange  boy  who  wears  cap  of  woodpecker  scalps.  He  has  otter  quiver 
and  black  bow.  He  wears  leggings  from  which  hang  owls'  heads,  which  hoot  at 
night.  Strange  woman  braves  dangers  of  water  animals  and  swims  over  to  boy's 


496  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

island.  She  addresses  him  as  grandchild  and  tells  him  it  is  time  for  him  to  return 
to  his  people.  She  gives  him  magic  arrow,  by  which  he  can  get  across  water.  This 
is  not  woman,  but  moon,  and  travels  as  swan.  She  watches  over  people.  In  night 
boy  goes  to  village  on  his  arrow.  He  enters  lodge  and  girl  takes  his  bow  and 
arrow  and  other  belongings  and  hangs  them  up.  Her  bow,  a  snake,  and  the  birds 
permit  her.  People  in  lodge  say  that  they  are  poor  and  can  not  feed  him.  He 
goes  out  and  returns  with  pecans,  etc.,  and  sends  for  chief  and  tells  him  to  sur- 
round timber.  They  do  so  and  find  nests  of  ground-beans  and  many  animals. 
These  were  found  there  because  boy  had  made  mud  images  in  night.  He  returns 
to  his  island  and  shortly  revisits  village.  He  produces  more  game  and  is  called 
wonderful.  Third  time  they  find  buffalo  in  timber  and  he  returns  to  his  island 
home.  Bear-Man  has  been  growing  jealous  of  this  boy  and  digs  hole  into  which 
boy  falls  as  he  shoots  himself  across  lake.  He  is  robbed  of  his  clothing  and  left 
in  hole.  Birds  on  clothing  peck  Bear-Man  and  snake  arrows  and  bow  bite  him, 
but  he  goes  through  village,  enters  chief's  lodge,  and  gains  favor  of  all  chief's 
daughters  but  youngest.  He  fails  to  produce  game  as  boy  had  done.  Boy 
remains  in  hole  five  days  and  is  discovered  by  old  woman's  grandchild.  They 
rescue  boy  and  feed  him,  begging  corn  for  him.  He  calls  his  rescuer  "uncle," 
and  gets  him  to  bring  material  for  bow  and  arrows.  They  go  into  timber  and 
find  rat,  which  they  shoot  for  their  supper.  Next,  they  find  porcupine,  raccoon, 
quails,  prairie  chickens,  turkeys,  fawn,  deer,  elk,  and  finally  buffalo.  Every  day 
boy  kills  game  and  they  have  plenty  to  eat.  With  the  skins  old  woman  builds  fine 
tipi.  People  are  surprised  at  prosperous  condition  of  old  woman  and  her  two  boys 
and  some  suspect  that  man  in  chief's  lodge  is  impostor.  Youngest  daughter  of  chief 
makes  her  home  with  old  woman  and  boy  tells  her  of  his  treatment  by  Bear-Man, 
whereupon  she  returns  home,  takes  boy's  clothing,  quiver,  etc.,  and  restores 
them  to  him,  snakes  and  birds  expressing  their  joy.  People  begin  to  attack 
impostor.  He  turns  into  bear,  but  is  chased  out  of  village  by  firebrands.  Boy 
brings  game  for  people  for  last  time  and  gives  them  seeds  to  plant  and  teaches  them 
agriculture.  He  teaches  them  ceremonies,  and  disappears. 

44.  THE  SHOOTING  OF  THE  SQUIRREL'S  NOSE. 

Chief's  tipi  stands  on  north  side  of  village  by  itself,  near  stream  of  water. 
Near  by  is  ravine  with  forked  cottonwood.  East  of  village  is  little  grass-house 
where  poor  woman  and  her  child  live.  People  urinate  against  their  tipi,  and  mal- 
treat them.  She  is  called  grandmother  because  she  is  poor.  Chief's  children 
amuse  themselves  by  shooting  at  squirrel  which  has  made  its  home  in  cottonwood 
tree.  No  one  could  kill  it.  Eldest  daughter  has  father  announce  that  whoever 
could  kill  squirrel  might  marry  her.  This  is  difficult,  because  only  nose  of  squirrel 
is  visible.  Boys  all  make  bows  and  arrows,  including  Burnt-Belly,  son  of  poor 
woman.  He  has  power  of  bringing  buffalo  by  using  ring  and  javelin  game  in  their 
lodge.  They  fill  many  parfleches  with  meat.  Although  he  is  laughed  at,  he 
enters  contest  for  chief 's  eldest  daughter.  He  shoots  squirrel,  but  prize  is  claimed  by 
man  with  bear  claws.  Nevertheless  he  obtains  several  hairs  of  squirrel.  Impostor 
takes  squirrel  to  chief's  lodge  and  marries  two  eldest  daughters,  youngest  refusing 
him.  Squirrel  skin  in  chief's  lodge  fails  to  emit  light,  as  had  been  expected. 
Impostor  promises  people  buffalo,  and  failing,  says  it  is  because  youngest  daughter 
does  not  marry  him.  She  runs  off  to  old  woman's  lodge.  Asked  why  she  did  not 


ABSTRACTS.  497 

marry  man,  youngest  daughter  says  she  does  not  believe  in  him.  Girl  is  given  food 
and  sent  home.  Boy's  grandmother  visits  chief  to  ask  for  girl  in  marriage.  Chief 
leaves  decision  with  his  daughter.  She  favors  proposal,  boy  is  brought,  and  they 
are  married.  Young  couple  are  mistreated  by  older  sisters.  On  fourth  day  Burnt- 
Belly  enters  lodge  as  eagle.  As  he  turns  into  human  form  he  wears  fine  eagle 
feather  garments.  Two  eldest  sisters  now  try  to  claim  him  as  their  husband.  He 
rejects  them  and  tells  chief  to  warn  people  to  get  ready  for  buffalo  hunt.  He 
leads  people  into  timber.  They  find  much  small  game.  Next,  they  find  buffalo. 
Boy  is  given  a  new  tipi,  where  he  lives  with  his  grandmother  and  his  wife. 

45.  ORIGIN  OF  THE  CLAM  SHELL. 

Man  captures  diving  duck,  which  he  takes  home  and  releases  at  his  wife's 
request.  Later,  wife  gives  birth  to  girl  called  Young  Duck.  Child  has  ways  of 
duck.  Child  makes  small  hole  in  tipi,  fills  it  with  water,  and  sits  on  it,  imitating  duck. 
She  requires  her  mother  to  wash  her  face  from  that  water.  She  grows  rapidly,  and 
becomes  beautiful,  with  very  long  hair.  In  vision  she  is  told  to  get  stick  with  crook 
at  end,  and  carrying-straps.  She  often  goes  to  timber  with  girls  for  firewood,  and  by 
means  of  her  magic  crook  she  can  draw  down  dry  limbs  from  trees.  She  becomes 
leader  of  girls  in  getting  firewood.  Young  men  court  her  with  games  and  flutes. 
She  finally  recognizes  Hawk  and  gives  him  permission  to  visit  her.  He  begs  of 
animals  that  he  may  become  human  being,  whereupon  he  marries  girl.  She  still 
continues  her  old  habit.  Old  woman  becomes  jealous  of  girl,  follows  her  to 
timber,  and  kills  her,  sticking  fire-hardened  stick  into  her  ear.  Old  woman  blows  in 
girl's  mouth,  takes  off  her  skin  down  to  her  waist,  substitutes  her  own  skin,  throws 
girl  into  stream,  and  returns  as  young  girl.  She  tries  to  act  like  young  duck,  and 
for  a  while  is  not  detected.  Soon  her  skin  begins  to  rot.  Medicine-men  are  sent  for. 
They  fail.  Finally,  Crow  doctor  comes,  and  at  once  recognizes  old  woman,  while 
Hawk  goes  to  river  and  hears  voice  of  his  wife  singing.  Old  woman  is  thrown  into 
water  and  her  child  is  killed.  Husband  turns  into  hawk,  flying  up  and  down  creek 
for  four  days.  Then  he  sees  smoke  issuing  from  tipi  in  valley.  Entering,  he  finds 
woman  and  four  girls  and  his  wife,  who  at  first  refuses  to  see  him.  Upper  part  of 
her  body  now  resembles  that  of  old  woman,  her  skin  being  wrinkled  and  her  ears 
hanging  down.  She  asks  her  husband  to  fly  up  in  air  with  her,  then  to  drop  her. 
Next  day  he  takes  her  to  high  hill  and  turns  into  hawk,  places  her  upon  his  back, 
flies  upward,  and  lets  girl  fall.  He  discovers  that  she  is  Clam  Shell,  outside  rough 
like  witch's  skin,  inside  with  smooth  and  delicate  surface  like  that  of  young  girl. 

46.   THE  POOR  BOY  WHO  TURNED  INTO  AN  EAGLE. 

When  no  people  lived  on  earth,  at  direction  of  Morning-Star,  Moon  sends  down 
woman  and  Morning-Star,  his  younger  brother.  Boy  calls  woman  "  niece. "  They 
are  placed  near  stream  of  water  and  food  is  given  them.  In  spring  clearance  is 
made  and  woman  plants  corn,  tying  up  remaining  seeds  and  warning  her  uncle  not  to 
touch  them.  While  she  is  at  work  boy  eats  up  seeds.  Enraged,  she  whips  him,  and 
he  sings,  turning  gradually  into  eagle,  whereupon  he  flies  up  and  off  in  spite  of  her 
protests.  She  follows  him  to  lodge  of  beavers.  They  agree  to  help  her,  digging 
hole  which  they  cover  with  limbs,  placing  woman  inside,  and  overhead  animals 
simulate  death  to  attract  Eagle.  Finally,  Eagle  comes,  but  is  not  fooled.  Badgers 


498  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

are  helpless.  Woman  goes  on  and  elks  try  to  help  her  to  catch  her  brother  in  same 
manner;  likewise  buffalo.  They  tell  her  that  they  all  know  this  Eagle;  that  he  is 
Morning-Star,  chief  of  the  heavenly  gods,  who  desires  only  human  flesh.  They 
agree  to  help  to  capture  him.  So  many  buffalo  die,  making  great  odor.  They  take 
girl  and  cut  her  open,  place  her  on  arbor,  and  then  Magpie  comes,  and  also  Crow  and 
Coyote,  to  feed.  Finally,  Eagle  alights  upon  the  arbor;  says  that  he  is  willing  to  eat 
of  human  being,  at  which  other  animals  begin  to  eat.  As  the  Eagle  is  looking  for 
girl's  heart  she  grabs  his  legs  and  he  becomes  boy  again,  and  he  says  that  henceforth 
when  people  live  on  earth  an  enemy  shall  be  sacrificed  to  Morning-Star,  but  not 
until  many  have  been  made  holy.  The  two  disappear  in  dark  clouds,  she  returning 
to  Moon,  boy  to  east,  where  he  stands  behind  his  brother. 


47.   THE   POOR  BOY  WHO   LOST  HIS   POWER. 

Burnt-Belly  and  his  mother  live  in  deserted  village.  They  are  very  poor.  He 
soils  his  robe;  she  strikes  him  and  he  turns  into  Eagle,  in  spite  of  her  protests.  It 
continually  hovers  near  her,  finally  becoming  boy  again  after  her  repeated  solicita- 
tions. She  makes  bows  and  arrows  for  him  each  morning,  then  buffalo,  and  he  kills 
game  and  finally  buffalo.  People  return  to  village.  They  move  into  timber  where 
they  continue  to  have  plenty  of  meat.  Chief,  fearing  boy's  power,  invites  him  to 
call  buffalo.  Boy  disappears  as  eagle  several  days.  Returning,  he  directs  suc- 
cessful buffalo  hunt.  Boy  and  his  mother  are  invited  to  live  in  village.  Boy  de- 
clares that  impossible,  and  at  his  suggestion  chief  moves  his  village  near  boy's  lodge, 
and  chief  offers  him  his  daughter;  but  boy  refuses,  as  proper  time  has  not  arrived. 
Girl  visits  boy's  tipi  and  lies  with  him,  whereupon  boy  loses  his  power,  whereas  if  he 
had  not  done  this  and  had  called  buffalo  four  times  he  would  have  been  permitted 
to  marry  and  retain  his  power. 

48.   THE  FLINT  MAN. 

Man  travels  to  far  prairie  country,  and  finds  man  of  flint  emitting  sparks  of  fire, 
who  has  power  to  transform  himself  into  any  creature  and  to  see  great  distances. 
He  renders  himself  invisible  by  asking  man  to  smoke,  smoke  getting  in  his  eyes. 
Flint  man  bestows  upon  him  power  to  turn  to  stone;  also  to  bring  rain  during 
drought,  by  lifting  piece  of  flint  upward  to  heaven  and  placing  it  on  ground  and 
sprinkling  water  upon  it,  whereupon  clouds  will  form  and  it  will  rain.  With  pieces 
of  flint  he  will  also  be  able  to  cure  sick.  Flint  man  thereupon  turns  into  blue  flint 
and  diminishes  in  size  until  he  is  little  stone,  bearing  on  one  side  picture  of  moon  and 
stars  and  on  other  of  sun.  Man  takes  it  home  and  places  it  on  his  altar.  He  invites 
his  friends,  who  bring  offerings  to  stone.  He  hears  of  monster  by  big  lake.  He 
visits  monster  and  sees  human  bones  lying  about.  He  kills  the  monster,  which  is 
catfish,  by  trampling  upon  his  back.  He  escapes  death,  for  his  feet  have  turned 
into  flint  and  spines  on  monster's  back  do  not  enter  his  feet.  People  visit  monster 
and  take  its  fat  for  medicines.  Next,  he  slays  seven  spotted  calves,  who  are  always 
challenging  strangers  to  slide  down  hill  with  them  on  buffalo-rib  sled.  Next,  he 
visits  gluttonous  buffalo  bull  in  west.  Bull  tries  to  gore  him,  but  he  is  turned  into 
flint.  Bull  breaks  off  its  horn  and  man  kills  it  with  his  arrow.  He  becomes 


ABSTRACTS.  499 

frightened  as  he  realizes  that  he  has  killed  chief  of  buffalo.  People  are  all  frightened. 
They  surround  village  with  stones,  which  grow,  making  a  high  corral  about  village. 
People  see  cloud  of  dust  reaching  to  sky,  made  by  buffalo,  which  attack  village,  but 
are  unsuccessful,  whereupon  they  scatter  over  earth.  Following  day  stones  of 
corral  are  reduced  to  their  natural  size.  Flint  man  loses  his  magic  stone,  which 
angers  gods,  who  send  rainstorm,  lightning  strikes  him,  and  he  is  placed  in  heavens. 


49.   THE  TURKEY  RITUAL. 

Village  crier  announces  approach  of  enemy.  All  turn  out  and  meet  many 
warriors,  who  are  turkeys,  sages  of  land  from  which  they  have  come,  and  they  tell 
people  where  they  are  going,  in  order  that  people  may  hunt  them  for  food. 


50.   THE    BOY  WHO   TURNED   INTO   A   PRAIRIE    DOG. 

A  village  lies  between  hill  and  creek,  across  which  is  Prairie  Dog  town.  Bright 
Eyes,  good-looking  little  boy  in  love  with  girl,  repeatedly  waits  for  her  at  spring.  She 
tells  him  she  does  not  love  him.  Grieving,  boy  sets  out  alone  to  east  and  crosses  river 
and  enters  Prairie  Dog  town,  where  he  marries  young  Prairie  Dog  and  lives  with 
them.  His  mother  grieves  for  him  and  tracks  him  by  his  tears  and  footprints.  She 
remains  there  several  days  mourning.  In  vision  is  addressed  by  beautiful  young  girl 
and  told  that  her  son  is  happy;  that  he  has  forgotten  about  his  people,  except  his 
mother.  She  is  directed  to  bring  to  hole  certain  black  arrow  from  boy's  quiver.  She 
does  so,  and  as  Prairie  Dog  leaves  hole  he  jumps  at  arrow  and  becomes  her  son  again. 
Boy  returns  home,  followed  by  his  Prairie  Dog  wife,  who  is  pregnant.  She  rolls  her- 
self in  dust  and  becomes  woman.  They  live  together  happily  and  have  many  chil- 
dren. He  becomes  great  man,  but  is  warned  by  his  Prairie  Dog  wife  that  he  shall 
never  associate  with  girl  through  grief  for  whom  he  had  left  his  village.  This  girl 
meets  him,  talks  with  him,  says  she  is  sorry  she  acted  as  she  did,  and  they  lie 
together.  On  returning  home  he  finds  wife  and  child,  who  do  not  heed  his  in- 
structions, but  cross  stream  and  turn  into  Prairie  Dogs.  From  that  time  on  boy  has 
bad  luck  and  dies  broken-hearted. 


51.     THE    GAMBLER   AND   THE   GAMING-STICKS. 

Two  wonderful  brothers  live  in  village,  from  which  many  young  men  have 
gone  to  another  village,  whence  they  never  returned,  for  in  that  village  lives  Gam- 
bler and  Spider- Woman,  his  wife.  Older  brother  visits  Gambler's  village;  is  met 
by  Gambler's  errand  man,  who  invites  him  into  village  and  provides  for  his  comfort. 
He  is  warned  by  people  of  village  against  Gambler.  He  is  invited  to  eat  with 
Gambler.  As  he  eats  of  human  eyes  he  loses  his  power.  They  play  on  following  day, 
he  uniformly  loses,  and  finally  his  life,  the  witch  woman  cutting  off  his  head,  which  she 
hangs  up  in  lodge.  Younger  brother  sends  birds  to  look  for  his  brother.  Raven 
informs  him  of  what  has  happened  and  boy  starts  for  Gambler's  village.  Here  he 
is  welcomed  and  treated  as  had  been  his  brother.  Instead  of  eating  of  human  eyes 
in  Gambler's  tipi,  he  carries  bowl  of  food  to  tipi  where  he  is  to  spend  night.  He 
remains  there  five  days  and  Gambler  attempts  to  feed  him  on  human  brains  and 


500  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

human  ears.  On  fourth  night  boy  goes  to  buffalo  wallow  where  there  are  many 
buffalo  skeletons.  He  cries  by  side  of  bull's  skull,  which  offers  to  help  him.  Active 
young  bull  offers  to  help  him,  bellows,  he  is  surrounded  by  spirits  of  buffalo,  and  in 
their  midst  is  black  javelin.  Another  bull  in  similar  manner  becomes  white  javelin. 
This  one  is  to  be  played  with  by  Gambler,  for  being  young  this  bull  had  never 
associated  with  cow  and  hence  could  not  overtake  ring  in  game.  Cow  in  similar 
performance  turns  into  ring.  Buffalo  promise  their  help;  tell  boy  to  place  ring  on 
black  stick  and  hang  it  in  his  tipi  that  night,  and  give  him  instructions  as  to  game. 
Following  morning  he  plays  with  Gambler,  witch  woman  being  present  with  her 
quirt  with  which  she  proposes  to  kill  boy  after  his  life  has  been  won.  For  a  while 
boy  loses.  Finally  he  stakes  his  life.  When  boy  aims  at  Gambler's  javelin  and 
breaks  it,  Gambler  asks  that  game  be  postponed,  but  boy  declares  he  will  win  or  lose 
all,  and  asks  Gambler  to  get  another  set;  but  Gambler  has  none  and  boy  says  he  has 
set  in  his  lodge,  and  Gambler  sends  his  errand  man,  Coyote,  after  them.  Coyote  is 
scared  by  spirits  of  buffalo  within  lodge.  Again  he  is  sent  and  is  so  scared  that  he 
defecates.  Blackbird  is  sent  and  returns  with  javelins.  Gambler  chooses  white 
javelin.  Before  beginning  final  game  they  bet,  in  addition  to  their  lives,  all  their 
friends,  winner  having  the  privilege  of  killing  loser  and  his  party.  Gambler's 
white  javelin  enters  ring,  but  ring  leaves  it  and  takes  its  place  on  black  javelin. 
Next,  boy  makes  a  successful  throw.  So  they  play  on,  boy  being  successful  and 
winning  everything  back.  Gambler  tries  to  stop  game  by  pretending  that  he  has 
broken  leg,  but  taunted  by  boy  he  continues.  With  last  successful  throw  of  boy 
javelins  turn  into  buffalo  and  run  away.  Gambler,  his  family  and  friends  are  all 
put  to  death. 

52.   YOUNG  HAWK  HUNTS  FOR  HIS  MOTHER. 

Hawk,  great  warrior,  lives  with  his  wife  and  child.  While  absent  one  day  his 
wife  disappears.  Her  son  hunts  for  her  in  under-world.  He  travels  through  differ- 
ent villages.  Father,  returning,  starts  after  little  boy.  All  three  find  each  other 
and  turn  successively,  as  they  are  struck  by  father,  into  Hawks,  killing  snake,  which 
had  stolen  woman. 


53.  THE  DOG-BOY  WHO  MARRIED  THE  CHIEF'S  DAUGHTER. 

White  Moccasin's  wife  gives  birth  to  dog,  which  he  throws  into  creek.  Dog 
is  rescued  by  Clam  Shell,  who  says  that  it  is  witch  who  has  thrown  him  into  water,  and 
tells  him  to  follow  trail  of  his  people.  Looking  around,  he  finds  that  he  is  now  boy. 
Looking  around  again  he  discovers  quiver.  He  goes  to  his  village,  where  he  announces 
that  he  is  White  Moccasin's  child;  is  taken  to  chief's  lodge,  where  he  remains.  On 
buffalo  hunt  he  is  leading  spirit,  and  returning  marries  chief's  daughter.  They  have 
many  children.  One  day  he  goes  south,  sees  deer,  looks  again  and  deer  has  become 
girl,  who  warns  that  his  father  is  trying  to  kill  him,  but  that  she  will  protect 
him.  Boy  returns,  invites  men  to  his  lodge,  including  his  father,  and  challenges  him 
to  contest.  His  father  has  no  power  over  him,  but  boy  waves  his  hand  and  his 
father  begins  to  butt  his  head  against  everything  he  encounters.  White  Mocca- 
sin's friends  try  to  kill  boy  with  clubs,  and  he  yells,  and  his  enemies,  including  his 
father,  fall  down. 


ABSTRACTS.  5<>I 

54.    SUN-RAY  WHO  MISTREATED   HIS  WIFE. 

Man  and  his  wife  live  alone.  He  is  good  hunter,  bringing  home  much  game, 
but  treats  his  wife  meanly  and  she  tries  to  leave  him,  though  is  always  unsuccessful, 
finding  herself  at  each  attempt  inside  rattle  hanging  at  his  belt.  She  tells  people  of 
her  husband's  cruelty,  and  lives  with  them.  Her  husband  returning  home  from  hunt 
goes  to  village,  points  his  rattle  toward  it,  his  wife  does  ndt  appear,  and  he  goes  to 
other  villages  doing  the  same  until  his  wife  appears  in  his  rattle,  and  he  takes  her  to 
their  home.  Again  he  goes  on  hunt,  and  woman  goes  to  creek  and  cries.  Beavers 
take  her  into  their  lodge.  Husband  again  recovers  her  by  his  rattle,  and  warns  her 
that  she  can  not  escape  from  him,  and  in  his  anger  throws  hot  coals  at  her.  She 
becomes  a  mole,  digs  down  under  mortar,  escapes  from  lodge,  passes  out  on  ground, 
and  goes  to  distant  village,  leaving  no  trail,  for  she  has  covered  her  feet  with  grass. 
He  enters  village  as  sun  ray,  discovers  her,  and  she  returns  to  his  rattle.  He  becomes 
man  and  people  abuse  him,  saying  that  he  belongs  in  heavens  and  has  no  right  to 
mistreat  an  earthly  woman.  He  throws  rattle  on  ground  and  woman  wakes  up. 
He  pulls  string  of  his  rattle,  she  enters,  and  he  takes  her  home  and  releases  her.  He 
now  repents  and  returns,  placing  her  in  his  rattle  and  takes  her  home.  He  becomes 
Sun- Ray  and  goes  back  to  sun. 

55.   HAWK    SLAYS   THE   FIRE-KEEPER. 

In  beginning,  Fire- Keeper  has  his  home  with  people  in  west,  but  he  does  not  like 
them.  On  west  of  their  village  is  deep  river,  across  which  live  two  Hawk  brothers. 
They  have  magic  log  by  which  they  cross  river.  Older  crosses  and  gets  wife,  daugh- 
ter of  priest.  Fire- Keeper,  priest's  brother,  decides  to  kill  young  man,  because  he 
was  not  consulted  regarding  marriage.  After  a  while  woman  gives  birth  to  boy. 
Husband  crosses  river  and  visits  his  brother  during  fog.  As  he  leaves  log  he  is  seized 
by  mysterious  being.  Being  strips  him  of  his  clothing  and  burns  it  and  he  loses  his 
eyes.  His  captor  leads  him  for  many  days  till  they  arrive  at  his  home,  where  he  is 
made  slave.  Child  cries  for  his  father.  Mother  goes  to  lodge  of  her  brother-in-law 
across  river.  Brother  takes  child,  but  it  cries  louder.  She  takes  her  child  and 
hunts  her  husband.  At  river's  bank  she  discovers  fragments  of  his  clothing,  and  she 
follows  his  tracks  toward  west  until  she  comes  to  big  fire  inside  tipi.  Then  she 
discovers  her  uncle,  painted  red,  and  her  husband,  who  is  made  to  stir  fire.  Woman 
begs  in  vain  for  her  husband.  Her  blind  husband  comes  out  of  lodge  and  his  child 
stops  crying.  She  enters  and  secures  her  husband's  half-burned  war  club  and  they 
travel  east  many  days.  At  his  request  she  leads  him  on  rocky  hill  with  steep  sides, 
places  him  at  edge  with  his  feet  hanging  down,  and  pushes  him  over  at  his  earnest  re- 
quest before  sunrise.  She  starts  toward  foot  of  precipice  and  encounters  her  husband 
in  his  normal  condition,  fully  costumed.  He  starts  forward  to  revenge  himself  on  her 
uncle,  and  she  goes  to  her  brother-in-law  and  they  go  to  her  people,  who  are  await- 
ing her  husband.  At  night  they  see  fire  flying  through  sky  and  they  know  that  he 
has  killed  Fire- Keeper.  He  did  this  by  turning  into  Hawk,  striking  Fire-Keeper 
on  head.  Then  turning  into  human  being,  he  threw  fire  through  sky  in  different 
directions,  announcing  that  warriors  should  receive  help  from  stars'  light.  On  his 
return  home  he  is  thanked  by  animals  and  by  birds,  who  call  him  Warrior- Bird. 
Brothers  tell  girl's  father  that  when  they  die  their  skulls  should  be  kept  in  sacred 
bundles,  to  use  as  protectors  while  on  war-path;  that  priests  (owls)  should  remain  at 
home  as  guardians  of  people. 


502  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

56.    THE    SINGING   HAWK. 

In  grass-lodge,  representing  first  lodge  on  earth,  priests  hold  their  ceremonies 
and  women  bring  offerings  of  food.  Once  Coyote  people,  including  all  animals,  go 
on  buffalo  hunt.  Hawk  acts  as  scout.  He  travels  nearly  around  world.  As  he 
returns  home  he  finds  buffalo.  Thus  people  sing  songs  he  sang,  recounting  their 
travels,  -that  they  may  find  buffalo  near  at  home. 

57.     THE    BOY  WHO  MARRIED   A    BUFFALO. 

Daughter  of  Buffalo  chief  visits  boy  and  his  sister.  Boy  has  one  red  and  one 
black  arrow.  He  shoots  cow  with  arrow,  which  penetrates  only  beneath  skin,  and 
boy  follows,  hoping  to  regain  his  arrow.  At  night  tipi  appears,  in  which  he  sleeps. 
In  morning  tipi  has  become  Buffalo,  which  he  follows  throughout  day.  Boy  is 
angry.  At  night  he  again  enters  magic  tipi;  finds  woman  covered  with  robe.  He 
again  follows.  Third  night  woman  tells  him  of  her  love  for  him  and  feeds  him,  and 
they  pass  night  as  man  and  wife.  In  morning  she  is  Buffalo.  They  travel  on  and 
encounter  old  bull,  to  which  boy  offers  tobacco,  and  they  enter  Buffalo's  village, 
where  he  is  received  kindly  by  some,  hostilely  by  others.  Girl's  uncle,  White-Spot 
Buffalo,  jumps  at  boy,  but  boy  shoots  him  with  arrow.  Next,  he  kills  girl's  father, 
who  also  has  white  spot  on  his  forehead.  All  buffalo  become  angry  and  try  to  kill 
him,  but  each  time  he  turns  into  breath  feather.  They  ask  for  sacrifice  of  smoke, 
and  he  takes  certain  buffalo  to  his  village,  which  are  killed  and  their  meat  made 
holy.  Their  spirits  return  to  Buffalo  village  with  news.  Boy  travels  with  Buffalo 
as  feather.  He  becomes  Buffalo,  as  is  proved  by  people  killing  buffalo  whose  hide 
was  covered  with  feathers. 

58.    BUFFALO  WIFE  AND  THE  DISPERSION  OF  THE  BUFFALO. 

A  young  boy  dislikes  women.  Being  blackbird  he  escapes  them.  West  is 
village  of  Buffalo,  and  young  man  learns  that  in  that  village  is  girl  who  dislikes  men. 
He  decides  to  marry  her.  She  also  hears  of  him.  Each  decides  to  visit  the  other, 
and  they  meet  on  high  hill  between  villages.  They  compare  notes  and  each  returns 
home.  Girl  by  river  bank  sings  of  her  lover.  Coyote  hears  her  and  schemes  how  to 
get  her.  Coyote  pricks  his  horse  with  cockle  burrs  and  rides  to  girl,  but  boy  has 
arrived  first  and  takes  girl  to  his  tipi,  where  she  is  fed  and  they  go  to  girl's  father, 
who  is  glad,  and  sends  for  Buffalo  and  they  are  given  smoke.  Buffalo  chief  decides 
to  send  eight  of  Buffalo  to  people  to  be  killed.  Their  meat  is  made  holy,  and  Buffalo 
chief  is  pleased  and  sends  more  of  his  people.  Each  day  a  larger  number  is  sent, 
and  finally  Buffalo  scatter  for  benefit  of  people.  As  Buffalo  wife  wore  an  elk 
dress,  so  must  woman  in  ceremonies  when  her  husband  makes  Buffalo  holy.  Thus 
also  they  wear  eagle  feather  on  their  heads,  imitating  her.  She  finally  makes  her 
husband  angry  and  he  flies  away  as  blackbird  and  thereafter  lives  among  buffalo. 

59.     THE    POOR    BOY  WHO    WANTED   TO    BE   MARRIED. 

Poor  boy  living  with  his  grandmother  wanders  from  village,  and  while  asleep  is 
addressed  by  buffalo  chief's  son,  who  says  that  his  home  is  beyond  mountains,  where 
buffalo  live  in  great  cave.  Boy  is  asked  to  return  on  following  day.  Returning,  he 
is  led  to  place  of  buffalo,  while  from  side  of  hill  comes  little  calf.  He  is  warned  to 


ABSTRACTS.  503 

so  place  himself  as  not  to  see  manner  of  calf's  exit.  He  is  instructed  to  shoot  calf, 
which  he  takes  home.  From  this  time  on  he  brings  larger  buffalo  home  each  day. 
Grandmother  jerks  meat  and  stores  it  in  parfleches.  Girl  visits  lodge  and  is  fed. 
Boy  again  encounters  his  benefactor,  who  gives  him  full  costume.  He  asks  his 
grandmother  to  go  to  chief's  lodge  and  ask  for  his  girl  in  marriage.  Chief  promises 
his  answer  next  day.  In  meantime  youngest  daughter  of  chief  again  visits  them 
and  tells  of  her  love  for  boy.  She  carries  meat  home,  which  she  gives  to  her  parents 
in  night.  On  old  woman's  return  next  day  chief  consents  to  his  daughter's  mar- 
riage. He  enters  chief's  tipi,  and  being  finely  arrayed  other  daughters,  who  formerly 
despised  him,  now  wish  to  marry  him.  He  takes  youngest  daughter  back  to  his 
grandmother's  lodge,  where  they  have  feast,  inviting  chief.  People  are  starving 
and  boy  calls  buffalo  four  times,  and  buffalo  become  numerous.  Boy  remains  faith- 
ful to  his  young  wife.  They  have  many  children. 

60.   THE   BUFFALO  AND   RED-SPIDER-WOMAN'S    DAUGHTER. 

Red-Spider-Woman,  living  in  center  of  earth,  controls  corn,  beans,  etc.,  and  has 
many  daughters.  Buffalo  live  in  north,  their  chief  having  son  named  Curly-Eyes. 
Buffalo  in  council  decide  to  send  four  of  their  number  to  south  to  look  for  better 
land,  Curly-Eyes  being  one  of  party.  On  their  journey  they  meet  Red-Spider- 
Woman  and  her  daughters,  Curly-Eyes  falling  in  love  with  one  of  them.  Reporting 
fact  to  his  father,  he  is  told  it  will  be  necessary  to  buy  her  in  order  that  he  may  bring 
her  home.  Then  delegations  are  sent  offering  old  woman,  first,  valley  full  of  buffalo, 
then  two  valleys  full,  then  half  land  full,  and  finally  land  full.  Still  old  woman 
refuses,  whereupon  buffalo  decide  to  move  to  her  country.  They  travel  south  many 
years.  Curly-Eyes  and  other  buffalo  see  girl.  Old  woman's  fields  are  trampled. 
She  stands  on  prairie  and  begins  to  disappear  in  ground.  They  kill  her.  Buffalo 
chief  announces  that  her  body  shall  remain  in  ground  as  medicinal  root,  from  which 
is  derived  squash  medicine.  Hereafter  buffalo  cover  earth. 

61.  THE    SINGING    BUFFALO   CALF. 

Buffalo  calf  traveling  with  party  dreams  that  they  are  to  be  surrounded, 
killed,  and  consecrated.  Dream  comes  true.  Buffalo  are  satisfied  as  long  as  they 
are  consecrated. 

62.  THE  BUFFALO  AND  THE  DEER. 

Buffalo  and  deer  dispute  concerning  relative  merits  of  their  meat  for  the 
purpose  of  consecration.  Deer  becomes  angry,  and,  running  amongst  the  people 
who  are  on  hunt,  is  shot  and  consecrated.  Consequently,  deer  are  always  first  con- 
secrated when  upon  hunt. 

63.  THE  UNFAITHFUL  BUNDLE-KEEPER. 

Famine  prevails.  Buffalo  are  far  in  west.  They  have  council  and  decide  that 
chief's  daughter  should  lead  them  to  people.  She  puts  bundle  on  her  back  and 
divides  them  into  four  herds,  first  herd  being  sent  to  south  of  village  and  is  killed. 
Second  herd  fares  same  on  north  side,  and  still  third.  Fourth  herd  approaches 
village  from  west,  she  remaining  behind  with  bundle.  During  slaughter  of  this  herd 


504  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

she  gives  birth  to  calf  in  ravine  and  joins  those  who  escape  slaughter,  who  now  return 
home.  Calf  is  taught  by  Wind  name  of  its  father  and  mother,  and  starts  home  sing- 
ing of  its  parentage.  People  are  surprised,  for  they  thought  girl  maiden.  When 
chief  is  assured  that  girl  is  mother  of  calf,  she  is  commanded  to  cease  carrying  sacred 
bundle.  Henceforth,  witch  woman  shall  not  carry  bundle,  and  women  of  high  birth, 
though  unmarried,  occasionally  have  children. 


64.   THE  HUNGRY  COYOTE. 

Coyote  is  famishing,  hears  tramp  of  buffalo  and  sees  calf.  He  questions  calf, 
who  sings  to  him,  in  meantime  passing  on  by  and  thus  escaping  with  its  life,  while 
Coyote  dies  of  hunger. 

65.  THE  GATHERING  OF  THE  PRIESTS. 

In  village  of  Coyotes  they  are  about  to  open  sacred  bundle  and  women  are  told 
to  bring  firewood,  but  they  are  on  hunt,  except  one  girl.  She  grinds  corn  and 
makes  mush,  which  she  takes  to  priests'  lodge.  Priests  are  very  grateful  and  sing 
her  praises.  Buffalo  hunters  are  unsuccessful,  but,  because  of  mush,  priests  keep 
bundle  open,  singing  all  night.  In  morning  hunters  are  successful. 

66.  THE  MAN  WHO  SANG  TO  COYOTE. 

In  winter  time  people  tell  Coyote  stories.  It  is  winter  time,  and  in  every  lodge 
they  are  telling  Coyote  tales.  Young  man  goes  on  hunt,  encounters  Coyote,  and 
starts  to  shoot  him,  but  stops  for  fear  of  bad  luck.  Thereafter  he  is  lucky  while  on 
hunt,  for  sparing  Coyote's  life. 

67.    HOW  THE  CANNIBAL   SPIDER-WOMAN  WAS   OVERCOME. 

Wonderful  boy  wearing  his  robe  wrong  side  out  sets  out  to  find  Spider- Woman's 
village,  who  kills  people  in  tree-climbing  contest.  He  is  met  by  boy  of  her  village, 
who  takes  him  into  his  lodge  and  his  mother  warns  him  of  Spider-Woman.  He  is 
invited  to  Spider-Woman's  lodge  by  Eyes-Wide-Open,  her  errand  man.  He  is 
offered  human  brains,  but  refuses  to  eat.  In  morning  boy  asks  to  be  left  alone  in 
lodge.  He  smears  his  body  with  white  clay,  spotting  it  with  black,  and  ties  feathers 
in  his  scalp-lock.  He  goes  to  contest  and  wagers  his  life  against  that  of  Spider- 
Woman  and  her  children.  Spider- Woman  climbs  tree,  which  falls,  but  she  is  not 
hurt.  Boy  prepares  to  climb,  sings  a  song,  and  Eyes-Wide-Open  asks  to  join  his 
side,  to  which  Spider- Woman  assents.  He  throws  robe  aside,  climbs  tree,  which 
falls,  and  he  is  unhurt.  People  run  to  Spider- Woman  and  kill  her  and  her  people, 
who  are  thrown  into  ravines  over  country.  Eyes-Wide-Open  is  also  killed.  Boy 
declares  there  shall  be  no  more  cannibalism  and  causes  tree  to  fall.  He  tells  woman 
in  whose  lodge  he  has  stayed  over  night  that  she  and  her  child  thereafter  shall  live 
about  old  trees,  and  they  become  mice,  while  he  and  his  people  shall  live  in  tops  of 
trees,  and  he  becomes  speckled  woodpecker.  Thus  it  is  that  woodpeckers  live  in  tops 
and  mice  among  roots  of  hollow  trees. 


ABSTRACTS.  505 

68.   THE  WITCH-WOMAN  WHO  STOLE  THE  WONDERFUL  BUFFALO 

ROBE. 

In  village  lives  Witch- Woman  who  kills  many  people  and  is  great  thief.  She 
also  has  power  to  turn  people  into  animals.  People  try  to  kill  her,  and  pound  her 
with  sticks,  cut  her  with  knives,  but  in  vain.  They  appeal  to  priest,  and  he  sings 
songs  which  foretell  of  the  death  of  old  woman.  In  spring  stranger  visits  them 
wearing  robe  painted  with  stars,  clouds,  lightning,  sun,  moon,  swallows,  and  flies. 
He  is  challenged  by  deer  who  belongs  to  old  woman  to  race.  Boy  is  victorious. 
Boy  one  day  is  gambling.  False  alarm  of  enemy  is  given.  In  confusion  woman 
steals  his  robe.  She  taunts  him  and  tells  him  he  will  never  find  it  again.  She  is 
wearing  it  as  skirt.  Boy  sings  four  times.  Old  woman  recognizes  his  power,  gives 
up  robe,  and  she  is  taken  up  to  heavens  in  rainstorm,  and  is  thrown  back  into  mud 
ravine  and  begins  to  urinate,  and  henceforth  is  spring.  Boy  says  that  thereafter  she 
would  either  be  spider  or  black-tailed  deer,  that  his  work  is  done,  that  he  represents 
North  Wind.  And  he  becomes  speckled  snowbird  and  flies  to  north. 

69.    HOW  THE   CANNIBAL  WITCH-WOMAN  WAS   OVERCOME. 

Boy  goes  to  village,  where  he  is  invited  by  Eyes-Wide-Open,  Coyote,  to  eat 
with  Witch- Woman.  He  refuses  to  eat  and  she  challenges  him  to  contest.  On 
morrow  they  dive  into  river,  both  remaining  under  water  until  afternoon.  Old 
woman  is  victorious,  boy  is  killed,  and  woman  places  his  head  with  her  other  tro- 
phies. Dead  boy's  twin  brother  sets  out  to  find  him;  arrives  at  village.  On  night 
before  contest  he  goes  to  river  bank  and  cries.  Beaver  comes  and  takes  boy  into 
Beavers'  lodge,  and  in  council  they  decide  to  help  him.  They  feed  him  with  meat  of 
young  beaver's  leg,  which  has  been  boiled,  bone  of  which  is  thrown  into  water. 
Young  Beaver  who  thus  lost  his  leg  dives  into  water  and  returns  with  his  leg 
intact.  Beaver  chief  gives  boy  blue  mud,  with  which  he  paints  himself.  On 
following  day  contest  takes  place.  As  boy  dives  he  enters  Beavers'  lodge,  where 
again  Beaver's  leg  is  cut  off.  While  meat  is  cooking  boy  sleeps,  while  Beaver 
watches  bank  to  see  if  old  woman  has  appeared.  By  night  old  woman  thinks  she 
must  be  victorious  and  appears  on  bank.  Watcher  informs  Beavers,  who  awaken 
boy,  who  eats,  and  Beaver's  leg  is  restored  and  boy  appears  above  water  victorious. 
Witch  people  are  killed  and  trampled  into  ground,  water  being  forced  from  old 
woman,  and  she  becomes  spring  near  river. 

70.   THE   GIRL  WHO   CALLED  THE   BUFFALO. 

Coyote  and  his  wife,  Spider- Woman,  are  famishing.  Each  day  he  cuts  small 
piece  from  her  dress  which  he  eats.  He  goes  far  into  country,  but  finds  no  game. 
In  evening  he  smells  roasting  meat  and  follows  odor  for  four  days.  He  finds  tipi;  is 
invited  in;  young  girl  is  sitting  on  west.  On  floor  of  tipi  is  placed  sweet  grass. 
Coyote  tells  her  of  his  condition.  She  asks  him  to  await  her  brothers'  return. 
There  is  rushing  noise  in  sky  and  Bald  Eagle  enters.  He  is  followed  by  White 
Eagle,  black  and  other  eagles.  Each  calls  Coyote  grandfather,  but  he  can  not  see 
them.  Next,  comes  Hawk,  then  Crow,  then  Magpie.  Eagles  take  girl  on  south  side 
of  tipi  and  swing  her  from  two  lariats  which  hang  from  sky.  She  flies  away  toward 
west.  As  she  returns  buffalo  follow  her.  Eagles  take  girl  into  tipi,  while  Crow  flies 
among  buffalo,  saying,  "Caw!  Caw!"  thus  killing  two  buffalo.  Coyote  is  told  to 


506  THE  PAWNEE:   MYTHOLOGY. 

help  himself  to  meat.  He  remains  several  days,  becoming  fat.  He  starts  home 
with  load  of  meat,  which  his  wife  prepares,  and  they  invite  leading  men  of  village  to 
feast.  Coyote  again  goes  to  girl's  home,  and  is  again  given  meat,  which  he  takes 
home.  As  he  returns  for  meat  third  time  he  is  accompanied  by  another  Coyote, 
who  has  begged  permission  to  follow  him.  As  brothers  are  absent  and  Coyotes  are 
hungry,  they  ask  girl  if  they  may  swing  her  and  not  await  her  brothers'  return. 
They  swing  her.  She  nearly  disappears  from  sight.  So  many  buffalo  come  that 
Coyotes  are  scared  and  run  into  tipi.  Buffalo  return  to  west  and  Coyotes  go  home. 
Coyote  again  goes  after  meat,  but  sister  has  disappeared  and  brothers  are  hunting 
her.  Crow  suspects  Coyote  and  tells  him  that  he  must  help  them  to  find  her.  Again 
birds  are  sent  out  and  told  not  to  return  without  having  found  girl.  All  return  except 
Blackbird,  who  reports  next  day  that  girl  was  with  buffalo.  On  following  day 
Eagle,  Hawk,  Crow,  and  Blackbird  are  selected  to  go  after  girl.  They  find  buffalo 
playing  ring  and  javelin  game,  girl  being  ring.  This  enrages  Blackbird,  who  reports 
what  he  has  seen.  Coyote  asks  them  to  besmear  him  with  pine  pitch,  except  his 
feet.  Coyote  leads  rescuing  party,  composed  of  Badger,  Rabbit,  Fox,  Prairie 
Chicken,  Crow,  Blackbird,  Magpie,  Hawk,  and  Eagle,  Blackbird  acting  as  guide. 
Having  gone  distance,  Badger  digs  hole  for  Fox,  another  one  for  Rabbit,  and  farther 
on  one  for  Coyote.  Coyote  approaches  gaming  ground.  Buffalo  are  about  to  hook 
him,  but  one  calls  attention  to  his  pitiable  condition,  so  he  is  unmolested.  As  ring 
rolls  close  to  Coyote  he  gapes  and  tells  ring  to  come  closer.  Next,  ring  rolls  straight 
to  Coyote,  who  passes  it  to  Rabbit,  who  runs  on  and  enters  his  hole,  where  he  passes 
it  to  Fox.  Thus  ring  is  passed  to  Prairie  Chicken  and  to  other  birds,  buffalo  follow- 
ing. Last  to  receive  ring  is  Eagle,  who  flies  up  with  it  into  heavens,  whereupon 
buffalo  decide  to  scatter  over  land  and  allow  themselves  to  be  killed.  Girl  is  re- 
stored to  her  people,  whom  she  tells  that  each  year  maiden  must  be  sacrificed,  or 
otherwise  buffalo  would  not  offer  themselves  to  people. 

71.    WOOD-RAT-WOMAN  WHO  WISHED  TO  BE  MARRIED. 

Young  Eagle  chief  visits  village  where  he  falls  in  love  with  young  girl,  who  easily 
surpasses  other  girls  in  bringing  wood  from  timber,  on  account  of  her  magic  crook 
and  pack  straps.  Going  home  he  tells  his  father  of  girl,  and  his  father  moves  his 
village  near  village  of  girl.  Their  marriage  takes  place.  She  continues  to  bring 
home  from  timber  neat  loads  of  dry  cottonwood  sticks.  She  meets  old  woman,  who 
gives  her  roots  which  cause  her  to  sleep.  Old  woman  blows  her  skin  off  from  her 
waist  up  and  throws  girl  into  water,  while  old  woman  thereafter  takes  girl's  place. 
She  soon  emits  bad  odor.  Otter  is  sent  for  to  doctor  her,  and,  failing,  Beaver  is 
sent  for,  and  then  Buzzard,  who  recognizes  old  woman  as  Wood-Rat  and  orders 
them  to  burn  her.  Young  man  mourns  by  creek  four  days  and  recovers  his  wife. 

72.   THE  WITCH-WOMAN  WHO  WISHED   TO   BE   MARRIED. 

Young  man  marries  beautiful  young  girl  by  name  of  White  Duck.  Old  woman 
becomes  jealous  of  girl  and  kills  her  by  thrusting  dogwood  stick  into  her  ear,  which 
she  does  while  girl  is  in  timber  after  wood.  She  then  clothes  herself  in  girl's  skin, 
throws  girl  into  water,  and  returns  and  takes  girl's  place  in  tipi.  She  becomes  sick, 
medicine-men  are  sent  for,  Raven  recognizes  her  and  orders  her  burned  up.  Young 
man  mourns  his  wife  and  flies  into  sky  as  Hawk. 


ABSTRACTS.  507 

73.  THE  BASKET  GAME,   OR  THE  WOMAN  IN  THE  MOON. 

Spider- Woman  and  her  people  control  seeds.  When  people  visit  her  for  seeds 
they  are  challenged  and  killed.  In  contest  they  jump  up,  storms  are  called,  and 
they  are  frozen.  Two  young  men  decide  to  put  end  to  Spider-Woman.  They 
come  to  her  corn-field  with  its  grass-lodge  and  many  skulls.  They  are  warned  by 
daughter  against  old  woman,  especially  not  to  eat  of  food  which  she  will  offer  them, 
for  it  will  be  human  flesh.  They  are  welcomed  to  old  woman's  lodge,  are  offered 
food,  of  which  they  eat,  first  having  eaten  some  medicine.  Boys  leave  lodge  and 
emetic  takes  effect.  Again  they  take  medicine  and  eat  of  bowl  of  human  eyes,  and 
again  they  go  out  and  allow  emetic  to  take  effect.  Following  morning  they  are  fed 
squash,  which  is  human  ears.  They  vomit  it  up.  They  prepare  to  play  game, 
covering  their  bodies  with  white  clay,  and  from  their  eyes  extend  little  black  streaks. 
They  begin  to  dance  up  and  down  by  steep  bank,  which  old  woman  pushes  her  vic- 
tims over.  As  they  dance  old  woman  sings  of  snowstorm  and  other  storms,  but  boys 
turn  into  snowbirds.  She  sings  of  air  and  they  become  larks.  She  then  acknowl- 
edges defeat  and  offers  her  daughter  to  boys.  They  express  wish  to  continue  game; 
and  they  sing  about  storms,  etc.  Old  woman  survives  until  they  sing  of  grasshoppers, 
which  fly  around  and  under  her  and  take  her  up  to  Moon,  hanging  from  which 
often  a  piece  of  her  dress  may  be  seen.  Grasshoppers  continue  their  flight  to  Sun, 
where  they  may  be  seen  in  summer  time. 

74.  THE  GIRL,  SPIDER-WOMAN,  AND  THE  BALL  GAME. 

Lame  man  and  his  niece  live  alone.  He  disappears  each  day,  often  remaining 
away  late,  which  angers  girl,  and  she  tells  him  not  to  go  so  far  away.  Once  while  he 
is  gone  being  takes  girl  to  far  country  in  wind.  There  she  meets  Spider- Woman, 
who  tells  her  that  she  must  play  game  of  double  ball.  Girl  cries  and  is  taken  to 
lodge  of  Wood- Rat.  Errand  man  appears  that  evening  and  invites  girl  to  feast  with 
Spider-Woman.  Girl  goes  to  Spider- Woman's  lodge,  who  whispers  to  herself  that 
she  will  place  girl's  head  among  her  skulls.  Girl  refuses  to  eat  human  eyes,  and  in 
night  she  asks  birds  to  tell  her  uncle  that  she  needs  his  help.  Girl  asks  for  four  days' 
time  and  goes  to  hill  and  cries.  In  meantime  uncle  returns,  misses  girl,  takes  double 
ball  game  from  bundle,  places  himself  on  them,  strikes  his  ankle  with  stick,  making 
motion  as  if  throwing  balls  into  air,  and  balls  carry  him.  Thus  he  goes  south  look- 
ing for  his  niece,  then  west,  then  north.  Not  finding  her,  he  returns  home  and  a 
little  bird  offers  to  lead  him  to  his  niece,  and  flies  toward  east.  Uncle  finds  niece 
and  he  gives  her  double  ball  with  which  to  play,  and  blows  his  breath  on  string  so 
that  it  will  not  break.  When  time  for  game  comes,  uncle  tells  her  to  strike  him 
several  times  upon  his  ankle  with  stick.  Game  begins.  As  they  progress,  string 
holding  balls  breaks,  and  Spider- Woman  suggests  that  they  stop,  but  girl  insists 
that  they  should  use  her  set.  She  begins  to  beat  her  uncle's  feet  and  presently 
twin  balls  appear.  Thereafter  she  is  uniformly  successful,  finally  winning  Spider- 
Woman  and  her  people.  Old  Woman  is  killed  and  burned,  and  jumps  from  fire  into 
grass  as  spider.  Girl  whips  her  uncle's  feet,  placing  balls  near  them,  and  thus  they 
enter  his  feet  again,  and  he  says  that  so  it  is  that  they  rid  themselves  of  Spider- 
Woman,  and  that  hereafter  people  may  have  rheumatism  and  require  bent  sticks  for 
support. 


508  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

75.   THE   BOY  WHO  KILLED  THE  CANNIBAL  WITCH. 

Young  man  wandered  about  country,  finding  many  human  skulls.  He  finds 
lodge  about  which  are  playing  three  ugly  girls  and  one  beautiful  girl.  Three  ugly 
girls  enter  lodge  and  youngest  warns  him  against  her  mother,  who  is  cannibal.  In 
morning  young  man  is  asked  into  lodge,  is  offered  food  repeatedly,  but  ithas  no  effect 
upon  him.  Old  woman  challenges  him  to  dance,  but  he  becomes  snowbird  and 
then  lark,  whereupon  he  carries  old  woman  up  to  moon.  Then  he  returns,  dismisses 
three  oldest  girls  and  takes  youngest  girl  to  his  village  as  his  wife.  She  prepares 
garden  and  plants  different  kinds  of  seeds.  In  meantime  he  goes  to  west  and  brings 
buffalo,  which  power  he  has  obtained  from  larks. 


76-   THE   WITCH-WOMAN  AND   HER  HOME. 

Hunter  goes  east  to  grass-lodge,  which  he  is  invited  to  enter  by  Witch-Woman. 
He  partakes  of  food,  dies,  and  his  head  is  hung  up  in  her  lodge.  After  four  days  his 
wife  sends  her  son  to  look  for  his  father.  She  challenges  boy  to  dance,  but  first  she 
suspends  about  his  neck  his  father's  head,  which  is  held  in  place  by  cord  pass- 
ing from  ear  to  ear.  Witch- Woman  is  about  to  kill  boy,  rescuers  appear,  and  she  is 
burned.  She  bursts  open  and  croaking  tree  frog  springs  upon  tree. 


77.   THE   MEDICINE-CHILD   AND   THE   BEAVER   MEDICINE. 

Young  boy  acts  peculiarly,  playing  always  by  himself,  imitating  the  ways  of  a 
doctor,  in  which  he  often  has  great  success.  Powerful  medicine- man  of  neighboring 
tribe  hears  of  boy's  ways,  is  jealous,  and  decides  to  visit  him.  He  offers  him 
tobacco  from  skunk-skin  pouch.  They  smoke  together.  Again  he,  with  his  wife, 
visits  boy  and  his  mother,  and  continues  relating  to  boy  stories  of  his  medicine.  Sev- 
eral visits  thereafter  are  made,  and  he  and  his  wife  bring  presents  and  ask  boy  to 
relate  stories  of  his  medicine.  Whereupon  boy  tells  him  he  has  no  power  whatever, 
that  he  has  never  been  initiated  into  any  mysterious  lodge,  and  if  he  has  cured  people 
it  has  been  without  his  knowledge  of  the  origin  of  his  curative  power.  Old  man  is 
enraged  and  on  fourth  night  again  offers  boy  smoke.  Boy  faints.  He  is  awakened 
by  old  man,  who,  with  his  wife,  goes  home.  Thereafter  boy  feels  peculiar  in  his  stom- 
ach. He  shows  increasing  signs  of  pregnancy,  and  sets  out  to  die  in  strange  country. 
He  travels  south,  then  west,  going  to  dangerous  places  and  tempting  wild  animals  to 
slay  him.  On  hill  he  hears  noises,  which  he  follows  to  large  new  tipi.  Is  repeatedly 
warned  not  to  approach,  but  in  spite  of  protest  enters.  He  expresses  his  willingness 
to  die.  Little  people  sit  around  lodge,  one  queerly- dressed  man  being  on  south  side, 
who  wears  white  streaks  of  paint  on  his  face,  and  over  him  hang  lariats  and  downy 
feathers.  They  decide  that  raccoon  and  muskrat  and  two  errand  men  should  decide 
whether  or  not  they  would  offer  him  help.  They  express  their  willingness,  but 
other  animals'  lodges  must  be  consulted,  and  the  peculiar  man  on  south  is  instructed 
to  take  boy  to  next  animals'  lodge.  Boy  closes  his  eyes  and  strange  being  flies  up 
with  him  on  his  back.  Within  second  animals'  lodge  he  finds  that  man  who  carried 
him  is  Hawk.  Hawk  explains  their  errand;  animals  express  their  willingness  to  help 


ABSTRACTS.  509 

him,  but  lack  power.  Errand  men  of  this  lodge  are  Buzzard  and  Magpie.  Magpie 
visits  other  animals'  lodges,  and  finally  Pahuk,  chief  of  animals'  lodges.  They  in- 
struct Magpie  to  invite  animals  to  report  at  Pahuk,  and  Buzzard  is  instructed  to  bring 
boy  thither.  As  Magpie  makes  rounds  of  lodges  they  select  delegates  to  go  to  Pahuk. 
Buzzards  take  boy,  one  carrying  him  at  time  and  being  relieved  by  others,  two  flying 
beneath  one  carrying  boy.  As  boy  enters  lodge  at  Pahuk  he  becomes  conscious  and 
sees  four  little  men  at  west  whom  he  had  seen  at  first  animals'  lodge,  and  who  are 
Ground  Hogs.  Beavers,  chief  medicine-men,  instruct  Otters  to  cure  the  boy,  but 
they  are  unable.  Next,  Bears  are  asked,  and  other  animals  in  lodge.  All  are 
unable,  until  priests,  Ground  Hogs,  are  asked.  Boy  is  placed  on  south  side  of  lodge. 
Chief  Ground  Hog  then  sticks  his  nose  in  bowl  of  water,  moves  his  jaws,  and  vomits 
up  bone.  Other  Ground  Hogs  do  same,  continuing  until  they  have  exhausted  their 
power.  Bears  then  take  up  work,  youngest  cutting  open  boy's  belly  with  his  claw 
and  removing  flesh  therefrom,  which  he  throws  to  little  animals,  upon  which,  all 
medicine-men  in  lodge  rush  upon  boy,  exerting  their  several  powers.  They  work 
over  boy  until  the  wound  is  healed,  and  he  again  becomes  conscious.  Boy  is 
instructed  to  leave  lodge  during  daytime  and  to  return  during  nights.  For  several 
days  he  subsists  upon  seeds,  berries,  and  small  game,  which  he  kills  with 
bow  and  arrow  which  he  has  made.  During  night  he  is  instructed  in  animals' 
mysteries.  Finally,  he  is  told  to  return  to  his  village,  where  his  parents  have  come 
to  regard  him  as  dead.  His  parents  are  asked  to  prepare  food  for  him  and  call  in  his 
friends  and  relatives.  When  they  come,  boy  collects  from  them  presents,  which  he 
takes  to  Pahuk.  Throwing  two  parfleches  of  presents  into  water  he  follows  them  and 
finds  himself  in  animals'  lodge.  They  are  thankful  for  presents,  but  as  there  are  not 
enough  for  all  animals  present,  he  returns  for  more,  after  which  he  is  given  power  to 
slay  enemies.  Boy  is  permitted  to  kill  smallest  Ground  Hog,  which  has  power  to 
kill  enemies,  removing  skin,  but  keeping  skull  in  the  skin.  He  is  taught  feats  of 
sleight-of-hand.  News  spread  rapidly  that  mysterious  boy  has  returned  as  great 
medicine-man,  and  old  medicine-man  of  neighboring  village  decides  to  visit  him 
with  his  wife,  and  they  renew  their  story-telling  contests.  Next,  boy  visits  old  man 
in  his  village.  Boy  smokes  old  man's  pipe,  but  does  not  swallow  smoke.  Old  man 
smokes  boy's  pipe  and  becomes  sleepy.  Chief  of  village  attempts  to  bribe  boy  to 
kill  medicine-man,  but  boy  refuses.  After  he  and  old  medicine-man  have  smoked 
again,  boy  goes  to  creek,  breaks  hole  in  ice,  dips  nose  of  his  Ground  Hog  in  water, 
water  stirs,  and  animal  appears  with  piece  of  liver  in  its  mouth.  Blood  appears  on 
ice  and  about  are  pieces  of  entrails.  Old  medicine  man  is  killed  by  boy,  his  wife 
removing  his  robe  in  morning  and  finding  him  dead,  with  pit  of  his  stomach  sunken 
in.  All  are  glad  of  his  death.  Boy  now  enters  medicine-men's  lodge  and  dances 
with  them  and  performs  sleight-of-hand.  Visiting  Potawatami  admire  boy  and 
invite  Pawnee  to  bring  him  to  their  village.  Pawnee  go  and  are  well  received. 
After  they  have  had  their  performance  boy  asks  his  friends  to  guard  him  during  the 
night,  as  Potawatami  are  trying  to  bewitch  him,  and  toward  morning  he  hears  some- 
one groaning  near  entrance,  He  follows  this  man  home  and  finds  that  it  is  Pota- 
watami-medicine  man.  Pawnee  start  for  home,  boy  saying  that  he  has  been 
bewitched,  and  they  hurry  him  to  stream  at  his  request,  into  which  they  must 
plunge,  whereupon  thing  within  him  which  bewitches  him  will  attempt  to  escape; 
that  as  it  appears  at  his  mouth  they  must  grab  it  and  throw  it  away;  otherwise,  he 
will  die.  Thus  young  man  is  rescued,  and  while  they  remain  camping  near  river 
they  are  informed  of  death  of  Potawatami  medicine-man  who  tried  to  overcome  boy. 


510  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

They  return  home  and  next  year  young  man  gives  medicine  ceremony  and  does 
many  wonderful  performances  and  becomes  leading  medicine-man,  commanding 
cottonwood  tree  to  grow  from  cottonwood  stick.  Following  year  young  man  again 
has  his  performance,  this  time  making  beaver-lodge  and  making  use  of  powers  of 
beavers  in  which  he  thrusts  sticks  through  cheeks  of  his  friends,  swallows  willow 
poles,  commands  dead  loon  to  fly  about  lake,  etc.  He  lives  to  old  age  and  transmits 
his  beaver  medicine  to  his  son. 


78.   THE   ORIGIN   OF  THE   LOON   MEDICINE   CEREMONY. 

Poor  boy  is  befriended  by  chief,  with  whom  he  is  invited  to  live,  where  he  looks 
after  chief's  ponies.  Chief's  son  and  poor  boy  are  great  friends.  Chief's  son  is  in 
love  with  daughter  of  another  chief  of  village.  He  is  continually  with  her,  but 
decides  not  to  mary  her.  To  secure  excuse  for  not  marrying  her  he  gets  poor  boy 
to  lie  with  her.  He  tells  girl  should  she  refuse  he  will  never  marry  her.  The  girl 
objects  and  refuses.  He  attempts  this  second  time,  getting  poor  boy  to  dress  in  his 
clothing  and  to  meet  girl  outside  village  in  night;  whereupon  he  discloses  his  identity 
and  tells  her  of  deception,  that  he  himself  would  marry  her.  He  returns,  obtains  his 
belongings,  while  she  obtains  hers,  and  they  journey  south,  killing  game  as  they  go. 
Her  relatives  ask  chief's  son  her  whereabouts.  Careful  examination  of  young  men 
in  village  reveals  absence  of  poor  boy,  and  it  is  known  he  has  left  with  chief's  daugh- 
ter. Poor  boy  and  girl  travel  south  to  Pahuk,  where  they  make  grass-lodge  and  live. 
As  she  is  getting  water  in  pond  she  sees  Loon,  and  later  finds  nest  with  two  young 
birds.  She  tries  in  vain  to  capture  them.  She  sleeps  late  one  morning  and  they 
hear  Loons  talking,  asking  why  their  mother  has  not  come.  She  goes  to  pond  and 
they  allow  themselves  to  be  captured.  Thereafter,  Loons  pass  each  night  with 
couple,  returning  to  ponds  during  day.  Loons  tell  them  that  they  will  have  no 
children;  but  that  they  will  give  them  their  power.  One  day  man  follows  Loons  to 
water,  which  they  enter,  making  great  noise,  sparks  flying  upward.  Loons  and 
other  water  birds  swim  about  in  pond  and  downy  feathers  form  in  shape  of  earth 
mound,  and  man  is  taught  mysteries  of  water  fowl.  At  Loons'  suggestion  man  goes 
on  hunt  and  returns  with  many  ponies.  Loons  are  anxious  that  they  should  all 
return  to  their  village,  and  they  start  out,  woman  carrying  Loons.  They  enter 
village  and  people  are  frightened,  thinking  they  are  enemy,  for  they  had  been  gone 
four  years.  Man  gives  several  ponies  to  chief's  son  and  tells  him  he  has  been  to 
Pahuk,  and  chief's  son  invites  him  and  Loons  to  eat  with  them.  War  party  is 
formed  and  ponies  are  brought  home.  Chief's  son  then  leads  war  party  and  poor 
boy  assists  him,  and  they  take  one  of  Loons  with  them,  which  guides  and  protects 
them.  They  return  with  scalps  and  ponies.  They  again  go  on  war  party  and  young 
man  of  village  attempts  to  visit  young's  man  wife,  but  Loon  which  has  remained 
with  her  makes  noise  in  protest  and  is  mistreated.  On  that  night  woman's  husband 
on  war-path  knows  that  something  is  wrong  and  they  set  out  for  home.  Arriving,  he 
finds  Loon  is  ill,  and  it  tells  man  that  his  wife  has  been  unfaithful  during  his  absence, 
and  that  man  who  has  been  with  her  has  mistreated  him.  Loon  dies.  Young  man 
takes  his  skin,  and  shortly  after  skin  of  other  Loon,  which  also  dies.  Then  he  drives 
his  wife  from  his  lodge,  telling  her  never  to  return.  Thereafter,  Loons  are  used  on 
altar  of  medicine-man.  He  finally  dies  of  broken  heart,  but  leaves  his  medicines  to 
chief's  son. 


ABSTRACTS.  $11 

79.   THE  LIGHTNING'S  MEDICINE  CEREMONY. 

Girl  is  born  with  birthmark  on  her  forehead.  She  has  mysterious  ways;  seems 
always  to  be  counting  stars;  on  which  account  she  is  allowed  unusual  freedom. 
She  becomes  beautiful  young  woman,  and  takes  good  care  of  her  bed  and  pillows. 
One  clear  day  she  prophesies  rain.  All  are  surprised.  During  rainstorm  girl  lies 
near  fireplace  covered  up.  Lightning  flashes,  smoke  fills  lodge,  and  all  are  stunned. 
When  they  recover,  father  goes  to  his  daughter,  sees  smoke  coming  from  her  head 
through  round  hole,  hole  extending  through  the  pillow  beneath  her  head  and  on 
into  ground,  from  which  smoke  is  pouring.  Father  digs  into  ground  and  comes  to  an 
object  of  many  colors  shaped  like  woman.  People  bathe  in  cedar-nut  tea,  in  which 
has  been  placed  scent  of  skunk,  and  bathe  themselves  in  smoke  from  cedar  leaves, 
and  their  face  is  smeared  with  mud  from  where  lightning  struck.  All  pray  to  stone, 
especially  father.  Lodge  is  swept  and  people  bathe.  Storm  has  disappeared. 
Following  day  father  calls  council.  Smoke  is  offered  to  stone,  which  now  seems 
heavy,  though  small.  Girl  is  buried  on  hill.  Father  does  not  mourn,  for  he  believes 
that  gods  in  heavens  took  his  daughter.  In  dream  he  sees  her,  and  birthmark  on  her 
forehead  especially  as  bright  star,  but  on  back  of  her  head  are  eleven  eagle  feathers 
arranged  like  crescent  moon.  She  tells  her  father  that  she  is  now  living  with  moon, 
and  says  that  lightning  did  not  kill  her,  but  stone  which  fell  from  heaven.  She  tells 
her  father  to  make  his  bed  on  north  side  of  stone,  which  he  shall  keep  in  lodge,  and 
that  stone  will  speak  to  him.  Father  at  first  can  not  see,  for  light  of  girl  has  dazzled 
him.  Then  he  sees,  although  it  is  night.  He  reports  to  his  wife  what  he  has  seen  in 
his  vision.  He  makes  his  bed  by  stone,  and  in  vision  man  stands  at  head  of  his 
bed  and  tells  him  that  he  has  loved  his  daughter;  that  he  has  killed  her  and  he  has 
lost  his  place  in  heavens  and  will  remain  with  him;  that  he  should  make  him  up  into 
a  bundle,  wrapping  him  in  soft  downy  feathers;  that  he  is  medicine-man  and  will 
teach  him  his  power.  Following  day  father  paints  himself  and  goes  to  high  hill  in 
west  and  fasts.  In  dream  he  is  again  visited  by  this  man,  who  tells  him  to  cease 
fasting.  Several  nights  after  it  rains,  and  spirit  of  stone  tells  him  he  should  go  to 
certain  animal-lodge.  He  again  fasts  on  hill  during  rainstorm,  and  is  told  to  go 
to  Swimming  Mound  animal-lodge;  that  he  is  to  carry  stone  with  him  and  remain  on 
Swimming  Mound  until  it  thunders;  that  he  will  see  Lightning  strike  place  it  has 
before  struck  many  times.  He  is  to  go  there  and  he  will  find  hole,  which  he  is 
to  enter,  leaving  stone  at  entrance.  Farther  in  he  will  find  himself  in  large 
lodge,  where  he  will  hear  animals  playing  on  notched  stick;  that  animals  will  go 
to  entrance,  see  stone,  and  ask  man  to  remove  it;  that  he  is  to  tell  animals  that  he 
will  remove  stone  if  they  will  give  him  their  power.  Early  in  morning  he  arises, 
prays  to  stone,  informs  his  friends  of  his  vision,  and  they  set  out  and  journey  to 
Swimming  Mound.  Though  there  is  no  sign  of  storm,  as  soon  as  he  places  stone  on 
hill  storm  arises.  He  hears  noise  of  rubbing  of  notched  stick,  and  of  people 
drumming,  On  second  night  he  again  hears  strange  noises,  and  whistling  like  wind, 
and  he  sees  many  elk.  He  faints,  and  is  given  power  from  elks,  who  fear  stone  and 
ask  him  to  remove  it,  saying  that  it  draws  lightning  and  will  kill  them.  Next,  eagles 
visit  him,  and  on  account  of  their  fear  of  stone  give  him  power.  Next  night  noises 
are  heard  and  people  sing  like  geese.  Fire  comes  up  from  river  and  he  sees  all  kinds 
of  animals  swimming.  He  pays  no  attention  to  them,  and  following  day  sun  comes 
up  and  many  colors  are  visible  in  every  direction,  like  countless  rainbows.  At  night 
he  begins  to  be  afraid.  Green  light  shines  from  stone  and  he  prays  that  his  fear 


5i2  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

may  leave  him.  He  continues  mourning  and  again  hears  noises  which  seem  to  come 
from  timber.  Fear  is  again  taken  from  him  as  he  sees  green  color  of  stone.  Man 
appears  before  him,  stone  shining  brightly.  Man  wears  bear  robe,  with  two  great 
tusks,  and  bear  claws  about  his  ankles.  He  breathes  colored  dust,  which  stone  dis- 
pels. Being  tells  man  that  he  is  afraid  of  stone,  that  lightning  will  kill  his  child. 
He  turns  into  bear  and  walks  off.  Following  day  clouds  tremble  in  heavens  as  if 
crazy.  By  evening  dark  cloud  comes  from  west.  Lightning  comes  in  his  direction. 
He  hears  crying  of  animals.  Lightning  flashes  and  rain  pours  down.  Noise  passes, 
sounding  like  hailstorm.  Lightning  now  repeatedly  strikes  certain  spot  on  river's 
bank.  He  is  stunned  by  lightning,  and  swoons,  and  stone  man  addresses  him,  tell- 
ing him  that  animals  have  never  been  friendly  with  man  before;  that  they  are  now 
to  give  him  power.  He  asks  to  be  carried  to  place  where  lightning  struck.  Man 
takes  up  stone  and  goes  to  hole  where  lightning  has  struck,  prays  to  stone,  and 
enters  animals'  lodge.  Mink  passes  in  and  goes  to  entrance  and  reports  to  other 
animals.  They  send  messenger  to  him  to  ask  him  to  remove  stone,  telling  man 
that  he  is  fire  maker,  and  is  willing  henceforth  to  live  among  people.  Animals  con- 
fer and  finally  tell  him  that  they  will  give  him  their  power.  Animals  walk  around 
fire  while  he  enters  lodge.  In  front  of  him  he  sees  pieces  of  ice,  which  animals  tell 
him  they  have  taken  from  his  stomach.  He  is  to  swallow  them  again  and  animals 
would  give  him  power  to  blow  objects  into  people's  stomachs.  As  he  takes  his  seat 
in  circle  in  lodge  he  sees  scalped  man  and  tells  tale  of  his  power,  and  other  animals 
give  him  their  medicine.  Thereupon,  man  brings  stone  into  lodge.  Animals  blow 
their  breath  upon  it,  Skunk  being  last,  saying  that  he  also  has  power  to  make  rain- 
bows, and  he  gives  man  power  to  cure  people  with  lightning.  Animals  then  tell  man 
that  he  has  formed  stone  medicine-lodge;  that  one  altar  shall  contain  mysterious 
stone,  that  second  altar  shall  be  Beavers',  and  that  they  will  teach  him  power  of 
sleight-of-hand  and  many  songs.  He  is  guided  out  of  lodge  and  sees  clearly  in  night 
and  enters  his  home  with  stone,  skin,  etc.,  which  have  been  given  him.  In  morning 
he  makes  offering  of  smoke  to  sun,  asking  it  to  confirm  all  that  has  happened.  He 
disappears  every  day,  returning  every  day  with  roots  and  herbs,  one  day  in  crazed 
condition,  being  under  influence  of  some  animal.  He  is  watched  and  appears  as 
deer,  as  coyote,  and  as  eagle.  Thus  he  was  guided  in  his  search  for  medicines.  Then 
they  return  to  their  own  village.  Each  night  on  way  he  sings  his  songs  and  tells 
his  friends  of  his  experiences,  and  he  takes  presents  to  animals.  In  fall  timbers 
are  gathered  for  medicine-lodge,  and,  after  successful  buffalo  hunt  in  winter,  lodge  is 
erected.  Man  invites  his  tribesmen  and  explains  to  them  all  that  has  happened. 
They  make  altars  in  medicine-lodge,  using  skins  of  birds  and  animals.  Four  ash 
limbs  are  obtained,  which  are  decorated  and  notched  on  one  side.  Cottonwood 
saplings  are  placed  about  altar,  and  also  willows.  As  they  visit  timber  for  these 
trees,  medicine-man  occasionally  grunts  and  throws  others  down.  As  they  arise, 
some  vomit  corn-cobs,  others  pieces  of  root.  They  bathe,  cut  trees,  and  return  to 
lodge.  On  way  back  medicine-man  grunts  and  all  fall  to  their  knees.  Thus  he  finds 
out  animal  power  of  each  man,  for  when  wounded  he  would  imitate  animal  from 
which  he  obtained  his  power.  Booths  for  different  medidine-men  are  made  inside 
lodge,  and  each  man  takes  his  medicines  into  his  booth.  On  following  day  medi- 
cine-men go  to  far-away  timber  and  return  with  cedar  tree.  This  is  selected  for  bear 
medicine-man.  In  night  they  perform,  and  man  makes  lightning  appear.  Each  man 
throws  up  his  animal's  power  and  their  power  is  seen  sitting  on  ground.  After  dance 
all  sit  down,  then  each  man  picks  up  his  power  and  swallows  it.  For  many  nights 


ABSTRACTS.  $13 

they  perform.  Distinguished  warrior  asks  permission  to  join  in  final  sleight-of-hand 
performances.  Permission  being  given,  he  disappears  for  three  days  while  he 
makes  preparations.  He  goes  into  enemy's  country  wearing  his  war  paints,  and 
returns  with  many  ponies.  Returning,  as  he  goes  through  village  he  sees  poor  boy, 
whom  he  takes  into  his  lodge  and  asks  him  to  help  him.  In  afternoon  they  go  to 
high  hill,  into  which  they  dig  and  obtain  clay,  with  which  boy  makes  four  mud 
ponies,  and  places  them  in  path  of  sun  ray  in  lodge  to  dry.  In  night  two  go  to  medi- 
cine-lodge with  clay  ponies.  He  sings  and  mud  ponies  walk  around.  At  end  of 
performance  they  leave  lodge,  the  boy  carrying  ponies,  which  he  throws  into  water. 
Thereafter,  this  warrior  never  is  known  to  capture  pony,  for  his  power  was  taken 
from  him  because  he  has  thrown  mud  ponies  into  creek.  In  summer  people  go 
hunting,  and  medicine-man  takes  his  stone  medicine  with  him.  They  are  attacked 
by  enemy.  One  of  their  number  goes  to  near-by  Potawatami  village  and  asks  their 
people  for  assistance.  They  send  twenty  warriors,  who  attack  enemy,  for  they  are 
giants,  and  enemy  are  overthrown.  Thereupon,  Pawnee  cut  out  hearts  of  enemy, 
which  they  place  in  their  medicine-bags,  and  smear  their  faces  with  blood.  Owner 
of  stone  medicine  is  not  killed,  but  bundle  is  lost. 

80.   EARLY    MIGRATIONS   AND    THE    STONE-MAN   MEDICINE-LODGE. 

Man  and  wife  have  two  sons  and  many  daughters.  Each  of  sons  takes  wife. 
Thereupon,  father  makes  lodge  on  each  side  of  his  own  for  each  of  his  sons.  Thus 
were  formed  three  Pawnee  villages — that  of  father  being  Pitahauirat;  one  on  right, 
Chaui;  one  on  left,  Kitkehahki.  The  three  original  lodges  faced  west.  Older  son 
is  told  by  his  father  that  he  should  obtain  power  from  animals  and  have  roots  and 
herbs,  while  younger  son  is  told  that  he  should  learn  power  of  stones  and  obtain 
their  strength.  Kitkehahki  go  south,  and  Chaui  west,  while  Pitahauirat  stay  in 
east.  Pitahauriat  were  favored  by  Tirawa,  and  Chaui  were  watched  by  heavenly 
gods,  and  Kitkehahki  people  understood  power  of  stones.  Especially  did  they  talk 
with  certain  stone  god  who  made  them  famous.  Among  Chaui  young  man  dis- 
appears and  returns  famous,  and  is  known  as  Animal  Boy.  Among  Pitahauirat  is 
man  known  as  Cheat  Coyote,  or  Crow  Feathers,  who  is  great  thief.  Crow  Feathers 
becomes  jealous  of  Animal  Boy's  costume,  and  meeting  him  in  timber  challenges  him 
to  turn  into  some  animal.  Boy  becomes  eagle,  and  is  commanded  by  Crow  Feathers 
to  remain  eagle  and  Crow  Feathers  returns  to  village  clad  in  Animal  Boy's  costume. 
East  of  village  poor  man  and  his  wife  live  in  poor  grass-lodge.  As  she  is  gathering 
grass  bird  drops  down  in  front  of  her.  She  looks  and  finds  boy  baby.  They  care 
for  child,  which  grows  rapidly.  In  few  days  he  asks  for  bow  and  arrow,  which  are 
given  him.  Next,  he  asks  for  spider-web  ring.  As  woman  rolls  it  for  him  he  shoots 
at  it  and  there  appears  dead  buffalo.  Thus  for  many  succeeding  days  he  brings 
buffalo.  His  power  is  not  recognized,  for  he  continues  ragged  and  dirty.  No  one 
yet  knows  he  is  Animal  Boy  who  disappeared,  and  who  was  taken  into  animals'  lodge 
and  given  great  power.  Kitkehahki  man  in  west  is  addressed  by  Stone-Man  and 
given  power  to  ward  off  arrows.  On  his  return  to  his  people  he  behaves  insolently 
and  they  try  in  vain  to  kill  him.  They  are  hungry,  for  red  fox  has  carried  away 
game,  and  chief  announces  that  whoever  will  kill  it  may  marry  his  eldest  daughter. 
Animal  Boy  goes  to  timber,  and,  with  others,  prepares  trap.  Fox  is  caught  in  Animal 
Boy's  trap  and  Animal  Boy  grabs  at  its  tail  as  it  swings  in  the  air  from  pole,  but 
can  not  pull  it  down,  and  only  gets  hair  from  its  tail.  Crow  Feathers  comes  along, 


514  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

claims  fox,  strikes  down  Animal  Boy,  and  marries  chief's  daughter.  Boy  returns 
home,  and  hair  which  he  has  becomes  whole  hide  of  fox.  People  visit  Crow 
Feathers'  tipi  to  see  fox.  Hairs  fall  from  it  and  are  blue  in  color,  not  red. 
Buffalo  do  not  approach  village,  but  boy  continues  to  obtain  buffalo  by  his  magic 
ring.  One  day  Animal  Boy  sends  his  grandmother  to  chief's  lodge  with  roll  of 
pemmican.  She  is  to  sit  at  entrance  and  drop  it,  and,  on  leaving,  chief  is  to  ask 
what  it  is,  and  she  is  to  tell  him  it  is  piece  of  fat  with  which  she  greases  her 
boy's  eyes.  She  does  as  she  is  told  and  is  followed  home  by  chief's  youngest 
daughter,  who  sees  true  red  fox  and  many  parfleches  with  buffalo  meat.  Then 
boy  tells  old  woman  of  visit  of  chief's  young  daughter,  and  sends  his  grandmother 
with  parfleche  of  meat  and  red  fox  to  chief's  lodge.  She  goes  to  chief  and  tells 
him  what  her  boy  has  said.  Chief  invites  his  friends  and  they  are  astonished 
at  fox,  for  it  makes  his  lodge  very  red.  Chief  announces  that  Animal  Boy 
shall  marry  his  daughter.  Boy  is  sent  for,  enters  his  father-in-law's  lodge, 
and  shortly  after  they  leave  and  go  to  pond,  where  boy  bathes,  appearing 
fine  looking,  wearing  woodpecker  cap  and  star-painted  robe.  They  make  their 
home  with  Crow  Feathers  and  his  wife.  In  night  Crow  Feathers  sees  stars  on 
boy's  robe  sparkle  like  fire.  Crow  Feathers'  wife  is  angry  at  herself  at  having  been 
deceived.  Following  day  boy  goes  to  timber  and  returns  with  woodpecker  on  his 
head  that  flops  its  wings  and  whistles.  That  night  Crow  Feathers  tries  to  imitate 
him,  throwing  coals  of  fire  upon  his  own  roBe,  which  burns  up.  In  morning  he  sets 
out  with  woodpecker  tied  on  his  head.  It  pecks  at  him  and  he  bleeds.  Soon  Animal 
Boy  tells  chief  to  announce  arrival  of  buffalo.  They  find  buffalo  and  all  have 
chance  in  slaughter.  Crow  Feathers  finds  one  buffalo  which  he  finally  kills,  but  it  is 
lean  and  thin.  He  takes  meat  home.  Animal  Boy  pulls  hair  from  some  buffalo 
and  hairs  become  hearts.  He  pulls  beards  of  others,  and  hairs  become  tongues. 
From  tail  of  fat  cow  he  pulls  hair,  which  becomes  whole  buffalo,  and  he  is  first 
to  get  home.  His  wife  makes  drying  frame.  Late  at  night  Crow  Feathers  enters 
with  his  lean  meat,  which  he  removes  from  his  pony's  back.  He  is  more  enraged 
than  ever  at  Animal  Boy  and  tries  to  kill  him,  but  animals  kill  Crow  Feathers, 
and  he  is  found  dead  in  bed.  All  now  recognize  Animal  Boy's  wonderful  power 
except  Stone-Man,  who  encounters  boy's  wife  on  her  way  to  spring,  and  demands 
that  she  let  him  drink.  Girl  tells  her  husband  what  Stone-Man  has  done.  Boy 
takes  his  bow  and  arrow  and  goes  among  hills,  where  he  finds  Stone-Man.  He 
shoots  at  him  with  arrow,  but  arrow  flies  back.  Stone-Man,  fearing  boy,  goes  west 
with  his  wife  and  travels  to  hilly,  stony  country  and  he  lies  down  near  hot  spring. 
He  drives  buffalo  west  by  his  magic  power.  He  and  his  wife  make  earth-lodge.  On 
altar  he  places  stone.  He  captures  many  buffalo,  meat  of  which  his  wife  jerks. 
They  have  many  buffalo  robes.  His  wife  gives  birth  to  girl  and  dies,  and  Stone-Man 
lives  with  his  daughter.  Animal  Boy  loses  his  wife  and  leaves  people,  who  are  dis- 
satisfied, for  there  are  no  buffalo.  Chief  asks  young  men  to  go  in  pairs  through 
country  looking  for  buffalo.  Some  in  west  find  earth-lodge,  which  they  enter  and 
find  Stone-Man  and  his  daughter,  who  questions  them  about  Animal  Boy.  Being 
told  that  Animal  Boy  has  lost  his  wife  and  disappeared,  he  is  pleased  and  gives 
them  food.  During  night  they  hear  strange  noises  in  lodge.  In  morning  each  man 
is  given  parfleche  of  meat,  being  told  to  return  to  his  people.  They  return,  relate 
their  adventures,  and  thus  Kitkehahki  move  west  to  Stone-Man's  country.  Stone- 
Man  sees  handsome  young  man  in  their  number  and  selects  him  for  his  son-in-law. 
That  night  he  tells  his  son-in-law  what  he  expects  of  him.  During  night  they  lie 


ABSTRACTS.  515 

still,  for  Stone-Man  can  hear  every  movement  and  orders  them  to  be  quiet.  Ascer- 
taining that  boy  has  no  magic  power,  he  challenges  him  to  play  ring  and  javelin 
game.  They  play  inside  lodge  and  Stone-Man  throws  boy  into  spring  of  boiling 
water,  in  which  he  disappears.  Few  days  after  other  young  men  are  invited  to 
lodge,  and  he  selects  son-in-law,  and  discovering  he  has  no  power  he  also  is  destroyed. 
Many  young  men  are  similarly  destroyed.  Each  time  he  selects  a  son-in-law  he 
promises  buffalo  to  people.  Animal  Boy  in  his  wanderings  is  informed  by  animals 
of  current  events,  and  is  told  to  return  to  his  people.  He  arrives  as  they  are  enter- 
ing lodge  of  Stone-Man  and  accompanies  them  and  is  selected  as  Stone-Man's  son- 
in-law,  but  first  asks  permission  to  be  accompanied  by  his  two  errand  men.  Per- 
mission is  granted  and  he  at  once  sends  to  chief  to  inform  him  that  buffalo  will 
appear  at  daybreak.  In  night  Stone-Man's  daughter  tells  her  husband  that  she 
recognizes  him  and  hopes  that  he  will  kill  her  father.  Following  day  in  hunt  Ani- 
mal Boy  brings  in  meat,  which  angers  Stone-Man,  and  he  tells  boy  that  he  has  not 
yet  married  his  daughter,  but  must  first  bring  him  some  plums,  which  must  be 
fresh.  Although  it  is  winter  time  boy  goes  south,  summons  aid  of  different  bears, 
who  take  him  to  plum  bush,  growl,  boy  shakes  bush,  and  obtains  plums.  He  returns 
with  only  perfect  fruit  to  his  father-in-law,  who  refuses  to  eat  them.  Then  he  tells 
his  son-in-law  to  get  good  material  for  bow  and  arrows.  Boy  goes  to  southwest  and 
mountain-lion  furnishes  him  with  bow,  wood  being  imitation  ash  and  sinew  from  his 
own  tail,  in  imitation  of  buffalo  sinew.  Then  boy  prays  to  rushes,  spreads  his  robe 
under  them,  shakes  rushes,  pulls  up  four  stems,  puts  them  in  his  robe,  throws  robe 
upon  the  ground  four  times,  and  arrows  appear,  one  red,  one  white,  one  yellow,  and 
one  black.  He  goes  to  rocks  and  stones,  cries,  and  is  told  to  put  arrows  in  his  robe 
with  flint  stones,  and  to  throw  robe  upon  ground  four  times.  He  does  so  and  arrows 
are  flint-tipped.  He  gives  bow  and  arrows  to  his  wife,  who  gives  them  to  her  father, 
who  complains  that  they  are  not  good,  and  asks  that  they  be  tipped  with  hawk 
feathers,  and  that  he  be  furnished  gray  wolf-skin  quiver.  Following  day  boy  cries; 
hawks  answer  and  drop  their  finest  feathers.  He  prays  again  and  wolves  appear, 
and  chief  offers  four  of  their  number.  Boy  spreads  his  robe  over  them,  shakes  them, 
and  there  appear  four  wolf  hides.  These  are  given  to  father.  He  now  begins  to  be 
satisfied,  fills  one  quiver  with  bow  and  arrows,  and  asks  that  he  be  given  three  other 
bows  and  sets  of  arrows  for  other  quivers.  The  boy  appears  with  them  and  by 
magic  transforms  hides  into  quivers,  and  Stone-Man  expresses  satisfaction.  He 
tells  him  that  on  following  day  he  will  play  ring  and  javelin  game  with  him  as 
final  test  of  fitness  to  be  his  son-in-law.  That  night  boy  leaves  lodge  and  receives 
power  from  beaver.  They  play  game  a  while  and  Stone-Man  pushes  boy  toward 
spring,  but  he  falls  across  hole  with  speed  of  otter  and  not  into  it.  Several  times  he 
is  pushed  and  escapes  every  time.  He  then  turns  into  otter  and  Stone-Man  declares 
himself  beaten.  In  night  he  confesses  that  he  had  intended  to  turn  people  into 
stone,  and  he  asks  for  young  buffalo.  In  night  boy  goes  east  and  cries.  Man  with 
dirty  face  and  long  hair,  in  robe,  stands  by  him,  saying  he  is  leader  of  buffalo,  and  he 
offers  to  take  boy  to  stone  from  which  Stone-Man  obtains  his  power.  They  go  to  hill 
where  they  find  large  stone,  from  which  boy  is  directed  to  break  many  small  pieces. 
He  works  all  night  and  thus  power  is  withdrawn  from  Stone-Man.  They  return  to 
buffalo  herd,  which  stands  up  and  surrounds  boy,  and  young  buffalo  of  great  power 
and  flint  horns  offers  himself  for  contest.  In  forenoon  they  reach  Stone-Man's 
lodge*  Stone-Man  admits  to  himself  boy's  great  power  and  declares  he  will  never 
obtain  his  daughter.  Buffalo  runs  to  north  side  of  lodge,  panting  as  if  winded. 


516  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

Stone-Man  takes  one  of  his  quivers,  goes  out  and  shoots  buffalo,  but  point  of  arrow 
stops  in  buffalo's  hair.  Stone-Man  shoots  at  it  many  times,  emptying  his  first 
quiver,  and  so  he  continues,  exhausting  one  quiver  after  another,  until  he  begins  on 
arrows  of  fourth,  which  are  four  that  were  colored  and  that  are  only  rushes.  He 
shoots  his  last  arrow  and  runs  past  buffalo,  who  gets  up  and  hooks  Stone-Man, 
piece  of  stone  falling  from  him,  whistling  through  air.  Buffalo  continues  knocking 
pieces  from  him,  and  young  man's  two  errand  men  batter  him  to  pieces,  while  girl 
throws  pieces  into  boiling  spring,  from  which  steam  issues,  filling  lodge  and  ascend- 
ing from  top.  Boy  and  girl  leave  lodge,  returning  in  morning,  when  they  find  that 
it  has  turned  into  earth-lodge  of  solid  stone.  Thus  there  are  geysers  in  west. 
Young  man  takes  his  wife  home,  starts  an  animal-lodge,  and  performs  many  mira- 
cles, in  which  his  wife  takes  part,  even  flint-pointed  arrows  dropping  from  her  body. 
Lodge  which  he  founded  is  known  as  Stone-Medicine  lodge,  for  on  altar  is  piece  of 
stone  which  girl  has  saved,  which  is  part  of  her  father.  Once  Sioux  attack  village 
and  keeper  of  stone  drops  it  into  river.  It  is  never  found,  but  ceremony  is  trans- 
mitted by  boy  and  his  wife  to  their  children. 

81.   THE   FOSSIL  GIANT   MEDICINE-LODGE. 

Man  from  hunting  party  near  Swimming  Mound  enters  timber  and  falls  asleep 
on  high  hill.  He  is  addressed  by  giant,  who  tells  him  that  many  of  giant  people  were 
drowned  in  that  place,  and  that  their  bones  are  thereabouts,  and  that  upon  south 
side  of  hill  he  will  find  one  of  his  thigh  bones;  that  he  is  to  take  it  and  it  will  give  him 
great  power.  On  waking,  man  sees  no  one,  but  goes  and  finds  bone.  Carved  on  it 
is  man  and  woman,  skull,  bow  and  arrows,  and  many  stars.  On  head  is  carved  sun 
and  moon.  He  takes  it  home  and  makes  it  into  bundle.  Again  he  dreams  of  this 
giant,  and  it  tells  him  how  to  hold  ceremony,  and  in  his  dream  he  hears  songs  which 
he  is  to  sing  in  ceremony.  Years  after,  he  holds  ceremony,  and  those  associating 
with  him  in  ceremony  are  known  as  Medicine-Stone  people.  This  man  becomes 
great  medicine-man,  and  in  doctoring  uses  dust  from  bone.  In  great  smallpox 
epidemic  those  who  touch  bone  are  immune.  Ceremony  no  longer  exists. 

82.   THE  SQUASH  MEDICINE. 

Before  ordinary  people  is  race  of  giants  so  large  that  they  could  carry  buffalo. 
They  have  no  fear  of  wild  animals  or  heavenly  gods.  They  revile  sun,  call  thunder 
names,  turning  their  backs  to  it,  and  Tirawa  decides  to  destroy  them,  and  he  sends 
rain,  but  though  it  does  not  rain  very  hard  buffalo  in  west  move  and  water  breaks 
through  and  covers  earth.  Giants  are  washed  away  and  left  on  steep  banks  and 
other  high  places,  on  which  they  sink  into  soft  earth,  being  covered  with  lightnings 
and  clouds.  Thus  power  should  remain  in  them,  useful  in  after-ages  for  medicines, 
while  bones  should  have  healing  power.  When  ordinary  people  come  to  be  on 
earth  Big-Black-Meteoric-Star  visits  man,  telling  him  to  dig  in  certain  place,  where 
he  would  find  great  root,  which  contains  power;  that  this  root  sprung  from  giant. 
Star  also  explains  how  giants  had  been  destroyed,  and  instructs  man  exact  ways  of 
obtaining  root,  preparing  it,  etc.  Man  realizes  root  star  has  spoken  of  is  one  people 
are  afraid  of,  because  it  has  odor  such  as  human  beings  emit  from  their  axillas.  In 
spite  of  fear  for  this  root,  man  is  discovered  one  day  digging  one  out.  He  sings  songs 
which  he  has  been  taught.  People  lose  their  fear  and  join  him,  and  he  tells  of  his 


ABSTRACTS.  517 

vision.  After  uncovering  it  he  smokes  to  star  and  to  root,  addressing  it  as  '  'father" 
and  '  'mother. "  As  he  prays  to  it  water  oozes  from  root,  whereby  he  knows  that  it 
commands  to  be  removed,  for  if  it  had  burst  he  would  know  that  it  was  angry  and 
was  turning  its  odor  upon  the  people.  Men  sit  in  circle  west  of  root,  place  their 
hands  on  it,  and  thank  it.  Women  come  with  hoes,  one  standing  in  each  direction. 
Men  smoke  to  Mother  Earth,  saying  that  they  are  about  to  dig  into  her  to  remove 
root;  that  root  is  one  of  her  children,  and  thanking  her  for  having  received  root  and 
for  having  preserved  it  for  them.  Women  sing.  Woman  in  west  represents  birth;  one 
in  east,  power  of  young  life;  in  north,  chief  or  warrior,  and  in  south,  ,land  of  the  dead. 
They  dig,  exposing  root,  and  it  is  seen  that  it  is  in  form  of  human  being.  Root  is 
removed  and  laid  on  west  side.  Hole  is  filled  up.  All  sit  down.  Man  fills  his  pipe, 
smokes  to  star  in  east,  to  Tirawa  above  four  whiffs,  to  four  gods  of  east,  again  to 
Mother  Earth,  four  whiffs  to  head  of  root,  one  whiff  each  to  right  arm,  right  hand, 
left  foot,  and  left  hand,  and  one  whiff  to  stomach.  Drawing  his  hand  over  pipestem 
he  then  addresses  root  as  '  'father,"  saying  that  gods  taught  him  how  to  remove  it; 
that  earth  was  willing  for  it  to  be  removed,  and  that  root  itself  signified  its  assent 
by  shedding  water;  that  they  are  to  place  it  in  their  medicine  bundle  and  feel  that  its 
spirit  is  with  them.  Root  is  then  carried  to  man's  tipi,  which  has  been  swept  and 
new  mats  placed  on  ground.  It  is  placed  west  of  fireplace  and  people  sing  songs. 
Again  man  smokes  as  before,  and  root  is  cut  up,  being  supplicated  that  it  may 
not  be  angry.  Man  then  asks  each  medicine-man  from  what  part  of  root  he  desires 
piece.  He  himself  retains  central  part,  and  tells  medicine-men  to  guard  carefully 
part  which  they  have  received.  In  night  he  sees  woman  clothed  in  black,  with  soft 
downy  feathers.  In  her  left  hand  she  has  clam  shell,  and  in  her  right,  powdered 
root.  She  sings  song,  dropping  some  of  root  into  clam  shell.  Thus  she  teaches 
man  how  to  use  root  in  doctoring.  He  learns  that  he  has  been  addressed  by  root 
herself.  He  becomes  a  great  medicine-man. 


83.   ORIGIN   OF  THE   GEESE   MEDICINE. 

Young  man  who  often  goes  with  war  parties  is  in  love  and  often  visits  spring  to 
see  girl,  but  she  flees  from  him.  He  therefore  tries  to  associate  with  other  girls  in 
order  to  provoke  her  jealousy,  and  thinks  that  thus  he  may  win  her,  but  all  girls 
refuse  to  associate  with  him,  and  he  decides  to  stay  with  an  ugly  young  man  who  is 
favorite  with  girls.  He  goes  to  his  tipi  and  stays  with  him  many  nights,  asking  him 
why  it  is  that  girls  seem  so  fond  of  him.  Ugly  young  man  tells  him  he  got  his  power 
from  antelope,  and  he,  being  requested,  takes  him  to  river  that  he  may  obtain  this 
power.  At  river's  bank  he  ties  lariat  around  his  waist  and  suspends  him  from  bank, 
tying  other  end  of  lariat  to  tree.  He  is  then  left  for  four  days,  seeing  fire  and  water 
each  night.  On  fourth  night  he  faints  and  finds  himself  in  animals!  lodge.  They  speak 
to  him  and  tell  him  they  know  why  he  has  come;  that  elk  is  in  charge  of  lodge,  but 
that  his  companion  should  have  entered  lodge  with  him.  They  tell  him  what  he 
must  do  in  order  to  obtain  power.  On  fifth  night  he  finds  himself  again  on  bank. 
Ugly  young  man  then  takes  him  to  fire,  where  they  eat.  They  return  home,  and  ugly 
young  man  takes  down  his  sacred  bundle,  removing  flute  red  painted,  which  is  of 
root  and  strings  of  elk  hide,  which  he  gives  to  young  man.  Tells  him  how  to  use  it, 
warning  him  not  to  court  married  women  or  young  girls.  Handsome  young  man 
thereupon  makes  his  home  with  ugly  young  man  and  he  paints  himself  and  goes 


518  THE  PAWNEE:   MYTHOLOGY. 

with  his  flute  out  around  village.  He  does  this  for  four  nights,  whereupon  girl  he 
especially  loves  appears  and  follows  him  to  his  lodge,  where  she  remains  all  the  next 
day.  Girl's  relatives  hunt  her,  and  young  man  and  girl  set  out  to  journey  toward 
east,  until  they  come  to  swamp,  where  girl  sees  two  goslings.  These  she  rears  as 
pets,  making  moccasins  for  them  in  winter  and  feeding  them  corn  and  dried  meat. 
Husband  goes  off  and  returns  with  ponies,  being  watched  in  meantime  by  one  of 
geese.  Eventually  they  return  to  their  village,  where  they  make  their  lodge  at  edge. 
They  invite  people,  who  see  geese  at  entrance.  They  are  astonished,  because  geese 
act  like  human  beings.  Girl's  father  is  now  proud  of  his  son-in-law.  They  live 
together,  keeping  homely  young  man  with  them.  One  of  geese  dies,  while  other  flies 
away,  first  telling  them  that  they  are  to  have  two  children,  one  of  which  will  die 
young,  and  other  will  live  to  be  great.  Years  after,  girl  gives  birth  to  boy,  and  then 
another.  One  grows  up  to  be  young  man  and  dies;  other  becomes  great  warrior. 
Chief  offers  to  make  him  chief,  but  he  declines,  remaining  great  medicine-man,  and 
founding  Geese  medicine-lodge.  His  father  and  mother  die  of  old  age  and  he 
becomes  leading  medicine-man,  also  dying  of  old  age  after  being  father  of  many 
children. 


84.   THE  WONDERFUL   BOY  WHO   KILLED   HIS   FATHER. 

Sleight-of-hand  performances  are  continued  for  many  months  in  medicine- 
lodge.  Stranger  comes  and  shows  great  skill.  Leading  Medicine-Man  relates  at 
home  of  stranger's  skill,  and  his  son  asks  his  mother  to  help  him  enter  lodge.  She 
protests,  for  boy  is  too  young  as  yet  and  has  received  no  instructions  from  his  father. 
Boy  leads  his  mother  to  creek,  where  she  is  told  to  bathe.  While  in  water  boy  turns 
into  swan.  On  way  home  they  take  two  squashes.  His  mother  makes  booth  for 
him  in  medicine-lodge.  Therein  squashes  are  rid  of  their  seeds  and  boy  fills  them 
with  swan  down.  Seeds  are  buried  west  of  village.  In  night  during  perfomance  boy 
asks  assistance  of  medicine-men.  Two  young  men  assist  him,  they  are  given  knives, 
and  cut  two  squashes  in  two,  which  now  appear  whole  again.  His  mother  brings  in 
bowl  of  water,  boy  sings,  and  squirts  water  upon  squashes,  thereby  forming  pool 
under  them,  whereupon  squashes  sing  like  swans.  They  become  swans  and  follow 
him.  He  puts  his  hand  on  their  necks  and  they  are  again  squashes.  All  rejoice  over 
power  of  young  man.  Young  man's  father  worries  over  great  power  boy  has  shown 
and  hurries  ceremony  to  end.  People  prepare  for  buffalo  hunt,  cacheing  their  food. 
On  hunt  young  man  is  told  to  stay  by  his  father,  especially  should  he  run  after 
buffalo  cow.  Man  follows  cow  far  away  from  crowd,  leaves  boy  to  skin  cow,  claim- 
ing his  preference  to  look  for  enemy,  and  shoots  his  son,  who,  when  he  recognizes 
that  it  is  his  father  who  has  shot  him,  dies.  Returning  home  at  night  with  meat, 
he  pretends  to  know  nothing  about  his  son's  whereabouts,  and  mourns  his  death. 
On  night  of  return  to  their  village  young  man  quietly  enters  his  lodge,  awakens  his 
mother,  tells  her  to  keep  quiet,  and  goes  to  his  uncle's  lodge.  News  spreads  that 
young  man  has  returned.  His  father  sends  for  him,  offering  him  his  medicines,  etc., 
and  enlisting  his  wife's  aid,  but  boy  refuses  to  return.  When  mother  visits  boy  he 
tells  her  what  has  happened  to  him;  that  after  his  death  he  found  himself  in  Swim- 
ming Mound,  where  his  swans  had  taken  him.  They  plan  to  kill  man.  Boy  takes 
from  his  bundle  a  bone  of  a  sunfish,  and  blows  his  breath  upon  it.  Thus  bone 
flies  into  man  and  kills  him.  Boy  grows  up  to  be  great  medicine-man. 


ABSTRACTS.     1  519 

85.    THE   MEDICINE-MAN  WHO   KILLED   HIS   SON. 

Boy  is  told  that  it  is  now  time  that  he  should  join  his  father's  medicine-lodge. 
He  goes  to  lodge  and  prays  to  his  father  to  receive  him.  Father  refuses.  Thereupon, 
he  takes  presents  of  many  kinds,  but  his  father  is  firm.  Then  mother  takes  her  bundle 
and  arrows,  and  she  and  her  son,  with  downy  feathers,  robe,  and  some  earth,  enter 
lodge;  but  father  does  not  recognize  boy.  In  afternoon  they  enter  lodge,  singing 
about  diving  ducks.  That  night  medicine-men  perform  sleight-of-hand.  In  morn- 
ing they  are  asked  to  go  to  creek,  where  she  and  her  boy  are  to  perform.  She  jumps 
in  with  two  gourds  in  her  hand,  holding  them  under  water.  On  bringing  them  up 
gourds  are  soft  down.  Releasing  them,  they  float  downstream.  Waving  hands, 
they  come  upstream  to  her.  Immersing  them,  they  become  gourds  again.  Boy  is 
given  gourds,  jumps  into  water,  releases  them,  and  they  come  up  as  ducks  and  swim 
about  in  water,  and  then  turn  into  gourds.  Boy's  father  has  remained  in  lodge, 
stung  with  jealousy  and  envy.  All  go  on  buffalo  hunt,  and  medicine-man  takes  his 
son  with  him.  When  two  are  far  from  crowd,  he  accuses  his  son  of  attempting  to 
outdo  him  in  sleight-of-hand;  shoots  him  in  side  with  arrow,  and  throws  him  into 
river.  He  pretends  ignorance,  and  joins  his  wife  in  mourning  boy's  death.  Boy 
floats  downstream  to  animals'  lodge,  where  animals  carry  his  body,  beaver  on  one 
side  and  otter  on  other  and  led  by  mink,  to  Pahuk.  He  is  taken  in.  Arrow  is  ex- 
tracted and  beaver  and  otter  restore  him  to  life.  They  send  him  home  for  tobacco, 
feathers,  beads,  and  sweet  grass.  These  he  obtains  through  his  mother,  who  goes 
through  village  collecting  them  from  sacred  bundles.  Boy  takes  presents  to  animals' 
lodge  and  returns  home,  but  does  not  associate  with  his  father.  Boy  one  night  tells 
his  mother  what  his  father  has  done;  among  other  things,  that  his  father  on  throwing 
him  into  creek  had  told  animals  he  gave  them  his  boy  to  eat,  but  that  animals  had 
taken  pity  on  him.  He  tells  his  mother  that,  if  she  thinks  his  father  should  die, 
she  should  take  little  water  dog  which  she  had  to  the  creek,  dip  it  into  water,  and  if  it 
came  up  with  piece  of  liver  in  its  mouth,  she  would  know  that  animals  at  Pahuk  had 
eaten  up  his  father's  intestines.  This  she  does,  and  boy  thereafter  becomes  leader  of 
medicine-lodge. 


86.   THE  CHIEF'S  SON  WHO  RECEIVED  THE  ANIMAL  POWER. 

Man  leads  to  Pahuk,  far  away,  universally  liked  son  of  chief.  There  they  sit 
down  on  bank.  Man  ties  rope  around  boy  and  suspends  him  over  bank,  telling  him 
to  pick  up  eagle  and  woodpecker  feathers  which  are  scattered  about.  The  boy  does 
so  and  asks  man  to  pull  him  up,  but  man  has  disappeared.  He  cries  for  help,  and 
realizes  that  he  is  pregnant.  Animals  carry  boy  into  their  lodge  and  decide  to  help 
him.  They  act  upon  him,  first  Buffalo,  then  Elk,  jumping  over  him.  Then  Bear 
cuts  boy  open,  takes  out  bones  of  child,  throws  them  away,  and  heals  wound.  Snake 
gives  him  bone  from  sunfish  with  which  to  strike  his  enemies.  Buffalo  gives  him 
whistle  upon  which  to  blow  when  in  trouble.  Bear  gives  him  dust  to  be  used  as 
paint  upon  sick  people.  Each  of  animals  teaches  him  some  power.  Eagle  teaches 
him  how  to  fly  and  Duck  to  swim  and  dive.  Boy  is  hungry,  and  animals  send  Crow 
to  west,  Beaver  to  north,  Otter  to  east,  and  Fox  to  south,  for  food.  After  he  has 
eaten,  Beaver  tells  him  it  is  time  to  go  home,  and  Owl,  Buffalo,  and  two  Crows  accom- 
pany him  to  his  village.  They  leave  boy  just  outside  village.  In  night  boy  enters 


520  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

village,  and  following  day  presents  are  made  to  him.  He  then  sends  for  his  deceiver, 
takes  him  to  creek,  touches  water,  and  he  is  dragged  under  and  is  never  seen  there- 
after. 

87.     THE  THUNDER-BIRD  CEREMONY. 

Two  hermaphrodites  digging  artichokes  see  strange  man.  One  of  them  slips 
around  behind  him  and  kills  him  with  hoe.  They  return  home  and  relate  their 
adventure.  People  go  to  see  dead  man.  His  face  is  painted  and  his  head  is  bloody, 
as  though  he  has  been  scalped.  That  night  they  dance  scalp  dance.  Shortly  after, 
grandfather  takes  his  young  grandson,  leads  him  to  dead  man,  and  boy  counts  coup 
on  him.  They  remove  downy  feathers  from  man's  head  and  cut  off  scalp-lock, 
which  is  fastened  on  pole  and  placed  in  front  of  their  lodge.  Boy  sees  this  man  in 
dream,  who  tells  him  that  he  is  Thunder-Bird,  and  boy  now  sees  a  great  bird  like 
a  crane  talking  to  him.  Bird  again  becomes  man  and  tells  him  that  he  will  give  him 
power.  Next  day  he  throws  away  scalp,  but  keeps  feather  and  always  carries  it 
with  him.  Once  while  on  buffalo  hunt  boy  sees  the  man  in  vision,  and  is  told  to  visit 
him.  He  does  so,  leaving  his  feather  as  directed  on  tree.  By  pond  he  sees  man 
turning  into  crane  and  into  man  again.  He  takes  boy  into  cleared  place  with  altar 
in  west,  where  stands  bird.  In  south  of  place  is  Bird-That-Never-Moves.  Man  then 
teaches  boy  ceremony  and  many  sleight-of-hand  performances  during  several  days. 
He  returns  to  his  village,  encountering  his  father  crying  on  hill.  They  go  farther 
and  find  his  mother  mourning.  Boy  asks  that  neither  of  his  parents  touch  him. 
During  hunt  boy  directs  that  they  should  kill  many  buffalo  and  prepare  them  for 
ceremony.  Boy  enters  medicine-men's  lodge  with  his  bundle.  He  is  painted  with 
blue  clay.  His  friends  make  many  offerings  to  him.  He  is  given  seat  in  south.  His 
performances  are  wonderful,  for  he  is  not  yet  medicine-man.  He  turns  downy 
feather  into  Thunder-Bird;  makes  skull,  which  he  places  in  east;  makes  Thunder- 
Bird  to  disappear,  along  with  sun  crane  in  south.  At  boy's  request  his  friends 
prepare  for  him  medicine-lodge  and  he  gives  ceremony  which  is  called  elk  dance, 
because  large  crane  in  west  of  lodge  has  feathers  on  its  head  like  deer  antlers. 

88.     PROUD   BOY  AND   THE  ANIMAL   MEDICINE. 

Three  bands  of  Pawnee  unite  in  great  medicine-lodge.  Procession  is  formed  to 
obtain  tree  to  be  used  in  lodge.  In  crowd  is  poor  boy  who  afterwards  is  known  as 
Proud  Boy.  He  falls  in  love  with  daughter  of  leading  man,  but  she  pays  no  atten- 
tion to  him.  Scouts  are  sent  ahead  and  return  with  news  that  enemy  is  near  tree 
which  has  been  selected.  Old  warrior  is  sent  to  kill  him.  Girl  is  selected  to  cut 
tree.  On  return  to  village  with  tree  is  race,  which  is  won  by  girl,  prize  being  that  she 
may  live  with  priest  until  end  of  season.  Ceremony  is  held  and  tribes  return  to  their 
village.  Following  year  ceremony  repeated,  and  Proud  Boy  watches  for  girl,  who 
appears  beautifully  costumed.  Boy  asks  his  father  for  clothing,  but  receives  only 
waistband.  Again  they  go  after  tree  and  race  back  to  village,  which  girl  wins  again. 
There  is  a  dispute  over  race,  and  they  decide  to  repeat  it,  but  girl's  father  asks  that 
it  be  postponed  until  next  day.  Her  father  paints  buffalo  calf  robe  for  her  to 
wear.  In  race  she  wears  her  black  moccasins  and  skirt  and  calf  robe.  They 
race,  but  girl  outstrips  the  best  runners,  and  Proud  Boy's  determination  to  marry 
girl  is  greater  than  before,  because  he  knows  that  she  possesses  wonderful  power. 
For  winning  race  girl  receives  red  ointment  and  lives  with  priest,  sitting  under 


ABSTRACTS.  $21 

bundle  all  time.  She  does  not  like  this,  but  priest  warns  her  that  she  must  sit  still  or 
wind  would  hear  her  and  not  send  buffalo.  If  she  should  play,  buffalo  would  leave 
and  gods  in  west  would  think  that  people  only  wanted  dry  heat  in  summer.  So 
she  lives  with  priest.  They  go  on  buffalo  hunt  and  she  carries  bundle.  Hunt  is 
successful  and  girl  is  given  heart  and  tongue  of  buffalo.  Before  they  near  the 
village  on  their  return  scouts  who  have  been  sent  ahead  return  and  report  that  their 
crops  during  their  absence  have  not  been  molested.  Crops  are  now  gathered  and 
bundle  is  opened  and  they  have  ceremony,  during  which  girl  is  relieved  of  her  oint- 
ment and  gods  take  their  eyes  off  from  her,  and  she  now  becomes  like  other  girls. 
Food  is  offered  to  girl  first,  and  after  ceremony  she  is  handed  to  her  grandfather  and 
taken  home.  Girl  is  now  known  as  Yellow-Corn.  Boy  tries  to  marry  her,  pleading 
that  his  father  is  great  warrior  and  has  many  ponies  and  scalps,  but  girl's  father  re- 
fuses, because  boy  has  never  been  on  war-path  and  taken  scalps.  Boy  becomes  sad 
and  wanders  over  country.  He  no  longer  plays  with  boys,  nor  listens  to  old  men. 
Next  year  boy  learns  that  Yellow-Corn  has  married  greatest  warrior  in  her  village. 
He  becomes  more  despondent  than  ever.  People  go  hunting  to  country  where  ani- 
mals abound,  and  Proud  Boy  goes  to  water  dogs,  where  he  remains,  people  mourning 
him  as  dead  and  returning  home.  Going  through  timber  he  sees  girl,  but  on  embrac- 
ing her  he  finds  it  is  deer.  He  mourns  and  tells  animals  to  kill  him.  In  evening  he 
awakes  from  sleep  and  finds  himself  surrounded  by  birds,  who  tell  him  they  have 
taken  pity  on  him.  They  give  him  root  to  eat,  and  in  night  owls  and  water  dogs 
come  to  him.  In  morning  buffalo  gives  him  robe  bearing  picture  of  sun,  from  which 
buffalo  got  his  power,  telling  boy,  should  he  be  killed,  to  throw  robe  over  himself  and 
birds  would  wake  him  from  sleep.  Boy  again  sleeps  and  finds  himself  in  animals' 
lodge.  Four  bears  give  him  power  to  conquer  enemy.  They  also  give  him  medi- 
cines and  tell  him  to  use  their  picture  on  his  lodge.  Mountain-Lion,  Buffalo,  Eagle, 
Owls,  and  all  other  birds  address  him,  telling  him  to  put  their  picture  also  upon  his 
tipi.  Buffalo  tells  him  that  first  buffalo  he  shall  kill  will  be  himself.  That  he  is  to 
take  its  scalp  and  place  it  upon  pole  at  head  of  his  bed.  Proud  Boy  now  sets  out  to 
find  his  people,  and  arrives  after  several  days  at  dusk.  Next  day  he  appears,  gaily 
costumed,  with  his  face  painted,  and  in  his  hand  he  carries  eagle  fan.  He  rides  to 
playground  on  his  pony,  which  is  variously  painted.  He  boasts  of  what  he  will  do 
in  overcoming  enemy,  and  he  now  receives  name  of  Proud  Boy.  People  kill  many 
buffalo  and  return  to  their  village,  where  they  have  ceremonies  of  thanksgiving. 
Following  winter  they  do  not  have  to  go  on  hunt,  for  buffalo  appear  near  village. 
Proud  Boy  then  obtains  buffalo  scalp  as  he  has  been  directed.  In  spring  big  cere- 
mony is  again  held  by  three  tribes.  Proud  Boy's  tipi  is  erected,  and  on  little  mound 
to  west  is  erected  cedar  tree.  As  other  tribes  appear  Proud  Boy,  mounted  on  his 
painted  pony,  tells  that  he  is  going  to  see  woman  who  has  refused  him.  Several 
bands  appear,  but  girl  is  not  among  them.  She  finally  comes  with  her  mother,  whom 
Proud  Boy  asks  for  her  daughter.  She  consents,  and  Proud  Boy  takes  Yellow-Corn 
to  his  tipi  and  asks  his  mother  to  bring  them  food,  and  they  eat.  He  tells  her  of  his 
love  for  her  and  she  acknowledges  hers  for  him,  and  tells  him  that  she  is  married  and 
that  it  would  be  better  that  she  return  to  her  mother's  tipi,  for  her  husband,  who  is  a 
great  warrior,  will  soon  return  home.  Proud  Boy  says  that  he  is  not  afraid  of  her 
husband,  and  girl  finally  consents  to  remain  with  him.  Girl's  mother  misses  her  and 
after  hunting  her  finds  her  with  Proud  Boy,  but  Proud  Boy  refuses  to  give  girl  up, 
although  she  begs  girl  to  return  on  following  day.  Many  ceremonies  are  held,  but 
Proud  Boy  and  girl  remain  alone  in  their  tipi.  Now  warriors  return  victorious, 


522  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

bringing  many  scalps.  Yellow-Corn's  husband  is  told  of  his  wife's  desertion.  He 
goes  to  his  tipi,  apparently  not  caring,  but  his  brothers  reproach  him,  telling  him  he 
has  been  great  warrior,  has  made  many  sacrifices,  and  they  taunt  him  because  he 
leaves  his  wife  with  Proud  Boy.  He  finally  gives  in  and  decides  to  accompany  them 
to  kill  Proud  Boy.  Proud  Boy,  hearing  of  their  intention,  tells  his  father  to  have 
no  fear,  but  to  cover  them  side  by  side  with  his  robe  and  to  leave  them.  In  night 
he  eats  of  root  which  has  been  given  him  and  gives  some  to  Yellow-Corn.  She 
expresses  her  willingness  to  die  with  him.  Early  in  morning  Proud  Boy  holds  buf- 
falo scalp  to  rising  sun  and  he  paints  Yellow-Corn  and  again  gives  her  some  root. 
They  seat  themselves  in  front  of  buffalo  scalp.  Girl's  husband  and  his  friends  come 
and  shoot  them  and  kill  them  and  ride  over  them  on  their  horses.  Father  and  mother 
take  bodies,  place  them  on  bed,  and  cover  them  with  painted  robe,  as  directed,  and  tipi 
is  closed.  People  wonder  why  parents  do  not  mourn.  At  noon  dust  rises  straight 
up  from  tipi  and  there  are  noises  inside,  such  as  made  by  mountain-lion,  buffalo, 
birds,  etc.  Again  dust  is  seen  and  noises  are  heard,  and  for  two  additional  times. 
Then  Proud  Boy  comes  out  of  his  tipi  in  afternoon  and  asks  his  mother  to  prepare 
food  for  them.  Boy  tells  his  father  that  he  shall  not  use  his  weapons  against  his  ene- 
mies.but  that  they  shall  die.  Next  morning  boy  takes  from  beneath  bed  water  dog, 
which  he  points  towards  his  enemies.  At  noon  Yellow-Corn's  first  husband  is  found 
dead,  and  thereafter  each  day  one  of  his  friends  who  helped  him  to  attack  Proud  Boy 
dies.  They  offer  to  make  Proud  Boy  chief.  He  declines,  becomes  medicine-man, 
healing  sick  and  teaching  his  power.  People  began  thereafter  to  paint  their  tipis  in 
imitation  of  his. 


89.   THE   BEAR  MEDICINE-MAN. 

Little  boy  alone  in  timber  tries  to  shoot  Magpie.  It  runs  from  him  and  entices 
him  on  day  after  day  until  boy  comes  to  thick  timber.  In  vision  man  stands  before 
him,  painted  black,  with  feather  head-dress,  telling  boy  that  bird  which  he  has 
followed  is  medicine-men's  errand  man  and  that  he  is  bird;  that  boy  is  to  return  to  his 
people  and  to  return  to  him  several  years  later.  Magpie  then  leads  boy  back  to  his 
village.  Among  Skidi  is  medicine-man  who  is  jealous  of  all  other  medicine-men. 
He  has  great  power,  visiting  graves  to  obtain  human  ears,  etc.,  which  he  uses  in 
killing  people.  He  hears  of  little  Chaui  boy  who  has  followed  Magpie  and  invites 
him  to  his  tipi,  where  he  is  given  pipe  to  smoke  and  bowl  of  mush,  which  is  really 
human  flesh.  Boy  now  returns  to  timber  again,  being  led  by  Magpie,  who  takes  him 
to  animals'  lodge,  for  boy  is  now  in  dangerous  condition.  He  finds  himself  lying  on 
fireplace,  which  is  in  shape  of  turtle.  In  his  vision  he  finds  himself  in  another  place, 
surrounded  by  rushes.  He  sees  man  covered  with  mud  emitting  fire  from  his  eyes 
and  mouth.  This  being  tells  him  that  he  is  turtle  and  that  he  has  carried  boy;  that 
he  is  fireplace  of  animals'  lodge.  He  teaches  him  how  in  medicine-men's  lodge 
he  may  shoot  at  turtle  fireplace,  whereupon  it  will  move  about  lodge,  and  boy  again 
finds  Magpie  in  timber  and  in  his  vision  he  sees  fire  coming  from  water.  He  becomes 
unconscious  and  finds  himself  in  lodge  with  animals  sitting  in  groups.  Magpie 
explains  to  medicine-men  that  boy  has  been  fed  by  Skidi  medicine-man  with  poison- 
ous food,  which  has  formed  into  clay  ball  in  his  stomach,  which  is  increasing  in 
size;  that  he,  Magpie,  has  never  before  asked  favor  of  animals,  but  that  he  now 
asks  that  they  take  pity  on  this  boy.  Animals  shout  approval,  and  healing  doctor, 


ABSTRACTS.  $23 

Beaver,  begins  trying  to  heal  boy.  They  work  over  him  with  their  mouths,  grunt- 
ing, but  are  not  able  to  accomplish  anything.  Other  animals  try  and  fail,  and  boy 
is  taken  to  another  animals'  lodge.  For  several  days  he  follows  Magpie,  now  suffer- 
ing under  increasing  weight  in  his  stomach.  He  lies  down  to  sleep  and  again  sees 
fire  coming  from  water,  and  he  finds  himself  in  animals'  lodge.  Magpie  tells  medicine- 
men that  he  has  taken  boy  to  Pahuk;  that  they  could  not  do  anything  for  him; 
whereupon  medicine-men  say  that  if  at  Pahuk  nothing  could  be  done,  they  can  do 
nothing.  Boy  is  then  taken  to  Spring  Mound,  where  neither  catfish,  mink,  raccoon, 
otter,  nor  beavers  are  able  to  help  him.  They  return  to  Pahuk.  Clay  ball  is  now 
much  larger  and  boy  is  weaker  than  ever  and  very  thin.  He  faints  at  entrance  and 
an'mals  take  boy  in.  They  decide  to  appeal  to  chief  who  controls  all  animal  medi- 
cine-lodges. Magpie  flys  after  him,  taking  presents.  Dust  comes  in  at  entrance, 
which,  settling  down,  appears  as  bear,  who  so  stands  that  it  may  look  at  sun.  Bear 
is  addressed  by  animals,  and  they  explain  that  they  wish  him  to  cure  boy.  Bear 
offers  to  use  his  power  if  he  may  eat  piece  of  boy's  liver.  Permission  being  granted, 
bear  works  over  boy,  cuts  him  open,  takes  out  large  stone,  eats  piece  of  boy's  liver, 
screams  and  jumps  over  him,  blows  his  breath  upon  boy's  mouth,  wound  closes,  and 
boy  is  healed,  but  seems  as  if  dead.  Bear  commands  other  animals  to  restore  him 
to  life.  They  fail,  whereupon  bear  blows  his  breath  in  his  nostrils  and  boy  regains 
consciousness.  He  is  now  told  that  he  has  power  to  cut  people  open  and  eat  their 
liver,  power  never  before  given  to  human  beings.  Boy  is  sent  home,  where  he  does 
many  wonderful  feats.  News  of  his  fame  reaches  Skidi  medicine-man,  who  again 
invites  boy  to  his  lodge.  They  talk  of  their  medicines,  and  boy  opens  his  hand,  dis- 
closing bear  claw.  He  closes  it  and  medicine-man  drops  dead,  whereupon  Skidi 
thank  him  for  ridding  them  of  an  evil  doctor.  Boy  becomes  great,  and  in  his 
medicine  performances  produces  live  bear.  He  also  belongs  to  deer  society,  and  in 
quarrel  reveals  his  power  to  cause  fireplace  to  move,  and  deer  people  yield  to  boy. 
He  receives  name  Smoking- With-the-Bear,  for  he  always  smokes  to  rising  sun  and 
to  bears.  His  secrets  are  lost  with  death  of  Medicine  Sun,  last  of  bear  family. 


90.   THE  BEAR    MEDICINE 

On  buffalo  hunt  chief's  boy  keeps  with  him  in  his  lodge  poor  boy,  son  of  poor 
parents.  Boy  is  ashamed  because  his  father  has  no  success  in  killing  buffalo. 
Father  tells  boy  about  mysterious  animals  in  cedar-covered  country  to  west,  and 
boy  decides  to  go  and  be  slain  by  animals.  He  throws  away  his  blanket  and  goes 
west  into  mountains,  finds  trail  like  human  pathway,  which  he  follows  until  he 
comes  to  hole,  which  he  enters  and  finds  it  to  be  home  of  bears.  He  plays  with  cubs 
for  a  while,  and  mother  warns  him  that  her  husband  has  wonderful  power,  given  by 
sun,  and  is  most  dangerous  bear  in  country,  and  she  points  to  great  pile  of  bones  of 
animals  which  her  husband  has  eaten;  also  to  clothing  belonging  to  captured  people. 
Boy  tells  her  that  he  is  not  afraid  to  die.  On  approach  of  her  husband,  mother  bear 
tells  boy  to  embrace  one  of  cubs.  Thus  boy  is  found  by  old  bear,  who,  entering, 
exclaims  that  he  smells  human  being.  He  orders  boy  to  let  go  cub.  Boy  refuses 
and  cub  asks  his  father  to  take  pity  on  boy.  Father  quiets  down,  exhaling  colored 
dust.  He  tells  boy  he  is  leader  of  bears;  that  arrows  of  man  will  not  pierce  his  side, 
and  that  he  is  son  of  sun.  He  decides  to  teach  boy  his  power.  He  then  turns  his 


524  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

family  and  himself  into  human  beings,  and  they  sing  bear  songs.  He  shoots  boy  in 
side  with  arrow,  but  boy  is  unharmed.  He  blows  colored  dust  on  boy,  shoots 
arrow  through  him,  and  they  restore  him  to  life.  He  then  transforms  his  wife  and 
child  into  bears,  and  they  roll  him  over  and  he  becomes  bear  again.  They  turn  boy 
into  bear,  then  into  human  being,  and  he  is  told  of  movement  of  his  people,  that  they 
are  about  to  return  home,  and  that  he  should  go  with  them,  but  not  to  forget  bears, 
for  he  is  one  of  them.  Bear  takes  him  to  cedar  tree,  from  which  he  takes  down 
bear  claw  and  hangs  it  about  boy's  neck.  He  tells  boy  that  he  has  power  to  blow 
colored  dusts,  which  will  heal  sick.  He  warns  him  that  he  must  be  careful 
among  his  own  people,  for  he  possesses  canine  teeth  like  bear;  that  he  shall  live  to 
old  age  and  that  when  bear  dies  he  shall  die.  He  directs  boy  to  go  to  animals' 
lodge,  where  he  will  learn  to  be  medicine-man.  Boy  returns  home.  People  return 
to  their  village  and  are  attacked  by  enemy,  who  are  driven  away,  one  man  being 
injured.  He  is  doctored  by  different  medicine-men,  but  they  fail  to  cure  him.  Boy 
visits  him,  blows  different  dusts  upon  wound,  and  heals  him.  Boy's  fame  as  medi- 
cine-man goes  through  village.  In  his  do  :toring  he  sings  bear  songs,  and  all  know 
that  he  has  visited  bears.  He  has  his  lodge  swept  and  asks  that  all  leave.  He 
takes  down  his  bear  claw  and  four  colored  feathers.  He  goes  to  ponies  which  he  has 
received  as  his  fee  for  doctoring  wounded  man,  passes  his  hands  over  bear  claw  and 
feathers,  thus  thanking  bears  for  first  gift  he  has  ever  received.  Then  he  sings  song 
calling  spirits  of  bears  to  him,  and  he  smokes  to  them.  He  sends  for  chief's  son,  who 
begs  poor  boy  to  teach  him  his  power.  Boy  is  unable,  for  chief's  son  is  to  be  chief, 
and  may  not  be  medicine-man.  He  may  not  have  bear  spirit,  for  thus  he  might  kill 
people,  which  chiefs  should  not  do.  He  offers  his  friend  his  choice  of  robes  he  has 
received  as  presents;  also  pony.  He  makes  his  home  with  poor  boy.  Enemies 
attack  village,  and  boy  wearing  his  bear  claw  and  feathers  and  painting  his  face  red, 
with  black  streaks  down  each  eye,  attacks  enemy  and  kills  many,  and  village  rejoices 
in  boy's  honor.  He  becomes  leader  of  bear  dance.  In  winter  they  go  on  buffalo 
hunt,  at  which  time  chief's  boy  kills  buffalo  cow.  which  they  make  holy.  In  spring 
boys  go  toward  northwest  until  they  come  to  animals'  lodge.  Poor  boy  cuts  meat  in 
small  pieces  and  gives  it  to  chief's  boy,  and  lowers  him  by  lariat  over  steep  bank, 
where  he  fastens  meat  to  stick  in  bank.  He  asks  chief's  boy  if  he  is  willing  to  be  sus- 
pended over  bank  until  animals  receive  him.  As  he  says  "Yes" '  he  prepares  two  short 
dogwood  sticks,  sharpened  at  one  end,  while  chief's  boy  sits  with  his  back  to  sun,  that 
sun  may  tell  bears  that  poor  boy  is  sending  substitute.  He  places  two  dogwood 
skewers  into  skin  of  boy's  back  and  lowers  him  over  bank  to  where  parfleche  is  hang- 
ing. He  notices  that  night  that  chief's  boy  feeds  birds  as  they  come  to  him.  On 
fifth  morning  poor  boy  awakens  from  his  bed  on  bank  and  chief's  son  is  standing  by 
him,  fully  clad  in  ceremonial  garments  and  bearing  bundle.  They  start  home,  and 
following  day  go  to  chief's  lodge,  where  all  are  glad  to  see  them.  Chief's  son  tells 
his  father  of  having  been  received  in  lodge,  where  he  was  taught  power  of  medicine- 
men. He  collects  presents  for  animals,  delivers  them,  and  returns  next  day.  In  fall 
the  two  boys  enter  medicine-lodge,  and  perform  many  wonderful  feats.  The  two 
become  most  powerful  medicine-men,  and  chief's  boy  becomes  chief.  As  they  grow 
old  first  one  to  receive  power  grunts.  He  takes  up  his  robe,  embraces  his  friends, 
and  leaves  lodge  and  people  hear  scream  of  bears.  Boy  disappears,  for  it  is  his  time 
to  die,  as  bear  is  now  dead.  Chief's  son  continues  bear  dance,  marries,  and  has  many 
children,  and  passes  on  to  them  mysterious  power  which  he  had  learned  in  animals' 
lodge. 


ABSTRACTS.  525 

91.   THE    BEAR   MEDICINE   AND    CEREMONY. 

Man  kills  bear  while  his  wife  is  with  child.  Girl  is  born,  possessing  spirit  of 
bears.  When  her  finger  nails  are  trimmed  she  nearly  dies.  She  grows  to  woman- 
hood, has  three  children,  first  two  dying  in  infancy,  Third  child,  boy,  when  about 
ten  years  old,  is  taken  with  party  on  hunt.  Boy  returns  sick.  Medicine-men  fail 
to  cure  him,  he  dies  and  is  buried,  and  his  mother  mourns  at  his  grave  for  several 
days.  She  returns  from  hunt,  having  cut  her  hair  and  gashed  her  arms  and  legs.  A 
hunting  party  returns,  reporting  that  grave  of  boy  has  been  robbed.  She  goes  to 
grave,  finding  her  son's  body  exposed.  She  mourns  by  grave  four  days,  when  she 
goes  to  drooping  cedar  tree  under  which  she  crawls,  fearing  animals.  In  night  she 
hears  bear  growling.  Bear  speaks  to  her,  saying  that  they  have  taken  pity  on  her. 
She  is  asked  to  follow  bear,  sliding  down  steep  bank  and  entering  bears's  den,  which 
is  like  lodge.  There  she  meets  his  wife  and  six  cubs.  She  is  asked  to  run  after  cubs, 
and  is  told  that  she  may  have  children  equal  to  number  of  cubs  that  she  can  catch. 
After  much  difficulty  she  is  able  to  catch  two  cubs.  She  is  told  that  she  may  take 
them  home.  Bear  blows  colored  breath  upon  her  face,  telling  her  that  thus  she 
may  restore  wounded  men.  Next,  bear's  wife  hugs  woman,  coughs  up  piece  of 
cherry,  which  woman  eats;  also  piece  of  hackberry  and  piece  of  bullberry,  and  these 
she  told  woman  are  to  be  used  in  doctoring.  Bear  gives  her  paint  and  red  feather, 
while  his  wife  gives  her  yellow  paint  and  a  yellow  feather,  saying  that  she  is  to 
use  them,  too,  in  doctoring.  She  is  instructed  to  make  tipi  of  buffalo  hides, 
and  on  it  to  paint  yellow  circle,  black  band  and  red  band,  picture  of  cedar  tree, 
and  owls,  who  guard  bears'  den.  She  is  also  told  to  kill  two  cubs  when  she  gets 
them  home  and  to  make  sleeping  bags  of  their  hides  for  her  children;  that  spirit 
of  cubs  will  return  to  bears.  She  starts  home  with  bears,  one  of  which  strays 
away.  Other  bear  she  carries  into  village,  although  bear  does  not  like  odor  of 
human  beings.  In  night  in  vision  she  sees  woman  bear,  who  tells  her  not  to  be 
afraid  to  kill  cub.  She  kills  cub,  tans  skin,  which  she  paints  yellow,  placing  yellow 
feather  on  its  head.  She  hangs  skin  up  on  pole  so  that  sun  may  strike  it.  Thus 
spirit  of  bear  is  present  with  woman.  Whenever  she  is  touched  she  grunts  like  bear. 
When  woman 's  husband  returns  he  recognizes  her  power.  Enemy  attack  village; 
she  gives  red  paint  and  feathers  to  her  husband.  Enemy's  arrows  do  not  affect  him. 
He  fights  bravely.  After  battle,  wounded  man  is  brought  to  them.  As  he  grunts 
like  bear,  they  send  for  woman.  Tipi  is  prepared,  she  and  her  husband  put  on 
their  paints,  she  sings  bear  song,  grunts  like  bear,  and  in  morning  she  inhales  power 
from  sun  and  her  husband  smokes  to  it.  They  go  to  wounded  man's  lodge.  She 
blows  different  colored  breaths  upon  wound,  which  becomes  fresh,  and  blood  flows. 
She  becomes  savage  like  bear,  and  cedar  leaves  are  burned.  Four  days  later  she 
and  her  husband  again  doctor  wounded  man  in  similar  fashion.  Fourth  time 
wounded  man  begins  to  get  well.  Man  she  has  cured  sees  woman  often  in  his 
dreams  as  cinnamon  bear,  and  he  decides  to  become  poor  through  offerings  he  pro- 
poses to  make  to  her.  She  learns  of  his  thought,  goes  to  him  and  tells  him  that  he  is 
not  to  worry  about  recompensing  her.  He  is  made  member  of  bear  society  and  she 
feeds  him  from  her  mouth  with  cherries.  He  makes  her  many  presents,  at  which 
time  she  opens  her  bundle,  placing  her  bear  hide  on  west  of  fireplace  with  paints 
and  feathers  by  it.  She  then  passes  her  hand  through  mouths  of  ponies  which  have 
been  given  her  for  healing  wounded  man,  mixing  saliva  of  ponies  with  tobacco  and 
offering  it  to  different  gods  and  to  the  bears.  Then  woman  tells  her  husband  of  songs 


526  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

she  has  learned  and  of  her  visit  to  bears'  lodge.  Several  years  afterward  she  gives 
birth  to  son,  who  is  never  sick;  later,  to  girl,  and  thereafter  to  many  children. 
They  all  die,  except  first  two.  Husband  kills  many  buffalo,  they  make  tipi,  and  she 
originates  bear  dance.  She  warns  her  husband  that  arrows  will  be  powerless  against 
him  unless  they  strike  him  on  hands.  One  time  camp  is  attacked,  woman's 
husband  fights  bravely,  but  is  wounded  in  many  places.  His  wife,  learning  of  fact, 
asks  for  menstruating  woman.  His  niece  comes  forward,  is  taken  to  wounded  man, 
but  they  are  too  late,  for  he  is  dead.  For  many  months  she  mourns  her  husband. 
She  teaches  her  boy  bear  mysteries.  She  is  visited  by  a  Chaui,  who,  being  sincere  in 
spirit,  is  taught  bear  dance.  He  remains  with  her  several  years,  caring  for  her  chil- 
dren. She  often  performs  in  medicine-lodges.  She  lives  to  old  age  and  her  son 
becomes  one  of  four  leaders  of  bear  ceremony. 


92.  THE  BUFFALO  POWER  AND  THE  WILD  HORSE  DANCE. 


Famous  and  powerful  chief  has  many  wives.  Youngest  of  wives  gives  birth  to 
son,  who  is  great  favorite  with  his  father.  Boy  is  taught  to  believe  that  he  will  suc- 
ceed his  father.  Boy  is  encouraged  by  his  father  to  join  war  parties.  He  joins 
many,  but  they  are  unsuccessful,  and  warriors  decide  that  it  is  on  account  of  chief's 
son  that  they  always  meet  with  mishap.  Thereafter,  he  is  not  allowed  to  join 
warriors,  and  is  called  Poor  Boy.  The  boy's  father  and  mother  are  ashamed  of  him 
and  grow  angry  at  him.  He  becomes  despondent  and  decides  to  leave  home,  tak- 
ing with  him  pair  of  moccasins  filled  with  corn  and  another  with  pemmican. 
Taking  his  quiver,  robe,  and  lariat,  he  starts  west,  eating  few  kernels  of  corn  each  day. 
His  food  soon  becomes  exhausted  and  he  grows  weak.  He  goes  up  on  high  hill  to 
die.  From  hill  he  sees  big  lake,  around  which  people  seem  to  be  standing.  He  goes 
to  lake  and  drinks,  and  tells  lake  that  this  seems  to  be  good  place  to  die.  He  removes 
his  clothing,  makes  it  into  bundle,  and  throws  it  into  lake,  offering  it  to  spirit  of  lake. 
In  vision  two  clouds  of  dust  approach  from  west.  First  is  made  by  two  horses,  who 
circle  lake  and  return;  next,  by  two  buffalo,  who  also  return.  Again  he  sees  dust 
and  horses  and  buffalo  are  together.  They  pass  over  him,  trampling  him.  Big 
drove  of  buffalo  next  appears  and  tramples  him  further,  and  boy  seemingly  is 
killed.  Some  one  touches  him,  he  stands  up,  and  finds  himself  in  lodge  beneath  lake. 
On  north  side  are  men  imitating  horses;  on  south  side  are  men  imitating  buffalo. 
Leader  of  buffalo  tells  him  that  they  have  sent  for  him,  that  they  have  taken  pity 
on  him.  They  are  to  make  a  medicine-man  of  him  and  teach  him  buffalo  and  wild 
horse  dances.  They  tell  boy  that  he  should  first  report  to  his  parents,  who  now 
mourn  for  him,  and  return  to  animals'  lodge  with  usual  presents.  They  then  turn 
into  horses  and  buffalo  and  again  trample  upon  him,  and  he  finds  himself  by  lake, 
and  by  his  side  stands  black  horse,  which  carries  him  home.  On  way  boy  is  told  to 
eat  grass  as  horse  does.  Each  day  horse  circles  about  boy  to  refresh  his  strength. 
Horse  takes  him  to  his  father's  village.  He  returns  to  horse  presently,  having 
obtained  presents  from  his  parents,  and  is  again  taken  to  animals'  lodge.  Horses 
give  him  spear,  shield,  and  black  lariat.  Buffalo  give  him  wool  and  paint.  He 
returns  home.  At  once  he  takes  poor  boy,  who  has  befriended  him,  and  alone  they 
go  on  war  path  and  capture  many  ponies.  Again  they  go  on  war-path,  and  boy 
becomes  famous  as  warrior.  Village  is  attacked  by  enemy,  and  boy  paints  his 


ABSTRACTS.  527 

horse  and  himself  and  takes  his  shield,  robe,  and  spear,  which  he  waves  at  enemv 
while  they  shoot  at  him.  Having  frightened  enemy  he  orders  his  side  to  attack. 
He  at  once  becomes  famous  and  is  offered  chief's  daughter  in  marriage,  and  he 
becomes  chief  of  tribe.  In  marrying  chief's  daughter  he  provokes  jealousy  of  young 
man  of  tribe,  who  goes  to  girl's  brother  and  bears  false  witness  about  his  sister's 
husband.  Husband  has  told  his  brother-in-law  that  he  must  not  ride  black  or  dun 
horse  while  hunting.  Chief's  son  disobeys,  rides  dun  horse  to  buffalo  hunt,  buffalo 
kill  him  and  horse.  Chief's  son-in-law  realizes  by  his  magic  power  what  has  hap- 
pened and  informs  his  father-in-law.  They  send  for  boy.  He  is  placed  on  east 
side  of  village.  Chief's  son-in-law  then  asks  that  all  keep  quiet  and  closely  guard 
their  horses.  Horses  then  begin  to  neigh  and  rumbling  noise  is  heard,  and  just  as 
sun  rises  in  east  black  and  dun  horses  run  over  boy,  trampling  him.  Husband  then 
tells  his  wife  to  go  to  east  of  village  and  arouse  her  brother;  to  tell  him  he  has  been 
sleeping  too  long.  She  does  so  and  restores  him  to  their  father.  Some  doubted  this 
man's  ability  to  restore  his  brother-in-law,  and  to  prove  his  power  when  they  are  on 
war-path  he  throws  his  lariat  over  his  shoulder,  storm  comes  from  heavens  and 
covers  enemy  and  they  are  scattered,  and  party  captures  enemy's  horses.  At 
another  time  his  village  is  attacked  and  he  throws  his  spear  among  enemy  and  it 
makes  great  noise  as  it  falls,  and  deep  ravine  opens  up  between  them  and  village. 
All  now  know  that  man  is  powerful,  but  jealous  man  continues  to  cause  chief's  son 
to  make  trouble  for  him,  and  again  girl's  brother  mounts  his  dun  horse  in  attack 
against  enemy.  Husband  tells  his  wife  that  her  brother  has  now  caused  his  death, 
for  when  black  and  dun  horses  fight  together  in  same  battle  he  must  die.  He  then 
turns  over  to  her  his  belongings,  telling  her  to  keep  them  for  her  children.  He 
mounts  his  black  horse,  goes  in  among  enemy,  and  is  killed,  together  with  horse. 
His  brother-in-law  on  dun  horse  is  also  killed,  along  with  horse.  Woman  gives 
her  husband's  lariat  and  other  wonderful  belongings  to  one  of  her  sons,  who 
becomes  medicine-man  and  continues  wild  horse  dance. 


93.    THE    ORIGIN    OF  THE   BUFFALO   CEREMONY. 

Men  play  ring  and  javelin  game.  Howling  Fox  never  plays,  but  watches  them. 
One  day  he  hears  rumbling  noise  pass  toward  east  beneath  playgrounds.  In  even- 
ing noise  passes  to  west.  In  night  he  is  told  to  remain  on  playground  next  day.  In 
morning  he  bathes,  and  after  breakfast  takes  his  pipe  and  tobacco  to  grounds,  where 
he  sits  in  his  usual  place  at  northeast  corner.  After  game  he  remains,  and  woman 
addresses  him,  coming  from  west.  He  recognizes  her  as  buffalo.  She  tells  him  that 
she  has  six  sons  and  one  daughter.  Daughter  is  missing  and  she  has  searched  all 
over  country  for  her.  She  tells  Howling  Fox  she  will  give  him  great  power  if  he  will 
find  her  daughter;  that  she  is  ring  which  is  used  by  one  of  gamblers.  She  tells  him 
to  collect  rings  and  bring  them  to  her  and  she  will  recognize  her  daughter.  On 
following  day  he  visits  different  lodges,  begging  that  they  lend  him  their  gaming 
rings.  He  takes  rings  to  his  own  lodge,  which  he  has  had  swept,  and  places  them 
west  of  fireplace  and  makes  smoke  offering  to  heavens  and  to  each  of  rings,  praying  to 
them  for  mercy.  He  hides  rings  under  his  pillow.  In  evening,  after  men  have  ceased 
playing,  he  takes  rings  to  grounds  and  places  them  on  north  side.  He  hears  rumbling 
sound  from  beneath  ground;  as  it  draws  nigh  he  hears  rattling  of  hoofs.  Buffalo 


528  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

draws  near  and  turns  into  woman.  She  examines  rings  and  detects  her  daughter, 
whom  she  says  she  will  take  with  her,  leaving  it  to  buffalo  to  decide  whether  she 
shall  remain  ring  or  become  buffalo.  She  promises  to  watch  over  him  and  gives 
him  paint  which  he  may  spread  across  his  mouth  in  order  that  he  may  heal  sick. 
She  now  becomes  buffalo,  and,  as  requested,  he  ties  ring  between  her  horns  to  her 
hair,  and  she  disappears.  He  thanks  gods  in  heavens  that  he  has  been  permitted  to 
see  wonderful  buffalo.  In  morning  he  returns  two  rings  and  begs  man  whose  ring  he 
has  not  returned  not  to  question  him,  for  he  shall  be  compensated.  In  fall  village 
goes  to  southwest  to  hunt  buffalo.  They  meet  with  no  success.  Howling  Fox  meets 
buffalo  woman,  who  tells  him  she  is  there  to  help  him;  that  he  is  to  tell  people  to  go 
to  northwest.  Fearing  chief,  he  makes  him  offering  of  food  and  suggests  that  they 
discontinue  traveling  southwest  and  go  northwest.  Next  morning  they  set  out  in 
that  direction  and  travel  slowly,  for  people  are  weak.  They  travel  for  several  days. 
One  night  Howling  Fox  again  meets  buffalo  woman.  She  tells  him  to  make  earth- 
lodge,  its  entrance  to  face  west;  that  she  shall  return  in  four  days  and  shall  want 
offerings  of  feathers,  etc.  He  again  offers  meat  to  chief  and  tells  him  that  he  desires 
earth-lodge,  which  is  built.  Fourth  night  Howling  Fox  meets  buffalo  woman  and 
gives  her  presents.  He  goes  with  her  to  buffalo  wallow,  where  she  becomes  buffalo. 
He  follows  her  until  they  come  to  bulls,  where  he  ties  presents  on  their  horns.  She 
becomes  woman  again  and  tells  him  that  in  few  days  they  shall  have  buffalo,  and 
gives  him  power  to  call  buffalo,  for  buffalo  rejoice  that  she  has  found  her  daughter. 
She  covers  him  with  her  robe  and  blows  her  breath,  causing  great  wind.  When 
wind  dies  down  he  finds  that  he  is  at  home.  In  morning  he  tells  chief  that  they  shall 
soon  have  buffalo.  When  lodge  is  finished  Howling  Fox  again  meets  woman,  who 
tells  him  that  she  has  brought  bulls  for  people.  She  enters  Howling  Fox's  lodge; 
instructs  him  how  to  arrange  it.  On  following  day  people  are  warned  to  keep  away 
from  lodge.  Howling  Fox  makes  great  fire  and  in  evening  scatters  ashes  over  floor 
and  out  to  entrance.  In  night  woman  returns  with  buffalo  bull,  who  sits  down  in 
west  of  lodge.  Smoke  is  offered  him,  and  woman  says  that  her  father  is  satisfied. 
Bull  leaves  and  another  enters  to  receive  smoke,  and  so  on  during  night  buffalo 
enter  lodge  to  receive  smoke.  Woman  gives  Howling  Fox^buffalo  meat,  and  when 
chief  is  invited  in  morning  he  is  feasted  and  is  surprised  to  see  hoofprints  on  ashes. 
Warriors  are  sent  for  and  they  eat.  Then  spies  are  sent  over  hills  to  look  for  buffalo. 
They  come  back,  reporting  that  they  have  seen  none.  They  are  sent  out  again  and 
report  having  seen  several  bulls  in  ravine.  They  return  with  news,  receive  smoke 
in  lodge,  and  crier  summons  people  to  make  attack,  announcing  that  ribs,  tongues, 
and  hearts  are  to  be  brought  to  Howling  Fox's  lodge.  They  gather  about  his  lodge, 
where  he  instructs  them  that  they  are  not  to  break  open  skulls  with  stones  in  order 
to  obtain  brains,  and  that  one  cow  they  must  not  kill,  for  she  is  messenger.  Leader 
of  surround  is  chosen.  Many  bulls  are  killed,  cow  being  permitted  to  escape.  As 
bulls  are  skinned,  eagle  feathers  and  native  tobacco  are  found  on  their  heads,  and 
they  know  that  Howling  Fox  has  been  instrumental  in  bringing  them.  Howling 
Fox  is  given  many  presents  and  ponies.  People  kill  buffalo  four  times  and  they 
return  to  their  permanent  village,  Howling  Fox  alone  staying  behind.  He  is  visited 
by  buffalo  woman  during  nights  and  is  taught  buffalo  dance  and  ceremony,  which 
on  his  return  to  the  people  he  institutes.  He  wears  gaming  ring  from  cow  on  his 
left  arm  and  is  owner  of  ring.  He  gives  presents  of  buffalo  robe  and  pony  to  man 
and  teaches  him  ceremony.  Shortly  after,  Howling  Fox  dies,  because,  as  was  said, 
he  gave  all  his  knowledge  to  another  man. 


ABSTRACTS.  529 

94.    THE    BUFFALO    MEDICINE    DANCE. 

People  are  on  buffalo  hunt  and  are  attacked  by  bull,  who  enters  sacred  tipi  and 
tears  it  to  pieces.  Man  is  sent  for  who  understands  spirits  of  buffalo.  In  after- 
noon dark  clouds  gather,  rainstorm  follows,  and  woman  is  blown  away.  After 
storm,  people  are  addressed  by  buffalo,  who  tells  them  that  their  sacred  belongings 
shall  be  restored.  Buffalo  disappears.  Again  buffalo  appears  and  invites  some  of 
buffalo  medicine-men  to  go  with  him  to  buffalo  country.  They  travel  until  they 
come  to  steep  bank,  where  they  enter  buffalo  lodge,  passing  on  way  through  deep 
water.  In  lodge  they  find  bear  and  buffalo,  who  perform  feats  of  sleight-of-hand. 
During  performance  animals  arise,  snort,  and  downy  feathers  fall  from  their  mouths. 
One  buffalo  blows  upon  reed  whistle  and  swallows  it,  throwing  up  feathers.  He 
tells  medicine-men  that  he  gives  them  ceremony,  that  they  shall  have  buffalo  skull 
to  which  they  shall  make  offerings,  for  spirit  of  buffalo  will  reside  in  skull,  and  that 
skull  will  inform  them  through  dreams  as  to  what  they  shall  do  in  ceremony. 
People  return  to  village  and  perform  ceremony. 

95.  THE  WOMAN  AND  BUFFALO  DANCE. 

Unmarried  woman  gives  birth  to  child,  and  because  people  are  angry  at  her 
they  leave  her  behind  when  they  go  on  hunt,  Child  cries,  she  tries  in  vain  to  stop  it, 
starts  west,  and  on  hill  finds  buffalo  bull,  who  blows  smoke  from  his  mouth  and  gives 
woman  root  with  which  to  doctor  child.  He  rolls  on  ground  and  robe  appears,  in 
which  she  is  told  to  wrap  child.  Bull  blows  and  calls  three  other  bulls.  They  blow 
their  breath  upon  child.  Buffalo  cow  comes.  Child  is  placed  by  cow  and  sleeps. 
When  it  awakes  it  is  well.  Buffalo  tell  woman  that  root  will  drive  away  wild 
beasts  and  that  she  is  to  bathe  child.  She  starts  off,  passes  snake,  and  it  dies  on 
account  of  root.  Man  conies  to  her  lodge  and  offers  to  be  her  husband.  He 
learns  of  her  power  and  they  return  west  to  thank  buffalo,  and  he  is  taught 
buffalo  dance.  He  finds  rattle  where  buffalo  rolls  upon  ground,  which  bears  picture 
of  buffalo  skull.  He  is  to  use  it  in  doctoring.  Buffalo  rolls  again  and  makes  whistle, 
from  each  end  of  which  hangs  moon-shaped  shell.  In  doctoring,  man  is  to  blow 
whistle,  whereupon  he  will  see  bull's  shadow.  If  shadow  does  not  appear,  patient 
is  to  die.  When  boy  grows  up  he  becomes  great  medicine-man  and  is  taught 
buffalo  dance. 

96.   THE   BUFFALO   MEDICINE   DANCE. 

Boy  meets  old  buffalo  on  hill  who  tells  him  that  he  is  getting  old.  Buffalo  takes 
pity  on  boy  while  boy  feeds  him.  He  hands  boy  little  ball  from  his  stomach,  which, 
when  he  smells  it,  will  enable  him  to  see  buffalo.  He  gives  him  whistle  and  some 
roots  which  he  is  to  use  in  doctoring.  In  buffalo  dance  he  is  to  chew  piece  of  ball, 
eat  of  root,  and  paint  his  face  with  mud  from  buffalo  wallow  and  eat  piece  of  it, 
whereupon  he  will  have  buffalo  spirit  and  people  will  give  him  many  presents.  He 
gives  him  power  to  heal  wounds,  but  not  sickness.  Boy  returns  and  tells  his  father 
of  his  adventure;  they  return  to  buffalo,  which  is  now  dead.  Then,  as  he  has  been 
directed  by  buffalo,  he  cuts  off  its  tail  and  piece  of  scalp.  In  next  medicine-lodge, 
boy  dances  buffalo  dance,  using  robe,  which  changes  its  color. 


530  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

97.    THE  BUFFALO  GAME  MEDICINE. 

Man  whose  medicines  are  herbs  sleeps  in  open,  sees  in  sky  stars  which  appear  as 
sticks  and  rings  of  javelin  game.  In  his  sleep  man  appears  to  him  and  tells  him  to 
make  gaming  sets  up  as  he  has  seen,  that  he  is  to  play  game  on  west  side  of  village, 
for  there  is  home  of  buffalo.  He  is  not  to  play  in  east,  for  it  is  home  of  diseases,  nor 
in  south,  for  it  is  home  of  dead,  nor  in  north,  for  from  that  direction  enemies  come. 
He  is  to  make  ash  bow  and  dogwood  arrows.  With  them  he  is  to  kill  two  buffalo 
bulls,  using  their  hides  for  wrapping  for  two  javelins.  In  selecting  wood  for  his 
javelins  he  is  to  darken  his  enemy's  visage  by  cutting  on  north  side,  he  is  to  fight 
disease  by  cutting  on  east  side,  he  is  to  ward  off  death  by  cutting  on  south  side,  and 
then  to  cut  tree  down  on  west  side.  Thus  the  leaves  of  tree  will  be  preserved.  He 
is  to  smoke  to  heavens  to  remind  them  that  they  gave  him  game.  Wood  for  second 
javelin  is  to  be  obtained  in  same  way.  Sticks  are  to  be  length  of  his  body  and  they 
are  to  represent  men.  He  is  to  obtain  two  other  sticks  shorter  than  first  two,  and 
they  are  to  represent  one-horned  buffalo  in  west.  Sticks  are  to  be  spliced  in  pairs. 
He  is  to  kill  buffalo  cow,  placing  her  head  toward  east,  so  that  buffalo  will  follow  him, 
and  remove  skin  from  about  vulva  with  which  he  is  to  make  ring.  He  then  takes 
gaming  sticks,  representing  at  one  end  ears  and  single  horn.  Two  cross  sticks  are 
tied  on  to  represent  legs;  front  stick  representing  sun,  and  hind  one,  moon,  for  they 
were  first  to  play  game  in  heavens,  moon  winning  and  giving  sticks  to  men.  After 
sticks  are  prepared  one  is  charred  black  to  represent  darkness,  night,  or  north;  other 
is  left  white  to  represent  light,  day,  or  south.  Next,  he  prepares  ring,  to  which  he 
ties  white  bead,  representing  star  which  gave  him  game.  They  start  to  play  game, 
ring  being  carried  by  his  granddaughter,  for  ring  represents  granddaughter  of  men. 
At  gaming  ground  they  smoke  to  star,  to  earth,  and  to  ring  and  javelin.  In  playing, 
they  are  to  count  one  hundred  and  twenty,  or  number  of  fingers  and  toes  on  six 
individuals,  value  of  count  being  determined  by  relation  of  ring  to  different  parts  of 
javelin.  Losing  side  is  to  furnish  fire  in  which  to  boil  meat  for  offering.  At  end  of 
game  pieces  of  heart  and  tongue  are  offered  to  sun,  moon,  and  stars,  and  game  and 
player  is  rubbed  with  fat.  In  night  he  is  again  visited  and  told  to  make  ring  from 
buffalo  calf,  on  which  he  is  to  put  blue  bead  to  represent  Tirawa,  and  that  ringwill  rep- 
resent earth.  In  doctoring,  should  sick  person  have  played  with  sticks,  he  is  to  go  to 
gaming  ground  and  take  dust  from  center  of  ring  where  it  has  stopped  and  let  sick 
person  smell  of  it  and  then  rub  it  over  his  body.  Other  men  make  gaming  sets  in 
imitation  of  this  one.  Owner  with  black  javelin  in  medicine- lodge  uses  it  as  pipe- 
stem,  although  javelin  is  not  perforated. 


98.     LOST  WARRIOR  AND  THE  SINGING  BUFFALO  MEDICINE. 

Warriors  are  taken  by  enemy.  One  hides,  and  in  returning  home  loses  his  way. 
He  cries  to  spirits.  On  hill  he  hears  buffalo  cow  singing  in  east.  Cow  teaches  man 
many  mysteries,  and  gives  him  power  to  travel  without  fatigue  and  to  capture 
ponies.  He  sings  song  which  he  learns  from  buffalo  at  sunrise.  Thereafter,  he  is 
always  successful  while  on  war-path. 


ABSTRACTS.  531 

99.    THE  BUFFALO  MEDICINE  WAR  SHIELD. 

Man  on  hill  is  envious,  seeing  that  boy  is  talking  with  girls,  for  girls  have  refused 
to  talk  with  him.  He  cries  on  second  hill  farther  away  from  village,  and  then 
wanders  off  and  remains  all  winter.  He  returns  in  spring  and  does  not  enter  village, 
for  he  has  no  home.  He  sets  out  after  herd  of  buffalo,  seeing  among  them  woman. 
He  asks  her  to  marry  him.  He  goes  with  her  to  buffalo  village  and  woman's  uncle 
tells  him  that  he  wants  presents  of  scalp  and  blue  beads.  Boy  returns  to  his  village, 
enters  chief's  tipi,  obtains  presents,  and  offers  them  to  buffalo.  They  are  thankful 
and  give  boy  shield,  which  he  is  to  wear  upon  his  left  shoulder.  Boy  returns  with 
his  wife  to  his  village.  It  is  attacked  by  enemy.  He  uses  his  shield  in  battle  and 
kills  many.  He  shows  greater  bravery  in  second  and  third  attacks  upon  village. 
On  fourth  attack  in  his  excitement  he  wears  his  shield  on  his  right  shoulder.  He  is 
wounded  and  taken  home  to  die.  In  night  buffalo  bull  makes  water  in  front  of  his 
tipi.  In  morning  boy  rubs  some  of  mud  over  his  face  and  returns  and  lies  down, 
whereupon  many  buffalo  roll  about  in  his  tipi.  Great  dust  appears.  Boy  rolls  in 
dust  again  and  becomes  man  with  buffalo  robe  on  his  shoulder.  He  is  known  there- 
after as  wonderful  man.  Buffalo  warn  him  never  to  put  buffalo  horn  or  hoof  in 
fire.  Long  time  after,  careless  person,  not  knowing  of  restriction,  throws  spoon  into 
fire  in  his  tipi  and  man  dies. 

100.  THE  MAN  WHO  MARRIED  A  DEER. 

Young  man  on  hunt  goes  to  Pahuk,  where  he  associates  with  woman  who  turns 
into  deer.  Angry  because  he  has  been  deceived,  he  shoots  at  deer  several  times,  but 
can  not  kill  it.  He  follows  deer  to  swamp,  where  it  becomes  woman.  They  lie 
together,  and  both  become  deer  and  wander  over  country,  and  woman  gives  birth  to 
two  fawns.  In  meantime  she  teaches  him  deer  power.  He  is  now  able  to  transform 
himself  into  deer  or  back  into  man  at  his  will.  She  takes  him  to  his  people  and  he 
enters  medicine- lodge  and  asks  permission  to  perform.  When  they  give  it  he  returns 
to  his  wife,  and  she  and  two  fawns  turn  into  human  beings.  They  enter  village,  but 
odor  of  people  is  offensive.  Man  and  his  wife  and  child  enter  medicine- lodge. 
They  borrow  pair  of  deer  antlers,  sing,  man  places  antlers  on  his  head  and  he  becomes 
deer.  Next,  he  puts  fawn  skin  over  his  boy  and  boy  turns  into  fawn.  Then  he 
turns  fawn  into  boy.  At  end  of  performance  medicine-men  acknowledge  his  great 
power  and  make  him  their  leader.  They  live  with  people  many  years.  Woman 
tells  her  husband  that  she  must  now  leave  him.  She  becomes  black-tailed  deer  and 
runs  off.  Man  is  unhappy.  His  children  grow  up  and  both  marry,  his  boy  possess- 
ing great  power.  When  man  sees  that  his  children  are  happy,  he  goes  into  timber 
and  never  returns. 

101.   THE    DEER   DANCE. 

Man  wanders  away  from  village  to  mountains,  and  on  hill  in  dream  sees  black- 
painted  man  standing  by  him  wearing  buffalo  robe.  He  tells  him  he  is  errand 
man  of  deer  society,  and  that  he  is  to  take  him  to  their  lodge.  Man  looks 
around  and  sees  no  one,  but  in  sky  sees  Raven,  who  has  been  speaking  to  him. 
Raven  directs  him  to  top  of  mountains,  where  he  hears  great  noise.  At  entrance  of 
lodge  man  addresses  him  and  tells  him  it  is  he  who  has  spoken  to  him  in  vision,  and 
that  he  had  become  raven,  and  as  man  seems  afraid  to  go  to  animals'  lodge  he  has 


532  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

caused  many  ravens  to  make  noise  like  human  beings.  They  enter  lodge,  where  man 
finds  many  animals,  elks  being  leaders.  They  sing,  and  all  have  turned  into  people, 
each  after  his  kind.  They  dance  and  sing,  and  eat  red  beans,  some  of  which  they 
give  to  man,  who  becomes  very  ill.  He  believes  himself  dead  and  visits  heavens 
and  sees  Tirawa  sitting  in  earth-lodge  holding  bow  in  his  left  hand  and  sage  in  his 
right.  Tirawa  puts  wild  sage  on  ground,  moves  it,  and  red  beans  appear.  Tirawa 
tells  him  he  is  to  return  to  his  people  and  teach  them  this  dance.  At  daylight  people 
turn  into  animals  and  birds  and  leave  lodge,  They  return  each  night  for  four  nights, 
and  man  returns  to  his  people.  On  his  way  home  he  makes  songs  commemorating 
his  introduction  to  lodge,  and  he  institutes  deer  dance. 

102.   THE   WOLF   WARRIOR. 

Man  is  separated  from  war  party,  goes  on  hill  and  hears  old  wolf  singing 
toward  heavens.  Wolf  addresses  man  and  gives  him  root  which  he  is  to  powdes 
and  mix  with  clay  and  snuff  it  while  on  war-path,  whereupon  root  will  relieve  hir 
fatigue.  Man  is  instructed  to  make  wolf  robe.  He  asks  wolf  for  long  life  and  tells 
wolf  that  he  will  always  smoke  to  him.  Wolf  asks  man  to  spend  night  with  him,  for 
it  is  to  be  his  last.  As  sun  appears  in  morning  wolf  dies,  crying  with  his  last  breath  to 
sun,  whereupon  man,  as  directed,  cuts  around  wolf's  nose  and  strip  down  his  back, 
which  he  is  to  wear  on  his  scalp-lock,  thus  keeping  with  him  spirit  of  wolf,  which  will 
enable  him  to  live  to  old  age.  After  taking  skin  from  wolf,  man  returns  home,  where 
he  has  been  regarded  as  lost.  He  is  often  absent  from  village.  He  disguises  himself 
and  accompanies  victorious  war  party,  but  claims  no  credit.  In  fall  he  again  joins 
war  party.  Each  day,  though  he  remains  behind,  he  scouts  in  advance  of  others,  tell- 
ing them  at  night  what  he  has  seen.  They  fail  to  find  Comanche  and  start  toward 
Osage  country.  He  scouts  again  and  reports  having  seen  Cheyenne  and  Arapaho. 
He  captures  many  ponies,  which  he  gives  to  leader.  When  ponies  are  divided  he  takes 
one,  while  each  of  warriors  receives  pony,  even  those  who  have  gone  on  war-path  for 
first  time.  They  burn  grass  as  signal  of  their  victorious  approach,  and  paint  their 
faces  with  charred  grass.  Wolf  Man  becomes  famous  as  warrior,  and  thereafter  is 
leading  scout.  Famous  leader  rides  war  party  into  Mexico.  Wolf  Man  and  com- 
panion are  leading  scouts.  They  seem  never  to  tire.  They  discuss  their  power, 
Wolf  Man  explaining  how  he  received  his  from  wolf,  while  other  man  gives  him  root 
which  he  uses  as  relief  from  fatigue.  This  be  obtained  from  horse  in  dream.  These 
two  travel  incredible  distances  each  day.  They  return  home  successful  and  they 
become  close  friends.  Wolf  Man  dies  of  old  age,  his  last  moment  coming  as  ray  of 
sunlight  rests  on  him,  and  thus  he  dies  as  wolf  has  died. 

103.    THE   COYOTE  AND   WOLF  MEDICINE. 

Man  meets  Coyote,  who  offers  him  his  pipe.  After  he  has  smoked,  Coyote  takes 
him  to  his  people,  where  he  meets  wolves  and  coyotes.  There  Coyote  introduces 
man  as  his  brother.  Coyotes  roll  in  dust  and  give  him  root  which  will  cure  hydro- 
phobia. They  give  him  other  medicines  for  urinary  troubles.  Next,  wolves  roll  in 
dust  and  give  man  whistle,  blowing  of  which  will  cure  sickness.  Another  Coyote 
gives  him  bone  with  which  to  kill  people.  Coyote  gives  him  bone  for  war  club. 
Another  Coyote  gives  him  piece  of  his  skull,  which  he  is  to  place  on  his  forehead  to 
prevent  people  from  bewitching  him.  He  returns  home,  blowing  on  his  whistle  on 
way  as  directed.  Animals  hear  him.  He  becomes  medicine-man. 


ABSTRACTS.  533 

104.    THE    SCALPED-MAN    MEDICINE. 

Party  meeting  success  returns  again  to  enemy's  country,  but  fare  badly.  Man 
is  wounded  in  flight.  He  is  necessarily  abandoned,  his  friends  giving  him  food  and 
drink.  In  night  woman  addresses  him,  telling  him  that  she  has  only  done  it  to 
scare  him.  He  misses  some  of  his  meat.  Several  nights  he  hears  strange  voices 
and  misses  portion  of  his  food  each  time.  When  last  piece  is  gone,  he  asks  mysteri- 
ous being  to  kill  him.  Scalped-Man  appears  and  takes  him  to  his  home  in  big  cave, 
on  floor  of  which  is  spread  wild  sage.  By  fireplace  is  buffalo  skull  with  offerings 
about  it,  and  many  parfleches  of  meat,  and  buffalo  robes.  Each  day  Scalped-Man 
leaves  cave,  but  wounded  man  discovers  no  exit.  As  Scalped-Man  returns,  wounded 
man  hears  voices  and  then  laughter  of  Scalped-Man.  He  thinks  he  hears  his  parents 
calling  him,  but  is  warned  by  Scalped-Man  not  to  try  to  escape.  Scalped-Man 
teaches  him  ventriloquism  and  sleight-of-hand  performances,  and  heals  his  wound, 
and  gives  him  eagle  feather  which  he  is  to  wear  in  his  hair  to  represent  Scalped-Man. 
Feather,  and  paint  which  he  gives  him  for  his  body,  will  enable  him  to  run  fast  like 
wind,  and  when  fleeing  from  his  enemy  he  is  also  to  spit  on  his  hands  and  wet  soles  of 
his  feet.  Wild  sage  in  his  hands  will  turn  into  arrows.  In  dismissing  him  Scalped- 
Man  warns  him  never  to  tell  of  his  abode  in  cave,  or  he  will  take  away  his  power. 
Man  returns  to  place  where  warriors  had  left  him.  There  he  is  found  by  his  friends, 
and  he  asks  them  for  certain  presents,  which  he  takes  to  Scalped-Man  and  then 
returns  home.  In  medicine-lodge  he  exhibits  his  power  and  becomes  medicine- 
man. Village  is  attacked,  one  of  enemy  having  power  to  divert  arrows  from  his 
body.  Medicine-man  leaves  his  lodge  by  Scalped-Man's  power,  approaches  enemy 
from  behind  and  they  turn  on  him,  but  he  wards  off  their  arrows.  Man  among 
enemy,  who  shows  same  power,  rushes  upon  him,  and  he  strikes  him  with  club  which 
Scalped-Man  has  given  him.  Enemy  are  now  easily  overcome.  He  becomes  great 
warrior,  and  finally  commits  suicide,  grieving  for  his  friend  Scalped-Man,  who  dis- 
appears. 

105.  HOW  THE  PAWNEE  GOT  THE  EAGLE  DANCE. 

People  move  their  village  and  man  disappears.  Two  years  after  when  on  hunt 
lost  man  returns  to  them,  wearing  buffalo  robe  covered  with  feathers  and  head-dress 
of  feathers.  He  does  not  associate  with  other  men.  He  disappears  again  for  short 
while  and  returns  with  feathers,  which  he  makes  into  bundle.  He  is  looked  upon  as 
wonderful.  Really  he  has  no  power,  but  often  visits  feather-covered  hill  where  he 
stands  and  prays.  He  ponders  as  to  how  he  may  obtain  secret  of  hill.  He  goes  to 
gaming  grounds,  takes  his  nephew  on  his  back  to  feathered  hill,  cries,  and  drops 
boy  down  hole  into  eagles'  den,  saying  to  animals  that  he  offers  his  nephew  for  them 
to  devour.  He  cries  several  days  thereafter,  but  receives  no  power.  Boy's  parents 
do  not  know  what  has  become  of  him.  Eagles  receive  boy,  but  are  angry  at  man  who 
has  made  such  sacrifice,  for  they  were  about  to  give  him  power.  As  he  has  become 
impatient  they  decide  to  punish  him.  On  east  side  of  den  are  two  old  featherless 
Eagles,  parents  of  all  Eagles.  They  decide  to  keep  child  and  teach  him  their  power. 
All  Eagles  approve.  They  fly  around  boy  and  scatter  feathers.  Again  they  fly 
around  him  and  he  is  covered  with  soft  down.  They  do  this  several  times,  placing 
him  on  south  side,  and  he  is  now  young  Eagle,  and  not  yet  able  to  fly.  He  lives 
with  young  Eagles  and  eats  meat  which  is  brought  each  afternoon  by  old  Eagles. 


534  THE  PAWNEE:   MYTHOLOGY. 

At  night  they  take  bones  out  of  cave  and  drop  them  over  country.  He  is  taught  to 
fly,  but  is  not  yet  permitted  to  return  to  his  own  country.  He  then  begins  to  bring 
in  young  animals,  which  he  offers  to  old  Eagles.  When  he  brings  in  deer  they 
know  that  he  is  strong  and  that  it  is  time  for  him  to  return  to  his  people.  They 
ask  boy  to  lead  them  to  his  uncle's  home,  where  they  enter  his  village  on  south 
side  where  men  are  playing  stick  game.  Sitting  watching  game  is  boy's  uncle. 
He  recognizes  him,  and  two  Eagles  circle  about  him  and  take  him  up  into  sky 
and  drop  him  and  he  falls  into  Eagles'  den.  He  is  placed  in  front  of  old  Eagles  and 
they  spit  upon  him  for  several  days  and  his  bones  are  scattered  one  by  one  over 
earth.  People  in  their  fright  remove  their  village,  and  site  becomes  known  as  Place- 
Where-the-Eagles-Carried-Off-a-Man.  Boy  remains  with  Eagles  several  years,  and  old 
Eagle  offers  him  his  skin,  by  means  of  which  he  may  keep  his  spirit  and  tells  boy  that 
he  should  grow  old  like  old  Eagle.  He  gives  him  claw  which  he  is  to  wear  when 
fighting  enemy,  and  paint  to  wear  upon  his  body  and  bone  from  wing  for  whistle. 
They  promise  to  watch  over  him  in  sickness.  He  is  told  to  get  eagle-wing  fan,  by 
means  of  which  they  will  breathe  and  revive  spirits  of  sick.  He  is  to  kill  young  fawn 
and  make  rattle  to  use  in  his  doctoring,  which  he  is  to  shake  and  odor  will  arouse 
animal  spirits.  Ten  Eagles  fly  with  boy  to  his  home.  They  alight  on  mound  in 
village,  fly  around  him,  and  he  becomes  boy  and  enters  his  village,  finding  his 
parents  still  mourning  for  him.  He  gives  his  mother  his  bundle  to  be  placed  on 
altar  in  west.  News  then  rapidly  spreads  through  village  of  boy's  return,  and 
manner  of  his  uncle's  death  and  reason  therefor.  War  party  sets  out.  Four 
days  thereafter  boy  becomes  eagle,  and  hurries  after  them,  becoming  boy  again  just 
before  he  overtakes  them.  In  attacking,  boy  is  first.  He  takes  two  scalps,  which 
he  gives  to  leader,  retaining  small  piece  of  each.  In  night  boy  becomes  eagle  and 
returns  to  his  village,  outstripping  war  party.  On  relating  next  day  of  success  of 
war  party  he  is  not  believed,  for  his  power  of  flight  is  not  known.  In  few  days 
warriors  return  and  it  is  now  known  that  boy  has  told  truth.  He  becomes  great 
warrior  and  decides  to  enter  medicine-lodge,  in  which  he  causes  his  eagle  skin  to  turn 
into  live  eagle.  Next,  he  becomes  chief  and  dies  in  old  age  and  transmits  his  power. 


106.   THE   DOG   MEDICINE. 

Boy  resting  on  hill  is  spoken  to  by  dog,  who  tells  him  he  has  taken  pity  on 
him  and  will  help  him  to  marry  certain  girl  who  has  refused  him.  Boy  goes  south 
and  sings  song  which  Dog  has  taught  him,  and  girl  comes  to  him  and  they  are 
married.  They  go  to  Dog,  who  tells  boy  that  he  is  to  call  him  brother.  Dog  gives 
him  buffalo  robe,  eagle  fan,  bone  whistle,  and  rattle.  Whistle  he  is  to  use  in  his 
ceremony  and  whenever  he  wants  Dog.  Dog  gives  him  medicines  and  Dog  dance, 
and  tells  him  he  should  capture  pony  he  is  to  give  him  when  he  is  upon  war- 
path. He  will  know  it  by  star  upon  its  forehead.  Pony  is  to  be  Dog  himself. 
Dog  has  power  to  blow  smoke  from  its  mouth.  Boy  originates  war  party;  they  go 
south,  capture  ponies,  one  of  which  has  star  on  its  forehead.  In  medicine  dance  boy 
appears  with  feathers  on  his  head.  When  he  dances  he  seems  to  be  surrounded  by 
sparks  of  fire.  In  doctoring  sick  man  he  sings  songs  and  spits  up  small  dog  hide 
with  picture  of  moon  upon  it.  Patient  is  put  to  sleep  upon  this  and  becomes  well. 
He  institutes  Young  Dog  dance. 


ABSTRACTS.  535 

107.    BURNT   BELLY  AND   THE   DOG. 

Old  woman  lives  in  grass-lodge  with  her  grandson.  They  are  poor  and  boy  begs 
food.  Boy  finds  Dog,  which  he  feeds,  and  Dog  brings  them  meat.  In  dream  Dog 
tells  boy  to  go  on  war-path  and  that  he  will  protect  him.  He  and  his  Dog  go  to 
enemy's  country.  Dog  aids  boy  in  capturing  horse.  Chief's  son  now  takes  interest 
in  poor  boy  and  he  is  asked  to  treat  Dog  kindly.  On  hunt  poor  boy  kills  several 
buffalo  with  arrows  given  him  by  chief's  son.  Chief's  son  has  no  success  and  poor 
boy  gives  him  buffalo.  Dog  again  visits  boy  in  dream,  telling  him  to  go  on  war-path. 
Accompanied  by  chief's  son  he  sets  out  and  captures  many  ponies.  Dog  now  tells 
him  it  is  time  to  kill  enemy  and  gives  him  owl  feathers,  bone  whistle,  and  red  paint, 
for  sun  is  his  father,  and  he  tells  boy  that  sun  is  protecting  him  and  that  father  of 
Dogs  sits  near  Tirawa.  They  go  to  enemy's  village  and  return  home  with  scalps. 
He  returns  with  scalps  four  times  and  is  now  recognized  as  warrior.  He  marries. 
He  goes  on  war  party,  for  Dog  has  told  him  he  will  watch  over  his  wife.  Nearing 
village  Dog  meets  him  wagging  his  tail.  Thus  he  knows  that  his  wife  has  been  faith- 
ful. He  goes  on  war-path  many  times.  Once  man  visits  his  wife  and  kicks  Dog. 
As  husband  returns  Dog  does  not  meet  him  and  he  realizes  that  something  is  wrong. 
He  hunts  up  Dog  and  they  go  to  high  hill.  His  friends  visit  him,  offering  him  pipe. 
He  refuses  even  chief's  son.  Boy  and  Dog  sit  on  hill  until  they  finally  turn  into  red 
sandstone. 

108.  THE  EAGLE  AND  THE  SUN-DANCE. 

Poor  young  man  goes  on  hill,  cries,  and  he  hears  drumming  on  fourth  night 
plainly.  Visiting  river  where  drumming  is  heard,  he  hears  whistling.  Looking 
overhead,  he  sees  Eagle,  who  speaks  to  him.  Eagle  flies  around  boy,  then  off  to 
timber.  He  returns,  and  boy  follows  him  until  he  finds  birds  sitting  in  circle,  two 
swans  in  center  drumming,  and  birds  are  all  whistling.  Eagle  tells  him  they  are  to 
give  him  their  dance.  He  is  to  dance  four  days,  during  which  time  he  must  fast. 
Swans  tell  him  that  they  are  leaders  of  dance  and  that  their  spirits  will  follow  him 
home;  that  he  will  dream  of  dance  and  in  dream  will  be  instructed.  He  is  to  give 
dance  when  buffalo  bones  are  seen  on  high  hills.  Owls  circle  about  him  and  teach 
him  songs.  Thereafter,  he  institutes  Sun-Dance. 

109.   THE   SKELETON   MAN   AND   THE   SUN-DANCE. 

Man  and  his  wife  on  hunt  make  grass-lodge.  Each  day  he  returns  with  meat, 
which  they  cook  outside.  Something  approaches  from  timber  one  day.  They 
enter  their  lodge  and  skeleton  follows  them,  rattling  as  it  drops  to  ground.  Woman 
is  afraid  to  touch  bones,  but  man  gathers  them  in  robe  and  voice  whispers  to  him, 
telling  him  that  he  is  Knee-Prints-Upon- the- River-Banks.  Woman  being  frightend 
is  sent  home  next  day  and  skeleton  smokes  with  man.  In  one  whiff  he  finishes  pipe. 
He  tells  man  he  controls  all  animals  and  birds  and  teaches  him  Sun-Dance. 

110.   THE    WOMAN   WHO  IS   BEWITCHED   BY  A  FOX. 

Young  girl  strays  off  by  herself  while  women  are  gathering  wood.  She  finds 
hollow  tree  blown  over  by  wind.  Within  it  she  discovers  child  with  small  face,  long 
hair,  thin  arms,  and  long  finger  nails.  Child  reaches  out  its  arms  to  her.  Girl  is 
frightened.  She  looks  again  and  child  motions  to  her,  and  she  sees  that  its  face  is 


536  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

painted  yellow  and  its  forehead  black.  She  calls  women,  who  look  into  log,  but 
child  has  disappeared.  Girl  screams  like  Fox,  and  Fox  runs  from  them,  and  girl  acts 
like  Fox.  At  home  medicine-man  is  sent  for,  who  doctors  girl,  placing  her  over 
smoke,  which  she  inhales.  She  vomits,  throwing  up  white  clay  and  Fox  hair. 
Man  sucks  upon  her  body,  drawing  out  hairs.  She  becomes  well.  Many  years  after 
she  has  a  pain  in  her  wrist,  sore  forms,  and  white  clay  appears.  She  is  then  fully 
recovered.  She  lives  to  old  age  and  has  many  children. 

111.  GHOST-MAN  WHO  BECAME  A  WHIRLWIND. 

Man  lives  in  graveyard.  People  see  whirlwinds  about  him  and  he  is  considered 
ghost.  He  cures  sick  man  by  throwing  dust  into  air,  which  envelops  man  as  whirl- 
wind. He  also  cures  people  who  become  sick  on  dreaming  of  dead  people.  Once 
he  himself  becomes  whirlwind  while  doctoring  and  falls  down  as  skeleton. 

112.  THE   MAN  WHO  WENT  TO   SPIRIT  LAND. 

Poor  boy  rejected  by  girl  goes  on  war-path,  captures  fleet  pony,  and  so  is  able 
to  kill  buffalo.  Next,  he  counts  coup,  women  dance  in  his  honor,  and  girl  marries 
him.  In  few  days  she  dies  and  he  mourns  by  her  grave.  In  night  he  is  told  to 
leave  grave,  as  his  wife  is  dead.  He  persists,  however,  in  mourning,  and  mysteri- 
ous boy  tells  him  finally  that  he  will  take  him  to  his  wife.  Young  man  travels  south 
for  many  days,  being  accompanied  by  strange  boy,  although  he  can  not  see  him. 
He  imagines  himself  surrounded  by  ghosts,  but  is  told  not  to  give  up.  He  sees 
bright  tipi;  he  is  warned  not  to  enter,  but  goes  in  and  finds  old  woman  on  south 
side.  She  asks  him  what  he  seeks,  and  he  tells  her,  and  she  lets  him  continue  on  his 
journey,  telling  him  that  way  to  spirit  land  is  dark;  that  he  must  cross  black  stream 
of  water  on  log;  should  he  fail  to  cross  log  he  will  die;  and  she  gives  him  four  clay 
balls,  and  tells  him  how  to  use  them.  He  continues,  crosses  black  water,  and 
enters  village.  It  is  now  light.  On  south  men  and  women  stand  in  circle,  his  wife 
among  them.  As  she  passes  him  he  strikes  her  with  clay  ball.  He  does  this  fourth 
time,  whereupon  she  addresses  him.  He  begs  her  to  return  with  him,  and  she 
hesitates  long  before  she  decides.  They  set  out  upon  their  return,  and  find  old 
woman's  tipi.  She  gives  them  something  to  eat  and  keeps  them  for  some  time, 
teaching  him  elk  dance  and  giving  him  whistle  and  red  beans,  eating  of  which  will 
enable  him  to  commune  with  spirits.  She  gives  him  four  more  balls,  which  when 
thrown  will  turn  to  buffalo.  They  start  on  their  journey.  When  he  has  thrown 
last  ball  and  killed  last  buffalo  mysterious  being  who  accompanies  him  leaves  him, 
telling  him  that  he  is  Wind.  Young  man  and  his  wife  journey  on  to  his  village. 
They  live  happily  for  some  time,  but  women  become  fond  of  him  on  account  of 
elk  dance  which  he  has  instituted.  He  does  not  remain  true  to  his  wife  and  she 
dies  second  time.  He  mourns  at  her  grave  and  Wind  tells  him  that  having  dis- 
obeyed his  wife  he  can  not  regain  her.  He  teaches  his  ceremony  to  his  friends 
and  wanders  off  to  die. 

113.   THE    SPIRIT  WIFE    AND   THE   WHISTLE    DANCE. 

Man  recently  married  leaves  his  wife  and  goes  on  war-path.  Upon  returning, 
he  finds  that  people  have  gone  on  hunt.  He  follows  them  and  her  father  tells  him 
that  she  is  dead.  He  goes  to  her  grave  and  mourns.  A  boy  asks  him  if  he  really 


ABSTRACTS.  537 

loves  his  wife  and  places  his  hands  upon  him,  and  man  finds  himself  in  different 
country.  At  night  he  sees  bright  tipi,  which  he  enters,  finding  old  woman.  Floor  of 
tipi  is  covered  with  sage,  and  upon  it  many  fox  skins,  eagle  feathers,  etc.  She  gives 
him  four  mud  balls.  He  continues  his  journey,  crossing  log,  which  shakes  at  first, 
but  becomes  quiet,  and  man  declares  his  readiness  to  die.  He  enters  village  in  spirit 
land  and  by  means  of  balls  attracts  attention  of  his  wife,  who  follows  him.  They  set 
out  for  home,  he  receives  balls  from  old  woman  which  become  buffalo,  and  she  gives 
him  elk  dance  and  rattle,  telling  him  that  warriors  who  have  died  on  plains  make 
their  home  in  rattle.  She  also  gives  him  whistle.  They  continue  traveling  through 
space.  Finally  they  all  land  and  husband  is  instructed  to  have  his  wife  sleep  each 
night  in  bed  of  cactus,  which  by  morning  has  caused  her  nerves  to  assume  normal 
condition.  Arriving  home,  wife  remains  apart  from  people  for  several  days,  on 
account  of  their  odor.  In  night  boy  is  told  that  it  is  Breath  or  Wind  who  has 
assisted  him,  and  that  he  is  to  obey  his  wife.  He  goes  on  war-path,  carrying  his 
rattle.  Near  enemy  he  removes  handle,  particles  of  dust  fly  out  from  rattle  and 
become  armed  warriors.  They  attack  village,  killing  many  and  capturing  ponies. 
He  holds  rattle  up  and  warriors  enter,  becoming  dust.  He  becomes  famous  warrior, 
always  traveling  alone.  Women  desire  to  marry  him.  He  takes  second  wife.  His 
first  wife  tells  him  that  he  must  remember  her  and  must  be  kind  to  her.  Once  in 
visiting  his  second  wife  he  becomes  angry  and  speaks  in  slighting  terms  of  his  first 
wife.  When  he  returns  to  his  first  wife  he  finds  her  bones  upon  bed.  They  are 
placed  in  grave,  where  he  mourns,  but  no  spirit  addresses  him.  He  institutes  whistle 
dance,  teaches  people  how  to  bewitch,  and  teaches  power  of  bewitching  by  throw- 
ing red  beans  into  air. 

114.    HANDSOME-BOY. 

Boy  is  carefully  guarded  and  well  clothed  by  his  parents  and  is  called  Hand- 
some-Boy. He  hears  warriors  talking,  and  in  night  he  wonders  why  his  father  does 
not  send  him  on  war-path.  In  night  girl  visits  him,  but  he  repels  her  and  she  scorn- 
fully tells  him  that  as  he  has  achieved  no  reputation  as  warrior  he  should  not  act  in 
that  manner.  When  she  leaves  he  ponders  over  what  she  has  told  him,  arises, 
captures  two  of  his  ponies,  and  sets  out,  traveling  many  days.  He  has  no  fire  uten- 
sils and  eats  raw  flesh.  In  dream, man  with  bear-claw  necklace  and  scalped-f ringed 
leggings  speaks  to  him,  telling  him  to  go  to  high  hill.  From  hill  he  sees  people  com- 
ing up  from  water  who  look  like  eagles.  He  puts  his  hand  to  ground,  arises,  and  finds 
flint  knife.  He  goes  to  water  and  sees  buffalo.  He  kills  one  and  skins  it  with  his 
flint  knife.  He  is  again  addressed  in  night  and  is  told  to  go  to  another  hill.  Arriv- 
ing at  hill  he  sees  sparks  passing  from  one  weed  to  another,  which  he  at  first  believes 
to  be  fire-flies.  He  takes  stick  from  center  of  hill,  and  then  another,  and  uses  them 
with  his  flint  in  making  fire,  using  sand  also.  Thus  he  makes  fire  and  thereafter 
cooks  his  food.  He  enters  prairie-dog  town  and  in  dream  is  again  addressed  by 
mysterious  being.  In  morning  he  kills  buffalo  and  jerks  meat,  and  remains  there 
several  days.  One  night  he  hears  people  dancing  and  singing  that  Handsome-Boy 
has  killed  an  enemy.  Mysterious  being  speaks  to  him  and  tells  him  that  he  is  to 
fight  enemy.  He  hears  singing  and  dancing  as  before.  He  goes  in;  he  sees  people 
dancing,  and  they  are  prairie  dogs,  which  run  into  their  holes.  He  throws  tobacco 
in  hole  to  show  his  gratitude  for  them  singing  and  asks  them  to  help  him.  He 
mounts  one  of  his  ponies,  rides  on  high  hill  at  sunrise,  and  sees  man.  He  returns 
to  his  camp,  paints  himself  and  his  pony,  and  meets  man  and  takes  his  scalp,  which 


538  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

he  puts  on  long  pole.  In  night  he  again  hears  dancing  and  next  day  he  again  offers 
prairie  dogs  tobacco.  He  is  warned  by  mysterious  being  that  in  three  days  he  is  to 
have  hard  fight,  but  that  he  must  not  be  afraid,  and  on  third  day  he  meets  lone 
enemy,  scalps  him,  removes  his  war  bonnet,  is  surrounded  by  other  enemies,  kills 
several,  and  takes  their  scalps.  He  is  again  addressed  by  mysterious  being,  who 
tells  him  to  go  north.  He  takes  his  two  ponies,  releasing  one  he  had  captured,  to  big 
mountain,  on  top  of  which  he  sees  fresh  earth  and  hole.  In  hole  he  sees  footprints 
of  child.  Removing  his  clothing,  he  enters  hole,  which  enlarges.  Desiring  to  see 
end,  he  runs  and  hears  whistling.  He  meets  dwarf,  which  allows  him  to  pass.  Pas- 
sage-way grows  lighter  and  he  sees  his  two  ponies  and  village,  at  edge  of  which  he  is 
addressed  by  man  as  "Nephew,"  who  stands  him  on  his  feet,  and  sage  is  burned 
with  hot  coals  on  four  sides  of  him,  and  he  is  given  small  sage  ball  to  eat  and  told  to 
swallow  saliva.  After  four  days  his  uncle  tells  him  that  it  is  time  to  leave,  that  they 
have  watched  over  him,  and  dead  people  pass  through  passage;  that  it  is  good  for 
young  man  to  die  in  battle,  and  warriors  find  the  passage  easy  and  are  gladly  re- 
ceived; that  people  who  die  on  sick  beds  have  hard  journey;  that  people  who  com- 
mit suicide  never  journey  through  that  passage — should  they  enter,  dwarf  drives 
them  back.  Again  he  is  bathed  in  sage  smoke  and  is  told  to  return  to  his  people. 
He  runs  through  passage,  encountering  dwarf,  who  asks  him  to  stop,  and  boy  now 
sees  mysterious  being  who  has  before  addressed  him  many  times,  and  he  tells  him  he 
is  Wind  and  he  will  be  with  him  on  war-path  and  give  him  courage.  Wind  gives  him 
paint,  whistle,  and  downy  feather,  and  tells  him  that  should  enemy  shoot  feather 
he  will  die.  Boy  runs  through  passage-way  and  starts  north.  Each  night  Wind 
visits  him,  telling  him  to  decorate  his  leggings  with  pieces  of  scalps.  He  also 
tells  boy  that  his  parents  have  adopted  child,  for  they  believed  him  dead; 
that  he  must  not  be  angry  at  them.  Outside  his  own  village  he  meets  boy  and 
accompanies  him  home.  He  is  invited  to  Crazy  Dog  dance.  There  Handsome- 
Boy  sees  his  father  and  mother.  Next  day  his  mother  sends  invitation  for 
supposed  stranger  to  her  lodge  to  eat.  His  parents  do  not  recognize  him  and  he 
grieves  because  he  is  asked  not  to  sit  on  bed.  He  goes  to  dog  dance,  sits  on  south 
side,  and  takes  part,  but  enemy  appear  and  all  go  out  to  defend  village.  Handsome- 
Boy  enters  fight  with  boy  who  has  befriended  him.  The  two  kill  enemies  and  count 
coup,  and  they  take  many  scalps.  Handsome-Boy  returns  to  his  new  home  and  is 
received  with  honor,  for  with  him  their  son  has  counted  coup.  Women  dance  scalp 
dance  and  Handsome-Boy  hears  same  shouting  as  he  heard  in  prairie-dog  town.  He 
gives  away  many  presents.  Next  day  as  he  approaches  lodge  where  Crazy  Dog 
dance  is  to  be  held,  he  finds  pony  tied  to  spear,  thus  indicating  that  pony  is  to 
become  property  of  whosoever  will  take  scalp.  During  dance,  Handsome-Boy's 
friend  recounts  his  deeds,  whereupon  Handsome-Boy  relates  his  adventures.  All 
rejoice,  and  father  and  mother  ask  Handsome-Boy  to  return  to  his  old  home,  but  he 
refuses.  After  dance  he  divides  his  ponies  between  two  lodges.  Enemy  is  attacked 
and  Handsome-Boy  takes  up  spear  which  has  been  thrust  in  ground,  and  with  it  kills 
four.  Tying  four  scalps  to  spear,  he  takes  it  to  lodge  of  those  who  mourn  and  is 
given  pony,  which  he  presents  to  his  adopted  father.  He  now  marries,  and  they 
have  boy,  but  his  wife  is  mean.  He  is  chosen  leader  of  hunt.  Mysterious  being 
directs  him  to  herd  of  buffalo.  His  wife  asks  him  what  he  should  do  if  she  were 
unfaithful,  and  tells  him  that  she  is  sought  by  other  men.  He  must  not  strike  her, 
however,  for  thus  he  has  been  instructed  by  spirits.  His  wife  thereupon  taunts  him, 
whereupon  he  goes  off  to  mourn.  Beautiful  girl  appears  and  asks  him  to  be  her 


ABSTRACTS.  539 

husband.  They  return  to  village  as  man  and  wife  and  enter  lodge  which  girl's 
father  has  prepared  for  her,  and  he  smokes  with  his  father-in-law.  Feast  follows. 
They  remain  together  four  days  and  nights.  Handsome-Boy's  child  cries  for  its 
father.  It  is  not  known  what  has  become  of  him.  Mother  discovers  her  husband 
with  his  new  wife  by  following  direction  indicated  by  child.  She  takes  child  to  its 
grandmother,  telling  her  that  she  must  take  it  to  its  father.  When  father  sees  child 
it  stops  crying.  Child's  mother  enters  tipi,  calls  him  names,  and  as  he  does  not  reply 
she  draws  knife  and  is  about  to  strike  him,  but  Handsome-Boy  's  second  wife  pre- 
vents her,  and  men  rush  into  tipi  and  kill  her.  People  rejoice  because  of  her  death, 
for  they  know  she  has  been  mean  to  Handsome-Boy,  and  no  one  is  punished.  Hand- 
some-Boy grieves  and  chiefs  try  to  console  him,  offering  to  make  him  chief.  He 
can  not  accept,  for  he  has  been  struck  by  woman.  He  has  leggings  prepared  with 
scalp-locks  and  necklace  of  scalps.  In  night  he  tells  his  relatives  of  his  visit  to  spirit 
land,  directing  them  how  to  live  and  how  to  die  in  battle.  Next  day  he  disappears. 

115.    THE  WEEPING  CEDAR  TREE. 

War  party  hunts  enemy.  In  mountainous  country  they  hear  woman  crying. 
They  are  selected  to  hunt  her.  They  are  led  away  by  crying  and  find  cedar  tree. 
One,  believing  this  to  be  bad  omen,  returns  home.  Other  warriors  continue  and  all 
are  killed. 

116.    BIG  TURTLE. 

Warrior  borrows  friend's  bundle  and  leads  on  war-path.  On  journey  they  meet 
big  Turtle.  Two  young  men  climb  upon  its  back  to  ride  Turtle.  They  become  fast. 
Others  mount  Turtle's  back  and  also  become  fast.  One  member  is  told  to  return 
home  and  relate  fate  of  party  to  their  friends.  Turtle  goes  to  big  water  and  disap- 
pears with  warriors.  One  directed  to  return  home  remains,  and  in  dream  sees 
other  men  in  lodge  under  water.  He  returns  home  with  his  tale.  Afterwards  he 
goes  to  place,  is  taken  into  water  where  in  animals'  lodge  he  is  taught  many  mys- 
teries by  Turtle,  their  leader.  People  are  jealous  of  power  which  boy  shows  in  medi- 
cine dance,  which  he  has  been  taught.  They  go  to  water  and  dip  it  out  with  buckets 
and  find  skeletons  of  men,  but  no  trace  of  Turtle.  Animals  are  displeased  and  take 
away  boy's  power. 

117.    COYOTE    AND   THE    SCALPED- WOMAN. 

Coyote  meets  Scalped- Woman  on  hill  and  makes  fun  of  her  head,  which  he 
likens  to  mush  pot  boiling  over.  She  runs  after  him  and  he  changes  into  old  man 
with  whiskers.  He  stands  by  tobacco  patch.  She  asks  him  about  Coyote.  He 
knows  nothing  and  she  goes  off.  He  again  overtakes  her  as  Coyote  and  turns  into 
warrior,  and  she  asks  him  if  he  has  seen  Coyote.  He  again  becomes  Coyote  and  calls 
her  names;  she  starts  after  him  and  he  crawls  into  hole,  and  she  follows  him  and  gets 
fast.  He  has  connection  with  her;  she  marries  him  and  he  deserts  her. 

118.    HOW   A   WITCH-WOMAN    WAS  KILLED   BY  A   COYOTE. 

Coyote  meets  Spider- Woman  on  island.  Desiring  to  gain  her  friendship,  he 
moves  his  membrum  back  and  forth  through  foliage.  She  laughs  until  she  dies. 


540  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

119.   COYOTE   MARRIES   HIS   DAUGHTER. 

Coyote  while  with  his  family  on  hunt  feigns  illness,  is  buried,  first  telling  his 
wife  that  she  is  to  marry  their  daughter  to  man  making  arrows.  Next  day  mother 
and  daughter  see  man  making  arrows.  Coyote  follows  them  and  enters  lodge,  pre- 
tending to  be  blind  in  one  eye.  He  accompanies  hunting  party,  gets  hearts  and 
tongues,  which  he  sends  to  his  wife,  saying  that  he,  chief,  presents  them.  While 
they  are  cooking,  he  enters  and  asks  for  his  daughter  in  marriage.  In  his  happiness 
he  forgets  himself,  opens  both  eyes,  and  is  recognized  by  his  wife,  who  kills  him  with 
club. 

120.   COYOTE  AND  HIS  TWO  WIVES  MEET  WONDERFUL-BEING. 

Coyote  and  his  two  wives  go  south.  They  meet  Wonderful  Being.  Women 
being  afraid  are  told  by  Coyote  to  put  pebbles  in  their  robes  so  that  they  will  rattle. 
They  dance  while  Wonderful- Being  comes  up,  and  sing  song  about  having  killed 
wonderful  man.  He  becomes  afraid  and  runs  away,  whereupon  Coyote  and  his 
wives  run  home,  his  older  wife  dying  on  way  with  fright. 

121.  COYOTE  TRIES  TO  FOOL  RAIN  GODS. 

Coyote  almost  perishes  from  thirst  and  offers  his  heart  and  tongue  to  gods  in 
west  if  they  will  send  rain.  Clouds  form  and  it  rains.  Coyote  drinks.  He  con- 
tinues drinking  and  withdraws  his  promise.  It  continues  raining,  and  Coyote  runs 
and  is  killed  in  hailstorm. 

122.   COYOTE:  AND   THE    PRIESTS. 

Coyote,  Fox,  Rabbit,  and  Spider- Woman  act  as  scouts  on  buffalo  hunt.  They 
report  to  priests'  lodge  having  seen  many  buffalo.  After  slaughter  they  carry  much 
food  to  priests'  lodge,  and  their  daughters  carry  wood  to  priests'  lodge. 

123.   COYOTE    WHO    CALLED   HIMSELF   DRAGGING-THE-STONE. 

Coyote  decides  to  leave  his  village  and  visit  another  Coyote  village.  As  he 
approaches  they  are  gambling.  He  announces  himself  as  Dragging-the-Stone,  and 
being  dressed  like  warrior  they  are  afraid  of  him.  He  is  invited  to  chief's  lodge,  but 
refuses.  He  is  next  invited  to  feast  with  giant,  and  refuses.  He  also  refuses  to 
feast  with  bravest  warrior  in  village.  All  are  afraid  of  him.  He  camps  with  poor 
couple  in  village.  Chief  calls  for  scouts  to  look  for  buffalo.  They  return  and  all  set 
out  for  hunt.  Coyote  is  invited,  paints  himself,  and  rides  old  woman's  horse,  which 
he  kills  because  its  penis  is  on  its  back.  He  walks  on  and  man  gives  him  buffalo. 
He  begins  to  skin  it  and  giant  comes,  ordering  him  and  his  friends  to  leave  buffalo, 
as  it  his.  Coyote  is  second  time  ordered  to  leave  buffalo.  They  quarrel  and 
Coyote  strikes  giant  with  his  bow.  Giant  with  his  breath  blows  Coyote  away,  but 
Coyote  returns  to  fight  and  giant  runs  off  scared.  His  reputation  increases  through- 
out village.  All  are  afraid  of  him.  In  feast  Coyote  is  given  prominent  place  and  is 
offered  ribs,  which  he  declines.  Being  asked  about  his  favorite  piece,  he  says  he 
prefers  small  piece  of  jerked  meat  and  some  tallow,  and  asks  that  they  build  little 
arbor  over  fireplace.  As  he  is  fond  of  cooking,  he  asks  them  to  sit  down  and  he 
spreads  the  tallow  on  rack  and  it  begins  to  drift  into  fire.  Then  Coyote  swings 
tallow  about,  thus  burning  people  and  causing  them  to  cover  their  heads,  where- 
upon he  starts  to  run,  but  they  overtake  him  on  sandbar  and  kill  him. 


ABSTRACTS.  541 

124.    COYOTE-MAN   AND   HIS   TRICKS. 

Coyote  passing  through  timber  finds  squirrels  playing  in  trees  and  tells  them  he 
is  starving  and  asks  them  to  feed  him.  They  accuse  him  of  knavery,  but  he  begs, 
and  male  squirrel  descends  and  tells  Coyote  to  remove  one  of  his  testes,  whereupon 
pecans  appear.  Coyote  returns  home,  has  his  wife  operate  on  him,  and  they  obtain 
pecans.  She  does  this  four  times,  but  fifth  time  blood  appears,  for  she  has  done  it 
once  too  often;  whereupon  he  returns  to  squirrels,  who  heal  his  wound,  but  tell  him 
he  has  lost  power.  He  continues  traveling  and  meets  Beaver,  and  begs  food. 
Beaver  instructs  him  to  get  cottonwood  bark  and  macerate  it  between  his  hands. 
Then  Beaver  cuts  Coyote's  scrotum,  oil  appears,  which  is  mixed  with  bark,  and 
pemmican  is  formed.  Coyote  is  taught  trick,  but  is  warned  he  must  not  do  it 
oftener  than  four  times  a  day.  He  goes  home,  disobeys  their  injunction,  and 
returns  to  Beaver  to  heal  him.  He  meets  Bear,  who  tells  him  that  he  is  going  to  his 
den.  Coyote  runs  on  ahead,  daubs  his  head  with  mud,  and  puts  white  clay  on  his 
lips  to  make  them  appear  chapped.  He  again  meets  Bear  and  begs  for  food,  espe- 
cially for  grease  for  his  lips.  Bear  finally  consents  to  allow  Coyote  to  cut  him  in  loin. 
He  cuts  deeply  and  thrusts  in  his  arrow,  killing  bear.  He  finds  pile  of  dry  limbs,  to 
which  he  carries  bear  meat  and  roasts  all  of  it  before  eating  any.  Overhead  he 
hears  squeaking  noise,  made  by  two  limbs  rubbing,  and  orders  them  to  stop. 
Enraged  because  they  do  not,  he  climbs  tree  and  puts  his  hand  between  them  and 
is  caught.  Coyotes  appear,  eat  up  his  meat,  and  run  away.  The  tree  releases  him 
and  he  continues  in  quest  of  food.  He  meets  medicine-man,  asks  him  how  he  doc- 
tors sick,  and  obtains  medicine-man's  song  and  dance;  whereupon  he  kills  medi- 
cine-man, dresses  himself  in  his  costume,  enters  village,  dancing  on  way,  pretending 
to  doctor  sick  boy,  but  kills  him  with  red-hot  iron.  He  cuts  boy  up  in  small  pieces 
and  puts  him  in  kettle.  Snake  appears  and  Coyote  gags  it  with  piece  of  meat. 
Snake  goes  to  people  and  with  difficulty  tells  them  that  Coyote  killed  sick  boy. 
People  run  to  village,  but  Coyote  has  disappeared.  He  runs  through  timber  and 
sees  Buzzards  on  hill.  He  asks  them  to  carry  him  up  into  sky.  They  do  so  and 
he  discerns  game  far  below.  Presently  two  Buzzards  carrying  him  separate  and 
Coyote  falls  to  earth,  alighting  in  hollow  log,  where  he  remains  for  several  days. 
He  enlarges  holes  in  log.  People  camp  near  him  and  he  cuts  tails  from  his  raccoon- 
hide  quiver  and  sticks  them  through  holes,  and  woman  gathering  wood  calls  her 
companions  and  they  cut  tree  down  for  raccoons.  He  feigns  anger  at  them.  He 
travels  on  and  meets  two  women  gathering  wood,  and  near  by  baby-board.  He 
takes  out  baby,  cuts  off  its  head,  and  replaces  head  in  cradle.  Women  discover 
deed  and  they  recognize  it  as  work  of  Coyote.  All  are  now  angry  at  him,  and 
they  capture  him  and  throw  him  on  fire,  but  he  jumps  out  with  popping  noise  and 
becomes  little  hairy  man. 


125.   COYOTE   TAKES  THE   PIPE-STICKS  TO  THE   BEAVER. 

Coyote's  wife  and  child  are  hungry.  He  encounters  beavers,  makes  pipe  sticks, 
which  he  carries  to  beavers'  lodge.  Thus  beavers  become  his  children.  On  invita- 
tion they  meet  Coyote  on  hill  far  from  creek,  where  pipe  stick  dance  is  to  be  held. 
He  kills  many  with  his  club.  He  tries  in  vain  thereafter  to  repeat  trick  on  beavers. 


542  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

126.  COYOTE   AND  THE    ROLLING   STONE. 

Coyote  looking  for  food  gives  his  knife  to  big,  round  stone,  asking  it  to  help  him 
find  food.  He  enters  lodge  in  village  and  sees  meat  and  regrets  his  foolishness  in 
having  given  away  his  knife.  He  returns  to  stone,  takes  his  knife  with  him, 
returns  toward  village,  but  village  has  disappeared.  He  gives  his  knife  again  to 
stone.  He  returns  and  discovers  village  second  time.  He  goes  back  to  stone  and 
takes  his  knife.  Stone  starts  after  him.  He  asks  help  of  bears,  but  they  claim 
they  are  powerless;  likewise,  mountain-lions  and  buffalo.  Bull  bats  offer  protec- 
tion and  he  enters  their  lodge.  They  expel  flatus  on  stone  as  it  approaches,  break- 
ing it  in  pieces.  Coyote  starts  on  his  way  again,  but  makes  fun  of  bull  bats,  where- 
upon they  fly  about  stone  fragments,  reassemble  them,  and  stone  again  pursues 
Coyote  and  kills  him. 

127.  COYOTE  AND  THE  ROLLING  SKULL. 

Coyote  sings  about  hunting  buffalo  on  prairie.  Buffalo  skull  taunts  him. 
Coyote  replies  insultingly  to  Skull,  and  it  pursues  him  into  village  and  devours  him 
and  all  people  except  four  girls.  They  flee  and  Skull  takes  after  them.  As  it 
approaches  closely,  one  girl  throws  her  packstring  on  ground  and  cactus  appears. 
Coyote  overtakes  her  and  kills  her.  Next,  Skull's  flight  is  retarded  by  second 
woman's  packstring,  which  forms  steep  bank  and  creek.  He  crosses  on  floating  logs, 
overtakes  girl,  and  kills  her.  Third  woman  with  her  packstring  makes  ravine,  but 
Skull  gets  over  and  kills  her  Youngest  cries  for  help.  Bull  bats  direct  her  to  hol- 
low. There  she  finds  small  lodge  and  small  boy.  He  tells  her  to  enter  his  lodge. 
Skull  appears  and  demands  girl,  and  boy  blows  blue  bead  from  his  mouth,  which 
strikes  Skull,  breaking  it  in  two.  Boy  is  Milkweed. 

128.   COYOTE   TURNS  INTO   A   BUFFALO. 

Starving  Coyote  meets  buffalo  bull  eating  grass,  envies  him  his  ease  in  obtain- 
ing food,  and  desires  to  learn  to  imitate  buffalo.  After  repeatedly  fleeing  for  his 
life,  he  allows  buffalo  to  charge  upon  him  in  buffalo  wallow,  and  he  becomes  buffalo 
and  remains  with  them.  He  is  told  to  sit  while  resting  with  his  nose  toward  wind, 
to  detect  odor  of  approaching  enemy.  Coyote  begs  Coyote-Buffalo  to  make  him 
also  buffalo.  He  attempts  to  do  so,  but  becomes  himself  coyote.  He  returns  to 
buffalo,  asking  them  to  transform  him  again  into  buffalo.  They  do  so.  Coyote 
travels  west  and  is  warned  that  he  will  meet  nineteen  cows  and  bull,  and  that  he  is  to 
refuse  invitation  from  bull  to  travel  to  land  of  human  beings.  Coyote  meets  bull 
and  accepts  his  invitation.  They  travel  on  many  days,  Coyote  each  night  propos- 
ing that  they  smoke,  but  bull  tells  him  it  is  not  yet  time.  Hunters  surround  buffalo 
and  kill  all  except  one,  which  runs  very  fast.  As  they  are  about  to  shoot  it,  it  falls 
over  precipice  and  becomes  Coyote  again.  Coyote  returns  to  buffalo  and  asks  them 
to  make  him  buffalo  once  more.  They  pretend  to  repeat  performance,  placing  him 
in  buffalo  wallow,  where  he  is  gored  to  death. 

129.  COYOTE  FAMILY  RUN  AFTER  THE  BUFFALO. 

While  Coyote  is  on  hunt  his  wife  and  child  run  after  buffalo.  Coyote  over- 
takes them  and  kills  buffalo,  whereupon  they  decide  not  to  travel  longer  as  one 
family,  but  to  scatter  out  over  country. 


ABSTRACTS.  543 

130.     COYOTE   STEALS   TURTLE'S    BUFFALO. 

Turtle  begs  Buffalo  to  carry  him  across  river.  Entering  Buffalo's  anus,  he 
gnaws  at  his  intestines  and  kills  him.  Then  Turtle  sings  of  his  desire  for  knife. 
Coyote  hears  him  and  offers  knife,  whereupon  Coyote  proposes  that  they  have  test 
of  skill  in  jumping  over  buffalo,  winner  to  receive  buffalo  and  loser  to  help  him  cut  it 
up,  meat  being  divided.  Coyote  wins,  Turtle  cuts  up  Buffalo,  while  Coyote  goes 
after  his  family.  Turtle  recognizes  Coyote's  deception,  cries  to  two  eagles  flying 
overhead  and  asks  them  to  take  him  and  meat  up  to  their  nest  in  cottonwood  tree. 
There  Turtle  makes  fire  and  cooks  meat.  Coyote  returns  with  his  children.  He 
presently  discovers  reflection  of  fire  in  water.  Thinking  it  is  Turtle,  he  dives  in,  his 
head  is  caught  between  two  logs,  and  his  excrement  floats  to  top,  which  Turtle  sees 
and  asks  Coyote's  children  how  they  would  like  to  have  some  meat.  They  cry  and 
run  away. 

131.  COYOTE  AND  BEAR. 

Coyote  is  nearly  scared  to  death  upon  meeting  Bear.  He  sings  of  his  power  to 
stop  rivers.  Bear  believes  him  wonderful,  for  being  summer  time  rivers  are  dry. 
Coyote  sings  about  turning  trees  to  hills,  and  Bear  believes  him  wonderful.  They 
travel  together  and  Bear  cooks  meat.  Bear  reaches  for  something,  scares  Coyote, 
and  Bear  recognizes  that  he  has  been  deceived  by  Coyote's  big  talk.  He  kills 
Coyote. 

132.  COYOTE    AND    BEAR. 

Coyote  makes  imitation  bow  and  meets  Bear,  who  breaks  Coyote's  bow. 
Coyote  then  addresses  sun,  accusing  Bear  of  having  broken  his  bow.  Bear  is 
alarmed  at  his  sacrilegious  act  and  makes  Coyote  another  bow;  whereupon  Coyote 
tells  him  to  hide,  that  sun  may  not  see  him.  Coyote  congratulates  himself  on  his 
escape  and  decides  to  make  his  home  on  prairie. 


133.      COYOTE   SHOWS  TURKEY  THE   SCALP-OFFERING  CEREMONY. 

Coyote  meets  Turkey  and  offers  to  teach  him  how  to  make  fire  for  offerings. 
Fireplace  is  made  and  both  face  it.  While  Coyote  sings  they  go  through  move- 
ments of  offering  scalp  to  fire.  Turkey  becomes  suspicious  and  escapes  while 
Coyote's  eyes  are  closed.  Coyote  reproaches  himself  for  permitting  Turkey  to  get 
away. 

134.    COYOTE  AND  THE  DANCING  TURKEYS. 

Coyote  conies  upon  some  dancing  Turkeys  and  offers  to  teach  them  better 
dance.  He  bites  off  heads  of  two.  Others  run  away.  He  takes  two  Turkeys  home 
and  asks  children  to  cook  meat  while  he  goes  to  invite  chief.  He  returns  alone  and 
sends  his  wife  and  children  outside  and  pretends  to  be  entertaining  guests,  eating  all 
meat  himself.  One  of  children  discovers  deception,  tells  mother,  but  Coyote  escapes 
and  children  have  onlv  bones  for  their  meals. 


544  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

135.    COYOTE  AND  THE  TURKEYS   ROLL  DOWN  THE   HILL. 

Coyote  sees  Turkeys  sliding  down  hill  and  gets  his  sack  and  tells  them  he  has 
new  method.  He  gets  into  sack  and  rolls  down  hill,  laughing  on  way  and  declaring 
it  fine  fun.  Then  he  persuades  Turkeys  to  roll  down,  first  young  ones.  Next,  he 
gets  large  number  of  older  Turkeys  in  sack,  telling  young  ones  to  remain  on  hill. 
When  sack  reaches  bottom,  he  takes  it  up  and  carries  it  home,  warning  his  children 
not  to  untie  it  while  he  goes  after  their  mother.  Youngest  child  unties  sack  and 
Turkeys  escape,  and  children  make  fun  of  their  father  in  song. 

136.    COYOTE   AND   PRAIRIE   CHICKEN. 

Coyote  meets  Prairie  Chicken  and  they  have  contest,  seeing  which  can  frighten 
other.  Coyote  hides  in  tall  grass  and  jumps  at  Prairie  Chicken.  Prairie  Chicken 
laughs.  Then  Prairie  Chicken  hides  near  steep  bank.  Coyote  wanders  about,  for- 
getting Prairie  Chicken.  Nearing  bank,  Prairie  Chicken  flies  up,  and  Coyote  in  his 
fright  leaps  over  bank  and  is  killed. 

137.    COYOTE  AND  PRAIRIE  CHICKEN. 

Coyote  meets  Prairie  Chicken  sitting  on  limb  and  invites  him  to  come  down  and 
dance  with  him.  Prairie  Chicken  refuses  and  Coyote  threatens  it  with  various 
poisons.  Prairie  Chicken  replies  that  he  is  fond  of  things  Coyote  mentions,  and  flies 
away. 

138.     COYOTE  TRIES  TO  MARRY  RABBIT. 

Coyote  tries  to  marry  Rabbit;  she  refuses.  Then  Rabbit  tries  to  marry  Coyote, 
but  Coyote  finds  fault  with  Rabbit  because  it  has  cracked  nose,  and  says  that 
Rabbits  and  Coyotes  will  never  intermarry. 

139.    COYOTE   AND   THE    SALT. 

People  have  no  salt  and  they  go  to  place  where  Coyote  roasts  his  meat,  where 
they  beg  salt  of  him.  He  gives  it  to  them.  Coyote  disappears,  and  thereafter 
when  children  see  coyotes  on  hill  they  sing  song  to  remind  them  that  coyotes  gave 
them  salt. 

140.     COYOTE  AND  THE    ROSEBUDS. 

Coyote  hunting  for  buffalo  climbs  hill  and  sees  valley  full  of  rosebuds.  He 
goes  to  village  and  tells  people  that  he  brings  great  news.  As  reward  he  must  have 
chief's  daughter.  After  he  has  lain  with  her  he  announces  that  he  has  seen  (asking 
the  people  to  step  back  because  he  is  very  warm) — rosebuds,  and  leaps  for  his  life, 
as  he  knows  that  the  people  will  be  angry  at  him  for  having  deceived  them.  They 
kill  him. 

141.     COYOTE    AND    THE    ARTICHOKE. 

Coyote  going  along  road  is  challenged  by  Artichoke  to  bite  it.  He  does  so  and 
devours  Artichoke.  He  soon  begins  to  expel  flatus,  which,  increasing,  lifts  him  from 
ground.  He  is  finally  washed  away  by  his  own  excrement. 


ABSTRACTS.  $45 

142.   COYOTE,    THE    PLUM   TREES,   AND   THE    GRAPE  VINES. 

At  first  Coyotes  have  membrum  long  enough  to  go  around  their  waist.  They 
would  conceal  themselves  on  banks,  sending  them  into  water  to  fool  women,  who 
would  flee,  thinking  them  snakes.  Chief  Coyote  one  day  hears  noise  in  ground, 
unwinds  his  membrum,  and  sticks  it  into  hole.  It  is  gnawed  into  pieces.  He  digs, 
recovers  pieces,  and  throws  handful  in  one  direction,  commanding  that  plum  trees 
shall  grow.  He  orders  another  handful  thrown  in  another  direction,  which  shall 
produce  grape  vines.  Another  handful  produces  berry  bushes,  and  again  from 
another  handful  rise  nut  trees.  Whereupon  insect  in  ground  tells  him  that  thereafter 
Coyotes  shall  no  longer  have  long  membrums. 

143.  THE  SKUNKS  AND  THE  BEAVERS. 

Skunks  become  hungry  and  plan  to  secure  food  by  strategy.  They  send  old 
woman  to  Beavers'  lodge,  asking  them  to  send  medicine-man  to  doctor  young 
Skunk.  Beavers  send  White  Beaver,  who  enters  Skunks'  lodge.  In  attempting  to 
draw  pain  from  pretending  sick  Skunk  with  his  mouth,  he  is  told  that  pain  is  in 
rectum,  whereupon  he  receives  discharge,  rolls  over,  and  is  killed  by  older  Skunks. 
Thus  they  obtain  food.  Next  day  they  resort  to  same  plan,  sending  old  woman  to 
Beavers  for  medicine-man.  She  tells  them  that  man  who  was  sent  day  before  was  so 
ashamed  of  his  incompetence  that  he  wandered  off.  They  send  another  medicine- 
man, who  is  killed  in  same  manner.  Thus  one  after  another  of  Beavers  is  killed  by 
Skunks,  until  there  is  only  one  left.  This  Beaver  becoming  lonely,  goes  to  creek 
and  cries.  Diving  bird  takes  him  into  water,  where  he  finds  lodge  of  Beavers  which 
have  been  killed.  Since  then  Beavers  live  in  water  and  are  at  enmity  with  Skunks. 
People  are  careful  to  throw  beaver  bones  into  water  that  they  may  again  become 
beavers. 

144.     HOW    WILD-CAT    KILLED    THE    BEAR. 

Wild-Cat  goes  hunting,  and  Bear  comes  to  her  den  and  eats  all  her  young  ones. 
Wild-Cat  follows  Bear's  trail  and  calls  Bear  names.  They  fight,  and  Wild-Cat  claws 
Bear's  stomach  open,  removes  her  young  ones,  and  carries  them  home.  Returning 
to  dead  bear,  she  finds  Coyote,  who  claims  that  he  is  guarding  her  prey  for  her. 
Wild-Cat  is  grateful  and  presents  Coyote  with  whole  bear,  who  takes  it  home  to  his 
family,  telling  them  that  he  killed  bear.  Old  bear  now  passes  by  and  Coyote  tells 
young  ones  to  escape  while  he  fights  him.  He  then  runs  away  himself  until  he  kills 
himself  with  fright. 

145.     HOW  RABBIT  LOST  HIS  TAIL. 

Rabbit  loses  his  tail  jumping  over  willow  limb  and  sings  about  his  loss.  Turtle 
tells  him  to  hunt  for  his  tail  among  willows  where  he  will  find  it,  but  that  henceforth 
willow  will  bear  white  fur  in  recognition  of  event.  Rabbit  recovers  his  tail,  gives  it 
to  Turtle,  and  Turtle  restores  it. 

146.     THE   WHITE   AND   BLACK   RATS. 

Two  rats  hunting  for  food  are  addressed  by  Magpie,  who  tells  Black  Rat  where 
he  will  find  artichokes,  and  White  Rat  where  he  will  find  ground  nuts.  Since  then, 
rats  have  used  these  for  food. 


546  THE  PAWNEE:  MYTHOLOGY. 

147.   TURTLE'S   WAR   PARTY. 

Turtle  is  joined  on  war-path  by  Mosquito  and  Cricket.  They  capture  Turtle, 
but  Cricket  escapes  in  hole  and  Mosquito  alights  near  fire.  They  are  about  to  throw 
Turtle  into  fire,  but  he  warns  them  that  he  will  scatter  fire  about  lodge.  When  they 
propose  throwing  him  into  water  he  protests  that  he  is  afraid  of  water,  whereupon 
they  throw  him  in,  and  he  tells  them  that  he  has  fooled  them. 

148.     THE   ANIMALS'   WAR  PARTY. 

Rabbit,  Turtle,  and  Spider- Woman  on  war-path  hear  of  three  men  who  are  hard 
to  kill;  that  ground  about  their  camp  is  covered  with  skulls.  They  boast  of  their 
power.  They  are  killed  by  enemy,  who  carry  firebrands.  Those  not  killed  by  fire 
are  killed  by  war  clubs.  The  enemy  are  foxes. 


48 


UNIVERSITY  OF  CALIFORNIA  LIBRARY 

Los  Angeles 
ThU  book  b  DUE  on  the  last  date  stamped  below. 


|.V,-,n    !    '! 


315 


UNIVERSITY  of  CALIFORNIA 

AT 

LOS  ANGELES 
LIBRARY 


§  1 1 58  00436  3841